UNPKG

1.95 MBPlain TextView Raw
1The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Adventures of Sherlock Holmes
2by Sir Arthur Conan Doyle
3(#15 in our series by Sir Arthur Conan Doyle)
4
5Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the
6copyright laws for your country before downloading or redistributing
7this or any other Project Gutenberg eBook.
8
9This header should be the first thing seen when viewing this Project
10Gutenberg file. Please do not remove it. Do not change or edit the
11header without written permission.
12
13Please read the "legal small print," and other information about the
14eBook and Project Gutenberg at the bottom of this file. Included is
15important information about your specific rights and restrictions in
16how the file may be used. You can also find out about how to make a
17donation to Project Gutenberg, and how to get involved.
18
19
20**Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
21
22**eBooks Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
23
24*****These eBooks Were Prepared By Thousands of Volunteers!*****
25
26
27Title: The Adventures of Sherlock Holmes
28
29Author: Sir Arthur Conan Doyle
30
31Release Date: March, 1999 [EBook #1661]
32[Most recently updated: November 29, 2002]
33
34Edition: 12
35
36Language: English
37
38Character set encoding: ASCII
39
40*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK, THE ADVENTURES OF SHERLOCK HOLMES ***
41
42
43
44
45(Additional editing by Jose Menendez)
46
47
48
49THE ADVENTURES OF
50SHERLOCK HOLMES
51
52BY
53
54SIR ARTHUR CONAN DOYLE
55
56CONTENTS
57
58I. A Scandal in Bohemia
59II. The Red-Headed League
60III. A Case of Identity
61IV. The Boscombe Valley Mystery
62V. The Five Orange Pips
63VI. The Man with the Twisted Lip
64VII. The Adventure of the Blue Carbuncle
65VIII. The Adventure of the Speckled Band
66IX. The Adventure of the Engineer's Thumb
67X. The Adventure of the Noble Bachelor
68XI. The Adventure of the Beryl Coronet
69XII. The Adventure of the Copper Beeches
70
71
72ADVENTURE I. A SCANDAL IN BOHEMIA
73
74I.
75
76
77To Sherlock Holmes she is always the woman. I have seldom heard him mention her under any other name. In his eyes she eclipses and predominates the whole of her sex. It was not that he felt any emotion akin to love for Irene Adler. All emotions, and that one particularly, were abhorrent to his cold, precise but admirably balanced mind. He was, I take it, the most perfect reasoning and observing machine that the world has seen, but as a lover he would have placed himself in a false position. He never spoke of the softer passions, save with a gibe and a sneer. They were admirable things for the observer--excellent for drawing the veil from men's motives and actions. But for the trained reasoner to admit such intrusions into his own delicate and finely adjusted temperament was to introduce a distracting factor which might throw a doubt upon all his mental results. Grit in a sensitive instrument, or a crack in one of his own high-power lenses, would not be more disturbing than a strong emotion in a nature such as his. And yet there was but one woman to him, and that woman was the late Irene Adler, of dubious and questionable memory.
78
79I had seen little of Holmes lately. My marriage had drifted us away from each other. My own complete happiness, and the home-centred interests which rise up around the man who first finds himself master of his own establishment, were sufficient to absorb all my attention, while Holmes, who loathed every form of society with his whole Bohemian soul, remained in our lodgings in Baker Street, buried among his old books, and alternating from week to week between cocaine and ambition, the drowsiness of the drug, and the fierce energy of his own keen nature. He was still, as ever, deeply attracted by the study of crime, and occupied his immense faculties and extraordinary powers of observation in following out those clues, and clearing up those mysteries which had been abandoned as hopeless by the official police. From time to time I heard some vague account of his doings: of his summons to Odessa in the case of the Trepoff murder, of his clearing up of the singular tragedy of the Atkinson brothers at Trincomalee, and finally of the mission which he had accomplished so delicately and successfully for the reigning family of Holland. Beyond these signs of his activity, however, which I merely shared with all the readers of the daily press, I knew little of my former friend and companion.
80
81One night--it was on the twentieth of March, 1888--I was returning from a journey to a patient (for I had now returned to civil practice), when my way led me through Baker Street. As I passed the well-remembered door, which must always be associated in my mind with my wooing, and with the dark incidents of the Study in Scarlet, I was seized with a keen desire to see Holmes again, and to know how he was employing his extraordinary powers. His rooms were brilliantly lit, and, even as I looked up, I saw his tall, spare figure pass twice in a dark silhouette against the blind. He was pacing the room swiftly, eagerly, with his head sunk upon his chest and his hands clasped behind him. To me, who knew his every mood and habit, his attitude and manner told their own story. He was at work again. He had risen out of his drug-created dreams and was hot upon the scent of some new problem. I rang the bell and was shown up to the chamber which had formerly been in part my own.
82
83His manner was not effusive. It seldom was; but he was glad, I think, to see me. With hardly a word spoken, but with a kindly eye, he waved me to an armchair, threw across his case of cigars, and indicated a spirit case and a gasogene in the corner. Then he stood before the fire and looked me over in his singular introspective fashion.
84
85"Wedlock suits you," he remarked. "I think, Watson, that you have put on seven and a half pounds since I saw you."
86
87"Seven!" I answered.
88
89"Indeed, I should have thought a little more. Just a trifle more, I fancy, Watson. And in practice again, I observe. You did not tell me that you intended to go into harness."
90
91"Then, how do you know?"
92
93"I see it, I deduce it. How do I know that you have been getting yourself very wet lately, and that you have a most clumsy and careless servant girl?"
94
95"My dear Holmes," said I, "this is too much. You would certainly have been burned, had you lived a few centuries ago. It is true that I had a country walk on Thursday and came home in a dreadful mess, but as I have changed my clothes I can't imagine how you deduce it. As to Mary Jane, she is incorrigible, and my wife has given her notice, but there, again, I fail to see how you work it out."
96
97He chuckled to himself and rubbed his long, nervous hands together.
98
99"It is simplicity itself," said he; "my eyes tell me that on the inside of your left shoe, just where the firelight strikes it, the leather is scored by six almost parallel cuts. Obviously they have been caused by someone who has very carelessly scraped round the edges of the sole in order to remove crusted mud from it. Hence, you see, my double deduction that you had been out in vile weather, and that you had a particularly malignant boot-slitting specimen of the London slavey. As to your practice, if a gentleman walks into my rooms smelling of iodoform, with a black mark of nitrate of silver upon his right forefinger, and a bulge on the right side of his top-hat to show where he has secreted his stethoscope, I must be dull, indeed, if I do not pronounce him to be an active member of the medical profession."
100
101I could not help laughing at the ease with which he explained his process of deduction. "When I hear you give your reasons," I remarked, "the thing always appears to me to be so ridiculously simple that I could easily do it myself, though at each successive instance of your reasoning I am baffled until you explain your process. And yet I believe that my eyes are as good as yours."
102
103"Quite so," he answered, lighting a cigarette, and throwing himself down into an armchair. "You see, but you do not observe. The distinction is clear. For example, you have frequently seen the steps which lead up from the hall to this room."
104
105"Frequently."
106
107"How often?"
108
109"Well, some hundreds of times."
110
111"Then how many are there?"
112
113"How many? I don't know."
114
115"Quite so! You have not observed. And yet you have seen. That is just my point. Now, I know that there are seventeen steps, because I have both seen and observed. By the way, since you are interested in these little problems, and since you are good enough to chronicle one or two of my trifling experiences, you may be interested in this." He threw over a sheet of thick, pink-tinted notepaper which had been lying open upon the table. "It came by the last post," said he. "Read it aloud."
116
117The note was undated, and without either signature or address.
118
119"There will call upon you to-night, at a quarter to eight o'clock," it said, "a gentleman who desires to consult you upon a matter of the very deepest moment. Your recent services to one of the royal houses of Europe have shown that you are one who may safely be trusted with matters which are of an importance which can hardly be exaggerated. This account of you we have from all quarters received. Be in your chamber then at that hour, and do not take it amiss if your visitor wear a mask."
120
121"This is indeed a mystery," I remarked. "What do you imagine that it means?"
122
123"I have no data yet. It is a capital mistake to theorise before one has data. Insensibly one begins to twist facts to suit theories, instead of theories to suit facts. But the note itself. What do you deduce from it?"
124
125I carefully examined the writing, and the paper upon which it was written.
126
127"The man who wrote it was presumably well to do," I remarked, endeavouring to imitate my companion's processes. "Such paper could not be bought under half a crown a packet. It is peculiarly strong and stiff."
128
129"Peculiar--that is the very word," said Holmes. "It is not an English paper at all. Hold it up to the light."
130
131I did so, and saw a large "E" with a small "g," a "P," and a large "G" with a small "t" woven into the texture of the paper.
132
133"What do you make of that?" asked Holmes.
134
135"The name of the maker, no doubt; or his monogram, rather."
136
137"Not at all. The 'G' with the small 't' stands for 'Gesellschaft,' which is the German for 'Company.' It is a customary contraction like our 'Co.' 'P,' of course, stands for 'Papier.' Now for the 'Eg.' Let us glance at our Continental Gazetteer." He took down a heavy brown volume from his shelves. "Eglow, Eglonitz--here we are, Egria. It is in a German-speaking country--in Bohemia, not far from Carlsbad. 'Remarkable as being the scene of the death of Wallenstein, and for its numerous glass-factories and paper-mills.' Ha, ha, my boy, what do you make of that?" His eyes sparkled, and he sent up a great blue triumphant cloud from his cigarette.
138
139"The paper was made in Bohemia," I said.
140
141"Precisely. And the man who wrote the note is a German. Do you note the peculiar construction of the sentence--'This account of you we have from all quarters received.' A Frenchman or Russian could not have written that. It is the German who is so uncourteous to his verbs. It only remains, therefore, to discover what is wanted by this German who writes upon Bohemian paper and prefers wearing a mask to showing his face. And here he comes, if I am not mistaken, to resolve all our doubts."
142
143As he spoke there was the sharp sound of horses' hoofs and grating wheels against the curb, followed by a sharp pull at the bell. Holmes whistled.
144
145"A pair, by the sound," said he. "Yes," he continued, glancing out of the window. "A nice little brougham and a pair of beauties. A hundred and fifty guineas apiece. There's money in this case, Watson, if there is nothing else."
146
147"I think that I had better go, Holmes."
148
149"Not a bit, Doctor. Stay where you are. I am lost without my Boswell. And this promises to be interesting. It would be a pity to miss it."
150
151"But your client--"
152
153"Never mind him. I may want your help, and so may he. Here he comes. Sit down in that armchair, Doctor, and give us your best attention."
154
155A slow and heavy step, which had been heard upon the stairs and in the passage, paused immediately outside the door. Then there was a loud and authoritative tap.
156
157"Come in!" said Holmes.
158
159A man entered who could hardly have been less than six feet six inches in height, with the chest and limbs of a Hercules. His dress was rich with a richness which would, in England, be looked upon as akin to bad taste. Heavy bands of astrakhan were slashed across the sleeves and fronts of his double-breasted coat, while the deep blue cloak which was thrown over his shoulders was lined with flame-coloured silk and secured at the neck with a brooch which consisted of a single flaming beryl. Boots which extended halfway up his calves, and which were trimmed at the tops with rich brown fur, completed the impression of barbaric opulence which was suggested by his whole appearance. He carried a broad-brimmed hat in his hand, while he wore across the upper part of his face, extending down past the cheekbones, a black vizard mask, which he had apparently adjusted that very moment, for his hand was still raised to it as he entered. From the lower part of the face he appeared to be a man of strong character, with a thick, hanging lip, and a long, straight chin suggestive of resolution pushed to the length of obstinacy.
160
161"You had my note?" he asked with a deep harsh voice and a strongly marked German accent. "I told you that I would call." He looked from one to the other of us, as if uncertain which to address.
162
163"Pray take a seat," said Holmes. "This is my friend and colleague, Dr. Watson, who is occasionally good enough to help me in my cases. Whom have I the honour to address?"
164
165"You may address me as the Count Von Kramm, a Bohemian nobleman. I understand that this gentleman, your friend, is a man of honour and discretion, whom I may trust with a matter of the most extreme importance. If not, I should much prefer to communicate with you alone."
166
167I rose to go, but Holmes caught me by the wrist and pushed me back into my chair. "It is both, or none," said he. "You may say before this gentleman anything which you may say to me."
168
169The Count shrugged his broad shoulders. "Then I must begin," said he, "by binding you both to absolute secrecy for two years; at the end of that time the matter will be of no importance. At present it is not too much to say that it is of such weight it may have an influence upon European history."
170
171"I promise," said Holmes.
172
173"And I."
174
175"You will excuse this mask," continued our strange visitor. "The august person who employs me wishes his agent to be unknown to you, and I may confess at once that the title by which I have just called myself is not exactly my own."
176
177"I was aware of it," said Holmes dryly.
178
179"The circumstances are of great delicacy, and every precaution has to be taken to quench what might grow to be an immense scandal and seriously compromise one of the reigning families of Europe. To speak plainly, the matter implicates the great House of Ormstein, hereditary kings of Bohemia."
180
181"I was also aware of that," murmured Holmes, settling himself down in his armchair and closing his eyes.
182
183Our visitor glanced with some apparent surprise at the languid, lounging figure of the man who had been no doubt depicted to him as the most incisive reasoner and most energetic agent in Europe. Holmes slowly reopened his eyes and looked impatiently at his gigantic client.
184
185"If your Majesty would condescend to state your case," he remarked, "I should be better able to advise you."
186
187The man sprang from his chair and paced up and down the room in uncontrollable agitation. Then, with a gesture of desperation, he tore the mask from his face and hurled it upon the ground. "You are right," he cried; "I am the King. Why should I attempt to conceal it?"
188
189"Why, indeed?" murmured Holmes. "Your Majesty had not spoken before I was aware that I was addressing Wilhelm Gottsreich Sigismond von Ormstein, Grand Duke of Cassel-Felstein, and hereditary King of Bohemia."
190
191"But you can understand," said our strange visitor, sitting down once more and passing his hand over his high white forehead, "you can understand that I am not accustomed to doing such business in my own person. Yet the matter was so delicate that I could not confide it to an agent without putting myself in his power. I have come incognito from Prague for the purpose of consulting you."
192
193"Then, pray consult," said Holmes, shutting his eyes once more.
194
195"The facts are briefly these: Some five years ago, during a lengthy visit to Warsaw, I made the acquaintance of the well-known adventuress, Irene Adler. The name is no doubt familiar to you."
196
197"Kindly look her up in my index, Doctor," murmured Holmes without opening his eyes. For many years he had adopted a system of docketing all paragraphs concerning men and things, so that it was difficult to name a subject or a person on which he could not at once furnish information. In this case I found her biography sandwiched in between that of a Hebrew rabbi and that of a staff-commander who had written a monograph upon the deep-sea fishes.
198
199"Let me see!" said Holmes. "Hum! Born in New Jersey in the year 1858. Contralto--hum! La Scala, hum! Prima donna Imperial Opera of Warsaw--yes! Retired from operatic stage--ha! Living in London--quite so! Your Majesty, as I understand, became entangled with this young person, wrote her some compromising letters, and is now desirous of getting those letters back."
200
201"Precisely so. But how--"
202
203"Was there a secret marriage?"
204
205"None."
206
207"No legal papers or certificates?"
208
209"None."
210
211"Then I fail to follow your Majesty. If this young person should produce her letters for blackmailing or other purposes, how is she to prove their authenticity?"
212
213"There is the writing."
214
215"Pooh, pooh! Forgery."
216
217"My private note-paper."
218
219"Stolen."
220
221"My own seal."
222
223"Imitated."
224
225"My photograph."
226
227"Bought."
228
229"We were both in the photograph."
230
231"Oh, dear! That is very bad! Your Majesty has indeed committed an indiscretion."
232
233"I was mad--insane."
234
235"You have compromised yourself seriously."
236
237"I was only Crown Prince then. I was young. I am but thirty now."
238
239"It must be recovered."
240
241"We have tried and failed."
242
243"Your Majesty must pay. It must be bought."
244
245"She will not sell."
246
247"Stolen, then."
248
249"Five attempts have been made. Twice burglars in my pay ransacked her house. Once we diverted her luggage when she travelled. Twice she has been waylaid. There has been no result."
250
251
252
253"On the contrary, Watson, you can see everything. You fail, however, to reason from what you see. You are too timid in drawing your inferences."
254
255"Then, pray tell me what it is that you can infer from this hat?"
256
257He picked it up and gazed at it in the peculiar introspective fashion which was characteristic of him. "It is perhaps less suggestive than it might have been," he remarked, "and yet there are a few inferences which are very distinct, and a few others which represent at least a strong balance of probability. That the man was highly intellectual is of course obvious upon the face of it, and also that he was fairly well-to-do within the last three years, although he has now fallen upon evil days. He had foresight, but has less now than formerly, pointing to a moral retrogression, which, when taken with the decline of his fortunes, seems to indicate some evil influence, probably drink, at work upon him. This may account also for the obvious fact that his wife has ceased to love him."
258
259"My dear Holmes!"
260
261"He has, however, retained some degree of self-respect," he continued, disregarding my remonstrance. "He is a man who leads a sedentary life, goes out little, is out of training entirely, is middle-aged, has grizzled hair which he has had cut within the last few days, and which he anoints with lime-cream. These are the more patent facts which are to be deduced from his hat. Also, by the way, that it is extremely improbable that he has gas laid on in his house."
262
263"You are certainly joking, Holmes."
264
265"Not in the least. Is it possible that even now, when I give you these results, you are unable to see how they are attained?"
266
267"I have no doubt that I am very stupid, but I must confess that I am unable to follow you. For example, how did you deduce that this man was intellectual?"
268
269For answer Holmes clapped the hat upon his head. It came right over the forehead and settled upon the bridge of his nose. "It is a question of cubic capacity," said he; "a man with so large a brain must have something in it."
270
271"The decline of his fortunes, then?"
272
273"This hat is three years old. These flat brims curled at the edge came in then. It is a hat of the very best quality. Look at the band of ribbed silk and the excellent lining. If this man could afford to buy so expensive a hat three years ago, and has had no hat since, then he has assuredly gone down in the world."
274
275"Well, that is clear enough, certainly. But how about the foresight and the moral retrogression?"
276
277Sherlock Holmes laughed. "Here is the foresight," said he putting his finger upon the little disc and loop of the hat-securer. "They are never sold upon hats. If this man ordered one, it is a sign of a certain amount of foresight, since he went out of his way to take this precaution against the wind. But since we see that he has broken the elastic and has not troubled to replace it, it is obvious that he has less foresight now than formerly, which is a distinct proof of a weakening nature. On the other hand, he has endeavoured to conceal some of these stains upon the felt by daubing them with ink, which is a sign that he has not entirely lost his self-respect."
278
279"Your reasoning is certainly plausible."
280
281"The further points, that he is middle-aged, that his hair is grizzled, that it has been recently cut, and that he uses lime-cream, are all to be gathered from a close examination of the lower part of the lining. The lens discloses a large number of hair-ends, clean cut by the scissors of the barber. They all appear to be adhesive, and there is a distinct odour of lime-cream. This dust, you will observe, is not the gritty, grey dust of the street but the fluffy brown dust of the house, showing that it has been hung up indoors most of the time, while the marks of moisture upon the inside are proof positive that the wearer perspired very freely, and could therefore, hardly be in the best of training."
282
283"But his wife--you said that she had ceased to love him."
284
285"This hat has not been brushed for weeks. When I see you, my dear Watson, with a week's accumulation of dust upon your hat, and when your wife allows you to go out in such a state, I shall fear that you also have been unfortunate enough to lose your wife's affection."
286
287"But he might be a bachelor."
288
289"Nay, he was bringing home the goose as a peace-offering to his wife. Remember the card upon the bird's leg."
290
291"You have an answer to everything. But how on earth do you deduce that the gas is not laid on in his house?"
292
293"One tallow stain, or even two, might come by chance; but when I see no less than five, I think that there can be little doubt that the individual must be brought into frequent contact with burning tallow--walks upstairs at night probably with his hat in one hand and a guttering candle in the other. Anyhow, he never got tallow-stains from a gas-jet. Are you satisfied?"
294
295"Well, it is very ingenious," said I, laughing; "but since, as you said just now, there has been no crime committed, and no harm done save the loss of a goose, all this seems to be rather a waste of energy."
296
297Sherlock Holmes had opened his mouth to reply, when the door flew open, and Peterson, the commissionaire, rushed into the apartment with flushed cheeks and the face of a man who is dazed with astonishment.
298
299"The goose, Mr. Holmes! The goose, sir!" he gasped.
300
301"Eh? What of it, then? Has it returned to life and flapped off through the kitchen window?" Holmes twisted himself round upon the sofa to get a fairer view of the man's excited face.
302
303"See here, sir! See what my wife found in its crop!" He held out his hand and displayed upon the centre of the palm a brilliantly scintillating blue stone, rather smaller than a bean in size, but of such purity and radiance that it twinkled like an electric point in the dark hollow of his hand.
304
305Sherlock Holmes sat up with a whistle. "By Jove, Peterson!" said he, "this is treasure trove indeed. I suppose you know what you have got?"
306
307"A diamond, sir? A precious stone. It cuts into glass as though it were putty."
308
309"It's more than a precious stone. It is the precious stone."
310
311"Not the Countess of Morcar's blue carbuncle!" I ejaculated.
312
313"Precisely so. I ought to know its size and shape, seeing that I have read the advertisement about it in The Times every day lately. It is absolutely unique, and its value can only be conjectured, but the reward offered of $1000 is certainly not within a twentieth part of the market price."
314
315"A thousand pounds! Great Lord of mercy!" The commissionaire plumped down into a chair and stared from one to the other of us.
316
317"That is the reward, and I have reason to know that there are sentimental considerations in the background which would induce the Countess to part with half her fortune if she could but recover the gem."
318
319"It was lost, if I remember aright, at the Hotel Cosmopolitan," I remarked.
320
321"Precisely so, on December 22nd, just five days ago. John Horner, a plumber, was accused of having abstracted it from the lady's jewel-case. The evidence against him was so strong that the case has been referred to the Assizes. I have some account of the matter here, I believe." He rummaged amid his newspapers, glancing over the dates, until at last he smoothed one out, doubled it over, and read the following paragraph:
322
323"Hotel Cosmopolitan Jewel Robbery. John Horner, 26, plumber, was brought up upon the charge of having upon the 22nd inst., abstracted from the jewel-case of the Countess of Morcar the valuable gem known as the blue carbuncle. James Ryder, upper-attendant at the hotel, gave his evidence to the effect that he had shown Horner up to the dressing-room of the Countess of Morcar upon the day of the robbery in order that he might solder the second bar of the grate, which was loose. He had remained with Horner some little time, but had finally been called away. On returning, he found that Horner had disappeared, that the bureau had been forced open, and that the small morocco casket in which, as it afterwards transpired, the Countess was accustomed to keep her jewel, was lying empty upon the dressing-table. Ryder instantly gave the alarm, and Horner was arrested the same evening; but the stone could not be found either upon his person or in his rooms. Catherine Cusack, maid to the Countess, deposed to having heard Ryder's cry of dismay on discovering the robbery, and to having rushed into the room, where she found matters as described by the last witness. Inspector Bradstreet, B division, gave evidence as to the arrest of Horner, who struggled frantically, and protested his innocence in the strongest terms. Evidence of a previous conviction for robbery having been given against the prisoner, the magistrate refused to deal summarily with the offence, but referred it to the Assizes. Horner, who had shown signs of intense emotion during the proceedings, fainted away at the conclusion and was carried out of court."
324
325"Hum! So much for the police-court," said Holmes thoughtfully, tossing aside the paper. "The question for us now to solve is the sequence of events leading from a rifled jewel-case at one end to the crop of a goose in Tottenham Court Road at the other. You see, Watson, our little deductions have suddenly assumed a much more important and less innocent aspect. Here is the stone; the stone came from the goose, and the goose came from Mr. Henry Baker, the gentleman with the bad hat and all the other characteristics with which I have bored you. So now we must set ourselves very seriously to finding this gentleman and ascertaining what part he has played in this little mystery. To do this, we must try the simplest means first, and these lie undoubtedly in an advertisement in all the evening papers. If this fail, I shall have recourse to other methods."
326
327"What will you say?"
328
329"Give me a pencil and that slip of paper. Now, then: 'Found at the corner of Goodge Street, a goose and a black felt hat. Mr. Henry Baker can have the same by applying at 6:30 this evening at 221B, Baker Street.' That is clear and concise."
330
331"Very. But will he see it?"
332
333"Well, he is sure to keep an eye on the papers, since, to a poor man, the loss was a heavy one. He was clearly so scared by his mischance in breaking the window and by the approach of Peterson that he thought of nothing but flight, but since then he must have bitterly regretted the impulse which caused him to drop his bird. Then, again, the introduction of his name will cause him to see it, for everyone who knows him will direct his attention to it. Here you are, Peterson, run down to the advertising agency and have this put in the evening papers."
334
335"In which, sir?"
336
337"Oh, in the Globe, Star, Pall Mall, St. James's, Evening News, Standard, Echo, and any others that occur to you."
338
339"Very well, sir. And this stone?"
340
341"Ah, yes, I shall keep the stone. Thank you. And, I say, Peterson, just buy a goose on your way back and leave it here with me, for we must have one to give to this gentleman in place of the one which your family is now devouring."
342
343When the commissionaire had gone, Holmes took up the stone and held it against the light. "It's a bonny thing," said he. "Just see how it glints and sparkles. Of course it is a nucleus and focus of crime. Every good stone is. They are the devil's pet baits. In the larger and older jewels every facet may stand for a bloody deed. This stone is not yet twenty years old. It was found in the banks of the Amoy River in southern China and is remarkable in having every characteristic of the carbuncle, save that it is blue in shade instead of ruby red. In spite of its youth, it has already a sinister history. There have been two murders, a vitriol-throwing, a suicide, and several robberies brought about for the sake of this forty-grain weight of crystallised charcoal. Who would think that so pretty a toy would be a purveyor to the gallows and the prison? I'll lock it up in my strong box now and drop a line to the Countess to say that we have it."
344
345"Do you think that this man Horner is innocent?"
346
347"I cannot tell."
348
349"Well, then, do you imagine that this other one, Henry Baker, had anything to do with the matter?"
350
351"It is, I think, much more likely that Henry Baker is an absolutely innocent man, who had no idea that the bird which he was carrying was of considerably more value than if it were made of solid gold. That, however, I shall determine by a very simple test if we have an answer to our advertisement."
352
353"And you can do nothing until then?"
354
355"Nothing."
356
357"In that case I shall continue my professional round. But I shall come back in the evening at the hour you have mentioned, for I should like to see the solution of so tangled a business."
358
359"Very glad to see you. I dine at seven. There is a woodcock, I believe. By the way, in view of recent occurrences, perhaps I ought to ask Mrs. Hudson to examine its crop."
360
361I had been delayed at a case, and it was a little after half-past six when I found myself in Baker Street once more. As I approached the house I saw a tall man in a Scotch bonnet with a coat which was buttoned up to his chin waiting outside in the bright semicircle which was thrown from the fanlight. Just as I arrived the door was opened, and we were shown up together to Holmes' room.
362
363"Mr. Henry Baker, I believe," said he, rising from his armchair and greeting his visitor with the easy air of geniality which he could so readily assume. "Pray take this chair by the fire, Mr. Baker. It is a cold night, and I observe that your circulation is more adapted for summer than for winter. Ah, Watson, you have just come at the right time. Is that your hat, Mr. Baker?"
364
365"Yes, sir, that is undoubtedly my hat."
366
367He was a large man with rounded shoulders, a massive head, and a broad, intelligent face, sloping down to a pointed beard of grizzled brown. A touch of red in nose and cheeks, with a slight tremor of his extended hand, recalled Holmes' surmise as to his habits. His rusty black frock-coat was buttoned right up in front, with the collar turned up, and his lank wrists protruded from his sleeves without a sign of cuff or shirt. He spoke in a slow staccato fashion, choosing his words with care, and gave the impression generally of a man of learning and letters who had had ill-usage at the hands of fortune.
368
369"We have retained these things for some days," said Holmes, "because we expected to see an advertisement from you giving your address. I am at a loss to know now why you did not advertise."
370
371Our visitor gave a rather shamefaced laugh. "Shillings have not been so plentiful with me as they once were," he remarked. "I had no doubt that the gang of roughs who assaulted me had carried off both my hat and the bird. I did not care to spend more money in a hopeless attempt at recovering them."
372
373"Very naturally. By the way, about the bird, we were compelled to eat it."
374
375"To eat it!" Our visitor half rose from his chair in his excitement.
376
377"Yes, it would have been of no use to anyone had we not done so. But I presume that this other goose upon the sideboard, which is about the same weight and perfectly fresh, will answer your purpose equally well?"
378
379"Oh, certainly, certainly," answered Mr. Baker with a sigh of relief.
380
381"Of course, we still have the feathers, legs, crop, and so on of your own bird, so if you wish--"
382
383The man burst into a hearty laugh. "They might be useful to me as relics of my adventure," said he, "but beyond that I can hardly see what use the disjecta membra of my late acquaintance are going to be to me. No, sir, I think that, with your permission, I will confine my attentions to the excellent bird which I perceive upon the sideboard."
384
385Sherlock Holmes glanced sharply across at me with a slight shrug of his shoulders.
386
387"There is your hat, then, and there your bird," said he. "By the way, would it bore you to tell me where you got the other one from? I am somewhat of a fowl fancier, and I have seldom seen a better grown goose."
388
389"Certainly, sir," said Baker, who had risen and tucked his newly gained property under his arm. "There are a few of us who frequent the Alpha Inn, near the Museum--we are to be found in the Museum itself during the day, you understand. This year our good host, Windigate by name, instituted a goose club, by which, on consideration of some few pence every week, we were each to receive a bird at Christmas. My pence were duly paid, and the rest is familiar to you. I am much indebted to you, sir, for a Scotch bonnet is fitted neither to my years nor my gravity." With a comical pomposity of manner he bowed solemnly to both of us and strode off upon his way.
390
391"So much for Mr. Henry Baker," said Holmes when he had closed the door behind him. "It is quite certain that he knows nothing whatever about the matter. Are you hungry, Watson?"
392
393"Not particularly."
394
395"Then I suggest that we turn our dinner into a supper and follow up this clue while it is still hot."
396
397"By all means."
398
399It was a bitter night, so we drew on our ulsters and wrapped cravats about our throats. Outside, the stars were shining coldly in a cloudless sky, and the breath of the passers-by blew out into smoke like so many pistol shots. Our footfalls rang out crisply and loudly as we swung through the doctors' quarter, Wimpole Street, Harley Street, and so through Wigmore Street into Oxford Street. In a quarter of an hour we were in Bloomsbury at the Alpha Inn, which is a small public-house at the corner of one of the streets which runs down into Holborn. Holmes pushed open the door of the private bar and ordered two glasses of beer from the ruddy-faced, white-aproned landlord.
400
401"Your beer should be excellent if it is as good as your geese," said he.
402
403"My geese!" The man seemed surprised.
404
405"Yes. I was speaking only half an hour ago to Mr. Henry Baker, who was a member of your goose club."
406
407"Ah! yes, I see. But you see, sir, them's not our geese."
408
409"Indeed! Whose, then?"
410
411"Well, I got the two dozen from a salesman in Covent Garden."
412
413"Indeed? I know some of them. Which was it?"
414
415"Breckinridge is his name."
416
417"Ah! I don't know him. Well, here's your good health landlord, and prosperity to your house. Good-night."
418
419"Now for Mr. Breckinridge," he continued, buttoning up his coat as we came out into the frosty air. "Remember, Watson that though we have so homely a thing as a goose at one end of this chain, we have at the other a man who will certainly get seven years' penal servitude unless we can establish his innocence. It is possible that our inquiry may but confirm his guilt; but, in any case, we have a line of investigation which has been missed by the police, and which a singular chance has placed in our hands. Let us follow it out to the bitter end. Faces to the south, then, and quick march!"
420
421We passed across Holborn, down Endell Street, and so through a zigzag of slums to Covent Garden Market. One of the largest stalls bore the name of Breckinridge upon it, and the proprietor a horsey-looking man, with a sharp face and trim side-whiskers was helping a boy to put up the shutters.
422
423"Good-evening. It's a cold night," said Holmes.
424
425The salesman nodded and shot a questioning glance at my companion.
426
427"Sold out of geese, I see," continued Holmes, pointing at the bare slabs of marble.
428
429"Let you have five hundred to-morrow morning."
430
431"That's no good."
432
433"Well, there are some on the stall with the gas-flare."
434
435"Ah, but I was recommended to you."
436
437"Who by?"
438
439"The landlord of the Alpha."
440
441"Oh, yes; I sent him a couple of dozen."
442
443"Fine birds they were, too. Now where did you get them from?"
444
445To my surprise the question provoked a burst of anger from the salesman.
446
447"Now, then, mister," said he, with his head cocked and his arms akimbo, "what are you driving at? Let's have it straight, now."
448
449"It is straight enough. I should like to know who sold you the geese which you supplied to the Alpha."
450
451"Well then, I shan't tell you. So now!"
452
453"Oh, it is a matter of no importance; but I don't know why you should be so warm over such a trifle."
454
455"Warm! You'd be as warm, maybe, if you were as pestered as I am. When I pay good money for a good article there should be an end of the business; but it's 'Where are the geese?' and 'Who did you sell the geese to?' and 'What will you take for the geese?' One would think they were the only geese in the world, to hear the fuss that is made over them."
456
457"Well, I have no connection with any other people who have been making inquiries," said Holmes carelessly. "If you won't tell us the bet is off, that is all. But I'm always ready to back my opinion on a matter of fowls, and I have a fiver on it that the bird I ate is country bred."
458
459"Well, then, you've lost your fiver, for it's town bred," snapped the salesman.
460
461"It's nothing of the kind."
462
463"I say it is."
464
465"I don't believe it."
466
467"D'you think you know more about fowls than I, who have handled them ever since I was a nipper? I tell you, all those birds that went to the Alpha were town bred."
468
469"You'll never persuade me to believe that."
470
471"Will you bet, then?"
472
473"It's merely taking your money, for I know that I am right. But I'll have a sovereign on with you, just to teach you not to be obstinate."
474
475The salesman chuckled grimly. "Bring me the books, Bill," said he.
476
477The small boy brought round a small thin volume and a great greasy-backed one, laying them out together beneath the hanging lamp.
478
479"Now then, Mr. Cocksure," said the salesman, "I thought that I was out of geese, but before I finish you'll find that there is still one left in my shop. You see this little book?"
480
481"Well?"
482
483"That's the list of the folk from whom I buy. D'you see? Well, then, here on this page are the country folk, and the numbers after their names are where their accounts are in the big ledger. Now, then! You see this other page in red ink? Well, that is a list of my town suppliers. Now, look at that third name. Just read it out to me."
484
485"Mrs. Oakshott, 117, Brixton Road--249," read Holmes.
486
487"Quite so. Now turn that up in the ledger."
488
489Holmes turned to the page indicated. "Here you are, 'Mrs. Oakshott, 117, Brixton Road, egg and poultry supplier.' "
490
491"Now, then, what's the last entry?"
492
493" 'December 22nd. Twenty-four geese at 7s. 6d.' "
494
495"Quite so. There you are. And underneath?"
496
497" 'Sold to Mr. Windigate of the Alpha, at 12s.' "
498
499"What have you to say now?"
500
501Sherlock Holmes looked deeply chagrined. He drew a sovereign from his pocket and threw it down upon the slab, turning away with the air of a man whose disgust is too deep for words. A few yards off he stopped under a lamp-post and laughed in the hearty, noiseless fashion which was peculiar to him.
502
503"When you see a man with whiskers of that cut and the 'Pink 'un' protruding out of his pocket, you can always draw him by a bet," said he. "I daresay that if I had put $100 down in front of him, that man would not have given me such complete information as was drawn from him by the idea that he was doing me on a wager. Well, Watson, we are, I fancy, nearing the end of our quest, and the only point which remains to be determined is whether we should go on to this Mrs. Oakshott to-night, or whether we should reserve it for to-morrow. It is clear from what that surly fellow said that there are others besides ourselves who are anxious about the matter, and I should--"
504
505His remarks were suddenly cut short by a loud hubbub which broke out from the stall which we had just left. Turning round we saw a little rat-faced fellow standing in the centre of the circle of yellow light which was thrown by the swinging lamp, while Breckinridge, the salesman, framed in the door of his stall, was shaking his fists fiercely at the cringing figure.
506
507"I've had enough of you and your geese," he shouted. "I wish you were all at the devil together. If you come pestering me any more with your silly talk I'll set the dog at you. You bring Mrs. Oakshott here and I'll answer her, but what have you to do with it? Did I buy the geese off you?"
508
509"No; but one of them was mine all the same," whined the little man.
510
511"Well, then, ask Mrs. Oakshott for it."
512
513"She told me to ask you."
514
515"Well, you can ask the King of Proosia, for all I care. I've had enough of it. Get out of this!" He rushed fiercely forward, and the inquirer flitted away into the darkness.
516
517"Ha! this may save us a visit to Brixton Road," whispered Holmes. "Come with me, and we will see what is to be made of this fellow." Striding through the scattered knots of people who lounged round the flaring stalls, my companion speedily overtook the little man and touched him upon the shoulder. He sprang round, and I could see in the gas-light that every vestige of colour had been driven from his face.
518
519"Who are you, then? What do you want?" he asked in a quavering voice.
520
521"You will excuse me," said Holmes blandly, "but I could not help overhearing the questions which you put to the salesman just now. I think that I could be of assistance to you."
522
523"You? Who are you? How could you know anything of the matter?"
524
525"My name is Sherlock Holmes. It is my business to know what other people don't know."
526
527"But you can know nothing of this?"
528
529"Excuse me, I know everything of it. You are endeavouring to trace some geese which were sold by Mrs. Oakshott, of Brixton Road, to a salesman named Breckinridge, by him in turn to Mr. Windigate, of the Alpha, and by him to his club, of which Mr. Henry Baker is a member."
530
531"Oh, sir, you are the very man whom I have longed to meet," cried the little fellow with outstretched hands and quivering fingers. "I can hardly explain to you how interested I am in this matter."
532
533Sherlock Holmes hailed a four-wheeler which was passing. "In that case we had better discuss it in a cosy room rather than in this wind-swept market-place," said he. "But pray tell me, before we go farther, who it is that I have the pleasure of assisting."
534
535The man hesitated for an instant. "My name is John Robinson," he answered with a sidelong glance.
536
537"No, no; the real name," said Holmes sweetly. "It is always awkward doing business with an alias."
538
539A flush sprang to the white cheeks of the stranger. "Well then," said he, "my real name is James Ryder."
540
541"Precisely so. Head attendant at the Hotel Cosmopolitan. Pray step into the cab, and I shall soon be able to tell you everything which you would wish to know."
542
543The little man stood glancing from one to the other of us with half-frightened, half-hopeful eyes, as one who is not sure whether he is on the verge of a windfall or of a catastrophe. Then he stepped into the cab, and in half an hour we were back in the sitting-room at Baker Street. Nothing had been said during our drive, but the high, thin breathing of our new companion, and the claspings and unclaspings of his hands, spoke of the nervous tension within him.
544
545"Here we are!" said Holmes cheerily as we filed into the room. "The fire looks very seasonable in this weather. You look cold, Mr. Ryder. Pray take the basket-chair. I will just put on my slippers before we settle this little matter of yours. Now, then! You want to know what became of those geese?"
546
547"Yes, sir."
548
549"Or rather, I fancy, of that goose. It was one bird, I imagine in which you were interested--white, with a black bar across the tail."
550
551Ryder quivered with emotion. "Oh, sir," he cried, "can you tell me where it went to?"
552
553"It came here."
554
555"Here?"
556
557"Yes, and a most remarkable bird it proved. I don't wonder that you should take an interest in it. It laid an egg after it was dead--the bonniest, brightest little blue egg that ever was seen. I have it here in my museum."
558
559Our visitor staggered to his feet and clutched the mantelpiece with his right hand. Holmes unlocked his strong-box and held up the blue carbuncle, which shone out like a star, with a cold, brilliant, many-pointed radiance. Ryder stood glaring with a drawn face, uncertain whether to claim or to disown it.
560
561"The game's up, Ryder," said Holmes quietly. "Hold up, man, or you'll be into the fire! Give him an arm back into his chair, Watson. He's not got blood enough to go in for felony with impunity. Give him a dash of brandy. So! Now he looks a little more human. What a shrimp it is, to be sure!"
562
563For a moment he had staggered and nearly fallen, but the brandy brought a tinge of colour into his cheeks, and he sat staring with frightened eyes at his accuser.
564
565"I have almost every link in my hands, and all the proofs which I could possibly need, so there is little which you need tell me. Still, that little may as well be cleared up to make the case complete. You had heard, Ryder, of this blue stone of the Countess of Morcar's?"
566
567"It was Catherine Cusack who told me of it," said he in a crackling voice.
568
569"I see--her ladyship's waiting-maid. Well, the temptation of sudden wealth so easily acquired was too much for you, as it has been for better men before you; but you were not very scrupulous in the means you used. It seems to me, Ryder, that there is the making of a very pretty villain in you. You knew that this man Horner, the plumber, had been concerned in some such matter before, and that suspicion would rest the more readily upon him. What did you do, then? You made some small job in my lady's room--you and your confederate Cusack--and you managed that he should be the man sent for. Then, when he had left, you rifled the jewel-case, raised the alarm, and had this unfortunate man arrested. You then--"
570
571Ryder threw himself down suddenly upon the rug and clutched at my companion's knees. "For God's sake, have mercy!" he shrieked. "Think of my father! Of my mother! It would break their hearts. I never went wrong before! I never will again. I swear it. I'll swear it on a Bible. Oh, don't bring it into court! For Christ's sake, don't!"
572
573"Get back into your chair!" said Holmes sternly. "It is very well to cringe and crawl now, but you thought little enough of this poor Horner in the dock for a crime of which he knew nothing."
574
575"I will fly, Mr. Holmes. I will leave the country, sir. Then the charge against him will break down."
576
577"Hum! We will talk about that. And now let us hear a true account of the next act. How came the stone into the goose, and how came the goose into the open market? Tell us the truth, for there lies your only hope of safety."
578
579Ryder passed his tongue over his parched lips. "I will tell you it just as it happened, sir," said he. "When Horner had been arrested, it seemed to me that it would be best for me to get away with the stone at once, for I did not know at what moment the police might not take it into their heads to search me and my room. There was no place about the hotel where it would be safe. I went out, as if on some commission, and I made for my sister's house. She had married a man named Oakshott, and lived in Brixton Road, where she fattened fowls for the market. All the way there every man I met seemed to me to be a policeman or a detective; and, for all that it was a cold night, the sweat was pouring down my face before I came to the Brixton Road. My sister asked me what was the matter, and why I was so pale; but I told her that I had been upset by the jewel robbery at the hotel. Then I went into the back yard and smoked a pipe and wondered what it would be best to do.
580
581"I had a friend once called Maudsley, who went to the bad, and has just been serving his time in Pentonville. One day he had met me, and fell into talk about the ways of thieves, and how they could get rid of what they stole. I knew that he would be true to me, for I knew one or two things about him; so I made up my mind to go right on to Kilburn, where he lived, and take him into my confidence. He would show me how to turn the stone into money. But how to get to him in safety? I thought of the agonies I had gone through in coming from the hotel. I might at any moment be seized and searched, and there would be the stone in my waistcoat pocket. I was leaning against the wall at the time and looking at the geese which were waddling about round my feet, and suddenly an idea came into my head which showed me how I could beat the best detective that ever lived.
582
583"My sister had told me some weeks before that I might have the pick of her geese for a Christmas present, and I knew that she was always as good as her word. I would take my goose now, and in it I would carry my stone to Kilburn. There was a little shed in the yard, and behind this I drove one of the birds--a fine big one, white, with a barred tail. I caught it, and prying its bill open, I thrust the stone down its throat as far as my finger could reach. The bird gave a gulp, and I felt the stone pass along its gullet and down into its crop. But the creature flapped and struggled, and out came my sister to know what was the matter. As I turned to speak to her the brute broke loose and fluttered off among the others.
584
585" 'Whatever were you doing with that bird, Jem?' says she.
586
587" 'Well,' said I, 'you said you'd give me one for Christmas, and I was feeling which was the fattest.'
588
589" 'Oh,' says she, 'we've set yours aside for you--Jem's bird, we call it. It's the big white one over yonder. There's twenty-six of them, which makes one for you, and one for us, and two dozen for the market.'
590
591" 'Thank you, Maggie,' says I; 'but if it is all the same to you, I'd rather have that one I was handling just now.'
592
593" 'The other is a good three pound heavier,' said she, 'and we fattened it expressly for you.'
594
595" 'Never mind. I'll have the other, and I'll take it now,' said I.
596
597" 'Oh, just as you like,' said she, a little huffed. 'Which is it you want, then?'
598
599" 'That white one with the barred tail, right in the middle of the flock.'
600
601" 'Oh, very well. Kill it and take it with you.'
602
603"Well, I did what she said, Mr. Holmes, and I carried the bird all the way to Kilburn. I told my pal what I had done, for he was a man that it was easy to tell a thing like that to. He laughed until he choked, and we got a knife and opened the goose. My heart turned to water, for there was no sign of the stone, and I knew that some terrible mistake had occurred. I left the bird, rushed back to my sister's, and hurried into the back yard. There was not a bird to be seen there.
604
605" 'Where are they all, Maggie?' I cried.
606
607" 'Gone to the dealer's, Jem.'
608
609" 'Which dealer's?'
610
611" 'Breckinridge, of Covent Garden.'
612
613" 'But was there another with a barred tail?' I asked, 'the same as the one I chose?'
614
615" 'Yes, Jem; there were two barred-tailed ones, and I could never tell them apart.'
616
617"Well, then, of course I saw it all, and I ran off as hard as my feet would carry me to this man Breckinridge; but he had sold the lot at once, and not one word would he tell me as to where they had gone. You heard him yourselves to-night. Well, he has always answered me like that. My sister thinks that I am going mad. Sometimes I think that I am myself. And now--and now I am myself a branded thief, without ever having touched the wealth for which I sold my character. God help me! God help me!" He burst into convulsive sobbing, with his face buried in his hands.
618
619There was a long silence, broken only by his heavy breathing and by the measured tapping of Sherlock Holmes' finger-tips upon the edge of the table. Then my friend rose and threw open the door.
620
621"Get out!" said he.
622
623"What, sir! Oh, Heaven bless you!"
624
625"No more words. Get out!"
626
627And no more words were needed. There was a rush, a clatter upon the stairs, the bang of a door, and the crisp rattle of running footfalls from the street.
628
629"After all, Watson," said Holmes, reaching up his hand for his clay pipe, "I am not retained by the police to supply their deficiencies. If Horner were in danger it would be another thing; but this fellow will not appear against him, and the case must collapse. I suppose that I am commuting a felony, but it is just possible that I am saving a soul. This fellow will not go wrong again; he is too terribly frightened. Send him to gaol now, and you make him a gaol-bird for life. Besides, it is the season of forgiveness. Chance has put in our way a most singular and whimsical problem, and its solution is its own reward. If you will have the goodness to touch the bell, Doctor, we will begin another investigation, in which, also a bird will be the chief feature."
630
631VIII. THE ADVENTURE OF THE SPECKLED BAND
632
633
634On glancing over my notes of the seventy odd cases in which I have during the last eight years studied the methods of my friend Sherlock Holmes, I find many tragic, some comic, a large number merely strange, but none commonplace; for, working as he did rather for the love of his art than for the acquirement of wealth, he refused to associate himself with any investigation which did not tend towards the unusual, and even the fantastic. Of all these varied cases, however, I cannot recall any which presented more singular features than that which was associated with the well-known Surrey family of the Roylotts of Stoke Moran. The events in question occurred in the early days of my association with Holmes, when we were sharing rooms as bachelors in Baker Street. It is possible that I might have placed them upon record before, but a promise of secrecy was made at the time, from which I have only been freed during the last month by the untimely death of the lady to whom the pledge was given. It is perhaps as well that the facts should now come to light, for I have reasons to know that there are widespread rumours as to the death of Dr. Grimesby Roylott which tend to make the matter even more terrible than the truth.
635
636It was early in April in the year '83 that I woke one morning to find Sherlock Holmes standing, fully dressed, by the side of my bed. He was a late riser, as a rule, and as the clock on the mantelpiece showed me that it was only a quarter-past seven, I blinked up at him in some surprise, and perhaps just a little resentment, for I was myself regular in my habits.
637
638"Very sorry to knock you up, Watson," said he, "but it's the common lot this morning. Mrs. Hudson has been knocked up, she retorted upon me, and I on you."
639
640"What is it, then--a fire?"
641
642"No; a client. It seems that a young lady has arrived in a considerable state of excitement, who insists upon seeing me. She is waiting now in the sitting-room. Now, when young ladies wander about the metropolis at this hour of the morning, and knock sleepy people up out of their beds, I presume that it is something very pressing which they have to communicate. Should it prove to be an interesting case, you would, I am sure, wish to follow it from the outset. I thought, at any rate, that I should call you and give you the chance."
643
644"My dear fellow, I would not miss it for anything."
645
646I had no keener pleasure than in following Holmes in his professional investigations, and in admiring the rapid deductions, as swift as intuitions, and yet always founded on a logical basis with which he unravelled the problems which were submitted to him. I rapidly threw on my clothes and was ready in a few minutes to accompany my friend down to the sitting-room. A lady dressed in black and heavily veiled, who had been sitting in the window, rose as we entered.
647
648"Good-morning, madam," said Holmes cheerily. "My name is Sherlock Holmes. This is my intimate friend and associate, Dr. Watson, before whom you can speak as freely as before myself. Ha! I am glad to see that Mrs. Hudson has had the good sense to light the fire. Pray draw up to it, and I shall order you a cup of hot coffee, for I observe that you are shivering."
649
650"It is not cold which makes me shiver," said the woman in a low voice, changing her seat as requested.
651
652"What, then?"
653
654"It is fear, Mr. Holmes. It is terror." She raised her veil as she spoke, and we could see that she was indeed in a pitiable state of agitation, her face all drawn and grey, with restless frightened eyes, like those of some hunted animal. Her features and figure were those of a woman of thirty, but her hair was shot with premature grey, and her expression was weary and haggard. Sherlock Holmes ran her over with one of his quick, all-comprehensive glances.
655
656"You must not fear," said he soothingly, bending forward and patting her forearm. "We shall soon set matters right, I have no doubt. You have come in by train this morning, I see."
657
658"You know me, then?"
659
660"No, but I observe the second half of a return ticket in the palm of your left glove. You must have started early, and yet you had a good drive in a dog-cart, along heavy roads, before you reached the station."
661
662The lady gave a violent start and stared in bewilderment at my companion.
663
664"There is no mystery, my dear madam," said he, smiling. "The left arm of your jacket is spattered with mud in no less than seven places. The marks are perfectly fresh. There is no vehicle save a dog-cart which throws up mud in that way, and then only when you sit on the left-hand side of the driver."
665
666"Whatever your reasons may be, you are perfectly correct," said she. "I started from home before six, reached Leatherhead at twenty past, and came in by the first train to Waterloo. Sir, I can stand this strain no longer; I shall go mad if it continues. I have no one to turn to--none, save only one, who cares for me, and he, poor fellow, can be of little aid. I have heard of you, Mr. Holmes; I have heard of you from Mrs. Farintosh, whom you helped in the hour of her sore need. It was from her that I had your address. Oh, sir, do you not think that you could help me, too, and at least throw a little light through the dense darkness which surrounds me? At present it is out of my power to reward you for your services, but in a month or six weeks I shall be married, with the control of my own income, and then at least you shall not find me ungrateful."
667
668Holmes turned to his desk and, unlocking it, drew out a small case-book, which he consulted.
669
670"Farintosh," said he. "Ah yes, I recall the case; it was concerned with an opal tiara. I think it was before your time, Watson. I can only say, madam, that I shall be happy to devote the same care to your case as I did to that of your friend. As to reward, my profession is its own reward; but you are at liberty to defray whatever expenses I may be put to, at the time which suits you best. And now I beg that you will lay before us everything that may help us in forming an opinion upon the matter."
671
672"Alas!" replied our visitor, "the very horror of my situation lies in the fact that my fears are so vague, and my suspicions depend so entirely upon small points, which might seem trivial to another, that even he to whom of all others I have a right to look for help and advice looks upon all that I tell him about it as the fancies of a nervous woman. He does not say so, but I can read it from his soothing answers and averted eyes. But I have heard, Mr. Holmes, that you can see deeply into the manifold wickedness of the human heart. You may advise me how to walk amid the dangers which encompass me."
673
674"I am all attention, madam."
675
676"My name is Helen Stoner, and I am living with my stepfather, who is the last survivor of one of the oldest Saxon families in England, the Roylotts of Stoke Moran, on the western border of Surrey."
677
678Holmes nodded his head. "The name is familiar to me," said he.
679
680
681
682"I have very little difficulty in finding what I want," said I, "for the facts are quite recent, and the matter struck me as remarkable. I feared to refer them to you, however, as I knew that you had an inquiry on hand and that you disliked the intrusion of other matters."
683
684"Oh, you mean the little problem of the Grosvenor Square furniture van. That is quite cleared up now--though, indeed, it was obvious from the first. Pray give me the results of your newspaper selections."
685
686"Here is the first notice which I can find. It is in the personal column of the Morning Post, and dates, as you see, some weeks back: 'A marriage has been arranged,' it says, 'and will, if rumour is correct, very shortly take place, between Lord Robert St. Simon, second son of the Duke of Balmoral, and Miss Hatty Doran, the only daughter of Aloysius Doran. Esq., of San Francisco, Cal., U.S.A.' That is all."
687
688"Terse and to the point," remarked Holmes, stretching his long, thin legs towards the fire.
689
690"There was a paragraph amplifying this in one of the society papers of the same week. Ah, here it is: 'There will soon be a call for protection in the marriage market, for the present free-trade principle appears to tell heavily against our home product. One by one the management of the noble houses of Great Britain is passing into the hands of our fair cousins from across the Atlantic. An important addition has been made during the last week to the list of the prizes which have been borne away by these charming invaders. Lord St. Simon, who has shown himself for over twenty years proof against the little god's arrows, has now definitely announced his approaching marriage with Miss Hatty Doran, the fascinating daughter of a California millionaire. Miss Doran, whose graceful figure and striking face attracted much attention at the Westbury House festivities, is an only child, and it is currently reported that her dowry will run to considerably over the six figures, with expectancies for the future. As it is an open secret that the Duke of Balmoral has been compelled to sell his pictures within the last few years, and as Lord St. Simon has no property of his own save the small estate of Birchmoor, it is obvious that the Californian heiress is not the only gainer by an alliance which will enable her to make the easy and common transition from a Republican lady to a British peeress.' "
691
692"Anything else?" asked Holmes, yawning.
693
694"Oh, yes; plenty. Then there is another note in the Morning Post to say that the marriage would be an absolutely quiet one, that it would be at St. George's, Hanover Square, that only half a dozen intimate friends would be invited, and that the party would return to the furnished house at Lancaster Gate which has been taken by Mr. Aloysius Doran. Two days later--that is, on Wednesday last--there is a curt announcement that the wedding had taken place, and that the honeymoon would be passed at Lord Backwater's place, near Petersfield. Those are all the notices which appeared before the disappearance of the bride."
695
696"Before the what?" asked Holmes with a start.
697
698"The vanishing of the lady."
699
700"When did she vanish, then?"
701
702"At the wedding breakfast."
703
704"Indeed. This is more interesting than it promised to be; quite dramatic, in fact."
705
706"Yes; it struck me as being a little out of the common."
707
708"They often vanish before the ceremony, and occasionally during the honeymoon; but I cannot call to mind anything quite so prompt as this. Pray let me have the details."
709
710"I warn you that they are very incomplete."
711
712"Perhaps we may make them less so."
713
714"Such as they are, they are set forth in a single article of a morning paper of yesterday, which I will read to you. It is headed, 'Singular Occurrence at a Fashionable Wedding':
715
716" 'The family of Lord Robert St. Simon has been thrown into the greatest consternation by the strange and painful episodes which have taken place in connection with his wedding. The ceremony, as shortly announced in the papers of yesterday, occurred on the previous morning; but it is only now that it has been possible to confirm the strange rumours which have been so persistently floating about. In spite of the attempts of the friends to hush the matter up, so much public attention has now been drawn to it that no good purpose can be served by affecting to disregard what is a common subject for conversation.
717
718" 'The ceremony, which was performed at St. George's, Hanover Square, was a very quiet one, no one being present save the father of the bride, Mr. Aloysius Doran, the Duchess of Balmoral, Lord Backwater, Lord Eustace and Lady Clara St. Simon (the younger brother and sister of the bridegroom), and Lady Alicia Whittington. The whole party proceeded afterwards to the house of Mr. Aloysius Doran, at Lancaster Gate, where breakfast had been prepared. It appears that some little trouble was caused by a woman, whose name has not been ascertained, who endeavoured to force her way into the house after the bridal party, alleging that she had some claim upon Lord St. Simon. It was only after a painful and prolonged scene that she was ejected by the butler and the footman. The bride, who had fortunately entered the house before this unpleasant interruption, had sat down to breakfast with the rest, when she complained of a sudden indisposition and retired to her room. Her prolonged absence having caused some comment, her father followed her, but learned from her maid that she had only come up to her chamber for an instant, caught up an ulster and bonnet, and hurried down to the passage. One of the footmen declared that he had seen a lady leave the house thus apparelled, but had refused to credit that it was his mistress, believing her to be with the company. On ascertaining that his daughter had disappeared, Mr. Aloysius Doran, in conjunction with the bridegroom, instantly put themselves in communication with the police, and very energetic inquiries are being made, which will probably result in a speedy clearing up of this very singular business. Up to a late hour last night, however, nothing had transpired as to the whereabouts of the missing lady. There are rumours of foul play in the matter, and it is said that the police have caused the arrest of the woman who had caused the original disturbance, in the belief that, from jealousy or some other motive, she may have been concerned in the strange disappearance of the bride.' "
719
720"And is that all?"
721
722"Only one little item in another of the morning papers, but it is a suggestive one."
723
724"And it is--"
725
726"That Miss Flora Millar, the lady who had caused the disturbance, has actually been arrested. It appears that she was formerly a danseuse at the Allegro, and that she has known the bridegroom for some years. There are no further particulars, and the whole case is in your hands now--so far as it has been set forth in the public press."
727
728"And an exceedingly interesting case it appears to be. I would not have missed it for worlds. But there is a ring at the bell, Watson, and as the clock makes it a few minutes after four, I have no doubt that this will prove to be our noble client. Do not dream of going, Watson, for I very much prefer having a witness, if only as a check to my own memory."
729
730"Lord Robert St. Simon," announced our page-boy, throwing open the door. A gentleman entered, with a pleasant, cultured face, high-nosed and pale, with something perhaps of petulance about the mouth, and with the steady, well-opened eye of a man whose pleasant lot it had ever been to command and to be obeyed. His manner was brisk, and yet his general appearance gave an undue impression of age, for he had a slight forward stoop and a little bend of the knees as he walked. His hair, too, as he swept off his very curly-brimmed hat, was grizzled round the edges and thin upon the top. As to his dress, it was careful to the verge of foppishness, with high collar, black frock-coat, white waistcoat, yellow gloves, patent-leather shoes, and light-coloured gaiters. He advanced slowly into the room, turning his head from left to right, and swinging in his right hand the cord which held his golden eyeglasses.
731
732"Good-day, Lord St. Simon," said Holmes, rising and bowing. "Pray take the basket-chair. This is my friend and colleague, Dr. Watson. Draw up a little to the fire, and we will talk this matter over."
733
734"A most painful matter to me, as you can most readily imagine, Mr. Holmes. I have been cut to the quick. I understand that you have already managed several delicate cases of this sort, sir, though I presume that they were hardly from the same class of society."
735
736"No, I am descending."
737
738"I beg pardon."
739
740"My last client of the sort was a king."
741
742"Oh, really! I had no idea. And which king?"
743
744"The King of Scandinavia."
745
746"What! Had he lost his wife?"
747
748"You can understand," said Holmes suavely, "that I extend to the affairs of my other clients the same secrecy which I promise to you in yours."
749
750"Of course! Very right! very right! I'm sure I beg pardon. As to my own case, I am ready to give you any information which may assist you in forming an opinion."
751
752"Thank you. I have already learned all that is in the public prints, nothing more. I presume that I may take it as correct--this article, for example, as to the disappearance of the bride."
753
754Lord St. Simon glanced over it. "Yes, it is correct, as far as it goes."
755
756"But it needs a great deal of supplementing before anyone could offer an opinion. I think that I may arrive at my facts most directly by questioning you."
757
758"Pray do so."
759
760"When did you first meet Miss Hatty Doran?"
761
762"In San Francisco, a year ago."
763
764"You were travelling in the States?"
765
766"Yes."
767
768"Did you become engaged then?"
769
770"No."
771
772"But you were on a friendly footing?"
773
774"I was amused by her society, and she could see that I was amused."
775
776"Her father is very rich?"
777
778"He is said to be the richest man on the Pacific slope."
779
780"And how did he make his money?"
781
782"In mining. He had nothing a few years ago. Then he struck gold, invested it, and came up by leaps and bounds."
783
784"Now, what is your own impression as to the young lady's--your wife's character?"
785
786The nobleman swung his glasses a little faster and stared down into the fire. "You see, Mr. Holmes," said he, "my wife was twenty before her father became a rich man. During that time she ran free in a mining camp and wandered through woods or mountains, so that her education has come from Nature rather than from the schoolmaster. She is what we call in England a tomboy, with a strong nature, wild and free, unfettered by any sort of traditions. She is impetuous--volcanic, I was about to say. She is swift in making up her mind and fearless in carrying out her resolutions. On the other hand, I would not have given her the name which I have the honour to bear"--he gave a little stately cough--"had I not thought her to be at bottom a noble woman. I believe that she is capable of heroic self-sacrifice and that anything dishonourable would be repugnant to her."
787
788"Have you her photograph?"
789
790"I brought this with me." He opened a locket and showed us the full face of a very lovely woman. It was not a photograph but an ivory miniature, and the artist had brought out the full effect of the lustrous black hair, the large dark eyes, and the exquisite mouth. Holmes gazed long and earnestly at it. Then he closed the locket and handed it back to Lord St. Simon.
791
792"The young lady came to London, then, and you renewed your acquaintance?"
793
794"Yes, her father brought her over for this last London season. I met her several times, became engaged to her, and have now married her."
795
796"She brought, I understand, a considerable dowry?"
797
798"A fair dowry. Not more than is usual in my family."
799
800"And this, of course, remains to you, since the marriage is a fait accompli?"
801
802"I really have made no inquiries on the subject."
803
804"Very naturally not. Did you see Miss Doran on the day before the wedding?"
805
806"Yes."
807
808"Was she in good spirits?"
809
810"Never better. She kept talking of what we should do in our future lives."
811
812"Indeed! That is very interesting. And on the morning of the wedding?"
813
814"She was as bright as possible--at least until after the ceremony."
815
816"And did you observe any change in her then?"
817
818"Well, to tell the truth, I saw then the first signs that I had ever seen that her temper was just a little sharp. The incident however, was too trivial to relate and can have no possible bearing upon the case."
819
820"Pray let us have it, for all that."
821
822"Oh, it is childish. She dropped her bouquet as we went towards the vestry. She was passing the front pew at the time, and it fell over into the pew. There was a moment's delay, but the gentleman in the pew handed it up to her again, and it did not appear to be the worse for the fall. Yet when I spoke to her of the matter, she answered me abruptly; and in the carriage, on our way home, she seemed absurdly agitated over this trifling cause."
823
824"Indeed! You say that there was a gentleman in the pew. Some of the general public were present, then?"
825
826"Oh, yes. It is impossible to exclude them when the church is open."
827
828"This gentleman was not one of your wife's friends?"
829
830"No, no; I call him a gentleman by courtesy, but he was quite a common-looking person. I hardly noticed his appearance. But really I think that we are wandering rather far from the point."
831
832"Lady St. Simon, then, returned from the wedding in a less cheerful frame of mind than she had gone to it. What did she do on re-entering her father's house?"
833
834"I saw her in conversation with her maid."
835
836"And who is her maid?"
837
838"Alice is her name. She is an American and came from California with her."
839
840"A confidential servant?"
841
842"A little too much so. It seemed to me that her mistress allowed her to take great liberties. Still, of course, in America they look upon these things in a different way."
843
844"How long did she speak to this Alice?"
845
846"Oh, a few minutes. I had something else to think of."
847
848"You did not overhear what they said?"
849
850"Lady St. Simon said something about 'jumping a claim.' She was accustomed to use slang of the kind. I have no idea what she meant."
851
852"American slang is very expressive sometimes. And what did your wife do when she finished speaking to her maid?"
853
854"She walked into the breakfast-room."
855
856"On your arm?"
857
858"No, alone. She was very independent in little matters like that. Then, after we had sat down for ten minutes or so, she rose hurriedly, muttered some words of apology, and left the room. She never came back."
859
860"But this maid, Alice, as I understand, deposes that she went to her room, covered her bride's dress with a long ulster, put on a bonnet, and went out."
861
862"Quite so. And she was afterwards seen walking into Hyde Park in company with Flora Millar, a woman who is now in custody, and who had already made a disturbance at Mr. Doran's house that morning."
863
864"Ah, yes. I should like a few particulars as to this young lady, and your relations to her."
865
866Lord St. Simon shrugged his shoulders and raised his eyebrows. "We have been on a friendly footing for some years--I may say on a very friendly footing. She used to be at the Allegro. I have not treated her ungenerously, and she had no just cause of complaint against me, but you know what women are, Mr. Holmes. Flora was a dear little thing, but exceedingly hot-headed and devotedly attached to me. She wrote me dreadful letters when she heard that I was about to be married, and, to tell the truth, the reason why I had the marriage celebrated so quietly was that I feared lest there might be a scandal in the church. She came to Mr. Doran's door just after we returned, and she endeavoured to push her way in, uttering very abusive expressions towards my wife, and even threatening her, but I had foreseen the possibility of something of the sort, and I had two police fellows there in private clothes, who soon pushed her out again. She was quiet when she saw that there was no good in making a row."
867
868"Did your wife hear all this?"
869
870"No, thank goodness, she did not."
871
872"And she was seen walking with this very woman afterwards?"
873
874"Yes. That is what Mr. Lestrade, of Scotland Yard, looks upon as so serious. It is thought that Flora decoyed my wife out and laid some terrible trap for her."
875
876"Well, it is a possible supposition."
877
878"You think so, too?"
879
880"I did not say a probable one. But you do not yourself look upon this as likely?"
881
882"I do not think Flora would hurt a fly."
883
884"Still, jealousy is a strange transformer of characters. Pray what is your own theory as to what took place?"
885
886"Well, really, I came to seek a theory, not to propound one. I have given you all the facts. Since you ask me, however, I may say that it has occurred to me as possible that the excitement of this affair, the consciousness that she had made so immense a social stride, had the effect of causing some little nervous disturbance in my wife."
887
888"In short, that she had become suddenly deranged?"
889
890"Well, really, when I consider that she has turned her back--I will not say upon me, but upon so much that many have aspired to without success--I can hardly explain it in any other fashion."
891
892"Well, certainly that is also a conceivable hypothesis," said Holmes, smiling. "And now, Lord St. Simon, I think that I have nearly all my data. May I ask whether you were seated at the breakfast-table so that you could see out of the window?"
893
894"We could see the other side of the road and the Park."
895
896"Quite so. Then I do not think that I need to detain you longer. I shall communicate with you."
897
898"Should you be fortunate enough to solve this problem," said our client, rising.
899
900"I have solved it."
901
902"Eh? What was that?"
903
904"I say that I have solved it."
905
906"Where, then, is my wife?"
907
908"That is a detail which I shall speedily supply."
909
910Lord St. Simon shook his head. "I am afraid that it will take wiser heads than yours or mine," he remarked, and bowing in a stately, old-fashioned manner he departed.
911
912"It is very good of Lord St. Simon to honour my head by putting it on a level with his own," said Sherlock Holmes, laughing. "I think that I shall have a whisky and soda and a cigar after all this cross-questioning. I had formed my conclusions as to the case before our client came into the room."
913
914"My dear Holmes!"
915
916"I have notes of several similar cases, though none, as I remarked before, which were quite as prompt. My whole examination served to turn my conjecture into a certainty. Circumstantial evidence is occasionally very convincing, as when you find a trout in the milk, to quote Thoreau's example."
917
918"But I have heard all that you have heard."
919
920"Without, however, the knowledge of pre-existing cases which serves me so well. There was a parallel instance in Aberdeen some years back, and something on very much the same lines at Munich the year after the Franco-Prussian War. It is one of these cases--but, hullo, here is Lestrade! Good-afternoon, Lestrade! You will find an extra tumbler upon the sideboard, and there are cigars in the box."
921
922The official detective was attired in a pea-jacket and cravat, which gave him a decidedly nautical appearance, and he carried a black canvas bag in his hand. With a short greeting he seated himself and lit the cigar which had been offered to him.
923
924"What's up, then?" asked Holmes with a twinkle in his eye. "You look dissatisfied."
925
926"And I feel dissatisfied. It is this infernal St. Simon marriage case. I can make neither head nor tail of the business."
927
928"Really! You surprise me."
929
930"Who ever heard of such a mixed affair? Every clue seems to slip through my fingers. I have been at work upon it all day."
931
932"And very wet it seems to have made you," said Holmes laying his hand upon the arm of the pea-jacket.
933
934"Yes, I have been dragging the Serpentine."
935
936"In heaven's name, what for?"
937
938"In search of the body of Lady St. Simon."
939
940Sherlock Holmes leaned back in his chair and laughed heartily.
941
942"Have you dragged the basin of Trafalgar Square fountain?" he asked.
943
944"Why? What do you mean?"
945
946"Because you have just as good a chance of finding this lady in the one as in the other."
947
948Lestrade shot an angry glance at my companion. "I suppose you know all about it," he snarled.
949
950"Well, I have only just heard the facts, but my mind is made up."
951
952"Oh, indeed! Then you think that the Serpentine plays no part in the matter?"
953
954"I think it very unlikely."
955
956"Then perhaps you will kindly explain how it is that we found this in it?" He opened his bag as he spoke, and tumbled onto the floor a wedding-dress of watered silk, a pair of white satin shoes and a bride's wreath and veil, all discoloured and soaked in water. "There," said he, putting a new wedding-ring upon the top of the pile. "There is a little nut for you to crack, Master Holmes."
957
958"Oh, indeed!" said my friend, blowing blue rings into the air. "You dragged them from the Serpentine?"
959
960"No. They were found floating near the margin by a park-keeper. They have been identified as her clothes, and it seemed to me that if the clothes were there the body would not be far off."
961
962"By the same brilliant reasoning, every man's body is to be found in the neighbourhood of his wardrobe. And pray what did you hope to arrive at through this?"
963
964"At some evidence implicating Flora Millar in the disappearance."
965
966"I am afraid that you will find it difficult."
967
968"Are you, indeed, now?" cried Lestrade with some bitterness. "I am afraid, Holmes, that you are not very practical with your deductions and your inferences. You have made two blunders in as many minutes. This dress does implicate Miss Flora Millar."
969
970"And how?"
971
972"In the dress is a pocket. In the pocket is a card-case. In the card-case is a note. And here is the very note." He slapped it down upon the table in front of him. "Listen to this: 'You will see me when all is ready. Come at once. F. H. M.' Now my theory all along has been that Lady St. Simon was decoyed away by Flora Millar, and that she, with confederates, no doubt, was responsible for her disappearance. Here, signed with her initials, is the very note which was no doubt quietly slipped into her hand at the door and which lured her within their reach."
973
974"Very good, Lestrade," said Holmes, laughing. "You really are very fine indeed. Let me see it." He took up the paper in a listless way, but his attention instantly became riveted, and he gave a little cry of satisfaction. "This is indeed important," said he.
975
976"Ha! you find it so?"
977
978"Extremely so. I congratulate you warmly."
979
980Lestrade rose in his triumph and bent his head to look. "Why," he shrieked, "you're looking at the wrong side!"
981
982"On the contrary, this is the right side."
983
984"The right side? You're mad! Here is the note written in pencil over here."
985
986"And over here is what appears to be the fragment of a hotel bill, which interests me deeply."
987
988"There's nothing in it. I looked at it before," said Lestrade. " 'Oct. 4th, rooms 8s., breakfast 2s. 6d., cocktail 1s., lunch 2s. 6d., glass sherry, 8d.' I see nothing in that."
989
990"Very likely not. It is most important, all the same. As to the note, it is important also, or at least the initials are, so I congratulate you again."
991
992"I've wasted time enough," said Lestrade, rising. "I believe in hard work and not in sitting by the fire spinning fine theories. Good-day, Mr. Holmes, and we shall see which gets to the bottom of the matter first." He gathered up the garments, thrust them into the bag, and made for the door.
993
994"Just one hint to you, Lestrade," drawled Holmes before his rival vanished; "I will tell you the true solution of the matter. Lady St. Simon is a myth. There is not, and there never has been, any such person."
995
996Lestrade looked sadly at my companion. Then he turned to me, tapped his forehead three times, shook his head solemnly, and hurried away.
997
998He had hardly shut the door behind him when Holmes rose to put on his overcoat. "There is something in what the fellow says about outdoor work," he remarked, "so I think, Watson, that I must leave you to your papers for a little."
999
1000It was after five o'clock when Sherlock Holmes left me, but I had no time to be lonely, for within an hour there arrived a confectioner's man with a very large flat box. This he unpacked with the help of a youth whom he had brought with him, and presently, to my very great astonishment, a quite epicurean little cold supper began to be laid out upon our humble lodging-house mahogany. There were a couple of brace of cold woodcock, a pheasant, a pate de foie gras pie with a group of ancient and cobwebby bottles. Having laid out all these luxuries, my two visitors vanished away, like the genii of the Arabian Nights, with no explanation save that the things had been paid for and were ordered to this address.
1001
1002Just before nine o'clock Sherlock Holmes stepped briskly into the room. His features were gravely set, but there was a light in his eye which made me think that he had not been disappointed in his conclusions.
1003
1004"They have laid the supper, then," he said, rubbing his hands.
1005
1006"You seem to expect company. They have laid for five."
1007
1008"Yes, I fancy we may have some company dropping in," said he. "I am surprised that Lord St. Simon has not already arrived. Ha! I fancy that I hear his step now upon the stairs."
1009
1010It was indeed our visitor of the afternoon who came bustling in, dangling his glasses more vigorously than ever, and with a very perturbed expression upon his aristocratic features.
1011
1012
1013
1014To conserve the patient's strength by preventing or diminishing the
1015severity of the spasms, he should be placed in a quiet room, and every
1016form of disturbance avoided. Sedatives, such as bromides, paraldehyde,
1017or opium, must be given in large doses. Chloral is perhaps the best, and
1018the patient should rarely have less than 150 grains in twenty-four
1019hours. When he is unable to swallow, it should be given by the rectum.
1020The administration of chloroform is of value in conserving the strength
1021of the patient, by abolishing the spasms, and enabling the attendants to
1022administer nourishment or drugs either through a stomach tube or by the
1023rectum. Extreme elevation of temperature is met by tepid sponging. It is
1024necessary to use the catheter if retention of urine occurs.
1025
1026
1027HYDROPHOBIA
1028
1029Hydrophobia is an acute infective disease following on the bite of a
1030rabid animal. It most commonly follows the bite or lick of a rabid dog
1031or cat. The virus appears to be communicated through the saliva of the
1032animal, and to show a marked affinity for nerve tissues; and the disease
1033is most likely to develop when the patient is infected on the face or
1034other uncovered part, or in a part richly endowed with nerves.
1035
1036A dog which has bitten a person should on no account be killed until its
1037condition has been proved one way or the other. Should rabies develop
1038and its destruction become necessary, the head and spinal cord should be
1039retained and forwarded, packed in ice, to a competent observer. Much
1040anxiety to the person bitten and to his friends would be avoided if
1041these rules were observed, because in many cases it will be shown that
1042the animal did not after all suffer from rabies, and that the patient
1043consequently runs no risk. If, on the other hand, rabies is proved to be
1044present, the patient should be submitted to the Pasteur treatment.
1045
1046_Clinical Features._--There is almost always a history of the patient
1047having been bitten or licked by an animal supposed to suffer from
1048rabies. The incubation period averages about forty days, but varies from
1049a fortnight to seven or eight months, and is shorter in young than in
1050old persons. The original wound has long since healed, and beyond a
1051slight itchiness or pain shooting along the nerves of the part, shows no
1052sign of disturbance. A few days of general malaise, with chills and
1053giddiness precede the onset of the acute manifestations, which affect
1054chiefly the muscles of deglutition and respiration. One of the earliest
1055signs is that the patient has periodically a sudden catch in his
1056breathing "resembling what often occurs when a person goes into a cold
1057bath." This is due to spasm of the diaphragm, and is frequently
1058accompanied by a loud-sounding hiccough, likened by the laity to the
1059barking of a dog. Difficulty in swallowing fluids may be the first
1060symptom.
1061
1062The spasms rapidly spread to all the muscles of deglutition and
1063respiration, so that the patient not only has the greatest difficulty in
1064swallowing, but has a constant sense of impending suffocation. To add to
1065his distress, a copious secretion of viscid saliva fills his mouth. Any
1066voluntary effort, as well as all forms of external stimuli, only serve
1067to aggravate the spasms which are always induced by the attempt to
1068swallow fluid, or even by the sound of running water.
1069
1070The temperature is raised; the pulse is small, rapid, and intermittent;
1071and the urine may contain sugar and albumen.
1072
1073The mind may remain clear to the end, or the patient may have delusions,
1074supposing himself to be surrounded by terrifying forms. There is always
1075extreme mental agitation and despair, and the sufferer is in constant
1076fear of his impending fate. Happily the inevitable issue is not long
1077delayed, death usually occurring in from two to four days from the
1078onset. The symptoms of the disease are so characteristic that there is
1079no difficulty in diagnosis. The only condition with which it is liable
1080to be confused is the variety of cephalic tetanus in which the muscles
1081of deglutition are specially involved--the so-called tetanus
1082hydrophobicus.
1083
1084_Prophylaxis._--The bite of an animal suspected of being rabid should be
1085cauterised at once by means of the actual or Paquelin cautery, or by a
1086strong chemical escharotic such as pure carbolic acid, after which
1087antiseptic dressings are applied.
1088
1089It is, however, to Pasteur's _preventive inoculation_ that we must look
1090for our best hope of averting the onset of symptoms. "It may now be
1091taken as established that a grave responsibility rests on those
1092concerned if a person bitten by a mad animal is not subjected to the
1093Pasteur treatment" (Muir and Ritchie).
1094
1095This method is based on the fact that the long incubation period of the
1096disease admits of the patient being inoculated with a modified virus
1097producing a mild attack, which protects him from the natural disease.
1098
1099_Treatment._--When the symptoms have once developed they can only be
1100palliated. The patient must be kept absolutely quiet and free from all
1101sources of irritation. The spasms may be diminished by means of chloral
1102and bromides, or by chloroform inhalation.
1103
1104
1105ANTHRAX
1106
1107Anthrax is a comparatively rare disease, communicable to man from
1108certain of the lower animals, such as sheep, oxen, horses, deer, and
1109other herbivora. In animals it is characterised by symptoms of acute
1110general poisoning, and, from the fact that it produces a marked
1111enlargement of the spleen, is known in veterinary surgery as "splenic
1112fever."
1113
1114The _bacillus anthracis_ (Fig. 27), the largest of the known pathogenic
1115bacteria, occurs in groups or in chains made up of numerous bacilli,
1116each bacillus measuring from 6 to 8 u in length. The organisms are found
1117in enormous numbers throughout the bodies of animals that have died of
1118anthrax, and are readily recognised and cultivated. Sporulation only
1119takes place outside the body, probably because free oxygen is necessary
1120to the process. In the spore-free condition, the organisms are readily
1121destroyed by ordinary germicides, and by the gastric juice. The spores,
1122on the other hand, have a high degree of resistance. Not only do they
1123remain viable in the dry state for long periods, even up to a year, but
1124they survive boiling for five minutes, and must be subjected to dry heat
1125at 140 o C. for several hours before they are destroyed.
1126
1127[Illustration: FIG. 27.--Bacillus of Anthrax in section of skin, from a
1128case of malignant pustule; shows vesicle containing bacilli. x 400 diam.
1129Gram's stain.]
1130
1131_Clinical Varieties of Anthrax._--In man, anthrax may manifest itself in
1132one of three clinical forms.
1133
1134It may be transmitted by means of spores or bacilli directly from a
1135diseased animal to those who, by their occupation or otherwise, are
1136brought into contact with it--for example, shepherds, butchers,
1137veterinary surgeons, or hide-porters. Infection may occur on the face by
1138the use of a shaving-brush contaminated by spores. The path of infection
1139is usually through an abrasion of the skin, and the primary
1140manifestations are local, constituting what is known as _the malignant
1141pustule_.
1142
1143In other cases the disease is contracted through the inhalation of the
1144dried spores into the respiratory passages. This occurs oftenest in
1145those who work amongst wool, fur, and rags, and a form of acute
1146pneumonia of great virulence ensues. This affection is known as
1147_wool-sorter's disease_, and is almost universally fatal.
1148
1149There is reason to believe that infection may also take place by means
1150of spores ingested into the alimentary canal in meat or milk derived
1151from diseased animals, or in infected water.
1152
1153
1154become associated with branches from the musculo-cutaneous is followed
1155by a loss of sensibility on the radial side of the hand and thumb. Wounds
1156on the dorsal surface of the wrist and forearm are often followed by
1157loss of sensibility over a larger area, because the musculo-cutaneous
1158nerve is divided as well, and some of the fibres of the lower lateral
1159cutaneous branch of the radial.
1160
1161[Illustration: FIG. 91.--To illustrate the Loss of Sensation produced by
1162Division of the Median Nerve. The area of complete cutaneous
1163insensibility is shaded black. The parts insensitive to light touch and
1164to intermediate degrees of temperature are enclosed within the dotted
1165line.
1166
1167(After Head and Sherren.)]
1168
1169#The Median Nerve# is most frequently injured in wounds made by broken
1170glass in the region of the wrist. It may also be injured in fractures of
1171the lower end of the humerus, in fractures of both bones of the forearm,
1172and as a result of pressure by splints. After _division at the elbow_,
1173there is impairment of mobility which affects the thumb, and to a less
1174extent the index finger: the terminal phalanx of the thumb cannot be
1175flexed owing to the paralysis of the flexor pollicis longus, and the
1176index can only be flexed at its metacarpo-phalangeal joint by the
1177interosseous muscles attached to it. Pronation of the forearm is feeble,
1178and is completed by the weight of the hand. After _division at the
1179wrist_, the abductor-opponens group of muscles and the two lateral
1180lumbricals only are affected; the abduction of the thumb can be feebly
1181imitated by the short extensor and the long abductor (ext. ossis
1182metacarpi pollicis), while opposition may be simulated by contraction of
1183the long flexor and the short abductor of the thumb; the paralysis of
1184the two medial lumbricals produces no symptoms that can be recognised.
1185It is important to remember that when the median nerve is divided at the
1186wrist, deep touch can be appreciated over the whole of the area
1187supplied by the nerve; the injury, therefore, is liable to be over
1188looked. If, however, the tendons are divided as well as the nerve, there
1189is insensibility to deep touch. The areas of epicritic and of
1190protopathic insensibility are illustrated in Fig. 91. The division of
1191the nerve at the elbow, or even at the axilla, does not increase the
1192extent of the loss of epicritic or protopathic sensibility, but usually
1193affects deep sensibility.
1194
1195[Illustration: FIG. 92.--To illustrate Loss of Sensation produced by
1196complete Division of Ulnar Nerve. Loss of all forms of cutaneous
1197sensibility is represented by the shaded area. The parts insensitive to
1198light touch and to intermediate degrees of heat and cold are enclosed
1199within the dotted line.
1200
1201(Head and Sherren.)]
1202
1203#The Ulnar Nerve.#--The most common injury of this nerve is its division
1204in transverse accidental wounds just above the wrist. In the arm it may
1205be contused, along with the radial, in crutch paralysis; in the region
1206of the elbow it may be injured in fractures or dislocations, or it may
1207be accidentally divided in the operation for excising the elbow-joint.
1208
1209
1210same class as himself and possessed the same breeding and
1211traditions, Bolkonski would soon have discovered his weak, human,
1212unheroic sides; but as it was, Speranski's strange and logical turn of
1213mind inspired him with respect all the more because he did not quite
1214understand him. Moreover, Speranski, either because he appreciated the
1215other's capacity or because he considered it necessary to win him to
1216his side, showed off his dispassionate calm reasonableness before
1217Prince Andrew and flattered him with that subtle flattery which goes
1218hand in hand with self-assurance and consists in a tacit assumption
1219that one's companion is the only man besides oneself capable of
1220understanding the folly of the rest of mankind and the
1221reasonableness and profundity of one's own ideas.
1222
1223During their long conversation on Wednesday evening, Speranski
1224more than once remarked: "We regard everything that is above the
1225common level of rooted custom..." or, with a smile: "But we want the
1226wolves to be fed and the sheep to be safe..." or: "They cannot
1227understand this..." and all in a way that seemed to say: "We, you
1228and I, understand what they are and who we are."
1229
1230This first long conversation with Speranski only strengthened in
1231Prince Andrew the feeling he had experienced toward him at their first
1232meeting. He saw in him a remarkable, clear-thinking man of vast
1233intellect who by his energy and persistence had attained power,
1234which he was using solely for the welfare of Russia. In Prince
1235Andrew's eyes Speranski was the man he would himself have wished to
1236be--one who explained all the facts of life reasonably, considered
1237important only what was rational, and was capable of applying the
1238standard of reason to everything. Everything seemed so simple and
1239clear in Speranski's exposition that Prince Andrew involuntarily
1240agreed with him about everything. If he replied and argued, it was
1241only because he wished to maintain his independence and not submit
1242to Speranski's opinions entirely. Everything was right and
1243everything was as it should be: only one thing disconcerted Prince
1244Andrew. This was Speranski's cold, mirrorlike look, which did not
1245allow one to penetrate to his soul, and his delicate white hands,
1246which Prince Andrew involuntarily watched as one does watch the
1247hands of those who possess power. This mirrorlike gaze and those
1248delicate hands irritated Prince Andrew, he knew not why. He was
1249unpleasantly struck, too, by the excessive contempt for others that he
1250observed in Speranski, and by the diversity of lines of argument he
1251used to support his opinions. He made use of every kind of mental
1252device, except analogy, and passed too boldly, it seemed to Prince
1253Andrew, from one to another. Now he would take up the position of a
1254practical man and condemn dreamers; now that of a satirist, and
1255laugh ironically at his opponents; now grow severely logical, or
1256suddenly rise to the realm of metaphysics. (This last resource was one
1257he very frequently employed.) He would transfer a question to
1258metaphysical heights, pass on to definitions of space, time, and
1259thought, and, having deduced the refutation he needed, would again
1260descend to the level of the original discussion.
1261
1262In general the trait of Speranski's mentality which struck Prince
1263Andrew most was his absolute and unshakable belief in the power and
1264authority of reason. It was evident that the thought could never occur
1265to him which to Prince Andrew seemed so natural, namely, that it is
1266after all impossible to express all one thinks; and that he had
1267never felt the doubt, "Is not all I think and believe nonsense?" And
1268it was just this peculiarity of Speranski's mind that particularly
1269attracted Prince Andrew.
1270
1271During the first period of their acquaintance Bolkonski felt a
1272passionate admiration for him similar to that which he had once felt
1273for Bonaparte. The fact that Speranski was the son of a village
1274priest, and that stupid people might meanly despise him on account
1275of his humble origin (as in fact many did), caused Prince Andrew to
1276cherish his sentiment for him the more, and unconsciously to
1277strengthen it.
1278
1279On that first evening Bolkonski spent with him, having mentioned the
1280Commission for the Revision of the Code of Laws, Speranski told him
1281sarcastically that the Commission had existed for a hundred and
1282fifty years, had cost millions, and had done nothing except that
1283Rosenkampf had stuck labels on the corresponding paragraphs of the
1284different codes.
1285
1286"And that is all the state has for the millions it has spent,"
1287said he. "We want to give the Senate new juridical powers, but we have
1288no laws. That is why it is a sin for men like you, Prince, not to
1289serve in these times!"
1290
1291Prince Andrew said that for that work an education in
1292jurisprudence was needed which he did not possess.
1293
1294"But nobody possesses it, so what would you have? It is a vicious
1295circle from which we must break a way out."
1296
1297A week later Prince Andrew was a member of the Committee on Army
1298Regulations and--what he had not at all expected--was chairman of a
1299section of the committee for the revision of the laws. At
1300Speranski's request he took the first part of the Civil Code that
1301was being drawn up and, with the aid of the Code Napoleon and the
1302Institutes of Justinian, he worked at formulating the section on
1303Personal Rights.
1304
1305
1306
1307
1308
1309CHAPTER VII
1310
1311
1312Nearly two years before this, in 1808, Pierre on returning to
1313Petersburg after visiting his estates had involuntarily found
1314himself in a leading position among the Petersburg Freemasons. He
1315arranged dining and funeral lodge meetings, enrolled new members,
1316and busied himself uniting various lodges and acquiring authentic
1317charters. He gave money for the erection of temples and supplemented
1318as far as he could the collection of alms, in regard to which the
1319majority of members were stingy and irregular. He supported almost
1320singlehanded a poorhouse the order had founded in Petersburg.
1321
1322His life meanwhile continued as before, with the same infatuations
1323and dissipations. He liked to dine and drink well, and though he
1324considered it immoral and humiliating could not resist the temptations
1325of the bachelor circles in which he moved.
1326
1327Amid the turmoil of his activities and distractions, however, Pierre
1328at the end of a year began to feel that the more firmly he tried to
1329rest upon it, the more Masonic ground on which he stood gave way under
1330him. At the same time he felt that the deeper the ground sank under
1331him the closer bound he involuntarily became to the order. When he had
1332joined the Freemasons he had experienced the feeling of one who
1333confidently steps onto the smooth surface of a bog. When he put his
1334foot down it sank in. To make quite sure of the firmness the ground,
1335he put his other foot down and sank deeper still, became stuck in
1336it, and involuntarily waded knee-deep in the bog.
1337
1338Joseph Alexeevich was not in Petersburg--he had of late stood
1339aside from the affairs of the Petersburg lodges, and lived almost
1340entirely in Moscow. All the members of the lodges were men Pierre knew
1341in ordinary life, and it was difficult for him to regard them merely
1342as Brothers in Freemasonry and not as Prince B. or Ivan Vasilevich D.,
1343whom he knew in society mostly as weak and insignificant men. Under
1344the Masonic aprons and insignia he saw the uniforms and decorations at
1345which they aimed in ordinary life. Often after collecting alms, and
1346reckoning up twenty to thirty rubles received for the most part in
1347promises from a dozen members, of whom half were as well able to pay
1348as himself, Pierre remembered the Masonic vow in which each Brother
1349promised to devote all his belongings to his neighbor, and doubts on
1350which he tried not to dwell arose in his soul.
1351
1352He divided the Brothers he knew into four categories. In the first
1353he put those who did not take an active part in the affairs of the
1354lodges or in human affairs, but were exclusively occupied with the
1355mystical science of the order: with questions of the threefold
1356designation of God, the three primordial elements--sulphur, mercury,
1357and salt--or the meaning of the square and all the various figures
1358of the temple of Solomon. Pierre respected this class of Brothers to
1359which the elder ones chiefly belonged, including, Pierre thought,
1360Joseph Alexeevich himself, but he did not share their interests. His
1361heart was not in the mystical aspect of Freemasonry.
1362
1363In the second category Pierre reckoned himself and others like
1364him, seeking and vacillating, who had not yet found in Freemasonry a
1365straight and comprehensible path, but hoped to do so.
1366
1367In the third category he included those Brothers (the majority)
1368who saw nothing in Freemasonry but the external forms and
1369ceremonies, and prized the strict performance of these forms without
1370troubling about their purport or significance. Such were Willarski and
1371even the Grand Master of the principal lodge.
1372
1373Finally, to the fourth category also a great many Brothers belonged,
1374particularly those who had lately joined. These according to
1375Pierre's observations were men who had no belief in anything, nor
1376desire for anything, but joined the Freemasons merely to associate
1377with the wealthy young Brothers who were influential through their
1378connections or rank, and of whom there were very many in the lodge.
1379
1380Pierre began to feel dissatisfied with what he was doing.
1381Freemasonry, at any rate as he saw it here, sometimes seemed to him
1382based merely on externals. He did not think of doubting Freemasonry
1383itself, but suspected that Russian Masonry had taken a wrong path
1384and deviated from its original principles. And so toward the end of
1385the year he went abroad to be initiated into the higher secrets of the
1386order.
1387
1388In the summer of 1809 Pierre returned to Petersburg. Our
1389Freemasons knew from correspondence with those abroad that Bezukhov
1390had obtained the confidence of many highly placed persons, had been
1391initiated into many mysteries, had been raised to a higher grade,
1392and was bringing back with him much that might conduce to the
1393advantage of the Masonic cause in Russia. The Petersburg Freemasons
1394all came to see him, tried to ingratiate themselves with him, and it
1395seemed to them all that he was preparing something for them and
1396concealing it.
1397
1398A solemn meeting of the lodge of the second degree was convened,
1399at which Pierre promised to communicate to the Petersburg Brothers
1400what he had to deliver to them from the highest leaders of their
1401order. The meeting was a full one. After the usual ceremonies Pierre
1402rose and began his address.
1403
1404"Dear Brothers," he began, blushing and stammering, with a written
1405speech in his hand, "it is not sufficient to observe our mysteries
1406in the seclusion of our lodge--we must act--act! We are drowsing,
1407but we must act." Pierre raised his notebook and began to read.
1408
1409"For the dissemination of pure truth and to secure the triumph of
1410virtue," he read, "we must cleanse men from prejudice, diffuse
1411principles in harmony with the spirit of the times, undertake the
1412education of the young, unite ourselves in indissoluble bonds with the
1413wisest men, boldly yet prudently overcome superstitions, infidelity,
1414and folly, and form of those devoted to us a body linked together by
1415unity of purpose and possessed of authority and power.
1416
1417"To attain this end we must secure a preponderance of virtue over
1418vice and must endeavor to secure that the honest man may, even in this
1419world, receive a lasting reward for his virtue. But in these great
1420endeavors we are gravely hampered by the political institutions of
1421today. What is to be done in these circumstances? To favor
1422revolutions, overthrow everything, repel force by force?... No! We are
1423very far from that. Every violent reform deserves censure, for it
1424quite fails to remedy evil while men remain what they are, and also
1425because wisdom needs no violence.
1426
1427"The whole plan of our order should be based on the idea of
1428preparing men of firmness and virtue bound together by unity of
1429conviction--aiming at the punishment of vice and folly, and
1430patronizing talent and virtue: raising worthy men from the dust and
1431attaching them to our Brotherhood. Only then will our order have the
1432power unobtrusively to bind the hands of the protectors of disorder
1433and to control them without their being aware of it. In a word, we
1434must found a form of government holding universal sway, which should
1435be diffused over the whole world without destroying the bonds of
1436citizenship, and beside which all other governments can continue in
1437their customary course and do everything except what impedes the great
1438aim of our order, which is to obtain for virtue the victory over vice.
1439This aim was that of Christianity itself. It taught men to be wise and
1440good and for their own benefit to follow the example and instruction
1441of the best and wisest men.
1442
1443"At that time, when everything was plunged in darkness, preaching
1444alone was of course sufficient. The novelty of Truth endowed her
1445with special strength, but now we need much more powerful methods.
1446It is now necessary that man, governed by his senses, should find in
1447virtue a charm palpable to those senses. It is impossible to eradicate
1448the passions; but we must strive to direct them to a noble aim, and it
1449is therefore necessary that everyone should be able to satisfy his
1450passions within the limits of virtue. Our order should provide means
1451to that end.
1452
1453"As soon as we have a certain number of worthy men in every state,
1454each of them again training two others and all being closely united,
1455everything will be possible for our order, which has already in secret
1456accomplished much for the welfare of mankind."
1457
1458This speech not only made a strong impression, but created
1459excitement in the lodge. The majority of the Brothers, seeing in it
1460dangerous designs of Illuminism,* met it with a coldness that
1461surprised Pierre. The Grand Master began answering him, and Pierre
1462began developing his views with more and more warmth. It was long
1463since there had been so stormy a meeting. Parties were formed, some
1464accusing Pierre of Illuminism, others supporting him. At that
1465meeting he was struck for the first time by the endless variety of
1466men's minds, which prevents a truth from ever presenting itself
1467identically to two persons. Even those members who seemed to be on his
1468side understood him in their own way with limitations and
1469alterations he could not agree to, as what he always wanted most was
1470to convey his thought to others just as he himself understood it.
1471
1472
1473*The Illuminati sought to substitute republican for monarchical
1474institutions.
1475
1476
1477At the end of the meeting the Grand Master with irony and ill-will
1478reproved Bezukhov for his vehemence and said it was not love of virtue
1479alone, but also a love of strife that had moved him in the dispute.
1480Pierre did not answer him and asked briefly whether his proposal would
1481be accepted. He was told that it would not, and without waiting for
1482the usual formalities he left the lodge and went home.
1483
1484
1485
1486
1487
1488CHAPTER VIII
1489
1490
1491Again Pierre was overtaken by the depression he so dreaded. For
1492three days after the delivery of his speech at the lodge he lay on a
1493sofa at home receiving no one and going nowhere.
1494
1495It was just then that he received a letter from his wife, who
1496implored him to see her, telling him how grieved she was about him and
1497how she wished to devote her whole life to him.
1498
1499At the end of the letter she informed him that in a few days she
1500would return to Petersburg from abroad.
1501
1502Following this letter one of the Masonic Brothers whom Pierre
1503respected less than the others forced his way in to see him and,
1504turning the conversation upon Pierre's matrimonial affairs, by way
1505of fraternal advice expressed the opinion that his severity to his
1506wife was wrong and that he was neglecting one of the first rules of
1507Freemasonry by not forgiving the penitent.
1508
1509At the same time his mother-in-law, Prince Vasili's wife, sent to
1510him imploring him to come if only for a few minutes to discuss a
1511most important matter. Pierre saw that there was a conspiracy
1512against him and that they wanted to reunite him with his wife, and
1513in the mood he then was, this was not even unpleasant to him.
1514Nothing mattered to him. Nothing in life seemed to him of much
1515importance, and under the influence of the depression that possessed
1516him he valued neither his liberty nor his resolution to punish his
1517wife.
1518
1519"No one is right and no one is to blame; so she too is not to
1520blame," he thought.
1521
1522If he did not at once give his consent to a reunion with his wife,
1523it was only because in his state of depression he did not feel able to
1524take any step. Had his wife come to him, he would not have turned
1525her away. Compared to what preoccupied him, was it not a matter of
1526indifference whether he lived with his wife or not?
1527
1528Without replying either to his wife or his mother-in-law, Pierre
1529late one night prepared for a journey and started for Moscow to see
1530Joseph Alexeevich. This is what he noted in his diary:
1531
1532
1533Moscow, 17th November
1534
1535I have just returned from my benefactor, and hasten to write down
1536what I have experienced. Joseph Alexeevich is living poorly and has
1537for three years been suffering from a painful disease of the
1538bladder. No one has ever heard him utter a groan or a word of
1539complaint. From morning till late at night, except when he eats his
1540very plain food, he is working at science. He received me graciously
1541and made me sit down on the bed on which he lay. I made the sign of
1542the Knights of the East and of Jerusalem, and he responded in the same
1543manner, asking me with a mild smile what I had learned and gained in
1544the Prussian and Scottish lodges. I told him everything as best I
1545could, and told him what I had proposed to our Petersburg lodge, of
1546the bad reception I had encountered, and of my rupture with the
1547Brothers. Joseph Alexeevich, having remained silent and thoughtful for
1548a good while, told me his view of the matter, which at once lit up for
1549me my whole past and the future path I should follow. He surprised
1550me by asking whether I remembered the threefold aim of the order:
1551(1) The preservation and study of the mystery. (2) The purification
1552and reformation of oneself for its reception, and (3) The
1553improvement of the human race by striving for such purification. Which
1554is the principal aim of these three? Certainly self-reformation and
1555self-purification. Only to this aim can we always strive independently
1556of circumstances. But at the same time just this aim demands the
1557greatest efforts of us; and so, led astray by pride, losing sight of
1558this aim, we occupy ourselves either with the mystery which in our
1559impurity we are unworthy to receive, or seek the reformation of the
1560human race while ourselves setting an example of baseness and
1561profligacy. Illuminism is not a pure doctrine, just because it is
1562attracted by social activity and puffed up by pride. On this ground
1563Joseph Alexeevich condemned my speech and my whole activity, and in
1564the depth of my soul I agreed with him. Talking of my family affairs
1565he said to me, "the chief duty of a true Mason, as I have told you,
1566lies in perfecting himself. We often think that by removing all the
1567difficulties of our life we shall more quickly reach our aim, but on
1568the contrary, my dear sir, it is only in the midst of worldly cares
1569that we can attain our three chief aims: (1) Self-knowledge--for man
1570can only know himself by comparison, (2) Self-perfecting, which can
1571only be attained by conflict, and (3) The attainment of the chief
1572virtue--love of death. Only the vicissitudes of life can show us its
1573vanity and develop our innate love of death or of rebirth to a new
1574life." These words are all the more remarkable because, in spite of
1575his great physical sufferings, Joseph Alexeevich is never weary of
1576life though he loves death, for which--in spite of the purity and
1577loftiness of his inner man--he does not yet feel himself
1578sufficiently prepared. My benefactor then explained to me fully the
1579meaning of the Great Square of creation and pointed out to me that the
1580numbers three and seven are the basis of everything. He advised me not
1581to avoid intercourse with the Petersburg Brothers, but to take up only
1582second-grade posts in the lodge, to try, while diverting the
1583Brothers from pride, to turn them toward the true path
1584self-knowledge and self-perfecting. Besides this he advised me for
1585myself personally above all to keep a watch over myself, and to that
1586end he gave me a notebook, the one I am now writing in and in which
1587I will in future note down all my actions.
1588
1589
1590Petersburg, 23rd November
1591
1592I am again living with my wife. My mother-in-law came to me in tears
1593and said that Helene was here and that she implored me to hear her;
1594that she was innocent and unhappy at my desertion, and much more. I
1595knew that if I once let myself see her I should not have strength to
1596go on refusing what she wanted. In my perplexity I did not know
1597whose aid and advice to seek. Had my benefactor been here he would
1598have told me what to do. I went to my room and reread Joseph
1599Alexeevich's letters and recalled my conversations with him, and
1600deduced from it all that I ought not to refuse a suppliant, and
1601ought to reach a helping hand to everyone--especially to one so
1602closely bound to me--and that I must bear my cross. But if I forgive
1603her for the sake of doing right, then let union with her have only a
1604spiritual aim. That is what I decided, and what I wrote to Joseph
1605Alexeevich. I told my wife that I begged her to forget the past, to
1606forgive me whatever wrong I may have done her, and that I had
1607nothing to forgive. It gave me joy to tell her this. She need not know
1608how hard it was for me to see her again. I have settled on the upper
1609floor of this big house and am experiencing a happy feeling of
1610regeneration.
1611
1612
1613
1614
1615
1616CHAPTER IX
1617
1618
1619At that time, as always happens, the highest society that met at
1620court and at the grand balls was divided into several circles, each
1621with its own particular tone. The largest of these was the French
1622circle of the Napoleonic alliance, the circle of Count Rumyantsev
1623and Caulaincourt. In this group Helene, as soon as she had settled
1624in Petersburg with her husband, took a very prominent place. She was
1625visited by the members of the French embassy and by many belonging
1626to that circle and noted for their intellect and polished manners.
1627
1628Helene had been at Erfurt during the famous meeting of the
1629Emperors and had brought from there these connections with the
1630Napoleonic notabilities. At Erfurt her success had been brilliant.
1631Napoleon himself had noticed her in the theater and said of her:
1632"C'est un superbe animal."* Her success as a beautiful and elegant
1633woman did not surprise Pierre, for she had become even handsomer
1634than before. What did surprise him was that during these last two
1635years his wife had succeeded in gaining the reputation "d' une femme
1636charmante, aussi spirituelle que belle."*[2] The distinguished
1637Prince de Ligne wrote her eight-page letters. Bilibin saved up his
1638epigrams to produce them in Countess Bezukhova's presence. To be
1639received in the Countess Bezukhova's salon was regarded as a diploma
1640of intellect. Young men read books before attending Helene's evenings,
1641to have something to say in her salon, and secretaries of the embassy,
1642and even ambassadors, confided diplomatic secrets to her, so that in a
1643way Helene was a power. Pierre, who knew she was very stupid,
1644sometimes attended, with a strange feeling of perplexity and fear, her
1645evenings and dinner parties, where politics, poetry, and philosophy
1646were discussed. At these parties his feelings were like those of a
1647conjuror who always expects his trick to be found out at any moment.
1648But whether because stupidity was just what was needed to run such a
1649salon, or because those who were deceived found pleasure in the
1650deception, at any rate it remained unexposed and Helene Bezukhova's
1651reputation as a lovely and clever woman became so firmly established
1652that she could say the emptiest and stupidest things and everybody
1653would go into raptures over every word of hers and look for a profound
1654meaning in it of which she herself had no conception.
1655
1656
1657*"That's a superb animal."
1658
1659*[2] "Of a charming woman, as witty as she is lovely."
1660
1661
1662Pierre was just the husband needed for a brilliant society woman. He
1663was that absent-minded crank, a grand seigneur husband who was in no
1664one's way, and far from spoiling the high tone and general
1665impression of the drawing room, he served, by the contrast he
1666presented to her, as an advantageous background to his elegant and
1667tactful wife. Pierre during the last two years, as a result of his
1668continual absorption in abstract interests and his sincere contempt
1669for all else, had acquired in his wife's circle, which did not
1670interest him, that air of unconcern, indifference, and benevolence
1671toward all, which cannot be acquired artificially and therefore
1672inspires involuntary respect. He entered his wife's drawing room as
1673one enters a theater, was acquainted with everybody, equally pleased
1674to see everyone, and equally indifferent to them all. Sometimes he
1675joined in a conversation which interested him and, regardless of
1676whether any "gentlemen of the embassy" were present or not,
1677lispingly expressed his views, which were sometimes not at all in
1678accord with the accepted tone of the moment. But the general opinion
1679concerning the queer husband of "the most distinguished woman in
1680Petersburg" was so well established that no one took his freaks
1681seriously.
1682
1683Among the many young men who frequented her house every day, Boris
1684Drubetskoy, who had already achieved great success in the service, was
1685the most intimate friend of the Bezukhov household since Helene's
1686return from Erfurt. Helene spoke of him as "mon page" and treated
1687him like a child. Her smile for him was the same as for everybody, but
1688sometimes that smile made Pierre uncomfortable. Toward him Boris
1689behaved with a particularly dignified and sad deference. This shade of
1690deference also disturbed Pierre. He had suffered so painfully three
1691years before from the mortification to which his wife had subjected
1692him that he now protected himself from the danger of its repetition,
1693first by not being a husband to his wife, and secondly by not allowing
1694himself to suspect.
1695
1696"No, now that she has become a bluestocking she has finally
1697renounced her former infatuations," he told himself. "There has
1698never been an instance of a bluestocking being carried away by affairs
1699of the heart"--a statement which, though gathered from an unknown
1700source, he believed implicitly. Yet strange to say Boris' presence
1701in his wife's drawing room (and he was almost always there) had a
1702physical effect upon Pierre; it constricted his limbs and destroyed
1703the unconsciousness and freedom of his movements.
1704
1705"What a strange antipathy," thought Pierre, "yet I used to like
1706him very much."
1707
1708In the eyes of the world Pierre was a great gentleman, the rather
1709blind and absurd husband of a distinguished wife, a clever crank who
1710did nothing but harmed nobody and was a first-rate, good-natured
1711fellow. But a complex and difficult process of internal development
1712was taking place all this time in Pierre's soul, revealing much to him
1713and causing him many spiritual doubts and joys.
1714
1715
1716
1717
1718
1719CHAPTER X
1720
1721
1722Pierre went on with his diary, and this is what he wrote in it
1723during that time:
1724
1725
172624th November
1727
1728Got up at eight, read the Scriptures, then went to my duties. [By
1729Joseph Alexeevich's advice Pierre had entered the service of the state
1730and served on one of the committees.] Returned home for dinner and
1731dined alone--the countess had many visitors I do not like. I ate and
1732drank moderately and after dinner copied out some passages for the
1733Brothers. In the evening I went down to the countess and told a
1734funny story about B., and only remembered that I ought not to have
1735done so when everybody laughed loudly at it.
1736
1737I am going to bed with a happy and tranquil mind. Great God, help me
1738to walk in Thy paths, (1) to conquer anger by calmness and
1739deliberation, (2) to vanquish lust by self-restraint and repulsion,
1740(3) to withdraw from worldliness, but not avoid (a) the service of the
1741state, (b) family duties, (c) relations with my friends, and the
1742management of my affairs.
1743
1744
174527th November
1746
1747I got up late. On waking I lay long in bed yielding to sloth. O God,
1748help and strengthen me that I may walk in Thy ways! Read the
1749Scriptures, but without proper feeling. Brother Urusov came and we
1750talked about worldly vanities. He told me of the Emperor's new
1751projects. I began to criticize them, but remembered my rules and my
1752benefactor's words--that a true Freemason should be a zealous worker
1753for the state when his aid is required and a quiet onlooker when not
1754called on to assist. My tongue is my enemy. Brothers G. V. and O.
1755visited me and we had a preliminary talk about the reception of a
1756new Brother. They laid on me the duty of Rhetor. I feel myself weak
1757and unworthy. Then our talk turned to the interpretation of the
1758seven pillars and steps of the Temple, the seven sciences, the seven
1759virtues, the seven vices, and the seven gifts of the Holy Spirit.
1760Brother O. was very eloquent. In the evening the admission took place.
1761The new decoration of the Premises contributed much to the
1762magnificence of the spectacle. It was Boris Drubetskoy who was
1763admitted. I nominated him and was the Rhetor. A strange feeling
1764agitated me all the time I was alone with him in the dark chamber. I
1765caught myself harboring a feeling of hatred toward him which I
1766vainly tried to overcome. That is why I should really like to save him
1767from evil and lead him into the path of truth, but evil thoughts of
1768him did not leave me. It seemed to me that his object in entering
1769the Brotherhood was merely to be intimate and in favor with members of
1770our lodge. Apart from the fact that he had asked me several times
1771whether N. and S. were members of our lodge (a question to which I
1772could not reply) and that according to my observation he is
1773incapable of feeling respect for our holy order and is too preoccupied
1774and satisfied with the outer man to desire spiritual improvement, I
1775had no cause to doubt him, but he seemed to me insincere, and all
1776the time I stood alone with him in the dark temple it seemed to me
1777that he was smiling contemptuously at my words, and I wished really to
1778stab his bare breast with the sword I held to it. I could not be
1779eloquent, nor could I frankly mention my doubts to the Brothers and to
1780the Grand Master. Great Architect of Nature, help me to find the
1781true path out of the labyrinth of lies!
1782
1783
1784 After this, three pages were left blank in the diary, and then
1785the following was written:
1786
1787
1788I have had a long and instructive talk alone with Brother V., who
1789advised me to hold fast by brother A. Though I am unworthy, much was
1790revealed to me. Adonai is the name of the creator of the world. Elohim
1791is the name of the ruler of all. The third name is the name
1792unutterable which means the All. Talks with Brother V. strengthen,
1793refresh, and support me in the path of virtue. In his presence doubt
1794has no place. The distinction between the poor teachings of mundane
1795science and our sacred all-embracing teaching is clear to me. Human
1796sciences dissect everything to comprehend it, and kill everything to
1797examine it. In the holy science of our order all is one, all is
1798known in its entirety and life. The Trinity--the three elements of
1799matter--are sulphur, mercury, and salt. Sulphur is of an oily and
1800fiery nature; in combination with salt by its fiery nature it
1801arouses a desire in the latter by means of which it attracts
1802mercury, seizes it, holds it, and in combination produces other
1803bodies. Mercury is a fluid, volatile, spiritual essence. Christ, the
1804Holy Spirit, Him!...
1805
1806
18073rd December
1808
1809Awoke late, read the Scriptures but was apathetic. Afterwards went
1810and paced up and down the large hall. I wished to meditate, but
1811instead my imagination pictured an occurrence of four years ago,
1812when Dolokhov, meeting me in Moscow after our duel, said he hoped I
1813was enjoying perfect peace of mind in spite of my wife's absence. At
1814the time I gave him no answer. Now I recalled every detail of that
1815meeting and in my mind gave him the most malevolent and bitter
1816replies. I recollected myself and drove away that thought only when
1817I found myself glowing with anger, but I did not sufficiently
1818repent. Afterwards Boris Drubetskoy came and began relating various
1819adventures. His coming vexed me from the first, and I said something
1820disagreeable to him. He replied. I flared up and said much that was
1821unpleasant and even rude to him. He became silent, and I recollected
1822myself only when it was too late. My God, I cannot get on with him
1823at all. The cause of this is my egotism. I set myself above him and so
1824become much worse than he, for he is lenient to my rudeness while I on
1825the contrary nourish contempt for him. O God, grant that in his
1826presence I may rather see my own vileness, and behave so that he too
1827may benefit. After dinner I fell asleep and as I was drowsing off I
1828clearly heard a voice saying in my left ear, "Thy day!"
1829
1830I dreamed that I was walking in the dark and was suddenly surrounded
1831by dogs, but I went on undismayed. Suddenly a smallish dog seized my
1832left thigh with its teeth and would not let go. I began to throttle it
1833with my hands. Scarcely had I torn it off before another, a bigger
1834one, began biting me. I lifted it up, but the higher I lifted it the
1835bigger and heavier it grew. And suddenly Brother A. came and, taking
1836my arm, led me to a building to enter which we had to pass along a
1837narrow plank. I stepped on it, but it bent and gave way and I began to
1838clamber up a fence which I could scarcely reach with my hands. After
1839much effort I dragged myself up, so that my leg hung down on one
1840side and my body on the other. I looked round and saw Brother A.
1841standing on the fence and pointing me to a broad avenue and garden,
1842and in the garden was a large and beautiful building. I woke up. O
1843Lord, great Architect of Nature, help me to tear from myself these
1844dogs--my passions especially the last, which unites in itself the
1845strength of all the former ones, and aid me to enter that temple of
1846virtue to a vision of which I attained in my dream.
1847
1848
18497th December
1850
1851I dreamed that Joseph Alexeevich was sitting in my house, and that I
1852was very glad and wished to entertain him. It seemed as if I chattered
1853incessantly with other people and suddenly remembered that this
1854could not please him, and I wished to come close to him and embrace
1855him. But as soon as I drew near I saw that his face had changed and
1856grown young, and he was quietly telling me something about the
1857teaching of our order, but so softly that I could not hear it. Then it
1858seemed that we all left the room and something strange happened. We
1859were sitting or lying on the floor. He was telling me something, and I
1860wished to show him my sensibility, and not listening to what he was
1861saying I began picturing to myself the condition of my inner man and
1862the grace of God sanctifying me. And tears came into my eyes, and I
1863was glad he noticed this. But he looked at me with vexation and jumped
1864up, breaking off his remarks. I felt abashed and asked whether what he
1865had been saying did not concern me; but he did not reply, gave me a
1866kind look, and then we suddenly found ourselves in my bedroom where
1867there is a double bed. He lay down on the edge of it and I burned with
1868longing to caress him and lie down too. And he said, "Tell me
1869frankly what is your chief temptation? Do you know it? I think you
1870know it already." Abashed by this question, I replied that sloth was
1871my chief temptation. He shook his head incredulously; and even more
1872abashed, I said that though I was living with my wife as he advised, I
1873was not living with her as her husband. To this he replied that one
1874should not deprive a wife of one's embraces and gave me to
1875understand that that was my duty. But I replied that I should be
1876ashamed to do it, and suddenly everything vanished. And I awoke and
1877found in my mind the text from the Gospel: "The life was the light
1878of men. And the light shineth in darkness; and the darkness
1879comprehended it not." Joseph Alexeevich's face had looked young and
1880bright. That day I received a letter from my benefactor in which he
1881wrote about "conjugal duties."
1882
1883
18849th December
1885
1886I had a dream from which I awoke with a throbbing heart. I saw
1887that I was in Moscow in my house, in the big sitting room, and
1888Joseph Alexeevich came in from the drawing room. I seemed to know at
1889once that the process of regeneration had already taken place in
1890him, and I rushed to meet him. I embraced him and kissed his hands,
1891and he said, "Hast thou noticed that my face is different?" I looked
1892at him, still holding him in my arms, and saw that his face was young,
1893but that he had no hair on his head and his features were quite
1894changed. And I said, "I should have known you had I met you by
1895chance," and I thought to myself, "Am I telling the truth?" And
1896suddenly I saw him lying like a dead body; then he gradually recovered
1897and went with me into my study carrying a large book of sheets of
1898drawing paper; I said, "I drew that," and he answered by bowing his
1899head. I opened the book, and on all the pages there were excellent
1900drawings. And in my dream I knew that these drawings represented the
1901love adventures of the soul with its beloved. And on its pages I saw a
1902beautiful representation of a maiden in transparent garments and
1903with a transparent body, flying up to the clouds. And I seemed to know
1904that this maiden was nothing else than a representation of the Song of
1905Songs. And looking at those drawings I dreamed I felt that I was doing
1906wrong, but could not tear myself away from them. Lord, help me! My
1907God, if Thy forsaking me is Thy doing, Thy will be done; but if I am
1908myself the cause, teach me what I should do! I shall perish of my
1909debauchery if Thou utterly desertest me!
1910
1911
1912
1913
1914
1915CHAPTER XI
1916
1917
1918The Rostovs' monetary affairs had not improved during the two
1919years they had spent in the country.
1920
1921Though Nicholas Rostov had kept firmly to his resolution and was
1922still serving modestly in an obscure regiment, spending
1923comparatively little, the way of life at Otradnoe--Mitenka's
1924management of affairs, in particular--was such that the debts
1925inevitably increased every year. The only resource obviously
1926presenting itself to the old count was to apply for an official
1927post, so he had come to Petersburg to look for one and also, as he
1928said, to let the lassies enjoy themselves for the last time.
1929
1930Soon after their arrival in Petersburg Berg proposed to Vera and was
1931accepted.
1932
1933Though in Moscow the Rostovs belonged to the best society without
1934themselves giving it a thought, yet in Petersburg their circle of
1935acquaintances was a mixed and indefinite one. In Petersburg they
1936were provincials, and the very people they had entertained in Moscow
1937without inquiring to what set they belonged, here looked down on them.
1938
1939The Rostovs lived in the same hospitable way in Petersburg as in
1940Moscow, and the most diverse people met at their suppers. Country
1941neighbors from Otradnoe, impoverished old squires and their daughters,
1942Peronskaya a maid of honor, Pierre Bezukhov, and the son of their
1943district postmaster who had obtained a post in Petersburg. Among the
1944men who very soon became frequent visitors at the Rostovs' house in
1945Petersburg were Boris, Pierre whom the count had met in the street and
1946dragged home with him, and Berg who spent whole days at the Rostovs'
1947and paid the eldest daughter, Countess Vera, the attentions a young
1948man pays when he intends to propose.
1949
1950Not in vain had Berg shown everybody his right hand wounded at
1951Austerlitz and held a perfectly unnecessary sword in his left. He
1952narrated that episode so persistently and with so important an air
1953that everyone believed in the merit and usefulness of his deed, and he
1954had obtained two decorations for Austerlitz.
1955
1956In the Finnish war he also managed to distinguish himself. He had
1957picked up the scrap of a grenade that had killed an aide-de-camp
1958standing near the commander in chief and had taken it to his
1959commander. Just as he had done after Austerlitz, he related this
1960occurrence at such length and so insistently that everyone again
1961believed it had been necessary to do this, and he received two
1962decorations for the Finnish war also. In 1809 he was a captain in
1963the Guards, wore medals, and held some special lucrative posts in
1964Petersburg.
1965
1966Though some skeptics smiled when told of Berg's merits, it could not
1967be denied that he was a painstaking and brave officer, on excellent
1968terms with his superiors, and a moral young man with a brilliant
1969career before him and an assured position in society.
1970
1971Four years before, meeting a German comrade in the stalls of a
1972Moscow theater, Berg had pointed out Vera Rostova to him and had
1973said in German, "das soll mein Weib werden,"* and from that moment had
1974made up his mind to marry her. Now in Petersburg, having considered
1975the Rostovs' position and his own, he decided that the time had come
1976to propose.
1977
1978
1979*"That girl shall be my wife."
1980
1981
1982Berg's proposal was at first received with a perplexity that was not
1983flattering to him. At first it seemed strange that the son of an
1984obscure Livonian gentleman should propose marriage to a Countess
1985Rostova; but Berg's chief characteristic was such a naive and good
1986natured egotism that the Rostovs involuntarily came to think it
1987would be a good thing, since he himself was so firmly convinced that
1988it was good, indeed excellent. Moreover, the Rostovs' affairs were
1989seriously embarrassed, as the suitor could not but know; and above
1990all, Vera was twenty-four, had been taken out everywhere, and though
1991she was certainly good-looking and sensible, no one up to now had
1992proposed to her. So they gave their consent.
1993
1994"You see," said Berg to his comrade, whom he called "friend" only
1995because he knew that everyone has friends, "you see, I have considered
1996it all, and should not marry if I had not thought it all out or if
1997it were in any way unsuitable. But on the contrary, my papa and
1998mamma are now provided for--I have arranged that rent for them in
1999the Baltic Provinces--and I can live in Petersburg on my pay, and with
2000her fortune and my good management we can get along nicely. I am not
2001marrying for money--I consider that dishonorable--but a wife should
2002bring her share and a husband his. I have my position in the
2003service, she has connections and some means. In our times that is
2004worth something, isn't it? But above all, she is a handsome, estimable
2005girl, and she loves me..."
2006
2007Berg blushed and smiled.
2008
2009"And I love her, because her character is sensible and very good.
2010Now the other sister, though they are the same family, is quite
2011different--an unpleasant character and has not the same
2012intelligence. She is so... you know?... Unpleasant... But my
2013fiancee!... Well, you will be coming," he was going to say, "to dine,"
2014but changed his mind and said "to take tea with us," and quickly
2015doubling up his tongue he blew a small round ring of tobacco smoke,
2016perfectly embodying his dream of happiness.
2017
2018After the first feeling of perplexity aroused in the parents by
2019Berg's proposal, the holiday tone of joyousness usual at such times
2020took possession of the family, but the rejoicing was external and
2021insincere. In the family's feeling toward this wedding a certain
2022awkwardness and constraint was evident, as if they were ashamed of not
2023having loved Vera sufficiently and of being so ready to get her off
2024their hands. The old count felt this most. He would probably have been
2025unable to state the cause of his embarrassment, but it resulted from
2026the state of his affairs. He did not know at all how much he had, what
2027his debts amounted to, or what dowry he could give Vera. When his
2028daughters were born he had assigned to each of them, for her dowry, an
2029estate with three hundred serfs; but one of these estates had
2030already been sold, and the other was mortgaged and the interest so
2031much in arrears that it would have to be sold, so that it was
2032impossible to give it to Vera. Nor had he any money.
2033
2034Berg had already been engaged a month, and only a week remained
2035before the wedding, but the count had not yet decided in his own
2036mind the question of the dowry, nor spoken to his wife about it. At
2037one time the count thought of giving her the Ryazan estate or of
2038selling a forest, at another time of borrowing money on a note of
2039hand. A few days before the wedding Berg entered the count's study
2040early one morning and, with a pleasant smile, respectfully asked his
2041future father-in-law to let him know what Vera's dowry would be. The
2042count was so disconcerted by this long-foreseen inquiry that without
2043consideration he gave the first reply that came into his head. "I like
2044your being businesslike about it.... I like it. You shall be
2045satisfied...."
2046
2047And patting Berg on the shoulder he got up, wishing to end the
2048conversation. But Berg, smiling pleasantly, explained that if he did
2049not know for certain how much Vera would have and did not receive at
2050least part of the dowry in advance, he would have to break matters
2051off.
2052
2053"Because, consider, Count--if I allowed myself to marry now
2054without having definite means to maintain my wife, I should be
2055acting badly...."
2056
2057The conversation ended by the count, who wished to be generous and
2058to avoid further importunity, saying that he would give a note of hand
2059for eighty thousand rubles. Berg smiled meekly, kissed the count on
2060the shoulder, and said that he was very grateful, but that it was
2061impossible for him to arrange his new life without receiving thirty
2062thousand in ready money. "Or at least twenty thousand, Count," he
2063added, "and then a note of hand for only sixty thousand."
2064
2065"Yes, yes, all right!" said the count hurriedly. "Only excuse me, my
2066
2067dear fellow, I'll give you twenty thousand and a note of hand for
2068eighty thousand as well. Yes, yes! Kiss me."
2069
2070
2071
2072
2073
2074CHAPTER XII
2075
2076
2077Natasha was sixteen and it was the year 1809, the very year to which
2078she had counted on her fingers with Boris after they had kissed four
2079years ago. Since then she had not seen him. Before Sonya and her
2080mother, if Boris happened to be mentioned, she spoke quite freely of
2081that episode as of some childish, long-forgotten matter that was not
2082worth mentioning. But in the secret depths of her soul the question
2083whether her engagement to Boris was a jest or an important, binding
2084promise tormented her.
2085
2086Since Boris left Moscow in 1805 to join the army he had had not seen
2087the Rostovs. He had been in Moscow several times, and had passed
2088near Otradnoe, but had never been to see them.
2089
2090Sometimes it occurred to Natasha that he not wish to see her, and
2091this conjecture was confirmed by the sad tone in which her elders
2092spoke of him.
2093
2094"Nowadays old friends are not remembered," the countess would say
2095when Boris was mentioned.
2096
2097Anna Mikhaylovna also had of late visited them less frequently,
2098seemed to hold herself with particular dignity, and always spoke
2099rapturously and gratefully of the merits of her son and the
2100brilliant career on which he had entered. When the Rostovs came to
2101Petersburg Boris called on them.
2102
2103He drove to their house in some agitation. The memory of Natasha was
2104his most poetic recollection. But he went with the firm intention of
2105letting her and her parents feel that the childish relations between
2106himself and Natasha could not be binding either on her or on him. He
2107had a brilliant position in society thanks to his intimacy with
2108Countess Bezukhova, a brilliant position in the service thanks to
2109the patronage of an important personage whose complete confidence he
2110enjoyed, and he was beginning to make plans for marrying one of the
2111richest heiresses in Petersburg, plans which might very easily be
2112realized. When he entered the Rostovs' drawing room Natasha was in her
2113own room. When she heard of his arrival she almost ran into the
2114drawing room, flushed and beaming with a more than cordial smile.
2115
2116Boris remembered Natasha in a short dress, with dark eyes shining
2117from under her curls and boisterous, childish laughter, as he had
2118known her four years before; and so he was taken aback when quite a
2119different Natasha entered, and his face expressed rapturous
2120astonishment. This expression on his face pleased Natasha.
2121
2122"Well, do you recognize your little madcap playmate?" asked the
2123countess.
2124
2125Boris kissed Natasha's hand and said that he was astonished at the
2126change in her.
2127
2128"How handsome you have grown!"
2129
2130"I should think so!" replied Natasha's laughing eyes.
2131
2132"And is Papa older?" she asked.
2133
2134Natasha sat down and, without joining in Boris' conversation with
2135the countess, silently and minutely studied her childhood's suitor. He
2136felt the weight of that resolute and affectionate scrutiny and glanced
2137at her occasionally.
2138
2139Boris' uniform, spurs, tie, and the way his hair was brushed were
2140all comme il faut and in the latest fashion. This Natasha noticed at
2141once. He sat rather sideways in the armchair next to the countess,
2142arranging with his right hand the cleanest of gloves that fitted his
2143left hand like a skin, and he spoke with a particularly refined
2144compression of his lips about the amusements of the highest Petersburg
2145society, recalling with mild irony old times in Moscow and Moscow
2146acquaintances. It was not accidentally, Natasha felt, that he alluded,
2147when speaking of the highest aristocracy, to an ambassador's ball he
2148had attended, and to invitations he had received from N.N. and S.S.
2149
2150All this time Natasha sat silent, glancing up at him from under
2151her brows. This gaze disturbed and confused Boris more and more. He
2152looked round more frequently toward her, and broke off in what he
2153was saying. He did not stay more than ten minutes, then rose and
2154took his leave. The same inquisitive, challenging, and rather
2155mocking eyes still looked at him. After his first visit Boris said
2156to himself that Natasha attracted him just as much as ever, but that
2157he must not yield to that feeling, because to marry her, a girl almost
2158without fortune, would mean ruin to his career, while to renew their
2159former relations without intending to marry her would be dishonorable.
2160Boris made up his mind to avoid meeting Natasha, but despite that
2161resolution he called again a few days later and began calling often
2162and spending whole days at the Rostovs'. It seemed to him that he
2163ought to have an explanation with Natasha and tell her that the old
2164times must be forgotten, that in spite of everything... she could
2165not be his wife, that he had no means, and they would never let her
2166marry him. But he failed to do so and felt awkward about entering on
2167such an explanation. From day to day he became more and more
2168entangled. It seemed to her mother and Sonya that Natasha was in
2169love with Boris as of old. She sang him his favorite songs, showed him
2170her album, making him write in it, did not allow him to allude to
2171the past, letting it be understood how was the present; and every
2172day he went away in a fog, without having said what he meant to, and
2173not knowing what he was doing or why he came, or how it would all end.
2174He left off visiting Helene and received reproachful notes from her
2175every day, and yet he continued to spend whole days with the Rostovs.
2176
2177
2178
2179
2180
2181CHAPTER XIII
2182
2183
2184One night when the old countess, in nightcap and dressing jacket,
2185without her false curls, and with her poor little knob of hair showing
2186under her white cotton cap, knelt sighing and groaning on a rug and
2187bowing to the ground in prayer, her door creaked and Natasha, also
2188in a dressing jacket with slippers on her bare feet and her hair in
2189curlpapers, ran in. The countess--her prayerful mood dispelled--looked
2190round and frowned. She was finishing her last prayer: "Can it be
2191that this couch will be my grave?" Natasha, flushed and eager,
2192seeing her mother in prayer, suddenly checked her rush, half sat down,
2193and unconsciously put out her tongue as if chiding herself. Seeing
2194that her mother was still praying she ran on tiptoe to the bed and,
2195rapidly slipping one little foot against the other, pushed off her
2196slippers and jumped onto the bed the countess had feared might
2197become her grave. This couch was high, with a feather bed and five
2198pillows each smaller than the one below. Natasha jumped on it, sank
2199into the feather bed, rolled over to the wall, and began snuggling
2200up the bedclothes as she settled down, raising her knees to her
2201chin, kicking out and laughing almost inaudibly, now covering
2202herself up head and all, and now peeping at her mother. The countess
2203finished her prayers and came to the bed with a stern face, but
2204seeing, that Natasha's head was covered, she smiled in her kind,
2205weak way.
2206
2207"Now then, now then!" said she.
2208
2209"Mamma, can we have a talk? Yes?" said Natasha. "Now, just one on
2210your throat and another... that'll do!" And seizing her mother round
2211the neck, she kissed her on the throat. In her behavior to her
2212mother Natasha seemed rough, but she was so sensitive and tactful that
2213however she clasped her mother she always managed to do it without
2214hurting her or making her feel uncomfortable or displeased.
2215
2216"Well, what is it tonight?" said the mother, having arranged her
2217pillows and waited until Natasha, after turning over a couple of
2218times, had settled down beside her under the quilt, spread out her
2219arms, and assumed a serious expression.
2220
2221These visits of Natasha's at night before the count returned from
2222his club were one of the greatest pleasures of both mother, and
2223daughter.
2224
2225"What is it tonight?--But I have to tell you..."
2226
2227Natasha put her hand on her mother's mouth.
2228
2229"About Boris... I know," she said seriously; "that's what I have
2230come about. Don't say it--I know. No, do tell me!" and she removed her
2231hand. "Tell me, Mamma! He's nice?"
2232
2233"Natasha, you are sixteen. At your age I was married. You say
2234Boris is nice. He is very nice, and I love him like a son. But what
2235then?... What are you thinking about? You have quite turned his
2236head, I can see that...."
2237
2238As she said this the countess looked round at her daughter.
2239Natasha was lying looking steadily straight before her at one of the
2240mahogany sphinxes carved on the corners of the bedstead, so that the
2241countess only saw her daughter's face in profile. That face struck her
2242by its peculiarly serious and concentrated expression.
2243
2244Natasha was listening and considering.
2245
2246"Well, what then?" said she.
2247
2248"You have quite turned his head, and why? What do you want of him?
2249You know you can't marry him."
2250
2251"Why not?" said Natasha, without changing her position.
2252
2253"Because he is young, because he is poor, because he is a
2254relation... and because you yourself don't love him."
2255
2256"How do you know?"
2257
2258"I know. It is not right, darling!"
2259
2260 "But if I want to..." said Natasha.
2261
2262"Leave off talking nonsense," said the countess.
2263
2264"But if I want to..."
2265
2266"Natasha, I am in earnest..."
2267
2268Natasha did not let her finish. She drew the countess' large hand to
2269her, kissed it on the back and then on the palm, then again turned
2270it over and began kissing first one knuckle, then the space between
2271the knuckles, then the next knuckle, whispering, "January, February,
2272March, April, May. Speak, Mamma, why don't you say anything? Speak!"
2273said she, turning to her mother, who was tenderly gazing at her
2274daughter and in that contemplation seemed to have forgotten all she
2275had wished to say.
2276
2277"It won't do, my love! Not everyone will understand this
2278friendship dating from your childish days, and to see him so
2279intimate with you may injure you in the eyes of other young men who
2280visit us, and above all it torments him for nothing. He may already
2281have found a suitable and wealthy match, and now he's half crazy."
2282
2283"Crazy?" repeated Natasha.
2284
2285"I'll tell you some things about myself. I had a cousin..."
2286
2287"I know! Cyril Matveich... but he is old."
2288
2289"He was not always old. But this is what I'll do, Natasha, I'll have
2290a talk with Boris. He need not come so often...."
2291
2292"Why not, if he likes to?"
2293
2294"Because I know it will end in nothing...."
2295
2296"How can you know? No, Mamma, don't speak to him! What nonsense!"
2297said Natasha in the tone of one being deprived of her property. "Well,
2298I won't marry, but let him come if he enjoys it and I enjoy it."
2299Natasha smiled and looked at her mother. "Not to marry, but just
2300so," she added.
2301
2302"How so, my pet?"
2303
2304"Just so. There's no need for me to marry him. But... just so."
2305
2306"Just so, just so," repeated the countess, and shaking all over, she
2307went off into a good humored, unexpected, elderly laugh.
2308
2309"Don't laugh, stop!" cried Natasha. "You're shaking the whole bed!
2310You're awfully like me, just such another giggler.... Wait..." and she
2311seized the countess' hands and kissed a knuckle of the little
2312finger, saying, "June," and continued, kissing, "July, August," on the
2313other hand. "But, Mamma, is he very much in love? What do you think?
2314Was anybody ever so much in love with you? And he's very nice, very,
2315very nice. Only not quite my taste--he is so narrow, like the
2316dining-room clock.... Don't you understand? Narrow, you know--gray,
2317light gray..."
2318
2319"What rubbish you're talking!" said the countess.
2320
2321Natasha continued: "Don't you really understand? Nicholas would
2322understand.... Bezukhov, now, is blue, dark-blue and red, and he is
2323square."
2324
2325"You flirt with him too," said the countess, laughing.
2326
2327"No, he is a Freemason, I have found out. He is fine, dark-blue
2328and red.... How can I explain it to you?"
2329
2330"Little countess!" the count's voice called from behind the door.
2331"You're not asleep?" Natasha jumped up, snatched up her slippers,
2332and ran barefoot to her own room.
2333
2334It was a long time before she could sleep. She kept thinking that no
2335one could understand all that she understood and all there was in her.
2336
2337"Sonya?" she thought, glancing at that curled-up, sleeping little
2338kitten with her enormous plait of hair. "No, how could she? She's
2339virtuous. She fell in love with Nicholas and does not wish to know
2340anything more. Even Mamma does not understand. It is wonderful how
2341clever I am and how... charming she is," she went on, speaking of
2342herself in the third person, and imagining it was some very wise
2343man--the wisest and best of men--who was saying it of her. "There is
2344everything, everything in her," continued this man. "She is
2345unusually intelligent, charming... and then she is pretty,
2346uncommonly pretty, and agile--she swims and rides splendidly... and
2347her voice! One can really say it's a wonderful voice!"
2348
2349She hummed a scrap from her favorite opera by Cherubini, threw
2350herself on her bed, laughed at the pleasant thought that she would
2351immediately fall asleep, called Dunyasha the maid to put out the
2352candle, and before Dunyasha had left the room had already passed
2353into yet another happier world of dreams, where everything was as
2354light and beautiful as in reality, and even more so because it was
2355different.
2356
2357
2358Next day the countess called Boris aside and had a talk with him,
2359after which he ceased coming to the Rostovs'.
2360
2361
2362
2363
2364
2365CHAPTER XIV
2366
2367
2368On the thirty-first of December, New Year's Eve, 1809 --10 an old
2369grandee of Catherine's day was giving a ball and midnight supper.
2370The diplomatic corps and the Emperor himself were to be present.
2371
2372The grandee's well-known mansion on the English Quay glittered
2373with innumerable lights. Police were stationed at the brightly lit
2374entrance which was carpeted with red baize, and not only gendarmes but
2375dozens of police officers and even the police master himself stood
2376at the porch. Carriages kept driving away and fresh ones arriving,
2377with red-liveried footmen and footmen in plumed hats. From the
2378carriages emerged men wearing uniforms, stars, and ribbons, while
2379ladies in satin and ermine cautiously descended the carriage steps
2380which were let down for them with a clatter, and then walked hurriedly
2381and noiselessly over the baize at the entrance.
2382
2383Almost every time a new carriage drove up a whisper ran through
2384the crowd and caps were doffed.
2385
2386"The Emperor?... No, a minister.... prince... ambassador. Don't
2387you see the plumes?..." was whispered among the crowd.
2388
2389One person, better dressed than the rest, seemed to know everyone
2390and mentioned by name the greatest dignitaries of the day.
2391
2392A third of the visitors had already arrived, but the Rostovs, who
2393were to be present, were still hurrying to get dressed.
2394
2395There had been many discussions and preparations for this ball in
2396the Rostov family, many fears that the invitation would not arrive,
2397that the dresses would not be ready, or that something would not be
2398arranged as it should be.
2399
2400Marya Ignatevna Peronskaya, a thin and shallow maid of honor at
2401the court of the Dowager Empress, who was a friend and relation of the
2402countess and piloted the provincial Rostovs in Petersburg high
2403society, was to accompany them to the ball.
2404
2405They were to call for her at her house in the Taurida Gardens at ten
2406o'clock, but it was already five minutes to ten, and the girls were
2407not yet dressed.
2408
2409Natasha was going to her first grand ball. She had got up at eight
2410that morning and had been in a fever of excitement and activity all
2411day. All her powers since morning had been concentrated on ensuring
2412that they all--she herself, Mamma, and Sonya--should be as well
2413dressed as possible. Sonya and her mother put themselves entirely in
2414her hands. The countess was to wear a claret-colored velvet dress, and
2415the two girls white gauze over pink silk slips, with roses on their
2416bodices and their hair dressed a la grecque.
2417
2418Everything essential had already been done; feet, hands, necks,
2419and ears washed, perfumed, and powdered, as befits a ball; the
2420openwork silk stockings and white satin shoes with ribbons were
2421already on; the hairdressing was almost done. Sonya was finishing
2422dressing and so was the countess, but Natasha, who had bustled about
2423helping them all, was behindhand. She was still sitting before a
2424looking-glass with a dressing jacket thrown over her slender
2425shoulders. Sonya stood ready dressed in the middle of the room and,
2426pressing the head of a pin till it hurt her dainty finger, was
2427fixing on a last ribbon that squeaked as the pin went through it.
2428
2429"That's not the way, that's not the way, Sonya!" cried Natasha
2430turning her head and clutching with both hands at her hair which the
2431maid who was dressing it had not time to release. "That bow is not
2432right. Come here!"
2433
2434Sonya sat down and Natasha pinned the ribbon on differently.
2435
2436"Allow me, Miss! I can't do it like that," said the maid who was
2437holding Natasha's hair.
2438
2439"Oh, dear! Well then, wait. That's right, Sonya."
2440
2441"Aren't you ready? It is nearly ten," came the countess' voice.
2442
2443"Directly! Directly! And you, Mamma?"
2444
2445"I have only my cap to pin on."
2446
2447"Don't do it without me!" called Natasha. "You won't do it right."
2448
2449"But it's already ten."
2450
2451They had decided to be at the ball by half past ten, and Natasha had
2452still to get dressed and they had to call at the Taurida Gardens.
2453
2454When her hair was done, Natasha, in her short petticoat from under
2455which her dancing shoes showed, and in her mother's dressing jacket,
2456ran up to Sonya, scrutinized her, and then ran to her mother.
2457Turning her mother's head this way and that, she fastened on the cap
2458and, hurriedly kissing her gray hair, ran back to the maids who were
2459turning up the hem of her skirt.
2460
2461The cause of the delay was Natasha's skirt, which was too long.
2462Two maids were turning up the hem and hurriedly biting off the ends of
2463thread. A third with pins in her mouth was running about between the
2464countess and Sonya, and a fourth held the whole of the gossamer
2465garment up high on one uplifted hand.
2466
2467"Mavra, quicker, darling!"
2468
2469"Give me my thimble, Miss, from there..."
2470
2471"Whenever will you be ready?" asked the count coming to the door.
2472"Here is here is some scent. Peronskaya must be tired of waiting."
2473
2474"It's ready, Miss," said the maid, holding up the shortened gauze
2475dress with two fingers, and blowing and shaking something off it, as
2476if by this to express a consciousness of the airiness and purity of
2477what she held.
2478
2479Natasha began putting on the dress.
2480
2481"In a minute! In a minute! Don't come in, Papa!" she cried to her
2482father as he opened the door--speaking from under the filmy skirt
2483which still covered her whole face.
2484
2485Sonya slammed the door to. A minute later they let the count in.
2486He was wearing a blue swallow-tail coat, shoes and stockings, and
2487was perfumed and his hair pomaded.
2488
2489"Oh, Papa! how nice you look! Charming!" cried Natasha, as she stood
2490in the middle of the room smoothing out the folds of the gauze.
2491
2492"If you please, Miss! allow me," said the maid, who on her knees was
2493pulling the skirt straight and shifting the pins from one side of
2494her mouth to the other with her tongue.
2495
2496"Say what you like," exclaimed Sonya, in a despairing voice as she
2497looked at Natasha, "say what you like, it's still too long."
2498
2499Natasha stepped back to look at herself in the pier glass. The dress
2500was too long.
2501
2502"Really, madam, it is not at all too long," said Mavra, crawling
2503on her knees after her young lady.
2504
2505"Well, if it's too long we'll take it up... we'll tack it up in
2506one minute," said the resolute Dunyasha taking a needle that was stuck
2507on the front of her little shawl and, still kneeling on the floor, set
2508to work once more.
2509
2510At that moment, with soft steps, the countess came in shyly, in
2511her cap and velvet gown.
2512
2513"Oo-oo, my beauty!" exclaimed the count, "she looks better than
2514any of you!"
2515
2516He would have embraced her but, blushing, she stepped aside
2517fearing to be rumpled.
2518
2519"Mamma, your cap, more to this side," said Natasha. "I'll arrange
2520it," and she rushed forward so that the maids who were tacking up
2521her skirt could not move fast enough and a piece of gauze was torn
2522off.
2523
2524"Oh goodness! What has happened? Really it was not my fault!"
2525
2526"Never mind, I'll run it up, it won't show," said Dunyasha.
2527
2528"What a beauty--a very queen!" said the nurse as she came to the
2529door. "And Sonya! They are lovely!"
2530
2531At a quarter past ten they at last got into their carriages and
2532started. But they had still to call at the Taurida Gardens.
2533
2534Peronskaya was quite ready. In spite of her age and plainness she
2535had gone through the same process as the Rostovs, but with less
2536flurry--for to her it was a matter of routine. Her ugly old body was
2537washed, perfumed, and powdered in just the same way. She had washed
2538behind her ears just as carefully, and when she entered her drawing
2539room in her yellow dress, wearing her badge as maid of honor, her
2540old lady's maid was as full of rapturous admiration as the Rostovs'
2541servants had been.
2542
2543She praised the Rostovs' toilets. They praised her taste and toilet,
2544and at eleven o'clock, careful of their coiffures and dresses, they
2545settled themselves in their carriages and drove off.
2546
2547
2548
2549
2550
2551CHAPTER XV
2552
2553
2554Natasha had not had a moment free since early morning and had not
2555once had time to think of what lay before her.
2556
2557In the damp chill air and crowded closeness of the swaying carriage,
2558she for the first time vividly imagined what was in store for her
2559there at the ball, in those brightly lighted rooms--with music,
2560flowers, dances, the Emperor, and all the brilliant young people of
2561Petersburg. The prospect was so splendid that she hardly believed it
2562would come true, so out of keeping was it with the chill darkness
2563and closeness of the carriage. She understood all that awaited her
2564only when, after stepping over the red baize at the entrance, she
2565entered the hall, took off her fur cloak, and, beside Sonya and in
2566front of her mother, mounted the brightly illuminated stairs between
2567the flowers. Only then did she remember how she must behave at a ball,
2568and tried to assume the majestic air she considered indispensable
2569for a girl on such an occasion. But, fortunately for her, she felt her
2570eyes growing misty, she saw nothing clearly, her pulse beat a
2571hundred to the minute, and the blood throbbed at her heart. She
2572could not assume that pose, which would have made her ridiculous,
2573and she moved on almost fainting from excitement and trying with all
2574her might to conceal it. And this was the very attitude that became
2575her best. Before and behind them other visitors were entering, also
2576talking in low tones and wearing ball dresses. The mirrors on the
2577landing reflected ladies in white, pale-blue, and pink dresses, with
2578diamonds and pearls on their bare necks and arms.
2579
2580Natasha looked in the mirrors and could not distinguish her
2581reflection from the others. All was blended into one brilliant
2582procession. On entering the ballroom the regular hum of voices,
2583footsteps, and greetings deafened Natasha, and the light and glitter
2584dazzled her still more. The host and hostess, who had already been
2585standing at the door for half an hour repeating the same words to
2586the various arrivals, "Charme de vous voir,"* greeted the Rostovs
2587and Peronskaya in the same manner.
2588
2589
2590*"Delighted to see you."
2591
2592
2593The two girls in their white dresses, each with a rose in her
2594black hair, both curtsied in the same way, but the hostess' eye
2595involuntarily rested longer on the slim Natasha. She looked at her and
2596gave her alone a special smile in addition to her usual smile as
2597hostess. Looking at her she may have recalled the golden,
2598irrecoverable days of her own girlhood and her own first ball. The
2599host also followed Natasha with his eyes and asked the count which was
2600his daughter.
2601
2602"Charming!" said he, kissing the tips of his fingers.
2603
2604In the ballroom guests stood crowding at the entrance doors awaiting
2605the Emperor. The countess took up a position in one of the front
2606rows of that crowd. Natasha heard and felt that several people were
2607asking about her and looking at her. She realized that those
2608noticing her liked her, and this observation helped to calm her.
2609
2610"There are some like ourselves and some worse," she thought.
2611
2612Peronskaya was pointing out to the countess the most important
2613people at the ball.
2614
2615"That is the Dutch ambassador, do you see? That gray-haired man,"
2616she said, indicating an old man with a profusion of silver-gray
2617curly hair, who was surrounded by ladies laughing at something he
2618said.
2619
2620"Ah, here she is, the Queen of Petersburg, Countess Bezukhova," said
2621Peronskaya, indicating Helene who had just entered. "How lovely! She
2622is quite equal to Marya Antonovna. See how the men, young and old, pay
2623court to her. Beautiful and clever... they say Prince--is quite mad
2624about her. But see, those two, though not good-looking, are even
2625more run after."
2626
2627She pointed to a lady who was crossing the room followed by a very
2628plain daughter.
2629
2630"She is a splendid match, a millionairess," said Peronskaya. "And
2631look, here come her suitors."
2632
2633"That is Bezukhova's brother, Anatole Kuragin," she said, indicating
2634a handsome officer of the Horse Guards who passed by them with head
2635erect, looking at something over the heads of the ladies. "He's
2636handsome, isn't he? I hear they will marry him to that rich girl.
2637But your cousin, Drubetskoy, is also very attentive to her. They say
2638she has millions. Oh yes, that's the French ambassador himself!" she
2639replied to the countess' inquiry about Caulaincourt. "Looks as if he
2640were a king! All the same, the French are charming, very charming.
2641No one more charming in society. Ah, here she is! Yes, she is still
2642the most beautiful of them all, our Marya Antonovna! And how simply
2643she is dressed! Lovely! And that stout one in spectacles is the
2644universal Freemason," she went on, indicating Pierre. "Put him
2645beside his wife and he looks a regular buffoon!"
2646
2647Pierre, swaying his stout body, advanced, making way through the
2648crowd and nodding to right and left as casually and good-naturedly
2649as if he were passing through a crowd at a fair. He pushed through,
2650evidently looking for someone.
2651
2652Natasha looked joyfully at the familiar face of Pierre, "the
2653buffoon," as Peronskaya had called him, and knew he was looking for
2654them, and for her in particular. He had promised to be at the ball and
2655introduce partners to her.
2656
2657But before he reached them Pierre stopped beside a very handsome,
2658dark man of middle height, and in a white uniform, who stood by a
2659window talking to a tall man wearing stars and a ribbon. Natasha at
2660once recognized the shorter and younger man in the white uniform: it
2661was Bolkonski, who seemed to her to have grown much younger,
2662happier, and better-looking.
2663
2664"There's someone else we know--Bolkonski, do you see, Mamma?" said
2665Natasha, pointing out Prince Andrew. "You remember, he stayed a
2666night with us at Otradnoe."
2667
2668"Oh, you know him?" said Peronskaya. "I can't bear him. Il fait a
2669present la pluie et le beau temps.* He's too proud for anything.
2670Takes after his father. And he's hand in glove with Speranski, writing
2671some project or other. Just look how he treats the ladies! There's one
2672talking to him and he has turned away," she said, pointing at him.
2673"I'd give it to him if he treated me as he does those ladies."
2674
2675
2676*"He is all the rage just now.
2677
2678
2679
2680
2681
2682CHAPTER XVI
2683
2684
2685Suddenly everybody stirred, began talking, and pressed forward and
2686then back, and between the two rows, which separated, the Emperor
2687entered to the sounds of music that had immediately struck up.
2688Behind him walked his host and hostess. He walked in rapidly, bowing
2689to right and left as if anxious to get the first moments of the
2690reception over. The band played the polonaise in vogue at that time on
2691account of the words that had been set to it, beginning: "Alexander,
2692Elisaveta, all our hearts you ravish quite..." The Emperor passed on
2693to the drawing room, the crowd made a rush for the doors, and
2694several persons with excited faces hurried there and back again.
2695Then the crowd hastily retired from the drawing-room door, at which
2696the Emperor reappeared talking to the hostess. A young man, looking
2697distraught, pounced down on the ladies, asking them to move aside.
2698Some ladies, with faces betraying complete forgetfulness of all the
2699rules of decorum, pushed forward to the detriment of their toilets.
2700The men began to choose partners and take their places for the
2701polonaise.
2702
2703Everyone moved back, and the Emperor came smiling out of the drawing
2704room leading his hostess by the hand but not keeping time to the
2705music. The host followed with Marya Antonovna Naryshkina; then came
2706ambassadors, ministers, and various generals, whom Peronskaya
2707diligently named. More than half the ladies already had partners and
2708were taking up, or preparing to take up, their positions for the
2709polonaise. Natasha felt that she would be left with her mother and
2710Sonya among a minority of women who crowded near the wall, not
2711having been invited to dance. She stood with her slender arms
2712hanging down, her scarcely defined bosom rising and falling regularly,
2713and with bated breath and glittering, frightened eyes gazed straight
2714before her, evidently prepared for the height of joy or misery. She
2715was not concerned about the Emperor or any of those great people
2716whom Peronskaya was pointing out--she had but one thought: "Is it
2717possible no one will ask me, that I shall not be among the first to
2718dance? Is it possible that not one of all these men will notice me?
2719They do not even seem to see me, or if they do they look as if they
2720were saying, 'Ah, she's not the one I'm after, so it's not worth
2721looking at her!' No, it's impossible," she thought. "They must know
2722how I long to dance, how splendidly I dance, and how they would
2723enjoy dancing with me."
2724
2725The strains of the polonaise, which had continued for a considerable
2726time, had begun to sound like a sad reminiscence to Natasha's ears.
2727She wanted to cry. Peronskaya had left them. The count was at the
2728other end of the room. She and the countess and Sonya were standing by
2729themselves as in the depths of a forest amid that crowd of
2730strangers, with no one interested in them and not wanted by anyone.
2731Prince Andrew with a lady passed by, evidently not recognizing them.
2732The handsome Anatole was smilingly talking to a partner on his arm and
2733looked at Natasha as one looks at a wall. Boris passed them twice
2734and each time turned away. Berg and his wife, who were not dancing,
2735came up to them.
2736
2737This family gathering seemed humiliating to Natasha--as if there
2738were nowhere else for the family to talk but here at the ball. She did
2739not listen to or look at Vera, who was telling her something about her
2740own green dress.
2741
2742At last the Emperor stopped beside his last partner (he had danced
2743with three) and the music ceased. A worried aide-de-camp ran up to the
2744Rostovs requesting them to stand farther back, though as it was they
2745were already close to the wall, and from the gallery resounded the
2746distinct, precise, enticingly rhythmical strains of a waltz. The
2747Emperor looked smilingly down the room. A minute passed but no one had
2748yet begun dancing. An aide-de-camp, the Master of Ceremonies, went
2749up to Countess Bezukhova and asked her to dance. She smilingly
2750raised her hand and laid it on his shoulder without looking at him.
2751The aide-de-camp, an adept in his art, grasping his partner firmly
2752round her waist, with confident deliberation started smoothly, gliding
2753first round the edge of the circle, then at the corner of the room
2754he caught Helene's left hand and turned her, the only sound audible,
2755apart from the ever-quickening music, being the rhythmic click of
2756the spurs on his rapid, agile feet, while at every third beat his
2757partner's velvet dress spread out and seemed to flash as she whirled
2758round. Natasha gazed at them and was ready to cry because it was not
2759she who was dancing that first turn of the waltz.
2760
2761Prince Andrew, in the white uniform of a cavalry colonel, wearing
2762stockings and dancing shoes, stood looking animated and bright in
2763the front row of the circle not far from the Rostovs. Baron Firhoff
2764was talking to him about the first sitting of the Council of State
2765to be held next day. Prince Andrew, as one closely connected with
2766Speranski and participating in the work of the legislative commission,
2767could give reliable information about that sitting, concerning which
2768various rumors were current. But not listening to what Firhoff was
2769saying, he was gazing now at the sovereign and now at the men
2770intending to dance who had not yet gathered courage to enter the
2771circle.
2772
2773Prince Andrew was watching these men abashed by the Emperor's
2774presence, and the women who were breathlessly longing to be asked to
2775dance.
2776
2777Pierre came up to him and caught him by the arm.
2778
2779"You always dance. I have a protegee, the young Rostova, here. Ask
2780her," he said.
2781
2782"Where is she?" asked Bolkonski. "Excuse me!" he added, turning to
2783the baron, "we will finish this conversation elsewhere--at a ball
2784one must dance." He stepped forward in the direction Pierre indicated.
2785The despairing, dejected expression of Natasha's face caught his
2786eye. He recognized her, guessed her feelings, saw that it was her
2787debut, remembered her conversation at the window, and with an
2788expression of pleasure on his face approached Countess Rostova.
2789
2790"Allow me to introduce you to my daughter," said the countess,
2791with heightened color.
2792
2793"I have the pleasure of being already acquainted, if the countess
2794remembers me," said Prince Andrew with a low and courteous bow quite
2795belying Peronskaya's remarks about his rudeness, and approaching
2796Natasha he held out his arm to grasp her waist before he had completed
2797his invitation. He asked her to waltz. That tremulous expression on
2798Natasha's face, prepared either for despair or rapture, suddenly
2799brightened into a happy, grateful, childlike smile.
2800
2801"I have long been waiting for you," that frightened happy little
2802girl seemed to say by the smile that replaced the threatened tears, as
2803she raised her hand to Prince Andrew's shoulder. They were the
2804second couple to enter the circle. Prince Andrew was one of the best
2805dancers of his day and Natasha danced exquisitely. Her little feet
2806in their white satin dancing shoes did their work swiftly, lightly,
2807and independently of herself, while her face beamed with ecstatic
2808happiness. Her slender bare arms and neck were not beautiful--compared
2809to Helene's her shoulders looked thin and her bosom undeveloped. But
2810Helene seemed, as it were, hardened by a varnish left by the thousands
2811of looks that had scanned her person, while Natasha was like a girl
2812exposed for the first time, who would have felt very much ashamed
2813had she not been assured that this was absolutely necessary.
2814
2815Prince Andrew liked dancing, and wishing to escape as quickly as
2816possible from the political and clever talk which everyone addressed
2817to him, wishing also to break up the circle of restraint he
2818disliked, caused by the Emperor's presence, he danced, and had
2819chosen Natasha because Pierre pointed her out to him and because she
2820was the first pretty girl who caught his eye; but scarcely had he
2821embraced that slender supple figure and felt her stirring so close
2822to him and smiling so near him than the wine of her charm rose to
2823his head, and he felt himself revived and rejuvenated when after
2824leaving her he stood breathing deeply and watching the other dancers.
2825
2826
2827
2828
2829
2830CHAPTER XVII
2831
2832
2833After Prince Andrew, Boris came up to ask Natasha for dance, and
2834then the aide-de-camp who had opened the ball, and several other young
2835men, so that, flushed and happy, and passing on her superfluous
2836partners to Sonya, she did not cease dancing all the evening. She
2837noticed and saw nothing of what occupied everyone else. Not only did
2838she fail to notice that the Emperor talked a long time with the French
2839ambassador, and how particularly gracious he was to a certain lady, or
2840that Prince So-and-so and So-and-so did and said this and that, and
2841that Helene had great success and was honored was by the special
2842attention of So-and-so, but she did not even see the Emperor, and only
2843noticed that he had gone because the ball became livelier after his
2844departure. For one of the merry cotillions before supper Prince Andrew
2845was again her partner. He reminded her of their first encounter in the
2846Otradnoe avenue, and how she had been unable to sleep that moonlight
2847night, and told her how he had involuntarily overheard her. Natasha
2848blushed at that recollection and tried to excuse herself, as if
2849there had been something to be ashamed of in what Prince Andrew had
2850overheard.
2851
2852Like all men who have grown up in society, Prince Andrew liked
2853meeting someone there not of the conventional society stamp. And
2854such was Natasha, with her surprise, her delight, her shyness, and
2855even her mistakes in speaking French. With her he behaved with special
2856care and tenderness, sitting beside her and talking of the simplest
2857and most unimportant matters; he admired her shy grace. In the
2858middle of the cotillion, having completed one of the figures, Natasha,
2859still out of breath, was returning to her seat when another dancer
2860chose her. She was tired and panting and evidently thought of
2861declining, but immediately put her hand gaily on the man's shoulder,
2862smiling at Prince Andrew.
2863
2864"I'd be glad to sit beside you and rest: I'm tired; but you see
2865how they keep asking me, and I'm glad of it, I'm happy and I love
2866everybody, and you and I understand it all," and much, much more was
2867said in her smile. When her partner left her Natasha ran across the
2868room to choose two ladies for the figure.
2869
2870"If she goes to her cousin first and then to another lady, she
2871will be my wife," said Prince Andrew to himself quite to his own
2872surprise, as he watched her. She did go first to her cousin.
2873
2874"What rubbish sometimes enters one's head!" thought Prince Andrew,
2875"but what is certain is that that girl is so charming, so original,
2876that she won't be dancing here a month before she will be
2877married.... Such as she are rare here," he thought, as Natasha,
2878readjusting a rose that was slipping on her bodice, settled herself
2879beside him.
2880
2881When the cotillion was over the old count in his blue coat came up
2882to the dancers. He invited Prince Andrew to come and see them, and
2883asked his daughter whether she was enjoying herself. Natasha did not
2884answer at once but only looked up with a smile that said
2885reproachfully: "How can you ask such a question?"
2886
2887"I have never enjoyed myself so much before!" she said, and Prince
2888Andrew noticed how her thin arms rose quickly as if to embrace her
2889father and instantly dropped again. Natasha was happier than she had
2890ever been in her life. She was at that height of bliss when one
2891becomes completely kind and good and does not believe in the
2892possibility of evil, unhappiness, or sorrow.
2893
2894At that ball Pierre for the first time felt humiliated by the
2895position his wife occupied in court circles. He was gloomy and
2896absent-minded. A deep furrow ran across his forehead, and standing
2897by a window he stared over his spectacles seeing no one.
2898
2899On her way to supper Natasha passed him.
2900
2901Pierre's gloomy, unhappy look struck her. She stopped in front of
2902him. She wished to help him, to bestow on him the superabundance of
2903her own happiness.
2904
2905"How delightful it is, Count!" said she. "Isn't it?"
2906
2907Pierre smiled absent-mindedly, evidently not grasping what she said.
2908
2909"Yes, I am very glad," he said.
2910
2911"How can people be dissatisfied with anything?" thought Natasha.
2912"Especially such a capital fellow as Bezukhov!" In Natasha's eyes
2913all the people at the ball alike were good, kind, and splendid people,
2914loving one another; none of them capable of injuring another--and so
2915they ought all to be happy.
2916
2917
2918
2919
2920
2921CHAPTER XVIII
2922
2923
2924Next day Prince Andrew thought of the ball, but his mind did not
2925dwell on it long. "Yes, it was a very brilliant ball," and then...
2926"Yes, that little Rostova is very charming. There's something fresh,
2927original, un-Petersburg-like about her that distinguishes her." That
2928was all he thought about yesterday's ball, and after his morning tea
2929he set to work.
2930
2931But either from fatigue or want of sleep he was ill-disposed for
2932work and could get nothing done. He kept criticizing his own work,
2933as he often did, and was glad when he heard someone coming.
2934
2935The visitor was Bitski, who served on various committees, frequented
2936all the societies in Petersburg, and a passionate devotee of the new
2937ideas and of Speranski, and a diligent Petersburg newsmonger--one of
2938those men who choose their opinions like their clothes according to
2939the fashion, but who for that very reason appear to be the warmest
2940partisans. Hardly had he got rid of his hat before he ran into
2941Prince Andrew's room with a preoccupied air and at once began talking.
2942He had just heard particulars of that morning's sitting of the Council
2943of State opened by the Emperor, and he spoke of it enthusiastically.
2944The Emperor's speech had been extraordinary. It had been a speech such
2945as only constitutional monarchs deliver. "The Sovereign plainly said
2946that the Council and Senate are estates of the realm, he said that the
2947government must rest not on authority but on secure bases. The Emperor
2948said that the fiscal system must be reorganized and the accounts
2949published," recounted Bitski, emphasizing certain words and opening
2950his eyes significantly.
2951
2952"Ah, yes! Today's events mark an epoch, the greatest epoch in our
2953history," he concluded.
2954
2955Prince Andrew listened to the account of the opening of the
2956Council of State, which he had so impatiently awaited and to which
2957he had attached such importance, and was surprised that this event,
2958now that it had taken place, did not affect him, and even seemed quite
2959insignificant. He listened with quiet irony to Bitski's enthusiastic
2960account of it. A very simple thought occurred to him: "What does it
2961matter to me or to Bitski what the Emperor was pleased to say at the
2962Council? Can all that make me any happier or better?"
2963
2964And this simple reflection suddenly destroyed all the interest
2965Prince Andrew had felt in the impending reforms. He was going to
2966dine that evening at Speranski's, "with only a few friends," as the
2967host had said when inviting him. The prospect of that dinner in the
2968intimate home circle of the man he so admired had greatly interested
2969Prince Andrew, especially as he had not yet seen Speranski in his
2970domestic surroundings, but now he felt disinclined to go to it.
2971
2972At the appointed hour, however, he entered the modest house
2973Speranski owned in the Taurida Gardens. In the parqueted dining room
2974this small house, remarkable for its extreme cleanliness (suggesting
2975that of a monastery), Prince Andrew, who was rather late, found the
2976friendly gathering of Speranski's intimate acquaintances already
2977assembled at five o'clock. There were no ladies present except
2978Speranski's little daughter (long-faced like her father) and her
2979governess. The other guests were Gervais, Magnitski, and Stolypin.
2980While still in the anteroom Prince Andrew heard loud voices and a
2981ringing staccato laugh--a laugh such as one hears on the stage.
2982Someone--it sounded like Speranski--was distinctly ejaculating
2983ha-ha-ha. Prince Andrew had never before heard Speranski's famous
2984laugh, and this ringing, high pitched laughter from a statesman made a
2985strange impression on him.
2986
2987He entered the dining room. The whole company were standing
2988between two windows at a small table laid with hors-d'oeuvres.
2989Speranski, wearing a gray swallow-tail coat with a star on the breast,
2990and evidently still the same waistcoat and high white stock he had
2991worn at the meeting of the Council of State, stood at the table with a
2992beaming countenance. His guests surrounded him. Magnitski,
2993addressing himself to Speranski, was relating an anecdote, and
2994Speranski was laughing in advance at what Magnitski was going to
2995say. When Prince Andrew entered the room Magnitski's words were
2996again crowned by laughter. Stolypin gave a deep bass guffaw as he
2997munched a piece of bread and cheese. Gervais laughed softly with a
2998hissing chuckle, and Speranski in a high-pitched staccato manner.
2999
3000Still laughing, Speranski held out his soft white hand to Prince
3001Andrew.
3002
3003"Very pleased to see you, Prince," he said. "One moment..." he
3004went on, turning to Magnitski and interrupting his story. "We have
3005agreed that this is a dinner for recreation, with not a word about
3006business!" and turning again to the narrator he began to laugh afresh.
3007
3008Prince Andrew looked at the laughing Speranski with astonishment,
3009regret, and disillusionment. It seemed to him that this was not
3010Speranski but someone else. Everything that had formerly appeared
3011mysterious and fascinating in Speranski suddenly became plain and
3012unattractive.
3013
3014At dinner the conversation did not cease for a moment and seemed
3015to consist of the contents of a book of funny anecdotes. Before
3016Magnitski had finished his story someone else was anxious to relate
3017something still funnier. Most of the anecdotes, if not relating to the
3018state service, related to people in the service. It seemed that in
3019this company the insignificance of those people was so definitely
3020accepted that the only possible attitude toward them was one of good
3021humored ridicule. Speranski related how at the Council that morning
3022a deaf dignitary, when asked his opinion, replied that he thought so
3023too. Gervais gave a long account of an official revision, remarkable
3024for the stupidity of everybody concerned. Stolypin, stuttering,
3025broke into the conversation and began excitedly talking of the
3026abuses that existed under the former order of things--threatening to
3027give a serious turn to the conversation. Magnitski starting quizzing
3028Stolypin about his vehemence. Gervais intervened with a joke, and
3029the talk reverted to its former lively tone.
3030
3031Evidently Speranski liked to rest after his labors and find
3032amusement in a circle of friends, and his guests, understanding his
3033wish, tried to enliven him and amuse themselves. But their gaiety
3034seemed to Prince Andrew mirthless and tiresome. Speranski's
3035high-pitched voice struck him unpleasantly, and the incessant laughter
3036grated on him like a false note. Prince Andrew did not laugh and
3037feared that he would be a damper on the spirits of the company, but no
3038one took any notice of his being out of harmony with the general mood.
3039They all seemed very gay.
3040
3041He tried several times to join in the conversation, but his
3042remarks were tossed aside each time like a cork thrown out of the
3043water, and he could not jest with them.
3044
3045There was nothing wrong or unseemly in what they said, it was
3046witty and might have been funny, but it lacked just that something
3047which is the salt of mirth, and they were not even aware that such a
3048thing existed.
3049
3050After dinner Speranski's daughter and her governess rose. He
3051patted the little girl with his white hand and kissed her. And that
3052gesture, too, seemed unnatural to Prince Andrew.
3053
3054The men remained at table over their port--English fashion. In the
3055midst of a conversation that was started about Napoleon's Spanish
3056affairs, which they all agreed in approving, Prince Andrew began to
3057express a contrary opinion. Speranski smiled and, with an evident wish
3058to prevent the conversation from taking an unpleasant course, told a
3059story that had no connection with the previous conversation. For a few
3060moments all were silent.
3061
3062Having sat some time at table, Speranski corked a bottle of wine
3063and, remarking, "Nowadays good wine rides in a carriage and pair,"
3064passed it to the servant and got up. All rose and continuing to talk
3065loudly went into the drawing room. Two letters brought by a courier
3066were handed to Speranski and he took them to his study. As soon as
3067he had left the room the general merriment stopped and the guests
3068began to converse sensibly and quietly with one another.
3069
3070"Now for the recitation!" said Speranski on returning from his
3071study. "A wonderful talent!" he said to Prince Andrew, and Magnitski
3072immediately assumed a pose and began reciting some humorous verses
3073in French which he had composed about various well-known Petersburg
3074people. He was interrupted several times by applause. When the
3075verses were finished Prince Andrew went up to Speranski and took his
3076leave.
3077
3078"Where are you off to so early?" asked Speranski.
3079
3080"I promised to go to a reception."
3081
3082They said no more. Prince Andrew looked closely into those
3083mirrorlike, impenetrable eyes, and felt that it had been ridiculous of
3084him to have expected anything from Speranski and from any of his own
3085activities connected with him, or ever to have attributed importance
3086to what Speranski was doing. That precise, mirthless laughter rang
3087in Prince Andrew's ears long after he had left the house.
3088
3089When he reached home Prince Andrew began thinking of his life in
3090Petersburg during those last four months as if it were something
3091new. He recalled his exertions and solicitations, and the history of
3092his project of army reform, which had been accepted for
3093consideration and which they were trying to pass over in silence
3094simply because another, a very poor one, had already been prepared and
3095submitted to the Emperor. He thought of the meetings of a committee of
3096which Berg was a member. He remembered how carefully and at what
3097length everything relating to form and procedure was discussed at
3098those meetings, and how sedulously and promptly all that related to
3099the gist of the business was evaded. He recalled his labors on the
3100Legal Code, and how painstakingly he had translated the articles of
3101the Roman and French codes into Russian, and he felt ashamed of
3102himself. Then he vividly pictured to himself Bogucharovo, his
3103occupations in the country, his journey to Ryazan; he remembered the
3104peasants and Dron the village elder, and mentally applying to them the
3105Personal Rights he had divided into paragraphs, he felt astonished
3106that he could have spent so much time on such useless work.
3107
3108
3109
3110
3111
3112CHAPTER XIX
3113
3114
3115Next day Prince Andrew called at a few houses he had not visited
3116before, and among them at the Rostovs' with whom he had renewed
3117acquaintance at the ball. Apart from considerations of politeness
3118which demanded the call, he wanted to see that original, eager girl
3119who had left such a pleasant impression on his mind, in her own home.
3120
3121Natasha was one of the first to meet him. She was wearing a
3122dark-blue house dress in which Prince Andrew thought her even prettier
3123than in her ball dress. She and all the Rostov family welcomed him
3124as an old friend, simply and cordially. The whole family, whom he
3125had formerly judged severely, now seemed to him to consist of
3126excellent, simple, and kindly people. The old count's hospitality
3127and good nature, which struck one especially in Petersburg as a
3128pleasant surprise, were such that Prince Andrew could not refuse to
3129stay to dinner. "Yes," he thought, "they are capital people, who of
3130course have not the slightest idea what a treasure they possess in
3131Natasha; but they are kindly folk and form the best possible setting
3132for this strikingly poetic, charming girl, overflowing with life!"
3133
3134In Natasha Prince Andrew was conscious of a strange world completely
3135alien to him and brimful of joys unknown to him, a different world,
3136that in the Otradnoe avenue and at the window that moonlight night had
3137already begun to disconcert him. Now this world disconcerted him no
3138longer and was no longer alien to him, but he himself having entered
3139it found in it a new enjoyment.
3140
3141After dinner Natasha, at Prince Andrew's request, went to the
3142clavichord and began singing. Prince Andrew stood by a window
3143talking to the ladies and listened to her. In the midst of a phrase he
3144ceased speaking and suddenly felt tears choking him, a thing he had
3145thought impossible for him. He looked at Natasha as she sang, and
3146something new and joyful stirred in his soul. He felt happy and at the
3147same time sad. He had absolutely nothing to weep about yet he was
3148ready to weep. What about? His former love? The little princess? His
3149disillusionments?... His hopes for the future?... Yes and no. The
3150chief reason was a sudden, vivid sense of the terrible contrast
3151between something infinitely great and illimitable within him and that
3152limited and material something that he, and even she, was. This
3153contrast weighed on and yet cheered him while she sang.
3154
3155As soon as Natasha had finished she went up to him and asked how
3156he liked her voice. She asked this and then became confused, feeling
3157that she ought not to have asked it. He smiled, looking at her, and
3158said he liked her singing as he liked everything she did.
3159
3160Prince Andrew left the Rostovs' late in the evening. He went to
3161bed from habit, but soon realized that he could not sleep. Having
3162lit his candle he sat up in bed, then got up, then lay down again
3163not at all troubled by his sleeplessness: his soul was as fresh and
3164joyful as if he had stepped out of a stuffy room into God's own
3165fresh air. It did not enter his head that he was in love with Natasha;
3166he was not thinking about her, but only picturing her to himself,
3167and in consequence all life appeared in a new light. "Why do I strive,
3168why do I toil in this narrow, confined frame, when life, all life with
3169all its joys, is open to me?" said he to himself. And for the first
3170time for a very long while he began making happy plans for the future.
3171He decided that he must attend to his son's education by finding a
3172tutor and putting the boy in his charge, then he ought to retire
3173from the service and go abroad, and see England, Switzerland and
3174Italy. "I must use my freedom while I feel so much strength and
3175youth in me," he said to himself. "Pierre was right when he said one
3176must believe in the possibility of happiness in order to be happy, and
3177now I do believe in it. Let the dead bury their dead, but while one
3178has life one must live and be happy!" thought he.
3179
3180
3181
3182
3183
3184CHAPTER XX
3185
3186
3187One morning Colonel Berg, whom Pierre knew as he knew everybody in
3188Moscow and Petersburg, came to see him. Berg arrived in an
3189immaculate brand-new uniform, with his hair pomaded and brushed
3190forward over his temples as the Emperor Alexander wore his hair.
3191
3192"I have just been to see the countess, your wife. Unfortunately
3193she could not grant my request, but I hope, Count, I shall be more
3194fortunate with you," he said with a smile.
3195
3196"What is it you wish, Colonel? I am at your service."
3197
3198"I have now quite settled in my new rooms, Count" (Berg said this
3199with perfect conviction that this information could not but be
3200agreeable), "and so I wish to arrange just a small party for my own
3201and my wife's friends." (He smiled still more pleasantly.) "I wished
3202to ask the countess and you to do me the honor of coming to tea and to
3203supper."
3204
3205Only Countess Helene, considering the society of such people as
3206the Bergs beneath her, could be cruel enough to refuse such an
3207invitation. Berg explained so clearly why he wanted to collect at
3208his house a small but select company, and why this would give him
3209pleasure, and why though he grudged spending money on cards or
3210anything harmful, he was prepared to run into some expense for the
3211sake of good society--that Pierre could not refuse, and promised to
3212come.
3213
3214"But don't be late, Count, if I may venture to ask; about ten
3215minutes to eight, please. We shall make up a rubber. Our general is
3216coming. He is very good to me. We shall have supper, Count. So you
3217will do me the favor."
3218
3219Contrary to his habit of being late, Pierre on that day arrived at
3220the Bergs' house, not at ten but at fifteen minutes to eight.
3221
3222Having prepared everything necessary for the party, the Bergs were
3223ready for their guests' arrival.
3224
3225In their new, clean, and light study with its small busts and
3226pictures and new furniture sat Berg and his wife. Berg, closely
3227buttoned up in his new uniform, sat beside his wife explaining to
3228her that one always could and should be acquainted with people above
3229one, because only then does one get satisfaction from acquaintances.
3230
3231"You can get to know something, you can ask for something. See how I
3232managed from my first promotion." (Berg measured his life not by years
3233but by promotions.) "My comrades are still nobodies, while I am only
3234waiting for a vacancy to command a regiment, and have the happiness to
3235be your husband." (He rose and kissed Vera's hand, and on the way to
3236her straightened out a turned-up corner of the carpet.) "And how
3237have I obtained all this? Chiefly by knowing how to choose my
3238aquaintances. It goes without saying that one must be conscientious
3239and methodical."
3240
3241Berg smiled with a sense of his superiority over a weak woman, and
3242paused, reflecting that this dear wife of his was after all but a weak
3243woman who could not understand all that constitutes a man's dignity,
3244what it was ein Mann zu sein.* Vera at the same time smiling with a
3245sense of superiority over her good, conscientious husband, who all the
3246same understood life wrongly, as according to Vera all men did.
3247Berg, judging by his wife, thought all women weak and foolish. Vera,
3248judging only by her husband and generalizing from that observation,
3249supposed that all men, though they understand nothing and are
3250conceited and selfish, ascribe common sense to themselves alone.
3251
3252
3253*To be a man.
3254
3255
3256Berg rose and embraced his wife carefully, so as not to crush her
3257lace fichu for which he had paid a good price, kissing her straight on
3258the lips.
3259
3260"The only thing is, we mustn't have children too soon," he
3261continued, following an unconscious sequence of ideas.
3262
3263"Yes," answered Vera, "I don't at all want that. We must live for
3264society."
3265
3266"Princess Yusupova wore one exactly like this," said Berg,
3267pointing to the fichu with a happy and kindly smile.
3268
3269Just then Count Bezukhov was announced. Husband and wife glanced
3270at one another, both smiling with self-satisfaction, and each mentally
3271claiming the honor of this visit.
3272
3273"This is what what comes of knowing how to make acquaintances,"
3274thought Berg. "This is what comes of knowing how to conduct oneself."
3275
3276"But please don't interrupt me when I am entertaining the guests,"
3277said Vera, "because I know what interests each of them and what to say
3278to different people."
3279
3280Berg smiled again.
3281
3282"It can't be helped: men must sometimes have masculine
3283conversation," said he.
3284
3285They received Pierre in their small, new drawing-room, where it
3286was impossible to sit down anywhere without disturbing its symmetry,
3287neatness, and order; so it was quite comprehensible and not strange
3288that Berg, having generously offered to disturb the symmetry of an
3289armchair or of the sofa for his dear guest, but being apparently
3290painfully undecided on the matter himself, eventually left the visitor
3291to settle the question of selection. Pierre disturbed the symmetry
3292by moving a chair for himself, and Berg and Vera immediately began
3293their evening party, interrupting each other in their efforts to
3294entertain their guest.
3295
3296Vera, having decided in her own mind that Pierre ought to be
3297entertained with conversation about the French embassy, at once
3298began accordingly. Berg, having decided that masculine conversation
3299was required, interrupted his wife's remarks and touched on the
3300question of the war with Austria, and unconsciously jumped from the
3301general subject to personal considerations as to the proposals made
3302him to take part in the Austrian campaign and the reasons why he had
3303declined them. Though the conversation was very incoherent and Vera
3304was angry at the intrusion of the masculine element, both husband
3305and wife felt with satisfaction that, even if only one guest was
3306present, their evening had begun very well and was as like as two peas
3307to every other evening party with its talk, tea, and lighted candles.
3308
3309Before long Boris, Berg's old comrade, arrived. There was a shade of
3310condescension and patronage in his treatment of Berg and Vera. After
3311Boris came a lady with the colonel, then the general himself, then the
3312Rostovs, and the party became unquestionably exactly like all other
3313evening parties. Berg and Vera could not repress their smiles of
3314satisfaction at the sight of all this movement in their drawing
3315room, at the sound of the disconnected talk, the rustling of
3316dresses, and the bowing and scraping. Everything was just as everybody
3317always has it, especially so the general, who admired the apartment,
3318patted Berg on the shoulder, and with parental authority superintended
3319the setting out of the table for boston. The general sat down by Count
3320Ilya Rostov, who was next to himself the most important guest. The old
3321people sat with the old, the young with the young, and the hostess
3322at the tea table, on which stood exactly the same kind of cakes in a
3323silver cake basket as the Panins had at their party. Everything was
3324just as it was everywhere else.
3325
3326
3327
3328
3329
3330CHAPTER XXI
3331
3332
3333Pierre, as one of the principal guests, had to sit down to boston
3334with Count Rostov, the general, and the colonel. At the card table
3335he happened to be directly facing Natasha, and was struck by a curious
3336change that had come over her since the ball. She was silent, and
3337not only less pretty than at the ball, but only redeemed from
3338plainness by her look of gentle indifference to everything around.
3339
3340"What's the matter with her?" thought Pierre, glancing at her. She
3341was sitting by her sister at the tea table, and reluctantly, without
3342looking at him, made some reply to Boris who sat down beside her.
3343After playing out a whole suit and to his partner's delight taking
3344five tricks, Pierre, hearing greetings and the steps of someone who
3345had entered the room while he was picking up his tricks, glanced again
3346at Natasha.
3347
3348"What has happened to her?" he asked himself with still greater
3349surprise.
3350
3351Prince Andrew was standing before her, saying something to her
3352with a look of tender solicitude. She, having raised her head, was
3353looking up at him, flushed and evidently trying to master her rapid
3354breathing. And the bright glow of some inner fire that had been
3355suppressed was again alight in her. She was completely transformed and
3356from a plain girl had again become what she had been at the ball.
3357
3358Prince Andrew went up to Pierre, and the latter noticed a new and
3359youthful expression in his friend's face.
3360
3361Pierre changed places several times during the game, sitting now
3362with his back to Natasha and now facing her, but during the whole of
3363the six rubbers he watched her and his friend.
3364
3365"Something very important is happening between them," thought
3366Pierre, and a feeling that was both joyful and painful agitated him
3367and made him neglect the game.
3368
3369After six rubbers the general got up, saying that it was no use
3370playing like that, and Pierre was released. Natasha on one side was
3371talking with Sonya and Boris, and Vera with a subtle smile was
3372saying something to Prince Andrew. Pierre went up to his friend and,
3373asking whether they were talking secrets, sat down beside them.
3374Vera, having noticed Prince Andrew's attentions to Natasha, decided
3375that at a party, a real evening party, subtle allusions to the
3376tender passion were absolutely necessary and, seizing a moment when
3377Prince Andrew was alone, began a conversation with him about
3378feelings in general and about her sister. With so intellectual a guest
3379as she considered Prince Andrew to be, she felt that she had to employ
3380her diplomatic tact.
3381
3382When Pierre went up to them he noticed that Vera was being carried
3383away by her self-satisfied talk, but that Prince Andrew seemed
3384embarrassed, a thing that rarely happened with him.
3385
3386"What do you think?" Vera was saying with an arch smile. "You are so
3387discerning, Prince, and understand people's characters so well at a
3388glance. What do you think of Natalie? Could she be constant in her
3389attachments? Could she, like other women" (Vera meant herself),
3390"love a man once for all and remain true to him forever? That is
3391what I consider true love. What do you think, Prince?"
3392
3393"I know your sister too little," replied Prince Andrew, with a
3394sarcastic smile under which he wished to hide his embarrassment, "to
3395be able to solve so delicate a question, and then I have noticed
3396that the less attractive a woman is the more constant she is likely to
3397be," he added, and looked up Pierre who was just approaching them.
3398
3399"Yes, that is true, Prince. In our days," continued Vera--mentioning
3400"our days" as people of limited intelligence are fond of doing,
3401imagining that they have discovered and appraised the peculiarities of
3402"our days" and that human characteristics change with the times--"in
3403our days a girl has so much freedom that the pleasure of being courted
3404often stifles real feeling in her. And it must be confessed that
3405Natalie is very susceptible." This return to the subject of Natalie
3406caused Prince Andrew to knit his brows with discomfort: he was about
3407to rise, but Vera continued with a still more subtle smile:
3408
3409"I think no one has been more courted than she," she went on, "but
3410till quite lately she never cared seriously for anyone. Now you
3411know, Count," she said to Pierre, "even our dear cousin Boris, who,
3412between ourselves, was very far gone in the land of tenderness..."
3413(alluding to a map of love much in vogue at that time).
3414
3415Prince Andrew frowned and remained silent.
3416
3417"You are friendly with Boris, aren't you?" asked Vera.
3418
3419"Yes, I know him..."
3420
3421"I expect he has told you of his childish love for Natasha?"
3422
3423"Oh, there was childish love?" suddenly asked Prince Andrew,
3424blushing unexpectedly.
3425
3426"Yes, you know between cousins intimacy often leads to love. Le
3427cousinage est un dangereux voisinage.* Don't you think so?"
3428
3429
3430*"Cousinhood is a dangerous neighborhood."
3431
3432
3433"Oh, undoubtedly!" said Prince Andrew, and with sudden and unnatural
3434liveliness he began chaffing Pierre about the need to be very
3435careful with his fifty-year-old Moscow cousins, and in the midst of
3436these jesting remarks he rose, taking Pierre by the arm, and drew
3437him aside.
3438
3439"Well?" asked Pierre, seeing his friend's strange animation with
3440surprise, and noticing the glance he turned on Natasha as he rose.
3441
3442"I must... I must have a talk with you," said Prince Andrew. "You
3443know that pair of women's gloves?" (He referred to the Masonic
3444gloves given to a newly initiated Brother to present to the woman he
3445loved.) "I... but no, I will talk to you later on," and with a strange
3446light in his eyes and restlessness in his movements, Prince Andrew
3447approached Natasha and sat down beside her. Pierre saw how Prince
3448Andrew asked her something and how she flushed as she replied.
3449
3450But at that moment Berg came to Pierre and began insisting that he
3451should take part in an argument between the general and the colonel on
3452the affairs in Spain.
3453
3454Berg was satisfied and happy. The smile of pleasure never left his
3455face. The party was very successful and quite like other parties he
3456had seen. Everything was similar: the ladies' subtle talk, the
3457cards, the general raising his voice at the card table, and the
3458samovar and the tea cakes; only one thing was lacking that he had
3459always seen at the evening parties he wished to imitate. They had
3460not yet had a loud conversation among the men and a dispute about
3461something important and clever. Now the general had begun such a
3462discussion and so Berg drew Pierre to it.
3463
3464
3465
3466
3467
3468CHAPTER XXII
3469
3470
3471Next day, having been invited by the count, Prince Andrew dined with
3472the Rostovs and spent the rest of the day there.
3473
3474Everyone in the house realized for whose sake Prince Andrew came,
3475and without concealing it he tried to be with Natasha all day. Not
3476only in the soul of the frightened yet happy and enraptured Natasha,
3477but in the whole house, there was a feeling of awe at something
3478important that was bound to happen. The countess looked with sad and
3479sternly serious eyes at Prince Andrew when he talked to Natasha and
3480timidly started some artificial conversation about trifles as soon
3481as he looked her way. Sonya was afraid to leave Natasha and afraid
3482of being in the way when she was with them. Natasha grew pale, in a
3483panic of expectation, when she remained alone with him for a moment.
3484Prince Andrew surprised her by his timidity. She felt that he wanted
3485to say something to her but could not bring himself to do so.
3486
3487In the evening, when Prince Andrew had left, the countess went up to
3488Natasha and whispered: "Well, what?"
3489
3490"Mamma! For heaven's sake don't ask me anything now! One can't
3491talk about that," said Natasha.
3492
3493But all the same that night Natasha, now agitated and now
3494frightened, lay a long time in her mother's bed gazing straight
3495before her. She told her how he had complimented her, how he told
3496her he was going abroad, asked her where they were going to spend
3497the summer, and then how he had asked her about Boris.
3498
3499"But such a... such a... never happened to me before!" she said.
3500"Only I feel afraid in his presence. I am always afraid when I'm
3501with him. What does that mean? Does it mean that it's the real
3502thing? Yes? Mamma, are you asleep?"
3503
3504"No, my love; I am frightened myself," answered her mother. "Now
3505go!"
3506
3507"All the same I shan't sleep. What silliness, to sleep! Mummy!
3508Mummy! such a thing never happened to me before," she said,
3509surprised and alarmed at the feeling she was aware of in herself. "And
3510could we ever have thought!..."
3511
3512It seemed to Natasha that even at the time she first saw Prince
3513Andrew at Otradnoe she had fallen in love with him. It was as if she
3514feared this strange, unexpected happiness of meeting again the very
3515man she had then chosen (she was firmly convinced she had done so) and
3516of finding him, as it seemed, not indifferent to her.
3517
3518"And it had to happen that he should come specially to Petersburg
3519while we are here. And it had to happen that we should meet at that
3520ball. It is fate. Clearly it is fate that everything led up to this!
3521Already then, directly I saw him I felt something peculiar."
3522
3523"What else did he say to you? What are those verses? Read them..."
3524said her mother, thoughtfully, referring to some verses Prince
3525Andrew had written in Natasha's album.
3526
3527"Mamma, one need not be ashamed of his being a widower?"
3528
3529"Don't, Natasha! Pray to God. 'Marriages are made in heaven,'"
3530said her mother.
3531
3532"Darling Mummy, how I love you! How happy I am!" cried Natasha,
3533shedding tears of joy and excitement and embracing her mother.
3534
3535At that very time Prince Andrew was sitting with Pierre and
3536telling him of his love for Natasha and his firm resolve to make her
3537his wife.
3538
3539That day Countess Helene had a reception at her house. The French
3540ambassador was there, and a foreign prince of the blood who had of
3541late become a frequent visitor of hers, and many brilliant ladies
3542and gentlemen. Pierre, who had come downstairs, walked through the
3543rooms and struck everyone by his preoccupied, absent-minded, and
3544morose air.
3545
3546Since the ball he had felt the approach of a fit of nervous
3547depression and had made desperate efforts to combat it. Since the
3548intimacy of his wife with the royal prince, Pierre had unexpectedly
3549been made a gentleman of the bedchamber, and from that time he had
3550begun to feel oppressed and ashamed in court society, and dark
3551thoughts of the vanity of all things human came to him oftener than
3552before. At the same time the feeling he had noticed between his
3553protegee Natasha and Prince Andrew accentuated his gloom by the
3554contrast between his own position and his friend's. He tried equally
3555to avoid thinking about his wife, and about Natasha and Prince Andrew;
3556and again everything seemed to him insignificant in comparison with
3557eternity; again the question: for what? presented itself; and he
3558forced himself to work day and night at Masonic labors, hoping to
3559drive away the evil spirit that threatened him. Toward midnight, after
3560he had left the countess' apartments, he was sitting upstairs in a
3561shabby dressing gown, copying out the original transaction of the
3562Scottish lodge of Freemasons at a table in his low room cloudy with
3563tobacco smoke, when someone came in. It was Prince Andrew.
3564
3565"Ah, it's you!" said Pierre with a preoccupied, dissatisfied air.
3566"And I, you see, am hard at it." He pointed to his manuscript book
3567with that air of escaping from the ills of life with which unhappy
3568people look at their work.
3569
3570Prince Andrew, with a beaming, ecstatic expression of renewed life
3571on his face, paused in front of Pierre and, not noticing his sad look,
3572smiled at him with the egotism of joy.
3573
3574"Well, dear heart," said he, "I wanted to tell you about it
3575yesterday and I have come to do so today. I never experienced anything
3576like it before. I am in love, my friend!"
3577
3578Suddenly Pierre heaved a deep sigh and dumped his heavy person
3579down on the sofa beside Prince Andrew.
3580
3581"With Natasha Rostova, yes?" said he.
3582
3583"Yes, yes! Who else should it be? I should never have believed it,
3584but the feeling is stronger than I. Yesterday I tormented myself and
3585suffered, but I would not exchange even that torment for anything in
3586the world, I have not lived till now. At last I live, but I can't live
3587without her! But can she love me?... I am too old for her.... Why
3588don't you speak?"
3589
3590"I? I? What did I tell you?" said Pierre suddenly, rising and
3591beginning to pace up and down the room. "I always thought it....
3592That girl is such a treasure... she is a rare girl.... My dear friend,
3593I entreat you, don't philosophize, don't doubt, marry, marry,
3594marry.... And I am sure there will not be a happier man than you."
3595
3596"But what of her?"
3597
3598"She loves you."
3599
3600"Don't talk rubbish..." said Prince Andrew, smiling and looking into
3601Pierre's eyes.
3602
3603"She does, I know," Pierre cried fiercely.
3604
3605"But do listen," returned Prince Andrew, holding him by the arm. "Do
3606you know the condition I am in? I must talk about it to someone."
3607
3608"Well, go on, go on. I am very glad," said Pierre, and his face
3609really changed, his brow became smooth, and he listened gladly to
3610Prince Andrew. Prince Andrew seemed, and really was, quite a
3611different, quite a new man. Where was his spleen, his contempt for
3612life, his disillusionment? Pierre was the only person to whom he
3613made up his mind to speak openly; and to him he told all that was in
3614his soul. Now he boldly and lightly made plans for an extended future,
3615said he could not sacrifice his own happiness to his father's caprice,
3616and spoke of how he would either make his father consent to this
3617marriage and love her, or would do without his consent; then he
3618marveled at the feeling that had mastered him as at something strange,
3619apart from and independent of himself.
3620
3621"I should not have believed anyone who told me that I was capable of
3622such love," said Prince Andrew. "It is not at all the same feeling
3623that I knew in the past. The whole world is now for me divided into
3624two halves: one half is she, and there all is joy, hope, light: the
3625other half is everything where she is not, and there is all gloom
3626and darkness...."
3627
3628"Darkness and gloom," reiterated Pierre: "yes, yes, I understand
3629that."
3630
3631"I cannot help loving the light, it is not my fault. And I am very
3632happy! You understand me? I know you are glad for my sake."
3633
3634"Yes, yes," Pierre assented, looking at his friend with a touched
3635and sad expression in his eyes. The brighter Prince Andrew's lot
3636appeared to him, the gloomier seemed his own.
3637
3638
3639
3640
3641
3642CHAPTER XXIII
3643
3644
3645Prince Andrew needed his father's consent to his marriage, and to
3646obtain this he started for the country next day.
3647
3648His father received his son's communication with external composure,
3649but inward wrath. He could not comprehend how anyone could wish to
3650alter his life or introduce anything new into it, when his own life
3651was already ending. "If only they would let me end my days as I want
3652to," thought the old man, "then they might do as they please." With
3653his son, however, he employed the diplomacy he reserved for
3654important occasions and, adopting a quiet tone, discussed the whole
3655matter.
3656
3657In the first place the marriage was not a brilliant one as regards
3658birth, wealth, or rank. Secondly, Prince Andrew was no longer as young
3659as he had been and his health was poor (the old man laid special
3660stress on this), while she was very young. Thirdly, he had a son
3661whom it would be a pity to entrust to a chit of a girl. "Fourthly
3662and finally," the father said, looking ironically at his son, "I beg
3663you to put it off for a year: go abroad, take a cure, look out as
3664you wanted to for a German tutor for Prince Nicholas. Then if your
3665love or passion or obstinacy--as you please--is still as great, marry!
3666And that's my last word on it. Mind, the last..." concluded the
3667prince, in a tone which showed that nothing would make him alter his
3668decision.
3669
3670Prince Andrew saw clearly that the old man hoped that his
3671feelings, or his fiancee's, would not stand a year's test, or that
3672he (the old prince himself) would die before then, and he decided to
3673conform to his father's wish--to propose, and postpone the wedding for
3674a year.
3675
3676Three weeks after the last evening he had spent with the Rostovs,
3677Prince Andrew returned to Petersburg.
3678
3679
3680Next day after her talk with her mother Natasha expected Bolkonski
3681all day, but he did not come. On the second and third day it was the
3682same. Pierre did not come either and Natasha, not knowing that
3683Prince Andrew had gone to see his father, could not explain his
3684absence to herself.
3685
3686Three weeks passed in this way. Natasha had no desire to go out
3687anywhere and wandered from room to room like a shadow, idle and
3688listless; she wept secretly at night and did not go to her mother in
3689the evenings. She blushed continually and was irritable. It seemed
3690to her that everybody knew about her disappointment and was laughing
3691at her and pitying her. Strong as was her inward grief, this wound
3692to her vanity intensified her misery.
3693
3694Once she came to her mother, tried to say something, and suddenly
3695began to cry. Her tears were those of an offended child who does not
3696know why it is being punished.
3697
3698The countess began to soothe Natasha, who after first listening to
3699her mother's words, suddenly interrupted her:
3700
3701"Leave off, Mamma! I don't think, and don't want to think about
3702it! He just came and then left off, left off..."
3703
3704Her voice trembled, and she again nearly cried, but recovered and
3705went on quietly:
3706
3707"And I don't at all want to get married. And I am afraid of him; I
3708have now become quite calm, quite calm."
3709
3710The day after this conversation Natasha put on the old dress which
3711she knew had the peculiar property of conducing to cheerfulness in the
3712mornings, and that day she returned to the old way of life which she
3713had abandoned since the ball. Having finished her morning tea she went
3714to the ballroom, which she particularly liked for its loud
3715resonance, and began singing her solfeggio. When she had finished
3716her first exercise she stood still in the middle of the room and
3717sang a musical phrase that particularly pleased her. She listened
3718joyfully (as though she had not expected it) to the charm of the notes
3719reverberating, filling the whole empty ballroom, and slowly dying
3720away; and all at once she felt cheerful. "What's the good of making so
3721much of it? Things are nice as it is," she said to herself, and she
3722began walking up and down the room, not stepping simply on the
3723resounding parquet but treading with each step from the heel to the
3724toe (she had on a new and favorite pair of shoes) and listening to the
3725regular tap of the heel and creak of the toe as gladly as she had to
3726the sounds of her own voice. Passing a mirror she glanced into it.
3727"There, that's me!" the expression of her face seemed to say as she
3728caught sight of herself. "Well, and very nice too! I need nobody."
3729
3730A footman wanted to come in to clear away something in the room
3731but she would not let him, and having closed the door behind him
3732continued her walk. That morning she had returned to her favorite
3733mood--love of, and delight in, herself. "How charming that Natasha
3734is!" she said again, speaking as some third, collective, male
3735person. "Pretty, a good voice, young, and in nobody's way if only they
3736leave her in peace." But however much they left her in peace she could
3737not now be at peace, and immediately felt this.
3738
3739In the hall the porch door opened, and someone asked, "At home?" and
3740then footsteps were heard. Natasha was looking at the mirror, but
3741did not see herself. She listened to the sounds in the hall. When
3742she saw herself, her face was pale. It was he. She knew this for
3743certain, though she hardly heard his voice through the closed doors.
3744
3745Pale and agitated, Natasha ran into the drawing room.
3746
3747"Mamma! Bolkonski has come!" she said. "Mamma, it is awful, it is
3748unbearable! I don't want... to be tormented? What am I to do?..."
3749
3750Before the countess could answer, Prince Andrew entered the room
3751with an agitated and serious face. As soon as he saw Natasha his
3752face brightened. He kissed the countess' hand and Natasha's, and sat
3753down beside the sofa.
3754
3755"It is long since we had the pleasure..." began the countess, but
3756Prince Andrew interrupted her by answering her intended question,
3757obviously in haste to say what he had to.
3758
3759"I have not been to see all this time because I have been at my
3760father's. I had to talk over a very important matter with him. I
3761only got back last night," he said glancing at Natasha; "I want to
3762have a talk with you, Countess," he added after a moment's pause.
3763
3764The countess lowered her eyes, sighing deeply.
3765
3766"I am at your disposal," she murmured.
3767
3768Natasha knew that she ought to go away, but was unable to do so:
3769something gripped her throat, and regardless of manners she stared
3770straight at Prince Andrew with wide-open eyes.
3771
3772"At once? This instant!... No, it can't be!" she thought.
3773
3774Again he glanced at her, and that glance convinced her that she
3775was not mistaken. Yes, at once, that very instant, her fate would be
3776decided.
3777
3778"Go, Natasha! I will call you," said the countess in a whisper.
3779
3780Natasha glanced with frightened imploring eyes at Prince Andrew
3781and at her mother and went out.
3782
3783"I have come, Countess, to ask for your daughter's hand," said
3784Prince Andrew.
3785
3786The countess' face flushed hotly, but she said nothing.
3787
3788"Your offer..." she began at last sedately. He remained silent,
3789looking into her eyes. "Your offer..." (she grew confused) "is
3790agreeable to us, and I accept your offer. I am glad. And my husband...
3791I hope... but it will depend on her...."
3792
3793"I will speak to her when I have your consent.... Do you give it
3794to me?" said Prince Andrew.
3795
3796"Yes," replied the countess. She held out her hand to him, and
3797with a mixed feeling of estrangement and tenderness pressed her lips
3798to his forehead as he stooped to kiss her hand. She wished to love him
3799as a son, but felt that to her he was a stranger and a terrifying man.
3800"I am sure my husband will consent," said the countess, "but your
3801father..."
3802
3803"My father, to whom I have told my plans, has made it an express
3804condition of his consent that the wedding is not to take place for a
3805year. And I wished to tell you of that," said Prince Andrew.
3806
3807"It is true that Natasha is still young, but--so long as that?..."
3808
3809"It is unavoidable," said Prince Andrew with a sigh.
3810
3811"I will send her to you," said the countess, and left the room.
3812
3813"Lord have mercy upon us!" she repeated while seeking her daughter.
3814
3815Sonya said that Natasha was in her bedroom. Natasha was sitting on
3816the bed, pale and dry eyed, and was gazing at the icons and whispering
3817something as she rapidly crossed herself. Seeing her mother she jumped
3818up and flew to her.
3819
3820"Well, Mamma?... Well?..."
3821
3822"Go, go to him. He is asking for your hand," said the countess,
3823coldly it seemed to Natasha. "Go... go," said the mother, sadly and
3824reproachfully, with a deep sigh, as her daughter ran away.
3825
3826Natasha never remembered how she entered the drawing room. When
3827she came in and saw him she paused. "Is it possible that this stranger
3828has now become everything to me?" she asked herself, and immediately
3829answered, "Yes, everything! He alone is now dearer to me than
3830everything in the world." Prince Andrew came up to her with downcast
3831eyes.
3832
3833"I have loved you from the very first moment I saw you. May I hope?"
3834
3835He looked at her and was struck by the serious impassioned
3836expression of her face. Her face said: "Why ask? Why doubt what you
3837cannot but know? Why speak, when words cannot express what one feels?"
3838
3839She drew near to him and stopped. He took her hand and kissed it.
3840
3841"Do you love me?"
3842
3843"Yes, yes!" Natasha murmured as if in vexation. Then she sighed
3844loudly and, catching her breath more and more quickly, began to sob.
3845
3846"What is it? What's the matter?"
3847
3848"Oh, I am so happy!" she replied, smiled through her tears, bent
3849over closer to him, paused for an instant as if asking herself whether
3850she might, and then kissed him.
3851
3852Prince Andrew held her hands, looked into her eyes, and did not find
3853in his heart his former love for her. Something in him had suddenly
3854changed; there was no longer the former poetic and mystic charm of
3855desire, but there was pity for her feminine and childish weakness,
3856fear at her devotion and trustfulness, and an oppressive yet joyful
3857sense of the duty that now bound him to her forever. The present
3858feeling, though not so bright and poetic as the former, was stronger
3859and more serious.
3860
3861"Did your mother tell you that it cannot be for a year?" asked
3862Prince Andrew, still looking into her eyes.
3863
3864"Is it possible that I--the 'chit of a girl,' as everybody called
3865me," thought Natasha--"is it possible that I am now to be the wife and
3866the equal of this strange, dear, clever man whom even my father
3867looks up to? Can it be true? Can it be true that there can be no
3868more playing with life, that now I am grown up, that on me now lies
3869a responsibility for my every word and deed? Yes, but what did he
3870ask me?"
3871
3872"No," she replied, but she had not understood his question.
3873
3874"Forgive me!" he said. "But you are so young, and I have already
3875been through so much in life. I am afraid for you, you do not yet know
3876yourself."
3877
3878Natasha listened with concentrated attention, trying but failing
3879to take in the meaning of his words.
3880
3881"Hard as this year which delays my happiness will be," continued
3882Prince Andrew, "it will give you time to be sure of yourself. I ask
3883you to make me happy in a year, but you are free: our engagement shall
3884remain a secret, and should you find that you do not love me, or
3885should you come to love..." said Prince Andrew with an unnatural
3886smile.
3887
3888"Why do you say that?" Natasha interrupted him. "You know that
3889from the very day you first came to Otradnoe I have loved you," she
3890cried, quite convinced that she spoke the truth.
3891
3892"In a year you will learn to know yourself...."
3893
3894"A whole year!" Natasha repeated suddenly, only now realizing that
3895the marriage was to be postponed for a year. "But why a year? Why a
3896year?..."
3897
3898Prince Andrew began to explain to her the reasons for this delay.
3899Natasha did not hear him.
3900
3901"And can't it be helped?" she asked. Prince Andrew did not reply,
3902but his face expressed the impossibility of altering that decision.
3903
3904"It's awful! Oh, it's awful! awful!" Natasha suddenly cried, and
3905again burst into sobs. "I shall die, waiting a year: it's
3906impossible, it's awful!" She looked into her lover's face and saw in
3907it a look of commiseration and perplexity.
3908
3909"No, no! I'll do anything!" she said, suddenly checking her tears.
3910"I am so happy."
3911
3912The father and mother came into the room and gave the betrothed
3913couple their blessing.
3914
3915From that day Prince Andrew began to frequent the Rostovs' as
3916Natasha's affianced lover.
3917
3918
3919
3920
3921
3922CHAPTER XXIV
3923
3924No betrothal ceremony took place and Natasha's engagement to
3925Bolkonski was not announced; Prince Andrew insisted on that. He said
3926that as he was responsible for the delay he ought to bear the whole
3927burden of it; that he had given his word and bound himself forever,
3928but that he did not wish to bind Natasha and gave her perfect freedom.
3929If after six months she felt that she did not love him she would
3930have full right to reject him. Naturally neither Natasha nor her
3931parents wished to hear of this, but Prince Andrew was firm. He came
3932every day to the Rostovs', but did not behave to Natasha as an
3933affianced lover: he did not use the familiar thou, but said you to
3934her, and kissed only her hand. After their engagement, quite
3935different, intimate, and natural relations sprang up between them.
3936It was as if they had not known each other till now. Both liked to
3937recall how they had regarded each other when as yet they were
3938nothing to one another; they felt themselves now quite different
3939beings: then they were artificial, now natural and sincere. At first
3940the family felt some constraint in intercourse with Prince Andrew;
3941he seemed a man from another world, and for a long time Natasha
3942trained the family to get used to him, proudly assuring them all
3943that he only appeared to be different, but was really just like all of
3944them, and that she was not afraid of him and no one else ought to
3945be. After a few days they grew accustomed to him, and without
3946restraint in his presence pursued their usual way of life, in which he
3947took his part. He could talk about rural economy with the count,
3948fashions with the countess and Natasha, and about albums and fancywork
3949with Sonya. Sometimes the household both among themselves and in his
3950presence expressed their wonder at how it had all happened, and at the
3951evident omens there had been of it: Prince Andrew's coming to Otradnoe
3952and their coming to Petersburg, and the likeness between Natasha and
3953Prince Andrew which her nurse had noticed on his first visit, and
3954Andrew's encounter with Nicholas in 1805, and many other incidents
3955betokening that it had to be.
3956
3957In the house that poetic dullness and quiet reigned which always
3958accompanies the presence of a betrothed couple. Often when all sitting
3959together everyone kept silent. Sometimes the others would get up and
3960go away and the couple, left alone, still remained silent. They rarely
3961spoke of their future life. Prince Andrew was afraid and ashamed to
3962speak of it. Natasha shared this as she did all his feelings, which
3963she constantly divined. Once she began questioning him about his
3964son. Prince Andrew blushed, as he often did now--Natasha
3965particularly liked it in him--and said that his son would not live
3966with them.
3967
3968"Why not?" asked Natasha in a frightened tone.
3969
3970"I cannot take him away from his grandfather, and besides..."
3971
3972"How I should have loved him!" said Natasha, immediately guessing
3973his thought; "but I know you wish to avoid any pretext for finding
3974fault with us."
3975
3976Sometimes the old count would come up, kiss Prince Andrew, and ask
3977his advice about Petya's education or Nicholas' service. The old
3978countess sighed as she looked at them; Sonya was always getting
3979frightened lest she should be in the way and tried to find excuses for
3980leaving them alone, even when they did not wish it. When Prince Andrew
3981spoke (he could tell a story very well), Natasha listened to him
3982with pride; when she spoke she noticed with fear and joy that he gazed
3983attentively and scrutinizingly at her. She asked herself in
3984perplexity: "What does he look for in me? He is trying to discover
3985something by looking at me! What if what he seeks in me is not there?"
3986Sometimes she fell into one of the mad, merry moods characteristic
3987of her, and then she particularly loved to hear and see how Prince
3988Andrew laughed. He seldom laughed, but when he did he abandoned
3989himself entirely to his laughter, and after such a laugh she always
3990felt nearer to him. Natasha would have been completely happy if the
3991thought of the separation awaiting her and drawing near had not
3992terrified her, just as the mere thought of it made him turn pale and
3993cold.
3994
3995On the eve of his departure from Petersburg Prince Andrew brought
3996with him Pierre, who had not been to the Rostovs' once since the ball.
3997Pierre seemed disconcerted and embarrassed. He was talking to the
3998countess, and Natasha sat down beside a little chess table with Sonya,
3999thereby inviting Prince Andrew to come too. He did so.
4000
4001"You have known Bezukhov a long time?" he asked. "Do you like him?"
4002
4003"Yes, he's a dear, but very absurd."
4004
4005And as usual when speaking of Pierre, she began to tell anecdotes of
4006his absent-mindedness, some of which had even been invented about him.
4007
4008"Do you know I have entrusted him with our secret? I have known
4009him from childhood. He has a heart of gold. I beg you, Natalie,"
4010Prince Andrew said with sudden seriousness--"I am going away and
4011heaven knows what may happen. You may cease to... all right, I know
4012I am not to say that. Only this, then: whatever may happen to you when
4013I am not here..."
4014
4015"What can happen?"
4016
4017"Whatever trouble may come," Prince Andrew continued, "I beg you,
4018Mademoiselle Sophie, whatever may happen, to turn to him alone for
4019advice and help! He is a most absent-minded and absurd fellow, but
4020he has a heart of gold."
4021
4022Neither her father, nor her mother, nor Sonya, nor Prince Andrew
4023himself could have foreseen how the separation from her lover would
4024act on Natasha. Flushed and agitated she went about the house all that
4025day, dry-eyed, occupied with most trivial matters as if not
4026understanding what awaited her. She did not even cry when, on taking
4027leave, he kissed her hand for the last time. "Don't go!" she said in a
4028tone that made him wonder whether he really ought not to stay and
4029which he remembered long afterwards. Nor did she cry when he was gone;
4030but for several days she sat in her room dry-eyed, taking no
4031interest in anything and only saying now and then, "Oh, why did he
4032go away?"
4033
4034But a fortnight after his departure, to the surprise of those around
4035her, she recovered from her mental sickness just as suddenly and
4036became her old self again, but with a change in her moral physiognomy,
4037as a child gets up after a long illness with a changed expression of
4038face.
4039
4040
4041
4042
4043
4044CHAPTER XXV
4045
4046
4047During that year after his son's departure, Prince Nicholas
4048Bolkonski's health and temper became much worse. He grew still more
4049irritable, and it was Princess Mary who generally bore the brunt of
4050his frequent fits of unprovoked anger. He seemed carefully to seek out
4051her tender spots so as to torture her mentally as harshly as possible.
4052Princess Mary had two passions and consequently two joys--her
4053nephew, little Nicholas, and religion--and these were the favorite
4054subjects of the prince's attacks and ridicule. Whatever was spoken
4055of he would bring round to the superstitiousness of old maids, or
4056the petting and spoiling of children. "You want to make him"--little
4057Nicholas--"into an old maid like yourself! A pity! Prince Andrew wants
4058a son and not an old maid," he would say. Or, turning to
4059Mademoiselle Bourienne, he would ask her in Princess Mary's presence
4060how she liked our village priests and icons and would joke about them.
4061
4062He continually hurt Princess Mary's feelings and tormented her,
4063but it cost her no effort to forgive him. Could he be to blame
4064toward her, or could her father, whom she knew loved her in spite of
4065it all, be unjust? And what is justice? The princess never thought
4066of that proud word "justice." All the complex laws of man centered for
4067her in one clear and simple law--the law of love and self-sacrifice
4068taught us by Him who lovingly suffered for mankind though He Himself
4069was God. What had she to do with the justice or injustice of other
4070people? She had to endure and love, and that she did.
4071
4072During the winter Prince Andrew had come to Bald Hills and had
4073been gay, gentle, and more affectionate than Princess Mary had known
4074him for a long time past. She felt that something had happened to him,
4075but he said nothing to her about his love. Before he left he had a
4076long talk with his father about something, and Princess Mary noticed
4077that before his departure they were dissatisfied with one another.
4078
4079Soon after Prince Andrew had gone, Princess Mary wrote to her friend
4080Julie Karagina in Petersburg, whom she had dreamed (as all girls
4081dream) of marrying to her brother, and who was at that time in
4082mourning for her own brother, killed in Turkey.
4083
4084
4085Sorrow, it seems, is our common lot, my dear, tender friend Julie.
4086
4087Your loss is so terrible that I can only explain it to myself as a
4088special providence of God who, loving you, wishes to try you and
4089your excellent mother. Oh, my friend! Religion, and religion alone,
4090can--I will not say comfort us--but save us from despair. Religion
4091alone can explain to us what without its help man cannot comprehend:
4092why, for what cause, kind and noble beings able to find happiness in
4093life--not merely harming no one but necessary to the happiness of
4094others--are called away to God, while cruel, useless, harmful persons,
4095or such as are a burden to themselves and to others, are left
4096living. The first death I saw, and one I shall never forget--that of
4097my dear sister-in-law--left that impression on me. Just as you ask
4098destiny why your splendid brother had to die, so I asked why that
4099angel Lise, who not only never wronged anyone, but in whose soul there
4100were never any unkind thoughts, had to die. And what do you think,
4101dear friend? Five years have passed since then, and already I, with my
4102petty understanding, begin to see clearly why she had to die, and in
4103what way that death was but an expression of the infinite goodness
4104of the Creator, whose every action, though generally
4105incomprehensible to us, is but a manifestation of His infinite love
4106for His creatures. Perhaps, I often think, she was too angelically
4107innocent to have the strength to perform all a mother's duties. As a
4108young wife she was irreproachable; perhaps she could not have been
4109so as a mother. As it is, not only has she left us, and particularly
4110Prince Andrew, with the purest regrets and memories, but probably
4111she will there receive a place I dare not hope for myself. But not
4112to speak of her alone, that early and terrible death has had the
4113most beneficent influence on me and on my brother in spite of all
4114our grief. Then, at the moment of our loss, these thoughts could not
4115occur to me; I should then have dismissed them with horror, but now
4116they are very clear and certain. I write all this to you, dear friend,
4117only to convince you of the Gospel truth which has become for me a
4118principle of life: not a single hair of our heads will fall without
4119His will. And His will is governed only by infinite love for us, and
4120so whatever befalls us is for our good.
4121
4122You ask whether we shall spend next winter in Moscow. In spite of my
4123wish to see you, I do not think so and do not want to do so. You
4124will be surprised to hear that the reason for this is Buonaparte!
4125The case is this: my father's health is growing noticeably worse, he
4126cannot stand any contradiction and is becoming irritable. This
4127irritability is, as you know, chiefly directed to political questions.
4128He cannot endure the notion that Buonaparte is negotiating on equal
4129terms with all the sovereigns of Europe and particularly with our own,
4130the grandson of the Great Catherine! As you know, I am quite
4131indifferent to politics, but from my father's remarks and his talks
4132with Michael Ivanovich I know all that goes on in the world and
4133especially about the honors conferred on Buonaparte, who only at
4134Bald Hills in the whole world, it seems, is not accepted as a great
4135man, still less as Emperor of France. And my father cannot stand this.
4136It seems to me that it is chiefly because of his political views
4137that my father is reluctant to speak of going to Moscow; for he
4138foresees the encounters that would result from his way of expressing
4139his views regardless of anybody. All the benefit he might derive
4140from a course of treatment he would lose as a result of the disputes
4141about Buonaparte which would be inevitable. In any case it will be
4142decided very shortly.
4143
4144Our family life goes on in the old way except for my brother
4145Andrew's absence. He, as I wrote you before, has changed very much
4146of late. After his sorrow he only this year quite recovered his
4147spirits. He has again become as I used to know him when a child: kind,
4148affectionate, with that heart of gold to which I know no equal. He has
4149realized, it seems to me, that life is not over for him. But
4150together with this mental change he has grown physically much
4151weaker. He has become thinner and more nervous. I am anxious about him
4152and glad he is taking this trip abroad which the doctors recommended
4153long ago. I hope it will cure him. You write that in Petersburg he
4154is spoken of as one of the most active, cultivated, and capable of the
4155young men. Forgive my vanity as a relation, but I never doubted it.
4156The good he has done to everybody here, from his peasants up to the
4157gentry, is incalculable. On his arrival in Petersburg he received only
4158his due. I always wonder at the way rumors fly from Petersburg to
4159Moscow, especially such false ones as that you write about--I mean the
4160report of my brother's betrothal to the little Rostova. I do not think
4161my brother will ever marry again, and certainly not her; and this is
4162why: first, I know that though he rarely speaks about the wife he
4163has lost, the grief of that loss has gone too deep in his heart for
4164him ever to decide to give her a successor and our little angel a
4165stepmother. Secondly because, as far as I know, that girl is not the
4166kind of girl who could please Prince Andrew. I do not think he would
4167choose her for a wife, and frankly I do not wish it. But I am
4168running on too long and am at the end of my second sheet. Good-by,
4169my dear friend. May God keep you in His holy and mighty care. My
4170dear friend, Mademoiselle Bourienne, sends you kisses.
4171
4172MARY
4173
4174
4175
4176
4177
4178CHAPTER XXVI
4179
4180
4181In the middle of the summer Princess Mary received an unexpected
4182letter from Prince Andrew in Switzerland in which he gave her
4183strange and surprising news. He informed her of his engagement to
4184Natasha Rostova. The whole letter breathed loving rapture for his
4185betrothed and tender and confiding affection for his sister. He
4186wrote that he had never loved as he did now and that only now did he
4187understand and know what life was. He asked his sister to forgive
4188him for not having told her of his resolve when he had last visited
4189Bald Hills, though he had spoken of it to his father. He had not
4190done so for fear Princess Mary should ask her father to give his
4191consent, irritating him and having to bear the brunt of his
4192displeasure without attaining her object. "Besides," he wrote, "the
4193matter was not then so definitely settled as it is now. My father then
4194insisted on a delay of a year and now already six months, half of that
4195period, have passed, and my resolution is firmer than ever. If the
4196doctors did not keep me here at the spas I should be back in Russia,
4197but as it is I have to postpone my return for three months. You know
4198me and my relations with Father. I want nothing from him. I have
4199been and always shall be independent; but to go against his will and
4200arouse his anger, now that he may perhaps remain with us such a
4201short time, would destroy half my happiness. I am now writing to him
4202about the same question, and beg you to choose a good moment to hand
4203him the letter and to let me know how he looks at the whole matter and
4204whether there is hope that he may consent to reduce the term by four
4205months."
4206
4207After long hesitations, doubts, and prayers, Princess Mary gave
4208the letter to her father. The next day the old prince said to her
4209quietly:
4210
4211"Write and tell your brother to wait till I am dead.... It won't
4212be long--I shall soon set him free."
4213
4214The princess was about to reply, but her father would not let her
4215speak and, raising his voice more and more, cried:
4216
4217"Marry, marry, my boy!... A good family!... Clever people, eh? Rich,
4218eh? Yes, a nice stepmother little Nicholas will have! Write and tell
4219him that he may marry tomorrow if he likes. She will be little
4220Nicholas' stepmother and I'll marry Bourienne!... Ha, ha, ha! He
4221mustn't be without a stepmother either! Only one thing, no more
4222women are wanted in my house--let him marry and live by himself.
4223Perhaps you will go and live with him too?" he added, turning to
4224Princess Mary. "Go in heavens name! Go out into the frost... the
4225frost... the frost!
4226
4227After this outburst the prince did not speak any more about the
4228matter. But repressed vexation at his son's poor-spirited behavior
4229found expression in his treatment of his daughter. To his former
4230pretexts for irony a fresh one was now added--allusions to stepmothers
4231and amiabilities to Mademoiselle Bourienne.
4232
4233"Why shouldn't I marry her?" he asked his daughter. "She'll make a
4234splendid princess!"
4235
4236And latterly, to her surprise and bewilderment, Princess Mary
4237noticed that her father was really associating more and more with
4238the Frenchwoman. She wrote to Prince Andrew about the reception of his
4239letter, but comforted him with hopes of reconciling their father to
4240the idea.
4241
4242Little Nicholas and his education, her brother Andrew, and
4243religion were Princess Mary's joys and consolations; but besides that,
4244since everyone must have personal hopes, Princess Mary in the
4245profoundest depths of her heart had a hidden dream and hope that
4246supplied the chief consolation of her life. This comforting dream
4247and hope were given her by God's folk--the half-witted and other
4248pilgrims who visited her without the prince's knowledge. The longer
4249she lived, the more experience and observation she had of life, the
4250greater was her wonder at the short-sightedness of men who seek
4251enjoyment and happiness here on earth: toiling, suffering, struggling,
4252and harming one another, to obtain that impossible, visionary,
4253sinful happiness. Prince Andrew had loved his wife, she died, but that
4254was not enough: he wanted to bind his happiness to another woman.
4255Her father objected to this because he wanted a more distinguished and
4256wealthier match for Andrew. And they all struggled and suffered and
4257tormented one another and injured their souls, their eternal souls,
4258for the attainment of benefits which endure but for an instant. Not
4259only do we know this ourselves, but Christ, the Son of God, came
4260down to earth and told us that this life is but for a moment and is
4261a probation; yet we cling to it and think to find happiness in it.
4262"How is it that no one realizes this?" thought Princess Mary. "No
4263one except these despised God's folk who, wallet on back, come to me
4264by the back door, afraid of being seen by the prince, not for fear
4265of ill-usage by him but for fear of causing him to sin. To leave
4266family, home, and all the cares of worldly welfare, in order without
4267clinging to anything to wander in hempen rags from place to place
4268under an assumed name, doing no one any harm but praying for all-
4269for those who drive one away as well as for those who protect one:
4270higher than that life and truth there is no life or truth!"
4271
4272There was one pilgrim, a quiet pockmarked little woman of fifty
4273called Theodosia, who for over thirty years had gone about barefoot
4274and worn heavy chains. Princess Mary was particularly fond of her.
4275Once, when in a room with a lamp dimly lit before the icon Theodosia
4276was talking of her life, the thought that Theodosia alone had found
4277the true path of life suddenly came to Princess Mary with such force
4278that she resolved to become a pilgrim herself. When Theodosia had gone
4279to sleep Princess Mary thought about this for a long time, and at last
4280made up her mind that, strange as it might seem, she must go on a
4281pilgrimage. She disclosed this thought to no one but to her confessor,
4282Father Akinfi, the monk, and he approved of her intention. Under guise
4283of a present for the pilgrims, Princess Mary prepared a pilgrim's
4284complete costume for herself: a coarse smock, bast shoes, a rough
4285coat, and a black kerchief. Often, approaching the chest of drawers
4286containing this secret treasure, Princess Mary paused, uncertain
4287whether the time had not already come to put her project into
4288execution.
4289
4290Often, listening to the pilgrims' tales, she was so stimulated by
4291their simple speech, mechanical to them but to her so full of deep
4292meaning, that several times she was on the point of abandoning
4293everything and running away from home. In imagination she already
4294pictured herself by Theodosia's side, dressed in coarse rags,
4295walking with a staff, a wallet on her back, along the dusty road,
4296directing her wanderings from one saint's shrine to another, free from
4297envy, earthly love, or desire, and reaching at last the place where
4298there is no more sorrow or sighing, but eternal joy and bliss.
4299
4300"I shall come to a place and pray there, and before having time to
4301get used to it or getting to love it, I shall go farther. I will go on
4302till my legs fail, and I'll lie down and die somewhere, and shall at
4303last reach that eternal, quiet haven, where there is neither sorrow
4304nor sighing..." thought Princess Mary.
4305
4306But afterwards, when she saw her father and especially little Koko
4307(Nicholas), her resolve weakened. She wept quietly, and felt that
4308she was a sinner who loved her father and little nephew more than God.
4309
4310
4311
4312
4313
4314BOOK SEVEN: 1810 --11
4315
4316
4317
4318
4319
4320CHAPTER I
4321
4322
4323The Bible legend tells us that the absence of labor--idleness--was a
4324condition of the first man's blessedness before the Fall. Fallen man
4325has retained a love of idleness, but the curse weighs on the race
4326not only because we have to seek our bread in the sweat of our
4327brows, but because our moral nature is such that we cannot be both
4328idle and at ease. An inner voice tells us we are in the wrong if we
4329are idle. If man could find a state in which he felt that though
4330idle he was fulfilling his duty, he would have found one of the
4331conditions of man's primitive blessedness. And such a state of
4332obligatory and irreproachable idleness is the lot of a whole class-
4333the military. The chief attraction of military service has consisted
4334and will consist in this compulsory and irreproachable idleness.
4335
4336Nicholas Rostov experienced this blissful condition to the full
4337when, after 1807, he continued to serve in the Pavlograd regiment,
4338in which he already commanded the squadron he had taken over from
4339Denisov.
4340
4341Rostov had become a bluff, good-natured fellow, whom his Moscow
4342acquaintances would have considered rather bad form, but who was liked
4343and respected by his comrades, subordinates, and superiors, and was
4344well contented with his life. Of late, in 1809, he found in letters
4345from home more frequent complaints from his mother that their
4346affairs were falling into greater and greater disorder, and that it
4347was time for him to come back to gladden and comfort his old parents.
4348
4349Reading these letters, Nicholas felt a dread of their wanting to
4350take him away from surroundings in which, protected from all the
4351entanglements of life, he was living so calmly and quietly. He felt
4352that sooner or later he would have to re-enter that whirlpool of life,
4353with its embarrassments and affairs to be straightened out, its
4354accounts with stewards, quarrels, and intrigues, its ties, society,
4355and with Sonya's love and his promise to her. It was all dreadfully
4356difficult and complicated; and he replied to his mother in cold,
4357formal letters in French, beginning: "My dear Mamma," and ending:
4358"Your obedient son," which said nothing of when he would return. In
43591810 he received letters from his parents, in which they told him of
4360Natasha's engagement to Bolkonski, and that the wedding would be in
4361a year's time because the old prince made difficulties. This letter
4362grieved and mortified Nicholas. In the first place he was sorry that
4363Natasha, for whom he cared more than for anyone else in the family,
4364should be lost to the home; and secondly, from his hussar point of
4365view, he regretted not to have been there to show that fellow
4366Bolkonski that connection with him was no such great honor after
4367all, and that if he loved Natasha he might dispense with permission
4368from his dotard father. For a moment he hesitated whether he should
4369not apply for leave in order to see Natasha before she was married,
4370but then came the maneuvers, and considerations about Sonya and
4371about the confusion of their affairs, and Nicholas again put it off.
4372But in the spring of that year, he received a letter from his
4373mother, written without his father's knowledge, and that letter
4374persuaded him to return. She wrote that if he did not come and take
4375matters in hand, their whole property would be sold by auction and
4376they would all have to go begging. The count was so weak, and
4377trusted Mitenka so much, and was so good-natured, that everybody
4378took advantage of him and things were going from bad to worse. "For
4379God's sake, I implore you, come at once if you do not wish to make
4380me and the whole family wretched," wrote the countess.
4381
4382This letter touched Nicholas. He had that common sense of a
4383matter-of-fact man which showed him what he ought to do.
4384
4385The right thing now was, if not to retire from the service, at any
4386rate to go home on leave. Why he had to go he did not know; but
4387after his after-dinner nap he gave orders to saddle Mars, an extremely
4388vicious gray stallion that had not been ridden for a long time, and
4389when he returned with the horse all in a lather, he informed Lavrushka
4390(Denisov's servant who had remained with him) and his comrades who
4391turned up in the evening that he was applying for leave and was
4392going home. Difficult and strange as it was for him to reflect that he
4393would go away without having heard from the staff--and this interested
4394him extremely--whether he was promoted to a captaincy or would receive
4395the Order of St. Anne for the last maneuvers; strange as it was to
4396think that he would go away without having sold his three roans to the
4397Polish Count Golukhovski, who was bargaining for the horses Rostov had
4398betted he would sell for two thousand rubles; incomprehensible as it
4399seemed that the ball the hussars were giving in honor of the Polish
4400Mademoiselle Przazdziecka (out of rivalry to the Uhlans who had
4401given one in honor of their Polish Mademoiselle Borzozowska) would
4402take place without him--he knew he must go away from this good, bright
4403world to somewhere where everything was stupid and confused. A week
4404later he obtained his leave. His hussar comrades--not only those of
4405his own regiment, but the whole brigade--gave Rostov a dinner to which
4406the subscription was fifteen rubles a head, and at which there were
4407two bands and two choirs of singers. Rostov danced the Trepak with
4408Major Basov; the tipsy officers tossed, embraced, and dropped
4409Rostov; the soldiers of the third squadron tossed him too, and shouted
4410"hurrah!" and then they put him in his sleigh and escorted him as
4411far as the first post station.
4412
4413During the first half of the journey--from Kremenchug to Kiev--all
4414Rostov's thoughts, as is usual in such cases, were behind him, with
4415the squadron; but when he had gone more than halfway he began to
4416forget his three roans and Dozhoyveyko, his quartermaster, and to
4417wonder anxiously how things would be at Otradnoe and what he would
4418find there. Thoughts of home grew stronger the nearer he approached
4419it--far stronger, as though this feeling of his was subject to the law
4420by which the force of attraction is in inverse proportion to the
4421square of the distance. At the last post station before Otradnoe he
4422gave the driver a three-ruble tip, and on arriving he ran
4423breathlessly, like a boy, up the steps of his home.
4424
4425After the rapture of meeting, and after that odd feeling of
4426unsatisfied expectation--the feeling that "everything is just the
4427same, so why did I hurry?"--Nicholas began to settle down in his old
4428home world. His father and mother were much the same, only a little
4429older. What was new in them was a certain uneasiness and occasional
4430discord, which there used not to be, and which, as Nicholas soon found
4431out, was due to the bad state of their affairs. Sonya was nearly
4432twenty; she had stopped growing prettier and promised nothing more
4433than she was already, but that was enough. She exhaled happiness and
4434love from the time Nicholas returned, and the faithful, unalterable
4435love of this girl had a gladdening effect on him. Petya and Natasha
4436surprised Nicholas most. Petya was a big handsome boy of thirteen,
4437merry, witty, and mischievous, with a voice that was already breaking.
4438As for Natasha, for a long while Nicholas wondered and laughed
4439whenever he looked at her.
4440
4441"You're not the same at all," he said.
4442
4443"How? Am I uglier?"
4444
4445"On the contrary, but what dignity? A princess!" he whispered to
4446her.
4447
4448"Yes, yes, yes!" cried Natasha, joyfully.
4449
4450She told him about her romance with Prince Andrew and of his visit
4451to Otradnoe and showed him his last letter.
4452
4453"Well, are you glad?" Natasha asked. "I am so tranquil and happy
4454now."
4455
4456"Very glad," answered Nicholas. "He is an excellent fellow.... And
4457are you very much in love?"
4458
4459"How shall I put it?" replied Natasha. "I was in love with Boris,
4460with my teacher, and with Denisov, but this is quite different. I feel
4461at peace and settled. I know that no better man than he exists, and
4462I am calm and contented now. Not at all as before."
4463
4464Nicholas expressed his disapproval of the postponement of the
4465marriage for a year; but Natasha attacked her brother with
4466exasperation, proving to him that it could not be otherwise, and
4467that it would be a bad thing to enter a family against the father's
4468will, and that she herself wished it so.
4469
4470"You don't at all understand," she said.
4471
4472Nicholas was silent and agreed with her.
4473
4474Her brother often wondered as he looked at her. She did not seem
4475at all like a girl in love and parted from her affianced husband.
4476She was even-tempered and calm and quite as cheerful as of old. This
4477amazed Nicholas and even made him regard Bolkonski's courtship
4478skeptically. He could not believe that her fate was sealed, especially
4479as he had not seen her with Prince Andrew. It always seemed to him
4480that there was something not quite right about this intended marriage.
4481
4482"Why this delay? Why no betrothal?" he thought. Once, when he had
4483touched on this topic with his mother, he discovered, to his
4484surprise and somewhat to his satisfaction, that in the depth of her
4485soul she too had doubts about this marriage.
4486
4487"You see he writes," said she, showing her son a letter of Prince
4488Andrew's, with that latent grudge a mother always has in regard to a
4489daughter's future married happiness, "he writes that he won't come
4490before December. What can be keeping him? Illness, probably! His
4491health is very delicate. Don't tell Natasha. And don't attach
4492importance to her being so bright: that's because she's living through
4493the last days of her girlhood, but I know what she is like every
4494time we receive a letter from him! However, God grant that
4495everything turns out well!" (She always ended with these words.) "He
4496is an excellent man!"
4497
4498
4499
4500
4501
4502CHAPTER II
4503
4504
4505After reaching home Nicholas was at first serious and even dull.
4506He was worried by the impending necessity of interfering in the stupid
4507business matters for which his mother had called him home. To throw
4508off this burden as quickly as possible, on the third day after his
4509arrival he went, angry and scowling and without answering questions as
4510to where he was going, to Mitenka's lodge and demanded an account of
4511everything. But what an account of everything might be Nicholas knew
4512even less than the frightened and bewildered Mitenka. The conversation
4513and the examination of the accounts with Mitenka did not last long.
4514The village elder, a peasant delegate, and the village clerk, who were
4515waiting in the passage, heard with fear and delight first the young
4516count's voice roaring and snapping and rising louder and louder, and
4517then words of abuse, dreadful words, ejaculated one after the other.
4518
4519"Robber!... Ungrateful wretch!... I'll hack the dog to pieces! I'm
4520not my father!... Robbing us!..." and so on.
4521
4522Then with no less fear and delight they saw how the young count, red
4523in the face and with bloodshot eyes, dragged Mitenka out by the scruff
4524of the neck and applied his foot and knee to his behind with great
4525agility at convenient moments between the words, shouting, "Be off!
4526Never let me see your face here again, you villain!"
4527
4528Mitenka flew headlong down the six steps and ran away into the
4529shrubbery. (This shrubbery was a well-known haven of refuge for
4530culprits at Otradnoe. Mitenka himself, returning tipsy from the
4531town, used to hide there, and many of the residents at Otradnoe,
4532hiding from Mitenka, knew of its protective qualities.)
4533
4534Mitenka's wife and sisters-in-law thrust their heads and
4535frightened faces out of the door of a room where a bright samovar
4536was boiling and where the steward's high bedstead stood with its
4537patchwork quilt.
4538
4539The young count paid no heed to them, but, breathing hard, passed by
4540with resolute strides and went into the house.
4541
4542The countess, who heard at once from the maids what had happened
4543at the lodge, was calmed by the thought that now their affairs would
4544certainly improve, but on the other hand felt anxious as to the effect
4545this excitement might have on her son. She went several times to his
4546door on tiptoe and listened, as he lighted one pipe after another.
4547
4548Next day the old count called his son aside and, with an embarrassed
4549smile, said to him:
4550
4551"But you know, my dear boy, it's a pity you got excited! Mitenka has
4552told me all about it."
4553
4554"I knew," thought Nicholas, "that I should never understand anything
4555in this crazy world."
4556
4557"You were angry that he had not entered those 700 rubles. But they
4558were carried forward--and you did not look at the other page."
4559
4560"Papa, he is a blackguard and a thief! I know he is! And what I have
4561done, I have done; but, if you like, I won't speak to him again."
4562
4563"No, my dear boy" (the count, too, felt embarrassed. He knew he
4564had mismanaged his wife's property and was to blame toward his
4565children, but he did not know how to remedy it). "No, I beg you to
4566attend to the business. I am old. I..."
4567
4568"No, Papa. Forgive me if I have caused you unpleasantness. I
4569understand it all less than you do."
4570
4571"Devil take all these peasants, and money matters, and carryings
4572forward from page to page," he thought. "I used to understand what a
4573'corner' and the stakes at cards meant, but carrying forward to
4574another page I don't understand at all," said he to himself, and after
4575that he did not meddle in business affairs. But once the countess
4576called her son and informed him that she had a promissory note from
4577Anna Mikhaylovna for two thousand rubles, and asked him what he
4578thought of doing with it.
4579
4580"This," answered Nicholas. "You say it rests with me. Well, I
4581don't like Anna Mikhaylovna and I don't like Boris, but they were
4582our friends and poor. Well then, this!" and he tore up the note, and
4583by so doing caused the old countess to weep tears of joy. After
4584that, young Rostov took no further part in any business affairs, but
4585devoted himself with passionate enthusiasm to what was to him a new
4586pursuit--the chase--for which his father kept a large establishment.
4587
4588
4589
4590
4591
4592CHAPTER III
4593
4594
4595The weather was already growing wintry and morning frosts
4596congealed an earth saturated by autumn rains. The verdure had
4597thickened and its bright green stood out sharply against the
4598brownish strips of winter rye trodden down by the cattle, and
4599against the pale-yellow stubble of the spring buckwheat. The wooded
4600ravines and the copses, which at the end of August had still been
4601green islands amid black fields and stubble, had become golden and
4602bright-red islands amid the green winter rye. The hares had already
4603half changed their summer coats, the fox cubs were beginning to
4604scatter, and the young wolves were bigger than dogs. It was the best
4605time of the year for the chase. The hounds of that ardent young
4606sportsman Rostov had not merely reached hard winter condition, but
4607were so jaded that at a meeting of the huntsmen it was decided to give
4608them a three days' rest and then, on the sixteenth of September, to go
4609on a distant expedition, starting from the oak grove where there was
4610an undisturbed litter of wolf cubs.
4611
4612All that day the hounds remained at home. It was frosty and the
4613air was sharp, but toward evening the sky became overcast and it began
4614to thaw. On the fifteenth, when young Rostov, in his dressing gown,
4615looked out of the window, he saw it was an unsurpassable morning for
4616hunting: it was as if the sky were melting and sinking to the earth
4617without any wind. The only motion in the air was that of the dripping,
4618microscopic particles of drizzling mist. The bare twigs in the
4619garden were hung with transparent drops which fell on the freshly
4620fallen leaves. The earth in the kitchen garden looked wet and black
4621and glistened like poppy seed and at a short distance merged into
4622the dull, moist veil of mist. Nicholas went out into the wet and muddy
4623porch. There was a smell of decaying leaves and of dog. Milka, a
4624black-spotted, broad-haunched bitch with prominent black eyes, got
4625up on seeing her master, stretched her hind legs, lay down like a
4626hare, and then suddenly jumped up and licked him right on his nose and
4627mustache. Another borzoi, a dog, catching sight of his master from the
4628garden path, arched his back and, rushing headlong toward the porch
4629with lifted tail, began rubbing himself against his legs.
4630
4631"O-hoy!" came at that moment, that inimitable huntsman's call
4632which unites the deepest bass with the shrillest tenor, and round
4633the corner came Daniel the head huntsman and head kennelman, a gray,
4634wrinkled old man with hair cut straight over his forehead, Ukrainian
4635fashion, a long bent whip in his hand, and that look of independence
4636and scorn of everything that is only seen in huntsmen. He doffed his
4637Circassian cap to his master and looked at him scornfully. This
4638scorn was not offensive to his master. Nicholas knew that this Daniel,
4639disdainful of everybody and who considered himself above them, was all
4640the same his serf and huntsman.
4641
4642"Daniel!" Nicholas said timidly, conscious at the sight of the
4643weather, the hounds, and the huntsman that he was being carried away
4644by that irresistible passion for sport which makes a man forget all
4645his previous resolutions, as a lover forgets in the presence of his
4646mistress.
4647
4648"What orders, your excellency?" said the huntsman in his deep
4649bass, deep as a proto-deacon's and hoarse with hallooing--and two
4650flashing black eyes gazed from under his brows at his master, who
4651was silent. "Can you resist it?" those eyes seemed to be asking.
4652
4653"It's a good day, eh? For a hunt and a gallop, eh?" asked
4654Nicholas, scratching Milka behind the ears.
4655
4656Daniel did not answer, but winked instead.
4657
4658"I sent Uvarka at dawn to listen," his bass boomed out after a
4659minute's pause. "He says she's moved them into the Otradnoe enclosure.
4660They were howling there." (This meant that the she-wolf, about whom
4661they both knew, had moved with her cubs to the Otradnoe copse, a small
4662place a mile and a half from the house.)
4663
4664"We ought to go, don't you think so?" said Nicholas. "Come to me
4665with Uvarka."
4666
4667"As you please."
4668
4669"Then put off feeding them."
4670
4671"Yes, sir."
4672
4673Five minutes later Daniel and Uvarka were standing in Nicholas'
4674big study. Though Daniel was not a big man, to see him in a room was
4675like seeing a horse or a bear on the floor among the furniture and
4676surroundings of human life. Daniel himself felt this, and as usual
4677stood just inside the door, trying to speak softly and not move, for
4678fear of breaking something in the master's apartment, and he
4679hastened to say all that was necessary so as to get from under that
4680ceiling, out into the open under the sky once more.
4681
4682Having finished his inquiries and extorted from Daniel an opinion
4683that the hounds were fit (Daniel himself wished to go hunting),
4684Nicholas ordered the horses to be saddled. But just as Daniel was
4685about to go Natasha came in with rapid steps, not having done up her
4686hair or finished dressing and with her old nurse's big shawl wrapped
4687round her. Petya ran in at the same time.
4688
4689"You are going?" asked Natasha. "I knew you would! Sonya said you
4690wouldn't go, but I knew that today is the sort of day when you
4691couldn't help going."
4692
4693"Yes, we are going," replied Nicholas reluctantly, for today, as
4694he intended to hunt seriously, he did not want to take Natasha and
4695Petya. "We are going, but only wolf hunting: it would be dull for
4696you."
4697
4698"You know it is my greatest pleasure," said Natasha. "It's not fair;
4699you are going by yourself, are having the horses saddled and said
4700nothing to us about it."
4701
4702"'No barrier bars a Russian's path'--we'll go!" shouted Petya.
4703
4704"But you can't. Mamma said you mustn't," said Nicholas to Natasha.
4705
4706"Yes, I'll go. I shall certainly go," said Natasha decisively.
4707"Daniel, tell them to saddle for us, and Michael must come with my
4708dogs," she added to the huntsman.
4709
4710It seemed to Daniel irksome and improper to be in a room at all, but
4711to have anything to do with a young lady seemed to him impossible.
4712He cast down his eyes and hurried out as if it were none of his
4713business, careful as he went not to inflict any accidental injury on
4714the young lady.
4715
4716
4717
4718
4719
4720CHAPTER IV
4721
4722
4723The old count, who had always kept up an enormous hunting
4724establishment but had now handed it all completely over to his son's
4725care, being in very good spirits on this fifteenth of September,
4726prepared to go out with the others.
4727
4728In an hour's time the whole hunting party was at the porch.
4729Nicholas, with a stern and serious air which showed that now was no
4730time for attending to trifles, went past Natasha and Petya who were
4731trying to tell him something. He had a look at all the details of
4732the hunt, sent a pack of hounds and huntsmen on ahead to find the
4733quarry, mounted his chestnut Donets, and whistling to his own leash of
4734borzois, set off across the threshing ground to a field leading to the
4735Otradnoe wood. The old count's horse, a sorrel gelding called
4736Viflyanka, was led by the groom in attendance on him, while the
4737count himself was to drive in a small trap straight to a spot reserved
4738for him.
4739
4740They were taking fifty-four hounds, with six hunt attendants and
4741whippers-in. Besides the family, there were eight borzoi kennelmen and
4742more than forty borzois, so that, with the borzois on the leash
4743belonging to members of the family, there were about a hundred and
4744thirty dogs and twenty horsemen.
4745
4746Each dog knew its master and its call. Each man in the hunt knew his
4747business, his place, what he had to do. As soon as they had passed the
4748fence they all spread out evenly and quietly, without noise or talk,
4749along the road and field leading to the Otradnoe covert.
4750
4751The horses stepped over the field as over a thick carpet, now and
4752then splashing into puddles as they crossed a road. The misty sky
4753still seemed to descend evenly and imperceptibly toward the earth, the
4754air was still, warm, and silent. Occasionally the whistle of a
4755huntsman, the snort of a horse, the crack of a whip, or the whine of a
4756straggling hound could be heard.
4757
4758When they had gone a little less than a mile, five more riders
4759with dogs appeared out of the mist, approaching the Rostovs. In
4760front rode a fresh-looking, handsome old man with a large gray
4761mustache.
4762
4763"Good morning, Uncle!" said Nicholas, when the old man drew near.
4764
4765"That's it. Come on!... I was sure of it," began "Uncle." (He was
4766a distant relative of the Rostovs', a man of small means, and their
4767neighbor.) "I knew you wouldn't be able to resist it and it's a good
4768thing you're going. That's it! Come on! (This was "Uncle's" favorite
4769expression.) "Take the covert at once, for my Girchik says the Ilagins
4770are at Korniki with their hounds. That's it. Come on!... They'll
4771take the cubs from under your very nose."
4772
4773"That's where I'm going. Shall we join up our packs?" asked
4774Nicholas.
4775
4776The hounds were joined into one pack, and "Uncle" and Nicholas
4777rode on side by side. Natasha, muffled up in shawls which did not hide
4778her eager face and shining eyes, galloped up to them. She was followed
4779by Petya who always kept close to her, by Michael, a huntsman, and
4780by a groom appointed to look after her. Petya, who was laughing,
4781whipped and pulled at his horse. Natasha sat easily and confidently on
4782her black Arabchik and reined him in without effort with a firm hand.
4783
4784"Uncle" looked round disapprovingly at Petya and Natasha. He did not
4785like to combine frivolity with the serious business of hunting.
4786
4787"Good morning, Uncle! We are going too!" shouted Petya.
4788
4789"Good morning, good morning! But don't go overriding the hounds,"
4790said "Uncle" sternly.
4791
4792"Nicholas, what a fine dog Trunila is! He knew me," said Natasha,
4793referring to her favorite hound.
4794
4795"In the first place, Trunila is not a 'dog,' but a harrier," thought
4796Nicholas, and looked sternly at his sister, trying to make her feel
4797the distance that ought to separate them at that moment. Natasha
4798understood it.
4799
4800"You mustn't think we'll be in anyone's way, Uncle," she said.
4801"We'll go to our places and won't budge."
4802
4803"A good thing too, little countess," said "Uncle," "only mind you
4804don't fall off your horse," he added, "because--that's it, come on!-
4805you've nothing to hold on to."
4806
4807The oasis of the Otradnoe covert came in sight a few hundred yards
4808off, the huntsmen were already nearing it. Rostov, having finally
4809settled with "Uncle" where they should set on the hounds, and having
4810shown Natasha where she was to stand--a spot where nothing could
4811possibly run out--went round above the ravine.
4812
4813"Well, nephew, you're going for a big wolf," said "Uncle." "Mind and
4814don't let her slip!"
4815
4816"That's as may happen," answered Rostov. "Karay, here!" he
4817shouted, answering "Uncle's" remark by this call to his borzoi.
4818Karay was a shaggy old dog with a hanging jowl, famous for having
4819tackled a big wolf unaided. They all took up their places.
4820
4821The old count, knowing his son's ardor in the hunt, hurried so as
4822not to be late, and the huntsmen had not yet reached their places when
4823Count Ilya Rostov, cheerful, flushed, and with quivering cheeks, drove
4824up with his black horses over the winter rye to the place reserved for
4825him, where a wolf might come out. Having straightened his coat and
4826fastened on his hunting knives and horn, he mounted his good, sleek,
4827well-fed, and comfortable horse, Viflyanka, which was turning gray,
4828like himself. His horses and trap were sent home. Count Ilya Rostov,
4829though not at heart a keen sportsman, knew the rules of the hunt well,
4830and rode to the bushy edge of the road where he was to stand, arranged
4831his reins, settled himself in the saddle, and, feeling that he was
4832ready, looked about with a smile.
4833
4834Beside him was Simon Chekmar, his personal attendant, an old
4835horseman now somewhat stiff in the saddle. Chekmar held in leash three
4836formidable wolfhounds, who had, however, grown fat like their master
4837and his horse. Two wise old dogs lay down unleashed. Some hundred
4838paces farther along the edge of the wood stood Mitka, the count's
4839other groom, a daring horseman and keen rider to hounds. Before the
4840hunt, by old custom, the count had drunk a silver cupful of mulled
4841brandy, taken a snack, and washed it down with half a bottle of his
4842favorite Bordeaux.
4843
4844He was somewhat flushed with the wine and the drive. His eyes were
4845rather moist and glittered more than usual, and as he sat in his
4846saddle, wrapped up in his fur coat, he looked like a child taken out
4847for an outing.
4848
4849The thin, hollow-cheeked Chekmar, having got everything ready,
4850kept glancing at his master with whom he had lived on the best of
4851terms for thirty years, and understanding the mood he was in
4852expected a pleasant chat. A third person rode up circumspectly through
4853the wood (it was plain that he had had a lesson) and stopped behind
4854the count. This person was a gray-bearded old man in a woman's
4855cloak, with a tall peaked cap on his head. He was the buffoon, who
4856went by a woman's name, Nastasya Ivanovna.
4857
4858"Well, Nastasya Ivanovna!" whispered the count, winking at him.
4859"If you scare away the beast, Daniel'll give it you!"
4860
4861"I know a thing or two myself!" said Nastasya Ivanovna.
4862
4863"Hush!" whispered the count and turned to Simon. "Have you seen
4864the young countess?" he asked. "Where is she?"
4865
4866"With young Count Peter, by the Zharov rank grass," answered
4867Simon, smiling. "Though she's a lady, she's very fond of hunting."
4868
4869"And you're surprised at the way she rides, Simon, eh?" said the
4870count. "She's as good as many a man!"
4871
4872"Of course! It's marvelous. So bold, so easy!"
4873
4874"And Nicholas? Where is he? By the Lyadov upland, isn't he?"
4875
4876"Yes, sir. He knows where to stand. He understands the matter so
4877well that Daniel and I are often quite astounded," said Simon, well
4878knowing what would please his master.
4879
4880"Rides well, eh? And how well he looks on his horse, eh?"
4881
4882"A perfect picture! How he chased a fox out of the rank grass by the
4883Zavarzinsk thicket the other day! Leaped a fearful place; what a sight
4884when they rushed from the covert... the horse worth a thousand
4885rubles and the rider beyond all price! Yes, one would have to search
4886far to find another as smart."
4887
4888"To search far..." repeated the count, evidently sorry Simon had not
4889said more. "To search far," he said, turning back the skirt of his
4890coat to get at his snuffbox.
4891
4892"The other day when he came out from Mass in full uniform, Michael
4893Sidorych..." Simon did not finish, for on the still air he had
4894distinctly caught the music of the hunt with only two or three
4895hounds giving tongue. He bent down his head and listened, shaking a
4896warning finger at his master. "They are on the scent of the cubs..."
4897he whispered, "straight to the Lyadov uplands."
4898
4899The count, forgetting to smooth out the smile on his face, looked
4900into the distance straight before him, down the narrow open space,
4901holding the snuffbox in his hand but not taking any. After the cry
4902of the hounds came the deep tones of the wolf call from Daniel's
4903hunting horn; the pack joined the first three hounds and they could be
4904heard in full cry, with that peculiar lift in the note that
4905indicates that they are after a wolf. The whippers-in no longer set on
4906the hounds, but changed to the cry of ulyulyu, and above the others
4907rose Daniel's voice, now a deep bass, now piercingly shrill. His voice
4908seemed to fill the whole wood and carried far beyond out into the open
4909field.
4910
4911After listening a few moments in silence, the count and his
4912attendant convinced themselves that the hounds had separated into
4913two packs: the sound of the larger pack, eagerly giving tongue,
4914began to die away in the distance, the other pack rushed by the wood
4915past the count, and it was with this that Daniel's voice was heard
4916calling ulyulyu. The sounds of both packs mingled and broke apart
4917again, but both were becoming more distant.
4918
4919Simon sighed and stooped to straighten the leash a young borzoi
4920had entangled; the count too sighed and, noticing the snuffbox in
4921his hand, opened it and took a pinch. "Back!" cried Simon to a
4922borzoi that was pushing forward out of the wood. The count started and
4923dropped the snuffbox. Nastasya Ivanovna dismounted to pick it up.
4924The count and Simon were looking at him.
4925
4926Then, unexpectedly, as often happens, the sound of the hunt suddenly
4927approached, as if the hounds in full cry and Daniel ulyulyuing were
4928just in front of them.
4929
4930The count turned and saw on his right Mitka staring at him with eyes
4931starting out of his head, raising his cap and pointing before him to
4932the other side.
4933
4934"Look out!" he shouted, in a voice plainly showing that he had
4935long fretted to utter that word, and letting the borzois slip he
4936galloped toward the count.
4937
4938The count and Simon galloped out of the wood and saw on their left a
4939wolf which, softly swaying from side to side, was coming at a quiet
4940lope farther to the left to the very place where they were standing.
4941The angry borzois whined and getting free of the leash rushed past the
4942horses' feet at the wolf.
4943
4944The wolf paused, turned its heavy forehead toward the dogs
4945awkwardly, like a man suffering from the quinsy, and, still slightly
4946swaying from side to side, gave a couple of leaps and with a swish
4947of its tail disappeared into the skirt of the wood. At the same
4948instant, with a cry like a wail, first one hound, then another, and
4949then another, sprang helter-skelter from the wood opposite and the
4950whole pack rushed across the field toward the very spot where the wolf
4951had disappeared. The hazel bushes parted behind the hounds and
4952Daniel's chestnut horse appeared, dark with sweat. On its long back
4953sat Daniel, hunched forward, capless, his disheveled gray hair hanging
4954over his flushed, perspiring face.
4955
4956"Ulyulyulyu! ulyulyu!..." he cried. When he caught sight of the
4957count his eyes flashed lightning.
4958
4959"Blast you!" he shouted, holding up his whip threateningly at the
4960count.
4961
4962"You've let the wolf go!... What sportsmen!" and as if scorning to
4963say more to the frightened and shamefaced count, he lashed the heaving
4964flanks of his sweating chestnut gelding with all the anger the count
4965had aroused and flew off after the hounds. The count, like a
4966punished schoolboy, looked round, trying by a smile to win Simon's
4967sympathy for his plight. But Simon was no longer there. He was
4968galloping round by the bushes while the field was coming up on both
4969sides, all trying to head the wolf, but it vanished into the wood
4970before they could do so.
4971
4972
4973
4974
4975
4976CHAPTER V
4977
4978
4979Nicholas Rostov meanwhile remained at his post, waiting for the
4980wolf. By the way the hunt approached and receded, by the cries of
4981the dogs whose notes were familiar to him, by the way the voices of
4982the huntsmen approached, receded, and rose, he realized what was
4983happening at the copse. He knew that young and old wolves were
4984there, that the hounds had separated into two packs, that somewhere
4985a wolf was being chased, and that something had gone wrong. He
4986expected the wolf to come his way any moment. He made thousands of
4987different conjectures as to where and from what side the beast would
4988come and how he would set upon it. Hope alternated with despair.
4989Several times he addressed a prayer to God that the wolf should come
4990his way. He prayed with that passionate and shame-faced feeling with
4991which men pray at moments of great excitement arising from trivial
4992causes. "What would it be to Thee to do this for me?" he said to
4993God. "I know Thou art great, and that it is a sin to ask this of Thee,
4994but for God's sake do let the old wolf come my way and let Karay
4995spring at it--in sight of 'Uncle' who is watching from over there--and
4996seize it by the throat in a death grip!" A thousand times during
4997that half-hour Rostov cast eager and restless glances over the edge of
4998the wood, with the two scraggy oaks rising above the aspen undergrowth
4999and the gully with its water-worn side and "Uncle's" cap just
5000visible above the bush on his right.
5001
5002"No, I shan't have such luck," thought Rostov, "yet what wouldn't it
5003be worth! It is not to be! Everywhere, at cards and in war, I am
5004always unlucky." Memories of Austerlitz and of Dolokhov flashed
5005rapidly and clearly through his mind. "Only once in my life to get
5006an old wolf, I want only that!" thought he, straining eyes and ears
5007and looking to the left and then to the right and listening to the
5008slightest variation of note in the cries of the dogs.
5009
5010Again he looked to the right and saw something running toward him
5011across the deserted field. "No, it can't be!" thought Rostov, taking a
5012deep breath, as a man does at the coming of something long hoped
5013for. The height of happiness was reached--and so simply, without
5014warning, or noise, or display, that Rostov could not believe his
5015eyes and remained in doubt for over a second. The wolf ran forward and
5016jumped heavily over a gully that lay in her path. She was an old
5017animal with a gray back and big reddish belly. She ran without
5018hurry, evidently feeling sure that no one saw her. Rostov, holding his
5019breath, looked round at the borzois. They stood or lay not seeing
5020the wolf or understanding the situation. Old Karay had turned his head
5021and was angrily searching for fleas, baring his yellow teeth and
5022snapping at his hind legs.
5023
5024"Ulyulyulyu!" whispered Rostov, pouting his lips. The borzois jumped
5025up, jerking the rings of the leashes and pricking their ears. Karay
5026finished scratching his hindquarters and, cocking his ears, got up
5027with quivering tail from which tufts of matted hair hung down.
5028
5029"Shall I loose them or not?" Nicholas asked himself as the wolf
5030approached him coming from the copse. Suddenly the wolf's whole
5031physiognomy changed: she shuddered, seeing what she had probably never
5032seen before--human eyes fixed upon her--and turning her head a
5033little toward Rostov, she paused.
5034
5035"Back or forward? Eh, no matter, forward..." the wolf seemed to
5036say to herself, and she moved forward without again looking round
5037and with a quiet, long, easy yet resolute lope.
5038
5039"Ulyulyu!" cried Nicholas, in a voice not his own, and of its own
5040accord his good horse darted headlong downhill, leaping over gullies
5041to head off the wolf, and the borzois passed it, running faster still.
5042Nicholas did not hear his own cry nor feel that he was galloping,
5043nor see the borzois, nor the ground over which he went: he saw only
5044the wolf, who, increasing her speed, bounded on in the same
5045direction along the hollow. The first to come into view was Milka,
5046with her black markings and powerful quarters, gaining upon the
5047wolf. Nearer and nearer... now she was ahead of it; but the wolf
5048turned its head to face her, and instead of putting on speed as she
5049usually did Milka suddenly raised her tail and stiffened her forelegs.
5050
5051"Ulyulyulyulyu!" shouted Nicholas.
5052
5053The reddish Lyubim rushed forward from behind Milka, sprang
5054impetuously at the wolf, and seized it by its hindquarters, but
5055immediately jumped aside in terror. The wolf crouched, gnashed her
5056teeth, and again rose and bounded forward, followed at the distance of
5057a couple of feet by all the borzois, who did not get any closer to
5058her.
5059
5060"She'll get away! No, it's impossible!" thought Nicholas, still
5061shouting with a hoarse voice.
5062
5063"Karay, ulyulyu!..." he shouted, looking round for the old borzoi
5064who was now his only hope. Karay, with all the strength age had left
5065him, stretched himself to the utmost and, watching the wolf,
5066galloped heavily aside to intercept it. But the quickness of the
5067wolf's lope and the borzoi's slower pace made it plain that Karay
5068had miscalculated. Nicholas could already see not far in front of
5069him the wood where the wolf would certainly escape should she reach
5070it. But, coming toward him, he saw hounds and a huntsman galloping
5071almost straight at the wolf. There was still hope. A long, yellowish
5072
5073young borzoi, one Nicholas did not know, from another leash, rushed
5074impetuously at the wolf from in front and almost knocked her over. But
5075the wolf jumped up more quickly than anyone could have expected and,
5076gnashing her teeth, flew at the yellowish borzoi, which, with a
5077piercing yelp, fell with its head on the ground, bleeding from a
5078gash in its side.
5079
5080"Karay? Old fellow!..." wailed Nicholas.
5081
5082Thanks to the delay caused by this crossing of the wolf's path,
5083the old dog with its felted hair hanging from its thigh was within
5084five paces of it. As if aware of her danger, the wolf turned her
5085eyes on Karay, tucked her tail yet further between her legs, and
5086increased her speed. But here Nicholas only saw that something
5087happened to Karay--the borzoi was suddenly on the wolf, and they
5088rolled together down into a gully just in front of them.
5089
5090That instant, when Nicholas saw the wolf struggling in the gully
5091with the dogs, while from under them could be seen her gray hair and
5092outstretched hind leg and her frightened choking head, with her ears
5093laid back (Karay was pinning her by the throat), was the happiest
5094moment of his life. With his hand on his saddlebow, he was ready to
5095dismount and stab the wolf, when she suddenly thrust her head up
5096from among that mass of dogs, and then her forepaws were on the edge
5097of the gully. She clicked her teeth (Karay no longer had her by the
5098throat), leaped with a movement of her hind legs out of the gully, and
5099having disengaged herself from the dogs, with tail tucked in again,
5100went forward. Karay, his hair bristling, and probably bruised or
5101wounded, climbed with difficulty out of the gully.
5102
5103"Oh my God! Why?" Nicholas cried in despair.
5104
5105"Uncle's" huntsman was galloping from the other side across the
5106wolf's path and his borzois once more stopped the animal's advance.
5107She was again hemmed in.
5108
5109Nicholas and his attendant, with "Uncle" and his huntsman, were
5110all riding round the wolf, crying "ulyulyu!" shouting and preparing to
5111dismount each moment that the wolf crouched back, and starting forward
5112again every time she shook herself and moved toward the wood where she
5113would be safe.
5114
5115Already, at the beginning of this chase, Daniel, hearing the
5116ulyulyuing, had rushed out from the wood. He saw Karay seize the wolf,
5117and checked his horse, supposing the affair to be over. But when he
5118saw that the horsemen did not dismount and that the wolf shook herself
5119and ran for safety, Daniel set his chestnut galloping, not at the wolf
5120but straight toward the wood, just as Karay had run to cut the
5121animal off. As a result of this, he galloped up to the wolf just
5122when she had been stopped a second time by "Uncle's" borzois.
5123
5124Daniel galloped up silently, holding a naked dagger in his left hand
5125and thrashing the laboring sides of his chestnut horse with his whip
5126as if it were a flail.
5127
5128Nicholas neither saw nor heard Daniel until the chestnut,
5129breathing heavily, panted past him, and he heard the fall of a body
5130and saw Daniel lying on the wolf's back among the dogs, trying to
5131seize her by the ears. It was evident to the dogs, the hunters, and to
5132the wolf herself that all was now over. The terrified wolf pressed
5133back her ears and tried to rise, but the borzois stuck to her.
5134Daniel rose a little, took a step, and with his whole weight, as if
5135lying down to rest, fell on the wolf, seizing her by the ears.
5136Nicholas was about to stab her, but Daniel whispered, "Don't! We'll
5137gag her!" and, changing his position, set his foot on the wolf's neck.
5138A stick was thrust between her jaws and she was fastened with a leash,
5139as if bridled, her legs were bound together, and Daniel rolled her
5140over once or twice from side to side.
5141
5142With happy, exhausted faces, they laid the old wolf, alive, on a
5143shying and snorting horse and, accompanied by the dogs yelping at her,
5144took her to the place where they were all to meet. The hounds had
5145killed two of the cubs and the borzois three. The huntsmen assembled
5146with their booty and their stories, and all came to look at the
5147wolf, which, with her broad-browed head hanging down and the bitten
5148stick between her jaws, gazed with great glassy eyes at this crowd
5149of dogs and men surrounding her. When she was touched, she jerked
5150her bound legs and looked wildly yet simply at everybody. Old Count
5151Rostov also rode up and touched the wolf.
5152
5153"Oh, what a formidable one!" said he. "A formidable one, eh?" he
5154asked Daniel, who was standing near.
5155
5156"Yes, your excellency," answered Daniel, quickly doffing his cap.
5157
5158The count remembered the wolf he had let slip and his encounter with
5159Daniel.
5160
5161"Ah, but you are a crusty fellow, friend!" said the count.
5162
5163For sole reply Daniel gave him a shy, childlike, meek, and amiable
5164smile.
5165
5166
5167
5168
5169
5170CHAPTER VI
5171
5172
5173The old count went home, and Natasha and Petya promised to return
5174very soon, but as it was still early the hunt went farther. At
5175midday they put the hounds into a ravine thickly overgrown with
5176young trees. Nicholas standing in a fallow field could see all his
5177whips.
5178
5179Facing him lay a field of winter rye, there his own huntsman stood
5180alone in a hollow behind a hazel bush. The hounds had scarcely been
5181loosed before Nicholas heard one he knew, Voltorn, giving tongue at
5182intervals; other hounds joined in, now pausing and now again giving
5183tongue. A moment later he heard a cry from the wooded ravine that a
5184fox had been found, and the whole pack, joining together, rushed along
5185the ravine toward the ryefield and away from Nicholas.
5186
5187He saw the whips in their red caps galloping along the edge of the
5188ravine, he even saw the hounds, and was expecting a fox to show itself
5189at any moment on the ryefield opposite.
5190
5191The huntsman standing in the hollow moved and loosed his borzois,
5192and Nicholas saw a queer, short-legged red fox with a fine brush going
5193hard across the field. The borzois bore down on it.... Now they drew
5194close to the fox which began to dodge between the field in sharper and
5195sharper curves, trailing its brush, when suddenly a strange white
5196borzoi dashed in followed by a black one, and everything was in
5197confusion; the borzois formed a star-shaped figure, scarcely swaying
5198their bodies and with tails turned away from the center of the
5199group. Two huntsmen galloped up to the dogs; one in a red cap, the
5200other, a stranger, in a green coat.
5201
5202"What's this?" thought Nicholas. "Where's that huntsman from? He
5203is not 'Uncle's' man."
5204
5205The huntsmen got the fox, but stayed there a long time without
5206strapping it to the saddle. Their horses, bridled and with high
5207saddles, stood near them and there too the dogs were lying. The
5208huntsmen waved their arms and did something to the fox. Then from that
5209spot came the sound of a horn, with the signal agreed on in case of
5210a fight.
5211
5212"That's Ilagin's huntsman having a row with our Ivan," said
5213Nicholas' groom.
5214
5215Nicholas sent the man to call Natasha and Petya to him, and rode
5216at a footpace to the place where the whips were getting the hounds
5217together. Several of the field galloped to the spot where the fight
5218was going on.
5219
5220Nicholas dismounted, and with Natasha and Petya, who had ridden
5221up, stopped near the hounds, waiting to see how the matter would
5222end. Out of the bushes came the huntsman who had been fighting and
5223rode toward his young master, with the fox tied to his crupper.
5224While still at a distance he took off his cap and tried to speak
5225respectfully, but he was pale and breathless and his face was angry.
5226One of his eyes was black, but he probably was not even aware of it.
5227
5228"What has happened?" asked Nicholas.
5229
5230"A likely thing, killing a fox our dogs had hunted! And it was my
5231gray bitch that caught it! Go to law, indeed!... He snatches at the
5232fox! I gave him one with the fox. Here it is on my saddle! Do you want
5233a taste of this?..." said the huntsman, pointing to his dagger and
5234probably imagining himself still speaking to his foe.
5235
5236Nicholas, not stopping to talk to the man, asked his sister and
5237Petya to wait for him and rode to the spot where the enemy's,
5238Ilagin's, hunting party was.
5239
5240The victorious huntsman rode off to join the field, and there,
5241surrounded by inquiring sympathizers, recounted his exploits.
5242
5243The facts were that Ilagin, with whom the Rostovs had a quarrel
5244and were at law, hunted over places that belonged by custom to the
5245Rostovs, and had now, as if purposely, sent his men to the very
5246woods the Rostovs were hunting and let his man snatch a fox their dogs
5247had chased.
5248
5249Nicholas, though he had never seen Ilagin, with his usual absence of
5250moderation in judgment, hated him cordially from reports of his
5251arbitrariness and violence, and regarded him as his bitterest foe.
5252He rode in angry agitation toward him, firmly grasping his whip and
5253fully prepared to take the most resolute and desperate steps to punish
5254his enemy.
5255
5256Hardly had he passed an angle of the wood before a stout gentleman
5257in a beaver cap came riding toward him on a handsome raven-black
5258horse, accompanied by two hunt servants.
5259
5260Instead of an enemy, Nicholas found in Ilagin a stately and
5261courteous gentleman who was particularly anxious to make the young
5262count's acquaintance. Having ridden up to Nicholas, Ilagin raised
5263his beaver cap and said he much regretted what had occurred and
5264would have the man punished who had allowed himself to seize a fox
5265hunted by someone else's borzois. He hoped to become better acquainted
5266with the count and invited him to draw his covert.
5267
5268Natasha, afraid that her brother would do something dreadful, had
5269followed him in some excitement. Seeing the enemies exchanging
5270friendly greetings, she rode up to them. Ilagin lifted his beaver
5271cap still higher to Natasha and said, with a pleasant smile, that
5272the young countess resembled Diana in her passion for the chase as
5273well as in her beauty, of which he had heard much.
5274
5275To expiate his huntsman's offense, Ilagin pressed the Rostovs to
5276come to an upland of his about a mile away which he usually kept for
5277himself and which, he said, swarmed with hares. Nicholas agreed, and
5278the hunt, now doubled, moved on.
5279
5280The way to Iligin's upland was across the fields. The hunt
5281servants fell into line. The masters rode together. "Uncle," Rostov,
5282and Ilagin kept stealthily glancing at one another's dogs, trying
5283not to be observed by their companions and searching uneasily for
5284rivals to their own borzois.
5285
5286Rostov was particularly struck by the beauty of a small,
5287pure-bred, red-spotted bitch on Ilagin's leash, slender but with
5288muscles like steel, a delicate muzzle, and prominent black eyes. He
5289had heard of the swiftness of Ilagin's borzois, and in that
5290beautiful bitch saw a rival to his own Milka.
5291
5292In the middle of a sober conversation begun by Ilagin about the
5293year's harvest, Nicholas pointed to the red-spotted bitch.
5294
5295"A fine little bitch, that!" said he in a careless tone. "Is she
5296swift?"
5297
5298"That one? Yes, she's a good dog, gets what she's after," answered
5299Ilagin indifferently, of the red-spotted bitch Erza, for which, a year
5300before, he had given a neighbor three families of house serfs. "So
5301in your parts, too, the harvest is nothing to boast of, Count?" he
5302went on, continuing the conversation they had begun. And considering
5303it polite to return the young count's compliment, Ilagin looked at his
5304borzois and picked out Milka who attracted his attention by her
5305breadth. "That black-spotted one of yours is fine--well shaped!"
5306said he.
5307
5308"Yes, she's fast enough," replied Nicholas, and thought: "If only
5309a full-grown hare would cross the field now I'd show you what sort
5310of borzoi she is," and turning to his groom, he said he would give a
5311ruble to anyone who found a hare.
5312
5313"I don't understand," continued Ilagin, "how some sportsmen can be
5314so jealous about game and dogs. For myself, I can tell you, Count, I
5315enjoy riding in company such as this... what could be better?" (he
5316again raised his cap to Natasha) "but as for counting skins and what
5317one takes, I don't care about that."
5318
5319"Of course not!"
5320
5321"Or being upset because someone else's borzoi and not mine catches
5322something. All I care about is to enjoy seeing the chase, is it not
5323so, Count? For I consider that..."
5324
5325"A-tu!" came the long-drawn cry of one of the borzoi whippers-in,
5326who had halted. He stood on a knoll in the stubble, holding his whip
5327aloft, and again repeated his long-drawn cry, "A-tu!" (This call and
5328the uplifted whip meant that he saw a sitting hare.)
5329
5330"Ah, he has found one, I think," said Ilagin carelessly. "Yes, we
5331must ride up.... Shall we both course it?" answered Nicholas, seeing
5332in Erza and "Uncle's" red Rugay two rivals he had never yet had a
5333chance of pitting against his own borzois. "And suppose they outdo
5334my Milka at once!" he thought as he rode with "Uncle" and Ilagin
5335toward the hare.
5336
5337"A full-grown one?" asked Ilagin as he approached the whip who had
5338sighted the hare--and not without agitation he looked round and
5339whistled to Erza.
5340
5341"And you, Michael Nikanorovich?" he said, addressing "Uncle."
5342
5343The latter was riding with a sullen expression on his face.
5344
5345"How can I join in? Why, you've given a village for each of your
5346borzois! That's it, come on! Yours are worth thousands. Try yours
5347against one another, you two, and I'll look on!"
5348
5349"Rugay, hey, hey!" he shouted. "Rugayushka!" he added, involuntarily
5350by this diminutive expressing his affection and the hopes he placed on
5351this red borzoi. Natasha saw and felt the agitation the two elderly
5352men and her brother were trying to conceal, and was herself excited by
5353it.
5354
5355The huntsman stood halfway up the knoll holding up his whip and
5356the gentlefolk rode up to him at a footpace; the hounds that were
5357far off on the horizon turned away from the hare, and the whips, but
5358not the gentlefolk, also moved away. All were moving slowly and
5359sedately.
5360
5361"How is it pointing?" asked Nicholas, riding a hundred paces
5362toward the whip who had sighted the hare.
5363
5364But before the whip could reply, the hare, scenting the frost coming
5365next morning, was unable to rest and leaped up. The pack on leash
5366rushed downhill in full cry after the hare, and from all sides the
5367borzois that were not on leash darted after the hounds and the hare.
5368All the hunt, who had been moving slowly, shouted, "Stop!" calling
5369in the hounds, while the borzoi whips, with a cry of "A-tu!" galloped
5370across the field setting the borzois on the hare. The tranquil Ilagin,
5371Nicholas, Natasha, and "Uncle" flew, reckless of where and how they
5372went, seeing only the borzois and the hare and fearing only to lose
5373sight even for an instant of the chase. The hare they had started
5374was a strong and swift one. When he jumped up he did not run at
5375once, but pricked his ears listening to the shouting and trampling
5376that resounded from all sides at once. He took a dozen bounds, not
5377very quickly, letting the borzois gain on him, and, finally having
5378chosen his direction and realized his danger, laid back his ears and
5379rushed off headlong. He had been lying in the stubble, but in front of
5380him was the autumn sowing where the ground was soft. The two borzois
5381of the huntsman who had sighted him, having been the nearest, were the
5382first to see and pursue him, but they had not gone far before Ilagin's
5383red-spotted Erza passed them, got within a length, flew at the hare
5384with terrible swiftness aiming at his scut, and, thinking she had
5385seized him, rolled over like a ball. The hare arched his back and
5386bounded off yet more swiftly. From behind Erza rushed the
5387broad-haunched, black-spotted Milka and began rapidly gaining on the
5388hare.
5389
5390"Milashka, dear!" rose Nicholas' triumphant cry. It looked as if
5391Milka would immediately pounce on the hare, but she overtook him and
5392flew past. The hare had squatted. Again the beautiful Erza reached
5393him, but when close to the hare's scut paused as if measuring the
5394distance, so as not to make a mistake this time but seize his hind
5395leg.
5396
5397"Erza, darling!" Ilagin wailed in a voice unlike his own. Erza did
5398not hearken to his appeal. At the very moment when she would have
5399seized her prey, the hare moved and darted along the balk between
5400the winter rye and the stubble. Again Erza and Milka were abreast,
5401running like a pair of carriage horses, and began to overtake the
5402hare, but it was easier for the hare to run on the balk and the
5403borzois did not overtake him so quickly.
5404
5405"Rugay, Rugayushka! That's it, come on!" came a third voice just
5406then, and "Uncle's" red borzoi, straining and curving its back, caught
5407up with the two foremost borzois, pushed ahead of them regardless of
5408the terrible strain, put on speed close to the hare, knocked it off
5409the balk onto the ryefield, again put on speed still more viciously,
5410sinking to his knees in the muddy field, and all one could see was
5411how, muddying his back, he rolled over with the hare. A ring of
5412borzois surrounded him. A moment later everyone had drawn up round the
5413crowd of dogs. Only the delighted "Uncle" dismounted, and cut off a
5414pad, shaking the hare for the blood to drip off, and anxiously
5415glancing round with restless eyes while his arms and legs twitched. He
5416spoke without himself knowing whom to or what about. "That's it,
5417come on! That's a dog!... There, it has beaten them all, the
5418thousand-ruble as well as the one-ruble borzois. That's it, come
5419on!" said he, panting and looking wrathfully around as if he were
5420abusing someone, as if they were all his enemies and had insulted him,
5421and only now had he at last succeeded in justifying himself. "There
5422are your thousand-ruble ones.... That's it, come on!..."
5423
5424"Rugay, here's a pad for you!" he said, throwing down the hare's
5425muddy pad. "You've deserved it, that's it, come on!"
5426
5427"She'd tired herself out, she'd run it down three times by herself,"
5428said Nicholas, also not listening to anyone and regardless of
5429whether he were heard or not.
5430
5431"But what is there in running across it like that?" said Ilagin's
5432groom.
5433
5434"Once she had missed it and turned it away, any mongrel could take
5435it," Ilagin was saying at the same time, breathless from his gallop
5436and his excitement. At the same moment Natasha, without drawing
5437breath, screamed joyously, ecstatically, and so piercingly that it set
5438everyone's ear tingling. By that shriek she expressed what the
5439others expressed by all talking at once, and it was so strange that
5440she must herself have been ashamed of so wild a cry and everyone
5441else would have been amazed at it at any other time. "Uncle" himself
5442twisted up the hare, threw it neatly and smartly across his horse's
5443back as if by that gesture he meant to rebuke everybody, and, with
5444an air of not wishing to speak to anyone, mounted his bay and rode
5445off. The others all followed, dispirited and shamefaced, and only much
5446later were they able to regain their former affectation of
5447indifference. For a long time they continued to look at red Rugay who,
5448his arched back spattered with mud and clanking the ring of his leash,
5449walked along just behind "Uncle's" horse with the serene air of a
5450conqueror.
5451
5452"Well, I am like any other dog as long as it's not a question of
5453coursing. But when it is, then look out!" his appearance seemed to
5454Nicholas to be saying.
5455
5456When, much later, "Uncle" rode up to Nicholas and began talking to
5457him, he felt flattered that, after what had happened, "Uncle"
5458deigned to speak to him.
5459
5460
5461
5462
5463
5464CHAPTER VII
5465
5466
5467Toward evening Ilagin took leave of Nicholas, who found that they
5468were so far from home that he accepted "Uncle's" offer that the
5469hunting party should spend the night in his little village of
5470Mikhaylovna.
5471
5472"And if you put up at my house that will be better still. That's it,
5473come on!" said "Uncle." "You see it's damp weather, and you could
5474rest, and the little countess could be driven home in a trap."
5475
5476"Uncle's" offer was accepted. A huntsman was sent to Otradnoe for
5477a trap, while Nicholas rode with Natasha and Petya to "Uncle's" house.
5478
5479Some five male domestic serfs, big and little, rushed out to the
5480front porch to meet their master. A score of women serfs, old and
5481young, as well as children, popped out from the back entrance to
5482have a look at the hunters who were arriving. The presence of Natasha-
5483a woman, a lady, and on horseback--raised the curiosity of the serfs
5484to such a degree that many of them came up to her, stared her in the
5485face, and unabashed by her presence made remarks about her as though
5486she were some prodigy on show and not a human being able to hear or
5487understand what was said about her.
5488
5489"Arinka! Look, she sits sideways! There she sits and her skirt
5490dangles.... See, she's got a little hunting horn!"
5491
5492"Goodness gracious! See her knife?..."
5493
5494"Isn't she a Tartar!"
5495
5496"How is it you didn't go head over heels?" asked the boldest of all,
5497addressing Natasha directly.
5498
5499"Uncle" dismounted at the porch of his little wooden house which
5500stood in the midst of an overgrown garden and, after a glance at his
5501retainers, shouted authoritatively that the superfluous ones should
5502take themselves off and that all necessary preparations should be made
5503to receive the guests and the visitors.
5504
5505The serfs all dispersed. "Uncle" lifted Natasha off her horse and
5506taking her hand led her up the rickety wooden steps of the porch.
5507The house, with its bare, unplastered log walls, was not overclean--it
5508did not seem that those living in it aimed at keeping it spotless--but
5509neither was it noticeably neglected. In the entry there was a smell of
5510fresh apples, and wolf and fox skins hung about.
5511
5512"Uncle" led the visitors through the anteroom into a small hall with
5513a folding table and red chairs, then into the drawing room with a
5514round birchwood table and a sofa, and finally into his private room
5515where there was a tattered sofa, a worn carpet, and portraits of
5516Suvorov, of the host's father and mother, and of himself in military
5517uniform. The study smelt strongly of tobacco and dogs. "Uncle" asked
5518his visitors to sit down and make themselves at home, and then went
5519out of the room. Rugay, his back still muddy, came into the room and
5520lay down on the sofa, cleaning himself with his tongue and teeth.
5521Leading from the study was a passage in which a partition with
5522ragged curtains could be seen. From behind this came women's
5523laughter and whispers. Natasha, Nicholas, and Petya took off their
5524wraps and sat down on the sofa. Petya, leaning on his elbow, fell
5525asleep at once. Natasha and Nicholas were silent. Their faces
5526glowed, they were hungry and very cheerful. They looked at one another
5527(now that the hunt was over and they were in the house, Nicholas no
5528longer considered it necessary to show his manly superiority over
5529his sister), Natasha gave him a wink, and neither refrained long
5530from bursting into a peal of ringing laughter even before they had a
5531pretext ready to account for it.
5532
5533After a while "Uncle" came in, in a Cossack coat, blue trousers, and
5534small top boots. And Natasha felt that this costume, the very one
5535she had regarded with surprise and amusement at Otradnoe, was just the
5536right thing and not at all worse than a swallow-tail or frock coat.
5537"Uncle" too was in high spirits and far from being offended by the
5538brother's and sister's laughter (it could never enter his head that
5539they might be laughing at his way of life) he himself joined in the
5540merriment.
5541
5542"That's right, young countess, that's it, come on! I never saw
5543anyone like her!" said he, offering Nicholas a pipe with a long stem
5544and, with a practiced motion of three fingers, taking down another
5545that had been cut short. "She's ridden all day like a man, and is as
5546fresh as ever!"
5547
5548Soon after "Uncle's" reappearance the door was opened, evidently
5549from the sound by a barefooted girl, and a stout, rosy, good-looking
5550woman of about forty, with a double chin and full red lips, entered
5551carrying a large loaded tray. With hospitable dignity and cordiality
5552in her glance and in every motion, she looked at the visitors and,
5553with a pleasant smile, bowed respectfully. In spite of her exceptional
5554stoutness, which caused her to protrude her chest and stomach and
5555throw back her head, this woman (who was "Uncle's" housekeeper) trod
5556very lightly. She went to the table, set down the tray, and with her
5557plump white hands deftly took from it the bottles and various hors
5558d'oeuvres and dishes and arranged them on the table. When she had
5559finished, she stepped aside and stopped at the door with a smile on
5560her face. "Here I am. I am she! Now do you understand 'Uncle'?" her
5561expression said to Rostov. How could one help understanding? Not
5562only Nicholas, but even Natasha understood the meaning of his puckered
5563brow and the happy complacent smile that slightly puckered his lips
5564when Anisya Fedorovna entered. On the tray was a bottle of herb
5565wine, different kinds of vodka, pickled mushrooms, rye cakes made with
5566buttermilk, honey in the comb, still mead and sparkling mead,
5567apples, nuts (raw and roasted), and nut-and-honey sweets. Afterwards
5568she brought a freshly roasted chicken, ham, preserves made with honey,
5569and preserves made with sugar.
5570
5571All this was the fruit of Anisya Fedorovna's housekeeping,
5572gathered and prepared by her. The smell and taste of it all had a
5573smack of Anisya Fedorovna herself: a savor of juiciness,
5574cleanliness, whiteness, and pleasant smiles.
5575
5576"Take this, little Lady-Countess!" she kept saying, as she offered
5577Natasha first one thing and then another.
5578
5579Natasha ate of everything and thought she had never seen or eaten
5580such buttermilk cakes, such aromatic jam, such honey-and-nut sweets,
5581or such a chicken anywhere. Anisya Fedorovna left the room.
5582
5583After supper, over their cherry brandy, Rostov and "Uncle" talked of
5584past and future hunts, of Rugay and Ilagin's dogs, while Natasha sat
5585upright on the sofa and listened with sparkling eyes. She tried
5586several times to wake Petya that he might eat something, but he only
5587muttered incoherent words without waking up. Natasha felt so
5588lighthearted and happy in these novel surroundings that she only
5589feared the trap would come for her too soon. After a casual pause,
5590such as often occurs when receiving friends for the first time in
5591one's own house, "Uncle," answering a thought that was in his
5592visitors' mind, said:
5593
5594"This, you see, is how I am finishing my days... Death will come.
5595That's it, come on! Nothing will remain. Then why harm anyone?"
5596
5597"Uncle's" face was very significant and even handsome as he said
5598this. Involuntarily Rostov recalled all the good he had heard about
5599him from his father and the neighbors. Throughout the whole province
5600"Uncle" had the reputation of being the most honorable and
5601disinterested of cranks. They called him in to decide family disputes,
5602chose him as executor, confided secrets to him, elected him to be a
5603justice and to other posts; but he always persistently refused
5604public appointments, passing the autumn and spring in the fields on
5605his bay gelding, sitting at home in winter, and lying in his overgrown
5606garden in summer.
5607
5608"Why don't you enter the service, Uncle?"
5609
5610"I did once, but gave it up. I am not fit for it. That's it, come
5611on! I can't make head or tail of it. That's for you--I haven't
5612brains enough. Now, hunting is another matter--that's it, come on!
5613Open the door, there!" he shouted. "Why have you shut it?"
5614
5615The door at the end of the passage led to the huntsmen's room, as
5616they called the room for the hunt servants.
5617
5618There was a rapid patter of bare feet, and an unseen hand opened the
5619door into the huntsmen's room, from which came the clear sounds of a
5620balalayka on which someone, who was evidently a master of the art, was
5621playing. Natasha had been listening to those strains for some time and
5622now went out into the passage to hear better.
5623
5624"That's Mitka, my coachman.... I have got him a good balalayka.
5625I'm fond of it," said "Uncle."
5626
5627It was the custom for Mitka to play the balalayka in the
5628huntsmen's room when "Uncle" returned from the chase. "Uncle" was fond
5629of such music.
5630
5631"How good! Really very good!" said Nicholas with some
5632unintentional superciliousness, as if ashamed to confess that the
5633sounds pleased him very much.
5634
5635"Very good?" said Natasha reproachfully, noticing her brother's
5636tone. "Not 'very good' it's simply delicious!"
5637
5638Just as "Uncle's" pickled mushrooms, honey, and cherry brandy had
5639seemed to her the best in the world, so also that song, at that
5640moment, seemed to her the acme of musical delight.
5641
5642"More, please, more!" cried Natasha at the door as soon as the
5643balalayka ceased. Mitka tuned up afresh, and recommenced thrumming the
5644balalayka to the air of My Lady, with trills and variations. "Uncle"
5645sat listening, slightly smiling, with his head on one side. The air
5646was repeated a hundred times. The balalayka was retuned several
5647times and the same notes were thrummed again, but the listeners did
5648not grow weary of it and wished to hear it again and again. Anisya
5649Fedorovna came in and leaned her portly person against the doorpost.
5650
5651"You like listening?" she said to Natasha, with a smile extremely
5652like "Uncle's." "That's a good player of ours," she added.
5653
5654"He doesn't play that part right!" said "Uncle" suddenly, with an
5655energetic gesture. "Here he ought to burst out--that's it, come on!-
5656ought to burst out."
5657
5658"Do you play then?" asked Natasha.
5659
5660"Uncle" did not answer, but smiled.
5661
5662"Anisya, go and see if the strings of my guitar are all right. I
5663haven't touched it for a long time. That's it--come on! I've given
5664it up."
5665
5666Anisya Fedorovna, with her light step, willingly went to fulfill her
5667errand and brought back the guitar.
5668
5669Without looking at anyone, "Uncle" blew the dust off it and, tapping
5670the case with his bony fingers, tuned the guitar and settled himself
5671in his armchair. He took the guitar a little above the fingerboard,
5672arching his left elbow with a somewhat theatrical gesture, and, with a
5673wink at Anisya Fedorovna, struck a single chord, pure and sonorous,
5674and then quietly, smoothly, and confidently began playing in very slow
5675time, not My Lady, but the well-known song: Came a maiden down the
5676street. The tune, played with precision and in exact time, began to
5677thrill in the hearts of Nicholas and Natasha, arousing in them the
5678same kind of sober mirth as radiated from Anisya Fedorovna's whole
5679being. Anisya Fedorovna flushed, and drawing her kerchief over her
5680face went laughing out of the room. "Uncle" continued to play
5681correctly, carefully, with energetic firmness, looking with a
5682changed and inspired expression at the spot where Anisya Fedorovna had
5683just stood. Something seemed to be laughing a little on one side of
5684his face under his gray mustaches, especially as the song grew brisker
5685and the time quicker and when, here and there, as he ran his fingers
5686over the strings, something seemed to snap.
5687
5688"Lovely, lovely! Go on, Uncle, go on!" shouted Natasha as soon as he
5689had finished. She jumped up and hugged and kissed him. "Nicholas,
5690Nicholas!" she said, turning to her brother, as if asking him: "What
5691is it moves me so?"
5692
5693Nicholas too was greatly pleased by "Uncle's" playing, and "Uncle"
5694played the piece over again. Anisya Fedorovna's smiling face
5695reappeared in the doorway and behind hers other faces...
5696
5697 Fetching water clear and sweet,
5698 Stop, dear maiden, I entreat-
5699
5700played "Uncle" once more, running his fingers skillfully over the
5701strings, and then he stopped short and jerked his shoulders.
5702
5703"Go on, Uncle dear," Natasha wailed in an imploring tone as if her
5704life depended on it.
5705
5706"Uncle" rose, and it was as if there were two men in him: one of
5707them smiled seriously at the merry fellow, while the merry fellow
5708struck a naive and precise attitude preparatory to a folk dance.
5709
5710"Now then, niece!" he exclaimed, waving to Natasha the hand that had
5711just struck a chord.
5712
5713Natasha threw off the shawl from her shoulders, ran forward to
5714face "Uncle," and setting her arms akimbo also made a motion with
5715her shoulders and struck an attitude.
5716
5717Where, how, and when had this young countess, educated by an emigree
5718French governess, imbibed from the Russian air she breathed that
5719spirit and obtained that manner which the pas de chale* would, one
5720would have supposed, long ago have effaced? But the spirit and the
5721movements were those inimitable and unteachable Russian ones that
5722"Uncle" had expected of her. As soon as she had struck her pose, and
5723smiled triumphantly, proudly, and with sly merriment, the fear that
5724had at first seized Nicholas and the others that she might not do
5725the right thing was at an end, and they were already admiring her.
5726
5727
5728*The French shawl dance.
5729
5730
5731She did the right thing with such precision, such complete
5732precision, that Anisya Fedorovna, who had at once handed her the
5733handkerchief she needed for the dance, had tears in her eyes, though
5734she laughed as she watched this slim, graceful countess, reared in
5735silks and velvets and so different from herself, who yet was able to
5736understand all that was in Anisya and in Anisya's father and mother
5737and aunt, and in every Russian man and woman.
5738
5739"Well, little countess; that's it--come on!" cried "Uncle," with a
5740joyous laugh, having finished the dance. "Well done, niece! Now a fine
5741young fellow must be found as husband for you. That's it--come on!"
5742
5743"He's chosen already," said Nicholas smiling.
5744
5745"Oh?" said "Uncle" in surprise, looking inquiringly at Natasha,
5746who nodded her head with a happy smile.
5747
5748"And such a one!" she said. But as soon as she had said it a new
5749train of thoughts and feelings arose in her. "What did Nicholas' smile
5750mean when he said 'chosen already'? Is he glad of it or not? It is
5751as if he thought my Bolkonski would not approve of or understand our
5752gaiety. But he would understand it all. Where is he now?" she thought,
5753and her face suddenly became serious. But this lasted only a second.
5754"Don't dare to think about it," she said to herself, and sat down
5755again smilingly beside "Uncle," begging him to play something more.
5756
5757"Uncle" played another song and a valse; then after a pause he
5758cleared his throat and sang his favorite hunting song:
5759
5760 As 'twas growing dark last night
5761 Fell the snow so soft and light...
5762
5763
5764"Uncle" sang as peasants sing, with full and naive conviction that
5765the whole meaning of a song lies in the words and that the tune
5766comes of itself, and that apart from the words there is no tune, which
5767exists only to give measure to the words. As a result of this the
5768unconsidered tune, like the song of a bird, was extraordinarily
5769good. Natasha was in ecstasies over "Uncle's" singing. She resolved to
5770give up learning the harp and to play only the guitar. She asked
5771"Uncle" for his guitar and at once found the chords of the song.
5772
5773After nine o'clock two traps and three mounted men, who had been
5774sent to look for them, arrived to fetch Natasha and Petya. The count
5775and countess did not know where they were and were very anxious,
5776said one of the men.
5777
5778Petya was carried out like a log and laid in the larger of the two
5779traps. Natasha and Nicholas got into the other. "Uncle" wrapped
5780Natasha up warmly and took leave of her with quite a new tenderness.
5781He accompanied them on foot as far as the bridge that could not be
5782crossed, so that they had to go round by the ford, and he sent
5783huntsmen to ride in front with lanterns.
5784
5785"Good-by, dear niece," his voice called out of the darkness--not the
5786voice Natasha had known previously, but the one that had sung As 'twas
5787growing dark last night.
5788
5789In the village through which they passed there were red lights and a
5790cheerful smell of smoke.
5791
5792"What a darling Uncle is!" said Natasha, when they had come out onto
5793the highroad.
5794
5795"Yes," returned Nicholas. "You're not cold?"
5796
5797"No. I'm quite, quite all right. I feel so comfortable!" answered
5798Natasha, almost perplexed by her feelings. They remained silent a long
5799while. The night was dark and damp. They could not see the horses, but
5800only heard them splashing through the unseen mud.
5801
5802What was passing in that receptive childlike soul that so eagerly
5803caught and assimilated all the diverse impressions of life? How did
5804they all find place in her? But she was very happy. As they were
5805nearing home she suddenly struck up the air of As 'twas growing dark
5806last night--the tune of which she had all the way been trying to get
5807and had at last caught.
5808
5809"Got it?" said Nicholas.
5810
5811"What were you thinking about just now, Nicholas?" inquired Natasha.
5812
5813They were fond of asking one another that question.
5814
5815"I?" said Nicholas, trying to remember. "Well, you see, first I
5816thought that Rugay, the red hound, was like Uncle, and that if he were
5817a man he would always keep Uncle near him, if not for his riding, then
5818for his manner. What a good fellow Uncle is! Don't you think so?...
5819Well, and you?"
5820
5821"I? Wait a bit, wait.... Yes, first I thought that we are driving
5822along and imagining that we are going home, but that heaven knows
5823where we are really going in the darkness, and that we shall arrive
5824and suddenly find that we are not in Otradnoe, but in Fairyland. And
5825then I thought... No, nothing else."
5826
5827"I know, I expect you thought of him," said Nicholas, smiling as
5828Natasha knew by the sound of his voice.
5829
5830"No," said Natasha, though she had in reality been thinking about
5831Prince Andrew at the same time as of the rest, and of how he would
5832have liked "Uncle." "And then I was saying to myself all the way, 'How
5833well Anisya carried herself, how well!'" And Nicholas heard her
5834spontaneous, happy, ringing laughter. "And do you know," she
5835suddenly said, "I know that I shall never again be as happy and
5836tranquil as I am now."
5837
5838"Rubbish, nonsense, humbug!" exclaimed Nicholas, and he thought:
5839"How charming this Natasha of mine is! I have no other friend like her
5840and never shall have. Why should she marry? We might always drive
5841about together!"
5842
5843"What a darling this Nicholas of mine is!" thought Natasha.
5844
5845"Ah, there are still lights in the drawingroom!" she said,
5846pointing to the windows of the house that gleamed invitingly in the
5847moist velvety darkness of the night.
5848
5849
5850
5851
5852
5853CHAPTER VIII
5854
5855
5856Count Ilya Rostov had resigned the position of Marshal of the
5857Nobility because it involved him in too much expense, but still his
5858affairs did not improve. Natasha and Nicholas often noticed their
5859parents conferring together anxiously and privately and heard
5860suggestions of selling the fine ancestral Rostov house and estate near
5861Moscow. It was not necessary to entertain so freely as when the
5862count had been Marshal, and life at Otradnoe was quieter than in
5863former years, but still the enormous house and its lodges were full of
5864people and more than twenty sat down to table every day. These were
5865all their own people who had settled down in the house almost as
5866members of the family, or persons who were, it seemed, obliged to live
5867in the count's house. Such were Dimmler the musician and his wife,
5868Vogel the dancing master and his family, Belova, an old maiden lady,
5869an inmate of the house, and many others such as Petya's tutors, the
5870girls' former governess, and other people who simply found it
5871preferable and more advantageous to live in the count's house than
5872at home. They had not as many visitors as before, but the old habits
5873of life without which the count and countess could not conceive of
5874existence remained unchanged. There was still the hunting
5875establishment which Nicholas had even enlarged, the same fifty
5876horses and fifteen grooms in the stables, the same expensive
5877presents and dinner parties to the whole district on name days;
5878there were still the count's games of whist and boston, at which-
5879spreading out his cards so that everybody could see them--he let
5880himself be plundered of hundreds of rubles every day by his neighbors,
5881who looked upon an opportunity to play a rubber with Count Rostov as a
5882most profitable source of income.
5883
5884The count moved in his affairs as in a huge net, trying not to
5885believe that he was entangled but becoming more and more so at every
5886step, and feeling too feeble to break the meshes or to set to work
5887carefully and patiently to disentangle them. The countess, with her
5888loving heart, felt that her children were being ruined, that it was
5889not the count's fault for he could not help being what he was--that
5890(though he tried to hide it) he himself suffered from the
5891consciousness of his own and his children's ruin, and she tried to
5892find means of remedying the position. From her feminine point of
5893view she could see only one solution, namely, for Nicholas to marry
5894a rich heiress. She felt this to be their last hope and that if
5895Nicholas refused the match she had found for him, she would have to
5896abandon the hope of ever getting matters right. This match was with
5897Julie Karagina, the daughter of excellent and virtuous parents, a girl
5898the Rostovs had known from childhood, and who had now become a wealthy
5899heiress through the death of the last of her brothers.
5900
5901The countess had written direct to Julie's mother in Moscow
5902suggesting a marriage between their children and had received a
5903favorable answer from her. Karagina had replied that for her part
5904she was agreeable, and everything depend on her daughter's
5905inclination. She invited Nicholas to come to Moscow.
5906
5907Several times the countess, with tears in her eyes, told her son
5908that now both her daughters were settled, her only wish was to see him
5909married. She said she could lie down in her grave peacefully if that
5910were accomplished. Then she told him that she knew of a splendid
5911girl and tried to discover what he thought about marriage.
5912
5913At other times she praised Julie to him and advised him to go to
5914Moscow during the holidays to amuse himself. Nicholas guessed what his
5915mother's remarks were leading to and during one of these conversations
5916induced her to speak quite frankly. She told him that her only hope of
5917getting their affairs disentangled now lay in his marrying Julie
5918Karagina.
5919
5920"But, Mamma, suppose I loved a girl who has no fortune, would you
5921expect me to sacrifice my feelings and my honor for the sake of
5922money?" he asked his mother, not realizing the cruelty of his question
5923and only wishing to show his noble-mindedness.
5924
5925"No, you have not understood me," said his mother, not knowing how
5926to justify herself. "You have not understood me, Nikolenka. It is your
5927happiness I wish for," she added, feeling that she was telling an
5928untruth and was becoming entangled. She began to cry.
5929
5930"Mamma, don't cry! Only tell me that you wish it, and you know I
5931will give my life, anything, to put you at ease," said Nicholas. "I
5932would sacrifice anything for you--even my feelings."
5933
5934But the countess did not want the question put like that: she did
5935not want a sacrifice from her son, she herself wished to make a
5936sacrifice for him.
5937
5938"No, you have not understood me, don't let us talk about it," she
5939replied, wiping away her tears.
5940
5941"Maybe I do love a poor girl," said Nicholas to himself. "Am I to
5942sacrifice my feelings and my honor for money? I wonder how Mamma could
5943speak so to me. Because Sonya is poor I must not love her," he
5944thought, "must not respond to her faithful, devoted love? Yet I should
5945certainly be happier with her than with some doll-like Julie. I can
5946always sacrifice my feelings for my family's welfare," he said to
5947himself, "but I can't coerce my feelings. If I love Sonya, that
5948feeling is for me stronger and higher than all else."
5949
5950Nicholas did not go to Moscow, and the countess did not renew the
5951conversation with him about marriage. She saw with sorrow, and
5952sometimes with exasperation, symptoms of a growing attachment
5953between her son and the portionless Sonya. Though she blamed herself
5954for it, she could not refrain from grumbling at and worrying Sonya,
5955often pulling her up without reason, addressing her stiffly as "my
5956dear," and using the formal "you" instead of the intimate "thou" in
5957speaking to her. The kindhearted countess was the more vexed with
5958Sonya because that poor, dark-eyed niece of hers was so meek, so kind,
5959so devotedly grateful to her benefactors, and so faithfully,
5960unchangingly, and unselfishly in love with Nicholas, that there were
5961no grounds for finding fault with her.
5962
5963Nicholas was spending the last of his leave at home. A fourth letter
5964had come from Prince Andrew, from Rome, in which he wrote that he
5965would have been on his way back to Russia long ago had not his wound
5966unexpectedly reopened in the warm climate, which obliged him to
5967defer his return till the beginning of the new year. Natasha was still
5968as much in love with her betrothed, found the same comfort in that
5969love, and was still as ready to throw herself into all the pleasures
5970of life as before; but at the end of the fourth month of their
5971separation she began to have fits of depression which she could not
5972master. She felt sorry for herself: sorry that she was being wasted
5973all this time and of no use to anyone--while she felt herself so
5974capable of loving and being loved.
5975
5976Things were not cheerful in the Rostovs' home.
5977
5978
5979
5980
5981
5982CHAPTER IX
5983
5984
5985Christmas came and except for the ceremonial Mass, the solemn and
5986wearisome Christmas congratulations from neighbors and servants, and
5987the new dresses everyone put on, there were no special festivities,
5988though the calm frost of twenty degrees Reaumur, the dazzling sunshine
5989by day, and the starlight of the winter nights seemed to call for some
5990special celebration of the season.
5991
5992On the third day of Christmas week, after the midday dinner, all the
5993inmates of the house dispersed to various rooms. It was the dullest
5994time of the day. Nicholas, who had been visiting some neighbors that
5995morning, was asleep on the sitting-room sofa. The old count was
5996resting in his study. Sonya sat in the drawing room at the round
5997table, copying a design for embroidery. The countess was playing
5998patience. Nastasya Ivanovna the buffoon sat with a sad face at the
5999window with two old ladies. Natasha came into the room, went up to
6000Sonya, glanced at what she was doing, and then went up to her mother
6001and stood without speaking.
6002
6003"Why are you wandering about like an outcast?" asked her mother.
6004"What do you want?"
6005
6006"Him... I want him... now, this minute! I want him!" said Natasha,
6007with glittering eyes and no sign of a smile.
6008
6009The countess lifted her head and looked attentively at her daughter.
6010
6011"Don't look at me, Mamma! Don't look; I shall cry directly."
6012
6013"Sit down with me a little," said the countess.
6014
6015"Mamma, I want him. Why should I be wasted like this, Mamma?"
6016
6017Her voice broke, tears gushed from her eyes, and she turned
6018quickly to hide them and left the room.
6019
6020She passed into the sitting room, stood there thinking awhile, and
6021then went into the maids' room. There an old maidservant was grumbling
6022at a young girl who stood panting, having just run in through the cold
6023from the serfs' quarters.
6024
6025"Stop playing--there's a time for everything," said the old woman.
6026
6027"Let her alone, Kondratevna," said Natasha. "Go, Mavrushka, go."
6028
6029Having released Mavrushka, Natasha crossed the dancing hall and went
6030to the vestibule. There an old footman and two young ones were playing
6031cards. They broke off and rose as she entered.
6032
6033"What can I do with them?" thought Natasha.
6034
6035"Oh, Nikita, please go... where can I send him?... Yes, go to the
6036yard and fetch a fowl, please, a cock, and you, Misha, bring me some
6037oats."
6038
6039"Just a few oats?" said Misha, cheerfully and readily.
6040
6041"Go, go quickly," the old man urged him.
6042
6043"And you, Theodore, get me a piece of chalk."
6044
6045On her way past the butler's pantry she told them to set a
6046samovar, though it was not at all the time for tea.
6047
6048Foka, the butler, was the most ill-tempered person in the house.
6049Natasha liked to test her power over him. He distrusted the order
6050and asked whether the samovar was really wanted.
6051
6052"Oh dear, what a young lady!" said Foka, pretending to frown at
6053Natasha.
6054
6055No one in the house sent people about or gave them as much trouble
6056as Natasha did. She could not see people unconcernedly, but had to
6057send them on some errand. She seemed to be trying whether any of
6058them would get angry or sulky with her; but the serfs fulfilled no
6059one's orders so readily as they did hers. "What can I do, where can
6060I go?" thought she, as she went slowly along the passage.
6061
6062"Nastasya Ivanovna, what sort of children shall I have?" she asked
6063the buffoon, who was coming toward her in a woman's jacket.
6064
6065"Why, fleas, crickets, grasshoppers," answered the buffoon.
6066
6067"O Lord, O Lord, it's always the same! Oh, where am I to go? What am
6068I to do with myself?" And tapping with her heels, she ran quickly
6069upstairs to see Vogel and his wife who lived on the upper story.
6070
6071Two governesses were sitting with the Vogels at a table, on which
6072were plates of raisins, walnuts, and almonds. The governesses were
6073discussing whether it was cheaper to live in Moscow or Odessa. Natasha
6074sat down, listened to their talk with a serious and thoughtful air,
6075and then got up again.
6076
6077"The island of Madagascar," she said, "Ma-da-gas-car," she repeated,
6078articulating each syllable distinctly, and, not replying to Madame
6079Schoss who asked her what she was saying, she went out of the room.
6080
6081Her brother Petya was upstairs too; with the man in attendance on
6082him he was preparing fireworks to let off that night.
6083
6084"Petya! Petya!" she called to him. "Carry me downstairs."
6085
6086Petya ran up and offered her his back. She jumped on it, putting her
6087arms round his neck, and he pranced along with her.
6088
6089"No, don't... the island of Madagascar!" she said, and jumping off
6090his back she went downstairs.
6091
6092Having as it were reviewed her kingdom, tested her power, and made
6093sure that everyone was submissive, but that all the same it was
6094dull, Natasha betook herself to the ballroom, picked up her guitar,
6095sat down in a dark corner behind a bookcase, and began to run her
6096fingers over the strings in the bass, picking out a passage she
6097recalled from an opera she had heard in Petersburg with Prince Andrew.
6098What she drew from the guitar would have had no meaning for other
6099listeners, but in her imagination a whole series of reminiscences
6100arose from those sounds. She sat behind the bookcase with her eyes
6101fixed on a streak of light escaping from the pantry door and
6102listened to herself and pondered. She was in a mood for brooding on
6103the past.
6104
6105Sonya passed to the pantry with a glass in her hand. Natasha glanced
6106at her and at the crack in the pantry door, and it seemed to her
6107that she remembered the light failing through that crack once before
6108and Sonya passing with a glass in her hand. "Yes it was exactly the
6109same," thought Natasha.
6110
6111"Sonya, what is this?" she cried, twanging a thick string.
6112
6113"Oh, you are there!" said Sonya with a start, and came near and
6114listened. "I don't know. A storm?" she ventured timidly, afraid of
6115being wrong.
6116
6117"There! That's just how she started and just how she came up smiling
6118timidly when all this happened before," thought Natasha, "and in
6119just the same way I thought there was something lacking in her."
6120
6121"No, it's the chorus from The Water-Carrier, listen!" and Natasha
6122sang the air of the chorus so that Sonya should catch it. "Where
6123were you going?" she asked.
6124
6125"To change the water in this glass. I am just finishing the design."
6126
6127"You always find something to do, but I can't," said Natasha. "And
6128where's Nicholas?"
6129
6130"Asleep, I think."
6131
6132"Sonya, go and wake him," said Natasha. "Tell him I want him to come
6133and sing."
6134
6135She sat awhile, wondering what the meaning of it all having happened
6136before could be, and without solving this problem, or at all
6137regretting not having done so, she again passed in fancy to the time
6138when she was with him and he was looking at her with a lover's eyes.
6139
6140"Oh, if only he would come quicker! I am so afraid it will never be!
6141And, worst of all, I am growing old--that's the thing! There won't
6142then be in me what there is now. But perhaps he'll come today, will
6143come immediately. Perhaps he has come and is sitting in the drawing
6144room. Perhaps he came yesterday and I have forgotten it." She rose,
6145put down the guitar, and went to the drawing room.
6146
6147All the domestic circle, tutors, governesses, and guests, were
6148already at the tea table. The servants stood round the table--but
6149Prince Andrew was not there and life was going on as before.
6150
6151"Ah, here she is!" said the old count, when he saw Natasha enter.
6152"Well, sit down by me." But Natasha stayed by her mother and glanced
6153round as if looking for something.
6154
6155"Mamma!" she muttered, "give him to me, give him, Mamma, quickly,
6156quickly!" and she again had difficulty in repressing her sobs.
6157
6158She sat down at the table and listened to the conversation between
6159the elders and Nicholas, who had also come to the table. "My God, my
6160God! The same faces, the same talk, Papa holding his cup and blowing
6161in the same way!" thought Natasha, feeling with horror a sense of
6162repulsion rising up in her for the whole household, because they
6163were always the same.
6164
6165After tea, Nicholas, Sonya, and Natasha went to the sitting room, to
6166their favorite corner where their most intimate talks always began.
6167
6168
6169
6170
6171
6172CHAPTER X
6173
6174
6175"Does it ever happen to you," said Natasha to her brother, when
6176they settled down in the sitting room, "does it ever happen to you
6177to feel as if there were nothing more to come--nothing; that
6178everything good is past? And to feel not exactly dull, but sad?"
6179
6180"I should think so!" he replied. "I have felt like that when
6181everything was all right and everyone was cheerful. The thought has
6182come into my mind that I was already tired of it all, and that we must
6183all die. Once in the regiment I had not gone to some merrymaking where
6184there was music... and suddenly I felt so depressed..."
6185
6186"Oh yes, I know, I know, I know!" Natasha interrupted him. "When I
6187was quite little that used to be so with me. Do you remember when I
6188was punished once about some plums? You were all dancing, and I sat
6189sobbing in the schoolroom? I shall never forget it: I felt sad and
6190sorry for everyone, for myself, and for everyone. And I was
6191innocent--that was the chief thing," said Natasha. "Do you remember?"
6192
6193"I remember," answered Nicholas. "I remember that I came to you
6194afterwards and wanted to comfort you, but do you know, I felt
6195ashamed to. We were terribly absurd. I had a funny doll then and
6196wanted to give it to you. Do you remember?"
6197
6198"And do you remember," Natasha asked with a pensive smile, "how
6199once, long, long ago, when we were quite little, Uncle called us
6200into the study--that was in the old house--and it was dark--we went in
6201and suddenly there stood..."
6202
6203"A Negro," chimed in Nicholas with a smile of delight. "Of course
6204I remember. Even now I don't know whether there really was a Negro, or
6205if we only dreamed it or were told about him."
6206
6207"He was gray, you remember, and had white teeth, and stood and
6208looked at us..."
6209
6210"Sonya, do you remember?" asked Nicholas.
6211
6212"Yes, yes, I do remember something too," Sonya answered timidly.
6213
6214"You know I have asked Papa and Mamma about that Negro," said
6215Natasha, "and they say there was no Negro at all. But you see, you
6216remember!"
6217
6218"Of course I do, I remember his teeth as if I had just seen them."
6219
6220"How strange it is! It's as if it were a dream! I like that."
6221
6222"And do you remember how we rolled hard-boiled eggs in the ballroom,
6223and suddenly two old women began spinning round on the carpet? Was
6224that real or not? Do you remember what fun it was?"
6225
6226"Yes, and you remember how Papa in his blue overcoat fired a gun
6227in the porch?"
6228
6229So they went through their memories, smiling with pleasure: not
6230the sad memories of old age, but poetic, youthful ones--those
6231impressions of one's most distant past in which dreams and realities
6232blend--and they laughed with quiet enjoyment.
6233
6234Sonya, as always, did not quite keep pace with them, though they
6235shared the same reminiscences.
6236
6237Much that they remembered had slipped from her mind, and what she
6238recalled did not arouse the same poetic feeling as they experienced.
6239She simply enjoyed their pleasure and tried to fit in with it.
6240
6241She only really took part when they recalled Sonya's first
6242arrival. She told them how afraid she had been of Nicholas because
6243he had on a corded jacket and her nurse had told her that she, too,
6244would be sewn up with cords.
6245
6246"And I remember their telling me that you had been born under a
6247cabbage," said Natasha, "and I remember that I dared not disbelieve
6248it then, but knew that it was not true, and I felt so uncomfortable."
6249
6250While they were talking a maid thrust her head in at the other
6251door of the sitting room.
6252
6253"They have brought the cock, Miss," she said in a whisper.
6254
6255"It isn't wanted, Petya. Tell them to take it away," replied
6256Natasha.
6257
6258In the middle of their talk in the sitting room, Dimmler came in and
6259went up to the harp that stood there in a corner. He took off its
6260cloth covering, and the harp gave out a jarring sound.
6261
6262"Mr. Dimmler, please play my favorite nocturne by Field," came the
6263old countess' voice from the drawing room.
6264
6265Dimmler struck a chord and, turning to Natasha, Nicholas, and Sonya,
6266remarked: "How quiet you young people are!"
6267
6268"Yes, we're philosophizing," said Natasha, glancing round for a
6269moment and then continuing the conversation. They were now
6270discussing dreams.
6271
6272Dimmler began to play; Natasha went on tiptoe noiselessly to the
6273table, took up a candle, carried it out, and returned, seating herself
6274quietly in her former place. It was dark in the room especially
6275where they were sitting on the sofa, but through the big windows the
6276silvery light of the full moon fell on the floor. Dimmler had finished
6277the piece but still sat softly running his fingers over the strings,
6278evidently uncertain whether to stop or to play something else.
6279
6280"Do you know," said Natasha in a whisper, moving closer to
6281Nicholas and Sonya, "that when one goes on and on recalling
6282memories, one at last begins to remember what happened before one
6283was in the world..."
6284
6285"That is metempsychosis," said Sonya, who had always learned well,
6286and remembered everything. "The Egyptians believed that our souls have
6287lived in animals, and will go back into animals again."
6288
6289"No, I don't believe we ever were in animals," said Natasha, still
6290in a whisper though the music had ceased. "But I am certain that we
6291were angels somewhere there, and have been here, and that is why we
6292remember...."
6293
6294"May I join you?" said Dimmler who had come up quietly, and he sat
6295down by them.
6296
6297"If we have been angels, why have we fallen lower?" said Nicholas.
6298"No, that can't be!"
6299
6300"Not lower, who said we were lower?... How do I know what I was
6301before?" Natasha rejoined with conviction. "The soul is immortal--well
6302then, if I shall always live I must have lived before, lived for a
6303whole eternity."
6304
6305"Yes, but it is hard for us to imagine eternity," remarked
6306Dimmler, who had joined the young folk with a mildly condescending
6307smile but now spoke as quietly and seriously as they.
6308
6309"Why is it hard to imagine eternity?" said Natasha. "It is now
6310today, and it will be tomorrow, and always; and there was yesterday,
6311and the day before..."
6312
6313"Natasha! Now it's your turn. Sing me something," they heard the
6314countess say. "Why are you sitting there like conspirators?"
6315
6316"Mamma, I don't at all want to," replied Natasha, but all the same
6317she rose.
6318
6319None of them, not even the middle-aged Dimmler, wanted to break
6320off their conversation and quit that corner in the sitting room, but
6321Natasha got up and Nicholas sat down at the clavichord. Standing as
6322usual in the middle of the hall and choosing the place where the
6323resonance was best, Natasha began to sing her mother's favorite song.
6324
6325She had said she did not want to sing, but it was long since she had
6326sung, and long before she again sang, as she did that evening. The
6327count, from his study where he was talking to Mitenka, heard her
6328and, like a schoolboy in a hurry to run out to play, blundered in
6329his talk while giving orders to the steward, and at last stopped,
6330while Mitenka stood in front of him also listening and smiling.
6331Nicholas did not take his eyes off his sister and drew breath in
6332time with her. Sonya, as she listened, thought of the immense
6333difference there was between herself and her friend, and how
6334impossible it was for her to be anything like as bewitching as her
6335cousin. The old countess sat with a blissful yet sad smile and with
6336tears in her eyes, occasionally shaking her head. She thought of
6337Natasha and of her own youth, and of how there was something unnatural
6338and dreadful in this impending marriage of Natasha and Prince Andrew.
6339
6340Dimmler, who had seated himself beside the countess, listened with
6341closed eyes.
6342
6343"Ah, Countess," he said at last, "that's a European talent, she
6344has nothing to learn--what softness, tenderness, and strength...."
6345
6346"Ah, how afraid I am for her, how afraid I am!" said the countess,
6347not realizing to whom she was speaking. Her maternal instinct told her
6348that Natasha had too much of something, and that because of this she
6349would not be happy. Before Natasha had finished singing,
6350fourteen-year-old Petya rushed in delightedly, to say that some
6351mummers had arrived.
6352
6353Natasha stopped abruptly.
6354
6355"Idiot!" she screamed at her brother and, running to a chair,
6356threw herself on it, sobbing so violently that she could not stop
6357for a long time.
6358
6359"It's nothing, Mamma, really it's nothing; only Petya startled
6360me," she said, trying to smile, but her tears still flowed and sobs
6361still choked her.
6362
6363The mummers (some of the house serfs) dressed up as bears, Turks,
6364innkeepers, and ladies--frightening and funny--bringing in with them
6365the cold from outside and a feeling of gaiety, crowded, at first
6366timidly, into the anteroom, then hiding behind one another they pushed
6367into the ballroom where, shyly at first and then more and more merrily
6368and heartily, they started singing, dancing, and playing Christmas
6369games. The countess, when she had identified them and laughed at their
6370costumes, went into the drawing room. The count sat in the ballroom,
6371smiling radiantly and applauding the players. The young people had
6372disappeared.
6373
6374Half an hour later there appeared among the other mummers in the
6375ballroom an old lady in a hooped skirt--this was Nicholas. A Turkish
6376girl was Petya. A clown was Dimmler. An hussar was Natasha, and a
6377Circassian was Sonya with burnt-cork mustache and eyebrows.
6378
6379After the condescending surprise, nonrecognition, and praise, from
6380those who were not themselves dressed up, the young people decided
6381that their costumes were so good that they ought to be shown
6382elsewhere.
6383
6384Nicholas, who, as the roads were in splendid condition, wanted to
6385take them all for a drive in his troyka, proposed to take with them
6386about a dozen of the serf mummers and drive to "Uncle's."
6387
6388"No, why disturb the old fellow?" said the countess. "Besides, you
6389wouldn't have room to turn round there. If you must go, go to the
6390Melyukovs'."
6391
6392Melyukova was a widow, who, with her family and their tutors and
6393governesses, lived three miles from the Rostovs.
6394
6395"That's right, my dear," chimed in the old count, thoroughly
6396aroused. "I'll dress up at once and go with them. I'll make Pashette
6397open her eyes."
6398
6399But the countess would not agree to his going; he had had a bad
6400leg all these last days. It was decided that the count must not go,
6401but that if Louisa Ivanovna (Madame Schoss) would go with them, the
6402young ladies might go to the Melyukovs', Sonya, generally so timid and
6403shy, more urgently than anyone begging Louisa Ivanovna not to refuse.
6404
6405Sonya's costume was the best of all. Her mustache and eyebrows
6406were extraordinarily becoming. Everyone told her she looked very
6407handsome, and she was in a spirited and energetic mood unusual with
6408her. Some inner voice told her that now or never her fate would be
6409decided, and in her male attire she seemed quite a different person.
6410Louisa Ivanovna consented to go, and in half an hour four troyka
6411sleighs with large and small bells, their runners squeaking and
6412whistling over the frozen snow, drove up to the porch.
6413
6414Natasha was foremost in setting a merry holiday tone, which, passing
6415from one to another, grew stronger and reached its climax
6416when they all came out into the frost and got into the sleighs,
6417talking, calling to one another, laughing, and shouting.
6418
6419Two of the troykas were the usual household sleighs, the third was
6420the old count's with a trotter from the Orlov stud as shaft horse, the
6421fourth was Nicholas' own with a short shaggy black shaft horse.
6422Nicholas, in his old lady's dress over which he had belted his
6423hussar overcoat, stood in the middle of the sleigh, reins in hand.
6424
6425It was so light that he could see the moonlight reflected from the
6426metal harness disks and from the eyes of the horses, who looked
6427round in alarm at the noisy party under the shadow of the porch roof.
6428
6429Natasha, Sonya, Madame Schoss, and two maids got into Nicholas'
6430sleigh; Dimmler, his wife, and Petya, into the old count's, and the
6431rest of the mummers seated themselves in the other two sleighs.
6432
6433"You go ahead, Zakhar!" shouted Nicholas to his father's coachman,
6434wishing for a chance to race past him.
6435
6436The old count's troyka, with Dimmler and his party, started forward,
6437squeaking on its runners as though freezing to the snow, its
6438deep-toned bell clanging. The side horses, pressing against the shafts
6439of the middle horse, sank in the snow, which was dry and glittered
6440like sugar, and threw it up.
6441
6442Nicholas set off, following the first sleigh; behind him the
6443others moved noisily, their runners squeaking. At first they drove
6444at a steady trot along the narrow road. While they drove past the
6445garden the shadows of the bare trees often fell across the road and
6446hid the brilliant moonlight, but as soon as they were past the
6447fence, the snowy plain bathed in moonlight and motionless spread out
6448before them glittering like diamonds and dappled with bluish
6449shadows. Bang, bang! went the first sleigh over a cradle hole in the
6450snow of the road, and each of the other sleighs jolted in the same
6451way, and rudely breaking the frost-bound stillness, the troykas
6452began to speed along the road, one after the other.
6453
6454"A hare's track, a lot of tracks!" rang out Natasha's voice
6455through the frost-bound air.
6456
6457"How light it is, Nicholas!" came Sonya's voice.
6458
6459Nicholas glanced round at Sonya, and bent down to see her face
6460closer. Quite a new, sweet face with black eyebrows and mustaches
6461peeped up at him from her sable furs--so close and yet so distant-
6462in the moonlight.
6463
6464"That used to be Sonya," thought he, and looked at her closer and
6465smiled.
6466
6467"What is it, Nicholas?"
6468
6469"Nothing," said he and turned again to the horses.
6470
6471When they came out onto the beaten highroad--polished by sleigh
6472runners and cut up by rough-shod hoofs, the marks of which were
6473visible in the moonlight--the horses began to tug at the reins of
6474their own accord and increased their pace. The near side horse,
6475arching his head and breaking into a short canter, tugged at his
6476traces. The shaft horse swayed from side to side, moving his ears as
6477if asking: "Isn't it time to begin now?" In front, already far ahead
6478the deep bell of the sleigh ringing farther and farther off, the black
6479horses driven by Zakhar could be clearly seen against the white
6480snow. From that sleigh one could hear the shouts, laughter, and voices
6481of the mummers.
6482
6483"Gee up, my darlings!" shouted Nicholas, pulling the reins to one
6484side and flourishing the whip.
6485
6486It was only by the keener wind that met them and the jerks given
6487by the side horses who pulled harder--ever increasing their gallop-
6488that one noticed how fast the troyka was flying. Nicholas looked back.
6489With screams squeals, and waving of whips that caused even the shaft
6490horses to gallop--the other sleighs followed. The shaft horse swung
6491steadily beneath the bow over its head, with no thought of
6492slackening pace and ready to put on speed when required.
6493
6494Nicholas overtook the first sleigh. They were driving downhill and
6495coming out upon a broad trodden track across a meadow, near a river.
6496
6497"Where are we?" thought he. "It's the Kosoy meadow, I suppose. But
6498no--this is something new I've never seen before. This isn't the Kosoy
6499meadow nor the Demkin hill, and heaven only knows what it is! It is
6500something new and enchanted. Well, whatever it may be..." And shouting
6501to his horses, he began to pass the first sleigh.
6502
6503Zakhar held back his horses and turned his face, which was already
6504covered with hoarfrost to his eyebrows.
6505
6506Nicholas gave the horses the rein, and Zakhar, stretching out his
6507arms, clucked his tongue and let his horses go.
6508
6509"Now, look out, master!" he cried.
6510
6511Faster still the two troykas flew side by side, and faster moved the
6512feet of the galloping side horses. Nicholas began to draw ahead.
6513Zakhar, while still keeping his arms extended, raised one hand with
6514the reins.
6515
6516"No you won't, master!" he shouted.
6517
6518Nicholas put all his horses to a gallop and passed Zakhar. The
6519horses showered the fine dry snow on the faces of those in the sleigh-
6520beside them sounded quick ringing bells and they caught confused
6521glimpses of swiftly moving legs and the shadows of the troyka they
6522were passing. The whistling sound of the runners on the snow and the
6523voices of girls shrieking were heard from different sides.
6524
6525Again checking his horses, Nicholas looked around him. They were
6526still surrounded by the magic plain bathed in moonlight and spangled
6527with stars.
6528
6529"Zakhar is shouting that I should turn to the left, but why to the
6530left?" thought Nicholas. "Are we getting to the Melyukovs'? Is this
6531Melyukovka? Heaven only knows where we are going, and heaven knows
6532what is happening to us--but it is very strange and pleasant
6533whatever it is." And he looked round in the sleigh.
6534
6535"Look, his mustache and eyelashes are all white!" said one of the
6536strange, pretty, unfamiliar people--the one with fine eyebrows and
6537mustache.
6538
6539"I think this used to be Natasha," thought Nicholas, "and that was
6540Madame Schoss, but perhaps it's not, and this Circassian with the
6541mustache I don't know, but I love her."
6542
6543"Aren't you cold?" he asked.
6544
6545They did not answer but began to laugh. Dimmler from the sleigh
6546behind shouted something--probably something funny--but they could not
6547make out what he said.
6548
6549"Yes, yes!" some voices answered, laughing.
6550
6551"But here was a fairy forest with black moving shadows, and a
6552glitter of diamonds and a flight of marble steps and the silver
6553roofs of fairy buildings and the shrill yells of some animals. And
6554if this is really Melyukovka, it is still stranger that we drove
6555heaven knows where and have come to Melyukovka," thought Nicholas.
6556
6557It really was Melyukovka, and maids and footmen with merry faces
6558came running, out to the porch carrying candles.
6559
6560"Who is it?" asked someone in the porch.
6561
6562"The mummers from the count's. I know by the horses," replied some
6563voices.
6564
6565
6566
6567
6568
6569CHAPTER XI
6570
6571
6572Pelageya Danilovna Melyukova, a broadly built, energetic woman
6573wearing spectacles, sat in the drawing room in a loose dress,
6574surrounded by her daughters whom she was trying to keep from feeling
6575dull. They were quietly dropping melted wax into snow and looking at
6576the shadows the wax figures would throw on the wall, when they heard
6577the steps and voices of new arrivals in the vestibule.
6578
6579Hussars, ladies, witches, clowns, and bears, after clearing their
6580throats and wiping the hoarfrost from their faces in the vestibule,
6581came into the ballroom where candles were hurriedly lighted. The
6582clown--Dimmler--and the lady--Nicholas--started a dance. Surrounded by
6583the screaming children the mummers, covering their faces and
6584disguising their voices, bowed to their hostess and arranged
6585themselves about the room.
6586
6587"Dear me! there's no recognizing them! And Natasha! See whom she
6588looks like! She really reminds me of somebody. But Herr Dimmler--isn't
6589he good! I didn't know him! And how he dances. Dear me, there's a
6590Circassian. Really, how becoming it is to dear Sonya. And who is that?
6591Well, you have cheered us up! Nikita and Vanya--clear away the tables!
6592And we were sitting so quietly. Ha, ha, ha!... The hussar, the hussar!
6593Just like a boy! And the legs!... I can't look at him..." different
6594voices were saying.
6595
6596Natasha, the young Melyukovs' favorite, disappeared with them into
6597the back rooms where a cork and various dressing gowns and male
6598garments were called for and received from the footman by bare girlish
6599arms from behind the door. Ten minutes later, all the young
6600Melyukovs joined the mummers.
6601
6602Pelageya Danilovna, having given orders to clear the rooms for the
6603visitors and arranged about refreshments for the gentry and the serfs,
6604went about among the mummers without removing her spectacles,
6605peering into their faces with a suppressed smile and failing to
6606recognize any of them. It was not merely Dimmler and the Rostovs she
6607failed to recognize, she did not even recognize her own daughters,
6608or her late husband's, dressing gowns and uniforms, which they had put
6609on.
6610
6611"And who is is this?" she asked her governess, peering into the face
6612of her own daughter dressed up as a Kazan-Tartar. "I suppose it is one
6613of the Rostovs! Well, Mr. Hussar, and what regiment do you serve
6614in?" she asked Natasha. "Here, hand some fruit jelly to the Turk!" she
6615ordered the butler who was handing things round. "That's not forbidden
6616by his law."
6617
6618Sometimes, as she looked at the strange but amusing capers cut by
6619the dancers, who--having decided once for all that being disguised, no
6620one would recognize them--were not at all shy, Pelageya Danilovna
6621hid her face in her handkerchief, and her whole stout body shook
6622with irrepressible, kindly, elderly laughter.
6623
6624"My little Sasha! Look at Sasha!" she said.
6625
6626After Russian country dances and chorus dances, Pelageya Danilovna
6627made the serfs and gentry join in one large circle: a ring, a
6628string, and a silver ruble were fetched and they all played games
6629together.
6630
6631In an hour, all the costumes were crumpled and disordered. The
6632corked eyebrows and mustaches were smeared over the perspiring,
6633flushed, and merry faces. Pelageya Danilovna began to recognize the
6634mummers, admired their cleverly contrived costumes, and particularly
6635how they suited the young ladies, and she thanked them all for
6636having entertained her so well. The visitors were invited to supper in
6637the drawing room, and the serfs had something served to them in the
6638ballroom.
6639
6640"Now to tell one's fortune in the empty bathhouse is frightening!"
6641said an old maid who lived with the Melyukovs, during supper.
6642
6643"Why?" said the eldest Melyukov girl.
6644
6645"You wouldn't go, it takes courage..."
6646
6647"I'll go," said Sonya.
6648
6649"Tell what happened to the young lady!" said the second Melyukov
6650girl.
6651
6652"Well," began the old maid, "a young lady once went out, took a
6653cock, laid the table for two, all properly, and sat down. After
6654sitting a while, she suddenly hears someone coming... a sleigh
6655drives up with harness bells; she hears him coming! He comes in,
6656just in the shape of a man, like an officer--comes in and sits down to
6657table with her."
6658
6659"Ah! ah!" screamed Natasha, rolling her eyes with horror.
6660
6661"Yes? And how... did he speak?"
6662
6663"Yes, like a man. Everything quite all right, and he began
6664persuading her; and she should have kept him talking till cockcrow,
6665but she got frightened, just got frightened and hid her face in her
6666hands. Then he caught her up. It was lucky the maids ran in just
6667then..."
6668
6669"Now, why frighten them?" said Pelageya Danilovna.
6670
6671"Mamma, you used to try your fate yourself..." said her daughter.
6672
6673"And how does one do it in a barn?" inquired Sonya.
6674
6675"Well, say you went to the barn now, and listened. It depends on
6676what you hear; hammering and knocking--that's bad; but a sound of
6677shifting grain is good and one sometimes hears that, too."
6678
6679"Mamma, tell us what happened to you in the barn."
6680
6681Pelageya Danilovna smiled.
6682
6683"Oh, I've forgotten..." she replied. "But none of you would go?"
6684
6685"Yes, I will; Pelageya Danilovna, let me! I'll go," said Sonya.
6686
6687"Well, why not, if you're not afraid?"
6688
6689"Louisa Ivanovna, may I?" asked Sonya.
6690
6691Whether they were playing the ring and string game or the ruble game
6692or talking as now, Nicholas did not leave Sonya's side, and gazed at
6693her with quite new eyes. It seemed to him that it was only today,
6694thanks to that burnt-cork mustache, that he had fully learned to
6695know her. And really, that evening, Sonya was brighter, more animated,
6696and prettier than Nicholas had ever seen her before.
6697
6698"So that's what she is like; what a fool I have been!" he thought
6699gazing at her sparkling eyes, and under the mustache a happy rapturous
6700smile dimpled her cheeks, a smile he had never seen before.
6701
6702"I'm not afraid of anything," said Sonya. "May I go at once?" She
6703got up.
6704
6705They told her where the barn was and how she should stand and
6706listen, and they handed her a fur cloak. She threw this over her
6707head and shoulders and glanced at Nicholas.
6708
6709"What a darling that girl is!" thought he. "And what have I been
6710thinking of till now?"
6711
6712Sonya went out into the passage to go to the barn. Nicholas went
6713hastily to the front porch, saying he felt too hot. The crowd of
6714people really had made the house stuffy.
6715
6716Outside, there was the same cold stillness and the same moon, but
6717even brighter than before. The light was so strong and the snow
6718sparkled with so many stars that one did not wish to look up at the
6719sky and the real stars were unnoticed. The sky was black and dreary,
6720while the earth was gay.
6721
6722"I am a fool, a fool! what have I been waiting for?" thought
6723Nicholas, and running out from the porch he went round the corner of
6724the house and along the path that led to the back porch. He knew Sonya
6725would pass that way. Halfway lay some snow-covered piles of firewood
6726and across and along them a network of shadows from the bare old
6727lime trees fell on the snow and on the path. This path led to the
6728barn. The log walls of the barn and its snow-covered roof, that looked
6729as if hewn out of some precious stone, sparkled in the moonlight. A
6730tree in the garden snapped with the frost, and then all was again
6731perfectly silent. His bosom seemed to inhale not air but the
6732strength of eternal youth and gladness.
6733
6734From the back porch came the sound of feet descending the steps, the
6735bottom step upon which snow had fallen gave a ringing creak and he
6736heard the voice of an old maidservant saying, "Straight, straight,
6737along the path, Miss. Only, don't look back."
6738
6739"I am not afraid," answered Sonya's voice, and along the path toward
6740Nicholas came the crunching, whistling sound of Sonya's feet in her
6741thin shoes.
6742
6743Sonya came along, wrapped in her cloak. She was only a couple of
6744paces away when she saw him, and to her too he was not the Nicholas
6745she had known and always slightly feared. He was in a woman's dress,
6746with tousled hair and a happy smile new to Sonya. She ran rapidly
6747toward him.
6748
6749"Quite different and yet the same," thought Nicholas, looking at her
6750face all lit up by the moonlight. He slipped his arms under the
6751cloak that covered her head, embraced her, pressed her to him, and
6752kissed her on the lips that wore a mustache and had a smell of burnt
6753cork. Sonya kissed him full on the lips, and disengaging her little
6754hands pressed them to his cheeks.
6755
6756"Sonya!... Nicholas!"... was all they said. They ran to the barn and
6757then back again, re-entering, he by the front and she by the back
6758porch.
6759
6760
6761
6762
6763
6764CHAPTER XII
6765
6766
6767When they all drove back from Pelageya Danilovna's, Natasha, who
6768always saw and noticed everything, arranged that she and Madame Schoss
6769should go back in the sleigh with Dimmler, and Sonya with Nicholas and
6770the maids.
6771
6772On the way back Nicholas drove at a steady pace instead of racing
6773and kept peering by that fantastic all-transforming light into Sonya's
6774face and searching beneath the eyebrows and mustache for his former
6775and his present Sonya from whom he had resolved never to be parted
6776again. He looked and recognizing in her both the old and the new
6777Sonya, and being reminded by the smell of burnt cork of the
6778sensation of her kiss, inhaled the frosty air with a full breast
6779and, looking at the ground flying beneath him and at the sparkling
6780sky, felt himself again in fairyland.
6781
6782"Sonya, is it well with thee?" he asked from time to time.
6783
6784"Yes!" she replied. "And with thee?"
6785
6786When halfway home Nicholas handed the reins to the coachman and
6787ran for a moment to Natasha's sleigh and stood on its wing.
6788
6789"Natasha!" he whispered in French, "do you know I have made up my
6790mind about Sonya?"
6791
6792"Have you told her?" asked Natasha, suddenly beaming all over with
6793joy.
6794
6795"Oh, how strange you are with that mustache and those eyebrows!...
6796Natasha--are you glad?"
6797
6798"I am so glad, so glad! I was beginning to be vexed with you. I
6799did not tell you, but you have been treating her badly. What a heart
6800she has, Nicholas! I am horrid sometimes, but I was ashamed to be
6801happy while Sonya was not," continued Natasha. "Now I am so glad!
6802Well, run back to her."
6803
6804"No, wait a bit.... Oh, how funny you look!" cried Nicholas, peering
6805into her face and finding in his sister too something new, unusual,
6806and bewitchingly tender that he had not seen in her before.
6807"Natasha, it's magical, isn't it?"
6808
6809"Yes," she replied. "You have done splendidly."
6810
6811"Had I seen her before as she is now," thought Nicholas, "I should
6812long ago have asked her what to do and have done whatever she told me,
6813and all would have been well."
6814
6815"So you are glad and I have done right?"
6816
6817"Oh, quite right! I had a quarrel with Mamma some time ago about it.
6818Mamma said she was angling for you. How could she say such a thing!
6819I nearly stormed at Mamma. I will never let anyone say anything bad of
6820Sonya, for there is nothing but good in her."
6821
6822"Then it's all right?" said Nicholas, again scrutinizing the
6823expression of his sister's face to see if she was in earnest. Then
6824he jumped down and, his boots scrunching the snow, ran back to his
6825sleigh. The same happy, smiling Circassian, with mustache and
6826beaming eyes looking up from under a sable hood, was still sitting
6827there, and that Circassian was Sonya, and that Sonya was certainly his
6828future happy and loving wife.
6829
6830When they reached home and had told their mother how they had
6831spent the evening at the Melyukovs', the girls went to their
6832bedroom. When they had undressed, but without washing off the cork
6833mustaches, they sat a long time talking of their happiness. They
6834talked of how they would live when they were married, how their
6835husbands would be friends, and how happy they would be. On Natasha's
6836table stood two looking glasses which Dunyasha had prepared
6837beforehand.
6838
6839"Only when will all that be? I am afraid never.... It would be too
6840good!" said Natasha, rising and going to the looking glasses.
6841
6842"Sit down, Natasha; perhaps you'll see him," said Sonya.
6843
6844Natasha lit the candles, one on each side of one of the looking
6845glasses, and sat down.
6846
6847"I see someone with a mustache," said Natasha, seeing her own face.
6848
6849"You mustn't laugh, Miss," said Dunyasha.
6850
6851With Sonya's help and the maid's, Natasha got the glass she held
6852into the right position opposite the other; her face assumed a serious
6853expression and she sat silent. She sat a long time looking at the
6854receding line of candles reflected in the glasses and expecting
6855(from tales she had heard) to see a coffin, or him, Prince Andrew,
6856in that last dim, indistinctly outlined square. But ready as she was
6857to take the smallest speck for the image of a man or of a coffin,
6858she saw nothing. She began blinking rapidly and moved away from the
6859looking glasses.
6860
6861"Why is it others see things and I don't?" she said. "You sit down
6862now, Sonya. You absolutely must, tonight! Do it for me.... Today I
6863feel so frightened!"
6864
6865Sonya sat down before the glasses, got the right position, and began
6866looking.
6867
6868"Now, Miss Sonya is sure to see something," whispered Dunyasha;
6869"while you do nothing but laugh."
6870
6871Sonya heard this and Natasha's whisper:
6872
6873"I know she will. She saw something last year."
6874
6875For about three minutes all were silent.
6876
6877"Of course she will!" whispered Natasha, but did not finish...
6878suddenly Sonya pushed away the glass she was holding and covered her
6879eyes with her hand.
6880
6881"Oh, Natasha!" she cried.
6882
6883"Did you see? Did you? What was it?" exclaimed Natasha, holding up
6884the looking glass.
6885
6886Sonya had not seen anything, she was just wanting to blink and to
6887get up when she heard Natasha say, "Of course she will!" She did not
6888wish to disappoint either Dunyasha or Natasha, but it was hard to
6889sit still. She did not herself know how or why the exclamation escaped
6890her when she covered her eyes.
6891
6892"You saw him?" urged Natasha, seizing her hand.
6893
6894"Yes. Wait a bit... I... saw him," Sonya could not help saying,
6895not yet knowing whom Natasha meant by him, Nicholas or Prince Andrew.
6896
6897"But why shouldn't I say I saw something? Others do see! Besides who
6898can tell whether I saw anything or not?" flashed through Sonya's mind.
6899
6900"Yes, I saw him," she said.
6901
6902"How? Standing or lying?"
6903
6904"No, I saw... At first there was nothing, then I saw him lying
6905down."
6906
6907"Andrew lying? Is he ill?" asked Natasha, her frightened eyes
6908fixed on her friend.
6909
6910"No, on the contrary, on the contrary! His face was cheerful, and he
6911turned to me." And when saying this she herself fancied she had really
6912seen what she described.
6913
6914"Well, and then, Sonya?..."
6915
6916"After that, I could not make out what there was; something blue and
6917red..."
6918
6919"Sonya! When will he come back? When shall I see him! O, God, how
6920afraid I am for him and for myself and about everything!..." Natasha
6921began, and without replying to Sonya's words of comfort she got into
6922bed, and long after her candle was out lay open-eyed and motionless,
6923gazing at the moonlight through the frosty windowpanes.
6924
6925
6926
6927
6928
6929CHAPTER XIII
6930
6931
6932Soon after the Christmas holidays Nicholas told his mother of his
6933love for Sonya and of his firm resolve to marry her. The countess, who
6934had long noticed what was going on between them and was expecting this
6935declaration, listened to him in silence and then told her son that
6936he might marry whom he pleased, but that neither she nor his father
6937would give their blessing to such a marriage. Nicholas, for the
6938first time, felt that his mother was displeased with him and that,
6939despite her love for him, she would not give way. Coldly, without
6940looking at her son, she sent for her husband and, when he came,
6941tried briefly and coldly to inform him of the facts, in her son's
6942presence, but unable to restrain herself she burst into tears of
6943vexation and left the room. The old count began irresolutely to
6944admonish Nicholas and beg him to abandon his purpose. Nicholas replied
6945that he could not go back on his word, and his father, sighing and
6946evidently disconcerted, very soon became silent and went in to the
6947countess. In all his encounters with his son, the count was always
6948conscious of his own guilt toward him for having wasted the family
6949fortune, and so he could not be angry with him for refusing to marry
6950an heiress and choosing the dowerless Sonya. On this occasion, he
6951was only more vividly conscious of the fact that if his affairs had
6952not been in disorder, no better wife for Nicholas than Sonya could
6953have been wished for, and that no one but himself with his Mitenka and
6954his uncomfortable habits was to blame for the condition of the
6955family finances.
6956
6957The father and mother did not speak of the matter to their son
6958again, but a few days later the countess sent for Sonya and, with a
6959cruelty neither of them expected, reproached her niece for trying to
6960catch Nicholas and for ingratitude. Sonya listened silently with
6961downcast eyes to the countess' cruel words, without understanding what
6962was required of her. She was ready to sacrifice everything for her
6963benefactors. Self-sacrifice was her most cherished idea but in this
6964case she could not see what she ought to sacrifice, or for whom. She
6965could not help loving the countess and the whole Rostov family, but
6966neither could she help loving Nicholas and knowing that his
6967happiness depended on that love. She was silent and sad and did not
6968reply. Nicholas felt the situation to be intolerable and went to
6969have an explanation with his mother. He first implored her to
6970forgive him and Sonya and consent to their marriage, then he
6971threatened that if she molested Sonya he would at once marry her
6972secretly.
6973
6974The countess, with a coldness her son had never seen in her
6975before, replied that he was of age, that Prince Andrew was marrying
6976without his father's consent, and he could do the same, but that she
6977would never receive that intriguer as her daughter.
6978
6979Exploding at the word intriguer, Nicholas, raising his voice, told
6980his mother he had never expected her to try to force him to sell his
6981feelings, but if that were so, he would say for the last time....
6982But he had no time to utter the decisive word which the expression
6983of his face caused his mother to await with terror, and which would
6984perhaps have forever remained a cruel memory to them both. He had
6985not time to say it, for Natasha, with a pale and set face, entered the
6986room from the door at which she had been listening.
6987
6988"Nicholas, you are talking nonsense! Be quiet, be quiet, be quiet, I
6989tell you!..." she almost screamed, so as to drown his voice.
6990
6991"Mamma darling, it's not at all so... my poor, sweet darling," she
6992said to her mother, who conscious that they had been on the brink of a
6993rupture gazed at her son with terror, but in the obstinacy and
6994excitement of the conflict could not and would not give way.
6995
6996"Nicholas, I'll explain to you. Go away! Listen, Mamma darling,"
6997said Natasha.
6998
6999Her words were incoherent, but they attained the purpose at which
7000she was aiming.
7001
7002The countess, sobbing heavily, hid her face on her daughter's
7003breast, while Nicholas rose, clutching his head, and left the room.
7004
7005Natasha set to work to effect a reconciliation, and so far succeeded
7006that Nicholas received a promise from his mother that Sonya should not
7007be troubled, while he on his side promised not to undertake anything
7008without his parents' knowledge.
7009
7010Firmly resolved, after putting his affairs in order in the regiment,
7011to retire from the army and return and marry Sonya, Nicholas, serious,
7012sorrowful, and at variance with his parents, but, as it seemed to him,
7013passionately in love, left at the beginning of January to rejoin his
7014regiment.
7015
7016After Nicholas had gone things in the Rostov household were more
7017depressing than ever, and the countess fell ill from mental agitation.
7018
7019Sonya was unhappy at the separation from Nicholas and still more
7020so on account of the hostile tone the countess could not help adopting
7021toward her. The count was more perturbed than ever by the condition of
7022his affairs, which called for some decisive action. Their town house
7023and estate near Moscow had inevitably to be sold, and for this they
7024had to go to Moscow. But the countess' health obliged them to delay
7025their departure from day to day.
7026
7027Natasha, who had borne the first period of separation from her
7028betrothed lightly and even cheerfully, now grew more agitated and
7029impatient every day. The thought that her best days, which she would
7030have employed in loving him, were being vainly wasted, with no
7031advantage to anyone, tormented her incessantly. His letters for the
7032most part irritated her. It hurt her to think that while she lived
7033only in the thought of him, he was living a real life, seeing new
7034places and new people that interested him. The more interesting his
7035letters were the more vexed she felt. Her letters to him, far from
7036giving her any comfort, seemed to her a wearisome and artificial
7037obligation. She could not write, because she could not conceive the
7038possibility of expressing sincerely in a letter even a thousandth part
7039of what she expressed by voice, smile, and glance. She wrote to him
7040formal, monotonous, and dry letters, to which she attached no
7041importance herself, and in the rough copies of which the countess
7042corrected her mistakes in spelling.
7043
7044There was still no improvement in the countess' health, but it was
7045impossible to defer the journey to Moscow any longer. Natasha's
7046trousseau had to be ordered and the house sold. Moreover, Prince
7047Andrew was expected in Moscow, where old Prince Bolkonski was spending
7048the winter, and Natasha felt sure he had already arrived.
7049
7050So the countess remained in the country, and the count, taking Sonya
7051and Natasha with him, went to Moscow at the end of January.
7052
7053
7054
7055
7056BOOK EIGHT: 1811 --12
7057
7058
7059
7060
7061
7062CHAPTER I
7063
7064
7065After Prince Andrews engagement to Natasha, Pierre without any
7066apparent cause suddenly felt it impossible to go on living as
7067before. Firmly convinced as he was of the truths revealed to him by
7068his benefactor, and happy as he had been in perfecting his inner
7069man, to which he had devoted himself with such ardor--all the zest
7070of such a life vanished after the engagement of Andrew and Natasha and
7071the death of Joseph Alexeevich, the news of which reached him almost
7072at the same time. Only the skeleton of life remained: his house, a
7073brilliant wife who now enjoyed the favors of a very important
7074personage, acquaintance with all Petersburg, and his court service
7075with its dull formalities. And this life suddenly seemed to Pierre
7076unexpectedly loathsome. He ceased keeping a diary, avoided the company
7077of the Brothers, began going to the Club again, drank a great deal,
7078and came once more in touch with the bachelor sets, leading such a
7079life that the Countess Helene thought it necessary to speak severely
7080to him about it. Pierre felt that she right, and to avoid compromising
7081her went away to Moscow.
7082
7083In Moscow as soon as he entered his huge house in which the faded
7084and fading princesses still lived, with its enormous retinue; as
7085soon as, driving through the town, he saw the Iberian shrine with
7086innumerable tapers burning before the golden covers of the icons,
7087the Kremlin Square with its snow undisturbed by vehicles, the sleigh
7088drivers and hovels of the Sivtsev Vrazhok, those old Moscovites who
7089desired nothing, hurried nowhere, and were ending their days
7090leisurely; when he saw those old Moscow ladies, the Moscow balls,
7091and the English Club, he felt himself at home in a quiet haven. In
7092Moscow he felt at peace, at home, warm and dirty as in an old dressing
7093gown.
7094
7095Moscow society, from the old women down to the children, received
7096Pierre like a long-expected guest whose place was always ready
7097awaiting him. For Moscow society Pierre was the nicest, kindest,
7098most intellectual, merriest, and most magnanimous of cranks, a
7099heedless, genial nobleman of the old Russian type. His purse was
7100always empty because it was open to everyone.
7101
7102Benefit performances, poor pictures, statues, benevolent
7103societies, gypsy choirs, schools, subscription dinners, sprees,
7104Freemasons, churches, and books--no one and nothing met with a refusal
7105from him, and had it not been for two friends who had borrowed large
7106sums from him and taken him under their protection, he would have
7107given everything away. There was never a dinner or soiree at the
7108Club without him. As soon as he sank into his place on the sofa
7109after two bottles of Margaux he was surrounded, and talking,
7110disputing, and joking began. When there were quarrels, his kindly
7111smile and well-timed jests reconciled the antagonists. The Masonic
7112dinners were dull and dreary when he was not there.
7113
7114When after a bachelor supper he rose with his amiable and kindly
7115smile, yielding to the entreaties of the festive company to drive
7116off somewhere with them, shouts of delight and triumph arose among the
7117young men. At balls he danced if a partner was needed. Young ladies,
7118married and unmarried, liked him because without making love to any of
7119them, he was equally amiable to all, especially after supper. "Il
7120est charmant; il n'a pas de sexe,"* they said of him.
7121
7122
7123*"He is charming; he has no sex."
7124
7125
7126Pierre was one of those retired gentlemen-in-waiting of whom there
7127were hundreds good-humoredly ending their days in Moscow.
7128
7129How horrified he would have been seven years before, when he first
7130arrived from abroad, had he been told that there was no need for him
7131to seek or plan anything, that his rut had long been shaped, eternally
7132predetermined, and that wriggle as he might, he would be what all in
7133his position were. He could not have believed it! Had he not at one
7134time longed with all his heart to establish a republic in Russia; then
7135himself to be a Napoleon; then to be a philosopher; and then a
7136strategist and the conqueror of Napoleon? Had he not seen the
7137possibility of, and passionately desired, the regeneration of the
7138sinful human race, and his own progress to the highest degree of
7139perfection? Had he not established schools and hospitals and liberated
7140his serfs?
7141
7142But instead of all that--here he was, the wealthy husband of an
7143unfaithful wife, a retired gentleman-in-waiting, fond of eating and
7144drinking and, as he unbuttoned his waistcoat, of abusing the
7145government a bit, a member of the Moscow English Club, and a universal
7146favorite in Moscow society. For a long time he could not reconcile
7147himself to the idea that he was one of those same retired Moscow
7148gentlemen-in-waiting he had so despised seven years before.
7149
7150Sometimes he consoled himself with the thought that he was only
7151living this life temporarily; but then he was shocked by the thought
7152of how many, like himself, had entered that life and that Club
7153temporarily, with all their teeth and hair, and had only left it
7154when not a single tooth or hair remained.
7155
7156In moments of pride, when he thought of his position it seemed to
7157him that he was quite different and distinct from those other
7158retired gentlemen-in-waiting he had formerly despised: they were
7159empty, stupid, contented fellows, satisfied with their position,
7160"while I am still discontented and want to do something for mankind.
7161But perhaps all these comrades of mine struggled just like me and
7162sought something new, a path in life of their own, and like me were
7163brought by force of circumstances, society, and race--by that
7164elemental force against which man is powerless--to the condition I
7165am in," said he to himself in moments of humility; and after living
7166some time in Moscow he no longer despised, but began to grow fond
7167of, to respect, and to pity his comrades in destiny, as he pitied
7168himself.
7169
7170Pierre longer suffered moments of despair, hypochondria, and disgust
7171with life, but the malady that had formerly found expression in such
7172acute attacks was driven inwards and never left him for a moment.
7173"What for? Why? What is going on in the world?" he would ask himself
7174in perplexity several times a day, involuntarily beginning to
7175reflect anew on the meaning of the phenomena of life; but knowing by
7176experience that there were no answers to these questions he made haste
7177to turn away from them, and took up a book, or hurried of to the
7178Club or to Apollon Nikolaevich's, to exchange the gossip of the town.
7179
7180"Helene, who has never cared for anything but her own body and is
7181one of the stupidest women in the world," thought Pierre, "is regarded
7182by people as the acme of intelligence and refinement, and they pay
7183homage to her. Napoleon Bonaparte was despised by all as long as he
7184was great, but now that he has become a wretched comedian the
7185Emperor Francis wants to offer him his daughter in an illegal
7186marriage. The Spaniards, through the Catholic clergy, offer praise
7187to God for their victory over the French on the fourteenth of June,
7188and the French, also through the Catholic clergy, offer praise because
7189on that same fourteenth of June they defeated the Spaniards. My
7190brother Masons swear by the blood that they are ready to sacrifice
7191everything for their neighbor, but they do not give a ruble each to
7192the collections for the poor, and they intrigue, the Astraea Lodge
7193against the Manna Seekers, and fuss about an authentic Scotch carpet
7194and a charter that nobody needs, and the meaning of which the very man
7195who wrote it does not understand. We all profess the Christian law
7196of forgiveness of injuries and love of our neighbors, the law in honor
7197of which we have built in Moscow forty times forty churches--but
7198yesterday a deserter was knouted to death and a minister of that
7199same law of love and forgiveness, a priest, gave the soldier a cross
7200to kiss before his execution." So thought Pierre, and the whole of
7201this general deception which everyone accepts, accustomed as he was to
7202it, astonished him each time as if it were something new. "I
7203understand the deception and confusion," he thought, "but how am I
7204to tell them all that I see? I have tried, and have always found
7205that they too in the depths of their souls understand it as I do,
7206and only try not to see it. So it appears that it must be so! But I-
7207what is to become of me?" thought he. He had the unfortunate
7208capacity many men, especially Russians, have of seeing and believing
7209in the possibility of goodness and truth, but of seeing the evil and
7210falsehood of life too clearly to be able to take a serious part in it.
7211Every sphere of work was connected, in his eyes, with evil and
7212deception. Whatever he tried to be, whatever he engaged in, the evil
7213and falsehood of it repulsed him and blocked every path of activity.
7214Yet he had to live and to find occupation. It was too dreadful to be
7215under the burden of these insoluble problems, so he abandoned
7216himself to any distraction in order to forget them. He frequented
7217every kind of society, drank much, bought pictures, engaged in
7218building, and above all--read.
7219
7220He read, and read everything that came to hand. On coming home,
7221while his valets were still taking off his things, he picked up a book
7222and began to read. From reading he passed to sleeping, from sleeping
7223to gossip in drawing rooms of the Club, from gossip to carousals and
7224women; from carousals back to gossip, reading, and wine. Drinking
7225became more and more a physical and also a moral necessity. Though the
7226doctors warned him that with his corpulence wine was dangerous for
7227him, he drank a great deal. He was only quite at ease when having
7228poured several glasses of wine mechanically into his large mouth he
7229felt a pleasant warmth in his body, an amiability toward all his
7230fellows, and a readiness to respond superficially to every idea
7231without probing it deeply. Only after emptying a bottle or two did
7232he feel dimly that the terribly tangled skein of life which previously
7233had terrified him was not as dreadful as he had thought. He was always
7234conscious of some aspect of that skein, as with a buzzing in his
7235head after dinner or supper he chatted or listened to conversation
7236or read. But under the influence of wine he said to himself: "It
7237doesn't matter. I'll get it unraveled. I have a solution ready, but
7238have no time now--I'll think it all out later on!" But the later on
7239never came.
7240
7241In the morning, on an empty stomach, all the old questions
7242appeared as insoluble and terrible as ever, and Pierre hastily
7243picked up a book, and if anyone came to see him he was glad.
7244
7245Sometimes he remembered how he had heard that soldiers in war when
7246entrenched under the enemy's fire, if they have nothing to do, try
7247hard to find some occupation the more easily to bear the danger. To
7248Pierre all men seemed like those soldiers, seeking refuge from life:
7249some in ambition, some in cards, some in framing laws, some in
7250women, some in toys, some in horses, some in politics, some in
7251sport, some in wine, and some in governmental affairs. "Nothing is
7252trivial, and nothing is important, it's all the same--only to save
7253oneself from it as best one can," thought Pierre. "Only not to see it,
7254that dreadful it!"
7255
7256
7257
7258
7259
7260CHAPTER II
7261
7262
7263At the beginning of winter Prince Nicholas Bolkonski and his
7264daughter moved to Moscow. At that time enthusiasm for the Emperor
7265Alexander's regime had weakened and a patriotic and anti-French
7266tendency prevailed there, and this, together with his past and his
7267intellect and his originality, at once made Prince Nicholas
7268Bolkonski an object of particular respect to the Moscovites and the
7269center of the Moscow opposition to the government.
7270
7271The prince had aged very much that year. He showed marked signs of
7272senility by a tendency to fall asleep, forgetfulness of quite recent
7273events, remembrance of remote ones, and the childish vanity with which
7274he accepted the role of head of the Moscow opposition. In spite of
7275this the old man inspired in all his visitors alike a feeling of
7276respectful veneration--especially of an evening when he came in to tea
7277in his old-fashioned coat and powdered wig and, aroused by anyone,
7278told his abrupt stories of the past, or uttered yet more abrupt and
7279scathing criticisms of the present. For them all, that old-fashioned
7280house with its gigantic mirrors, pre-Revolution furniture, powdered
7281footmen, and the stern shrewd old man (himself a relic of the past
7282century) with his gentle daughter and the pretty Frenchwoman who
7283were reverently devoted to him presented a majestic and agreeable
7284spectacle. But the visitors did not reflect that besides the couple of
7285hours during which they saw their host, there were also twenty-two
7286hours in the day during which the private and intimate life of the
7287house continued.
7288
7289Latterly that private life had become very trying for Princess Mary.
7290There in Moscow she was deprived of her greatest pleasures--talks with
7291the pilgrims and the solitude which refreshed her at Bald Hills--and
7292she had none of the advantages and pleasures of city life. She did not
7293go out into society; everyone knew that her father would not let her
7294go anywhere without him, and his failing health prevented his going
7295out himself, so that she was not invited to dinners and evening
7296parties. She had quite abandoned the hope of getting married. She
7297saw the coldness and malevolence with which the old prince received
7298and dismissed the young men, possible suitors, who sometimes
7299appeared at their house. She had no friends: during this visit to
7300Moscow she had been disappointed in the two who had been nearest to
7301her. Mademoiselle Bourienne, with whom she had never been able to be
7302quite frank, had now become unpleasant to her, and for various reasons
7303Princess Mary avoided her. Julie, with whom she had corresponded for
7304the last five years, was in Moscow, but proved to be quite alien to
7305her when they met. Just then Julie, who by the death of her brothers
7306had become one of the richest heiresses in Moscow, was in the full
7307whirl of society pleasures. She was surrounded by young men who, she
7308fancied, had suddenly learned to appreciate her worth. Julie was at
7309that stage in the life of a society woman when she feels that her last
7310chance of marrying has come and that her fate must be decided now or
7311never. On Thursdays Princess Mary remembered with a mournful smile
7312that she now had no one to write to, since Julie--whose presence
7313gave her no pleasure was here and they met every week. Like the old
7314emigre who declined to marry the lady with whom he had spent his
7315evenings for years, she regretted Julie's presence and having no one
7316to write to. In Moscow Princess Mary had no one to talk to, no one
7317to whom to confide her sorrow, and much sorrow fell to her lot just
7318then. The time for Prince Andrew's return and marriage was
7319approaching, but his request to her to prepare his father for it had
7320not been carried out; in fact, it seemed as if matters were quite
7321hopeless, for at every mention of the young Countess Rostova the old
7322prince (who apart from that was usually in a bad temper) lost
7323control of himself. Another lately added sorrow arose from the lessons
7324she gave her six year-old nephew. To her consternation she detected in
7325herself in relation to little Nicholas some symptoms of her father's
7326irritability. However often she told herself that she must not get
7327irritable when teaching her nephew, almost every time that, pointer in
7328hand, she sat down to show him the French alphabet, she so longed to
7329pour her own knowledge quickly and easily into the child--who was
7330already afraid that Auntie might at any moment get angry--that at
7331his slightest inattention she trembled, became flustered and heated,
7332raised her voice, and sometimes pulled him by the arm and put him in
7333the corner. Having put him in the corner she would herself begin to
7334cry over her cruel, evil nature, and little Nicholas, following her
7335example, would sob, and without permission would leave his corner,
7336come to her, pull her wet hands from her face, and comfort her. But
7337what distressed the princess most of all was her father's
7338irritability, which was always directed against her and had of late
7339amounted to cruelty. Had he forced her to prostrate herself to the
7340ground all night, had he beaten her or made her fetch wood or water,
7341it would never have entered her mind to think her position hard; but
7342this loving despot--the more cruel because he loved her and for that
7343reason tormented himself and her--knew how not merely to hurt and
7344humiliate her deliberately, but to show her that she was always to
7345blame for everything. Of late he had exhibited a new trait that
7346tormented Princess Mary more than anything else; this was his
7347ever-increasing intimacy with Mademoiselle Bourienne. The idea that at
7348the first moment of receiving the news of his son's intentions had
7349occurred to him in jest--that if Andrew got married he himself would
7350marry Bourienne--had evidently pleased him, and latterly he had
7351persistently, and as it seemed to Princess Mary merely to offend
7352her, shown special endearments to the companion and expressed his
7353dissatisfaction with his daughter by demonstrations of love of
7354Bourienne.
7355
7356One day in Moscow in Princess Mary's presence (she thought her
7357father did it purposely when she was there) the old prince kissed
7358Mademoiselle Bourienne's hand and, drawing her to him, embraced her
7359affectionately. Princess Mary flushed and ran out of the room. A few
7360minutes later Mademoiselle Bourienne came into Princess Mary's room
7361smiling and making cheerful remarks in her agreeable voice. Princess
7362Mary hastily wiped away her tears, went resolutely up to
7363Mademoiselle Bourienne, and evidently unconscious of what she was
7364doing began shouting in angry haste at the Frenchwoman, her voice
7365breaking: "It's horrible, vile, inhuman, to take advantage of the
7366weakness..." She did not finish. "Leave my room," she exclaimed, and
7367burst into sobs.
7368
7369Next day the prince did not say a word to his daughter, but she
7370noticed that at dinner he gave orders that Mademoiselle Bourienne
7371should be served first. After dinner, when the footman handed coffee
7372and from habit began with the princess, the prince suddenly grew
7373furious, threw his stick at Philip, and instantly gave instructions to
7374have him conscripted for the army.
7375
7376"He doesn't obey... I said it twice... and he doesn't obey! She is
7377the first person in this house; she's my best friend," cried the
7378prince. "And if you allow yourself," he screamed in a fury, addressing
7379Princess Mary for the first time, "to forget yourself again before her
7380as you dared to do yesterday, I will show you who is master in this
7381house. Go! Don't let me set eyes on you; beg her pardon!"
7382
7383Princess Mary asked Mademoiselle Bourienne's pardon, and also her
7384father's pardon for herself and for Philip the footman, who had begged
7385for her intervention.
7386
7387At such moments something like a pride of sacrifice gathered in
7388her soul. And suddenly that father whom she had judged would look
7389for his spectacles in her presence, fumbling near them and not
7390seeing them, or would forget something that had just occurred, or take
7391a false step with his failing legs and turn to see if anyone had
7392noticed his feebleness, or, worst of all, at dinner when there were no
7393visitors to excite him would suddenly fall asleep, letting his
7394napkin drop and his shaking head sink over his plate. "He is old and
7395feeble, and I dare to condemn him!" she thought at such moments,
7396with a feeling of revulsion against herself.
7397
7398
7399
7400
7401
7402CHAPTER III
7403
7404
7405In 1811 there was living in Moscow a French doctor--Metivier--who
7406had rapidly become the fashion. He was enormously tall, handsome,
7407amiable as Frenchmen are, and was, as all Moscow said, an
7408extraordinarily clever doctor. He was received in the best houses
7409not merely as a doctor, but as an equal.
7410
7411Prince Nicholas had always ridiculed medicine, but latterly on
7412Mademoiselle Bourienne's advice had allowed this doctor to visit him
7413and had grown accustomed to him. Metivier came to see the prince about
7414twice a week.
7415
7416On December 6--St. Nicholas' Day and the prince's name day--all
7417Moscow came to the prince's front door but he gave orders to admit
7418no one and to invite to dinner only a small number, a list of whom
7419he gave to Princess Mary.
7420
7421Metivier, who came in the morning with his felicitations, considered
7422it proper in his quality of doctor de forcer la consigne,* as he
7423told Princess Mary, and went in to see the prince. It happened that on
7424that morning of his name day the prince was in one of his worst moods.
7425He had been going about the house all the morning finding fault with
7426everyone and pretending not to understand what was said to him and not
7427to be understood himself. Princess Mary well knew this mood of quiet
7428absorbed querulousness, which generally culminated in a burst of rage,
7429and she went about all that morning as though facing a cocked and
7430loaded gun and awaited the inevitable explosion. Until the doctor's
7431arrival the morning had passed off safely. After admitting the doctor,
7432Princess Mary sat down with a book in the drawing room near the door
7433through which she could hear all that passed in the study.
7434
7435
7436*To force the guard.
7437
7438
7439At first she heard only Metivier's voice, then her father's, then
7440both voices began speaking at the same time, the door was flung
7441open, and on the threshold appeared the handsome figure of the
7442terrified Metivier with his shock of black hair, and the prince in his
7443dressing gown and fez, his face distorted with fury and the pupils
7444of his eyes rolled downwards.
7445
7446"You don't understand?" shouted the prince, "but I do! French spy,
7447slave of Buonaparte, spy, get out of my house! Be off, I tell you..."
7448
7449Metivier, shrugging his shoulders, went up to Mademoiselle Bourienne
7450who at the sound of shouting had run in from an adjoining room.
7451
7452"The prince is not very well: bile and rush of blood to the head.
7453Keep calm, I will call again tomorrow," said Metivier; and putting his
7454fingers to his lips he hastened away.
7455
7456Through the study door came the sound of slippered feet and the cry:
7457"Spies, traitors, traitors everywhere! Not a moment's peace in my
7458own house!"
7459
7460After Metivier's departure the old prince called his daughter in,
7461and the whole weight of his wrath fell on her. She was to blame that a
7462spy had been admitted. Had he not told her, yes, told her to make a
7463list, and not to admit anyone who was not on that list? Then why was
7464that scoundrel admitted? She was the cause of it all. With her, he
7465said, he could not have a moment's peace and could not die quietly.
7466
7467"No, ma'am! We must part, we must part! Understand that,
7468understand it! I cannot endure any more," he said, and left the
7469room. Then, as if afraid she might find some means of consolation,
7470he returned and trying to appear calm added: "And don't imagine I have
7471said this in a moment of anger. I am calm. I have thought it over, and
7472it will be carried out--we must part; so find some place for
7473yourself...." But he could not restrain himself and with the virulence
7474of which only one who loves is capable, evidently suffering himself,
7475he shook his fists at her and screamed:
7476
7477"If only some fool would marry her!" Then he slammed the door,
7478sent for Mademoiselle Bourienne, and subsided into his study.
7479
7480At two o'clock the six chosen guests assembled for dinner.
7481
7482These guests--the famous Count Rostopchin, Prince Lopukhin with
7483his nephew, General Chatrov an old war comrade of the prince's, and of
7484the younger generation Pierre and Boris Drubetskoy--awaited the prince
7485in the drawing room.
7486
7487Boris, who had come to Moscow on leave a few days before, had been
7488anxious to be presented to Prince Nicholas Bolkonski, and had
7489contrived to ingratiate himself so well that the old prince in his
7490case made an exception to the rule of not receiving bachelors in his
7491house.
7492
7493The prince's house did not belong to what is known as fashionable
7494society, but his little circle--though not much talked about in
7495town--was one it was more flattering to be received in than any other.
7496Boris had realized this the week before when the commander in chief in
7497his presence invited Rostopchin to dinner on St. Nicholas' Day, and
7498Rostopchin had replied that he could not come:
7499
7500"On that day I always go to pay my devotions to the relics of Prince
7501Nicholas Bolkonski."
7502
7503"Oh, yes, yes!" replied the commander in chief. "How is he?..."
7504
7505The small group that assembled before dinner in the lofty
7506old-fashioned drawing room with its old furniture resembled the solemn
7507gathering of a court of justice. All were silent or talked in low
7508tones. Prince Nicholas came in serious and taciturn. Princess Mary
7509seemed even quieter and more diffident than usual. The guests were
7510reluctant to address her, feeling that she was in no mood for their
7511conversation. Count Rostopchin alone kept the conversation going,
7512now relating the latest town news, and now the latest political
7513gossip.
7514
7515Lopukhin and the old general occasionally took part in the
7516conversation. Prince Bolkonski listened as a presiding judge
7517receives a report, only now and then, silently or by a brief word,
7518showing that he took heed of what was being reported to him. The
7519tone of the conversation was such as indicated that no one approved of
7520what was being done in the political world. Incidents were related
7521evidently confirming the opinion that everything was going from bad to
7522worse, but whether telling a story or giving an opinion the speaker
7523always stopped, or was stopped, at the point beyond which his
7524criticism might touch the sovereign himself.
7525
7526At dinner the talk turned on the latest political news: Napoleon's
7527seizure of the Duke of Oldenburg's territory, and the Russian Note,
7528hostile to Napoleon, which had been sent to all the European courts.
7529
7530"Bonaparte treats Europe as a pirate does a captured vessel," said
7531Count Rostopchin, repeating a phrase he had uttered several times
7532before. "One only wonders at the long-suffering or blindness of the
7533crowned heads. Now the Pope's turn has come and Bonaparte doesn't
7534scruple to depose the head of the Catholic Church--yet all keep
7535silent! Our sovereign alone has protested against the seizure of the
7536Duke of Oldenburg's territory, and even..." Count Rostopchin paused,
7537feeling that he had reached the limit beyond which censure was
7538impossible.
7539
7540"Other territories have been offered in exchange for the Duchy of
7541Oldenburg," said Prince Bolkonski. "He shifts the Dukes about as I
7542might move my serfs from Bald Hills to Bogucharovo or my Ryazan
7543estates."
7544
7545"The Duke of Oldenburg bears his misfortunes with admirable strength
7546of character and resignation," remarked Boris, joining in
7547respectfully.
7548
7549He said this because on his journey from Petersburg he had had the
7550honor of being presented to the Duke. Prince Bolkonski glanced at
7551the young man as if about to say something in reply, but changed his
7552mind, evidently considering him too young.
7553
7554"I have read our protests about the Oldenburg affair and was
7555surprised how badly the Note was worded," remarked Count Rostopchin in
7556the casual tone of a man dealing with a subject quite familiar to him.
7557
7558Pierre looked at Rostopchin with naive astonishment, not
7559understanding why he should be disturbed by the bad composition of the
7560Note.
7561
7562"Does it matter, Count, how the Note is worded," he asked, "so
7563long as its substance is forcible?"
7564
7565"My dear fellow, with our five hundred thousand troops it should
7566be easy to have a good style," returned Count Rostopchin.
7567
7568Pierre now understood the count's dissatisfaction with the wording
7569of the Note.
7570
7571"One would have thought quill drivers enough had sprung up,"
7572remarked the old prince. "There in Petersburg they are always writing-
7573not notes only but even new laws. My Andrew there has written a
7574whole volume of laws for Russia. Nowadays they are always writing!"
7575and he laughed unnaturally.
7576
7577There was a momentary pause in the conversation; the old general
7578cleared his throat to draw attention.
7579
7580"Did you hear of the last event at the review in Petersburg? The
7581figure cut by the new French ambassador."
7582
7583"Eh? Yes, I heard something: he said something awkward in His
7584Majesty's presence."
7585
7586"His Majesty drew attention to the Grenadier division and to the
7587march past," continued the general, "and it seems the ambassador
7588took no notice and allowed himself to reply that: 'We in France pay no
7589attention to such trifles!' The Emperor did not condescend to reply.
7590At the next review, they say, the Emperor did not once deign to
7591address him."
7592
7593All were silent. On this fact relating to the Emperor personally, it
7594was impossible to pass any judgment.
7595
7596"Impudent fellows!" said the prince. "You know Metivier? I turned
7597him out of my house this morning. He was here; they admitted him spite
7598of my request that they should let no one in," he went on, glancing
7599angrily at his daughter.
7600
7601And he narrated his whole conversation with the French doctor and
7602the reasons that convinced him that Metivier was a spy. Though these
7603reasons were very insufficient and obscure, no one made any rejoinder.
7604
7605After the roast, champagne was served. The guests rose to
7606congratulate the old prince. Princess Mary, too, went round to him.
7607
7608He gave her a cold, angry look and offered her his wrinkled,
7609clean-shaven cheek to kiss. The whole expression of his face told
7610her that he had not forgotten the morning's talk, that his decision
7611remained in force, and only the presence of visitors hindered his
7612speaking of it to her now.
7613
7614When they went into the drawing room where coffee was served, the
7615old men sat together.
7616
7617Prince Nicholas grew more animated and expressed his views on the
7618impending war.
7619
7620He said that our wars with Bonaparte would be disastrous so long
7621as we sought alliances with the Germans and thrust ourselves into
7622European affairs, into which we had been drawn by the Peace of Tilsit.
7623"We ought not to fight either for or against Austria. Our political
7624interests are all in the East, and in regard to Bonaparte the only
7625thing is to have an armed frontier and a firm policy, and he will
7626never dare to cross the Russian frontier, as was the case in 1807!"
7627
7628"How can we fight the French, Prince?" said Count Rostopchin. "Can
7629we arm ourselves against our teachers and divinities? Look at our
7630youths, look at our ladies! The French are our Gods: Paris is our
7631Kingdom of Heaven."
7632
7633He began speaking louder, evidently to be heard by everyone.
7634
7635"French dresses, French ideas, French feelings! There now, you
7636turned Metivier out by the scruff of his neck because he is a
7637Frenchman and a scoundrel, but our ladies crawl after him on their
7638knees. I went to a party last night, and there out of five ladies
7639three were Roman Catholics and had the Pope's indulgence for doing
7640woolwork on Sundays. And they themselves sit there nearly naked,
7641like the signboards at our Public Baths if I may say so. Ah, when
7642one looks at our young people, Prince, one would like to take Peter
7643the Great's old cudgel out of the museum and belabor them in the
7644Russian way till all the nonsense jumps out of them."
7645
7646All were silent. The old prince looked at Rostopchin with a smile
7647and wagged his head approvingly.
7648
7649"Well, good-by, your excellency, keep well!" said Rostopchin,
7650getting up with characteristic briskness and holding out his hand to
7651the prince.
7652
7653"Good-by, my dear fellow.... His words are music, I never tire of
7654hearing him!" said the old prince, keeping hold of the hand and
7655offering his cheek to be kissed.
7656
7657Following Rostopchin's example the others also rose.
7658
7659
7660
7661
7662
7663CHAPTER IV
7664
7665
7666Princess Mary as she sat listening to the old men's talk and
7667faultfinding, understood nothing of what she heard; she only
7668wondered whether the guests had all observed her father's hostile
7669attitude toward her. She did not even notice the special attentions
7670and amiabilities shown her during dinner by Boris Drubetskoy, who
7671was visiting them for the third time already.
7672
7673Princess Mary turned with absent-minded questioning look to
7674Pierre, who hat in hand and with a smile on his face was the last of
7675the guests to approach her after the old prince had gone out and
7676they were left alone in the drawing room.
7677
7678"May I stay a little longer?" he said, letting his stout body sink
7679into an armchair beside her.
7680
7681"Oh yes," she answered. "You noticed nothing?" her look asked.
7682
7683Pierre was in an agreeable after-dinner mood. He looked straight
7684before him and smiled quietly.
7685
7686"Have you known that young man long, Princess?" he asked.
7687
7688"Who?"
7689
7690"Drubetskoy."
7691
7692"No, not long..."
7693
7694"Do you like him?"
7695
7696"Yes, he is an agreeable young man.... Why do you ask me that?" said
7697Princess Mary, still thinking of that morning's conversation with
7698her father.
7699
7700"Because I have noticed that when a young man comes on leave from
7701Petersburg to Moscow it is usually with the object of marrying an
7702heiress."
7703
7704"You have observed that?" said Princess Mary.
7705
7706"Yes," returned Pierre with a smile, "and this young man now manages
7707matters so that where there is a wealthy heiress there he is too. I
7708can read him like a book. At present he is hesitating whom to lay
7709siege to--you or Mademoiselle Julie Karagina. He is very attentive
7710to her."
7711
7712"He visits them?"
7713
7714"Yes, very often. And do you know the new way of courting?" said
7715Pierre with an amused smile, evidently in that cheerful mood of good
7716humored raillery for which he so often reproached himself in his
7717diary.
7718
7719"No," replied Princess Mary.
7720
7721"To please Moscow girls nowadays one has to be melancholy. He is
7722very melancholy with Mademoiselle Karagina," said Pierre.
7723
7724"Really?" asked Princess Mary, looking into Pierre's kindly face and
7725still thinking of her own sorrow. "It would be a relief," thought she,
7726"if I ventured to confide what I am feeling to someone. I should
7727like to tell everything to Pierre. He is kind and generous. It would
7728be a relief. He would give me advice."
7729
7730"Would you marry him?"
7731
7732"Oh, my God, Count, there are moments when I would marry anybody!"
7733she cried suddenly to her own surprise and with tears in her voice.
7734"Ah, how bitter it is to love someone near to you and to feel that..."
7735she went on in a trembling voice, "that you can do nothing for him but
7736grieve him, and to know that you cannot alter this. Then there is only
7737one thing left--to go away, but where could I go?"
7738
7739"What is wrong? What is it, Princess?"
7740
7741But without finishing what she was saying, Princess Mary burst
7742into tears.
7743
7744"I don't know what is the matter with me today. Don't take any
7745notice--forget what I have said!"
7746
7747Pierre's gaiety vanished completely. He anxiously questioned the
7748princess, asked her to speak out fully and confide her grief to him;
7749but she only repeated that she begged him to forget what she had said,
7750that she did not remember what she had said, and that she had no
7751trouble except the one he knew of--that Prince Andrew's marriage
7752threatened to cause a rupture between father and son.
7753
7754"Have you any news of the Rostovs?" she asked, to change the
7755subject. "I was told they are coming soon. I am also expecting
7756Andrew any day. I should like them to meet here."
7757
7758"And how does he now regard the matter?" asked Pierre, referring
7759to the old prince.
7760
7761Princess Mary shook her head.
7762
7763"What is to be done? In a few months the year will be up. The
7764thing is impossible. I only wish I could spare my brother the first
7765moments. I wish they would come sooner. I hope to be friends with her.
7766You have known them a long time," said Princess Mary. "Tell me
7767honestly the whole truth: what sort of girl is she, and what do you
7768think of her?--The real truth, because you know Andrew is risking so
7769much doing this against his father's will that I should like to
7770know..."
7771
7772An undefined instinct told Pierre that these explanations, and
7773repeated requests to be told the whole truth, expressed ill-will on
7774the princess' part toward her future sister-in-law and a wish that
7775he should disapprove of Andrew's choice; but in reply he said what
7776he felt rather than what he thought.
7777
7778"I don't know how to answer your question," he said, blushing
7779without knowing why. "I really don't know what sort of girl she is;
7780I can't analyze her at all. She is enchanting, but what makes her so I
7781don't know. That is all one can say about her."
7782
7783Princess Mary sighed, and the expression on her face said: "Yes,
7784that's what I expected and feared."
7785
7786"Is she clever?" she asked.
7787
7788Pierre considered.
7789
7790"I think not," he said, "and yet--yes. She does not deign to be
7791clever.... Oh no, she is simply enchanting, and that is all."
7792
7793Princess Mary again shook her head disapprovingly.
7794
7795"Ah, I so long to like her! Tell her so if you see her before I do."
7796
7797"I hear they are expected very soon," said Pierre.
7798
7799Princess Mary told Pierre of her plan to become intimate with her
7800future sister-in-law as soon as the Rostovs arrived and to try to
7801accustom the old prince to her.
7802
7803
7804
7805
7806
7807CHAPTER V
7808
7809
7810Boris had not succeeded in making a wealthy match in Petersburg,
7811so with the same object in view he came to Moscow. There he wavered
7812between the two richest heiresses, Julie and Princess Mary. Though
7813Princess Mary despite her plainness seemed to him more attractive than
7814Julie, he, without knowing why, felt awkward about paying court to
7815her. When they had last met on the old prince's name day, she had
7816answered at random all his attempts to talk sentimentally, evidently
7817not listening to what he was saying.
7818
7819Julie on the contrary accepted his attentions readily, though in a
7820manner peculiar to herself.
7821
7822She was twenty-seven. After the death of her brothers she had become
7823very wealthy. She was by now decidedly plain, but thought herself
7824not merely as good-looking as before but even far more attractive. She
7825was confirmed in this delusion by the fact that she had become a
7826very wealthy heiress and also by the fact that the older she grew
7827the less dangerous she became to men, and the more freely they could
7828associate with her and avail themselves of her suppers, soirees, and
7829the animated company that assembled at her house, without incurring
7830any obligation. A man who would have been afraid ten years before of
7831going every day to the house when there was a girl of seventeen there,
7832for fear of compromising her and committing himself, would now go
7833boldly every day and treat her not as a marriageable girl but as a
7834sexless acquaintance.
7835
7836That winter the Karagins' house was the most agreeable and
7837hospitable in Moscow. In addition to the formal evening and dinner
7838parties, a large company, chiefly of men, gathered there every day,
7839supping at midnight and staying till three in the morning. Julie never
7840missed a ball, a promenade, or a play. Her dresses were always of
7841the latest fashion. But in spite of that she seemed to be
7842disillusioned about everything and told everyone that she did not
7843believe either in friendship or in love, or any of the joys of life,
7844and expected peace only "yonder." She adopted the tone of one who
7845has suffered a great disappointment, like a girl who has either lost
7846the man she loved or been cruelly deceived by him. Though nothing of
7847the kind had happened to her she was regarded in that light, and had
7848even herself come to believe that she had suffered much in life.
7849This melancholy, which did not prevent her amusing herself, did not
7850hinder the young people who came to her house from passing the time
7851pleasantly. Every visitor who came to the house paid his tribute to
7852the melancholy mood of the hostess, and then amused himself with
7853society gossip, dancing, intellectual games, and bouts rimes, which
7854were in vogue at the Karagins'. Only a few of these young men, among
7855them Boris, entered more deeply into Julie's melancholy, and with
7856these she had prolonged conversations in private on the vanity of
7857all worldly things, and to them she showed her albums filled with
7858mournful sketches, maxims, and verses.
7859
7860To Boris, Julie was particularly gracious: she regretted his early
7861disillusionment with life, offered him such consolation of
7862friendship as she who had herself suffered so much could render, and
7863showed him her album. Boris sketched two trees in the album and wrote:
7864"Rustic trees, your dark branches shed gloom and melancholy upon me."
7865
7866On another page he drew a tomb, and wrote:
7867
7868 La mort est secourable et la mort est tranquille.
7869 Ah! contre les douleurs il n'y a pas d'autre asile.*
7870
7871
7872*Death gives relief and death is peaceful.
7873
7874 Ah! from suffering there is no other refuge.
7875
7876Julia said this was charming
7877
7878"There is something so enchanting in the smile of melancholy," she
7879said to Boris, repeating word for word a passage she had copied from a
7880book. "It is a ray of light in the darkness, a shade between sadness
7881and despair, showing the possibility of consolation."
7882
7883In reply Boris wrote these lines:
7884
7885 Aliment de poison d'une ame trop sensible,
7886 Toi, sans qui le bonheur me serait impossible,
7887 Tendre melancholie, ah, viens me consoler,
7888 Viens calmer les tourments de ma sombre retraite,
7889 Et mele une douceur secrete
7890 A ces pleurs que je sens couler.*
7891
7892
7893*Poisonous nourishment of a too sensitive soul,
7894
7895 Thou, without whom happiness would for me be impossible,
7896
7897 Tender melancholy, ah, come to console me,
7898
7899 Come to calm the torments of my gloomy retreat,
7900
7901 And mingle a secret sweetness
7902
7903 With these tears that I feel to be flowing.
7904
7905
7906For Boris, Julie played most doleful nocturnes on her harp. Boris
7907read Poor Liza aloud to her, and more than once interrupted the
7908reading because of the emotions that choked him. Meeting at large
7909gatherings Julie and Boris looked on one another as the only souls who
7910understood one another in a world of indifferent people.
7911
7912Anna Mikhaylovna, who often visited the Karagins, while playing
7913cards with the mother made careful inquiries as to Julie's dowry
7914(she was to have two estates in Penza and the Nizhegorod forests).
7915Anna Mikhaylovna regarded the refined sadness that united her son to
7916the wealthy Julie with emotion, and resignation to the Divine will.
7917
7918"You are always charming and melancholy, my dear Julie," she said to
7919the daughter. "Boris says his soul finds repose at your house. He
7920has suffered so many disappointments and is so sensitive," said she to
7921the mother. "Ah, my dear, I can't tell you how fond I have grown of
7922Julie latterly," she said to her son. "But who could help loving
7923her? She is an angelic being! Ah, Boris, Boris!"--she paused. "And how
7924I pity her mother," she went on; "today she showed me her accounts and
7925letters from Penza (they have enormous estates there), and she, poor
7926thing, has no one to help her, and they do cheat her so!"
7927
7928Boris smiled almost imperceptibly while listening to his mother.
7929He laughed blandly at her naive diplomacy but listened to what she had
7930to say, and sometimes questioned her carefully about the Penza and
7931Nizhegorod estates.
7932
7933Julie had long been expecting a proposal from her melancholy
7934adorer and was ready to accept it; but some secret feeling of
7935repulsion for her, for her passionate desire to get married, for her
7936artificiality, and a feeling of horror at renouncing the possibility
7937of real love still restrained Boris. His leave was expiring. He
7938spent every day and whole days at the Karagins', and every day on
7939thinking the matter over told himself that he would propose
7940tomorrow. But in Julie's presence, looking at her red face and chin
7941(nearly always powdered), her moist eyes, and her expression of
7942continual readiness to pass at once from melancholy to an unnatural
7943rapture of married bliss, Boris could not utter the decisive words,
7944though in imagination he had long regarded himself as the possessor of
7945those Penza and Nizhegorod estates and had apportioned the use of
7946the income from them. Julie saw Boris' indecision, and sometimes the
7947thought occurred to her that she was repulsive to him, but her
7948feminine self-deception immediately supplied her with consolation, and
7949she told herself that he was only shy from love. Her melancholy,
7950however, began to turn to irritability, and not long before Boris'
7951departure she formed a definite plan of action. Just as Boris' leave
7952of absence was expiring, Anatole Kuragin made his appearance in
7953Moscow, and of course in the Karagins' drawing room, and Julie,
7954suddenly abandoning her melancholy, became cheerful and very attentive
7955to Kuragin.
7956
7957"My dear," said Anna Mikhaylovna to her son, "I know from a reliable
7958source that Prince Vasili has sent his son to Moscow to get him
7959married to Julie. I am so fond of Julie that I should be sorry for
7960her. What do you think of it, my dear?"
7961
7962The idea of being made a fool of and of having thrown away that
7963whole month of arduous melancholy service to Julie, and of seeing
7964all the revenue from the Penza estates which he had already mentally
7965apportioned and put to proper use fall into the hands of another,
7966and especially into the hands of that idiot Anatole, pained Boris.
7967He drove to the Karagins' with the firm intention of proposing.
7968Julie met him in a gay, careless manner, spoke casually of how she had
7969enjoyed yesterday's ball, and asked when he was leaving. Though
7970Boris had come intentionally to speak of his love and therefore
7971meant to be tender, he began speaking irritably of feminine
7972inconstancy, of how easily women can turn from sadness to joy, and how
7973their moods depend solely on who happens to be paying court to them.
7974Julie was offended and replied that it was true that a woman needs
7975variety, and the same thing over and over again would weary anyone.
7976
7977"Then I should advise you..." Boris began, wishing to sting her; but
7978at that instant the galling thought occurred to him that he might have
7979to leave Moscow without having accomplished his aim, and have vainly
7980wasted his efforts--which was a thing he never allowed to happen.
7981
7982He checked himself in the middle of the sentence, lowered his eyes
7983to avoid seeing her unpleasantly irritated and irresolute face, and
7984said:
7985
7986"I did not come here at all to quarrel with you. On the contrary..."
7987
7988He glanced at her to make sure that he might go on. Her irritability
7989had suddenly quite vanished, and her anxious, imploring eyes were
7990fixed on him with greedy expectation. "I can always arrange so as
7991not to see her often," thought Boris. "The affair has been begun and
7992must be finished!" He blushed hotly, raised his eyes to hers, and
7993said:
7994
7995"You know my feelings for you!"
7996
7997There was no need to say more: Julie's face shone with triumph and
7998self-satisfaction; but she forced Boris to say all that is said on
7999such occasions--that he loved her and had never loved any other
8000woman more than her. She knew that for the Penza estates and
8001Nizhegorod forests she could demand this, and she received what she
8002demanded.
8003
8004The affianced couple, no longer alluding to trees that shed gloom
8005and melancholy upon them, planned the arrangements of a splendid house
8006in Petersburg, paid calls, and prepared everything for a brilliant
8007wedding.
8008
8009
8010
8011
8012
8013CHAPTER VI
8014
8015
8016At the end of January old Count Rostov went to Moscow with Natasha
8017and Sonya. The countess was still unwell and unable to travel but it
8018was impossible to wait for her recovery. Prince Andrew was expected in
8019Moscow any day, the trousseau had to be ordered and the estate near
8020Moscow had to be sold, besides which the opportunity of presenting his
8021future daughter-in-law to old Prince Bolkonski while he was in
8022Moscow could not be missed. The Rostovs' Moscow house had not been
8023heated that winter and, as they had come only for a short time and the
8024countess was not with them, the count decided to stay with Marya
8025Dmitrievna Akhrosimova, who had long been pressing her hospitality
8026on them.
8027
8028Late one evening the Rostovs' four sleighs drove into Marya
8029Dmitrievna's courtyard in the old Konyusheny street. Marya
8030Dmitrievna lived alone. She had already married off her daughter,
8031and her sons were all in the service.
8032
8033She held herself as erect, told everyone her opinion as candidly,
8034loudly, and bluntly as ever, and her whole bearing seemed a reproach
8035to others for any weakness, passion, or temptation--the possibility of
8036which she did not admit. From early in the morning, wearing a dressing
8037jacket, she attended to her household affairs, and then she drove out:
8038on holy days to church and after the service to jails and prisons on
8039affairs of which she never spoke to anyone. On ordinary days, after
8040dressing, she received petitioners of various classes, of whom there
8041were always some. Then she had dinner, a substantial and appetizing
8042meal at which there were always three or four guests; after dinner she
8043played a game of boston, and at night she had the newspapers or a
8044new book read to her while she knitted. She rarely made an exception
8045and went out to pay visits, and then only to the most important
8046persons in the town.
8047
8048She had not yet gone to bed when the Rostovs arrived and the
8049pulley of the hall door squeaked from the cold as it let in the
8050Rostovs and their servants. Marya Dmitrievna, with her spectacles
8051hanging down on her nose and her head flung back, stood in the hall
8052doorway looking with a stern, grim face at the new arrivals. One might
8053have thought she was angry with the travelers and would immediately
8054turn them out, had she not at the same time been giving careful
8055instructions to the servants for the accommodation of the visitors and
8056their belongings.
8057
8058"The count's things? Bring them here," she said, pointing to the
8059portmanteaus and not greeting anyone. "The young ladies'? There to the
8060left. Now what are you dawdling for?" she cried to the maids. "Get the
8061samovar ready!... You've grown plumper and prettier," she remarked,
8062drawing Natasha (whose cheeks were glowing from the cold) to her by
8063the hood. "Foo! You are cold! Now take off your things, quick!" she
8064shouted to the count who was going to kiss her hand. "You're half
8065frozen, I'm sure! Bring some rum for tea!... Bonjour, Sonya dear!" she
8066added, turning to Sonya and indicating by this French greeting her
8067slightly contemptuous though affectionate attitude toward her.
8068
8069When they came in to tea, having taken off their outdoor things
8070and tidied themselves up after their journey, Marya Dmitrievna
8071kissed them all in due order.
8072
8073"I'm heartily glad you have come and are staying with me. It was
8074high time," she said, giving Natasha a significant look. "The old
8075man is here and his son's expected any day. You'll have to make his
8076acquaintance. But we'll speak of that later on," she added, glancing at
8077Sonya with a look that showed she did not want to speak of it in her
8078presence. "Now listen," she said to the count. "What do you want
8079tomorrow? Whom will you send for? Shinshin?" she crooked one of her
8080fingers. "The sniveling Anna Mikhaylovna? That's two. She's here
8081with her son. The son is getting married! Then Bezukhov, eh? He is
8082here too, with his wife. He ran away from her and she came galloping
8083after him. He dined with me on Wednesday. As for them"--and she
8084pointed to the girls--"tomorrow I'll take them first to the Iberian
8085shrine of the Mother of God, and then we'll drive to the
8086Super-Rogue's. I suppose you'll have everything new. Don't judge by
8087me: sleeves nowadays are this size! The other day young Princess Irina
8088Vasilevna came to see me; she was an awful sight--looked as if she had
8089put two barrels on her arms. You know not a day passes now without
8090some new fashion.... And what have you to do yourself?" she asked
8091the count sternly.
8092
8093"One thing has come on top of another: her rags to buy, and now a
8094purchaser has turned up for the Moscow estate and for the house. If
8095you will be so kind, I'll fix a time and go down to the estate just
8096for a day, and leave my lassies with you."
8097
8098"All right. All right. They'll be safe with me, as safe as in
8099Chancery! I'll take them where they must go, scold them a bit, and pet
8100them a bit," said Marya Dmitrievna, touching her goddaughter and
8101favorite, Natasha, on the cheek with her large hand.
8102
8103Next morning Marya Dmitrievna took the young ladies to the Iberian
8104shrine of the Mother of God and to Madame Suppert-Roguet, who was so
8105afraid of Marya Dmitrievna that she always let her have costumes at
8106a loss merely to get rid of her. Marya Dmitrievna ordered almost the
8107whole trousseau. When they got home she turned everybody out of the
8108room except Nataisha, and then called her pet to her armchair.
8109
8110"Well, now we'll talk. I congratulate you on your betrothed.
8111You've hooked a fine fellow! I am glad for your sake and I've known
8112him since he was so high." She held her hand a couple of feet from the
8113ground. Natasha blushed happily. "I like him and all his family. Now
8114listen! You know that old Prince Nicholas much dislikes his son's
8115marrying. The old fellow's crotchety! Of course Prince Andrew is not a
8116child and can shift without him, but it's not nice to enter a family
8117against a father's will. One wants to do it peacefully and lovingly.
8118You're a clever girl and you'll know how to manage. Be kind, and use
8119your wits. Then all will be well."
8120
8121Natasha remained silent, from shyness Marya Dmitrievna supposed, but
8122really because she disliked anyone interfering in what touched her
8123love of Prince Andrew, which seemed to her so apart from all human
8124affairs that no one could understand it. She loved and knew Prince
8125Andrew, he loved her only, and was to come one of these days and
8126take her. She wanted nothing more.
8127
8128"You see I have known him a long time and am also fond of Mary, your
8129future sister-in-law. 'Husbands' sisters bring up blisters,' but
8130this one wouldn't hurt a fly. She has asked me to bring you two
8131together. Tomorrow you'll go with your father to see her. Be very nice
8132and affectionate to her: you're younger than she. When he comes, he'll
8133find you already know his sister and father and are liked by them.
8134Am I right or not? Won't that be best?"
8135
8136"Yes, it will," Natasha answered reluctantly.
8137
8138
8139
8140
8141
8142CHAPTER VII
8143
8144
8145Next day, by Marya Dmitrievna's advice, Count Rostov took Natasha to
8146call on Prince Nicholas Bolkonski. The count did not set out
8147cheerfully on this visit, at heart he felt afraid. He well
8148remembered the last interview he had had with the old prince at the
8149time of the enrollment, when in reply to an invitation to dinner he
8150had had to listen to an angry reprimand for not having provided his
8151full quota of men. Natasha, on the other hand, having put on her
8152best gown, was in the highest spirits. "They can't help liking me,"
8153she thought. "Everybody always has liked me, and I am so willing to do
8154anything they wish, so ready to be fond of him--for being his
8155father--and of her--for being his sister--that there is no reason
8156for them not to like me..."
8157
8158They drove up to the gloomy old house on the Vozdvizhenka and
8159entered the vestibule.
8160
8161"Well, the Lord have mercy on us!" said the count, half in jest,
8162half in earnest; but Natasha noticed that her father was flurried on
8163entering the anteroom and inquired timidly and softly whether the
8164prince and princess were at home.
8165
8166When they had been announced a perturbation was noticeable among the
8167servants. The footman who had gone to announce them was stopped by
8168another in the large hall and they whispered to one another. Then a
8169maidservant ran into the hall and hurriedly said something, mentioning
8170the princess. At last an old, cross looking footman came and announced
8171to the Rostovs that the prince was not receiving, but that the
8172princess begged them to walk up. The first person who came to meet the
8173visitors was Mademoiselle Bourienne. She greeted the father and
8174daughter with special politeness and showed them to the princess'
8175room. The princess, looking excited and nervous, her face flushed in
8176patches, ran in to meet the visitors, treading heavily, and vainly
8177trying to appear cordial and at ease. From the first glance Princess
8178Mary did not like Natasha. She thought her too fashionably dressed,
8179frivolously gay and vain. She did not at all realize that before
8180having seen her future sister-in-law she was prejudiced against her by
8181involuntary envy of her beauty, youth, and happiness, as well as by
8182jealousy of her brother's love for her. Apart from this insuperable
8183antipathy to her, Princess Mary was agitated just then because on
8184the Rostovs' being announced, the old prince had shouted that he did
8185not wish to see them, that Princess Mary might do so if she chose, but
8186they were not to be admitted to him. She had decided to receive
8187them, but feared lest the prince might at any moment indulge in some
8188freak, as he seemed much upset by the Rostovs' visit.
8189
8190"There, my dear princess, I've brought you my songstress," said
8191the count, bowing and looking round uneasily as if afraid the old
8192prince might appear. "I am so glad you should get to know one
8193another... very sorry the prince is still ailing," and after a few
8194more commonplace remarks he rose. "If you'll allow me to leave my
8195Natasha in your hands for a quarter of an hour, Princess, I'll drive
8196round to see Anna Semenovna, it's quite near in the Dogs' Square,
8197and then I'll come back for her."
8198
8199The count had devised this diplomatic ruse (as he afterwards told
8200his daughter) to give the future sisters-in-law an opportunity to talk
8201to one another freely, but another motive was to avoid the danger of
8202encountering the old prince, of whom he was afraid. He did not mention
8203this to his daughter, but Natasha noticed her father's nervousness and
8204anxiety and felt mortified by it. She blushed for him, grew still
8205angrier at having blushed, and looked at the princess with a bold
8206and defiant expression which said that she was not afraid of
8207anybody. The princess told the count that she would be delighted,
8208and only begged him to stay longer at Anna Semenovna's, and he
8209departed.
8210
8211Despite the uneasy glances thrown at her by Princess Mary--who
8212wished to have a tete-a-tete with Natasha--Mademoiselle Bourienne
8213remained in the room and persistently talked about Moscow amusements
8214and theaters. Natasha felt offended by the hesitation she had
8215noticed in the anteroom, by her father's nervousness, and by the
8216unnatural manner of the princess who--she thought--was making a
8217favor of receiving her, and so everything displeased her. She did
8218not like Princess Mary, whom she thought very plain, affected, and
8219dry. Natasha suddenly shrank into herself and involuntarily assumed an
8220offhand air which alienated Princess Mary still more. After five
8221minutes of irksome, constrained conversation, they heard the sound
8222of slippered feet rapidly approaching. Princess Mary looked
8223frightened.
8224
8225The door opened and the old prince, in a dress, ing gown and a white
8226nightcap, came in.
8227
8228"Ah, madam!" he began. "Madam, Countess... Countess Rostova, if I am
8229not mistaken... I beg you to excuse me, to excuse me... I did not
8230know, madam. God is my witness, I did not know you had honored us with
8231a visit, and I came in such a costume only to see my daughter. I beg
8232you to excuse me... God is my witness, I didn't know-" he repeated,
8233stressing the word "God" so unnaturally and so unpleasantly that
8234Princess Mary stood with downcast eyes not daring to look either at
8235her father or at Natasha.
8236
8237Nor did the latter, having risen and curtsied, know what to do.
8238Mademoiselle Bourienne alone smiled agreeably.
8239
8240"I beg you to excuse me, excuse me! God is my witness, I did not
8241know," muttered the old man, and after looking Natasha over from
8242head to foot he went out.
8243
8244Mademoiselle Bourienne was the first to recover herself after this
8245apparition and began speaking about the prince's indisposition.
8246Natasha and Princess Mary looked at one another in silence, and the
8247longer they did so without saying what they wanted to say, the greater
8248grew their antipathy to one another.
8249
8250When the count returned, Natasha was impolitely pleased and hastened
8251to get away: at that moment she hated the stiff, elderly princess, who
8252could place her in such an embarrassing position and had spent half an
8253hour with her without once mentioning Prince Andrew. "I couldn't begin
8254talking about him in the presence of that Frenchwoman," thought
8255Natasha. The same thought was meanwhile tormenting Princess Mary.
8256She knew what she ought to have said to Natasha, but she had been
8257unable to say it because Mademoiselle Bourienne was in the way, and
8258because, without knowing why, she felt it very difficult to speak of
8259the marriage. When the count was already leaving the room, Princess
8260Mary went up hurriedly to Natasha, took her by the hand, and said with
8261a deep sigh:
8262
8263"Wait, I must..."
8264
8265Natasha glanced at her ironically without knowing why.
8266
8267"Dear Natalie," said Princess Mary, "I want you to know that I am
8268glad my brother has found happiness...."
8269
8270She paused, feeling that she was not telling the truth. Natasha
8271noticed this and guessed its reason.
8272
8273"I think, Princess, it is not convenient to speak of that now,"
8274she said with external dignity and coldness, though she felt the tears
8275choking her.
8276
8277"What have I said and what have I done?" thought she, as soon as she
8278was out of the room.
8279
8280They waited a long time for Natasha to come to dinner that day.
8281She sat in her room crying like a child, blowing her nose and sobbing.
8282Sonya stood beside her, kissing her hair.
8283
8284"Natasha, what is it about?" she asked. "What do they matter to you?
8285It will all pass, Natasha."
8286
8287"But if you only knew how offensive it was... as if I..."
8288
8289"Don't talk about it, Natasha. It wasn't your fault so why should
8290you mind? Kiss me," said Sonya.
8291
8292Natasha raised her head and, kissing her friend on the lips, pressed
8293her wet face against her.
8294
8295"I can't tell you, I don't know. No one's to blame," said Natasha-
8296"It's my fault. But it all hurts terribly. Oh, why doesn't he
8297come?..."
8298
8299She came in to dinner with red eyes. Marya Dmitrievna, who knew
8300how the prince had received the Rostovs, pretended not to notice how
8301upset Natasha was and jested resolutely and loudly at table with the
8302count and the other guests.
8303
8304
8305
8306
8307
8308CHAPTER VIII
8309
8310
8311That evening the Rostovs went to the Opera, for which Marya
8312Dmitrievna had taken a box.
8313
8314Natasha did not want to go, but could not refuse Marya
8315Dmitrievna's kind offer which was intended expressly for her. When she
8316came ready dressed into the ballroom to await her father, and
8317looking in the large mirror there saw that she was pretty, very
8318pretty, she felt even more sad, but it was a sweet, tender sadness.
8319
8320"O God, if he were here now I would not behave as I did then, but
8321differently. I would not be silly and afraid of things, I would simply
8322embrace him, cling to him, and make him look at me with those
8323searching inquiring eyes with which he has so often looked at me,
8324and then I would make him laugh as he used to laugh. And his eyes--how
8325I see those eyes!" thought Natasha. "And what do his father and sister
8326matter to me? I love him alone, him, him, with that face and those
8327eyes, with his smile, manly and yet childlike.... No, I had better not
8328think of him; not think of him but forget him, quite forget him for
8329the present. I can't bear this waiting and I shall cry in a minute!"
8330and she turned away from the glass, making an effort not to cry.
8331"And how can Sonya love Nicholas so calmly and quietly and wait so
8332long and so patiently?" thought she, looking at Sonya, who also came
8333in quite ready, with a fan in her hand. "No, she's altogether
8334different. I can't!"
8335
8336Natasha at that moment felt so softened and tender that it was not
8337enough for her to love and know she was beloved, she wanted now, at
8338once, to embrace the man she loved, to speak and hear from him words
8339of love such as filled her heart. While she sat in the carriage beside
8340her father, pensively watching the lights of the street lamps
8341flickering on the frozen window, she felt still sadder and more in
8342love, and forgot where she was going and with whom. Having fallen into
8343the line of carriages, the Rostovs' carriage drove up to the
8344theater, its wheels squeaking over the snow. Natasha and Sonya,
8345holding up their dresses, jumped out quickly. The count got out helped
8346by the footmen, and, passing among men and women who were entering and
8347the program sellers, they all three went along the corridor to the
8348first row of boxes. Through the closed doors the music was already
8349audible.
8350
8351"Natasha, your hair!..." whispered Sonya.
8352
8353An attendant deferentially and quickly slipped before the ladies and
8354opened the door of their box. The music sounded louder and through the
8355door rows of brightly lit boxes in which ladies sat with bare arms and
8356shoulders, and noisy stalls brilliant with uniforms, glittered
8357before their eyes. A lady entering the next box shot a glance of
8358feminine envy at Natasha. The curtain had not yet risen and the
8359overture was being played. Natasha, smoothing her gown, went in with
8360Sonya and sat down, scanning the brilliant tiers of boxes opposite.
8361A sensation she had not experienced for a long time--that of
8362hundreds of eyes looking at her bare arms and neck--suddenly
8363affected her both agreeably and disagreeably and called up a whole
8364crowd of memories, desires and emotions associated with that feeling.
8365
8366The two remarkably pretty girls, Natasha and Sonya, with Count
8367Rostov who had not been seen in Moscow for a long time, attracted
8368general attention. Moreover, everybody knew vaguely of Natasha's
8369engagement to Prince Andrew, and knew that the Rostovs had lived in
8370the country ever since, and all looked with curiosity at a fiancee who
8371was making one of the best matches in Russia.
8372
8373Natasha's looks, as everyone told her, had improved in the
8374country, and that evening thanks to her agitation she was particularly
8375pretty. She struck those who saw her by her fullness of life and
8376beauty, combined with her indifference to everything about her. Her
8377black eyes looked at the crowd without seeking anyone, and her
8378delicate arm, bare to above the elbow, lay on the velvet edge of the
8379box, while, evidently unconsciously, she opened and closed her hand in
8380time to the music, crumpling her program. "Look, there's Alenina,"
8381said Sonya, "with her mother, isn't it?"
8382
8383"Dear me, Michael Kirilovich has grown still stouter!" remarked
8384the count.
8385
8386"Look at our Anna Mikhaylovna--what a headdress she has on!"
8387
8388"The Karagins, Julie--and Boris with them. One can see at once
8389that they're engaged...."
8390
8391"Drubetskoy has proposed?"
8392
8393"Oh yes, I heard it today," said Shinshin, coming into the
8394Rostovs' box.
8395
8396Natasha looked in the direction in which her father's eyes were
8397turned and saw Julie sitting beside her mother with a happy look on
8398her face and a string of pearls round her thick red neck--which
8399Natasha knew was covered with powder. Behind them, wearing a smile and
8400leaning over with an ear to Julie's mouth, was Boris' handsome
8401smoothly brushed head. He looked the Rostovs from under his brows
8402and said something, smiling, to his betrothed.
8403
8404"They are talking about us, about me and him!" thought Natasha. "And
8405he no doubt is calming her jealousy of me. They needn't trouble
8406themselves! If only they knew how little I am concerned about any of
8407them."
8408
8409Behind them sat Anna Mikhaylovna wearing a green headdress and
8410with a happy look of resignation to the will of God on her face. Their
8411box was pervaded by that atmosphere of an affianced couple which
8412Natasha knew so well and liked so much. She turned away and suddenly
8413remembered all that had been so humiliating in her morning's visit.
8414
8415"What right has he not to wish to receive me into his family? Oh,
8416better not think of it--not till he comes back!" she told herself, and
8417began looking at the faces, some strange and some familiar, in the
8418stalls. In the front, in the very center, leaning back against the
8419orchestra rail, stood Dolokhov in a Persian dress, his curly hair
8420brushed up into a huge shock. He stood in full view of the audience,
8421well aware that he was attracting everyone's attention, yet as much at
8422ease as though he were in his own room. Around him thronged Moscow's
8423most brilliant young men, whom he evidently dominated.
8424
8425The count, laughing, nudged the blushing Sonya and pointed to her
8426former adorer.
8427
8428"Do you recognize him?" said he. "And where has he sprung from?"
8429he asked, turning to Shinshin. "Didn't he vanish somewhere?"
8430
8431"He did," replied Shinshin. "He was in the Caucasus and ran away
8432from there. They say he has been acting as minister to some ruling
8433prince in Persia, where he killed the Shah's brother. Now all the
8434Moscow ladies are mad about him! It's 'Dolokhov the Persian' that does
8435it! We never hear a word but Dolokhov is mentioned. They swear by him,
8436they offer him to you as they would a dish of choice sterlet. Dolokhov
8437and Anatole Kuragin have turned all our ladies' heads."
8438
8439A tall, beautiful woman with a mass of plaited hair and much exposed
8440plump white shoulders and neck, round which she wore a double string
8441of large pearls, entered the adjoining box rustling her heavy silk
8442dress and took a long time settling into her place.
8443
8444Natasha involuntarily gazed at that neck, those shoulders, and
8445pearls and coiffure, and admired the beauty of the shoulders and the
8446pearls. While Natasha was fixing her gaze on her for the second time
8447the lady looked round and, meeting the count's eyes, nodded to him and
8448smiled. She was the Countess Bezukhova, Pierre's wife, and the
8449count, who knew everyone in society, leaned over and spoke to her.
8450
8451"Have you been here long, Countess?" he inquired. "I'll call, I'll
8452call to kiss your hand. I'm here on business and have brought my girls
8453with me. They say Semenova acts marvelously. Count Pierre never used
8454to forget us. Is he here?"
8455
8456"Yes, he meant to look in," answered Helene, and glanced attentively
8457at Natasha.
8458
8459Count Rostov resumed his seat.
8460
8461"Handsome, isn't she?" he whispered to Natasha.
8462
8463"Wonderful!" answered Natasha. "She's a woman one could easily
8464fall in love with."
8465
8466Just then the last chords of the overture were heard and the
8467conductor tapped with his stick. Some latecomers took their seats in
8468the stalls, and the curtain rose.
8469
8470As soon as it rose everyone in the boxes and stalls became silent,
8471and all the men, old and young, in uniform and evening dress, and
8472all the women with gems on their bare flesh, turned their whole
8473attention with eager curiosity to the stage. Natasha too began to look
8474at it.
8475
8476
8477
8478
8479
8480CHAPTER IX
8481
8482
8483The floor of the stage consisted of smooth boards, at the sides
8484was some painted cardboard representing trees, and at the back was a
8485cloth stretched over boards. In the center of the stage sat some girls
8486in red bodices and white skirts. One very fat girl in a white silk
8487dress sat apart on a low bench, to the back of which a piece of
8488green cardboard was glued. They all sang something. When they had
8489finished their song the girl in white went up to the prompter's box
8490and a man with tight silk trousers over his stout legs, and holding
8491a plume and a dagger, went up to her and began singing, waving his
8492arms about.
8493
8494First the man in the tight trousers sang alone, then she sang,
8495then they both paused while the orchestra played and the man
8496fingered the hand of the girl in white, obviously awaiting the beat to
8497start singing with her. They sang together and everyone in the theater
8498began clapping and shouting, while the man and woman on the stage--who
8499represented lovers--began smiling, spreading out their arms, and
8500bowing.
8501
8502After her life in the country, and in her present serious mood,
8503all this seemed grotesque and amazing to Natasha. She could not follow
8504the opera nor even listen to the music; she saw only the painted
8505cardboard and the queerly dressed men and women who moved, spoke,
8506and sang so strangely in that brilliant light. She knew what it was
8507all meant to represent, but it was so pretentiously false and
8508unnatural that she first felt ashamed for the actors and then amused
8509at them. She looked at the faces of the audience, seeking in them
8510the same sense of ridicule and perplexity she herself experienced, but
8511they all seemed attentive to what was happening on the stage, and
8512expressed delight which to Natasha seemed feigned. "I suppose it has
8513to be like this!" she thought. She kept looking round in turn at the
8514rows of pomaded heads in the stalls and then at the seminude women
8515in the boxes, especially at Helene in the next box, who--apparently
8516quite unclothed--sat with a quiet tranquil smile, not taking her
8517eyes off the stage. And feeling the bright light that flooded the
8518whole place and the warm air heated by the crowd, Natasha little by
8519little began to pass into a state of intoxication she had not
8520experienced for a long while. She did not realize who and where she
8521was, nor what was going on before her. As she looked and thought,
8522the strangest fancies unexpectedly and disconnectedly passed through
8523her mind: the idea occurred to her of jumping onto the edge of the box
8524and singing the air the actress was singing, then she wished to
8525touch with her fan an old gentleman sitting not far from her, then
8526to lean over to Helene and tickle her.
8527
8528At a moment when all was quiet before the commencement of a song,
8529a door leading to the stalls on the side nearest the Rostovs' box
8530creaked, and the steps of a belated arrival were heard. "There's
8531Kuragin!" whispered Shinshin. Countess Bezukhova turned smiling to the
8532newcomer, and Natasha, following the direction of that look, saw an
8533exceptionally handsome adjutant approaching their box with a
8534self-assured yet courteous bearing. This was Anatole Kuragin whom
8535she had seen and noticed long ago at the ball in Petersburg. He was
8536now in an adjutant's uniform with one epaulet and a shoulder knot.
8537He moved with a restrained swagger which would have been ridiculous
8538had he not been so good-looking and had his handsome face not worn
8539such an expression of good-humored complacency and gaiety. Though
8540the performance was proceeding, he walked deliberately down the
8541carpeted gangway, his sword and spurs slightly jingling and his
8542handsome perfumed head held high. Having looked at Natasha he
8543approached his sister, laid his well gloved hand on the edge of her
8544box, nodded to her, and leaning forward asked a question, with a
8545motion toward Natasha.
8546
8547"Mais charmante!" said he, evidently referring to Natasha, who did
8548not exactly hear his words but understood them from the movement of
8549his lips. Then he took his place in the first row of the stalls and
8550sat down beside Dolokhov, nudging with his elbow in a friendly and
8551offhand way that Dolokhov whom others treated so fawningly. He
8552winked at him gaily, smiled, and rested his foot against the orchestra
8553screen.
8554
8555"How like the brother is to the sister," remarked the count. "And
8556how handsome they both are!"
8557
8558Shinshin, lowering his voice, began to tell the count of some
8559intrigue of Kuragin's in Moscow, and Natasha tried to overhear it just
8560because he had said she was "charmante."
8561
8562The first act was over. In the stalls everyone began moving about,
8563going out and coming in.
8564
8565Boris came to the Rostovs' box, received their congratulations
8566very simply, and raising his eyebrows with an absent-minded smile
8567conveyed to Natasha and Sonya his fiancee's invitation to her wedding,
8568and went away. Natasha with a gay, coquettish smile talked to him, and
8569congratulated on his approaching wedding that same Boris with whom she
8570had formerly been in love. In the state of intoxication she was in,
8571everything seemed simple and natural.
8572
8573The scantily clad Helene smiled at everyone in the same way, and
8574Natasha gave Boris a similar smile.
8575
8576Helene's box was filled and surrounded from the stalls by the most
8577distinguished and intellectual men, who seemed to vie with one another
8578in their wish to let everyone see that they knew her.
8579
8580During the whole of that entr'acte Kuragin stood with Dolokhov in
8581front of the orchestra partition, looking at the Rostovs' box. Natasha
8582knew he was talking about her and this afforded her pleasure. She even
8583turned so that he should see her profile in what she thought was its
8584most becoming aspect. Before the beginning of the second act Pierre
8585appeared in the stalls. The Rostovs had not seen him since their
8586arrival. His face looked sad, and he had grown still stouter since
8587Natasha last saw him. He passed up to the front rows, not noticing
8588anyone. Anatole went up to him and began speaking to him, looking at
8589and indicating the Rostovs' box. On seeing Natasha Pierre grew
8590animated and, hastily passing between the rows, came toward their box.
8591When he got there he leaned on his elbows and, smiling, talked to
8592her for a long time. While conversing with Pierre, Natasha heard a
8593man's voice in Countess Bezukhova's box and something told her it
8594was Kuragin. She turned and their eyes met. Almost smiling, he gazed
8595straight into her eyes with such an enraptured caressing look that
8596it seemed strange to be so near him, to look at him like that, to be
8597so sure he admired her, and not to be acquainted with him.
8598
8599In the second act there was scenery representing tombstones, there
8600was a round hole in the canvas to represent the moon, shades were
8601raised over the footlights, and from horns and contrabass came deep
8602notes while many people appeared from right and left wearing black
8603cloaks and holding things like daggers in their hands. They began
8604waving their arms. Then some other people ran in and began dragging
8605away the maiden who had been in white and was now in light blue.
8606They did not drag her away at once, but sang with her for a long
8607time and then at last dragged her off, and behind the scenes something
8608metallic was struck three times and everyone knelt down and sang a
8609prayer. All these things were repeatedly interrupted by the
8610enthusiastic shouts of the audience.
8611
8612During this act every time Natasha looked toward the stalls she
8613saw Anatole Kuragin with an arm thrown across the back of his chair,
8614staring at her. She was pleased to see that he was captivated by her
8615and it did not occur to her that there was anything wrong in it.
8616
8617When the second act was over Countess Bezukhova rose, turned to
8618the Rostovs' box--her whole bosom completely exposed--beckoned the old
8619count with a gloved finger, and paying no attention to those who had
8620entered her box began talking to him with an amiable smile.
8621
8622"Do make me acquainted with your charming daughters," said she. "The
8623whole town is singing their praises and I don't even know then!"
8624
8625Natasha rose and curtsied to the splendid countess. She was so
8626pleased by praise from this brilliant beauty that she blushed with
8627pleasure.
8628
8629"I want to become a Moscovite too, now," said Helene. "How is it
8630you're not ashamed to bury such pearls in the country?"
8631
8632Countess Bezukhova quite deserved her reputation of being a
8633fascinating woman. She could say what she did not think--especially
8634what was flattering--quite simply and naturally.
8635
8636"Dear count, you must let me look after your daughters! Though I
8637am not staying here long this time--nor are you--I will try to amuse
8638them. I have already heard much of you in Petersburg and wanted to get
8639to know you," said she to Natasha with her stereotyped and lovely
8640smile. "I had heard about you from my page, Drubetskoy. Have you heard
8641he is getting married? And also from my husband's friend Bolkonski,
8642Prince Andrew Bolkonski," she went on with special emphasis,
8643implying that she knew of his relation to Natasha. To get better
8644acquainted she asked that one of the young ladies should come into her
8645box for the rest of the performance, and Natasha moved over to it.
8646
8647The scene of the third act represented a palace in which many
8648candles were burning and pictures of knights with short beards hung on
8649the walls. In the middle stood what were probably a king and a
8650queen. The king waved his right arm and, evidently nervous, sang
8651something badly and sat down on a crimson throne. The maiden who had
8652been first in white and then in light blue, now wore only a smock, and
8653stood beside the throne with her hair down. She sang something
8654mournfully, addressing the queen, but the king waved his arm severely,
8655and men and women with bare legs came in from both sides and began
8656dancing all together. Then the violins played very shrilly and merrily
8657and one of the women with thick bare legs and thin arms, separating
8658from the others, went behind the wings, adjusted her bodice,
8659returned to the middle of the stage, and began jumping and striking
8660one foot rapidly against the other. In the stalls everyone clapped and
8661shouted "bravo!" Then one of the men went into a corner of the
8662stage. The cymbals and horns in the orchestra struck up more loudly,
8663and this man with bare legs jumped very high and waved his feet
8664about very rapidly. (He was Duport, who received sixty thousand rubles
8665a year for this art.) Everybody in the stalls, boxes, and galleries
8666began clapping and shouting with all their might, and the man
8667stopped and began smiling and bowing to all sides. Then other men
8668and women danced with bare legs. Then the king again shouted to the
8669sound of music, and they all began singing. But suddenly a storm
8670came on, chromatic scales and diminished sevenths were heard in the
8671orchestra, everyone ran off, again dragging one of their number
8672away, and the curtain dropped. Once more there was a terrible noise
8673and clatter among the audience, and with rapturous faces everyone
8674began shouting: "Duport! Duport! Duport!" Natasha no longer thought
8675this strange. She look about with pleasure, smiling joyfully.
8676
8677"Isn't Duport delightful?" Helene asked her.
8678
8679"Oh, yes," replied Natasha.
8680
8681
8682
8683
8684
8685CHAPTER X
8686
8687
8688During the entr'acte a whiff of cold air came into Helene's box, the
8689door opened, and Anatole entered, stooping and trying not to brush
8690against anyone.
8691
8692"Let me introduce my brother to you," said Helene, her eyes shifting
8693uneasily from Natasha to Anatole.
8694
8695Natasha turned her pretty little head toward the elegant young
8696officer and smiled at him over her bare shoulder. Anatole, who was
8697as handsome at close quarters as at a distance, sat down beside her
8698and told her he had long wished to have this happiness--ever since the
8699Naryshkins' ball in fact, at which he had had the well-remembered
8700pleasure of seeing her. Kuragin was much more sensible and simple with
8701women than among men. He talked boldly and naturally, and Natasha
8702was strangely and agreeably struck by the fact that there was
8703nothing formidable in this man about whom there was so much talk,
8704but that on the contrary his smile was most naive, cheerful, and
8705good-natured.
8706
8707Kuragin asked her opinion of the performance and told her how at a
8708previous performance Semenova had fallen down on the stage.
8709
8710"And do you know, Countess," he said, suddenly addressing her as
8711an old, familiar acquaintance, "we are getting up a costume
8712tournament; you ought to take part in it! It will be great fun. We
8713shall all meet at the Karagins'! Please come! No! Really, eh?" said
8714he.
8715
8716While saying this he never removed his smiling eyes from her face,
8717her neck, and her bare arms. Natasha knew for certain that he was
8718enraptured by her. This pleased her, yet his presence made her feel
8719constrained and oppressed. When she was not looking at him she felt
8720that he was looking at her shoulders, and she involuntarily caught his
8721eye so that he should look into hers rather than this. But looking
8722into his eyes she was frightened, realizing that there was not that
8723barrier of modesty she had always felt between herself and other
8724men. She did not know how it was that within five minutes she had come
8725to feel herself terribly near to this man. When she turned away she
8726feared he might seize her from behind by her bare arm and kiss her
8727on the neck. They spoke of most ordinary things, yet she felt that
8728they were closer to one another than she had ever been to any man.
8729Natasha kept turning to Helene and to her father, as if asking what it
8730all meant, but Helene was engaged in conversation with a general and
8731did not answer her look, and her father's eyes said nothing but what
8732they always said: "Having a good time? Well, I'm glad of it!"
8733
8734During one of these moments of awkward silence when Anatole's
8735prominent eyes were gazing calmly and fixedly at her, Natasha, to
8736break the silence, asked him how he liked Moscow. She asked the
8737question and blushed. She felt all the time that by talking to him she
8738was doing something improper. Anatole smiled as though to encourage
8739her.
8740
8741"At first I did not like it much, because what makes a town pleasant
8742ce sont les jolies femmes,* isn't that so? But now I like it very much
8743indeed," he said, looking at her significantly. "You'll come to the
8744costume tournament, Countess? Do come!" and putting out his hand to
8745her bouquet and dropping his voice, he added, "You will be the
8746prettiest there. Do come, dear countess, and give me this flower as
8747a pledge!"
8748
8749
8750*Are the pretty women.
8751
8752
8753Natasha did not understand what he was saying any more than he did
8754himself, but she felt that his incomprehensible words had an
8755improper intention. She did not know what to say and turned away as if
8756she had not heard his remark. But as soon as she had turned away she
8757felt that he was there, behind, so close behind her.
8758
8759"How is he now? Confused? Angry? Ought I to put it right?" she asked
8760herself, and she could not refrain from turning round. She looked
8761straight into his eyes, and his nearness, self-assurance, and the
8762good-natured tenderness of his smile vanquished her. She smiled just
8763as he was doing, gazing straight into his eyes. And again she felt
8764with horror that no barrier lay between him and her.
8765
8766The curtain rose again. Anatole left the box, serene and gay.
8767Natasha went back to her father in the other box, now quite submissive
8768to the world she found herself in. All that was going on before her
8769now seemed quite natural, but on the other hand all her previous
8770thoughts of her betrothed, of Princess Mary, or of life in the country
8771did not once recur to her mind and were as if belonging to a remote
8772past.
8773
8774In the fourth act there was some sort of devil who sang waving his
8775arm about, till the boards were withdrawn from under him and he
8776disappeared down below. That was the only part of the fourth act
8777that Natasha saw. She felt agitated and tormented, and the cause of
8778this was Kuragin whom she could not help watching. As they were
8779leaving the theater Anatole came up to them, called their carriage,
8780and helped them in. As he was putting Natasha in he pressed her arm
8781above the elbow. Agitated and flushed she turned round. He was looking
8782at her with glittering eyes, smiling tenderly.
8783
8784
8785Only after she had reached home was Natasha able clearly to think
8786over what had happened to her, and suddenly remembering Prince
8787Andrew she was horrified, and at tea to which all had sat down after
8788the opera, she gave a loud exclamation, flushed, and ran out of the
8789room.
8790
8791"O God! I am lost!" she said to herself. "How could I let him?"
8792She sat for a long time hiding her flushed face in her hands trying to
8793realize what had happened to her, but was unable either to
8794understand what had happened or what she felt. Everything seemed dark,
8795obscure, and terrible. There in that enormous, illuminated theater
8796where the bare-legged Duport, in a tinsel-decorated jacket, jumped
8797about to the music on wet boards, and young girls and old men, and the
8798nearly naked Helene with her proud, calm smile, rapturously cried
8799"bravo!"--there in the presence of that Helene it had all seemed clear
8800and simple; but now, alone by herself, it was incomprehensible.
8801"What is it? What was that terror I felt of him? What is this
8802gnawing of conscience I am feeling now?" she thought.
8803
8804Only to the old countess at night in bed could Natasha have told all
8805she was feeling. She knew that Sonya with her severe and simple
8806views would either not understand it at all or would be horrified at
8807such a confession. So Natasha tried to solve what was torturing her by
8808herself.
8809
8810"Am I spoiled for Andrew's love or not?" she asked herself, and with
8811soothing irony replied: "What a fool I am to ask that! What did happen
8812to me? Nothing! I have done nothing, I didn't lead him on at all.
8813Nobody will know and I shall never see him again," she told herself.
8814"So it is plain that nothing has happened and there is nothing to
8815repent of, and Andrew can love me still. But why 'still?' O God, why
8816isn't he here?" Natasha quieted herself for a moment, but again some
8817instinct told her that though all this was true, and though nothing
8818had happened, yet the former purity of her love for Prince Andrew
8819had perished. And again in imagination she went over her whole
8820conversation with Kuragin, and again saw the face, gestures, and
8821tender smile of that bold handsome man when he pressed her arm.
8822
8823
8824
8825
8826
8827CHAPTER XI
8828
8829Anatole Kuragin was staying in Moscow because his father had sent
8830him away from Petersburg, where he had been spending twenty thousand
8831rubles a year in cash, besides running up debts for as much more,
8832which his creditors demanded from his father.
8833
8834His father announced to him that he would now pay half his debts for
8835the last time, but only on condition that he went to Moscow as
8836adjutant to the commander in chief--a post his father had procured for
8837him--and would at last try to make a good match there. He indicated to
8838him Princess Mary and Julie Karagina.
8839
8840Anatole consented and went to Moscow, where he put up at Pierre's
8841house. Pierre received him unwillingly at first, but got used to him
8842after a while, sometimes even accompanied him on his carousals, and
8843gave him money under the guise of loans.
8844
8845As Shinshin had remarked, from the time of his arrival Anatole had
8846turned the heads of the Moscow ladies, especially by the fact that
8847he slighted them and plainly preferred the gypsy girls and French
8848actresses--with the chief of whom, Mademoiselle George, he was said to
8849be on intimate relations. He had never missed a carousal at
8850Danilov's or other Moscow revelers', drank whole nights through,
8851outvying everyone else, and was at all the balls and parties of the
8852best society. There was talk of his intrigues with some of the ladies,
8853and he flirted with a few of them at the balls. But he did not run
8854after the unmarried girls, especially the rich heiresses who were most
8855of them plain. There was a special reason for this, as he had got
8856married two years before--a fact known only to his most intimate
8857friends. At that time while with his regiment in Poland, a Polish
8858landowner of small means had forced him to marry his daughter. Anatole
8859had very soon abandoned his wife and, for a payment which he agreed to
8860send to his father-in-law, had arranged to be free to pass himself off
8861as a bachelor.
8862
8863Anatole was always content with his position, with himself, and with
8864others. He was instinctively and thoroughly convinced that was
8865impossible for him to live otherwise than as he did and that he had
8866never in his life done anything base. He was incapable of
8867considering how his actions might affect others or what the
8868consequences of this or that action of his might be. He was
8869convinced that, as a duck is so made that it must live in water, so
8870God had made him such that he must spend thirty thousand rubles a year
8871and always occupy a prominent position in society. He believed this so
8872firmly that others, looking at him, were persuaded of it too and did
8873not refuse him either a leading place in society or money, which he
8874borrowed from anyone and everyone and evidently would not repay.
8875
8876He was not a gambler, at any rate he did not care about winning.
8877He was not vain. He did not mind what people thought of him. Still
8878less could he be accused of ambition. More than once he had vexed
8879his father by spoiling his own career, and he laughed at
8880distinctions of all kinds. He was not mean, and did not refuse
8881anyone who asked of him. All he cared about was gaiety and women,
8882and as according to his ideas there was nothing dishonorable in
8883these tastes, and he was incapable of considering what the
8884gratification of his tastes entailed for others, he honestly
8885considered himself irreproachable, sincerely despised rogues and bad
8886people, and with a tranquil conscience carried his head high.
8887
8888Rakes, those male Magdalenes, have a secret feeling of innocence
8889similar to that which female Magdalenes have, based on the same hope
8890of forgiveness. "All will be forgiven her, for she loved much; and all
8891will be forgiven him, for he enjoyed much."
8892
8893Dolokhov, who had reappeared that year in Moscow after his exile and
8894his Persian adventures, and was leading a life of luxury, gambling,
8895and dissipation, associated with his old Petersburg comrade Kuragin
8896and made use of him for his own ends.
8897
8898Anatole was sincerely fond of Dolokhov for his cleverness and
8899audacity. Dolokhov, who needed Anatole Kuragin's name, position, and
8900connections as a bait to draw rich young men into his gambling set,
8901made use of him and amused himself at his expense without letting
8902the other feel it. Apart from the advantage he derived from Anatole,
8903the very process of dominating another's will was in itself a
8904pleasure, a habit, and a necessity to Dolokhov.
8905
8906Natasha had made a strong impression on Kuragin. At supper after the
8907opera he described to Dolokhov with the air of a connoisseur the
8908attractions of her arms, shoulders, feet, and hair and expressed his
8909intention of making love to her. Anatole had no notion and was
8910incapable of considering what might come of such love-making, as he
8911never had any notion of the outcome of any of his actions.
8912
8913"She's first-rate, my dear fellow, but not for us," replied
8914Dolokhov.
8915
8916"I will tell my sister to ask her to dinner," said Anatole. "Eh?"
8917
8918"You'd better wait till she's married...."
8919
8920"You know, I adore little girls, they lose their heads at once,"
8921pursued Anatole.
8922
8923"You have been caught once already by a 'little girl,'" said
8924Dolokhov who knew of Kuragin's marriage. "Take care!"
8925
8926"Well, that can't happen twice! Eh?" said Anatole, with a
8927good-humored laugh.
8928
8929
8930
8931
8932
8933CHAPTER XII
8934
8935
8936The day after the opera the Rostovs went nowhere and nobody came
8937to see them. Marya Dmitrievna talked to the count about something
8938which they concealed from Natasha. Natasha guessed they were talking
8939about the old prince and planning something, and this disquieted and
8940offended her. She was expecting Prince Andrew any moment and twice
8941that day sent a manservant to the Vozdvizhenka to ascertain whether he
8942had come. He had not arrived. She suffered more now than during her
8943first days in Moscow. To her impatience and pining for him were now
8944added the unpleasant recollection of her interview with Princess
8945Mary and the old prince, and a fear and anxiety of which she did not
8946understand the cause. She continually fancied that either he would
8947never come or that something would happen to her before he came. She
8948could no longer think of him by herself calmly and continuously as she
8949had done before. As soon as she began to think of him, the
8950recollection of the old prince, of Princess Mary, of the theater,
8951and of Kuragin mingled with her thoughts. The question again presented
8952itself whether she was not guilty, whether she had not already
8953broken faith with Prince Andrew, and again she found herself recalling
8954to the minutest detail every word, every gesture, and every shade in
8955the play of expression on the face of the man who had been able to
8956arouse in her such an incomprehensible and terrifying feeling. To
8957the family Natasha seemed livelier than usual, but she was far less
8958tranquil and happy than before.
8959
8960On Sunday morning Marya Dmitrievna invited her visitors to Mass at
8961her parish church--the Church of the Assumption built over the
8962graves of victims of the plague.
8963
8964"I don't like those fashionable churches," she said, evidently
8965priding herself on her independence of thought. "God is the same every
8966where. We have an excellent priest, he conducts the service decently
8967and with dignity, and the deacon is the same. What holiness is there
8968in giving concerts in the choir? I don't like it, it's just
8969self-indulgence!"
8970
8971Marya Dmitrievna liked Sundays and knew how to keep them. Her
8972whole house was scrubbed and cleaned on Saturdays; neither she nor the
8973servants worked, and they all wore holiday dress and went to church.
8974At her table there were extra dishes at dinner, and the servants had
8975vodka and roast goose or suckling pig. But in nothing in the house was
8976the holiday so noticeable as in Marya Dmitrievna's broad, stern
8977face, which on that day wore an invariable look of solemn festivity.
8978
8979After Mass, when they had finished their coffee in the dining room
8980where the loose covers had been removed from the furniture, a
8981servant announced that the carriage was ready, and Marya Dmitrievna
8982rose with a stern air. She wore her holiday shawl, in which she paid
8983calls, and announced that she was going to see Prince Nicholas
8984Bolkonski to have an explanation with him about Natasha.
8985
8986After she had gone, a dressmaker from Madame Suppert-Roguet waited
8987on the Rostovs, and Natasha, very glad of this diversion, having
8988shut herself into a room adjoining the drawing room, occupied
8989herself trying on the new dresses. Just as she had put on a bodice
8990without sleeves and only tacked together, and was turning her head
8991to see in the glass how the back fitted, she heard in the drawing room
8992the animated sounds of her father's voice and another's--a woman's-
8993that made her flush. It was Helene. Natasha had not time to take off
8994the bodice before the door opened and Countess Bezukhova, dressed in a
8995purple velvet gown with a high collar, came into the room beaming with
8996good-humored amiable smiles.
8997
8998"Oh, my enchantress!" she cried to the blushing Natasha.
8999"Charming! No, this is really beyond anything, my dear count," said
9000she to Count Rostov who had followed her in. "How can you live in
9001Moscow and go nowhere? No, I won't let you off! Mademoiselle George
9002will recite at my house tonight and there'll be some people, and if
9003you don't bring your lovely girls--who are prettier than
9004Mademoiselle George--I won't know you! My husband is away in Tver or I
9005would send him to fetch you. You must come. You positively must!
9006Between eight and nine."
9007
9008She nodded to the dressmaker, whom she knew and who had curtsied
9009respectfully to her, and seated herself in an armchair beside the
9010looking glass, draping the folds of her velvet dress picturesquely.
9011She did not cease chattering good-naturedly and gaily, continually
9012praising Natasha's beauty. She looked at Natasha's dresses and praised
9013them, as well as a new dress of her own made of "metallic gauze,"
9014which she had received from Paris, and advised Natasha to have one
9015like it.
9016
9017"But anything suits you, my charmer!" she remarked.
9018
9019A smile of pleasure never left Natasha's face. She felt happy and as
9020if she were blossoming under the praise of this dear Countess
9021Bezukhova who had formerly seemed to her so unapproachable and
9022important and was now so kind to her. Natasha brightened up and felt
9023almost in love with this woman, who was so beautiful and so kind.
9024Helene for her part was sincerely delighted with Natasha and wished to
9025give her a good time. Anatole had asked her to bring him and Natasha
9026together, and she was calling on the Rostovs for that purpose. The
9027idea of throwing her brother and Natasha together amused her.
9028
9029Though at one time, in Petersburg, she had been annoyed with Natasha
9030for drawing Boris away, she did not think of that now, and in her
9031own way heartily wished Natasha well. As she was leaving the Rostovs
9032she called her protegee aside.
9033
9034"My brother dined with me yesterday--we nearly died of laughter-
9035he ate nothing and kept sighing for you, my charmer! He is madly,
9036quite madly, in love with you, my dear."
9037
9038Natasha blushed scarlet when she heard this.
9039
9040"How she blushes, how she blushes, my pretty!" said Helene. "You
9041must certainly come. If you love somebody, my charmer, that is not a
9042reason to shut yourself up. Even if you are engaged, I am sure your
9043fiance would wish you to go into society rather than be bored to
9044death."
9045
9046"So she knows I am engaged, and she and her husband Pierre--that
9047good Pierre--have talked and laughed about this. So it's all right."
9048And again, under Helene's influence, what had seemed terrible now
9049seemed simple and natural. "And she is such a grande dame, so kind,
9050and evidently likes me so much. And why not enjoy myself?" thought
9051Natasha, gazing at Helene with wide-open, wondering eyes.
9052
9053Marya Dmitrievna came back to dinner taciturn and serious, having
9054evidently suffered a defeat at the old prince's. She was still too
9055agitated by the encounter to be able to talk of the affair calmly.
9056In answer to the count's inquiries she replied that things were all
9057right and that she would tell about it next day. On hearing of
9058Countess Bezukhova's visit and the invitation for that evening,
9059Marya Dmitrievna remarked:
9060
9061"I don't care to have anything to do with Bezukhova and don't advise
9062you to; however, if you've promised--go. It will divert your
9063thoughts," she added, addressing Natasha.
9064
9065
9066
9067
9068
9069CHAPTER XIII
9070
9071
9072Count Rostov took the girls to Countess Bezukhova's. There were a
9073good many people there, but nearly all strangers to Natasha. Count
9074Rostov was displeased to see that the company consisted almost
9075entirely of men and women known for the freedom of their conduct.
9076Mademoiselle George was standing in a corner of the drawing room
9077surrounded by young men. There were several Frenchmen present, among
9078them Metivier who from the time Helene reached Moscow had been an
9079intimate in her house. The count decided not to sit down to cards or
9080let his girls out of his sight and to get away as soon as Mademoiselle
9081George's performance was over.
9082
9083Anatole was at the door, evidently on the lookout for the Rostovs.
9084Immediately after greeting the count he went up to Natasha and
9085followed her. As soon as she saw him she was seized by the same
9086feeling she had had at the opera--gratified vanity at his admiration
9087of her and fear at the absence of a moral barrier between them.
9088
9089Helene welcomed Natasha delightedly and was loud in admiration of
9090her beauty and her dress. Soon after their arrival Mademoiselle George
9091went out of the room to change her costume. In the drawing room people
9092began arranging the chairs and taking their seats. Anatole moved a
9093chair for Natasha and was about to sit down beside her, but the count,
9094who never lost sight of her, took the seat himself. Anatole sat down
9095behind her.
9096
9097Mademoiselle George, with her bare, fat, dimpled arms, and a red
9098shawl draped over one shoulder, came into the space left vacant for
9099her, and assumed an unnatural pose. Enthusiastic whispering was
9100audible.
9101
9102Mademoiselle George looked sternly and gloomily at the audience
9103and began reciting some French verses describing her guilty love for
9104her son. In some places she raised her voice, in others she whispered,
9105lifting her head triumphantly; sometimes she paused and uttered hoarse
9106sounds, rolling her eyes.
9107
9108"Adorable! divine! delicious!" was heard from every side.
9109
9110Natasha looked at the fat actress, but neither saw nor heard nor
9111understood anything of what went on before her. She only felt
9112herself again completely borne away into this strange senseless world-
9113so remote from her old world--a world in which it was impossible to
9114know what was good or bad, reasonable or senseless. Behind her sat
9115Anatole, and conscious of his proximity she experienced a frightened
9116sense of expectancy.
9117
9118After the first monologue the whole company rose and surrounded
9119Mademoiselle George, expressing their enthusiasm.
9120
9121"How beautiful she is!" Natasha remarked to her father who had
9122also risen and was moving through the crowd toward the actress.
9123
9124"I don't think so when I look at you!" said Anatole, following
9125Natasha. He said this at a moment when she alone could hear him.
9126"You are enchanting... from the moment I saw you I have never
9127ceased..."
9128
9129"Come, come, Natasha!" said the count, as he turned back for his
9130daughter. "How beautiful she is!" Natasha without saying anything
9131stepped up to her father and looked at him with surprised inquiring
9132eyes.
9133
9134After giving several recitations, Mademoiselle George left, and
9135Countess Bezukhova asked her visitors into the ballroom.
9136
9137The count wished to go home, but Helene entreated him not to spoil
9138her improvised ball, and the Rostovs stayed on. Anatole asked
9139Natasha for a valse and as they danced he pressed her waist and hand
9140and told her she was bewitching and that he loved her. During the
9141ecossaise, which she also danced with him, Anatole said nothing when
9142they happened to be by themselves, but merely gazed at her. Natasha
9143lifted her frightened eyes to him, but there was such confident
9144tenderness in his affectionate look and smile that she could not,
9145whilst looking at him, say what she had to say. She lowered her eyes.
9146
9147"Don't say such things to me. I am betrothed and love another,"
9148she said rapidly.... She glanced at him.
9149
9150Anatole was not upset or pained by what she had said.
9151
9152"Don't speak to me of that! What can I do?" said he. "I tell you I
9153am madly, madly, in love with you! Is it my fault that you are
9154enchanting?... It's our turn to begin."
9155
9156Natasha, animated and excited, looked about her with wide-open
9157frightened eyes and seemed merrier than usual. She understood hardly
9158anything that went on that evening. They danced the ecossaise and
9159the Grossvater. Her father asked her to come home, but she begged to
9160remain. Wherever she went and whomever she was speaking to, she felt
9161his eyes upon her. Later on she recalled how she had asked her
9162father to let her go to the dressing room to rearrange her dress, that
9163Helene had followed her and spoken laughingly of her brother's love,
9164and that she again met Anatole in the little sitting room. Helene
9165had disappeared leaving them alone, and Anatole had taken her hand and
9166said in a tender voice:
9167
9168"I cannot come to visit you but is it possible that I shall never
9169see you? I love you madly. Can I never...?" and, blocking her path, he
9170brought his face close to hers.
9171
9172His large, glittering, masculine eyes were so close to hers that she
9173saw nothing but them.
9174
9175"Natalie?" he whispered inquiringly while she felt her hands being
9176painfully pressed. "Natalie?"
9177
9178"I don't understand. I have nothing to say," her eyes replied.
9179
9180Burning lips were pressed to hers, and at the same instant she
9181felt herself released, and Helene's footsteps and the rustle of her
9182dress were heard in the room. Natasha looked round at her, and then,
9183red and trembling, threw a frightened look of inquiry at Anatole and
9184moved toward the door.
9185
9186"One word, just one, for God's sake!" cried Anatole.
9187
9188She paused. She so wanted a word from him that would explain to
9189her what had happened and to which she could find no answer.
9190
9191"Natalie, just a word, only one!" he kept repeating, evidently not
9192knowing what to say and he repeated it till Helene came up to them.
9193
9194Helene returned with Natasha to the drawing room. The Rostovs went
9195away without staying for supper.
9196
9197After reaching home Natasha did not sleep all night. She was
9198tormented by the insoluble question whether she loved Anatole or
9199Prince Andrew. She loved Prince Andrew--she remembered distinctly
9200how deeply she loved him. But she also loved Anatole, of that there
9201was no doubt. "Else how could all this have happened?" thought she.
9202"If, after that, I could return his smile when saying good-by, if I
9203was able to let it come to that, it means that I loved him from the
9204first. It means that he is kind, noble, and splendid, and I could
9205not help loving him. What am I to do if I love him and the other one
9206too?" she asked herself, unable to find an answer to these terrible
9207questions.
9208
9209
9210
9211
9212
9213CHAPTER XIV
9214
9215
9216Morning came with its cares and bustle. Everyone got up and began to
9217move about and talk, dressmakers came again. Marya Dmitrievna
9218appeared, and they were called to breakfast. Natasha kept looking
9219uneasily at everybody with wide-open eyes, as if wishing to
9220intercept every glance directed toward her, and tried to appear the
9221same as usual.
9222
9223After breakfast, which was her best time, Marya Dmitrievna sat
9224down in her armchair and called Natasha and the count to her.
9225
9226"Well, friends, I have now thought the whole matter over and this is
9227my advice," she began. "Yesterday, as you know, I went to see Prince
9228Bolkonski. Well, I had a talk with him.... He took it into his head to
9229begin shouting, but I am not one to be shouted down. I said what I had
9230to say!"
9231
9232"Well, and he?" asked the count.
9233
9234"He? He's crazy... he did not want to listen. But what's the use
9235of talking? As it is we have worn the poor girl out," said Marya
9236Dmitrievna. "My advice to you is finish your business and go back home
9237to Otradnoe... and wait there."
9238
9239"Oh, no!" exclaimed Natasha.
9240
9241"Yes, go back," said Marya Dmitrievna, "and wait there. If your
9242betrothed comes here now--there will be no avoiding a quarrel; but
9243alone with the old man he will talk things over and then come on to
9244you."
9245
9246Count Rostov approved of this suggestion, appreciating its
9247reasonableness. If the old man came round it would be all the better
9248to visit him in Moscow or at Bald Hills later on; and if not, the
9249wedding, against his wishes, could only be arranged at Otradnoe.
9250
9251"That is perfectly true. And I am sorry I went to see him and took
9252her," said the old count.
9253
9254"No, why be sorry? Being here, you had to pay your respects. But
9255if he won't--that's his affair," said Marya Dmitrievna, looking for
9256something in her reticule. "Besides, the trousseau is ready, so
9257there is nothing to wait for; and what is not ready I'll send after
9258you. Though I don't like letting you go, it is the best way. So go,
9259with God's blessing!"
9260
9261Having found what she was looking for in the reticule she handed
9262it to Natasha. It was a letter from Princess Mary.
9263
9264"She has written to you. How she torments herself, poor thing! She's
9265afraid you might think that she does not like you."
9266
9267"But she doesn't like me," said Natasha.
9268
9269"Don't talk nonsense!" cried Marya Dmitrievna.
9270
9271"I shan't believe anyone, I know she doesn't like me," replied
9272Natasha boldly as she took the letter, and her face expressed a cold
9273and angry resolution that caused Marya Dmitrievna to look at her
9274more intently and to frown.
9275
9276"Don't answer like that, my good girl!" she said. "What I say is
9277true! Write an answer!" Natasha did not reply and went to her own room
9278to read Princess Mary's letter.
9279
9280Princess Mary wrote that she was in despair at the
9281misunderstanding that had occurred between them. Whatever her father's
9282feelings might be, she begged Natasha to believe that she could not
9283help loving her as the one chosen by her brother, for whose
9284happiness she was ready to sacrifice everything.
9285
9286"Do not think, however," she wrote, "that my father is
9287ill-disposed toward you. He is an invalid and an old man who must be
9288forgiven; but he is good and magnanimous and will love her who makes
9289his son happy." Princess Mary went on to ask Natasha to fix a time
9290when she could see her again.
9291
9292After reading the letter Natasha sat down at the writing table to
9293answer it. "Dear Princess," she wrote in French quickly and
9294mechanically, and then paused. What more could she write after all
9295that had happened the evening before? "Yes, yes! All that has
9296happened, and now all is changed," she thought as she sat with the
9297letter she had begun before her. "Must I break off with him? Must I
9298really? That's awful..." and to escape from these dreadful thoughts
9299she went to Sonya and began sorting patterns with her.
9300
9301After dinner Natasha went to her room and again took up Princess
9302Mary's letter. "Can it be that it is all over?" she thought. "Can it
9303be that all this has happened so quickly and has destroyed all that
9304went before?" She recalled her love for Prince Andrew in all its
9305former strength, and at the same time felt that she loved Kuragin. She
9306vividly pictured herself as Prince Andrew's wife, and the scenes of
9307happiness with him she had so often repeated in her imagination, and
9308at the same time, aglow with excitement, recalled every detail of
9309yesterday's interview with Anatole.
9310
9311"Why could that not be as well?" she sometimes asked herself in
9312complete bewilderment. "Only so could I be completely happy; but now I
9313have to choose, and I can't be happy without either of them. Only,"
9314she thought, "to tell Prince Andrew what has happened or to hide it
9315from him are both equally impossible. But with that one nothing is
9316spoiled. But am I really to abandon forever the joy of Prince Andrew's
9317love, in which I have lived so long?"
9318
9319"Please, Miss!" whispered a maid entering the room with a mysterious
9320air. "A man told me to give you this-" and she handed Natasha a
9321letter.
9322
9323"Only, for Christ's sake..." the girl went on, as Natasha, without
9324thinking, mechanically broke the seal and read a love letter from
9325Anatole, of which, without taking in a word, she understood only
9326that it was a letter from him--from the man she loved. Yes, she
9327loved him, or else how could that have happened which had happened?
9328And how could she have a love letter from him in her hand?
9329
9330With trembling hands Natasha held that passionate love letter
9331which Dolokhov had composed for Anatole, and as she read it she
9332found in it an echo of all that she herself imagined she was feeling.
9333
9334"Since yesterday evening my fate has been sealed; to be loved by you
9335or to die. There is no other way for me," the letter began. Then he
9336went on to say that he knew her parents would not give her to him--for
9337this there were secret reasons he could reveal only to her--but that
9338if she loved him she need only say the word yes, and no human power
9339could hinder their bliss. Love would conquer all. He would steal her
9340away and carry her off to the ends of the earth.
9341
9342"Yes, yes! I love him!" thought Natasha, reading the letter for
9343the twentieth time and finding some peculiarly deep meaning in each
9344word of it.
9345
9346That evening Marya Dmitrievna was going to the Akharovs' and
9347proposed to take the girls with her. Natasha, pleading a headache,
9348remained at home.
9349
9350
9351
9352
9353
9354CHAPTER XV
9355
9356
9357On returning late in the evening Sonya went to Natasha's room, and
9358to her surprise found her still dressed and asleep on the sofa. Open
9359on the table, beside her lay Anatole's letter. Sonya picked it up
9360and read it.
9361
9362As she read she glanced at the sleeping Natasha, trying to find in
9363her face an explanation of what she was reading, but did not find
9364it. Her face was calm, gentle, and happy. Clutching her breast to keep
9365herself from choking, Sonya, pale and trembling with fear and
9366agitation, sat down in an armchair and burst into tears.
9367
9368"How was it I noticed nothing? How could it go so far? Can she
9369have left off loving Prince Andrew? And how could she let Kuragin go
9370to such lengths? He is a deceiver and a villain, that's plain! What
9371will Nicholas, dear noble Nicholas, do when he hears of it? So this is
9372the meaning of her excited, resolute, unnatural look the day before
9373yesterday, yesterday, and today," thought Sonya. "But it can't be that
9374she loves him! She probably opened the letter without knowing who it
9375was from. Probably she is offended by it. She could not do such a
9376thing!"
9377
9378Sonya wiped away her tears and went up to Natasha, again scanning
9379her face.
9380
9381"Natasha!" she said, just audibly.
9382
9383Natasha awoke and saw Sonya.
9384
9385"Ah, you're back?"
9386
9387And with the decision and tenderness that often come at the moment
9388of awakening, she embraced her friend, but noticing Sonya's look of
9389embarrassment, her own face expressed confusion and suspicion.
9390
9391"Sonya, you've read that letter?" she demanded.
9392
9393"Yes," answered Sonya softly.
9394
9395Natasha smiled rapturously.
9396
9397"No, Sonya, I can't any longer!" she said. "I can't hide it from you
9398any longer. You know, we love one another! Sonya, darling, he
9399writes... Sonya..."
9400
9401Sonya stared open-eyed at Natasha, unable to believe her ears.
9402
9403"And Bolkonski?" she asked.
9404
9405"Ah, Sonya, if you only knew how happy I am!" cried Natasha. "You
9406don't know what love is...."
9407
9408"But, Natasha, can that be all over?"
9409
9410Natasha looked at Sonya with wide-open eyes as if she could not
9411grasp the question.
9412
9413"Well, then, are you refusing Prince Andrew?" said Sonya.
9414
9415"Oh, you don't understand anything! Don't talk nonsense, just
9416listen!" said Natasha, with momentary vexation.
9417
9418"But I can't believe it," insisted Sonya. "I don't understand. How
9419is it you have loved a man for a whole year and suddenly... Why, you
9420have only seen him three times! Natasha, I don't believe you, you're
9421joking! In three days to forget everything and so..."
9422
9423"Three days?" said Natasha. "It seems to me I've loved him a hundred
9424years. It seems to me that I have never loved anyone before. You can't
9425understand it.... Sonya, wait a bit, sit here," and Natasha embraced
9426and kissed her.
9427
9428"I had heard that it happens like this, and you must have heard it
9429too, but it's only now that I feel such love. It's not the same as
9430before. As soon as I saw him I felt he was my master and I his
9431slave, and that I could not help loving him. Yes, his slave!
9432Whatever he orders I shall do. You don't understand that. What can I
9433do? What can I do, Sonya?" cried Natasha with a happy yet frightened
9434expression.
9435
9436"But think what you are doing," cried Sonya. "I can't leave it
9437like this. This secret correspondence... How could you let him go so
9438far?" she went on, with a horror and disgust she could hardly conceal.
9439
9440"I told you that I have no will," Natasha replied. "Why can't you
9441understand? I love him!"
9442
9443"Then I won't let it come to that... I shall tell!" cried Sonya,
9444bursting into tears.
9445
9446"What do you mean? For God's sake... If you tell, you are my enemy!"
9447declared Natasha. "You want me to be miserable, you want us to be
9448separated...."
9449
9450When she saw Natasha's fright, Sonya shed tears of shame and pity
9451for her friend.
9452
9453"But what has happened between you?" she asked. "What has he said to
9454you? Why doesn't he come to the house?"
9455
9456Natasha did not answer her questions.
9457
9458"For God's sake, Sonya, don't tell anyone, don't torture me,"
9459Natasha entreated. "Remember no one ought to interfere in such
9460matters! I have confided in you...."
9461
9462"But why this secrecy? Why doesn't he come to the house?" asked
9463Sonya. "Why doesn't he openly ask for your hand? You know Prince
9464Andrew gave you complete freedom--if it is really so; but I don't
9465believe it! Natasha, have you considered what these secret reasons can
9466be?"
9467
9468Natasha looked at Sonya with astonishment. Evidently this question
9469presented itself to her mind for the first time and she did not know
9470how to answer it.
9471
9472"I don't know what the reasons are. But there must be reasons!"
9473
9474Sonya sighed and shook her head incredulously.
9475
9476"If there were reasons..." she began.
9477
9478But Natasha, guessing her doubts, interrupted her in alarm.
9479
9480"Sonya, one can't doubt him! One can't, one can't! Don't you
9481understand?" she cried.
9482
9483"Does he love you?"
9484
9485"Does he love me?" Natasha repeated with a smile of pity at her
9486friend's lack of comprehension. "Why, you have read his letter and you
9487have seen him."
9488
9489"But if he is dishonorable?"
9490
9491"He! dishonorable? If you only knew!" exclaimed Natasha.
9492
9493"If he is an honorable man he should either declare his intentions
9494or cease seeing you; and if you won't do this, I will. I will write to
9495him, and I will tell Papa!" said Sonya resolutely.
9496
9497"But I can't live without him!" cried Natasha.
9498
9499"Natasha, I don't understand you. And what are you saying! Think
9500of your father and of Nicholas."
9501
9502"I don't want anyone, I don't love anyone but him. How dare you
9503say he is dishonorable? Don't you know that I love him?" screamed
9504Natasha. "Go away, Sonya! I don't want to quarrel with you, but go,
9505for God's sake go! You see how I am suffering!" Natasha cried angrily,
9506in a voice of despair and repressed irritation. Sonya burst into
9507sobs and ran from the room.
9508
9509Natasha went to the table and without a moment's reflection wrote
9510that answer to Princess Mary which she had been unable to write all
9511the morning. In this letter she said briefly that all their
9512misunderstandings were at an end; that availing herself of the
9513magnanimity of Prince Andrew who when he went abroad had given her her
9514freedom, she begged Princess Mary to forget everything and forgive her
9515if she had been to blame toward her, but that she could not be his wife.
9516At that moment this all seemed quite easy, simple, and clear to Natasha.
9517
9518
9519On Friday the Rostovs were to return to the country, but on
9520Wednesday the count went with the prospective purchaser to his
9521estate near Moscow.
9522
9523On the day the count left, Sonya and Natasha were invited to a big
9524dinner party at the Karagins', and Marya Dmitrievna took them there.
9525At that party Natasha again met Anatole, and Sonya noticed that she
9526spoke to him, trying not to be overheard, and that all through
9527dinner she was more agitated than ever. When they got home Natasha was
9528the first to begin the explanation Sonya expected.
9529
9530"There, Sonya, you were talking all sorts of nonsense about him,"
9531Natasha began in a mild voice such as children use when they wish to
9532be praised. "We have had an explanation today."
9533
9534"Well, what happened? What did he say? Natasha, how glad I am you're
9535not angry with me! Tell me everything--the whole truth. What did he
9536say?"
9537
9538Natasha became thoughtful.
9539
9540"Oh, Sonya, if you knew him as I do! He said... He asked me what I
9541had promised Bolkonski. He was glad I was free to refuse him."
9542
9543Sonya sighed sorrowfully.
9544
9545"But you haven't refused Bolkonski?" said she.
9546
9547"Perhaps I have. Perhaps all is over between me and Bolkonski. Why
9548do you think so badly of me?"
9549
9550"I don't think anything, only I don't understand this..."
9551
9552"Wait a bit, Sonya, you'll understand everything. You'll see what
9553a man he is! Now don't think badly of me or of him. I don't think
9554badly of anyone: I love and pity everybody. But what am I to do?"
9555
9556Sonya did not succumb to the tender tone Natasha used toward her.
9557The more emotional and ingratiating the expression of Natasha's face
9558became, the more serious and stern grew Sonya's.
9559
9560"Natasha," said she, "you asked me not to speak to you, and I
9561haven't spoken, but now you yourself have begun. I don't trust him,
9562Natasha. Why this secrecy?"
9563
9564"Again, again!" interrupted Natasha.
9565
9566"Natasha, I am afraid for you!"
9567
9568"Afraid of what?"
9569
9570"I am afraid you're going to your ruin," said Sonya resolutely,
9571and was herself horrified at what she had said.
9572
9573Anger again showed in Natasha's face.
9574
9575"And I'll go to my ruin, I will, as soon as possible! It's not
9576your business! It won't be you, but I, who'll suffer. Leave me
9577alone, leave me alone! I hate you!"
9578
9579"Natasha!" moaned Sonya, aghast.
9580
9581"I hate you, I hate you! You're my enemy forever!" And Natasha ran
9582out of the room.
9583
9584Natasha did not speak to Sonya again and avoided her. With the
9585same expression of agitated surprise and guilt she went about the
9586house, taking up now one occupation, now another, and at once
9587abandoning them.
9588
9589Hard as it was for Sonya, she watched her friend and did not let her
9590out of her sight.
9591
9592The day before the count was to return, Sonya noticed that Natasha
9593sat by the drawingroom window all the morning as if expecting
9594something and that she made a sign to an officer who drove past,
9595whom Sonya took to be Anatole.
9596
9597Sonya began watching her friend still more attentively and noticed
9598that at dinner and all that evening Natasha was in a strange and
9599unnatural state. She answered questions at random, began sentences she
9600did not finish, and laughed at everything.
9601
9602After tea Sonya noticed a housemaid at Natasha's door timidly
9603waiting to let her pass. She let the girl go in, and then listening at
9604the door learned that another letter had been delivered.
9605
9606Then suddenly it became clear to Sonya that Natasha had some
9607dreadful plan for that evening. Sonya knocked at her door. Natasha did
9608not let her in.
9609
9610"She will run away with him!" thought Sonya. "She is capable of
9611anything. There was something particularly pathetic and resolute in
9612her face today. She cried as she said good-by to Uncle," Sonya
9613remembered. "Yes, that's it, she means to elope with him, but what
9614am I to do?" thought she, recalling all the signs that clearly
9615indicated that Natasha had some terrible intention. "The count is
9616away. What am I to do? Write to Kuragin demanding an explanation?
9617But what is there to oblige him to reply? Write to Pierre, as Prince
9618Andrew asked me to in case of some misfortune?... But perhaps she
9619really has already refused Bolkonski--she sent a letter to Princess
9620Mary yesterday. And Uncle is away...." To tell Marya Dmitrievna who
9621had such faith in Natasha seemed to Sonya terrible. "Well, anyway,"
9622thought Sonya as she stood in the dark passage, "now or never I must
9623prove that I remember the family's goodness to me and that I love
9624Nicholas. Yes! If I don't sleep for three nights I'll not leave this
9625passage and will hold her back by force and will and not let the
9626family be disgraced," thought she.
9627
9628
9629
9630
9631
9632CHAPTER XVI
9633
9634
9635Anatole had lately moved to Dolokhov's. The plan for Natalie
9636Rostova's abduction had been arranged and the preparations made by
9637Dolokhov a few days before, and on the day that Sonya, after listening
9638at Natasha's door, resolved to safeguard her, it was to have been
9639put into execution. Natasha had promised to come out to Kuragin at the
9640back porch at ten that evening. Kuragin was to put her into a troyka
9641he would have ready and to drive her forty miles to the village of
9642Kamenka, where an unfrocked priest was in readiness to perform a
9643marriage ceremony over them. At Kamenka a relay of horses was to
9644wait which would take them to the Warsaw highroad, and from there they
9645would hasten abroad with post horses.
9646
9647Anatole had a passport, an order for post horses, ten thousand
9648rubles he had taken from his sister and another ten thousand
9649borrowed with Dolokhov's help.
9650
9651Two witnesses for the mock marriage--Khvostikov, a retired petty
9652official whom Dolokhov made use of in his gambling transactions, and
9653Makarin, a retired hussar, a kindly, weak fellow who had an
9654unbounded affection for Kuragin--were sitting at tea in Dolokhov's
9655front room.
9656
9657In his large study, the walls of which were hung to the ceiling with
9658Persian rugs, bearskins, and weapons, sat Dolokhov in a traveling
9659cloak and high boots, at an open desk on which lay abacus and some
9660bundles of paper money. Anatole, with uniform unbuttoned, walked to
9661and fro from the room where the witnesses were sitting, through the
9662study to the room behind, where his French valet and others were
9663packing the last of his things. Dolokhov was counting the money and
9664noting something down.
9665
9666"Well," he said, "Khvostikov must have two thousand."
9667
9668"Give it to him, then," said Anatole.
9669
9670"Makarka" (their name for Makarin) "will go through fire and water
9671for you for nothing. So here are our accounts all settled," said
9672Dolokhov, showing him the memorandum. "Is that right?"
9673
9674"Yes, of course," returned Anatole, evidently not listening to
9675Dolokhov and looking straight before him with a smile that did not
9676leave his face.
9677
9678Dolokhov banged down the or of his and turned to Anatole with an
9679ironic smile:
9680
9681"Do you know? You'd really better drop it all. There's still time!"
9682
9683"Fool," retorted Anatole. "Don't talk nonsense! If you only
9684knew... it's the devil knows what!"
9685
9686"No, really, give it up!" said Dolokhov. "I am speaking seriously.
9687It's no joke, this plot you've hatched."
9688
9689"What, teasing again? Go to the devil! Eh?" said Anatole, making a
9690grimace. "Really it's no time for your stupid jokes," and he left
9691the room.
9692
9693Dolokhov smiled contemptuously and condescendingly when Anatole
9694had gone out.
9695
9696"You wait a bit," he called after him. "I'm not joking, I'm
9697talking sense. Come here, come here!"
9698
9699Anatole returned and looked at Dolokhov, trying to give him his
9700attention and evidently submitting to him involuntarily.
9701
9702"Now listen to me. I'm telling you this for the last time. Why
9703should I joke about it? Did I hinder you? Who arranged everything
9704for you? Who found the priest and got the passport? Who raised the
9705money? I did it all."
9706
9707"Well, thank you for it. Do you think I am not grateful?" And
9708Anatole sighed and embraced Dolokhov.
9709
9710"I helped you, but all the same I must tell you the truth; it is a
9711dangerous business, and if you think about it--a stupid business.
9712Well, you'll carry her off--all right! Will they let it stop at
9713that? It will come out that you're already married. Why, they'll
9714have you in the criminal court...."
9715
9716"Oh, nonsense, nonsense!" Anatole ejaculated and again made a
9717grimace. "Didn't I explain to you? What?" And Anatole, with the
9718partiality dull-witted people have for any conclusion they have
9719reached by their own reasoning, repeated the argument he had already
9720put to Dolokhov a hundred times. "Didn't I explain to you that I
9721have come to this conclusion: if this marriage is invalid," he went
9722on, crooking one finger, "then I have nothing to answer for; but if it
9723is valid, no matter! Abroad no one will know anything about it.
9724Isn't that so? And don't talk to me, don't, don't."
9725
9726"Seriously, you'd better drop it! You'll only get yourself into a
9727mess!"
9728
9729"Go to the devil!" cried Anatole and, clutching his hair, left the
9730room, but returned at once and dropped into an armchair in front of
9731Dolokhov with his feet turned under him. "It's the very devil! What?
9732Feel how it beats!" He took Dolokhov's hand and put it on his heart.
9733"What a foot, my dear fellow! What a glance! A goddess!" he added in
9734French. "What?"
9735
9736Dolokhov with a cold smile and a gleam in his handsome insolent eyes
9737looked at him--evidently wishing to get some more amusement out of
9738him.
9739
9740"Well and when the money's gone, what then?"
9741
9742"What then? Eh?" repeated Anatole, sincerely perplexed by a
9743thought of the future. "What then?... Then, I don't know.... But why
9744talk nonsense!" He glanced at his watch. "It's time!"
9745
9746Anatole went into the back room.
9747
9748"Now then! Nearly ready? You're dawdling!" he shouted to the
9749servants.
9750
9751Dolokhov put away the money, called a footman whom he ordered to
9752bring something for them to eat and drink before the journey, and went
9753into the room where Khvostikov and Makarin were sitting.
9754
9755Anatole lay on the sofa in the study leaning on his elbow and
9756smiling pensively, while his handsome lips muttered tenderly to
9757himself.
9758
9759"Come and eat something. Have a drink!" Dolokhov shouted to him from
9760the other room.
9761
9762"I don't want to," answered Anatole continuing to smile.
9763
9764"Come! Balaga is here."
9765
9766Anatole rose and went into the dining room. Balaga was a famous
9767troyka driver who had known Dolokhov and Anatole some six years and
9768had given them good service with his troykas. More than once when
9769Anatole's regiment was stationed at Tver he had taken him from Tver in
9770the evening, brought him to Moscow by daybreak, and driven him back
9771again the next night. More than once he had enabled Dolokhov to escape
9772when pursued. More than once he had driven them through the town
9773with gypsies and "ladykins" as he called the cocottes. More than
9774once in their service he had run over pedestrians and upset vehicles
9775in the streets of Moscow and had always been protected from the
9776consequences by "my gentlemen" as he called them. He had ruined more
9777than one horse in their service. More than once they had beaten him,
9778and more than once they had made him drunk on champagne and Madeira,
9779which he loved; and he knew more than one thing about each of them
9780which would long ago have sent an ordinary man to Siberia. They
9781often called Balaga into their orgies and made him drink and dance
9782at the gypsies', and more than one thousand rubles of their money
9783had passed through his hands. In their service he risked his skin
9784and his life twenty times a year, and in their service had lost more
9785horses than the money he had from them would buy. But he liked them;
9786liked that mad driving at twelve miles an hour, liked upsetting a
9787driver or running down a pedestrian, and flying at full gallop through
9788the Moscow streets. He liked to hear those wild, tipsy shouts behind
9789him: "Get on! Get on!" when it was impossible to go any faster. He
9790liked giving a painful lash on the neck to some peasant who, more dead
9791than alive, was already hurrying out of his way. "Real gentlemen!"
9792he considered them.
9793
9794Anatole and Dolokhov liked Balaga too for his masterly driving and
9795because he liked the things they liked. With others Balaga
9796bargained, charging twenty-five rubles for a two hours' drive, and
9797rarely drove himself, generally letting his young men do so. But
9798with "his gentlemen" he always drove himself and never demanded
9799anything for his work. Only a couple of times a year--when he knew
9800from their valets that they had money in hand--he would turn up of a
9801morning quite sober and with a deep bow would ask them to help him.
9802The gentlemen always made him sit down.
9803
9804"Do help me out, Theodore Ivanych, sir," or "your excellency," he
9805would say. "I am quite out of horses. Let me have what you can to go
9806to the fair."
9807
9808And Anatole and Dolokhov, when they had money, would give him a
9809thousand or a couple of thousand rubles.
9810
9811Balaga was a fair-haired, short, and snub-nosed peasant of about
9812twenty-seven; red-faced, with a particularly red thick neck,
9813glittering little eyes, and a small beard. He wore a fine,
9814dark-blue, silk-lined cloth coat over a sheepskin.
9815
9816On entering the room now he crossed himself, turning toward the
9817front corner of the room, and went up to Dolokhov, holding out a
9818small, black hand.
9819
9820"Theodore Ivanych!" he said, bowing.
9821
9822"How d'you do, friend? Well, here he is!"
9823
9824"Good day, your excellency!" he said, again holding out his hand
9825to Anatole who had just come in.
9826
9827"I say, Balaga," said Anatole, putting his hands on the man's
9828shoulders, "do you care for me or not? Eh? Now, do me a service....
9829What horses have you come with? Eh?"
9830
9831"As your messenger ordered, your special beasts," replied Balaga.
9832
9833"Well, listen, Balaga! Drive all three to death but get me there
9834in three hours. Eh?"
9835
9836"When they are dead, what shall I drive?" said Balaga with a wink.
9837
9838"Mind, I'll smash your face in! Don't make jokes!" cried Anatole,
9839suddenly rolling his eyes.
9840
9841"Why joke?" said the driver, laughing. "As if I'd grudge my
9842gentlemen anything! As fast as ever the horses can gallop, so fast
9843we'll go!"
9844
9845"Ah!" said Anatole. "Well, sit down."
9846
9847"Yes, sit down!" said Dolokhov.
9848
9849"I'll stand, Theodore Ivanych."
9850
9851"Sit down; nonsense! Have a drink!" said Anatole, and filled a large
9852glass of Madeira for him.
9853
9854The driver's eyes sparkled at the sight of the wine. After
9855refusing it for manners' sake, he drank it and wiped his mouth with
9856a red silk handkerchief he took out of his cap.
9857
9858"And when are we to start, your excellency?"
9859
9860"Well..." Anatole looked at his watch. "We'll start at once. Mind,
9861Balaga! You'll get there in time? Eh?"
9862
9863"That depends on our luck in starting, else why shouldn't we be
9864there in time?" replied Balaga. "Didn't we get you to Tver in seven
9865hours? I think you remember that, your excellency?"
9866
9867"Do you know, one Christmas I drove from Tver," said Anatole,
9868smilingly at the recollection and turning to Makarin who gazed
9869rapturously at him with wide-open eyes. "Will you believe it, Makarka,
9870it took one's breath away, the rate we flew. We came across a train of
9871loaded sleighs and drove right over two of them. Eh?"
9872
9873"Those were horses!" Balaga continued the tale. "That time I'd
9874harnessed two young side horses with the bay in the shafts," he went
9875on, turning to Dolokhov. "Will you believe it, Theodore Ivanych, those
9876animals flew forty miles? I couldn't hold them in, my hands grew
9877numb in the sharp frost so that I threw down the reins--'Catch hold
9878yourself, your excellency!' says I, and I just tumbled on the bottom
9879of the sleigh and sprawled there. It wasn't a case of urging them
9880on, there was no holding them in till we reached the place. The devils
9881took us there in three hours! Only the near one died of it."
9882
9883
9884
9885
9886
9887CHAPTER XVII
9888
9889
9890Anatole went out of the room and returned a few minutes later
9891wearing a fur coat girt with a silver belt, and a sable cap jauntily
9892set on one side and very becoming to his handsome face. Having
9893looked in a mirror, and standing before Dolokhov in the same pose he
9894had assumed before it, he lifted a glass of wine.
9895
9896"Well, good-by, Theodore. Thank you for everything and farewell!"
9897said Anatole. "Well, comrades and friends..." he considered for a
9898moment "...of my youth, farewell!" he said, turning to Makarin and the
9899others.
9900
9901Though they were all going with him, Anatole evidently wished to
9902make something touching and solemn out of this address to his
9903comrades. He spoke slowly in a loud voice and throwing out his chest
9904slightly swayed one leg.
9905
9906"All take glasses; you too, Balaga. Well, comrades and friends of my
9907youth, we've had our fling and lived and reveled. Eh? And now, when
9908shall we meet again? I am going abroad. We have had a good time--now
9909farewell, lads! To our health! Hurrah!..." he cried, and emptying
9910his glass flung it on the floor.
9911
9912"To your health!" said Balaga who also emptied his glass, and
9913wiped his mouth with his handkerchief.
9914
9915Makarin embraced Anatole with tears in his eyes.
9916
9917"Ah, Prince, how sorry I am to part from you!
9918
9919"Let's go. Let's go!" cried Anatole.
9920
9921Balaga was about to leave the room.
9922
9923"No, stop!" said Anatole. "Shut the door; we have first to sit down.
9924That's the way."
9925
9926They shut the door and all sat down.
9927
9928"Now, quick march, lads!" said Anatole, rising.
9929
9930Joseph, his valet, handed him his sabretache and saber, and they all
9931went out into the vestibule.
9932
9933"And where's the fur cloak?" asked Dolokhov. "Hey, Ignatka! Go to
9934Matrena Matrevna and ask her for the sable cloak. I have heard what
9935elopements are like," continued Dolokhov with a wink. "Why, she'll
9936rush out more dead than alive just in the things she is wearing; if
9937you delay at all there'll be tears and 'Papa' and 'Mamma,' and she's
9938frozen in a minute and must go back--but you wrap the fur cloak
9939round her first thing and carry her to the sleigh."
9940
9941The valet brought a woman's fox-lined cloak.
9942
9943"Fool, I told you the sable one! Hey, Matrena, the sable!" he
9944shouted so that his voice rang far through the rooms.
9945
9946A handsome, slim, and pale-faced gypsy girl with glittering black
9947eyes and curly blue-black hair, wearing a red shawl, ran out with a
9948sable mantle on her arm.
9949
9950"Here, I don't grudge it--take it!" she said, evidently afraid of
9951her master and yet regretful of her cloak.
9952
9953Dolokhov, without answering, took the cloak, threw it over
9954Matrena, and wrapped her up in it.
9955
9956"That's the way," said Dolokhov, "and then so!" and he turned the
9957collar up round her head, leaving only a little of the face uncovered.
9958"And then so, do you see?" and he pushed Anatole's head forward to
9959meet the gap left by the collar, through which Matrena's brilliant
9960smile was seen.
9961
9962"Well, good-by, Matrena," said Anatole, kissing her. "Ah, my
9963revels here are over. Remember me to Steshka. There, good-by! Good-by,
9964Matrena, wish me luck!"
9965
9966"Well, Prince, may God give you great luck!" said Matrena in her
9967gypsy accent.
9968
9969Two troykas were standing before the porch and two young drivers
9970were holding the horses. Balaga took his seat in the front one and
9971holding his elbows high arranged the reins deliberately. Anatole and
9972Dolokhov got in with him. Makarin, Khvostikov, and a valet seated
9973themselves in the other sleigh.
9974
9975"Well, are you ready?" asked Balaga.
9976
9977"Go!" he cried, twisting the reins round his hands, and the troyka
9978tore down the Nikitski Boulevard.
9979
9980"Tproo! Get out of the way! Hi!... Tproo!..." The shouting of Balaga
9981and of the sturdy young fellow seated on the box was all that could be
9982heard. On the Arbat Square the troyka caught against a carriage;
9983something cracked, shouts were heard, and the troyka flew along the
9984Arbat Street.
9985
9986After taking a turn along the Podnovinski Boulevard, Balaga began to
9987rein in, and turning back drew up at the crossing of the old
9988Konyusheny Street.
9989
9990The young fellow on the box jumped down to hold the horses and
9991Anatole and Dolokhov went along the pavement. When they reached the
9992gate Dolokhov whistled. The whistle was answered, and a maidservant
9993ran out.
9994
9995"Come into the courtyard or you'll be seen; she'll come out
9996directly," said she.
9997
9998Dolokhov stayed by the gate. Anatole followed the maid into the
9999courtyard, turned the corner, and ran up into the porch.
10000
10001He was met by Gabriel, Marya Dmitrievna's gigantic footman.
10002
10003"Come to the mistress, please," said the footman in his deep bass,
10004intercepting any retreat.
10005
10006"To what Mistress? Who are you?" asked Anatole in a breathless
10007whisper.
10008
10009"Kindly step in, my orders are to bring you in."
10010
10011"Kuragin! Come back!" shouted Dolokhov. "Betrayed! Back!"
10012
10013Dolokhov, after Anatole entered, had remained at the wicket gate and
10014was struggling with the yard porter who was trying to lock it. With
10015a last desperate effort Dolokhov pushed the porter aside, and when
10016Anatole ran back seized him by the arm, pulled him through the wicket,
10017and ran back with him to the troyka.
10018
10019
10020
10021
10022
10023CHAPTER XVIII
10024
10025
10026Marya Dmitrievna, having found Sonya weeping in the corridor, made
10027her confess everything, and intercepting the note to Natasha she
10028read it and went into Natasha's room with it in her hand.
10029
10030"You shameless good-for-nothing!" said she. "I won't hear a word."
10031
10032Pushing back Natasha who looked at her with astonished but
10033tearless eyes, she locked her in; and having given orders to the
10034yard porter to admit the persons who would be coming that evening, but
10035not to let them out again, and having told the footman to bring them
10036up to her, she seated herself in the drawing room to await the
10037abductors.
10038
10039When Gabriel came to inform her that the men who had come had run
10040away again, she rose frowning, and clasping her hands behind her paced
10041through the rooms a long time considering what she should do. Toward
10042midnight she went to Natasha's room fingering the key in her pocket.
10043Sonya was sitting sobbing in the corridor. "Marya Dmitrievna, for
10044God's sake let me in to her!" she pleaded, but Marya Dmitrievna
10045unlocked the door and went in without giving her an answer....
10046"Disgusting, abominable... In my house... horrid girl, hussy! I'm only
10047sorry for her father!" thought she, trying to restrain her wrath.
10048"Hard as it may be, I'll tell them all to hold their tongues and
10049will hide it from the count." She entered the room with resolute
10050steps. Natasha lying on the sofa, her head hidden in her hands, and
10051she did not stir. She was in just the same position in which Marya
10052Dmitrievna had left her.
10053
10054"A nice girl! Very nice!" said Marya Dmitrievna. "Arranging meetings
10055with lovers in my house! It's no use pretending: you listen when I
10056speak to you!" And Marya Dmitrievna touched her arm. "Listen when when
10057I speak! You've disgraced yourself like the lowest of hussies. I'd
10058treat you differently, but I'm sorry for your father, so I will
10059conceal it."
10060
10061Natasha did not change her position, but her whole body heaved
10062with noiseless, convulsive sobs which choked her. Marya Dmitrievna
10063glanced round at Sonya and seated herself on the sofa beside Natasha.
10064
10065"It's lucky for him that he escaped me; but I'll find him!" she said
10066in her rough voice. "Do you hear what I am saying or not?" she added.
10067
10068She put her large hand under Natasha's face and turned it toward
10069her. Both Marya Dmitrievna and Sonya were amazed when they saw how
10070Natasha looked. Her eyes were dry and glistening, her lips compressed,
10071her cheeks sunken.
10072
10073"Let me be!... What is it to me?... I shall die!" she muttered,
10074wrenching herself from Marya Dmitrievna's hands with a vicious
10075effort and sinking down again into her former position.
10076
10077"Natalie!" said Marya Dmitrievna. "I wish for your good. Lie
10078still, stay like that then, I won't touch you. But listen. I won't
10079tell you how guilty you are. You know that yourself. But when your
10080father comes back tomorrow what am I to tell him? Eh?"
10081
10082Again Natasha's body shook with sobs.
10083
10084"Suppose he finds out, and your brother, and your betrothed?"
10085
10086"I have no betrothed: I have refused him!" cried Natasha.
10087
10088"That's all the same," continued Dmitrievna. "If they hear of
10089this, will they let it pass? He, your father, I know him... if he
10090challenges him to a duel will that be all right? Eh?"
10091
10092"Oh, let me be! Why have you interfered at all? Why? Why? Who
10093asked you to?" shouted Natasha, raising herself on the sofa and
10094looking malignantly at Marya Dmitrievna.
10095
10096"But what did you want?" cried Marya Dmitrievna, growing angry
10097again. "Were you kept under lock and key? Who hindered his coming to
10098the house? Why carry you off as if you were some gypsy singing
10099girl?... Well, if he had carried you off... do you think they wouldn't
10100have found him? Your father, or brother, or your betrothed? And he's a
10101scoundrel, a wretch--that's a fact!"
10102
10103"He is better than any of you!" exclaimed Natasha getting up. "If
10104you hadn't interfered... Oh, my God! What is it all? What is it?
10105Sonya, why?... Go away!"
10106
10107And she burst into sobs with the despairing vehemence with which
10108people bewail disasters they feel they have themselves occasioned.
10109Marya Dmitrievna was to speak again but Natasha cried out:
10110
10111"Go away! Go away! You all hate and despise me!" and she threw
10112herself back on the sofa.
10113
10114Marya Dmitrievna went on admonishing her for some time, enjoining on
10115her that it must all be kept from her father and assuring her that
10116nobody would know anything about it if only Natasha herself would
10117undertake to forget it all and not let anyone see that something had
10118happened. Natasha did not reply, nor did she sob any longer, but she
10119grew cold and had a shivering fit. Marya Dmitrievna put a pillow under
10120her head, covered her with two quilts, and herself brought her some
10121lime-flower water, but Natasha did not respond to her.
10122
10123"Well, let her sleep," said Marya Dmitrievna as she went of the room
10124supposing Natasha to be asleep.
10125
10126But Natasha was not asleep; with pale face and fixed wide-open
10127eyes she looked straight before her. All that night she did not
10128sleep or weep and did not speak to Sonya who got up and went to her
10129several times.
10130
10131Next day Count Rostov returned from his estate near Moscow in time
10132for lunch as he had promised. He was in very good spirits; the
10133affair with the purchaser was going on satisfactorily, and there was
10134nothing to keep him any longer in Moscow, away from the countess
10135whom he missed. Marya Dmitrievna met him and told him that Natasha had
10136been very unwell the day before and that they had sent for the doctor,
10137but that she was better now. Natasha had not left her room that
10138morning. With compressed and parched lips and dry fixed eyes, she
10139sat at the window, uneasily watching the people who drove past and
10140hurriedly glancing round at anyone who entered the room. She was
10141evidently expecting news of him and that he would come or would
10142write to her.
10143
10144When the count came to see her she turned anxiously round at the
10145sound of a man's footstep, and then her face resumed its cold and
10146malevolent expression. She did not even get up to greet him. "What
10147is the matter with you, my angel? Are you ill?" asked the count.
10148
10149After a moment's silence Natasha answered: "Yes, ill."
10150
10151In reply to the count's anxious inquiries as to why she was so
10152dejected and whether anything had happened to her betrothed, she
10153assured him that nothing had happened and asked him not to worry.
10154Marya Dmitrievna confirmed Natasha's assurances that nothing had
10155happened. From the pretense of illness, from his daughter's
10156distress, and by the embarrassed faces of Sonya and Marya
10157Dmitrievna, the count saw clearly that something had gone wrong during
10158his absence, but it was so terrible for him to think that anything
10159disgraceful had happened to his beloved daughter, and he so prized his
10160own cheerful tranquillity, that he avoided inquiries and tried to
10161assure himself that nothing particularly had happened; and he was only
10162dissatisfied that her indisposition delayed their return to the
10163country.
10164
10165
10166
10167
10168
10169CHAPTER XIX
10170
10171
10172From the day his wife arrived in Moscow Pierre had been intending to
10173go away somewhere, so as not to be near her. Soon after the Rostovs
10174came to Moscow the effect Natasha had on him made him hasten to
10175carry out his intention. He went to Tver to see Joseph Alexeevich's
10176widow, who had long since promised to hand over to him some papers
10177of her deceased husband's.
10178
10179When he returned to Moscow Pierre was handed a letter from Marya
10180Dmitrievna asking him to come and see her on a matter of great
10181importance relating to Andrew Bolkonski and his betrothed. Pierre
10182had been avoiding Natasha because it seemed to him that his feeling
10183for her was stronger than a married man's should be for his friend's
10184fiancee. Yet some fate constantly threw them together.
10185
10186"What can have happened? And what can they want with me?" thought he
10187as he dressed to go to Marya Dmitrievna's. "If only Prince Andrew
10188would hurry up and come and marry her!" thought he on his way to the
10189house.
10190
10191On the Tverskoy Boulevard a familiar voice called to him.
10192
10193"Pierre! Been back long?" someone shouted. Pierre raised his head.
10194In a sleigh drawn by two gray trotting-horses that were bespattering
10195the dashboard with snow, Anatole and his constant companion Makarin
10196dashed past. Anatole was sitting upright in the classic pose of
10197military dandies, the lower part of his face hidden by his beaver
10198collar and his head slightly bent. His face was fresh and rosy, his
10199white-plumed hat, tilted to one side, disclosed his curled and pomaded
10200hair besprinkled with powdery snow.
10201
10202"Yes, indeed, that's a true sage," thought Pierre. "He sees
10203nothing beyond the pleasure of the moment, nothing troubles him and so
10204he is always cheerful, satisfied, and serene. What wouldn't I give
10205to be like him!" he thought enviously.
10206
10207In Marya Dmitrievna's anteroom the footman who helped him off with
10208his fur coat said that the mistress asked him to come to her bedroom.
10209
10210When he opened the ballroom door Pierre saw Natasha sitting at the
10211window, with a thin, pale, and spiteful face. She glanced round at
10212him, frowned, and left the room with an expression of cold dignity.
10213
10214"What has happened?" asked Pierre, entering Marya Dmitrievna's room.
10215
10216"Fine doings!" answered Dmitrievna. "For fifty-eight years have I
10217lived in this world and never known anything so disgraceful!"
10218
10219And having put him on his honor not to repeat anything she told him,
10220Marya Dmitrievna informed him that Natasha had refused Prince Andrew
10221without her parents' knowledge and that the cause of this was
10222Anatole Kuragin into whose society Pierre's wife had thrown her and
10223with whom Natasha had tried to elope during her father's absence, in
10224order to be married secretly.
10225
10226Pierre raised his shoulders and listened open-mouthed to what was
10227told him, scarcely able to believe his own ears. That Prince
10228Andrew's deeply loved affianced wife--the same Natasha Rostova who
10229used to be so charming--should give up Bolkonski for that fool Anatole
10230who was already secretly married (as Pierre knew), and should be so in
10231love with him as to agree to run away with him, was something Pierre
10232could not conceive and could not imagine.
10233
10234He could not reconcile the charming impression he had of Natasha,
10235whom he had known from a child, with this new conception of her
10236baseness, folly, and cruelty. He thought of his wife. "They are all
10237alike!" he said to himself, reflecting that he was not the only man
10238unfortunate enough to be tied to a bad woman. But still he pitied
10239Prince Andrew to the point of tears and sympathized with his wounded
10240pride, and the more he pitied his friend the more did he think with
10241contempt and even with disgust of that Natasha who had just passed him
10242in the ballroom with such a look of cold dignity. He did not know that
10243Natasha's soul was overflowing with despair, shame, and humiliation,
10244and that it was not her fault that her face happened to assume an
10245expression of calm dignity and severity.
10246
10247"But how get married?" said Pierre, in answer to Marya Dmitrievna.
10248"He could not marry--he is married!"
10249
10250"Things get worse from hour to hour!" ejaculated Marya Dmitrievna.
10251"A nice youth! What a scoundrel! And she's expecting him--expecting
10252him since yesterday. She must be told! Then at least she won't go on
10253expecting him."
10254
10255After hearing the details of Anatole's marriage from Pierre, and
10256giving vent to her anger against Anatole in words of abuse, Marya
10257Dmitrievna told Pierre why she had sent for him. She was afraid that
10258the count or Bolkonski, who might arrive at any moment, if they knew
10259of this affair (which she hoped to hide from them) might challenge
10260Anatole to a duel, and she therefore asked Pierre to tell his
10261brother-in-law in her name to leave Moscow and not dare to let her set
10262eyes on him again. Pierre--only now realizing the danger to the old
10263count, Nicholas, and Prince Andrew--promised to do as she wished.
10264Having briefly and exactly explained her wishes to him, she let him go
10265to the drawing room.
10266
10267"Mind, the count knows nothing. Behave as if you know nothing
10268either," she said. "And I will go and tell her it is no use
10269expecting him! And stay to dinner if you care to!" she called after
10270Pierre.
10271
10272Pierre met the old count, who seemed nervous and upset. That morning
10273Natasha had told him that she had rejected Bolkonski.
10274
10275"Troubles, troubles, my dear fellow!" he said to Pierre. "What
10276troubles one has with these girls without their mother! I do so regret
10277having come here.... I will be frank with you. Have you heard she
10278has broken off her engagement without consulting anybody? It's true
10279this engagement never was much to my liking. Of course he is an
10280excellent man, but still, with his father's disapproval they
10281wouldn't have been happy, and Natasha won't lack suitors. Still, it
10282has been going on so long, and to take such a step without father's or
10283mother's consent! And now she's ill, and God knows what! It's hard,
10284Count, hard to manage daughters in their mother's absence...."
10285
10286Pierre saw that the count was much upset and tried to change the
10287subject, but the count returned to his troubles.
10288
10289Sonya entered the room with an agitated face.
10290
10291"Natasha is not quite well; she's in her room and would like to
10292see you. Marya Dmitrievna is with her and she too asks you to come."
10293
10294"Yes, you are a great friend of Bolkonski's, no doubt she wants to
10295send him a message," said the count. "Oh dear! Oh dear! How happy it
10296all was!"
10297
10298And clutching the spare gray locks on his temples the count left the
10299room.
10300
10301When Marya Dmitrievna told Natasha that Anatole was married, Natasha
10302did not wish to believe it and insisted on having it confirmed by
10303Pierre himself. Sonya told Pierre this as she led him along the
10304corridor to Natasha's room.
10305
10306Natasha, pale and stern, was sitting beside Marya Dmitrievna, and
10307her eyes, glittering feverishly, met Pierre with a questioning look
10308the moment he entered. She did not smile or nod, but only gazed
10309fixedly at him, and her look asked only one thing: was he a friend, or
10310like the others an enemy in regard to Anatole? As for Pierre, he
10311evidently did not exist for her.
10312
10313"He knows all about it," said Marya Dmitrievna pointing to Pierre
10314and addressing Natasha. "Let him tell you whether I have told the
10315truth."
10316
10317Natasha looked from one to the other as a hunted and wounded
10318animal looks at the approaching dogs and sportsmen.
10319
10320"Natalya Ilynichna," Pierre began, dropping his eyes with a
10321feeling of pity for her and loathing for the thing he had to do,
10322"whether it is true or not should make no difference to you,
10323because..."
10324
10325"Then it is not true that he's married!"
10326
10327"Yes, it is true."
10328
10329"Has he been married long?" she asked. "On your honor?..."
10330
10331Pierre gave his word of honor.
10332
10333"Is he still here?" she asked, quickly.
10334
10335"Yes, I have just seen him."
10336
10337She was evidently unable to speak and made a sign with her hands
10338that they should leave her alone.
10339
10340
10341
10342
10343
10344CHAPTER XX
10345
10346
10347Pierre did not stay for dinner, but left the room and went away at
10348once. He drove through the town seeking Anatole Kuragin, at the
10349thought of whom now the blood rushed to his heart and he felt a
10350difficulty in breathing. He was not at the ice hills, nor at the
10351gypsies', nor at Komoneno's. Pierre drove to the Club. In the Club all
10352was going on as usual. The members who were assembling for dinner were
10353sitting about in groups; they greeted Pierre and spoke of the town
10354news. The footman having greeted him, knowing his habits and his
10355acquaintances, told him there was a place left for him in the small
10356dining room and that Prince Michael Zakharych was in the library,
10357but Paul Timofeevich had not yet arrived. One of Pierre's
10358acquaintances, while they were talking about the weather, asked if
10359he had heard of Kuragin's abduction of Rostova which was talked of
10360in the town, and was it true? Pierre laughed and said it was
10361nonsense for he had just come from the Rostovs'. He asked everyone
10362about Anatole. One man told him he had not come yet, and another
10363that he was coming to dinner. Pierre felt it strange to see this calm,
10364indifferent crowd of people unaware of what was going on in his
10365soul. He paced through the ballroom, waited till everyone had come,
10366and as Anatole had not turned up did not stay for dinner but drove
10367home.
10368
10369Anatole, for whom Pierre was looking, dined that day with
10370Dolokhov, consulting him as to how to remedy this unfortunate
10371affair. It seemed to him essential to see Natasha. In the evening he
10372drove to his sister's to discuss with her how to arrange a meeting.
10373When Pierre returned home after vainly hunting all over Moscow, his
10374valet informed him that Prince Anatole was with the countess. The
10375countess' drawing room was full of guests.
10376
10377Pierre without greeting his wife whom he had not seen since his
10378return--at that moment she was more repulsive to him than ever-
10379entered the drawing room and seeing Anatole went up to him.
10380
10381"Ah, Pierre," said the countess going up to her husband. "You
10382don't know what a plight our Anatole..."
10383
10384She stopped, seeing in the forward thrust of her husband's head,
10385in his glowing eyes and his resolute gait, the terrible indications of
10386that rage and strength which she knew and had herself experienced
10387after his duel with Dolokhov.
10388
10389"Where you are, there is vice and evil!" said Pierre to his wife.
10390"Anatole, come with me! I must speak to you," he added in French.
10391
10392Anatole glanced round at his sister and rose submissively, ready
10393to follow Pierre. Pierre, taking him by the arm, pulled him toward
10394himself and was leading him from the room.
10395
10396"If you allow yourself in my drawing room..." whispered Helene,
10397but Pierre did not reply and went out of the room.
10398
10399Anatole followed him with his usual jaunty step but his face
10400betrayed anxiety.
10401
10402Having entered his study Pierre closed the door and addressed
10403Anatole without looking at him.
10404
10405"You promised Countess Rostova to marry her and were about to
10406elope with her, is that so?"
10407
10408"Mon cher," answered Anatole (their whole conversation was in
10409French), "I don't consider myself bound to answer questions put to
10410me in that tone."
10411
10412Pierre's face, already pale, became distorted by fury. He seized
10413Anatole by the collar of his uniform with his big hand and shook him
10414from side to side till Anatole's face showed a sufficient degree of
10415terror.
10416
10417"When I tell you that I must talk to you!..." repeated Pierre.
10418
10419"Come now, this is stupid. What?" said Anatole, fingering a button
10420of his collar that had been wrenched loose with a bit of the cloth.
10421
10422"You're a scoundrel and a blackguard, and I don't know what deprives
10423me from the pleasure of smashing your head with this!" said Pierre,
10424expressing himself so artificially because he was talking French.
10425
10426He took a heavy paperweight and lifted it threateningly, but at once
10427put it back in its place.
10428
10429"Did you promise to marry her?"
10430
10431"I... I didn't think of it. I never promised, because..."
10432
10433Pierre interrupted him.
10434
10435"Have you any letters of hers? Any letters?" he said, moving
10436toward Anatole.
10437
10438Anatole glanced at him and immediately thrust his hand into his
10439pocket and drew out his pocketbook.
10440
10441Pierre took the letter Anatole handed him and, pushing aside a table
10442that stood in his way, threw himself on the sofa.
10443
10444"I shan't be violent, don't be afraid!" said Pierre in answer to a
10445frightened gesture of Anatole's. "First, the letters," said he, as
10446if repeating a lesson to himself. "Secondly," he continued after a
10447short pause, again rising and again pacing the room, "tomorrow you
10448must get out of Moscow."
10449
10450"But how can I?..."
10451
10452"Thirdly," Pierre continued without listening to him, "you must
10453never breathe a word of what has passed between you and Countess
10454Rostova. I know I can't prevent your doing so, but if you have a spark
10455of conscience..." Pierre paced the room several times in silence.
10456
10457Anatole sat at a table frowning and biting his lips.
10458
10459"After all, you must understand that besides your pleasure there
10460is such a thing as other people's happiness and peace, and that you
10461are ruining a whole life for the sake of amusing yourself! Amuse
10462yourself with women like my wife--with them you are within your
10463rights, for they know what you want of them. They are armed against
10464you by the same experience of debauchery; but to promise a maid to
10465marry her... to deceive, to kidnap.... Don't you understand that it is
10466as mean as beating an old man or a child?..."
10467
10468Pierre paused and looked at Anatole no longer with an angry but with
10469a questioning look.
10470
10471"I don't know about that, eh?" said Anatole, growing more
10472confident as Pierre mastered his wrath. "I don't know that and don't
10473want to," he said, not looking at Pierre and with a slight tremor of
10474his lower jaw, "but you have used such words to me--'mean' and so
10475on--which as a man of honor I can't allow anyone to use."
10476
10477Pierre glanced at him with amazement, unable to understand what he
10478wanted.
10479
10480"Though it was tete-a-tete," Anatole continued, "still I can't..."
10481
10482"Is it satisfaction you want?" said Pierre ironically.
10483
10484"You could at least take back your words. What? If you want me to do
10485as you wish, eh?"
10486
10487"I take them back, I take them back!" said Pierre, "and I ask you to
10488forgive me." Pierre involuntarily glanced at the loose button. "And if
10489you require money for your journey..."
10490
10491Anatole smiled. The expression of that base and cringing smile,
10492which Pierre knew so well in his wife, revolted him.
10493
10494"Oh, vile and heartless brood!" he exclaimed, and left the room.
10495
10496Next day Anatole left for Petersburg.
10497
10498
10499
10500
10501
10502CHAPTER XXI
10503
10504
10505Pierre drove to Marya Dmitrievna's to tell her of the fulfillment of
10506her wish that Kuragin should be banished from Moscow. The whole
10507house was in a state of alarm and commotion. Natasha was very ill,
10508having, as Marya Dmitrievna told him in secret, poisoned herself the
10509night after she had been told that Anatole was married, with some
10510arsenic she had stealthily procured. After swallowing a little she had
10511been so frightened that she woke Sonya and told her what she had done.
10512The necessary antidotes had been administered in time and she was
10513now out of danger, though still so weak that it was out of the
10514question to move her to the country, and so the countess had been sent
10515for. Pierre saw the distracted count, and Sonya, who had a
10516tear-stained face, but he could not see Natasha.
10517
10518Pierre dined at the club that day and heard on all sides gossip
10519about the attempted abduction of Rostova. He resolutely denied these
10520rumors, assuring everyone that nothing had happened except that his
10521brother-in-law had proposed to her and been refused. It seemed to
10522Pierre that it was his duty to conceal the whole affair and
10523re-establish Natasha's reputation.
10524
10525He was awaiting Prince Andrew's return with dread and went every day
10526to the old prince's for news of him.
10527
10528Old Prince Bolkonski heard all the rumors current in the town from
10529Mademoiselle Bourienne and had read the note to Princess Mary in which
10530Natasha had broken off her engagement. He seemed in better spirits
10531than usual and awaited his son with great impatience.
10532
10533Some days after Anatole's departure Pierre received a note from
10534Prince Andrew, informing him of his arrival and asking him to come
10535to see him.
10536
10537As soon as he reached Moscow, Prince Andrew had received from his
10538father Natasha's note to Princess Mary breaking off her engagement
10539(Mademoiselle Bourienne had purloined it from Princess Mary and
10540given it to the old prince), and he heard from him the story of
10541Natasha's elopement, with additions.
10542
10543Prince Andrew had arrived in the evening and Pierre came to see
10544him next morning. Pierre expected to find Prince Andrew in almost
10545the same state as Natasha and was therefore surprised on entering
10546the drawing room to hear him in the study talking in a loud animated
10547voice about some intrigue going on in Petersburg. The old prince's
10548voice and another now and then interrupted him. Princess Mary came out
10549to meet Pierre. She sighed, looking toward the door of the room
10550where Prince Andrew was, evidently intending to express her sympathy
10551with his sorrow, but Pierre saw by her face that she was glad both
10552at what had happened and at the way her brother had taken the news
10553of Natasha's faithlessness.
10554
10555"He says he expected it," she remarked. "I know his pride will not
10556let him express his feelings, but still he has taken it better, far
10557better, than I expected. Evidently it had to be...."
10558
10559"But is it possible that all is really ended?" asked Pierre.
10560
10561Princess Mary looked at him with astonishment. She did not
10562understand how he could ask such a question. Pierre went into the
10563study. Prince Andrew, greatly changed and plainly in better health,
10564but with a fresh horizontal wrinkle between his brows, stood in
10565civilian dress facing his father and Prince Meshcherski, warmly
10566disputing and vigorously gesticulating. The conversation was about
10567Speranski--the news of whose sudden exile and alleged treachery had
10568just reached Moscow.
10569
10570"Now he is censured and accused by all who were enthusiastic about
10571him a month ago," Prince Andrew was saying, "and by those who were
10572unable to understand his aims. To judge a man who is in disfavor and
10573to throw on him all the blame of other men's mistakes is very easy,
10574but I maintain that if anything good has been accomplished in this
10575reign it was done by him, by him alone."
10576
10577He paused at the sight of Pierre. His face quivered and
10578immediately assumed a vindictive expression.
10579
10580"Posterity will do him justice," he concluded, and at once turned to
10581Pierre.
10582
10583"Well, how are you? Still getting stouter?" he said with
10584animation, but the new wrinkle on his forehead deepened. "Yes, I am
10585well," he said in answer to Pierre's question, and smiled.
10586
10587To Pierre that smile said plainly: "I am well, but my health is
10588now of no use to anyone."
10589
10590After a few words to Pierre about the awful roads from the Polish
10591frontier, about people he had met in Switzerland who knew Pierre,
10592and about M. Dessalles, whom he had brought from abroad to be his
10593son's tutor, Prince Andrew again joined warmly in the conversation
10594about Speranski which was still going on between the two old men.
10595
10596"If there were treason, or proofs of secret relations with Napoleon,
10597they would have been made public," he said with warmth and haste. "I
10598do not, and never did, like Speranski personally, but I like justice!"
10599
10600Pierre now recognized in his friend a need with which he was only
10601too familiar, to get excited and to have arguments about extraneous
10602matters in order to stifle thoughts that were too oppressive and too
10603intimate. When Prince Meshcherski had left, Prince Andrew took
10604Pierre's arm and asked him into the room that had been assigned him. A
10605bed had been made up there, and some open portmanteaus and trunks
10606stood about. Prince Andrew went to one and took out a small casket,
10607from which he drew a packet wrapped in paper. He did it all silently
10608and very quickly. He stood up and coughed. His face was gloomy and his
10609lips compressed.
10610
10611"Forgive me for troubling you..."
10612
10613Pierre saw that Prince Andrew was going to speak of Natasha, and his
10614broad face expressed pity and sympathy. This expression irritated
10615Prince Andrew, and in a determined, ringing, and unpleasant tone he
10616continued:
10617
10618"I have received a refusal from Countess Rostova and have heard
10619reports of your brother-in-law having sought her hand, or something of
10620that kind. Is that true?"
10621
10622"Both true and untrue," Pierre began; but Prince Andrew
10623interrupted him.
10624
10625"Here are her letters and her portrait," said he.
10626
10627He took the packet from the table and handed it to Pierre.
10628
10629"Give this to the countess... if you see her."
10630
10631"She is very ill," said Pierre.
10632
10633"Then she is here still?" said Prince Andrew. "And Prince
10634Kuragin?" he added quickly.
10635
10636"He left long ago. She has been at death's door."
10637
10638"I much regret her illness," said Prince Andrew; and he smiled
10639like his father, coldly, maliciously, and unpleasantly.
10640
10641"So Monsieur Kuragin has not honored Countess Rostova with his
10642hand?" said Prince Andrew, and he snorted several times.
10643
10644"He could not marry, for he was married already," said Pierre.
10645
10646Prince Andrew laughed disagreeably, again reminding one of his
10647father.
10648
10649"And where is your brother-in-law now, if I may ask?" he said.
10650
10651"He has gone to Peters... But I don't know," said Pierre.
10652
10653"Well, it doesn't matter," said Prince Andrew. "Tell Countess
10654Rostova that she was and is perfectly free and that I wish her all
10655that is good."
10656
10657Pierre took the packet. Prince Andrew, as if trying to remember
10658whether he had something more to say, or waiting to see if Pierre
10659would say anything, looked fixedly at him.
10660
10661"I say, do you remember our discussion in Petersburg?" asked Pierre,
10662"about..."
10663
10664"Yes," returned Prince Andrew hastily. "I said that a fallen woman
10665should be forgiven, but I didn't say I could forgive her. I can't."
10666
10667"But can this be compared...?" said Pierre.
10668
10669Prince Andrew interrupted him and cried sharply: "Yes, ask her
10670hand again, be magnanimous, and so on?... Yes, that would be very
10671noble, but I am unable to follow in that gentleman's footsteps. If you
10672wish to be my friend never speak to me of that... of all that! Well,
10673good-by. So you'll give her the packet?"
10674
10675Pierre left the room and went to the old prince and Princess Mary.
10676
10677The old man seemed livelier than usual. Princess Mary was the same
10678as always, but beneath her sympathy for her brother, Pierre noticed
10679her satisfaction that the engagement had been broken off. Looking at
10680them Pierre realized what contempt and animosity they all felt for the
10681Rostovs, and that it was impossible in their presence even to
10682mention the name of her who could give up Prince Andrew for anyone
10683else.
10684
10685At dinner the talk turned on the war, the approach of which was
10686becoming evident. Prince Andrew talked incessantly, arguing now with
10687his father, now with the Swiss tutor Dessalles, and showing an
10688unnatural animation, the cause of which Pierre so well understood.
10689
10690
10691
10692
10693
10694CHAPTER XXII
10695
10696
10697That same evening Pierre went to the Rostovs' to fulfill the
10698commission entrusted to him. Natasha was in bed, the count at the
10699Club, and Pierre, after giving the letters to Sonya, went to Marya
10700Dmitrievna who was interested to know how Prince Andrew had taken
10701the news. Ten minutes later Sonya came to Marya Dmitrievna.
10702
10703"Natasha insists on seeing Count Peter Kirilovich," said she.
10704
10705"But how? Are we to take him up to her? The room there has not
10706been tidied up."
10707
10708"No, she has dressed and gone into the drawing room," said Sonya.
10709
10710Marya Dmitrievna only shrugged her shoulders.
10711
10712"When will her mother come? She has worried me to death! Now mind,
10713don't tell her everything!" said she to Pierre. "One hasn't the
10714heart to scold her, she is so much to be pitied, so much to be
10715pitied."
10716
10717Natasha was standing in the middle of the drawing room, emaciated,
10718with a pale set face, but not at all shamefaced as Pierre expected
10719to find her. When he appeared at the door she grew flurried, evidently
10720undecided whether to go to meet him or to wait till he came up.
10721
10722Pierre hastened to her. He thought she would give him her hand as
10723usual; but she, stepping up to him, stopped, breathing heavily, her
10724arms hanging lifelessly just in the pose she used to stand in when she
10725went to the middle of the ballroom to sing, but with quite a different
10726expression of face.
10727
10728"Peter Kirilovich," she began rapidly, "Prince Bolkonski was your
10729friend--is your friend," she corrected herself. (It seemed to her that
10730everything that had once been must now be different.) "He told me once
10731to apply to you..."
10732
10733Pierre sniffed as he looked at her, but did not speak. Till then
10734he had reproached her in his heart and tried to despise her, but he
10735now felt so sorry for her that there was no room in his soul for
10736reproach.
10737
10738"He is here now: tell him... to for... forgive me!" She stopped
10739and breathed still more quickly, but did not shed tears.
10740
10741"Yes... I will tell him," answered Pierre; "but..."
10742
10743He did not know what to say.
10744
10745Natasha was evidently dismayed at the thought of what he might think
10746she had meant.
10747
10748"No, I know all is over," she said hurriedly. "No, that can never
10749be. I'm only tormented by the wrong I have done him. Tell him only
10750that I beg him to forgive, forgive, forgive me for everything...."
10751
10752She trembled all over and sat down on a chair.
10753
10754A sense of pity he had never before known overflowed Pierre's heart.
10755
10756"I will tell him, I will tell him everything once more," said
10757Pierre. "But... I should like to know one thing...."
10758
10759"Know what?" Natasha's eyes asked.
10760
10761"I should like to know, did you love..." Pierre did not know how
10762to refer to Anatole and flushed at the thought of him--"did you love
10763that bad man?"
10764
10765"Don't call him bad!" said Natasha. "But I don't know, don't know at
10766all...."
10767
10768She began to cry and a still greater sense of pity, tenderness,
10769and love welled up in Pierre. He felt the tears trickle under his
10770spectacles and hoped they would not be noticed.
10771
10772"We won't speak of it any more, my dear," said Pierre, and his
10773gentle, cordial tone suddenly seemed very strange to Natasha.
10774
10775"We won't speak of it, my dear--I'll tell him everything; but one
10776thing I beg of you, consider me your friend and if you want help,
10777advice, or simply to open your heart to someone--not now, but when
10778your mind is clearer think of me!" He took her hand and kissed it.
10779"I shall be happy if it's in my power..."
10780
10781Pierre grew confused.
10782
10783"Don't speak to me like that. I am not worth it!" exclaimed
10784Natasha and turned to leave the room, but Pierre held her hand.
10785
10786He knew he had something more to say to her. But when he said it
10787he was amazed at his own words.
10788
10789"Stop, stop! You have your whole life before you," said he to her.
10790
10791"Before me? No! All is over for me," she replied with shame and
10792self-abasement.
10793
10794 "All over?" he repeated. "If I were not myself, but the handsomest,
10795cleverest, and best man in the world, and were free, I would this
10796moment ask on my knees for your hand and your love!"
10797
10798For the first time for many days Natasha wept tears of gratitude and
10799tenderness, and glancing at Pierre she went out of the room.
10800
10801Pierre too when she had gone almost ran into the anteroom,
10802restraining tears of tenderness and joy that choked him, and without
10803finding the sleeves of his fur cloak threw it on and got into his
10804sleigh.
10805
10806"Where to now, your excellency?" asked the coachman.
10807
10808"Where to?" Pierre asked himself. "Where can I go now? Surely not to
10809the Club or to pay calls?" All men seemed so pitiful, so poor, in
10810comparison with this feeling of tenderness and love he experienced: in
10811comparison with that softened, grateful, last look she had given him
10812through her tears.
10813
10814"Home!" said Pierre, and despite twenty-two degrees of frost
10815Fahrenheit he threw open the bearskin cloak from his broad chest and
10816inhaled the air with joy.
10817
10818It was clear and frosty. Above the dirty, ill-lit streets, above the
10819black roofs, stretched the dark starry sky. Only looking up at the sky
10820did Pierre cease to feel how sordid and humiliating were all mundane
10821things compared with the heights to which his soul had just been
10822raised. At the entrance to the Arbat Square an immense expanse of dark
10823starry sky presented itself to his eyes. Almost in the center of it,
10824above the Prechistenka Boulevard, surrounded and sprinkled on all
10825sides by stars but distinguished from them all by its nearness to
10826the earth, its white light, and its long uplifted tail, shone the
10827enormous and brilliant comet of 1812--the comet which was said to
10828portend all kinds of woes and the end of the world. In Pierre,
10829however, that comet with its long luminous tail aroused no feeling
10830of fear. On the contrary he gazed joyfully, his eyes moist with tears,
10831at this bright comet which, having traveled in its orbit with
10832inconceivable velocity through immeasurable space, seemed suddenly-
10833like an arrow piercing the earth--to remain fixed in a chosen spot,
10834vigorously holding its tail erect, shining and displaying its white
10835light amid countless other scintillating stars. It seemed to Pierre
10836that this comet fully responded to what was passing in his own
10837softened and uplifted soul, now blossoming into a new life.
10838
10839
10840
10841
10842
10843BOOK NINE: 1812
10844
10845
10846
10847
10848
10849CHAPTER I
10850
10851
10852From the close of the year 1811 intensified arming and concentrating
10853of the forces of Western Europe began, and in 1812 these forces-
10854millions of men, reckoning those transporting and feeding the army-
10855moved from the west eastwards to the Russian frontier, toward which
10856since 1811 Russian forces had been similarly drawn. On the twelfth
10857of June, 1812, the forces of Western Europe crossed the Russian
10858frontier and war began, that is, an event took place opposed to
10859human reason and to human nature. Millions of men perpetrated
10860against one another such innumerable crimes, frauds, treacheries,
10861thefts, forgeries, issues of false money, burglaries, incendiarisms,
10862and murders as in whole centuries are not recorded in the annals of
10863all the law courts of the world, but which those who committed them
10864did not at the time regard as being crimes.
10865
10866What produced this extraordinary occurrence? What were its causes?
10867The historians tell us with naive assurance that its causes were the
10868wrongs inflicted on the Duke of Oldenburg, the nonobservance of the
10869Continental System, the ambition of Napoleon, the firmness of
10870Alexander, the mistakes of the diplomatists, and so on.
10871
10872Consequently, it would only have been necessary for Metternich,
10873Rumyantsev, or Talleyrand, between a levee and an evening party, to
10874have taken proper pains and written a more adroit note, or for
10875Napoleon to have written to Alexander: "My respected Brother, I
10876consent to restore the duchy to the Duke of Oldenburg"--and there
10877would have been no war.
10878
10879We can understand that the matter seemed like that to
10880contemporaries. It naturally seemed to Napoleon that the war was
10881caused by England's intrigues (as in fact he said on the island of St.
10882Helena). It naturally seemed to members of the English Parliament that
10883the cause of the war was Napoleon's ambition; to the Duke of
10884Oldenburg, that the cause of the war was the violence done to him;
10885to businessmen that the cause of the way was the Continental System
10886which was ruining Europe; to the generals and old soldiers that the
10887chief reason for the war was the necessity of giving them
10888employment; to the legitimists of that day that it was the need of
10889re-establishing les bons principes, and to the diplomatists of that
10890time that it all resulted from the fact that the alliance between
10891Russia and Austria in 1809 had not been sufficiently well concealed
10892from Napoleon, and from the awkward wording of Memorandum No. 178.
10893It is natural that these and a countless and infinite quantity of
10894other reasons, the number depending on the endless diversity of points
10895of view, presented themselves to the men of that day; but to us, to
10896posterity who view the thing that happened in all its magnitude and
10897perceive its plain and terrible meaning, these causes seem
10898insufficient. To us it is incomprehensible that millions of
10899Christian men killed and tortured each other either because Napoleon
10900was ambitious or Alexander was firm, or because England's policy was
10901astute or the Duke of Oldenburg wronged. We cannot grasp what
10902connection such circumstances have with the actual fact of slaughter
10903and violence: why because the Duke was wronged, thousands of men
10904from the other side of Europe killed and ruined the people of Smolensk
10905and Moscow and were killed by them.
10906
10907To us, their descendants, who are not historians and are not carried
10908away by the process of research and can therefore regard the event
10909with unclouded common sense, an incalculable number of causes
10910present themselves. The deeper we delve in search of these causes
10911the more of them we find; and each separate cause or whole series of
10912causes appears to us equally valid in itself and equally false by
10913its insignificance compared to the magnitude of the events, and by its
10914impotence--apart from the cooperation of all the other coincident
10915causes--to occasion the event. To us, the wish or objection of this or
10916that French corporal to serve a second term appears as much a cause as
10917Napoleon's refusal to withdraw his troops beyond the Vistula and to
10918restore the duchy of Oldenburg; for had he not wished to serve, and
10919had a second, a third, and a thousandth corporal and private also
10920refused, there would have been so many less men in Napoleon's army and
10921the war could not have occurred.
10922
10923Had Napoleon not taken offense at the demand that he should withdraw
10924beyond the Vistula, and not ordered his troops to advance, there would
10925have been no war; but had all his sergeants objected to serving a
10926second term then also there could have been no war. Nor could there
10927have been a war had there been no English intrigues and no Duke of
10928Oldenburg, and had Alexander not felt insulted, and had there not been
10929an autocratic government in Russia, or a Revolution in France and a
10930subsequent dictatorship and Empire, or all the things that produced
10931the French Revolution, and so on. Without each of these causes nothing
10932could have happened. So all these causes--myriads of causes--coincided
10933to bring it about. And so there was no one cause for that
10934occurrence, but it had to occur because it had to. Millions of men,
10935renouncing their human feelings and reason, had to go from west to
10936east to slay their fellows, just as some centuries previously hordes
10937of men had come from the east to the west, slaying their fellows.
10938
10939The actions of Napoleon and Alexander, on whose words the event
10940seemed to hang, were as little voluntary as the actions of any soldier
10941who was drawn into the campaign by lot or by conscription. This
10942could not be otherwise, for in order that the will of Napoleon and
10943Alexander (on whom the event seemed to depend) should be carried
10944out, the concurrence of innumerable circumstances was needed without
10945any one of which the event could not have taken place. It was
10946necessary that millions of men in whose hands lay the real power-
10947the soldiers who fired, or transported provisions and guns--should
10948consent to carry out the will of these weak individuals, and should
10949have been induced to do so by an infinite number of diverse and
10950complex causes.
10951
10952We are forced to fall back on fatalism as an explanation of
10953irrational events (that is to say, events the reasonableness of
10954which we do not understand). The more we try to explain such events in
10955history reasonably, the more unreasonable and incomprehensible do they
10956become to us.
10957
10958Each man lives for himself, using his freedom to attain his personal
10959aims, and feels with his whole being that he can now do or abstain
10960from doing this or that action; but as soon as he has done it, that
10961action performed at a certain moment in time becomes irrevocable and
10962belongs to history, in which it has not a free but a predestined
10963significance.
10964
10965There are two sides to the life of every man, his individual life,
10966which is the more free the more abstract its interests, and his
10967elemental hive life in which he inevitably obeys laws laid down for
10968him.
10969
10970Man lives consciously for himself, but is an unconscious
10971instrument in the attainment of the historic, universal, aims of
10972humanity. A deed done is irrevocable, and its result coinciding in
10973time with the actions of millions of other men assumes an historic
10974significance. The higher a man stands on the social ladder, the more
10975people he is connected with and the more power he has over others, the
10976more evident is the predestination and inevitability of his every
10977action.
10978
10979"The king's heart is in the hands of the Lord."
10980
10981A king is history's slave.
10982
10983History, that is, the unconscious, general, hive life of mankind,
10984uses every moment of the life of kings as a tool for its own purposes.
10985
10986Though Napoleon at that time, in 1812, was more convinced than
10987ever that it depended on him, verser (ou ne pas verser) le sang de ses
10988peuples*--as Alexander expressed it in the last letter he wrote him-
10989he had never been so much in the grip of inevitable laws, which
10990compelled him, while thinking that he was acting on his own
10991volition, to perform for the hive life--that is to say, for history-
10992whatever had to be performed.
10993
10994
10995*"To shed (or not to shed) the blood of his peoples."
10996
10997
10998The people of the west moved eastwards to slay their fellow men, and
10999by the law of coincidence thousands of minute causes fitted in and
11000co-ordinated to produce that movement and war: reproaches for the
11001nonobservance of the Continental System, the Duke of Oldenburg's
11002wrongs, the movement of troops into Prussia--undertaken (as it
11003seemed to Napoleon) only for the purpose of securing an armed peace,
11004the French Emperor's love and habit of war coinciding with his
11005people's inclinations, allurement by the grandeur of the preparations,
11006and the expenditure on those preparations and the need of obtaining
11007advantages to compensate for that expenditure, the intoxicating honors
11008he received in Dresden, the diplomatic negotiations which, in the
11009opinion of contemporaries, were carried on with a sincere desire to
11010attain peace, but which only wounded the self-love of both sides,
11011and millions of other causes that adapted themselves to
11012the event that was happening or coincided with it.
11013
11014When an apple has ripened and falls, why does it fall? Because of
11015its attraction to the earth, because its stalk withers, because it
11016is dried by the sun, because it grows heavier, because the wind shakes
11017it, or because the boy standing below wants to eat it?
11018
11019Nothing is the cause. All this is only the coincidence of conditions
11020in which all vital organic and elemental events occur. And the
11021botanist who finds that the apple falls because the cellular tissue
11022decays and so forth is equally right with the child who stands under
11023the tree and says the apple fell because he wanted to eat it and
11024prayed for it. Equally right or wrong is he who says that Napoleon
11025went to Moscow because he wanted to, and perished because Alexander
11026desired his destruction, and he who says that an undermined hill
11027weighing a million tons fell because the last navvy struck it for
11028the last time with his mattock. In historic events the so-called great
11029men are labels giving names to events, and like labels they have but
11030the smallest connection with the event itself.
11031
11032Every act of theirs, which appears to them an act of their own will,
11033is in an historical sense involuntary and is related to the whole
11034course of history and predestined from eternity.
11035
11036
11037
11038
11039
11040CHAPTER II
11041
11042
11043On the twenty-ninth of May Napoleon left Dresden, where he had spent
11044three weeks surrounded by a court that included princes, dukes, kings,
11045and even an emperor. Before leaving, Napoleon showed favor to the
11046emperor, kings, and princes who had deserved it, reprimanded the kings
11047and princes with whom he was dissatisfied, presented pearls and
11048diamonds of his own--that is, which he had taken from other kings-
11049to the Empress of Austria, and having, as his historian tells us,
11050tenderly embraced the Empress Marie Louise--who regarded him as her
11051husband, though he had left another wife in Paris--left her grieved by
11052the parting which she seemed hardly able to bear. Though the
11053diplomatists still firmly believed in the possibility of peace and
11054worked zealously to that end, and though the Emperor Napoleon
11055himself wrote a letter to Alexander, calling him Monsieur mon frere,
11056and sincerely assured him that he did not want war and would always
11057love and honor him--yet he set off to join his army, and at every
11058station gave fresh orders to accelerate the movement of his troops
11059from west to east. He went in a traveling coach with six horses,
11060surrounded by pages, aides-de-camp, and an escort, along the road to
11061Posen, Thorn, Danzig, and Konigsberg. At each of these towns thousands
11062of people met him with excitement and enthusiasm.
11063
11064The army was moving from west to east, and relays of six horses
11065carried him in the same direction. On the tenth of June,* coming up
11066with the army, he spent the night in apartments prepared for him on
11067the estate of a Polish count in the Vilkavisski forest.
11068
11069
11070*Old style.
11071
11072
11073Next day, overtaking the army, he went in a carriage to the
11074Niemen, and, changing into a Polish uniform, he drove to the riverbank
11075in order to select a place for the crossing.
11076
11077Seeing, on the other side, some Cossacks (les Cosaques) and the
11078wide-spreading steppes in the midst of which lay the holy city of
11079Moscow (Moscou, la ville sainte), the capital of a realm such as the
11080Scythia into which Alexander the Great had marched--Napoleon
11081unexpectedly, and contrary alike to strategic and diplomatic
11082considerations, ordered an advance, and the next day his army began to
11083cross the Niemen.
11084
11085Early in the morning of the twelfth of June he came out of his tent,
11086which was pitched that day on the steep left bank of the Niemen, and
11087looked through a spyglass at the streams of his troops pouring out
11088of the Vilkavisski forest and flowing over the three bridges thrown
11089across the river. The troops, knowing of the Emperor's presence,
11090were on the lookout for him, and when they caught sight of a figure in
11091an overcoat and a cocked hat standing apart from his suite in front of
11092his tent on the hill, they threw up their caps and shouted: "Vive
11093l'Empereur!" and one after another poured in a ceaseless stream out of
11094the vast forest that had concealed them and, separating, flowed on and
11095on by the three bridges to the other side.
11096
11097"Now we'll go into action. Oh, when he takes it in hand himself,
11098things get hot... by heaven!... There he is!... Vive l'Empereur! So
11099these are the steppes of Asia! It's a nasty country all the same. Au
11100revoir, Beauche; I'll keep the best palace in Moscow for you! Au
11101revoir. Good luck!... Did you see the Emperor? Vive l'Empereur!...
11102preur!--If they make me Governor of India, Gerard, I'll make you
11103Minister of Kashmir--that's settled. Vive l'Empereur! Hurrah!
11104hurrah! hurrah! The Cossacks--those rascals--see how they run! Vive
11105l'Empereur! There he is, do you see him? I've seen him twice, as I see
11106you now. The little corporal... I saw him give the cross to one of the
11107veterans.... Vive l'Empereur!" came the voices of men, old and
11108young, of most diverse characters and social positions. On the faces
11109of all was one common expression of joy at the commencement of the
11110long-expected campaign and of rapture and devotion to the man in the
11111gray coat who was standing on the hill.
11112
11113On the thirteenth of June a rather small, thoroughbred Arab horse
11114was brought to Napoleon. He mounted it and rode at a gallop to one
11115of the bridges over the Niemen, deafened continually by incessant
11116and rapturous acclamations which he evidently endured only because
11117it was impossible to forbid the soldiers to express their love of
11118him by such shouting, but the shouting which accompanied him
11119everywhere disturbed him and distracted him from the military cares
11120that had occupied him from the time he joined the army. He rode across
11121one of the swaying pontoon bridges to the farther side, turned sharply
11122to the left, and galloped in the direction of Kovno, preceded by
11123enraptured, mounted chasseurs of the Guard who, breathless with
11124delight, galloped ahead to clear a path for him through the troops. On
11125reaching the broad river Viliya, he stopped near a regiment of
11126Polish Uhlans stationed by the river.
11127
11128"Vivat!" shouted the Poles, ecstatically, breaking their ranks and
11129pressing against one another to see him.
11130
11131Napoleon looked up and down the river, dismounted, and sat down on a
11132log that lay on the bank. At a mute sign from him, a telescope was
11133handed him which he rested on the back of a happy page who had run
11134up to him, and he gazed at the opposite bank. Then he became
11135absorbed in a map laid out on the logs. Without lifting his head he
11136said something, and two of his aides-de-camp galloped off to the
11137Polish Uhlans.
11138
11139"What? What did he say?" was heard in the ranks of the Polish Uhlans
11140when one of the aides-de-camp rode up to them.
11141
11142The order was to find a ford and to cross the river. The colonel
11143of the Polish Uhlans, a handsome old man, flushed and, fumbling in his
11144speech from excitement, asked the aide-de-camp whether he would be
11145permitted to swim the river with his Uhlans instead of seeking a ford.
11146In evident fear of refusal, like a boy asking for permission to get on
11147a horse, he begged to be allowed to swim across the river before the
11148Emperor's eyes. The aide-de-camp replied that probably the Emperor
11149would not be displeased at this excess of zeal.
11150
11151As soon as the aide-de-camp had said this, the old mustached
11152officer, with happy face and sparkling eyes, raised his saber, shouted
11153"Vivat!" and, commanding the Uhlans to follow him, spurred his horse
11154and galloped into the river. He gave an angry thrust to his horse,
11155which had grown restive under him, and plunged into the water, heading
11156for the deepest part where the current was swift. Hundreds of Uhlans
11157galloped in after him. It was cold and uncanny in the rapid current in
11158the middle of the stream, and the Uhlans caught hold of one another as
11159they fell off their horses. Some of the horses were drowned and some
11160of the men; the others tried to swim on, some in the saddle and some
11161clinging to their horses' manes. They tried to make their way
11162forward to the opposite bank and, though there was a ford one third of
11163a mile away, were proud that they were swimming and drowning in this
11164river under the eyes of the man who sat on the log and was not even
11165looking at what they were doing. When the aide-de-camp, having
11166returned and choosing an opportune moment, ventured to draw the
11167Emperor's attention to the devotion of the Poles to his person, the
11168little man in the gray overcoat got up and, having summoned
11169Berthier, began pacing up and down the bank with him, giving him
11170instructions and occasionally glancing disapprovingly at the
11171drowning Uhlans who distracted his attention.
11172
11173For him it was no new conviction that his presence in any part of
11174the world, from Africa to the steppes of Muscovy alike, was enough
11175to dumfound people and impel them to insane self-oblivion. He called
11176for his horse and rode to his quarters.
11177
11178Some forty Uhlans were drowned in the river, though boats were
11179sent to their assistance. The majority struggled back to the bank from
11180which they had started. The colonel and some of his men got across and
11181with difficulty clambered out on the further bank. And as soon as they
11182had got out, in their soaked and streaming clothes, they shouted
11183"Vivat!" and looked ecstatically at the spot where Napoleon had been
11184but where he no longer was and at that moment considered themselves
11185happy.
11186
11187That evening, between issuing one order that the forged Russian
11188paper money prepared for use in Russia should be delivered as
11189quickly as possible and another that a Saxon should be shot, on whom a
11190letter containing information about the orders to the French army
11191had been found, Napoleon also gave instructions that the Polish
11192colonel who had needlessly plunged into the river should be enrolled
11193in the Legion d'honneur of which Napoleon was himself the head.
11194
11195Quos vult perdere dementat.*
11196
11197
11198*Those whom (God) wishes to destroy he drives mad.
11199
11200
11201
11202
11203
11204CHAPTER III
11205
11206
11207The Emperor of Russia had, meanwhile, been in Vilna for more than
11208a month, reviewing troops and holding maneuvers. Nothing was ready for
11209the war that everyone expected and to prepare for which the Emperor
11210had come from Petersburg. There was no general plan of action. The
11211vacillation between the various plans that were proposed had even
11212increased after the Emperor had been at headquarters for a month. Each
11213of the three armies had its own commander in chief, but there was no
11214supreme commander of all the forces, and the Emperor did not assume
11215that responsibility himself.
11216
11217The longer the Emperor remained in Vilna the less did everybody-
11218tired of waiting--prepare for the war. All the efforts of those who
11219surrounded the sovereign seemed directed merely to making him spend
11220his time pleasantly and forget that war was impending.
11221
11222In June, after many balls and fetes given by the Polish magnates, by
11223the courtiers, and by the Emperor himself, it occurred to one of the
11224Polish aides-de-camp in attendance that a dinner and ball should be
11225given for the Emperor by his aides-de-camp. This idea was eagerly
11226received. The Emperor gave his consent. The aides-de-camp collected
11227money by subscription. The lady who was thought to be most pleasing to
11228the Emperor was invited to act as hostess. Count Bennigsen, being a
11229landowner in the Vilna province, offered his country house for the
11230fete, and the thirteenth of June was fixed for a ball, dinner,
11231regatta, and fireworks at Zakret, Count Bennigsen's country seat.
11232
11233
11234The very day that Napoleon issued the order to cross the Niemen, and
11235his vanguard, driving off the Cossacks, crossed the Russian
11236frontier, Alexander spent the evening at the entertainment given by
11237his aides-de-camp at Bennigsen's country house.
11238
11239It was a gay and brilliant fete. Connoisseurs of such matters
11240declared that rarely had so many beautiful women been assembled in one
11241place. Countess Bezukhova was present among other Russian ladies who
11242had followed the sovereign from Petersburg to Vilna and eclipsed the
11243refined Polish ladies by her massive, so called Russian type of
11244beauty. The Emperor noticed her and honored her with a dance.
11245
11246Boris Drubetskoy, having left his wife in Moscow and being for the
11247present en garcon (as he phrased it), was also there and, though not
11248an aide-de-camp, had subscribed a large sum toward the expenses. Boris
11249was now a rich man who had risen to high honors and no longer sought
11250patronage but stood on an equal footing with the highest of those of
11251his own age. He was meeting Helene in Vilna after not having seen
11252her for a long time and did not recall the past, but as Helene was
11253enjoying the favors of a very important personage and Boris had only
11254recently married, they met as good friends of long standing.
11255
11256At midnight dancing was still going on. Helene, not having a
11257suitable partner, herself offered to dance the mazurka with Boris.
11258They were the third couple. Boris, coolly looking at Helene's dazzling
11259bare shoulders which emerged from a dark, gold-embroidered, gauze
11260gown, talked to her of old acquaintances and at the same time, unaware
11261of it himself and unnoticed by others, never for an instant ceased
11262to observe the Emperor who was in the same room. The Emperor was not
11263dancing, he stood in the doorway, stopping now one pair and now
11264another with gracious words which he alone knew how to utter.
11265
11266As the mazurka began, Boris saw that Adjutant General Balashev,
11267one of those in closest attendance on the Emperor, went up to him
11268and contrary to court etiquette stood near him while he was talking to
11269a Polish lady. Having finished speaking to her, the Emperor looked
11270inquiringly at Balashev and, evidently understanding that he only
11271acted thus because there were important reasons for so doing, nodded
11272slightly to the lady and turned to him. Hardly had Balashev begun to
11273speak before a look of amazement appeared on the Emperor's face. He
11274took Balashev by the arm and crossed the room with him,
11275unconsciously clearing a path seven yards wide as the people on both
11276sides made way for him. Boris noticed Arakcheev's excited face when
11277the sovereign went out with Balashev. Arakcheev looked at the
11278Emperor from under his brow and, sniffing with his red nose, stepped
11279forward from the crowd as if expecting the Emperor to address him.
11280(Boris understood that Arakcheev envied Balashev and was displeased
11281that evidently important news had reached the Emperor otherwise than
11282through himself.)
11283
11284But the Emperor and Balashev passed out into the illuminated
11285garden without noticing Arakcheev who, holding his sword and
11286glancing wrathfully around, followed some twenty paces behind them.
11287
11288All the time Boris was going through the figures of the mazurka,
11289he was worried by the question of what news Balashev had brought and
11290how he could find it out before others. In the figure in which he
11291had to choose two ladies, he whispered to Helene that he meant to
11292choose Countess Potocka who, he thought, had gone out onto the
11293veranda, and glided over the parquet to the door opening into the
11294garden, where, seeing Balashev and the Emperor returning to the
11295veranda, he stood still. They were moving toward the door. Boris,
11296fluttering as if he had not had time to withdraw, respectfully pressed
11297close to the doorpost with bowed head.
11298
11299The Emperor, with the agitation of one who has been personally
11300affronted, was finishing with these words:
11301
11302"To enter Russia without declaring war! I will not make peace as
11303long as a single armed enemy remains in my country!" It seemed to
11304Boris that it gave the Emperor pleasure to utter these words. He was
11305satisfied with the form in which he had expressed his thoughts, but
11306displeased that Boris had overheard it.
11307
11308"Let no one know of it!" the Emperor added with a frown.
11309
11310Boris understood that this was meant for him and, closing his
11311eyes, slightly bowed his head. The Emperor re-entered the ballroom and
11312remained there about another half-hour.
11313
11314Boris was thus the first to learn the news that the French army
11315had crossed the Niemen and, thanks to this, was able to show certain
11316important personages that much that was concealed from others was
11317usually known to him, and by this means he rose higher in their
11318estimation.
11319
11320
11321The unexpected news of the French having crossed the Niemen was
11322particularly startling after a month of unfulfilled expectations,
11323and at a ball. On first receiving the news, under the influence of
11324indignation and resentment the Emperor had found a phrase that pleased
11325him, fully expressed his feelings, and has since become famous. On
11326returning home at two o'clock that night he sent for his secretary,
11327Shishkov, and told him to write an order to the troops and a
11328rescript to Field Marshal Prince Saltykov, in which he insisted on the
11329words being inserted that he would not make peace so long as a
11330single armed Frenchman remained on Russian soil.
11331
11332Next day the following letter was sent to Napoleon:
11333
11334
11335Monsieur mon frere,
11336
11337Yesterday I learned that, despite the loyalty which I have kept my
11338engagements with Your Majesty, your troops have crossed the Russian
11339frontier, and I have this moment received from Petersburg a note, in
11340which Count Lauriston informs me, as a reason for this aggression,
11341that Your Majesty has considered yourself to be in a state of war with
11342me from the time Prince Kuragin asked for his passports. The reasons
11343on which the Duc de Bassano based his refusal to deliver them to him
11344would never have led me to suppose that that could serve as a
11345pretext for aggression. In fact, the ambassador, as he himself has
11346declared, was never authorized to make that demand, and as soon as I
11347was informed of it I let him know how much I disapproved of it and
11348ordered him to remain at his post. If Your Majesty does not intend
11349to shed the blood of our peoples for such a misunderstanding, and
11350consents to withdraw your troops from Russian territory, I will regard
11351what has passed as not having occurred and an understanding between us
11352will be possible. In the contrary case, Your Majesty, I shall see
11353myself forced to repel an attack that nothing on my part has provoked.
11354It still depends on Your Majesty to preserve humanity from the
11355calamity of another war. I am, etc.,
11356 (signed) Alexander
11357
11358
11359
11360
11361
11362CHAPTER IV
11363
11364
11365At two in the morning of the fourteenth of June, the Emperor, having
11366sent for Balashev and read him his letter to Napoleon, ordered him
11367to take it and hand it personally to the French Emperor. When
11368dispatching Balashev, the Emperor repeated to him the words that he
11369would not make peace so long as a single armed enemy remained on
11370Russian soil and told him to transmit those words to Napoleon.
11371Alexander did not insert them in his letter to Napoleon, because
11372with his characteristic tact he felt it would be injudicious to use
11373them at a moment when a last attempt at reconciliation was being made,
11374but he definitely instructed Balashev to repeat them personally to
11375Napoleon.
11376
11377Having set off in the small hours of the fourteenth, accompanied
11378by a bugler and two Cossacks, Balashev reached the French outposts
11379at the village of Rykonty, on the Russian side of the Niemen, by dawn.
11380There he was stopped by French cavalry sentinels.
11381
11382A French noncommissioned officer of hussars, in crimson uniform
11383and a shaggy cap, shouted to the approaching Balashev to halt.
11384Balashev did not do so at once, but continued to advance along the
11385road at a walking pace.
11386
11387The noncommissioned officer frowned and, muttering words of abuse,
11388advanced his horse's chest against Balashev, put his hand to his
11389saber, and shouted rudely at the Russian general, asking: was he
11390deaf that he did not do as he was told? Balashev mentioned who he was.
11391The noncommissioned officer began talking with his comrades about
11392regimental matters without looking at the Russian general.
11393
11394After living at the seat of the highest authority and power, after
11395conversing with the Emperor less than three hours before, and in
11396general being accustomed to the respect due to his rank in the
11397service, Balashev found it very strange here on Russian soil to
11398encounter this hostile, and still more this disrespectful, application
11399of brute force to himself.
11400
11401The sun was only just appearing from behind the clouds, the air
11402was fresh and dewy. A herd of cattle was being driven along the road
11403from the village, and over the fields the larks rose trilling, one
11404after another, like bubbles rising in water.
11405
11406Balashev looked around him, awaiting the arrival of an officer
11407from the village. The Russian Cossacks and bugler and the French
11408hussars looked silently at one another from time to time.
11409
11410A French colonel of hussars, who had evidently just left his bed,
11411came riding from the village on a handsome sleek gray horse,
11412accompanied by two hussars. The officer, the soldiers, and their
11413horses all looked smart and well kept.
11414
11415It was that first period of a campaign when troops are still in full
11416trim, almost like that of peacetime maneuvers, but with a shade of
11417martial swagger in their clothes, and a touch of the gaiety and spirit
11418of enterprise which always accompany the opening of a campaign.
11419
11420The French colonel with difficulty repressed a yawn, but was
11421polite and evidently understood Balashev's importance. He led him past
11422his soldiers and behind the outposts and told him that his wish to
11423be presented to the Emperor would most likely be satisfied
11424immediately, as the Emperor's quarters were, he believed, not far off.
11425
11426They rode through the village of Rykonty, past tethered French
11427hussar horses, past sentinels and men who saluted their colonel and
11428stared with curiosity at a Russian uniform, and came out at the
11429other end of the village. The colonel said that the commander of the
11430division was a mile and a quarter away and would receive Balashev
11431and conduct him to his destination.
11432
11433The sun had by now risen and shone gaily on the bright verdure.
11434
11435They had hardly ridden up a hill, past a tavern, before they saw a
11436group of horsemen coming toward them. In front of the group, on a
11437black horse with trappings that glittered in the sun, rode a tall
11438man with plumes in his hat and black hair curling down to his
11439shoulders. He wore a red mantle, and stretched his long legs forward
11440in French fashion. This man rode toward Balashev at a gallop, his
11441plumes flowing and his gems and gold lace glittering in the bright
11442June sunshine.
11443
11444Balashev was only two horses' length from the equestrian with the
11445bracelets, plunies, necklaces, and gold embroidery, who was
11446galloping toward him with a theatrically solemn countenance, when
11447Julner, the French colonel, whispered respectfully: "The King of
11448Naples!" It was, in fact, Murat, now called "King of Naples." Though
11449it was quite incomprehensible why he should be King of Naples, he
11450was called so, and was himself convinced that he was so, and therefore
11451assumed a more solemn and important air than formerly. He was so
11452sure that he really was the King of Naples that when, on the eve of
11453his departure from that city, while walking through the streets with
11454his wife, some Italians called out to him: "Viva il re!"* he turned to
11455his wife with a pensive smile and said: "Poor fellows, they don't know
11456that I am leaving them tomorrow!"
11457
11458
11459*"Long live the king."
11460
11461
11462But though he firmly believed himself to be King of Naples and
11463pitied the grief felt by the subjects he was abandoning, latterly,
11464after he had been ordered to return to military service--and
11465especially since his last interview with Napoleon in Danzig, when
11466his august brother-in-law had told him: "I made you King that you
11467should reign in my way, but not in yours!"--he had cheerfully taken up
11468his familiar business, and--like a well-fed but not overfat horse that
11469feels himself in harness and grows skittish between the shafts--he
11470dressed up in clothes as variegated and expensive as possible, and
11471gaily and contentedly galloped along the roads of Poland, without
11472himself knowing why or whither.
11473
11474On seeing the Russian general he threw back his head, with its
11475long hair curling to his shoulders, in a majestically royal manner,
11476and looked inquiringly at the French colonel. The colonel respectfully
11477informed His Majesty of Balashev's mission, whose name he could not
11478pronounce.
11479
11480"De Bal-macheve!" said the King (overcoming by his assurance the
11481difficulty that had presented itself to the colonel). "Charmed to make
11482your acquaintance, General!" he added, with a gesture of kingly
11483condescension.
11484
11485As soon as the King began to speak loud and fast his royal dignity
11486instantly forsook him, and without noticing it he passed into his
11487natural tone of good-natured familiarity. He laid his hand on the
11488withers of Balashev's horse and said:
11489
11490"Well, General, it all looks like war," as if regretting a
11491circumstance of which he was unable to judge.
11492
11493"Your Majesty," replied Balashev, "my master, the Emperor, does
11494not desire war and as Your Majesty sees..." said Balashev, using the
11495words Your Majesty at every opportunity, with the affectation
11496unavoidable in frequently addressing one to whom the title was still a
11497novelty.
11498
11499Murat's face beamed with stupid satisfaction as he listened to
11500"Monsieur de Bal-macheve." But royaute oblige!* and he felt it
11501incumbent on him, as a king and an ally, to confer on state affairs
11502with Alexander's envoy. He dismounted, took Balashev's arm, and moving
11503a few steps away from his suite, which waited respectfully, began to
11504pace up and down with him, trying to speak significantly. He
11505referred to the fact that the Emperor Napoleon had resented the demand
11506that he should withdraw his troops from Prussia, especially when
11507that demand became generally known and the dignity of France was
11508thereby offended.
11509
11510
11511*"Royalty has its obligations."
11512
11513
11514Balashev replied that there was "nothing offensive in the demand,
11515because..." but Murat interrupted him.
11516
11517"Then you don't consider the Emperor Alexander the aggressor?" he
11518asked unexpectedly, with a kindly and foolish smile.
11519
11520Balashev told him why he considered Napoleon to be the originator of
11521the war.
11522
11523"Oh, my dear general!" Murat again interrupted him, "with all my
11524heart I wish the Emperors may arrange the affair between them, and
11525that the war begun by no wish of mine may finish as quickly as
11526possible!" said he, in the tone of a servant who wants to remain
11527good friends with another despite a quarrel between their masters.
11528
11529And he went on to inquiries about the Grand Duke and the state of
11530his health, and to reminiscences of the gay and amusing times he had
11531spent with him in Naples. Then suddenly, as if remembering his royal
11532dignity, Murat solemnly drew himself up, assumed the pose in which
11533he had stood at his coronation, and, waving his right arm, said:
11534
11535"I won't detain you longer, General. I wish success to your
11536mission," and with his embroidered red mantle, his flowing feathers,
11537and his glittering ornaments, he rejoined his suite who were
11538respectfully awaiting him.
11539
11540Balashev rode on, supposing from Murat's words that he would very
11541soon be brought before Napoleon himself. But instead of that, at the
11542next village the sentinels of Davout's infantry corps detained him
11543as the pickets of the vanguard had done, and an adjutant of the
11544corps commander, who was fetched, conducted him into the village to
11545Marshal Davout.
11546
11547
11548
11549
11550
11551CHAPTER V
11552
11553
11554Davout was to Napoleon what Arakcheev was to Alexander--though not a
11555coward like Arakcheev, he was as precise, as cruel, and as unable to
11556express his devotion to his monarch except by cruelty.
11557
11558In the organism of states such men are necessary, as wolves are
11559necessary in the organism of nature, and they always exist, always
11560appear and hold their own, however incongruous their presence and
11561their proximity to the head of the government may be. This
11562inevitability alone can explain how the cruel Arakcheev, who tore
11563out a grenadier's mustache with his own hands, whose weak nerves
11564rendered him unable to face danger, and who was neither an educated
11565man nor a courtier, was able to maintain his powerful position with
11566Alexander, whose own character was chivalrous, noble, and gentle.
11567
11568Balashev found Davout seated on a barrel in the shed of a
11569peasant's hut, writing--he was auditing accounts. Better quarters
11570could have been found him, but Marshal Davout was one of those men who
11571purposely put themselves in most depressing conditions to have a
11572justification for being gloomy. For the same reason they are always
11573hard at work and in a hurry. "How can I think of the bright side of
11574life when, as you see, I am sitting on a barrel and working in a dirty
11575shed?" the expression of his face seemed to say. The chief pleasure
11576and necessity of such men, when they encounter anyone who shows
11577animation, is to flaunt their own dreary, persistent activity.
11578Davout allowed himself that pleasure when Balashev was brought in.
11579He became still more absorbed in his task when the Russian general
11580entered, and after glancing over his spectacles at Balashev's face,
11581which was animated by the beauty of the morning and by his talk with
11582Murat, he did not rise or even stir, but scowled still more and
11583sneered malevolently.
11584
11585When he noticed in Balashev's face the disagreeable impression
11586this reception produced, Davout raised his head and coldly asked
11587what he wanted.
11588
11589Thinking he could have been received in such a manner only because
11590Davout did not know that he was adjutant general to the Emperor
11591Alexander and even his envoy to Napoleon, Balashev hastened to
11592inform him of his rank and mission. Contrary to his expectation,
11593Davout, after hearing him, became still surlier and ruder.
11594
11595"Where is your dispatch?" he inquired. "Give it to me. I will send
11596it to the Emperor."
11597
11598Balashev replied that he had been ordered to hand it personally to
11599the Emperor.
11600
11601"Your Emperor's orders are obeyed in your army, but here," said
11602Davout, "you must do as you're told."
11603
11604And, as if to make the Russian general still more conscious of his
11605dependence on brute force, Davout sent an adjutant to call the officer
11606on duty.
11607
11608Balashev took out the packet containing the Emperor's letter and
11609laid it on the table (made of a door with its hinges still hanging
11610on it, laid across two barrels). Davout took the packet and read the
11611inscription.
11612
11613"You are perfectly at liberty to treat me with respect or not,"
11614protested Balashev, "but permit me to observe that I have the honor to
11615be adjutant general to His Majesty...."
11616
11617Davout glanced at him silently and plainly derived pleasure from the
11618signs of agitation and confusion which appeared on Balashev's face.
11619
11620"You will be treated as is fitting," said he and, putting the packet
11621in his pocket, left the shed.
11622
11623A minute later the marshal's adjutant, de Castres, came in and
11624conducted Balashev to the quarters assigned him.
11625
11626That day he dined with the marshal, at the same board on the
11627barrels.
11628
11629Next day Davout rode out early and, after asking Balashev to come to
11630him, peremptorily requested him to remain there, to move on with the
11631baggage train should orders come for it to move, and to talk to no one
11632except Monsieur de Castres.
11633
11634After four days of solitude, ennui, and consciousness of his
11635impotence and insignificance--particularly acute by contrast with
11636the sphere of power in which he had so lately moved--and after several
11637marches with the marshal's baggage and the French army, which occupied
11638the whole district, Balashev was brought to Vilna--now occupied by the
11639French--through the very gate by which he had left it four days
11640previously.
11641
11642Next day the imperial gentleman-in-waiting, the Comte de Turenne,
11643came to Balashev and informed him of the Emperor Napoleon's wish to
11644honor him with an audience.
11645
11646Four days before, sentinels of the Preobrazhensk regiment had
11647stood in front of the house to which Balashev was conducted, and now
11648two French grenadiers stood there in blue uniforms unfastened in front
11649and with shaggy caps on their heads, and an escort of hussars and
11650Uhlans and a brilliant suite of aides-de-camp, pages, and generals,
11651who were waiting for Napoleon to come out, were standing at the porch,
11652round his saddle horse and his Mameluke, Rustan. Napoleon received
11653Balashev in the very house in Vilna from which Alexander had
11654dispatched him on his mission.
11655
11656
11657
11658
11659
11660CHAPTER VI
11661
11662
11663Though Balashev was used to imperial pomp, he was amazed at the
11664luxury and magnificence of Napoleon's court.
11665
11666The Comte de Turenne showed him into a big reception room where many
11667generals, gentlemen-in-waiting, and Polish magnates--several of whom
11668Balashev had seen at the court of the Emperor of Russia--were waiting.
11669Duroc said that Napoleon would receive the Russian general before
11670going for his ride.
11671
11672After some minutes, the gentleman-in-waiting who was on duty came
11673into the great reception room and, bowing politely, asked Balashev
11674to follow him.
11675
11676Balashev went into a small reception room, one door of which led
11677into a study, the very one from which the Russian Emperor had
11678dispatched him on his mission. He stood a minute or two, waiting. He
11679heard hurried footsteps beyond the door, both halves of it were opened
11680rapidly; all was silent and then from the study the sound was heard of
11681other steps, firm and resolute--they were those of Napoleon. He had
11682just finished dressing for his ride, and wore a blue uniform,
11683opening in front over a white waistcoat so long that it covered his
11684rotund stomach, white leather breeches tightly fitting the fat
11685thighs of his short legs, and Hessian boots. His short hair had
11686evidently just been brushed, but one lock hung down in the middle of
11687his broad forehead. His plump white neck stood out sharply above the
11688black collar of his uniform, and he smelled of Eau de Cologne. His
11689full face, rather young-looking, with its prominent chin, wore a
11690gracious and majestic expression of imperial welcome.
11691
11692He entered briskly, with a jerk at every step and his head
11693slightly thrown back. His whole short corpulent figure with broad
11694thick shoulders, and chest and stomach involuntarily protruding, had
11695that imposing and stately appearance one sees in men of forty who live
11696in comfort. It was evident, too, that he was in the best of spirits
11697that day.
11698
11699He nodded in answer to Balashav's low and respectful bow, and coming
11700up to him at once began speaking like a man who values every moment of
11701his time and does not condescend to prepare what he has to say but
11702is sure he will always say the right thing and say it well.
11703
11704"Good day, General!" said he. "I have received the letter you
11705brought from the Emperor Alexander and am very glad to see you." He
11706glanced with his large eyes into Balashav's face and immediately
11707looked past him.
11708
11709It was plain that Balashev's personality did not interest him at
11710all. Evidently only what took place within his own mind interested
11711him. Nothing outside himself had any significance for him, because
11712everything in the world, it seemed to him, depended entirely on his
11713will.
11714
11715"I do not, and did not, desire war," he continued, "but it has
11716been forced on me. Even now" (he emphasized the word) "I am ready to
11717receive any explanations you can give me."
11718
11719And he began clearly and concisely to explain his reasons for
11720dissatisfaction with the Russian government. Judging by the calmly
11721moderate and amicable tone in which the French Emperor spoke, Balashev
11722was firmly persuaded that he wished for peace and intended to enter
11723into negotiations.
11724
11725When Napoleon, having finished speaking, looked inquiringly at the
11726Russian envoy, Balashev began a speech he had prepared long before:
11727"Sire! The Emperor, my master..." but the sight of the Emperor's
11728eyes bent on him confused him. "You are flurried--compose yourself!"
11729Napoleon seemed to say, as with a scarcely perceptible smile he looked
11730at Balashev's uniform and sword.
11731
11732Balashev recovered himself and began to speak. He said that the
11733Emperor Alexander did not consider Kurakin's demand for his
11734passports a sufficient cause for war; that Kurakin had acted on his
11735own initiative and without his sovereign's assent, that the Emperor
11736Alexander did not desire war, and had no relations with England.
11737
11738"Not yet!" interposed Napoleon, and, as if fearing to give vent to
11739his feelings, he frowned and nodded slightly as a sign that Balashev
11740might proceed.
11741
11742After saying all he had been instructed to say, Balashev added
11743that the Emperor Alexander wished for peace, but would not enter
11744into negotiations except on condition that... Here Balashev hesitated:
11745he remembered the words the Emperor Alexander had not written in his
11746letter, but had specially inserted in the rescript to Saltykov and had
11747told Balashev to repeat to Napoleon. Balashev remembered these
11748words, "So long as a single armed foe remains on Russian soil," but
11749some complex feeling restrained him. He could not utter them, though
11750he wished to do so. He grew confused and said: "On condition that
11751the French army retires beyond the Niemen."
11752
11753Napoleon noticed Balashev's embarrassment when uttering these last
11754words; his face twitched and the calf of his left leg began to
11755quiver rhythmically. Without moving from where he stood he began
11756speaking in a louder tone and more hurriedly than before. During the
11757speech that followed, Balashev, who more than once lowered his eyes,
11758involuntarily noticed the quivering of Napoleon's left leg which
11759increased the more Napoleon raised his voice.
11760
11761"I desire peace, no less than the Emperor Alexander," he began.
11762"Have I not for eighteen months been doing everything to obtain it?
11763I have waited eighteen months for explanations. But in order to
11764begin negotiations, what is demanded of me?" he said, frowning and
11765making an energetic gesture of inquiry with his small white plump
11766hand.
11767
11768"The withdrawal of your army beyond the Niemen, sire," replied
11769Balashev.
11770
11771"The Niemen?" repeated Napoleon. "So now you want me to retire
11772beyond the Niemen--only the Niemen?" repeated Napoleon, looking
11773straight at Balashev.
11774
11775The latter bowed his head respectfully.
11776
11777Instead of the demand of four months earlier to withdraw from
11778Pomerania, only a withdrawal beyond the Niemen was now demanded.
11779Napoleon turned quickly and began to pace the room.
11780
11781"You say the demand now is that I am to withdraw beyond the Niemen
11782before commencing negotiations, but in just the same way two months
11783ago the demand was that I should withdraw beyond the Vistula and the
11784Oder, and yet you are willing to negotiate."
11785
11786He went in silence from one corner of the room to the other and
11787again stopped in front of Balashev. Balashev noticed that his left leg
11788was quivering faster than before and his face seemed petrified in
11789its stern expression. This quivering of his left leg was a thing
11790Napoleon was conscious of. "The vibration of my left calf is a great
11791sign with me," he remarked at a later date.
11792
11793"Such demands as to retreat beyond the Vistula and Oder may be
11794made to a Prince of Baden, but not to me!" Napoleon almost screamed,
11795quite to his own surprise. "If you gave me Petersburg and Moscow I
11796could not accept such conditions. You say I have begun this war! But
11797who first joined his army? The Emperor Alexander, not I! And you offer
11798me negotiations when I have expended millions, when you are in
11799alliance with England, and when your position is a bad one. You
11800offer me negotiations! But what is the aim of your alliance with
11801England? What has she given you?" he continued hurriedly, evidently no
11802longer trying to show the advantages of peace and discuss its
11803possibility, but only to prove his own rectitude and power and
11804Alexander's errors and duplicity.
11805
11806The commencement of his speech had obviously been made with the
11807intention of demonstrating the advantages of his position and
11808showing that he was nevertheless willing to negotiate. But he had
11809begun talking, and the more he talked the less could he control his
11810words.
11811
11812The whole purport of his remarks now was evidently to exalt
11813himself and insult Alexander--just what he had least desired at the
11814commencement of the interview.
11815
11816"I hear you have made peace with Turkey?"
11817
11818Balashev bowed his head affirmatively.
11819
11820"Peace has been concluded..." he began.
11821
11822But Napoleon did not let him speak. He evidently wanted to do all
11823the talking himself, and continued to talk with the sort of
11824eloquence and unrestrained irritability to which spoiled people are so
11825prone.
11826
11827"Yes, I know you have made peace with the Turks without obtaining
11828Moldavia and Wallachia; I would have given your sovereign those
11829provinces as I gave him Finland. Yes," he went on, "I promised and
11830would have given the Emperor Alexander Moldavia and Wallachia, and now
11831he won't have those splendid provinces. Yet he might have united
11832them to his empire and in a single reign would have extended Russia
11833from the Gulf of Bothnia to the mouths of the Danube. Catherine the
11834Great could not have done more," said Napoleon, growing more and
11835more excited as he paced up and down the room, repeating to Balashev
11836almost the very words he had used to Alexander himself at Tilsit. "All
11837that, he would have owed to my friendship. Oh, what a splendid reign!"
11838he repeated several times, then paused, drew from his pocket a gold
11839snuffbox, lifted it to his nose, and greedily sniffed at it.
11840
11841"What a splendid reign the Emperor Alexander's might have been!"
11842
11843He looked compassionately at Balashev, and as soon as the latter
11844tried to make some rejoinder hastily interrupted him.
11845
11846"What could he wish or look for that he would not have obtained
11847through my friendship?" demanded Napoleon, shrugging his shoulders
11848in perplexity. "But no, he has preferred to surround himself with my
11849enemies, and with whom? With Steins, Armfeldts, Bennigsens, and
11850Wintzingerodes! Stein, a traitor expelled from his own country;
11851Armfeldt, a rake and an intriguer; Wintzingerode, a fugitive French
11852subject; Bennigsen, rather more of a soldier than the others, but
11853all the same an incompetent who was unable to do anything in 1807
11854and who should awaken terrible memories in the Emperor Alexander's
11855mind.... Granted that were they competent they might be made use
11856of," continued Napoleon--hardly able to keep pace in words with the
11857rush of thoughts that incessantly sprang up, proving how right and
11858strong he was (in his perception the two were one and the same)-
11859"but they are not even that! They are neither fit for war nor peace!
11860Barclay is said to be the most capable of them all, but I cannot say
11861so, judging by his first movements. And what are they doing, all these
11862courtiers? Pfuel proposes, Armfeldt disputes, Bennigsen considers, and
11863Barclay, called on to act, does not know what to decide on, and time
11864passes bringing no result. Bagration alone is a military man. He's
11865stupid, but he has experience, a quick eye, and resolution.... And
11866what role is your young monarch playing in that monstrous crowd?
11867They compromise him and throw on him the responsibility for all that
11868happens. A sovereign should not be with the army unless he is a
11869general!" said Napoleon, evidently uttering these words as a direct
11870challenge to the Emperor. He knew how Alexander desired to be a
11871military commander.
11872
11873"The campaign began only a week ago, and you haven't even been
11874able to defend Vilna. You are cut in two and have been driven out of
11875the Polish provinces. Your army is grumbling."
11876
11877"On the contrary, Your Majesty," said Balashev, hardly able to
11878remember what had been said to him and following these verbal
11879fireworks with difficulty, "the troops are burning with eagerness..."
11880
11881"I know everything!" Napoleon interrupted him. "I know everything. I
11882know the number of your battalions as exactly as I know my own. You
11883have not two hundred thousand men, and I have three times that number.
11884I give you my word of honor," said Napoleon, forgetting that his
11885word of honor could carry no weight--"I give you my word of honor that
11886I have five hundred and thirty thousand men this side of the
11887Vistula. The Turks will be of no use to you; they are worth nothing
11888and have shown it by making peace with you. As for the Swedes--it is
11889their fate to be governed by mad kings. Their king was insane and they
11890changed him for another--Bernadotte, who promptly went mad--for no
11891Swede would ally himself with Russia unless he were mad."
11892
11893Napoleon grinned maliciously and again raised his snuffbox to his
11894nose.
11895
11896Balashev knew how to reply to each of Napoleon's remarks, and
11897would have done so; he continually made the gesture of a man wishing
11898to say something, but Napoleon always interrupted him. To the
11899alleged insanity of the Swedes, Balashev wished to reply that when
11900Russia is on her side Sweden is practically an island: but Napoleon
11901gave an angry exclamation to drown his voice. Napoleon was in that
11902state of irritability in which a man has to talk, talk, and talk,
11903merely to convince himself that he is in the right. Balashev began
11904to feel uncomfortable: as envoy he feared to demean his dignity and
11905felt the necessity of replying; but, as a man, he shrank before the
11906transport of groundless wrath that had evidently seized Napoleon. He
11907knew that none of the words now uttered by Napoleon had any
11908significance, and that Napoleon himself would be ashamed of them
11909when he came to his senses. Balashev stood with downcast eyes, looking
11910at the movements of Napoleon's stout legs and trying to avoid
11911meeting his eyes.
11912
11913"But what do I care about your allies?" said Napoleon. "I have
11914allies--the Poles. There are eighty thousand of them and they fight
11915like lions. And there will be two hundred thousand of them."
11916
11917And probably still more perturbed by the fact that he had uttered
11918this obvious falsehood, and that Balashev still stood silently
11919before him in the same attitude of submission to fate, Napoleon
11920abruptly turned round, drew close to Balashev's face, and,
11921gesticulating rapidly and energetically with his white hands, almost
11922shouted:
11923
11924"Know that if you stir up Prussia against me, I'll wipe it off the
11925map of Europe!" he declared, his face pale and distorted by anger, and
11926he struck one of his small hands energetically with the other. "Yes, I
11927will throw you back beyond the Dvina and beyond the Dnieper, and
11928will re-erect against you that barrier which it was criminal and blind
11929of Europe to allow to be destroyed. Yes, that is what will happen to
11930you. That is what you have gained by alienating me!" And he walked
11931silently several times up and down the room, his fat shoulders
11932twitching.
11933
11934He put his snuffbox into his waistcoat pocket, took it out again,
11935lifted it several times to his nose, and stopped in front of Balashev.
11936He paused, looked ironically straight into Balashev's eyes, and said
11937in a quiet voice:
11938
11939"And yet what a splendid reign your master might have had!"
11940
11941Balashev, feeling it incumbent on him to reply, said that from the
11942Russian side things did not appear in so gloomy a light. Napoleon
11943was silent, still looking derisively at him and evidently not
11944listening to him. Balashev said that in Russia the best results were
11945expected from the war. Napoleon nodded condescendingly, as if to
11946say, "I know it's your duty to say that, but you don't believe it
11947yourself. I have convinced you."
11948
11949When Balashev had ended, Napoleon again took out his snuffbox,
11950sniffed at it, and stamped his foot twice on the floor as a signal.
11951The door opened, a gentleman-in-waiting, bending respectfully,
11952handed the Emperor his hat and gloves; another brought him a pocket
11953handkerchief. Napoleon, without giving them a glance, turned to
11954Balashev:
11955
11956"Assure the Emperor Alexander from me," said he, taking his hat,
11957"that I am as devoted to him as before: I know him thoroughly and very
11958highly esteem his lofty qualities. I will detain you no longer,
11959General; you shall receive my letter to the Emperor."
11960
11961And Napoleon went quickly to the door. Everyone in the reception
11962room rushed forward and descended the staircase.
11963
11964
11965
11966
11967
11968CHAPTER VII
11969
11970
11971After all that Napoleon had said to him--those bursts of anger and
11972the last dryly spoken words: "I will detain you no longer, General;
11973you shall receive my letter," Balashev felt convinced that Napoleon
11974would not wish to see him, and would even avoid another meeting with
11975him--an insulted envoy--especially as he had witnessed his unseemly
11976anger. But, to his surprise, Balashev received, through Duroc, an
11977invitation to dine with the Emperor that day.
11978
11979Bessieres, Caulaincourt, and Berthier were present at that dinner.
11980
11981Napoleon met Balashev cheerfully and amiably. He not only showed
11982no sign of constraint or self-reproach on account of his outburst that
11983morning, but, on the contrary, tried to reassure Balashev. It was
11984evident that he had long been convinced that it was impossible for him
11985to make a mistake, and that in his perception whatever he did was
11986right, not because it harmonized with any idea of right and wrong, but
11987because he did it.
11988
11989The Emperor was in very good spirits after his ride through Vilna,
11990where crowds of people had rapturously greeted and followed him.
11991From all the windows of the streets through which he rode, rugs,
11992flags, and his monogram were displayed, and the Polish ladies,
11993welcoming him, waved their handkerchiefs to him.
11994
11995At dinner, having placed Balashev beside him, Napoleon not only
11996treated him amiably but behaved as if Balashev were one of his own
11997courtiers, one of those who sympathized with his plans and ought to
11998rejoice at his success. In the course of conversation he mentioned
11999Moscow and questioned Balashev about the Russian capital, not merely
12000as an interested traveler asks about a new city he intends to visit,
12001but as if convinced that Balashev, as a Russian, must be flattered
12002by his curiosity.
12003
12004"How many inhabitants are there in Moscow? How many houses? Is it
12005true that Moscow is called 'Holy Moscow'? How many churches are
12006there in Moscow?" he asked.
12007
12008And receiving the reply that there were more than two hundred
12009churches, he remarked:
12010
12011"Why such a quantity of churches?"
12012
12013"The Russians are very devout," replied Balashev.
12014
12015"But a large number of monasteries and churches is always a sign
12016of the backwardness of a people," said Napoleon, turning to
12017Caulaincourt for appreciation of this remark.
12018
12019Balashev respectfully ventured to disagree with the French Emperor.
12020
12021"Every country has its own character," said he.
12022
12023"But nowhere in Europe is there anything like that," said Napoleon.
12024
12025"I beg your Majesty's pardon," returned Balashev, "besides Russia
12026there is Spain, where there are also many churches and monasteries."
12027
12028This reply of Balashev's, which hinted at the recent defeats of
12029the French in Spain, was much appreciated when he related it at
12030Alexander's court, but it was not much appreciated at Napoleon's
12031dinner, where it passed unnoticed.
12032
12033The uninterested and perplexed faces of the marshals showed that
12034they were puzzled as to what Balashev's tone suggested. "If there is a
12035point we don't see it, or it is not at all witty," their expressions
12036seemed to say. So little was his rejoinder appreciated that Napoleon
12037did not notice it at all and naively asked Balashev through what towns
12038the direct road from there to Moscow passed. Balashev, who was on
12039the alert all through the dinner, replied that just as "all roads lead
12040to Rome," so all roads lead to Moscow: there were many roads, and
12041"among them the road through Poltava, which Charles XII chose."
12042Balashev involuntarily flushed with pleasure at the aptitude of this
12043reply, but hardly had he uttered the word Poltava before
12044Caulaincourt began speaking of the badness of the road from Petersburg
12045to Moscow and of his Petersburg reminiscences.
12046
12047After dinner they went to drink coffee in Napoleon's study, which
12048four days previously had been that of the Emperor Alexander.
12049Napoleon sat down, toying with his Sevres coffee cup, and motioned
12050Balashev to a chair beside him.
12051
12052Napoleon was in that well-known after-dinner mood which, more than
12053any reasoned cause, makes a man contented with himself and disposed to
12054consider everyone his friend. It seemed to him that he was
12055surrounded by men who adored him: and he felt convinced that, after
12056his dinner, Balashev too was his friend and worshiper. Napoleon turned
12057to him with a pleasant, though slightly ironic, smile.
12058
12059"They tell me this is the room the Emperor Alexander occupied?
12060Strange, isn't it, General?" he said, evidently not doubting that this
12061remark would be agreeable to his hearer since it went to prove his,
12062Napoleon's, superiority to Alexander.
12063
12064Balashev made no reply and bowed his head in silence.
12065
12066"Yes. Four days ago in this room, Wintzingerode and Stein were
12067deliberating," continued Napoleon with the same derisive and
12068self-confident smile. "What I can't understand," he went on, "is
12069that the Emperor Alexander has surrounded himself with my personal
12070enemies. That I do not... understand. Has he not thought that I may
12071the same?" and he turned inquiringly to Balashev, and evidently this
12072thought turned him back on to the track of his morning's anger,
12073which was still fresh in him.
12074
12075"And let him know that I will do so!" said Napoleon, rising and
12076pushing his cup away with his hand. "I'll drive all his Wurttemberg,
12077Baden, and Weimar relations out of Germany.... Yes. I'll drive them
12078out. Let him prepare an asylum for them in Russia!"
12079
12080Balashev bowed his head with an air indicating that he would like to
12081make his bow and leave, and only listened because he could not help
12082hearing what was said to him. Napoleon did not notice this expression;
12083he treated Balashev not as an envoy from his enemy, but as a man now
12084fully devoted to him and who must rejoice at his former master's
12085humiliation.
12086
12087"And why has the Emperor Alexander taken command of the armies? What
12088is the good of that? War is my profession, but his business is to
12089reign and not to command armies! Why has he taken on himself such a
12090responsibility?"
12091
12092Again Napoleon brought out his snuffbox, paced several times up
12093and down the room in silence, and then, suddenly and unexpectedly,
12094went up to Balashev and with a slight smile, as confidently,
12095quickly, and simply as if he were doing something not merely
12096important but pleasing to Balashev, he raised his hand to the
12097forty-year-old Russian general's face and, taking him by the ear,
12098pulled it gently, smiling with his lips only.
12099
12100To have one's ear pulled by the Emperor was considered the
12101greatest honor and mark of favor at the French court.
12102
12103"Well, adorer and courtier of the Emperor Alexander, why don't you
12104say anything?" said he, as if it was ridiculous, in his presence, to
12105be the adorer and courtier of anyone but himself, Napoleon. "Are the
12106horses ready for the general?" he added, with a slight inclination
12107of his head in reply to Balashev's bow. "Let him have mine, he has a
12108long way to go!"
12109
12110The letter taken by Balashev was the last Napoleon sent to
12111Alexander. Every detail of the interview was communicated to the
12112Russian monarch, and the war began...
12113
12114
12115
12116
12117
12118CHAPTER VIII
12119
12120
12121After his interview with Pierre in Moscow, Prince Andrew went to
12122Petersburg, on business as he told his family, but really to meet
12123Anatole Kuragin whom he felt it necessary to encounter. On reaching
12124Petersburg he inquired for Kuragin but the latter had already left the
12125city. Pierre had warned his brother-in-law that Prince Andrew was on
12126his track. Anatole Kuragin promptly obtained an appointment from the
12127Minister of War and went to join the army in Moldavia. While in
12128Petersburg Prince Andrew met Kutuzov, his former commander who was
12129always well disposed toward him, and Kutuzov suggested that he
12130should accompany him to the army in Moldavia, to which the old general
12131had been appointed commander in chief. So Prince Andrew, having
12132received an appointment on the headquarters staff, left for Turkey.
12133
12134Prince Andrew did not think it proper to write and challenge
12135Kuragin. He thought that if he challenged him without some fresh cause
12136it might compromise the young Countess Rostova and so he wanted to
12137meet Kuragin personally in order to find a fresh pretext for a duel.
12138But he again failed to meet Kuragin in Turkey, for soon after Prince
12139Andrew arrived, the latter returned to Russia. In a new country,
12140amid new conditions, Prince Andrew found life easier to bear. After
12141his betrothed had broken faith with him--which he felt the more
12142acutely the more he tried to conceal its effects--the surroundings
12143in which he had been happy became trying to him, and the freedom and
12144independence he had once prized so highly were still more so. Not only
12145could he no longer think the thoughts that had first come to him as he
12146lay gazing at the sky on the field of Austerlitz and had later
12147enlarged upon with Pierre, and which had filled his solitude at
12148Bogucharovo and then in Switzerland and Rome, but he even dreaded to
12149recall them and the bright and boundless horizons they had
12150revealed. He was now concerned only with the nearest practical matters
12151unrelated to his past interests, and he seized on these the more
12152eagerly the more those past interests were closed to him. It was as if
12153that lofty, infinite canopy of heaven that had once towered above
12154him had suddenly turned into a low, solid vault that weighed him down,
12155in which all was clear, but nothing eternal or mysterious.
12156
12157Of the activities that presented themselves to him, army service was
12158the simplest and most familiar. As a general on duty on Kutuzov's
12159staff, he applied himself to business with zeal and perseverance and
12160surprised Kutuzov by his willingness and accuracy in work. Not
12161having found Kuragin in Turkey, Prince Andrew did not think it
12162necessary to rush back to Russia after him, but all the same he knew
12163that however long it might be before he met Kuragin, despite his
12164contempt for him and despite all the proofs he deduced to convince
12165himself that it was not worth stooping to a conflict with him--he knew
12166that when he did meet him he would not be able to resist calling him
12167out, any more than a ravenous man can help snatching at food. And
12168the consciousness that the insult was not yet avenged, that his rancor
12169was still unspent, weighed on his heart and poisoned the artificial
12170tranquillity which he managed to obtain in Turkey by means of
12171restless, plodding, and rather vainglorious and ambitious activity.
12172
12173In the year 1812, when news of the war with Napoleon reached
12174Bucharest--where Kutuzov had been living for two months, passing his
12175days and nights with a Wallachian woman--Prince Andrew asked Kutuzov
12176to transfer him to the Western Army. Kutuzov, who was already weary of
12177Bolkonski's activity which seemed to reproach his own idleness, very
12178readily let him go and gave him a mission to Barclay de Tolly.
12179
12180Before joining the Western Army which was then, in May, encamped
12181at Drissa, Prince Andrew visited Bald Hills which was directly on
12182his way, being only two miles off the Smolensk highroad. During the
12183last three years there had been so many changes in his life, he had
12184thought, felt, and seen so much (having traveled both in the east
12185and the west), that on reaching Bald Hills it struck him as strange
12186and unexpected to find the way of life there unchanged and still the
12187same in every detail. He entered through the gates with their stone
12188pillars and drove up the avenue leading to the house as if he were
12189entering an enchanted, sleeping castle. The same old stateliness,
12190the same cleanliness, the same stillness reigned there, and inside
12191there was the same furniture, the same walls, sounds, and smell, and
12192the same timid faces, only somewhat older. Princess Mary was still the
12193same timid, plain maiden getting on in years, uselessly and
12194joylessly passing the best years of her life in fear and constant
12195suffering. Mademoiselle Bourienne was the same coquettish,
12196self-satisfied girl, enjoying every moment of her existence and full
12197of joyous hopes for the future. She had merely become more
12198self-confident, Prince Andrew thought. Dessalles, the tutor he had
12199brought from Switzerland, was wearing a coat of Russian cut and
12200talking broken Russian to the servants, but was still the same
12201narrowly intelligent, conscientious, and pedantic preceptor. The old
12202prince had changed in appearance only by the loss of a tooth, which
12203left a noticeable gap on one side of his mouth; in character he was
12204the same as ever, only showing still more irritability and
12205skepticism as to what was happening in the world. Little Nicholas
12206alone had changed. He had grown, become rosier, had curly dark hair,
12207and, when merry and laughing, quite unconsciously lifted the upper lip
12208of his pretty little mouth just as the little princess used to do.
12209He alone did not obey the law of immutability in the enchanted,
12210sleeping castle. But though externally all remained as of old, the
12211inner relations of all these people had changed since Prince Andrew
12212had seen them last. The household was divided into two alien and
12213hostile camps, who changed their habits for his sake and only met
12214because he was there. To the one camp belonged the old prince,
12215Madmoiselle Bourienne, and the architect; to the other Princess
12216Mary, Dessalles, little Nicholas, and all the old nurses and maids.
12217
12218During his stay at Bald Hills all the family dined together, but
12219they were ill at ease and Prince Andrew felt that he was a visitor for
12220whose sake an exception was being made and that his presence made them
12221all feel awkward. Involuntarily feeling this at dinner on the first
12222day, he was taciturn, and the old prince noticing this also became
12223morosely dumb and retired to his apartments directly after dinner.
12224In the evening, when Prince Andrew went to him and, trying to rouse
12225him, began to tell him of the young Count Kamensky's campaign, the old
12226prince began unexpectedly to talk about Princess Mary, blaming her for
12227her superstitions and her dislike of Mademoiselle Bourienne, who, he
12228said, was the only person really attached to him.
12229
12230The old prince said that if he was ill it was only because of
12231Princess Mary: that she purposely worried and irritated him, and
12232that by indulgence and silly talk she was spoiling little Prince
12233Nicholas. The old prince knew very well that he tormented his daughter
12234and that her life was very hard, but he also knew that he could not
12235help tormenting her and that she deserved it. "Why does Prince Andrew,
12236who sees this, say nothing to me about his sister? Does he think me
12237a scoundrel, or an old fool who, without any reason, keeps his own
12238daughter at a distance and attaches this Frenchwoman to himself? He
12239doesn't understand, so I must explain it, and he must hear me out,"
12240thought the old prince. And he began explaining why he could not put
12241up with his daughter's unreasonable character.
12242
12243"If you ask me," said Prince Andrew, without looking up (he was
12244censuring his father for the first time in his life), "I did not
12245wish to speak about it, but as you ask me I will give you my frank
12246opinion. If there is any misunderstanding and discord between you
12247and Mary, I can't blame her for it at all. I know how she loves and
12248respects you. Since you ask me," continued Prince Andrew, becoming
12249irritable--as he was always liable to do of late--"I can only say that
12250if there are any misunderstandings they are caused by that worthless
12251woman, who is not fit to be my sister's companion."
12252
12253The old man at first stared fixedly at his son, and an unnatural
12254smile disclosed the fresh gap between his teeth to which Prince Andrew
12255could not get accustomed.
12256
12257"What companion, my dear boy? Eh? You've already been talking it
12258over! Eh?"
12259
12260"Father, I did not want to judge," said Prince Andrew, in a hard and
12261bitter tone, "but you challenged me, and I have said, and always shall
12262say, that Mary is not to blame, but those to blame--the one to
12263blame--is that Frenchwoman."
12264
12265"Ah, he has passed judgment... passed judgement!" said the old man
12266in a low voice and, as it seemed to Prince Andrew, with some
12267embarrassment, but then he suddenly jumped up and cried: "Be off, be
12268off! Let not a trace of you remain here!..."
12269
12270
12271Prince Andrew wished to leave at once, but Princess Mary persuaded
12272him to stay another day. That day he did not see his father, who did
12273not leave his room and admitted no one but Mademoiselle Bourienne
12274and Tikhon, but asked several times whether his son had gone. Next
12275day, before leaving, Prince Andrew went to his son's rooms. The boy,
12276curly-headed like his mother and glowing with health, sat on his knee,
12277and Prince Andrew began telling him the story of Bluebeard, but fell
12278into a reverie without finishing the story. He thought not of this
12279pretty child, his son whom he held on his knee, but of himself. He
12280sought in himself either remorse for having angered his father or
12281regret at leaving home for the first time in his life on bad terms
12282with him, and was horrified to find neither. What meant still more
12283to him was that he sought and did not find in himself the former
12284tenderness for his son which he had hoped to reawaken by caressing the
12285boy and taking him on his knee.
12286
12287"Well, go on!" said his son.
12288
12289Prince Andrew, without replying, put him down from his knee and went
12290out of the room.
12291
12292As soon as Prince Andrew had given up his daily occupations, and
12293especially on returning to the old conditions of life amid which he
12294had been happy, weariness of life overcame him with its former
12295intensity, and he hastened to escape from these memories and to find
12296some work as soon as possible.
12297
12298"So you've decided to go, Andrew?" asked his sister.
12299
12300"Thank God that I can," replied Prince Andrew. "I am very sorry
12301you can't."
12302
12303"Why do you say that?" replied Princess Mary. "Why do you say
12304that, when you are going to this terrible war, and he is so old?
12305Mademoiselle Bourienne says he has been asking about you...."
12306
12307As soon as she began to speak of that, her lips trembled and her
12308tears began to fall. Prince Andrew turned away and began pacing the
12309room.
12310
12311"Ah, my God! my God! When one thinks who and what--what trash--can
12312cause people misery!" he said with a malignity that alarmed Princess
12313Mary.
12314
12315She understood that when speaking of "trash" he referred not only to
12316Mademoiselle Bourienne, the cause of her misery, but also to the man
12317who had ruined his own happiness.
12318
12319"Andrew! One thing I beg, I entreat of you!" she said, touching
12320his elbow and looking at him with eyes that shone through her tears.
12321"I understand you" (she looked down). "Don't imagine that sorrow is
12322the work of men. Men are His tools." She looked a little above
12323Prince Andrew's head with the confident, accustomed look with which
12324one looks at the place where a familiar portrait hangs. "Sorrow is
12325sent by Him, not by men. Men are His instruments, they are not to
12326blame. If you think someone has wronged you, forget it and forgive! We
12327have no right to punish. And then you will know the happiness of
12328forgiving."
12329
12330"If I were a woman I would do so, Mary. That is a woman's virtue.
12331But a man should not and cannot forgive and forget," he replied, and
12332though till that moment he had not been thinking of Kuragin, all his
12333unexpended anger suddenly swelled up in his heart.
12334
12335"If Mary is already persuading me forgive, it means that I ought
12336long ago to have punished him," he thought. And giving her no
12337further reply, he began thinking of the glad vindictive moment when he
12338would meet Kuragin who he knew was now in the army.
12339
12340Princess Mary begged him to stay one day more, saying that she
12341knew how unhappy her father would be if Andrew left without being
12342reconciled to him, but Prince Andrew replied that he would probably
12343soon be back again from the army and would certainly write to his
12344father, but that the longer he stayed now the more embittered their
12345differences would become.
12346
12347"Good-by, Andrew! Remember that misfortunes come from God, and men
12348are never to blame," were the last words he heard from his sister when
12349he took leave of her.
12350
12351"Then it must be so!" thought Prince Andrew as he drove out of the
12352avenue from the house at Bald Hills. "She, poor innocent creature,
12353is left to be victimized by an old man who has outlived his wits.
12354The old man feels he is guilty, but cannot change himself. My boy is
12355growing up and rejoices in life, in which like everybody else he
12356will deceive or be deceived. And I am off to the army. Why? I myself
12357don't know. I want to meet that man whom I despise, so as to give
12358him a chance to kill and laugh at me!"
12359
12360These conditions of life had been the same before, but then they
12361were all connected, while now they had all tumbled to pieces. Only
12362senseless things, lacking coherence, presented themselves one after
12363another to Prince Andrew's mind.
12364
12365
12366
12367
12368
12369CHAPTER IX
12370
12371
12372Prince Andrew reached the general headquarters of the army at the
12373end of June. The first army, with which was the Emperor, occupied
12374the fortified camp at Drissa; the second army was retreating, trying
12375to effect a junction with the first one from which it was said to be
12376cut off by large French forces. Everyone was dissatisfied with the
12377general course of affairs in the Russian army, but no one
12378anticipated any danger of invasion of the Russian provinces, and no
12379one thought the war would extend farther than the western, the Polish,
12380provinces.
12381
12382Prince Andrew found Barclay de Tolly, to whom he had been
12383assigned, on the bank of the Drissa. As there was not a single town or
12384large village in the vicinity of the camp, the immense number of
12385generals and courtiers accompanying the army were living in the best
12386houses of the villages on both sides of the river, over a radius of
12387six miles. Barclay de Tolly was quartered nearly three miles from
12388the Emperor. He received Bolkonski stiffly and coldly and told him
12389in his foreign accent that he would mention him to the Emperor for a
12390decision as to his employment, but asked him meanwhile to remain on
12391his staff. Anatole Kuragin, whom Prince Andrew had hoped to find
12392with the army, was not there. He had gone to Petersburg, but Prince
12393Andrew was glad to hear this. His mind was occupied by the interests
12394of the center that was conducting a gigantic war, and he was glad to
12395be free for a while from the distraction caused by the thought of
12396Kuragin. During the first four days, while no duties were required
12397of him, Prince Andrew rode round the whole fortified camp and, by
12398the aid of his own knowledge and by talks with experts, tried to
12399form a definite opinion about it. But the question whether the camp
12400was advantageous or disadvantageous remained for him undecided.
12401Already from his military experience and what he had seen in the
12402Austrian campaign, he had come to the conclusion that in war the
12403most deeply considered plans have no significance and that all depends
12404on the way unexpected movements of the enemy--that cannot be foreseen-
12405are met, and on how and by whom the whole matter is handled. To
12406clear up this last point for himself, Prince Andrew, utilizing his
12407position and acquaintances, tried to fathom the character of the
12408control of the army and of the men and parties engaged in it, and he
12409deduced for himself the following of the state of affairs.
12410
12411While the Emperor had still been at Vilna, the forces had been
12412divided into three armies. First, the army under Barclay de Tolly,
12413secondly, the army under Bagration, and thirdly, the one commanded
12414by Tormasov. The Emperor was with the first army, but not as commander
12415in chief. In the orders issued it was stated, not that the Emperor
12416would take command, but only that he would be with the army. The
12417Emperor, moreover, had with him not a commander in chief's staff but
12418the imperial headquarters staff. In attendance on him was the head
12419of the imperial staff, Quartermaster General Prince Volkonski, as well
12420as generals, imperial aides-de-camp, diplomatic officials, and a large
12421number of foreigners, but not the army staff. Besides these, there
12422were in attendance on the Emperor without any definite appointments:
12423Arakcheev, the ex-Minister of War; Count Bennigsen, the senior general
12424in rank; the Grand Duke Tsarevich Constantine Pavlovich; Count
12425Rumyantsev, the Chancellor; Stein, a former Prussian minister;
12426Armfeldt, a Swedish general; Pfuel, the chief author of the plan of
12427campaign; Paulucci, an adjutant general and Sardinian emigre;
12428Wolzogen--and many others. Though these men had no military
12429appointment in the army, their position gave them influence, and often
12430a corps commander, or even the commander in chief, did not know in
12431what capacity he was questioned by Bennigsen, the Grand Duke,
12432Arakcheev, or Prince Volkonski, or was given this or that advice and
12433did not know whether a certain order received in the form of advice
12434emanated from the man who gave it or from the Emperor and whether it
12435had to be executed or not. But this was only the external condition;
12436the essential significance of the presence of the Emperor and of all
12437these people, from a courtier's point of view (and in an Emperor's
12438vicinity all became courtiers), was clear to everyone. It was this:
12439the Emperor did not assume the title of commander in chief, but
12440disposed of all the armies; the men around him were his assistants.
12441Arakcheev was a faithful custodian to enforce order and acted as the
12442sovereign's bodyguard. Bennigsen was a landlord in the Vilna
12443province who appeared to be doing the honors of the district, but
12444was in reality a good general, useful as an adviser and ready at
12445hand to replace Barclay. The Grand Duke was there because it suited
12446him to be. The ex-Minister Stein was there because his advice was
12447useful and the Emperor Alexander held him in high esteem personally.
12448Armfeldt virulently hated Napoleon and was a general full of
12449self-confidence, a quality that always influenced Alexander.
12450Paulucci was there because he was bold and decided in speech. The
12451adjutants general were there because they always accompanied the
12452Emperor, and lastly and chiefly Pfuel was there because he had drawn
12453up the plan of campaign against Napoleon and, having induced Alexander
12454to believe in the efficacy of that plan, was directing the whole
12455business of the war. With Pfuel was Wolzogen, who expressed Pfuel's
12456thoughts in a more comprehensible way than Pfuel himself (who was a
12457harsh, bookish theorist, self-confident to the point of despising
12458everyone else) was able to do.
12459
12460Besides these Russians and foreigners who propounded new and
12461unexpected ideas every day--especially the foreigners, who did so with
12462a boldness characteristic of people employed in a country not their
12463own--there were many secondary personages accompanying the army
12464because their principals were there.
12465
12466Among the opinions and voices in this immense, restless,
12467brilliant, and proud sphere, Prince Andrew noticed the following
12468sharply defined subdivisions of and parties:
12469
12470The first party consisted of Pfuel and his adherents--military
12471theorists who believed in a science of war with immutable laws--laws
12472of oblique movements, outflankings, and so forth. Pfuel and his
12473adherents demanded a retirement into the depths of the country in
12474accordance with precise laws defined by a pseudo-theory of war, and
12475they saw only barbarism, ignorance, or evil intention in every
12476deviation from that theory. To this party belonged the foreign nobles,
12477Wolzogen, Wintzingerode, and others, chiefly Germans.
12478
12479The second party was directly opposed to the first; one extreme,
12480as always happens, was met by representatives of the other. The
12481members of this party were those who had demanded an advance from
12482Vilna into Poland and freedom from all prearranged plans. Besides
12483being advocates of bold action, this section also represented
12484nationalism, which made them still more one-sided in the dispute. They
12485were Russians: Bagration, Ermolov (who was beginning to come to the
12486front), and others. At that time a famous joke of Ermolov's was
12487being circulated, that as a great favor he had petitioned the
12488Emperor to make him a German. The men of that party, remembering
12489Suvorov, said that what one had to do was not to reason, or stick pins
12490into maps, but to fight, beat the enemy, keep him out of Russia, and
12491not let the army get discouraged.
12492
12493To the third party--in which the Emperor had most confidence-
12494belonged the courtiers who tried to arrange compromises between the
12495other two. The members of this party, chiefly civilians and to whom
12496Arakcheev belonged, thought and said what men who have no
12497convictions but wish to seem to have some generally say. They said
12498that undoubtedly war, particularly against such a genius as
12499Bonaparte (they called him Bonaparte now), needs most deeply devised
12500plans and profound scientific knowledge and in that respect Pfuel
12501was a genius, but at the same time it had to be acknowledged that
12502the theorists are often one sided, and therefore one should not
12503trust them absolutely, but should also listen to what Pfuel's
12504opponents and practical men of experience in warfare had to say, and
12505then choose a middle course. They insisted on the retention of the
12506camp at Drissa, according to Pfuel's plan, but on changing the
12507movements of the other armies. Though, by this course, neither one aim
12508nor the other could be attained, yet it seemed best to the adherents
12509of this third party.
12510
12511Of a fourth opinion the most conspicuous representative was the
12512Tsarevich, who could not forget his disillusionment at Austerlitz,
12513where he had ridden out at the head of the Guards, in his casque and
12514cavalry uniform as to a review, expecting to crush the French
12515gallantly; but unexpectedly finding himself in the front line had
12516narrowly escaped amid the general confusion. The men of this party had
12517both the quality and the defect of frankness in their opinions. They
12518feared Napoleon, recognized his strength and their own weakness, and
12519frankly said so. They said: "Nothing but sorrow, shame, and ruin
12520will come of all this! We have abandoned Vilna and Vitebsk and shall
12521abandon Drissa. The only reasonable thing left to do is to conclude
12522peace as soon as possible, before we are turned out of Petersburg."
12523
12524This view was very general in the upper army circles and found
12525support also in Petersburg and from the chancellor, Rumyantsev, who,
12526for other reasons of state, was in favor of peace.
12527
12528The fifth party consisted of those who were adherents of Barclay
12529de Tolly, not so much as a man but as minister of war and commander in
12530chief. "Be he what he may" (they always began like that), "he is an
12531honest, practical man and we have nobody better. Give him real
12532power, for war cannot be conducted successfully without unity of
12533command, and he will show what he can do, as he did in Finland. If our
12534army is well organized and strong and has withdrawn to Drissa
12535without suffering any defeats, we owe this entirely to Barclay. If
12536Barclay is now to be superseded by Bennigsen all will be lost, for
12537Bennigsen showed his incapacity already in 1807."
12538
12539The sixth party, the Bennigsenites, said, on the contrary, that at
12540any rate there was no one more active and experienced than
12541Bennigsen: "and twist about as you may, you will have to come to
12542Bennigsen eventually. Let the others make mistakes now!" said they,
12543arguing that our retirement to Drissa was a most shameful reverse
12544and an unbroken series of blunders. "The more mistakes that are made
12545the better. It will at any rate be understood all the sooner that
12546things cannot go on like this. What is wanted is not some Barclay or
12547other, but a man like Bennigsen, who made his mark in 1807, and to
12548whom Napoleon himself did justice--a man whose authority would be
12549willingly recognized, and Bennigsen is the only such man."
12550
12551The seventh party consisted of the sort of people who are always
12552to be found, especially around young sovereigns, and of whom there
12553were particularly many round Alexander--generals and imperial
12554aides-de-camp passionately devoted to the Emperor, not merely as a
12555monarch but as a man, adoring him sincerely and disinterestedly, as
12556Rostov had done in 1805, and who saw in him not only all the virtues
12557but all human capabilities as well. These men, though enchanted with
12558the sovereign for refusing the command of the army, yet blamed him for
12559such excessive modesty, and only desired and insisted that their
12560adored sovereign should abandon his diffidence and openly announce
12561that he would place himself at the head of the army, gather round
12562him a commander in chief's staff, and, consulting experienced
12563theoreticians and practical men where necessary, would himself lead
12564the troops, whose spirits would thereby be raised to the highest
12565pitch.
12566
12567The eighth and largest group, which in its enormous numbers was to
12568the others as ninety-nine to one, consisted of men who desired neither
12569peace nor war, neither an advance nor a defensive camp at the Drissa
12570or anywhere else, neither Barclay nor the Emperor, neither Pfuel nor
12571Bennigsen, but only the one most essential thing--as much advantage
12572and pleasure for themselves as possible. In the troubled waters of
12573conflicting and intersecting intrigues that eddied about the Emperor's
12574headquarters, it was possible to succeed in many ways unthinkable at
12575other times. A man who simply wished to retain his lucrative post
12576would today agree with Pfuel, tomorrow with his opponent, and the
12577day after, merely to avoid responsibility or to please the Emperor,
12578would declare that he had no opinion at all on the matter. Another who
12579wished to gain some advantage would attract the Emperor's attention by
12580loudly advocating the very thing the Emperor had hinted at the day
12581before, and would dispute and shout at the council, beating his breast
12582and challenging those who did not agree with him to duels, thereby
12583proving that he was prepared to sacrifice himself for the common good.
12584A third, in the absence of opponents, between two councils would
12585simply solicit a special gratuity for his faithful services, well
12586knowing that at that moment people would be too busy to refuse him.
12587A fourth while seemingly overwhelmed with work would often come
12588accidentally under the Emperor's eye. A fifth, to achieve his
12589long-cherished aim of dining with the Emperor, would stubbornly insist
12590on the correctness or falsity of some newly emerging opinion and for
12591this object would produce arguments more or less forcible and correct.
12592
12593All the men of this party were fishing for rubles, decorations,
12594and promotions, and in this pursuit watched only the weathercock of
12595imperial favor, and directly they noticed it turning in any direction,
12596this whole drone population of the army began blowing hard that way,
12597so that it was all the harder for the Emperor to turn it elsewhere.
12598Amid the uncertainties of the position, with the menace of serious
12599danger giving a peculiarly threatening character to everything, amid
12600this vortex of intrigue, egotism, conflict of views and feelings,
12601and the diversity of race among these people--this eighth and
12602largest party of those preoccupied with personal interests imparted
12603great confusion and obscurity to the common task. Whatever question
12604arose, a swarm of these drones, without having finished their
12605buzzing on a previous theme, flew over to the new one and by their hum
12606drowned and obscured the voices of those who were disputing honestly.
12607
12608From among all these parties, just at the time Prince Andrew reached
12609the army, another, a ninth party, was being formed and was beginning
12610to raise its voice. This was the party of the elders, reasonable men
12611experienced and capable in state affairs, who, without sharing any
12612of those conflicting opinions, were able to take a detached view of
12613what was going on at the staff at headquarters and to consider means
12614of escape from this muddle, indecision, intricacy, and weakness.
12615
12616The men of this party said and thought that what was wrong
12617resulted chiefly from the Emperor's presence in the army with his
12618military court and from the consequent presence there of an
12619indefinite, conditional, and unsteady fluctuation of relations,
12620which is in place at court but harmful in an army; that a sovereign
12621should reign but not command the army, and that the only way out of
12622the position would be for the Emperor and his court to leave the army;
12623that the mere presence of the Emperor paralyzed the action of fifty
12624thousand men required to secure his personal safety, and that the
12625worst commander in chief if independent would be better than the
12626very best one trammeled by the presence and authority of the monarch.
12627
12628Just at the time Prince Andrew was living unoccupied at Drissa,
12629Shishkov, the Secretary of State and one of the chief
12630representatives of this party, wrote a letter to the Emperor which
12631Arakcheev and Balashev agreed to sign. In this letter, availing
12632himself of permission given him by the Emperor to discuss the
12633general course of affairs, he respectfully suggested--on the plea that
12634it was necessary for the sovereign to arouse a warlike spirit in the
12635people of the capital--that the Emperor should leave the army.
12636
12637That arousing of the people by their sovereign and his call to
12638them to defend their country--the very incitement which was the
12639chief cause of Russia's triumph in so far as it was produced by the
12640Tsar's personal presence in Moscow--was suggested to the Emperor,
12641and accepted by him, as a pretext for quitting the army.
12642
12643
12644
12645
12646
12647CHAPTER X
12648
12649
12650This letter had not yet been presented to the Emperor when
12651Barclay, one day at dinner, informed Bolkonski that the sovereign
12652wished to see him personally, to question him about Turkey, and that
12653Prince Andrew was to present himself at Bennigsen's quarters at six
12654that evening.
12655
12656News was received at the Emperor's quarters that very day of a fresh
12657movement by Napoleon which might endanger the army--news
12658subsequently found to be false. And that morning Colonel Michaud had
12659ridden round the Drissa fortifications with the Emperor and had
12660pointed out to him that this fortified camp constructed by Pfuel,
12661and till then considered a chef-d'oeuvre of tactical science which
12662would ensure Napoleon's destruction, was an absurdity, threatening the
12663destruction of the Russian army.
12664
12665Prince Andrew arrived at Bennigsen's quarters--a country gentleman's
12666house of moderate size, situated on the very banks of the river.
12667Neither Bennigsen nor the Emperor was there, but Chernyshev, the
12668Emperor's aide-de-camp, received Bolkonski and informed him that the
12669Emperor, accompanied by General Bennigsen and Marquis Paulucci, had
12670gone a second time that day to inspect the fortifications of the
12671Drissa camp, of the suitability of which serious doubts were beginning
12672to be felt.
12673
12674Chernyshev was sitting at a window in the first room with a French
12675novel in his hand. This room had probably been a music room; there was
12676still an organ in it on which some rugs were piled, and in one
12677corner stood the folding bedstead of Bennigsen's adjutant. This
12678adjutant was also there and sat dozing on the rolled-up bedding,
12679evidently exhausted by work or by feasting. Two doors led from the
12680room, one straight on into what had been the drawing room, and
12681another, on the right, to the study. Through the first door came the
12682sound of voices conversing in German and occasionally in French. In
12683that drawing room were gathered, by the Emperor's wish, not a military
12684council (the Emperor preferred indefiniteness), but certain persons
12685whose opinions he wished to know in view of the impending
12686difficulties. It was not a council of war, but, as it were, a
12687council to elucidate certain questions for the Emperor personally.
12688To this semicouncil had been invited the Swedish General Armfeldt,
12689Adjutant General Wolzogen, Wintzingerode (whom Napoleon had referred
12690to as a renegade French subject), Michaud, Toll, Count Stein who was
12691not a military man at all, and Pfuel himself, who, as Prince Andrew
12692had heard, was the mainspring of the whole affair. Prince Andrew had
12693an opportunity of getting a good look at him, for Pfuel arrived soon
12694after himself and, in passing through to the drawing room, stopped a
12695minute to speak to Chernyshev.
12696
12697At first sight, Pfuel, in his ill-made uniform of a Russian general,
12698which fitted him badly like a fancy costume, seemed familiar to Prince
12699Andrew, though he saw him now for the first time. There was about
12700him something of Weyrother, Mack, and Schmidt, and many other German
12701theorist-generals whom Prince Andrew had seen in 1805, but he was more
12702typical than any of them. Prince Andrew had never yet seen a German
12703theorist in whom all the characteristics of those others were united
12704to such an extent.
12705
12706Pfuel was short and very thin but broad-boned, of coarse, robust
12707build, broad in the hips, and with prominent shoulder blades. His face
12708was much wrinkled and his eyes deep set. His hair had evidently been
12709hastily brushed smooth in front of the temples, but stuck up behind in
12710quaint little tufts. He entered the room, looking restlessly and
12711angrily around, as if afraid of everything in that large apartment.
12712Awkwardly holding up his sword, he addressed Chernyshev and asked in
12713German where the Emperor was. One could see that he wished to pass
12714through the rooms as quickly as possible, finish with the bows and
12715greetings, and sit down to business in front of a map, where he
12716would feel at home. He nodded hurriedly in reply to Chernyshev, and
12717smiled ironically on hearing that the sovereign was inspecting the
12718fortifications that he, Pfuel, had planned in accord with his
12719theory. He muttered something to himself abruptly and in a bass voice,
12720as self-assured Germans do--it might have been "stupid fellow"... or
12721"the whole affair will be ruined," or "something absurd will come of
12722it."... Prince Andrew did not catch what he said and would have passed
12723on, but Chernyshev introduced him to Pfuel, remarking that Prince
12724Andrew was just back from Turkey where the war had terminated so
12725fortunately. Pfuel barely glanced--not so much at Prince Andrew as
12726past him--and said, with a laugh: "That must have been a fine tactical
12727war"; and, laughing contemptuously, went on into the room from which
12728the sound of voices was heard.
12729
12730Pfuel, always inclined to be irritably sarcastic, was particularly
12731disturbed that day, evidently by the fact that they had dared to
12732inspect and criticize his camp in his absence. From this short
12733interview with Pfuel, Prince Andrew, thanks to his Austerlitz
12734experiences, was able to form a clear conception of the man. Pfuel was
12735one of those hopelessly and immutably self-confident men,
12736self-confident to the point of martyrdom as only Germans are,
12737because only Germans are self-confident on the basis of an abstract
12738notion--science, that is, the supposed knowledge of absolute truth.
12739A Frenchman is self-assured because he regards himself personally,
12740both in mind and body, as irresistibly attractive to men and women. An
12741Englishman is self-assured, as being a citizen of the best-organized
12742state in the world, and therefore as an Englishman always knows what
12743he should do and knows that all he does as an Englishman is
12744undoubtedly correct. An Italian is self-assured because he is
12745excitable and easily forgets himself and other people. A Russian is
12746self-assured just because he knows nothing does not want to know
12747anything, since he does not believe that anything can be known. The
12748German's self-assurance is worst of all, stronger and more repulsive
12749than any other, because he imagines that he knows the truth-
12750science--which he himself has invented but which is for him the
12751absolute truth.
12752
12753Pfuel was evidently of that sort. He had a science--the theory of
12754oblique movements deduced by him from the history of Frederick the
12755Great's wars, and all he came across in the history of more recent
12756warfare seemed to him absurd and barbarous--monstrous collisions in
12757which so many blunders were committed by both sides that these wars
12758could not be called wars, they did not accord with the theory, and
12759therefore could not serve as material for science.
12760
12761In 1806 Pfuel had been one of those responsible, for the plan of
12762campaign that ended in Jena and Auerstadt, but he did not see the
12763least proof of the fallibility of his theory in the disasters of
12764that war. On the contrary, the deviations made from his theory were,
12765in his opinion, the sole cause of the whole disaster, and with
12766characteristically gleeful sarcasm he would remark, "There, I said the
12767whole affair would go to the devil!" Pfuel was one of those
12768theoreticians who so love their theory that they lose sight of the
12769theory's object--its practical application. His love of theory made
12770him hate everything practical, and he would not listen to it. He was
12771even pleased by failures, for failures resulting from deviations in
12772practice from the theory only proved to him the accuracy of his
12773theory.
12774
12775He said a few words to Prince Andrew and Chernyshev about the
12776present war, with the air of a man who knows beforehand that all
12777will go wrong, and who is not displeased that it should be so. The
12778unbrushed tufts of hair sticking up behind and the hastily brushed
12779hair on his temples expressed this most eloquently.
12780
12781He passed into the next room, and the deep, querulous sounds of
12782his voice were at once heard from there.
12783
12784
12785
12786
12787
12788CHAPTER XI
12789
12790
12791Prince Andrew's eyes were still following Pfuel out of the room when
12792Count Bennigsen entered hurriedly, and nodding to Bolkonski, but not
12793pausing, went into the study, giving instructions to his adjutant as
12794he went. The Emperor was following him, and Bennigsen had hastened
12795on to make some preparations and to be ready to receive the sovereign.
12796Chernyshev and Prince Andrew went out into the porch, where the
12797Emperor, who looked fatigued, was dismounting. Marquis Paulucci was
12798talking to him with particular warmth and the Emperor, with his head
12799bent to the left, was listening with a dissatisfied air. The Emperor
12800moved forward evidently wishing to end the conversation, but the
12801flushed and excited Italian, oblivious of decorum, followed him and
12802continued to speak.
12803
12804"And as for the man who advised forming this camp--the Drissa camp,"
12805said Paulucci, as the Emperor mounted the steps and noticing Prince
12806Andrew scanned his unfamiliar face, "as to that person, sire..."
12807continued Paulucci, desperately, apparently unable to restrain
12808himself, "the man who advised the Drissa camp--I see no alternative
12809but the lunatic asylum or the gallows!"
12810
12811Without heeding the end of the Italian's remarks, and as though
12812not hearing them, the Emperor, recognizing Bolkonski, addressed him
12813graciously.
12814
12815"I am very glad to see you! Go in there where they are meeting,
12816and wait for me."
12817
12818The Emperor went into the study. He was followed by Prince Peter
12819Mikhaylovich Volkonski and Baron Stein, and the door closed behind
12820them. Prince Andrew, taking advantage of the Emperor's permission,
12821accompanied Paulucci, whom he had known in Turkey, into the drawing
12822room where the council was assembled.
12823
12824Prince Peter Mikhaylovich Volkonski occupied the position, as it
12825were, of chief of the Emperor's staff. He came out of the study into
12826the drawing room with some maps which he spread on a table, and put
12827questions on which he wished to hear the opinion of the gentlemen
12828present. What had happened was that news (which afterwards proved to
12829be false) had been received during the night of a movement by the
12830French to outflank the Drissa camp.
12831
12832The first to speak was General Armfeldt who, to meet the
12833difficulty that presented itself, unexpectedly proposed a perfectly
12834new position away from the Petersburg and Moscow roads. The reason for
12835this was inexplicable (unless he wished to show that he, too, could
12836have an opinion), but he urged that at this point the army should
12837unite and there await the enemy. It was plain that Armfeldt had
12838thought out that plan long ago and now expounded it not so much to
12839answer the questions put--which, in fact, his plan did not answer-
12840as to avail himself of the opportunity to air it. It was one of the
12841millions of proposals, one as good as another, that could be made as
12842long as it was quite unknown what character the war would take. Some
12843disputed his arguments, others defended them. Young Count Toll
12844objected to the Swedish general's views more warmly than anyone
12845else, and in the course of the dispute drew from his side pocket a
12846well-filled notebook, which he asked permission to read to them. In
12847these voluminous notes Toll suggested another scheme, totally
12848different from Armfeldt's or Pfuel's plan of campaign. In answer to
12849Toll, Paulucci suggested an advance and an attack, which, he urged,
12850could alone extricate us from the present uncertainty and from the
12851trap (as he called the Drissa camp) in which we were situated.
12852
12853During all these discussions Pfuel and his interpreter, Wolzogen
12854(his "bridge" in court relations), were silent. Pfuel only snorted
12855contemptuously and turned away, to show that he would never demean
12856himself by replying to such nonsense as he was now hearing. So when
12857Prince Volkonski, who was in the chair, called on him to give his
12858opinion, he merely said:
12859
12860"Why ask me? General Armfeldt has proposed a splendid position
12861with an exposed rear, or why not this Italian gentleman's attack--very
12862fine, or a retreat, also good! Why ask me?" said he. "Why, you
12863yourselves know everything better than I do."
12864
12865But when Volkonski said, with a frown, that it was in the
12866Emperor's name that he asked his opinion, Pfuel rose and, suddenly
12867growing animated, began to speak:
12868
12869"Everything has been spoiled, everything muddled, everybody
12870thought they knew better than I did, and now you come to me! How
12871mend matters? There is nothing to mend! The principles laid down by me
12872must be strictly adhered to," said he, drumming on the table with
12873his bony fingers. "What is the difficulty? Nonsense, childishness!"
12874
12875He went up to the map and speaking rapidly began proving that no
12876eventuality could alter the efficiency of the Drissa camp, that
12877everything had been foreseen, and that if the enemy were really
12878going to outflank it, the enemy would inevitably be destroyed.
12879
12880Paulucci, who did not know German, began questioning him in
12881French. Wolzogen came to the assistance of his chief, who spoke French
12882badly, and began translating for him, hardly able to keep pace with
12883Pfuel, who was rapidly demonstrating that not only all that had
12884happened, but all that could happen, had been foreseen in his
12885scheme, and that if there were now any difficulties the whole fault
12886lay in the fact that his plan had not been precisely executed. He kept
12887laughing sarcastically, he demonstrated, and at last contemptuously
12888ceased to demonstrate, like a mathematician who ceases to prove in
12889various ways the accuracy of a problem that has already been proved.
12890Wolzogen took his place and continued to explain his views in
12891French, every now and then turning to Pfuel and saying, "Is it not so,
12892your excellency?" But Pfuel, like a man heated in a fight who
12893
12894strikes those on his own side, shouted angrily at his own supporter,
12895Wolzogen:
12896
12897"Well, of course, what more is there to explain?"
12898
12899Paulucci and Michaud both attacked Wolzogen simultaneously in
12900French. Armfeldt addressed Pfuel in German. Toll explained to
12901Volkonski in Russian. Prince Andrew listened and observed in silence.
12902
12903Of all these men Prince Andrew sympathized most with Pfuel, angry,
12904determined, and absurdly self-confident as he was. Of all those
12905present, evidently he alone was not seeking anything for himself,
12906nursed no hatred against anyone, and only desired that the plan,
12907formed on a theory arrived at by years of toil, should be carried out.
12908He was ridiculous, and unpleasantly sarcastic, but yet he inspired
12909involuntary respect by his boundless devotion to an idea. Besides
12910this, the remarks of all except Pfuel had one common trait that had
12911not been noticeable at the council of war in 1805: there was now a
12912panic fear of Napoleon's genius, which, though concealed, was
12913noticeable in every rejoinder. Everything was assumed to be possible
12914for Napoleon, they expected him from every side, and invoked his
12915terrible name to shatter each other's proposals. Pfuel alone seemed to
12916consider Napoleon a barbarian like everyone else who opposed his
12917theory. But besides this feeling of respect, Pfuel evoked pity in
12918Prince Andrew. From the tone in which the courtiers addressed him
12919and the way Paulucci had allowed himself to speak of him to the
12920Emperor, but above all from a certain desperation in Pfuel's own
12921expressions, it was clear that the others knew, and Pfuel himself
12922felt, that his fall was at hand. And despite his self-confidence and
12923grumpy German sarcasm he was pitiable, with his hair smoothly
12924brushed on the temples and sticking up in tufts behind. Though he
12925concealed the fact under a show of irritation and contempt, he was
12926evidently in despair that the sole remaining chance of verifying his
12927theory by a huge experiment and proving its soundness to the whole
12928world was slipping away from him.
12929
12930The discussions continued a long time, and the longer they lasted
12931the more heated became the disputes, culminating in shouts and
12932personalities, and the less was it possible to arrive at any general
12933conclusion from all that had been said. Prince Andrew, listening to
12934this polyglot talk and to these surmises, plans, refutations, and
12935shouts, felt nothing but amazement at what they were saying. A thought
12936that had long since and often occurred to him during his military
12937activities--the idea that there is not and cannot be any science of
12938war, and that therefore there can be no such thing as a military
12939genius--now appeared to him an obvious truth. "What theory and science
12940is possible about a matter the conditions and circumstances of which
12941are unknown and cannot be defined, especially when the strength of the
12942acting forces cannot be ascertained? No one was or is able to
12943foresee in what condition our or the enemy's armies will be in a day's
12944time, and no one can gauge the force of this or that detachment.
12945Sometimes--when there is not a coward at the front to shout, 'We are
12946cut off!' and start running, but a brave and jolly lad who shouts,
12947'Hurrah!'--a detachment of five thousand is worth thirty thousand,
12948as at Schon Grabern, while at times fifty thousand run from eight
12949thousand, as at Austerlitz. What science can there be in a matter in
12950which, as in all practical matters, nothing can be defined and
12951everything depends on innumerable conditions, the significance of
12952which is determined at a particular moment which arrives no one
12953knows when? Armfeldt says our army is cut in half, and Paulucci says
12954we have got the French army between two fires; Michaud says that the
12955worthlessness of the Drissa camp lies in having the river behind it,
12956and Pfuel says that is what constitutes its strength; Toll proposes
12957one plan, Armfeldt another, and they are all good and all bad, and the
12958advantages of any suggestions can be seen only at the moment of trial.
12959And why do they all speak of a 'military genius'? Is a man a genius
12960who can order bread to be brought up at the right time and say who
12961is to go to the right and who to the left? It is only because military
12962men are invested with pomp and power and crowds of sychophants flatter
12963power, attributing to it qualities of genius it does not possess.
12964The best generals I have known were, on the contrary, stupid or
12965absent-minded men. Bagration was the best, Napoleon himself admitted
12966that. And of Bonaparte himself! I remember his limited, self-satisfied
12967face on the field of Austerlitz. Not only does a good army commander
12968not need any special qualities, on the contrary he needs the absence
12969of the highest and best human attributes--love, poetry, tenderness,
12970and philosophic inquiring doubt. He should be limited, firmly
12971convinced that what he is doing is very important (otherwise he will
12972not have sufficient patience), and only then will he be a brave
12973leader. God forbid that he should be humane, should love, or pity,
12974or think of what is just and unjust. It is understandable that a
12975theory of their 'genius' was invented for them long ago because they
12976have power! The success of a military action depends not on them,
12977but on the man in the ranks who shouts, 'We are lost!' or who
12978shouts, 'Hurrah!' And only in the ranks can one serve with assurance
12979of being useful."
12980
12981So thought Prince Andrew as he listened to the talking, and he
12982roused himself only when Paulucci called him and everyone was leaving.
12983
12984At the review next day the Emperor asked Prince Andrew where he
12985would like to serve, and Prince Andrew lost his standing in court
12986circles forever by not asking to remain attached to the sovereign's
12987person, but for permission to serve in the army.
12988
12989
12990
12991
12992
12993CHAPTER XII
12994
12995
12996Before the beginning of the campaign, Rostov had received a letter
12997from his parents in which they told him briefly of Natasha's illness
12998and the breaking off of her engagement to Prince Andrew (which they
12999explained by Natasha's having rejected him) and again asked Nicholas
13000to retire from the army and return home. On receiving this letter,
13001Nicholas did not even make any attempt to get leave of absence or to
13002retire from the army, but wrote to his parents that he was sorry
13003Natasha was ill and her engagement broken off, and that he would do
13004all he could to meet their wishes. To Sonya he wrote separately.
13005
13006"Adored friend of my soul!" he wrote. "Nothing but honor could
13007keep me from returning to the country. But now, at the commencement of
13008the campaign, I should feel dishonored, not only in my comrades'
13009eyes but in my own, if I preferred my own happiness to my love and
13010duty to the Fatherland. But this shall be our last separation. Believe
13011me, directly the war is over, if I am still alive and still loved by
13012you, I will throw up everything and fly to you, to press you forever
13013to my ardent breast."
13014
13015It was, in fact, only the commencement of the campaign that
13016prevented Rostov from returning home as he had promised and marrying
13017Sonya. The autumn in Otradnoe with the hunting, and the winter with
13018the Christmas holidays and Sonya's love, had opened out to him a vista
13019of tranquil rural joys and peace such as he had never known before,
13020and which now allured him. "A splendid wife, children, a good pack
13021of hounds, a dozen leashes of smart borzois, agriculture, neighbors,
13022service by election..." thought he. But now the campaign was
13023beginning, and he had to remain with his regiment. And since it had to
13024be so, Nicholas Rostov, as was natural to him, felt contented with the
13025life he led in the regiment and was able to find pleasure in that
13026life.
13027
13028On his return from his furlough Nicholas, having been joyfully
13029welcomed by his comrades, was sent to obtain remounts and brought back
13030from the Ukraine excellent horses which pleased him and earned him
13031commendation from his commanders. During his absence he had been
13032promoted captain, and when the regiment was put on war footing with an
13033increase in numbers, he was again allotted his old squadron.
13034
13035The campaign began, the regiment was moved into Poland on double
13036pay, new officers arrived, new men and horses, and above all everybody
13037was infected with the merrily excited mood that goes with the
13038commencement of a war, and Rostov, conscious of his advantageous
13039position in the regiment, devoted himself entirely to the pleasures
13040and interests of military service, though he knew that sooner or later
13041he would have to relinquish them.
13042
13043The troops retired from Vilna for various complicated reasons of
13044state, political and strategic. Each step of the retreat was
13045accompanied by a complicated interplay of interests, arguments, and
13046passions at headquarters. For the Pavlograd hussars, however, the
13047whole of this retreat during the finest period of summer and with
13048sufficient supplies was a very simple and agreeable business.
13049
13050It was only at headquarters that there was depression, uneasiness,
13051and intriguing; in the body of the army they did not ask themselves
13052where they were going or why. If they regretted having to retreat,
13053it was only because they had to leave billets they had grown
13054accustomed to, or some pretty young Polish lady. If the thought that
13055things looked bad chanced to enter anyone's head, he tried to be as
13056cheerful as befits a good soldier and not to think of the general
13057trend of affairs, but only of the task nearest to hand. First they
13058camped gaily before Vilna, making acquaintance with the Polish
13059landowners, preparing for reviews and being reviewed by the Emperor
13060and other high commanders. Then came an order to retreat to Sventsyani
13061and destroy any provisions they could not carry away with them.
13062Sventsyani was remembered by the hussars only as the drunken camp, a
13063name the whole army gave to their encampment there, and because many
13064complaints were made against the troops, who, taking advantage of
13065the order to collect provisions, took also horses, carriages, and
13066carpets from the Polish proprietors. Rostov remembered Sventsyani,
13067because on the first day of their arrival at that small town he
13068changed his sergeant major and was unable to manage all the drunken
13069men of his squadron who, unknown to him, had appropriated five barrels
13070of old beer. From Sventsyani they retired farther and farther to
13071Drissa, and thence again beyond Drissa, drawing near to the frontier
13072of Russia proper.
13073
13074On the thirteenth of July the Pavlograds took part in a serious
13075action for the first time.
13076
13077On the twelfth of July, on the eve of that action, there was a heavy
13078storm of rain and hail. In general, the summer of 1812 was
13079remarkable for its storms.
13080
13081The two Pavlograd squadrons were bivouacking on a field of rye,
13082which was already in ear but had been completely trodden down by
13083cattle and horses. The rain was descending in torrents, and Rostov,
13084with a young officer named Ilyin, his protege, was sitting in a
13085hastily constructed shelter. An officer of their regiment, with long
13086mustaches extending onto his cheeks, who after riding to the staff had
13087been overtaken by the rain, entered Rostov's shelter.
13088
13089"I have come from the staff, Count. Have you heard of Raevski's
13090exploit?"
13091
13092And the officer gave them details of the Saltanov battle, which he
13093had heard at the staff.
13094
13095Rostov, smoking his pipe and turning his head about as the water
13096trickled down his neck, listened inattentively, with an occasional
13097glance at Ilyin, who was pressing close to him. This officer, a lad of
13098sixteen who had recently joined the regiment, was now in the same
13099relation to Nicholas that Nicholas had been to Denisov seven years
13100before. Ilyin tried to imitate Rostov in everything and adored him
13101as a girl might have done.
13102
13103Zdrzhinski, the officer with the long mustache, spoke
13104grandiloquently of the Saltanov dam being "a Russian Thermopylae," and
13105of how a deed worthy of antiquity had been performed by General
13106Raevski. He recounted how Raevski had led his two sons onto the dam
13107under terrific fire and had charged with them beside him. Rostov heard
13108the story and not only said nothing to encourage Zdrzhinski's
13109enthusiasm but, on the contrary, looked like a man ashamed of what
13110he was hearing, though with no intention of contradicting it. Since
13111the campaigns of Austerlitz and of 1807 Rostov knew by experience that
13112men always lie when describing military exploits, as he himself had
13113done when recounting them; besides that, he had experience enough to
13114know that nothing happens in war at all as we can imagine or relate
13115it. And so he did not like Zdrzhinski's tale, nor did he like
13116Zdrzhinski himself who, with his mustaches extending over his
13117cheeks, bent low over the face of his hearer, as was his habit, and
13118crowded Rostov in the narrow shanty. Rostov looked at him in
13119silence. "In the first place, there must have been such a confusion
13120and crowding on the dam that was being attacked that if Raevski did
13121lead his sons there, it could have had no effect except perhaps on
13122some dozen men nearest to him," thought he, "the rest could not have
13123seen how or with whom Raevski came onto the dam. And even those who
13124did see it would not have been much stimulated by it, for what had
13125they to do with Raevski's tender paternal feelings when their own
13126skins were in danger? And besides, the fate of the Fatherland did
13127not depend on whether they took the Saltanov dam or not, as we are
13128told was the case at Thermopylae. So why should he have made such a
13129sacrifice? And why expose his own children in the battle? I would
13130not have taken my brother Petya there, or even Ilyin, who's a stranger
13131to me but a nice lad, but would have tried to put them somewhere under
13132cover," Nicholas continued to think, as he listened to Zdrzhinski. But
13133he did not express his thoughts, for in such matters, too, he had
13134gained experience. He knew that this tale redounded to the glory of
13135our arms and so one had to pretend not to doubt it. And he acted
13136accordingly.
13137
13138"I can't stand this any more," said Ilyin, noticing that Rostov
13139did not relish Zdrzhinski's conversation. "My stockings and shirt...
13140and the water is running on my seat! I'll go and look for shelter. The
13141rain seems less heavy."
13142
13143Ilyin went out and Zdrzhinski rode away.
13144
13145Five minutes later Ilyin, splashing through the mud, came running
13146back to the shanty.
13147
13148"Hurrah! Rostov, come quick! I've found it! About two hundred
13149yards away there's a tavern where ours have already gathered. We can
13150at least get dry there, and Mary Hendrikhovna's there."
13151
13152Mary Hendrikhovna was the wife of the regimental doctor, a pretty
13153young German woman he had married in Poland. The doctor, whether
13154from lack of means or because he did not like to part from his young
13155wife in the early days of their marriage, took her about with him
13156wherever the hussar regiment went and his jealousy had become a
13157standing joke among the hussar officers.
13158
13159Rostov threw his cloak over his shoulders, shouted to Lavrushka to
13160follow with the things, and--now slipping in the mud, now splashing
13161right through it--set off with Ilyin in the lessening rain and the
13162darkness that was occasionally rent by distant lightning.
13163
13164"Rostov, where are you?"
13165
13166"Here. What lightning!" they called to one another.
13167
13168
13169
13170
13171
13172CHAPTER XIII
13173
13174
13175In the tavern, before which stood the doctor's covered cart, there
13176were already some five officers. Mary Hendrikhovna, a plump little
13177blonde German, in a dressing jacket and nightcap, was sitting on a
13178broad bench in the front corner. Her husband, the doctor, lay asleep
13179behind her. Rostov and Ilyin, on entering the room, were welcomed with
13180merry shouts and laughter.
13181
13182"Dear me, how jolly we are!" said Rostov laughing.
13183
13184"And why do you stand there gaping?"
13185
13186"What swells they are! Why, the water streams from them! Don't
13187make our drawing room so wet."
13188
13189"Don't mess Mary Hendrikhovna's dress!" cried other voices.
13190
13191Rostov and Ilyin hastened to find a corner where they could change
13192into dry clothes without offending Mary Hendrikhovna's modesty. They
13193were going into a tiny recess behind a partition to change, but
13194found it completely filled by three officers who sat playing cards
13195by the light of a solitary candle on an empty box, and these
13196officers would on no account yield their position. Mary Hendrikhovna
13197obliged them with the loan of a petticoat to be used as a curtain, and
13198behind that screen Rostov and Ilyin, helped by Lavrushka who had
13199brought their kits, changed their wet things for dry ones.
13200
13201A fire was made up in the dilapidated brick stove. A board was
13202found, fixed on two saddles and covered with a horsecloth, a small
13203samovar was produced and a cellaret and half a bottle of rum, and
13204having asked Mary Hendrikhovna to preside, they all crowded round her.
13205One offered her a clean handkerchief to wipe her charming hands,
13206another spread a jacket under her little feet to keep them from the
13207damp, another hung his coat over the window to keep out the draft, and
13208yet another waved the flies off her husband's face, lest he should
13209wake up.
13210
13211"Leave him alone," said Mary Hendrikhovna, smiling timidly and
13212happily. "He is sleeping well as it is, after a sleepless night."
13213
13214"Oh, no, Mary Hendrikhovna," replied the officer, "one must look
13215after the doctor. Perhaps he'll take pity on me someday, when it comes
13216to cutting off a leg or an arm for me."
13217
13218There were only three tumblers, the water was so muddy that one
13219could not make out whether the tea was strong or weak, and the samovar
13220held only six tumblers of water, but this made it all the pleasanter
13221to take turns in order of seniority to receive one's tumbler from Mary
13222Hendrikhovna's plump little hands with their short and not overclean
13223nails. All the officers appeared to be, and really were, in love
13224with her that evening. Even those playing cards behind the partition
13225soon left their game and came over to the samovar, yielding to the
13226general mood of courting Mary Hendrikhovna. She, seeing herself
13227surrounded by such brilliant and polite young men, beamed with
13228satisfaction, try as she might to hide it, and perturbed as she
13229evidently was each time her husband moved in his sleep behind her.
13230
13231There was only one spoon, sugar was more plentiful than anything
13232else, but it took too long to dissolve, so it was decided that Mary
13233Hendrikhovna should stir the sugar for everyone in turn. Rostov
13234received his tumbler, and adding some rum to it asked Mary
13235Hendrikhovna to stir it.
13236
13237"But you take it without sugar?" she said, smiling all the time,
13238as if everything she said and everything the others said was very
13239amusing and had a double meaning.
13240
13241"It is not the sugar I want, but only that your little hand should
13242stir my tea."
13243
13244Mary Hendrikhovna assented and began looking for the spoon which
13245someone meanwhile had pounced on.
13246
13247"Use your finger, Mary Hendrikhovna, it will be still nicer," said
13248Rostov.
13249
13250"Too hot!" she replied, blushing with pleasure.
13251
13252Ilyin put a few drops of rum into the bucket of water and brought it
13253to Mary Hendrikhovna, asking her to stir it with her finger.
13254
13255"This is my cup," said he. "Only dip your finger in it and I'll
13256drink it all up."
13257
13258When they had emptied the samovar, Rostov took a pack of cards and
13259proposed that they should play "Kings" with Mary Hendrikhovna. They
13260drew lots to settle who should make up her set. At Rostov's suggestion
13261it was agreed that whoever became "King" should have the right to kiss
13262Mary Hendrikhovna's hand, and that the "Booby" should go to refill and
13263reheat the samovar for the doctor when the latter awoke.
13264
13265"Well, but supposing Mary Hendrikhovna is 'King'?" asked Ilyin.
13266
13267"As it is, she is Queen, and her word is law!"
13268
13269They had hardly begun to play before the doctor's disheveled head
13270suddenly appeared from behind Mary Hendrikhovna. He had been awake for
13271some time, listening to what was being said, and evidently found
13272nothing entertaining or amusing in what was going on. His face was sad
13273and depressed. Without greeting the officers, he scratched himself and
13274asked to be allowed to pass as they were blocking the way. As soon
13275as he had left the room all the officers burst into loud laughter
13276and Mary Hendrikhovna blushed till her eyes filled with tears and
13277thereby became still more attractive to them. Returning from the yard,
13278the doctor told his wife (who had ceased to smile so happily, and
13279looked at him in alarm, awaiting her sentence) that the rain had
13280ceased and they must go to sleep in their covered cart, or
13281everything in it would be stolen.
13282
13283"But I'll send an orderly.... Two of them!" said Rostov. "What an
13284idea, doctor!"
13285
13286"I'll stand guard on it myself!" said Ilyin.
13287
13288"No, gentlemen, you have had your sleep, but I have not slept for
13289two nights," replied the doctor, and he sat down morosely beside his
13290wife, waiting for the game to end.
13291
13292Seeing his gloomy face as he frowned at his wife, the officers
13293grew still merrier, and some of them could not refrain from
13294laughter, for which they hurriedly sought plausible pretexts. When
13295he had gone, taking his wife with him, and had settled down with her
13296in their covered cart, the officers lay down in the tavern, covering
13297themselves with their wet cloaks, but they did not sleep for a long
13298time; now they exchanged remarks, recalling the doctor's uneasiness
13299and his wife's delight, now they ran out into the porch and reported
13300what was taking place in the covered trap. Several times Rostov,
13301covering his head, tried to go to sleep, but some remark would
13302arouse him and conversation would be resumed, to the accompaniment
13303of unreasoning, merry, childlike laughter.
13304
13305
13306
13307
13308
13309CHAPTER XIV
13310
13311
13312It was nearly three o'clock but no one was yet asleep, when the
13313quartermaster appeared with an order to move on to the little town
13314of Ostrovna. Still laughing and talking, the officers began
13315hurriedly getting ready and again boiled some muddy water
13316in the samovar. But Rostov went off to his squadron without waiting
13317for tea. Day was breaking, the rain had ceased, and the clouds were
13318dispersing. It felt damp and cold, especially in clothes that were
13319still moist. As they left the tavern in the twilight of the dawn,
13320Rostov and Ilyin both glanced under the wet and glistening leather
13321hood of the doctor's cart, from under the apron of which his feet were
13322sticking out, and in the middle of which his wife's nightcap was
13323visible and her sleepy breathing audible.
13324
13325"She really is a dear little thing," said Rostov to Ilyin, who was
13326following him.
13327
13328"A charming woman!" said Ilyin, with all the gravity of a boy of
13329sixteen.
13330
13331Half an hour later the squadron was lined up on the road. The
13332command was heard to "mount" and the soldiers crossed themselves and
13333mounted. Rostov riding in front gave the order "Forward!" and the
13334hussars, with clanking sabers and subdued talk, their horses' hoofs
13335splashing in the mud, defiled in fours and moved along the broad
13336road planted with birch trees on each side, following the infantry and
13337a battery that had gone on in front.
13338
13339Tattered, blue-purple clouds, reddening in the east, were scudding
13340before the wind. It was growing lighter and lighter. That curly
13341grass which always grows by country roadsides became clearly
13342visible, still wet with the night's rain; the drooping branches of the
13343birches, also wet, swayed in the wind and flung down bright drops of
13344water to one side. The soldiers' faces were more and more clearly
13345visible. Rostov, always closely followed by Ilyin, rode along the side
13346of the road between two rows of birch trees.
13347
13348When campaigning, Rostov allowed himself the indulgence of riding
13349not a regimental but a Cossack horse. A judge of horses and a
13350sportsman, he had lately procured himself a large, fine, mettlesome,
13351Donets horse, dun-colored, with light mane and tail, and when he
13352rode it no one could outgallop him. To ride this horse was a
13353pleasure to him, and he thought of the horse, of the morning, of the
13354doctor's wife, but not once of the impending danger.
13355
13356Formerly, when going into action, Rostov had felt afraid; now he had
13357not the least feeling of fear. He was fearless, not because he had
13358grown used to being under fire (one cannot grow used to danger), but
13359because he had learned how to manage his thoughts when in danger. He
13360had grown accustomed when going into action to think about anything
13361but what would seem most likely to interest him--the impending danger.
13362During the first period of his service, hard as he tried and much as
13363he reproached himself with cowardice, he had not been able to do this,
13364but with time it had come of itself. Now he rode beside Ilyin under
13365the birch trees, occasionally plucking leaves from a branch that met
13366his hand, sometimes touching his horse's side with his foot, or,
13367without turning round, handing a pipe he had finished to an hussar
13368riding behind him, with as calm and careless an air as though he
13369were merely out for a ride. He glanced with pity at the excited face
13370of Ilyin, who talked much and in great agitation. He knew from
13371experience the tormenting expectation of terror and death the cornet
13372was suffering and knew that only time could help him.
13373
13374As soon as the sun appeared in a clear strip of sky beneath the
13375clouds, the wind fell, as if it dared not spoil the beauty of the
13376summer morning after the storm; drops still continued to fall, but
13377vertically now, and all was still. The whole sun appeared on the
13378horizon and disappeared behind a long narrow cloud that hung above it.
13379A few minutes later it reappeared brighter still from behind the top
13380of the cloud, tearing its edge. Everything grew bright and
13381glittered. And with that light, and as if in reply to it, came the
13382sound of guns ahead of them.
13383
13384Before Rostov had had time to consider and determine the distance of
13385that firing, Count Ostermann-Tolstoy's adjutant came galloping from
13386Vitebsk with orders to advance at a trot along the road.
13387
13388The squadron overtook and passed the infantry and the battery--which
13389had also quickened their pace--rode down a hill, and passing through
13390an empty and deserted village again ascended. The horses began to
13391lather and the men to flush.
13392
13393"Halt! Dress your ranks!" the order of the regimental commander
13394was heard ahead. "Forward by the left. Walk, march!" came the order
13395from in front.
13396
13397And the hussars, passing along the line of troops on the left
13398flank of our position, halted behind our Uhlans who were in the
13399front line. To the right stood our infantry in a dense column: they
13400were the reserve. Higher up the hill, on the very horizon, our guns
13401were visible through the wonderfully clear air, brightly illuminated
13402by slanting morning sunbeams. In front, beyond a hollow dale, could be
13403seen the enemy's columns and guns. Our advanced line, already in
13404action, could be heard briskly exchanging shots with the enemy in
13405the dale.
13406
13407At these sounds, long unheard, Rostov's spirits rose, as at the
13408strains of the merriest music. Trap-ta-ta-tap! cracked the shots,
13409now together, now several quickly one after another. Again all was
13410silent and then again it sounded as if someone were walking on
13411detonators and exploding them.
13412
13413The hussars remained in the same place for about an hour. A
13414cannonade began. Count Ostermann with his suite rode up behind the
13415squadron, halted, spoke to the commander of the regiment, and rode
13416up the hill to the guns.
13417
13418After Ostermann had gone, a command rang out to the Uhlans.
13419
13420"Form column! Prepare to charge!"
13421
13422The infantry in front of them parted into platoons to allow the
13423cavalry to pass. The Uhlans started, the streamers on their spears
13424fluttering, and trotted downhill toward the French cavalry which was
13425seen below to the left.
13426
13427As soon as the Uhlans descended the hill, the hussars were ordered
13428up the hill to support the battery. As they took the places vacated by
13429the Uhlans, bullets came from the front, whining and whistling, but
13430fell spent without taking effect.
13431
13432The sounds, which he had not heard for so long, had an even more
13433pleasurable and exhilarating effect on Rostov than the previous sounds
13434of firing. Drawing himself up, he viewed the field of battle opening
13435out before him from the hill, and with his whole soul followed the
13436movement of the Uhlans. They swooped down close to the French
13437dragoons, something confused happened there amid the smoke, and five
13438minutes later our Uhlans were galloping back, not to the place they
13439had occupied but more to the left, and among the orange-colored Uhlans
13440on chestnut horses and behind them, in a large group, blue French
13441dragoons on gray horses could be seen.
13442
13443
13444
13445
13446
13447CHAPTER XV
13448
13449
13450Rostov, with his keen sportsman's eye, was one of the first to catch
13451sight of these blue French dragoons pursuing our Uhlans. Nearer and
13452nearer in disorderly crowds came the Uhlans and the French dragoons
13453pursuing them. He could already see how these men, who looked so small
13454at the foot of the hill, jostled and overtook one another, waving
13455their arms and their sabers in the air.
13456
13457Rostov gazed at what was happening before him as at a hunt. He
13458felt instinctively that if the hussars struck at the French dragoons
13459now, the latter could not withstand them, but if a charge was to be
13460made it must be done now, at that very moment, or it would be too
13461late. He looked around. A captain, standing beside him, was gazing
13462like himself with eyes fixed on the cavalry below them.
13463
13464"Andrew Sevastyanych!" said Rostov. "You know, we could crush
13465them...."
13466
13467"A fine thing too!" replied the captain, "and really..."
13468
13469Rostov, without waiting to hear him out, touched his horse, galloped
13470to the front of his squadron, and before he had time to finish
13471giving the word of command, the whole squadron, sharing his feeling,
13472was following him. Rostov himself did not know how or why he did it.
13473He acted as he did when hunting, without reflecting or considering. He
13474saw the dragoons near and that they were galloping in disorder; he
13475knew they could not withstand an attack--knew there was only that
13476moment and that if he let it slip it would not return. The bullets
13477were whining and whistling so stimulatingly around him and his horse
13478was so eager to go that he could not restrain himself. He touched
13479his horse, gave the word of command, and immediately, hearing behind
13480him the tramp of the horses of his deployed squadron, rode at full
13481trot downhill toward the dragoons. Hardly had they reached the
13482bottom of the hill before their pace instinctively changed to a
13483gallop, which grew faster and faster as they drew nearer to our Uhlans
13484and the French dragoons who galloped after them. The dragoons were now
13485close at hand. On seeing the hussars, the foremost began to turn,
13486while those behind began to halt. With the same feeling with which
13487he had galloped across the path of a wolf, Rostov gave rein to his
13488Donets horse and galloped to intersect the path of the dragoons'
13489disordered lines. One Uhlan stopped, another who was on foot flung
13490himself to the ground to avoid being knocked over, and a riderless
13491horse fell in among the hussars. Nearly all the French dragoons were
13492galloping back. Rostov, picking out one on a gray horse, dashed
13493after him. On the way he came upon a bush, his gallant horse cleared
13494it, and almost before he had righted himself in his saddle he saw that
13495he would immediately overtake the enemy he had selected. That
13496Frenchman, by his uniform an officer, was going at a gallop, crouching
13497on his gray horse and urging it on with his saber. In another moment
13498Rostov's horse dashed its breast against the hindquarters of the
13499officer's horse, almost knocking it over, and at the same instant
13500Rostov, without knowing why, raised his saber and struck the Frenchman
13501with it.
13502
13503The instant he had done this, all Rostov's animation vanished. The
13504officer fell, not so much from the blow--which had but slightly cut
13505his arm above the elbow--as from the shock to his horse and from
13506fright. Rostov reined in his horse, and his eyes sought his foe to see
13507whom he had vanquished. The French dragoon officer was hopping with
13508one foot on the ground, the other being caught in the stirrup. His
13509eyes, screwed up with fear as if he every moment expected another
13510blow, gazed up at Rostov with shrinking terror. His pale and
13511mud-stained face--fair and young, with a dimple in the chin and
13512light-blue eyes--was not an enemy's face at all suited to a
13513battlefield, but a most ordinary, homelike face. Before Rostov had
13514decided what to do with him, the officer cried, "I surrender!" He
13515hurriedly but vainly tried to get his foot out of the stirrup and
13516did not remove his frightened blue eyes from Rostov's face. Some
13517hussars who galloped up disengaged his foot and helped him into the
13518saddle. On all sides, the hussars were busy with the dragoons; one was
13519wounded, but though his face was bleeding, he would not give up his
13520horse; another was perched up behind an hussar with his arms round
13521him; a third was being helped by an hussar to mount his horse. In
13522front, the French infantry were firing as they ran. The hussars
13523galloped hastily back with their prisoners. Rostov galloped back
13524with the rest, aware of an unpleasant feeling of depression in his
13525heart. Something vague and confused, which he could not at all account
13526for, had come over him with the capture of that officer and the blow
13527he had dealt him.
13528
13529Count Ostermann-Tolstoy met the returning hussars, sent for
13530Rostov, thanked him, and said he would report his gallant deed to
13531the Emperor and would recommend him for a St. George's Cross. When
13532sent for by Count Ostermann, Rostov, remembering that he had charged
13533without orders, felt sure his commander was sending for him to
13534punish him for breach of discipline. Ostermann's flattering words
13535and promise of a reward should therefore have struck him all the
13536more pleasantly, but he still felt that same vaguely disagreeable
13537feeling of moral nausea. "But what on earth is worrying me?" he
13538asked himself as he rode back from the general. "Ilyin? No, he's safe.
13539Have I disgraced myself in any way? No, that's not it." Something
13540else, resembling remorse, tormented him. "Yes, oh yes, that French
13541officer with the dimple. And I remember how my arm paused when I
13542raised it."
13543
13544Rostov saw the prisoners being led away and galloped after them to
13545have a look at his Frenchman with the dimple on his chin. He was
13546sitting in his foreign uniform on an hussar packhorse and looked
13547anxiously about him; The sword cut on his arm could scarcely be called
13548a wound. He glanced at Rostov with a feigned smile and waved his
13549hand in greeting. Rostov still had the same indefinite feeling, as
13550of shame.
13551
13552All that day and the next his friends and comrades noticed that
13553Rostov, without being dull or angry, was silent, thoughtful, and
13554preoccupied. He drank reluctantly, tried to remain alone, and kept
13555turning something over in his mind.
13556
13557Rostov was always thinking about that brilliant exploit of his,
13558which to his amazement had gained him the St. George's Cross and
13559even given him a reputation for bravery, and there was something he
13560could not at all understand. "So others are even more afraid than I
13561am!" he thought. "So that's all there is in what is called heroism!
13562And heroism! And did I do it for my country's sake? And how was he
13563to blame, with his dimple and blue eyes? And how frightened he was! He
13564thought that I should kill him. Why should I kill him? My hand
13565trembled. And they have given me a St. George's Cross.... I can't make
13566it out at all."
13567
13568But while Nicholas was considering these questions and still could
13569reach no clear solution of what puzzled him so, the wheel of fortune
13570in the service, as often happens, turned in his favor. After the
13571affair at Ostrovna he was brought into notice, received command of
13572an hussar battalion, and when a brave officer was needed he was
13573chosen.
13574
13575
13576
13577
13578
13579CHAPTER XVI
13580
13581
13582On receiving news of Natasha's illness, the countess, though not
13583quite well yet and still weak, went to Moscow with Petya and the
13584rest of the household, and the whole family moved from Marya
13585Dmitrievna's house to their own and settled down in town.
13586
13587Natasha's illness was so serious that, fortunately for her and for
13588her parents, the consideration of all that had caused the illness, her
13589conduct and the breaking off of her engagement, receded into the
13590background. She was so ill that it was impossible for them to consider
13591in how far she was to blame for what had happened. She could not eat
13592or sleep, grew visibly thinner, coughed, and, as the doctors made them
13593feel, was in danger. They could not think of anything but how to
13594help her. Doctors came to see her singly and in consultation, talked
13595much in French, German, and Latin, blamed one another, and
13596prescribed a great variety of medicines for all the diseases known
13597to them, but the simple idea never occurred to any of them that they
13598could not know the disease Natasha was suffering from, as no disease
13599suffered by a live man can be known, for every living person has his
13600own peculiarities and always has his own peculiar, personal, novel,
13601complicated disease, unknown to medicine--not a disease of the
13602lungs, liver, skin, heart, nerves, and so on mentioned in medical
13603books, but a disease consisting of one of the innumerable combinations
13604of the maladies of those organs. This simple thought could not occur
13605to the doctors (as it cannot occur to a wizard that he is unable to
13606work his charms) because the business of their lives was to cure,
13607and they received money for it and had spent the best years of their
13608lives on that business. But, above all, that thought was kept out of
13609their minds by the fact that they saw they were really useful, as in
13610fact they were to the whole Rostov family. Their usefulness did not
13611depend on making the patient swallow substances for the most part
13612harmful (the harm was scarcely perceptible, as they were given in
13613small doses), but they were useful, necessary, and indispensable
13614because they satisfied a mental need of the invalid and of those who
13615loved her--and that is why there are, and always will be,
13616pseudo-healers, wise women, homeopaths, and allopaths. They
13617satisfied that eternal human need for hope of relief, for sympathy,
13618and that something should be done, which is felt by those who are
13619suffering. They satisfied the need seen in its most elementary form in
13620a child, when it wants to have a place rubbed that has been hurt. A
13621child knocks itself and runs at once to the arms of its mother or
13622nurse to have the aching spot rubbed or kissed, and it feels better
13623when this is done. The child cannot believe that the strongest and
13624wisest of its people have no remedy for its pain, and the hope of
13625relief and the expression of its mother's sympathy while she rubs
13626the bump comforts it. The doctors were of use to Natasha because
13627they kissed and rubbed her bump, assuring her that it would soon
13628pass if only the coachman went to the chemist's in the Arbat and got a
13629powder and some pills in a pretty box of a ruble and seventy kopeks,
13630and if she took those powders in boiled water at intervals of
13631precisely two hours, neither more nor less.
13632
13633What would Sonya and the count and countess have done, how would
13634they have looked, if nothing had been done, if there had not been
13635those pills to give by the clock, the warm drinks, the chicken
13636cutlets, and all the other details of life ordered by the doctors, the
13637carrying out of which supplied an occupation and consolation to the
13638family circle? How would the count have borne his dearly loved
13639daughter's illness had he not known that it was costing him a thousand
13640rubles, and that he would not grudge thousands more to benefit her, or
13641had he not known that if her illness continued he would not grudge yet
13642other thousands and would take her abroad for consultations there, and
13643had he not been able to explain the details of how Metivier and Feller
13644had not understood the symptoms, but Frise had, and Mudrov had
13645diagnosed them even better? What would the countess have done had
13646she not been able sometimes to scold the invalid for not strictly
13647obeying the doctor's orders?
13648
13649"You'll never get well like that," she would say, forgetting her
13650grief in her vexation, "if you won't obey the doctor and take your
13651medicine at the right time! You mustn't trifle with it, you know, or
13652it may turn to pneumonia," she would go on, deriving much comfort from
13653the utterance of that foreign word, incomprehensible to others as well
13654as to herself.
13655
13656What would Sonya have done without the glad consciousness that she
13657had not undressed during the first three nights, in order to be
13658ready to carry out all the doctor's injunctions with precision, and
13659that she still kept awake at night so as not to miss the proper time
13660when the slightly harmful pills in the little gilt box had to be
13661administered? Even to Natasha herself it was pleasant to see that so
13662many sacrifices were being made for her sake, and to know that she had
13663to take medicine at certain hours, though she declared that no
13664medicine would cure her and that it was all nonsense. And it was
13665even pleasant to be able to show, by disregarding the orders, that she
13666did not believe in medical treatment and did not value her life.
13667
13668The doctor came every day, felt her pulse, looked at her tongue, and
13669regardless of her grief-stricken face joked with her. But when he
13670had gone into another room, to which the countess hurriedly followed
13671him, he assumed a grave air and thoughtfully shaking his head said
13672that though there was danger, he had hopes of the effect of this
13673last medicine and one must wait and see, that the malady was chiefly
13674mental, but... And the countess, trying to conceal the action from
13675herself and from him, slipped a gold coin into his hand and always
13676returned to the patient with a more tranquil mind.
13677
13678The symptoms of Natasha's illness were that she ate little, slept
13679little, coughed, and was always low-spirited. The doctors said that
13680she could not get on without medical treatment, so they kept her in
13681the stifling atmosphere of the town, and the Rostovs did not move to
13682the country that summer of 1812.
13683
13684In spite of the many pills she swallowed and the drops and powders
13685out of the little bottles and boxes of which Madame Schoss who was
13686fond of such things made a large collection, and in spite of being
13687deprived of the country life to which she was accustomed, youth
13688prevailed. Natasha's grief began to be overlaid by the impressions
13689of daily life, it ceased to press so painfully on her heart, it
13690gradually faded into the past, and she began to recover physically.
13691
13692
13693
13694
13695
13696CHAPTER XVII
13697
13698
13699Natasha was calmer but no happier. She not merely avoided all
13700external forms of pleasure--balls, promenades, concerts, and theaters-
13701but she never laughed without a sound of tears in her laughter. She
13702could not sing. As soon as she began to laugh, or tried to sing by
13703herself, tears choked her: tears of remorse, tears at the recollection
13704of those pure times which could never return, tears of vexation that
13705she should so uselessly have ruined her young life which might have
13706been so happy. Laughter and singing in particular seemed to her like a
13707blasphemy, in face of her sorrow. Without any need of
13708self-restraint, no wish to coquet ever entered her head. She said
13709and felt at that time that no man was more to her than Nastasya
13710Ivanovna, the buffoon. Something stood sentinel within her and forbade
13711her every joy. Besides, she had lost all the old interests of her
13712carefree girlish life that had been so full of hope. The previous
13713autumn, the hunting, "Uncle," and the Christmas holidays spent with
13714Nicholas at Otradnoe were what she recalled oftenest and most
13715painfully. What would she not have given to bring back even a single
13716day of that time! But it was gone forever. Her presentiment at the
13717time had not deceived her--that that state of freedom and readiness
13718for any enjoyment would not return again. Yet it was necessary to live
13719on.
13720
13721It comforted her to reflect that she was not better as she had
13722formerly imagined, but worse, much worse, than anybody else in the
13723world. But this was not enough. She knew that, and asked herself,
13724"What next?" But there was nothing to come. There was no joy in
13725life, yet life was passing. Natasha apparently tried not to be a
13726burden or a hindrance to anyone, but wanted nothing for herself. She
13727kept away from everyone in the house and felt at ease only with her
13728brother Petya. She liked to be with him better than with the others,
13729and when alone with him she sometimes laughed. She hardly ever left
13730the house and of those who came to see them was glad to see only one
13731person, Pierre. It would have been impossible to treat her with more
13732delicacy, greater care, and at the same time more seriously than did
13733Count Bezukhov. Natasha unconsciously felt this delicacy and so
13734found great pleasure in his society. But she was not even grateful
13735to him for it; nothing good on Pierre's part seemed to her to be an
13736effort, it seemed so natural for him to be kind to everyone that there
13737was no merit in his kindness. Sometimes Natasha noticed
13738embarrassment and awkwardness on his part in her presence,
13739especially when he wanted to do something to please her, or feared
13740that something they spoke of would awaken memories distressing to her.
13741She noticed this and attributed it to his general kindness and
13742shyness, which she imagined must be the same toward everyone as it was
13743to her. After those involuntary words--that if he were free he would
13744have asked on his knees for her hand and her love--uttered at a moment
13745when she was so strongly agitated, Pierre never spoke to Natasha of
13746his feelings; and it seemed plain to her that those words, which had
13747then so comforted her, were spoken as all sorts of meaningless words
13748are spoken to comfort a crying child. It was not because Pierre was
13749a married man, but because Natasha felt very strongly with him that
13750moral barrier the absence of which she had experienced with Kuragin
13751that it never entered her head that the relations between him and
13752herself could lead to love on her part, still less on his, or even
13753to the kind of tender, self-conscious, romantic friendship between a
13754man and a woman of which she had known several instances.
13755
13756Before the end of the fast of St. Peter, Agrafena Ivanovna Belova, a
13757country neighbor of the Rostovs, came to Moscow to pay her devotions
13758at the shrines of the Moscow saints. She suggested that Natasha should
13759fast and prepare for Holy Communion, and Natasha gladly welcomed the
13760idea. Despite the doctor's orders that she should not go out early
13761in the morning, Natasha insisted on fasting and preparing for the
13762sacrament, not as they generally prepared for it in the Rostov
13763family by attending three services in their own house, but as Agrafena
13764Ivanovna did, by going to church every day for a week and not once
13765missing Vespers, Matins, or Mass.
13766
13767The countess was pleased with Natasha's zeal; after the poor results
13768of the medical treatment, in the depths of her heart she hoped that
13769prayer might help her daughter more than medicines and, though not
13770without fear and concealing it from the doctor, she agreed to
13771Natasha's wish and entrusted her to Belova. Agrafena Ivanovna used
13772to come to wake Natasha at three in the morning, but generally found
13773her already awake. She was afraid of being late for Matins. Hastily
13774washing, and meekly putting on her shabbiest dress and an old
13775mantilla, Natasha, shivering in the fresh air, went out into the
13776deserted streets lit by the clear light of dawn. By Agrafena
13777Ivanovna's advice Natasha prepared herself not in their own parish,
13778but at a church where, according to the devout Agrafena Ivanovna,
13779the priest was a man of very severe and lofty life. There were never
13780many people in the church; Natasha always stood beside Belova in the
13781customary place before an icon of the Blessed Virgin, let into the
13782screen before the choir on the left side, and a feeling, new to her,
13783of humility before something great and incomprehensible, seized her
13784when at that unusual morning hour, gazing at the dark face of the
13785Virgin illuminated by the candles burning before it and by the morning
13786light falling from the window, she listened to the words of the
13787service which she tried to follow with understanding. When she
13788understood them her personal feeling became interwoven in the
13789prayers with shades of its own. When she did not understand, it was
13790sweeter still to think that the wish to understand everything is
13791pride, that it is impossible to understand all, that it is only
13792necessary to believe and to commit oneself to God, whom she felt
13793guiding her soul at those moments. She crossed herself, bowed low, and
13794when she did not understand, in horror at her own vileness, simply
13795asked God to forgive her everything, everything, to have mercy upon
13796her. The prayers to which she surrendered herself most of all were
13797those of repentance. On her way home at an early hour when she met
13798no one but bricklayers going to work or men sweeping the street, and
13799everybody within the houses was still asleep, Natasha experienced a
13800feeling new to her, a sense of the possibility of correcting her
13801faults, the possibility of a new, clean life, and of happiness.
13802
13803During the whole week she spent in this way, that feeling grew every
13804day. And the happiness of taking communion, or "communing" as Agrafena
13805Ivanovna, joyously playing with the word, called it, seemed to Natasha
13806so great that she felt she should never live till that blessed Sunday.
13807
13808But the happy day came, and on that memorable Sunday, when,
13809dressed in white muslin, she returned home after communion, for the
13810first time for many months she felt calm and not oppressed by the
13811thought of the life that lay before her.
13812
13813The doctor who came to see her that day ordered her to continue
13814the powders he had prescribed a fortnight previously.
13815
13816"She must certainly go on taking them morning and evening," said he,
13817evidently sincerely satisfied with his success. "Only, please be
13818particular about it.
13819
13820"Be quite easy," he continued playfully, as he adroitly took the
13821gold coin in his palm. "She will soon be singing and frolicking about.
13822The last medicine has done her a very great deal of good. She has
13823freshened up very much."
13824
13825The countess, with a cheerful expression on her face, looked down at
13826her nails and spat a little for luck as she returned to the drawing
13827room.
13828
13829
13830
13831
13832
13833CHAPTER XVIII
13834
13835
13836At the beginning of July more and more disquieting reports about the
13837war began to spread in Moscow; people spoke of an appeal by the
13838Emperor to the people, and of his coming himself from the army to
13839Moscow. And as up to the eleventh of July no manifesto or appeal had
13840been received, exaggerated reports became current about them and about
13841the position of Russia. It was said that the Emperor was leaving the
13842army because it was in danger, it was said that Smolensk had
13843surrendered, that Napoleon had an army of a million and only a miracle
13844could save Russia.
13845
13846On the eleventh of July, which was Saturday, the manifesto was
13847received but was not yet in print, and Pierre, who was at the
13848Rostovs', promised to come to dinner next day, Sunday, and bring a
13849copy of the manifesto and appeal, which he would obtain from Count
13850Rostopchin.
13851
13852That Sunday, the Rostovs went to Mass at the Razumovskis' private
13853chapel as usual. It was a hot July day. Even at ten o'clock, when
13854the Rostovs got out of their carriage at the chapel, the sultry air,
13855the shouts of hawkers, the light and gay summer clothes of the
13856crowd, the dusty leaves of the trees on the boulevard, the sounds of
13857the band and the white trousers of a battalion marching to parade, the
13858rattling of wheels on the cobblestones, and the brilliant, hot
13859sunshine were all full of that summer languor, that content and
13860discontent with the present, which is most strongly felt on a
13861bright, hot day in town. All the Moscow notabilities, all the Rostovs'
13862acquaintances, were at the Razumovskis' chapel, for, as if expecting
13863something to happen, many wealthy families who usually left town for
13864their country estates had not gone away that summer. As Natasha, at
13865her mother's side, passed through the crowd behind a liveried
13866footman who cleared the way for them, she heard a young man speaking
13867about her in too loud a whisper.
13868
13869"That's Rostova, the one who..."
13870
13871"She's much thinner, but all the same she's pretty!"
13872
13873She heard, or thought she heard, the names of Kuragin and Bolkonski.
13874But she was always imagining that. It always seemed to her that
13875everyone who looked at her was thinking only of what had happened to
13876her. With a sinking heart, wretched as she always was now when she
13877found herself in a crowd, Natasha in her lilac silk dress trimmed with
13878black lace walked--as women can walk--with the more repose and
13879stateliness the greater the pain and shame in her soul. She knew for
13880certain that she was pretty, but this no longer gave her
13881satisfaction as it used to. On the contrary it tormented her more than
13882anything else of late, and particularly so on this bright, hot
13883summer day in town. "It's Sunday again--another week past," she
13884thought, recalling that she had been here the Sunday before, "and
13885always the same life that is no life, and the same surroundings in
13886which it used to be so easy to live. I'm pretty, I'm young, and I know
13887that now I am good. I used to be bad, but now I know I am good," she
13888thought, "but yet my best years are slipping by and are no good to
13889anyone." She stood by her mother's side and exchanged nods with
13890acquaintances near her. From habit she scrutinized the ladies'
13891dresses, condemned the bearing of a lady standing close by who was not
13892crossing herself properly but in a cramped manner, and again she
13893thought with vexation that she was herself being judged and was
13894judging others, and suddenly, at the sound of the service, she felt
13895horrified at her own vileness, horrified that the former purity of her
13896soul was again lost to her.
13897
13898A comely, fresh-looking old man was conducting the service with that
13899mild solemnity which has so elevating and soothing an effect on the
13900souls of the worshipers. The gates of the sanctuary screen were
13901closed, the curtain was slowly drawn, and from behind it a soft
13902mysterious voice pronounced some words. Tears, the cause of which
13903she herself did not understand, made Natasha's breast heave, and a
13904joyous but oppressive feeling agitated her.
13905
13906"Teach me what I should do, how to live my life, how I may grow good
13907forever, forever!" she pleaded.
13908
13909The deacon came out onto the raised space before the altar screen
13910and, holding his thumb extended, drew his long hair from under his
13911dalmatic and, making the sign of the cross on his breast, began in a
13912loud and solemn voice to recite the words of the prayer...
13913
13914"In peace let us pray unto the Lord."
13915
13916"As one community, without distinction of class, without enmity,
13917united by brotherly love--let us pray!" thought Natasha.
13918
13919"For the peace that is from above, and for the salvation of our
13920souls."
13921
13922"For the world of angels and all the spirits who dwell above us,"
13923prayed Natasha.
13924
13925When they prayed for the warriors, she thought of her brother and
13926Denisov. When they prayed for all traveling by land and sea, she
13927remembered Prince Andrew, prayed for him, and asked God to forgive her
13928all the wrongs she had done him. When they prayed for those who love
13929us, she prayed for the members of her own family, her father and
13930mother and Sonya, realizing for the first time how wrongly she had
13931acted toward them, and feeling all the strength of her love for
13932them. When they prayed for those who hate us, she tried to think of
13933her enemies and people who hated her, in order to pray for them. She
13934included among her enemies the creditors and all who had business
13935dealings with her father, and always at the thought of enemies and
13936those who hated her she remembered Anatole who had done her so much
13937harm--and though he did not hate her she gladly prayed for him as
13938for an enemy. Only at prayer did she feel able to think clearly and
13939calmly of Prince Andrew and Anatole, as men for whom her feelings were
13940as nothing compared with her awe and devotion to God. When they prayed
13941for the Imperial family and the Synod, she bowed very low and made the
13942sign of the cross, saying to herself that even if she did not
13943understand, still she could not doubt, and at any rate loved the
13944governing Synod and prayed for it.
13945
13946When he had finished the Litany the deacon crossed the stole over
13947his breast and said, "Let us commit ourselves and our whole lives to
13948Christ the Lord!"
13949
13950"Commit ourselves to God," Natasha inwardly repeated. "Lord God, I
13951submit myself to Thy will!" she thought. "I want nothing, wish for
13952nothing; teach me what to do and how to use my will! Take me, take
13953me!" prayed Natasha, with impatient emotion in her heart, not crossing
13954herself but letting her slender arms hang down as if expecting some
13955invisible power at any moment to take her and deliver her from
13956herself, from her regrets, desires, remorse, hopes, and sins.
13957
13958The countess looked round several times at her daughter's softened
13959face and shining eyes and prayed God to help her.
13960
13961Unexpectedly, in the middle of the service, and not in the usual
13962order Natasha knew so well, the deacon brought out a small stool,
13963the one he knelt on when praying on Trinity Sunday, and placed it
13964before the doors of the sanctuary screen. The priest came out with his
13965purple velvet biretta on his head, adjusted his hair, and knelt down
13966with an effort. Everybody followed his example and they looked at
13967one another in surprise. Then came the prayer just received from the
13968Synod--a prayer for the deliverance of Russia from hostile invasion.
13969
13970"Lord God of might, God of our salvation!" began the priest in
13971that voice, clear, not grandiloquent but mild, in which only the
13972Slav clergy read and which acts so irresistibly on a Russian heart.
13973
13974"Lord God of might, God of our salvation! Look this day in mercy and
13975blessing on Thy humble people, and graciously hear us, spare us, and
13976have mercy upon us! This foe confounding Thy land, desiring to lay
13977waste the whole world, rises against us; these lawless men are
13978gathered together to overthrow Thy kingdom, to destroy Thy dear
13979Jerusalem, Thy beloved Russia; to defile Thy temples, to overthrow
13980Thine altars, and to desecrate our holy shrines. How long, O Lord, how
13981long shall the wicked triumph? How long shall they wield unlawful
13982power?
13983
13984"Lord God! Hear us when we pray to Thee; strengthen with Thy might
13985our most gracious sovereign lord, the Emperor Alexander Pavlovich;
13986be mindful of his uprightness and meekness, reward him according to
13987his righteousness, and let it preserve us, Thy chosen Israel! Bless
13988his counsels, his undertakings, and his work; strengthen his kingdom
13989by Thine almighty hand, and give him victory over his enemy, even as
13990Thou gavest Moses the victory over Amalek, Gideon over Midian, and
13991David over Goliath. Preserve his army, put a bow of brass in the hands
13992of those who have armed themselves in Thy Name, and gird their loins
13993with strength for the fight. Take up the spear and shield and arise to
13994help us; confound and put to shame those who have devised evil against
13995us, may they be before the faces of Thy faithful warriors as dust
13996before the wind, and may Thy mighty Angel confound them and put them
13997to flight; may they be ensnared when they know it not, and may the
13998plots they have laid in secret be turned against them; let them fall
13999before Thy servants' feet and be laid low by our hosts! Lord, Thou art
14000able to save both great and small; Thou art God, and man cannot
14001prevail against Thee!
14002
14003"God of our fathers! Remember Thy bounteous mercy and
14004loving-kindness which are from of old; turn not Thy face from us,
14005but be gracious to our unworthiness, and in Thy great goodness and Thy
14006many mercies regard not our transgressions and iniquities! Create in
14007us a clean heart and renew a right spirit within us, strengthen us all
14008in Thy faith, fortify our hope, inspire us with true love one for
14009another, arm us with unity of spirit in the righteous defense of the
14010heritage Thou gavest to us and to our fathers, and let not the scepter
14011of the wicked be exalted against the destiny of those Thou hast
14012sanctified.
14013
14014"O Lord our God, in whom we believe and in whom we put our trust,
14015let us not be confounded in our hope of Thy mercy, and give us a token
14016of Thy blessing, that those who hate us and our Orthodox faith may see
14017it and be put to shame and perish, and may all the nations know that
14018Thou art the Lord and we are Thy people. Show Thy mercy upon us this
14019day, O Lord, and grant us Thy salvation; make the hearts of Thy
14020servants to rejoice in Thy mercy; smite down our enemies and destroy
14021them swiftly beneath the feet of Thy faithful servants! For Thou art
14022the defense, the succor, and the victory of them that put their
14023trust in Thee, and to Thee be all glory, to Father, Son, and Holy
14024Ghost, now and forever, world without end. Amen."
14025
14026In Natasha's receptive condition of soul this prayer affected her
14027strongly. She listened to every word about the victory of Moses over
14028Amalek, of Gideon over Midian, and of David over Goliath, and about
14029the destruction of "Thy Jerusalem," and she prayed to God with the
14030tenderness and emotion with which her heart was overflowing, but
14031without fully understanding what she was asking of God in that prayer.
14032She shared with all her heart in the prayer for the spirit of
14033righteousness, for the strengthening of the heart by faith and hope,
14034and its animation by love. But she could not pray that her enemies
14035might be trampled under foot when but a few minutes before she had
14036been wishing she had more of them that she might pray for them. But
14037neither could she doubt the righteousness of the prayer that was being
14038read on bended knees. She felt in her heart a devout and tremulous awe
14039at the thought of the punishment that overtakes men for their sins,
14040and especially of her own sins, and she prayed to God to forgive
14041them all, and her too, and to give them all, and her too, peace and
14042happiness. And it seemed to her that God heard her prayer.
14043
14044
14045
14046
14047
14048CHAPTER XIX
14049
14050
14051From the day when Pierre, after leaving the Rostovs' with
14052Natasha's grateful look fresh in his mind, had gazed at the comet that
14053seemed to be fixed in the sky and felt that something new was
14054appearing on his own horizon--from that day the problem of the
14055vanity and uselessness of all earthly things, that had incessantly
14056tormented him, no longer presented itself. That terrible question
14057"Why?" "Wherefore?" which had come to him amid every occupation, was
14058now replaced, not by another question or by a reply to the former
14059question, but by her image. When he listened to, or himself took
14060part in, trivial conversations, when he read or heard of human
14061baseness or folly, he was not horrified as formerly, and did not ask
14062himself why men struggled so about these things when all is so
14063transient and incomprehensible--but he remembered her as he had last
14064seen her, and all his doubts vanished--not because she had answered
14065the questions that had haunted him, but because his conception of
14066her transferred him instantly to another, a brighter, realm of
14067spiritual activity in which no one could be justified or guilty--a
14068realm of beauty and love which it was worth living for. Whatever
14069worldly baseness presented itself to him, he said to himself:
14070
14071"Well, supposing N. N. swindled the country and the Tsar, and the
14072country and the Tsar confer honors upon him, what does that matter?
14073She smiled at me yesterday and asked me to come again, and I love her,
14074and no one will ever know it." And his soul felt calm and peaceful.
14075
14076Pierre still went into society, drank as much and led the same
14077idle and dissipated life, because besides the hours he spent at the
14078Rostovs' there were other hours he had to spend somehow, and the
14079habits and acquaintances he had made in Moscow formed a current that
14080bore him along irresistibly. But latterly, when more and more
14081disquieting reports came from the seat of war and Natasha's health
14082began to improve and she no longer aroused in him the former feeling
14083of careful pity, an ever-increasing restlessness, which he could not
14084explain, took possession of him. He felt that the condition he was
14085in could not continue long, that a catastrophe was coming which
14086would change his whole life, and he impatiently sought everywhere
14087for signs of that approaching catastrophe. One of his brother Masons
14088had revealed to Pierre the following prophecy concerning Napoleon,
14089drawn from the Revelation of St. John.
14090
14091In chapter 13, verse 18, of the Apocalypse, it is said:
14092
14093
14094Here is wisdom. Let him that hath understanding count the number
14095of the beast: for it is the number of a man; and his number is Six
14096hundred threescore and six.
14097
14098And in the fifth verse of the same chapter:
14099
14100
14101And there was given unto him a mouth speaking great things and
14102blasphemies; and power was given unto him to continue forty and two
14103months.
14104
14105
14106The French alphabet, written out with the same numerical values as
14107the Hebrew, in which the first nine letters denote units and the
14108others tens, will have the following significance:
14109
14110 a b c d e f g h i k
14111 1 2 3 4 5 6 7 8 9 10
14112 l m n o p q r s
14113 20 30 40 50 60 70 80 90
14114 t u v w x y
14115 100 110 120 130 140 150
14116 z
14117 160
14118
14119
14120Writing the words L'Empereur Napoleon in numbers, it appears that
14121the sum of them is 666, and that Napoleon therefore the beast foretold
14122in the Apocalypse. Moreover, by applying the same system to the
14123words quarante-deux,* which was the term allowed to the beast that
14124"spoke great things and blasphemies," the same number 666 was
14125obtained; from which it followed that the limit fixed for Napoleon's
14126power had come in the year 1812 when the French emperor was forty-two.
14127This prophecy pleased Pierre very much and he often asked himself what
14128would put an end to the power of the beast, that is, of Napoleon,
14129and tried by the same system of using letters as numbers and adding
14130them up, to find an answer to the question that engrossed him. He
14131wrote the words L'Empereur Alexandre, La nation russe and added up
14132their numbers, but the sums were either more or less than 666. Once
14133when making such calculations he wrote down his own name in French,
14134Comte Pierre Besouhoff, but the sum of the numbers did not come right.
14135Then he changed the spelling, substituting a z for the s and adding de
14136and the article le, still without obtaining the desired result. Then
14137it occurred to him: if the answer to the question were contained in
14138his name, his nationality would also be given in the answer. So he
14139wrote Le russe Besuhof and adding up the numbers got 671. This was
14140only five too much, and five was represented by e, the very letter
14141elided from the article le before the word Empereur. By omitting the
14142e, though incorrectly, Pierre got the answer he sought. L'russe
14143Besuhof made 666. This discovery excited him. How, or by what means,
14144he was connected with the great event foretold in the Apocalypse he
14145did not know, but he did not doubt that connection for a moment. His
14146love for Natasha, Antichrist, Napoleon, the invasion, the comet,
14147666, L'Empereur Napoleon, and L'russe Besuhof--all this had to
14148mature and culminate, to lift him out of that spellbound, petty sphere
14149of Moscow habits in which he felt himself held captive and lead him to
14150a great achievement and great happiness.
14151
14152
14153*Forty-two.
14154
14155
14156
14157On the eve of the Sunday when the special prayer was read, Pierre
14158had promised the Rostovs to bring them, from Count Rostopchin whom
14159he knew well, both the appeal to the people and the news from the
14160army. In the morning, when he went to call at Rostopchin's he met
14161there a courier fresh from the army, an acquaintance of his own, who
14162often danced at Moscow balls.
14163
14164"Do, please, for heaven's sake, relieve me of something!" said the
14165courier. "I have a sackful of letters to parents."
14166
14167Among these letters was one from Nicholas Rostov to his father.
14168Pierre took that letter, and Rostopchin also gave him the Emperor's
14169appeal to Moscow, which had just been printed, the last army orders,
14170and his own most recent bulletin. Glancing through the army orders,
14171Pierre found in one of them, in the lists of killed, wounded, and
14172rewarded, the name of Nicholas Rostov, awarded a St. George's Cross of
14173the Fourth Class for courage shown in the Ostrovna affair, and in
14174the same order the name of Prince Andrew Bolkonski, appointed to the
14175command of a regiment of Chasseurs. Though he did not want to remind
14176the Rostovs of Bolkonski, Pierre could not refrain from making them
14177happy by the news of their son's having received a decoration, so he
14178sent that printed army order and Nicholas' letter to the Rostovs,
14179keeping the appeal, the bulletin, and the other orders to take with
14180him when he went to dinner.
14181
14182His conversation with Count Rostopchin and the latter's tone of
14183anxious hurry, the meeting with the courier who talked casually of how
14184badly things were going in the army, the rumors of the discovery of
14185spies in Moscow and of a leaflet in circulation stating that
14186Napoleon promised to be in both the Russian capitals by the autumn,
14187and the talk of the Emperor's being expected to arrive next day--all
14188aroused with fresh force that feeling of agitation and expectation
14189in Pierre which he had been conscious of ever since the appearance
14190of the comet, and especially since the beginning of the war.
14191
14192He had long been thinking of entering the army and would have done
14193so had he not been hindered, first, by his membership of the Society
14194of Freemasons to which he was bound by oath and which preached
14195perpetual peace and the abolition of war, and secondly, by the fact
14196that when he saw the great mass of Muscovites who had donned uniform
14197and were talking patriotism, he somehow felt ashamed to take the step.
14198But the chief reason for not carrying out his intention to enter the
14199army lay in the vague idea that he was L'russe Besuhof who had the
14200number of the beast, 666; that his part in the great affair of setting
14201a limit to the power of the beast that spoke great and blasphemous
14202things had been predestined from eternity, and that therefore he ought
14203not to undertake anything, but wait for what was bound to come to
14204pass.
14205
14206
14207
14208
14209
14210CHAPTER XX
14211
14212
14213A few intimate friends were dining with the Rostovs that day, as
14214usual on Sundays.
14215
14216Pierre came early so as to find them alone.
14217
14218He had grown so stout this year that he would have been abnormal had
14219he not been so tall, so broad of limb, and so strong that he carried
14220his bulk with evident ease.
14221
14222He went up the stairs, puffing and muttering something. His coachman
14223did not even ask whether he was to wait. He knew that when his
14224master was at the Rostovs' he stayed till midnight. The Rostovs'
14225footman rushed eagerly forward to help him off with his cloak and take
14226his hat and stick. Pierre, from club habit, always left both hat and
14227stick in the anteroom.
14228
14229The first person he saw in the house was Natasha. Even before he saw
14230her, while taking off his cloak, he heard her. She was practicing
14231solfa exercises in the music room. He knew that she had not sung since
14232her illness, and so the sound of her voice surprised and delighted
14233him. He opened the door softly and saw her, in the lilac dress she had
14234worn at church, walking about the room singing. She had her back to
14235him when he opened the door, but when, turning quickly, she saw his
14236broad, surprised face, she blushed and came rapidly up to him.
14237
14238"I want to try to sing again," she said, adding as if by way of
14239excuse, "it is, at least, something to do."
14240
14241"That's capital!"
14242
14243"How glad I am you've come! I am so happy today," she said, with the
14244old animation Pierre had not seen in her for along time. "You know
14245Nicholas has received a St. George's Cross? I am so proud of him."
14246
14247"Oh yes, I sent that announcement. But I don't want to interrupt
14248you," he added, and was about to go to the drawing room.
14249
14250Natasha stopped him.
14251
14252"Count, is it wrong of me to sing?" she said blushing, and fixing
14253her eyes inquiringly on him.
14254
14255"No... Why should it be? On the contrary... But why do you ask me?"
14256
14257"I don't know myself," Natasha answered quickly, "but I should not
14258like to do anything you disapproved of. I believe in you completely.
14259You don't know how important you are to me, how much you've done for
14260me...." She spoke rapidly and did not notice how Pierre flushed at her
14261words. "I saw in that same army order that he, Bolkonski" (she
14262whispered the name hastily), "is in Russia, and in the army again.
14263What do you think?"--she was speaking hurriedly, evidently afraid
14264her strength might fail her--"Will he ever forgive me? Will he not
14265always have a bitter feeling toward me? What do you think? What do you
14266think?"
14267
14268"I think..." Pierre replied, "that he has nothing to forgive....
14269If I were in his place..."
14270
14271By association of ideas, Pierre was at once carried back to the
14272day when, trying to comfort her, he had said that if he were not
14273himself but the best man in the world and free, he would ask on his
14274knees for her hand; and the same feeling of pity, tenderness, and love
14275took possession of him and the same words rose to his lips. But she
14276did not give him time to say them.
14277
14278"Yes, you... you..." she said, uttering the word you rapturously-
14279"that's a different thing. I know no one kinder, more generous, or
14280better than you; nobody could be! Had you not been there then, and now
14281too, I don't know what would have become of me, because..."
14282
14283Tears suddenly rose in her eyes, she turned away, lifted her music
14284before her eyes, began singing again, and again began walking up and
14285down the room.
14286
14287Just then Petya came running in from the drawing room.
14288
14289Petya was now a handsome rosy lad of fifteen with full red lips
14290and resembled Natasha. He was preparing to enter the university, but
14291he and his friend Obolenski had lately, in secret, agreed to join
14292the hussars.
14293
14294Petya had come rushing out to talk to his namesake about this
14295affair. He had asked Pierre to find out whether he would be accepted
14296in the hussars.
14297
14298Pierre walked up and down the drawing room, not listening to what
14299Petya was saying.
14300
14301Petya pulled him by the arm to attract his attention.
14302
14303"Well, what about my plan? Peter Kirilych, for heaven's sake! You
14304are my only hope," said Petya.
14305
14306"Oh yes, your plan. To join the hussars? I'll mention it, I'll bring
14307it all up today."
14308
14309"Well, mon cher, have you got the manifesto?" asked the old count.
14310"The countess has been to Mass at the Razumovskis' and heard the new
14311prayer. She says it's very fine."
14312
14313"Yes, I've got it," said Pierre. "The Emperor is to be here
14314tomorrow... there's to be an Extraordinary Meeting of the nobility,
14315and they are talking of a levy of ten men per thousand. Oh yes, let me
14316congratulate you!"
14317
14318"Yes, yes, thank God! Well, and what news from the army?"
14319
14320"We are again retreating. They say we're already near Smolensk,"
14321replied Pierre.
14322
14323"O Lord, O Lord!" exclaimed the count. "Where is the manifesto?"
14324
14325"The Emperor's appeal? Oh yes!"
14326
14327Pierre began feeling in his pockets for the papers, but could not
14328find them. Still slapping his pockets, he kissed the hand of the
14329countess who entered the room and glanced uneasily around, evidently
14330expecting Natasha, who had left off singing but had not yet come
14331into the drawing room.
14332
14333"On my word, I don't know what I've done with it," he said.
14334
14335"There he is, always losing everything!" remarked the countess.
14336
14337Natasha entered with a softened and agitated expression of face
14338and sat down looking silently at Pierre. As soon as she entered,
14339Pierre's features, which had been gloomy, suddenly lighted up, and
14340while still searching for the papers he glanced at her several times.
14341
14342"No, really! I'll drive home, I must have left them there. I'll
14343certainly..."
14344
14345"But you'll be late for dinner."
14346
14347"Oh! And my coachman has gone."
14348
14349But Sonya, who had gone to look for the papers in the anteroom,
14350had found them in Pierre's hat, where he had carefully tucked them
14351under the lining. Pierre was about to begin reading.
14352
14353"No, after dinner," said the old count, evidently expecting much
14354enjoyment from that reading.
14355
14356At dinner, at which champagne was drunk to the health of the new
14357chevalier of St. George, Shinshin told them the town news, of the
14358illness of the old Georgian princess, of Metivier's disappearance from
14359Moscow, and of how some German fellow had been brought to Rostopchin
14360and accused of being a French "spyer" (so Count Rostopchin had told
14361the story), and how Rostopchin let him go and assured the people
14362that he was "not a spire at all, but only an old German ruin."
14363
14364"People are being arrested..." said the count. "I've told the
14365countess she should not speak French so much. It's not the time for it
14366now."
14367
14368"And have you heard?" Shinshin asked. "Prince Golitsyn has engaged a
14369master to teach him Russian. It is becoming dangerous to speak
14370French in the streets."
14371
14372"And how about you, Count Peter Kirilych? If they call up the
14373militia, you too will have to mount a horse," remarked the old
14374count, addressing Pierre.
14375
14376Pierre had been silent and preoccupied all through dinner, seeming
14377not to grasp what was said. He looked at the count.
14378
14379"Oh yes, the war," he said. "No! What sort of warrior should I make?
14380And yet everything is so strange, so strange! I can't make it out. I
14381don't know, I am very far from having military tastes, but in these
14382times no one can answer for himself."
14383
14384After dinner the count settled himself comfortably in an easy
14385chair and with a serious face asked Sonya, who was considered an
14386excellent reader, to read the appeal.
14387
14388
14389"To Moscow, our ancient Capital!
14390
14391"The enemy has entered the borders of Russia with immense forces. He
14392comes to despoil our beloved country,"
14393
14394
14395Sonya read painstakingly in her high-pitched voice. The count
14396listened with closed eyes, heaving abrupt sighs at certain passages.
14397
14398Natasha sat erect, gazing with a searching look now at her father
14399and now at Pierre.
14400
14401Pierre felt her eyes on him and tried not to look round. The
14402countess shook her head disapprovingly and angrily at every solemn
14403expression in the manifesto. In all these words she saw only that
14404the danger threatening her son would not soon be over. Shinshin,
14405with a sarcastic smile on his lips, was evidently preparing to make
14406fun of anything that gave him the opportunity: Sonya's reading, any
14407remark of the count's, or even the manifesto itself should no better
14408pretext present itself.
14409
14410After reading about the dangers that threatened Russia, the hopes
14411the Emperor placed on Moscow and especially on its illustrious
14412nobility, Sonya, with a quiver in her voice due chiefly to the
14413attention that was being paid to her, read the last words:
14414
14415
14416"We ourselves will not delay to appear among our people in that
14417Capital and in others parts of our realm for consultation, and for the
14418direction of all our levies, both those now barring the enemy's path
14419and those freshly formed to defeat him wherever he may appear. May the
14420ruin he hopes to bring upon us recoil on his own head, and may
14421Europe delivered from bondage glorify the name of Russia!"
14422
14423
14424"Yes, that's it!" cried the count, opening his moist eyes and
14425sniffing repeatedly, as if a strong vinaigrette had been held to his
14426nose; and he added, "Let the Emperor but say the word and we'll
14427sacrifice everything and begrudge nothing."
14428
14429Before Shinshin had time to utter the joke he was ready to make on
14430the count's patriotism, Natasha jumped up from her place and ran to
14431her father.
14432
14433"What a darling our Papa is!" she cried, kissing him, and she
14434again looked at Pierre with the unconscious coquetry that had returned
14435to her with her better spirits.
14436
14437"There! Here's a patriot for you!" said Shinshin.
14438
14439"Not a patriot at all, but simply..." Natasha replied in an
14440injured tone. "Everything seems funny to you, but this isn't at all
14441a joke...."
14442
14443"A joke indeed!" put in the count. "Let him but say the word and
14444we'll all go.... We're not Germans!"
14445
14446"But did you notice, it says, 'for consultation'?" said Pierre.
14447
14448"Never mind what it's for...."
14449
14450At this moment, Petya, to whom nobody was paying any attention, came
14451up to his father with a very flushed face and said in his breaking
14452voice that was now deep and now shrill:
14453
14454"Well, Papa, I tell you definitely, and Mamma too, it's as you
14455please, but I say definitely that you must let me enter the army,
14456because I can't... that's all...."
14457
14458The countess, in dismay, looked up to heaven, clasped her hands, and
14459turned angrily to her husband.
14460
14461"That comes of your talking!" said she.
14462
14463But the count had already recovered from his excitement.
14464
14465"Come, come!" said he. "Here's a fine warrior! No! Nonsense! You
14466must study."
14467
14468"It's not nonsense, Papa. Fedya Obolenski is younger than I, and
14469he's going too. Besides, all the same I can't study now when..." Petya
14470stopped short, flushed till he perspired, but still got out the words,
14471"when our Fatherland is in danger."
14472
14473"That'll do, that'll do--nonsense...."
14474
14475"But you said yourself that we would sacrifice everything."
14476
14477"Petya! Be quiet, I tell you!" cried the count, with a glance at his
14478wife, who had turned pale and was staring fixedly at her son.
14479
14480"And I tell you--Peter Kirilych here will also tell you..."
14481
14482"Nonsense, I tell you. Your mother's milk has hardly dried on your
14483lips and you want to go into the army! There, there, I tell you,"
14484and the count moved to go out of the room, taking the papers, probably
14485to reread them in his study before having a nap.
14486
14487"Well, Peter Kirilych, let's go and have a smoke," he said.
14488
14489Pierre was agitated and undecided. Natasha's unwontedly brilliant
14490eyes, continually glancing at him with a more than cordial look, had
14491reduced him to this condition.
14492
14493"No, I think I'll go home."
14494
14495"Home? Why, you meant to spend the evening with us.... You don't
14496often come nowadays as it is, and this girl of mine," said the count
14497good-naturedly, pointing to Natasha, "only brightens up when you're
14498here."
14499
14500"Yes, I had forgotten... I really must go home... business..."
14501said Pierre hurriedly.
14502
14503"Well, then, au revoir!" said the count, and went out of the room.
14504
14505"Why are you going? Why are you upset?" asked Natasha, and she
14506looked challengingly into Pierre's eyes.
14507
14508"Because I love you!" was what he wanted to say, but he did not
14509say it, and only blushed till the tears came, and lowered his eyes.
14510
14511"Because it is better for me to come less often... because... No,
14512simply I have business...."
14513
14514"Why? No, tell me!" Natasha began resolutely and suddenly stopped.
14515
14516They looked at each other with dismayed and embarrassed faces. He
14517tried to smile but could not: his smile expressed suffering, and he
14518silently kissed her hand and went out.
14519
14520Pierre made up his mind not to go to the Rostovs' any more.
14521
14522
14523
14524
14525
14526CHAPTER XXI
14527
14528
14529After the definite refusal he had received, Petya went to his room
14530and there locked himself in and wept bitterly. When he came in to tea,
14531silent, morose, and with tear-stained face, everybody pretended not to
14532notice anything.
14533
14534Next day the Emperor arrived in Moscow, and several of the
14535Rostovs' domestic serfs begged permission to go to have a look at him.
14536That morning Petya was a long time dressing and arranging his hair and
14537collar to look like a grown-up man. He frowned before his looking
14538glass, gesticulated, shrugged his shoulders, and finally, without
14539saying a word to anyone, took his cap and left the house by the back
14540door, trying to avoid notice. Petya decided to go straight to where
14541the Emperor was and to explain frankly to some gentleman-in-waiting
14542(he imagined the Emperor to be always surrounded by
14543gentlemen-in-waiting) that he, Count Rostov, in spite of his youth
14544wished to serve his country; that youth could be no hindrance to
14545loyalty, and that he was ready to... While dressing, Petya had
14546prepared many fine things he meant to say to the gentleman-in-waiting.
14547
14548It was on the very fact of being so young that Petya counted for
14549success in reaching the Emperor--he even thought how surprised
14550everyone would be at his youthfulness--and yet in the arrangement of
14551his collar and hair and by his sedate deliberate walk he wished to
14552appear a grown-up man. But the farther he went and the more his
14553attention was diverted by the ever-increasing crowds moving toward the
14554Kremlin, the less he remembered to walk with the sedateness and
14555deliberation of a man. As he approached the Kremlin he even began to
14556avoid being crushed and resolutely stuck out his elbows in a
14557menacing way. But within the Trinity Gateway he was so pressed to
14558the wall by people who probably were unaware of the patriotic
14559intentions with which he had come that in spite of all his
14560determination he had to give in, and stop while carriages passed in,
14561rumbling beneath the archway. Beside Petya stood a peasant woman, a
14562footman, two tradesmen, and a discharged soldier. After standing
14563some time in the gateway, Petya tried to move forward in front of
14564the others without waiting for all the carriages to pass, and he began
14565resolutely working his way with his elbows, but the woman just in
14566front of him, who was the first against whom he directed his
14567efforts, angrily shouted at him:
14568
14569"What are you shoving for, young lordling? Don't you see we're all
14570standing still? Then why push?"
14571
14572"Anybody can shove," said the footman, and also began working his
14573elbows to such effect that he pushed Petya into a very filthy corner
14574of the gateway.
14575
14576Petya wiped his perspiring face with his hands and pulled up the
14577damp collar which he had arranged so well at home to seem like a
14578man's.
14579
14580He felt that he no longer looked presentable, and feared that if
14581he were now to approach the gentlemen-in-waiting in that plight he
14582would not be admitted to the Emperor. But it was impossible to smarten
14583oneself up or move to another place, because of the crowd. One of
14584the generals who drove past was an acquaintance of the Rostovs', and
14585Petya thought of asking his help, but came to the conclusion that that
14586would not be a manly thing to do. When the carriages had all passed
14587in, the crowd, carrying Petya with it, streamed forward into the
14588Kremlin Square which was already full of people. There were people not
14589only in the square, but everywhere--on the slopes and on the roofs. As
14590soon as Petya found himself in the square he clearly heard the sound
14591of bells and the joyous voices of the crowd that filled the whole
14592Kremlin.
14593
14594For a while the crowd was less dense, but suddenly all heads were
14595bared, and everyone rushed forward in one direction. Petya was being
14596pressed so that he could scarcely breathe, and everybody shouted,
14597"Hurrah! hurrah! hurrah!" Petya stood on tiptoe and pushed and
14598pinched, but could see nothing except the people about him.
14599
14600All the faces bore the same expression of excitement and enthusiasm.
14601A tradesman's wife standing beside Petya sobbed, and the tears ran
14602down her cheeks.
14603
14604"Father! Angel! Dear one!" she kept repeating, wiping away her tears
14605with her fingers.
14606
14607"Hurrah!" was heard on all sides.
14608
14609For a moment the crowd stood still, but then it made another rush
14610forward.
14611
14612Quite beside himself, Petya, clinching his teeth and rolling his
14613eyes ferociously, pushed forward, elbowing his way and shouting
14614"hurrah!" as if he were prepared that instant to kill himself and
14615everyone else, but on both sides of him other people with similarly
14616ferocious faces pushed forward and everybody shouted "hurrah!"
14617
14618"So this is what the Emperor is!" thought Petya. "No, I can't
14619petition him myself--that would be too bold." But in spite of this
14620he continued to struggle desperately forward, and from between the
14621backs of those in front he caught glimpses of an open space with a
14622strip of red cloth spread out on it; but just then the crowd swayed
14623back--the police in front were pushing back those who had pressed
14624too close to the procession: the Emperor was passing from the palace
14625to the Cathedral of the Assumption--and Petya unexpectedly received
14626such a blow on his side and ribs and was squeezed so hard that
14627suddenly everything grew dim before his eyes and he lost
14628consciousness. When he came to himself, a man of clerical appearance
14629with a tuft of gray hair at the back of his head and wearing a
14630shabby blue cassock--probably a church clerk and chanter--was
14631holding him under the arm with one hand while warding off the pressure
14632of the crowd with the other.
14633
14634"You've crushed the young gentleman!" said the clerk. "What are
14635you up to? Gently!... They've crushed him, crushed him!"
14636
14637The Emperor entered the Cathedral of the Assumption. The crowd
14638spread out again more evenly, and the clerk led Petya--pale and
14639breathless--to the Tsar-cannon. Several people were sorry for Petya,
14640and suddenly a crowd turned toward him and pressed round him. Those
14641who stood nearest him attended to him, unbuttoned his coat, seated him
14642on the raised platform of the cannon, and reproached those others
14643(whoever they might be) who had crushed him.
14644
14645"One might easily get killed that way! What do they mean by it?
14646Killing people! Poor dear, he's as white as a sheet!"--various
14647voices were heard saying.
14648
14649Petya soon came to himself, the color returned to his face, the pain
14650had passed, and at the cost of that temporary unpleasantness he had
14651obtained a place by the cannon from where he hoped to see the
14652Emperor who would be returning that way. Petya no longer thought of
14653presenting his petition. If he could only see the Emperor he would
14654be happy!
14655
14656While the service was proceeding in the Cathedral of the Assumption-
14657it was a combined service of prayer on the occasion of the Emperor's
14658arrival and of thanksgiving for the conclusion of peace with the
14659Turks--the crowd outside spread out and hawkers appeared, selling
14660kvas, gingerbread, and poppyseed sweets (of which Petya was
14661particularly fond), and ordinary conversation could again be heard.
14662A tradesman's wife was showing a rent in her shawl and telling how
14663much the shawl had cost; another was saying that all silk goods had
14664now got dear. The clerk who had rescued Petya was talking to a
14665functionary about the priests who were officiating that day with the
14666bishop. The clerk several times used the word "plenary" (of the
14667service), a word Petya did not understand. Two young citizens were
14668joking with some serf girls who were cracking nuts. All these
14669conversations, especially the joking with the girls, were such as
14670might have had a particular charm for Petya at his age, but they did
14671not interest him now. He sat on his elevation--the pedestal of the
14672cannon--still agitated as before by the thought of the Emperor and
14673by his love for him. The feeling of pain and fear he had experienced
14674when he was being crushed, together with that of rapture, still
14675further intensified his sense of the importance of the occasion.
14676
14677Suddenly the sound of a firing of cannon was heard from the
14678embankment, to celebrate the signing of peace with the Turks, and
14679the crowd rushed impetuously toward the embankment to watch the
14680firing. Petya too would have run there, but the clerk who had taken
14681the young gentleman under his protection stopped him. The firing was
14682still proceeding when officers, generals, and gentlemen-in-waiting
14683came running out of the cathedral, and after them others in a more
14684leisurely manner: caps were again raised, and those who had run to
14685look at the cannon ran back again. At last four men in uniforms and
14686sashes emerged from the cathedral doors. "Hurrah! hurrah!" shouted the
14687crowd again.
14688
14689"Which is he? Which?" asked Petya in a tearful voice, of those
14690around him, but no one answered him, everybody was too excited; and
14691Petya, fixing on one of those four men, whom he could not clearly
14692see for the tears of joy that filled his eyes, concentrated all his
14693enthusiasm on him--though it happened not to be the Emperor-
14694frantically shouted "Hurrah!" and resolved that tomorrow, come what
14695might, he would join the army.
14696
14697The crowd ran after the Emperor, followed him to the palace, and
14698began to disperse. It was already late, and Petya had not eaten
14699anything and was drenched with perspiration, yet he did not go home
14700but stood with that diminishing, but still considerable, crowd
14701before the palace while the Emperor dined--looking in at the palace
14702windows, expecting he knew not what, and envying alike the notables he
14703saw arriving at the entrance to dine with the Emperor and the court
14704footmen who served at table, glimpses of whom could be seen through
14705the windows.
14706
14707While the Emperor was dining, Valuev, looking out of the window,
14708said:
14709
14710"The people are still hoping to see Your Majesty again."
14711
14712The dinner was nearly over, and the Emperor, munching a biscuit,
14713rose and went out onto the balcony. The people, with Petya among them,
14714rushed toward the balcony.
14715
14716"Angel! Dear one! Hurrah! Father!..." cried the crowd, and Petya
14717with it, and again the women and men of weaker mold, Petya among them,
14718wept with joy.
14719
14720A largish piece of the biscuit the Emperor was holding in his hand
14721broke off, fell on the balcony parapet, and then to the ground. A
14722coachman in a jerkin, who stood nearest, sprang forward and snatched
14723it up. Several people in the crowd rushed at the coachman. Seeing this
14724the Emperor had a plateful of biscuits brought him and began
14725throwing them down from the balcony. Petya's eyes grew bloodshot,
14726and still more excited by the danger of being crushed, he rushed at
14727the biscuits. He did not know why, but he had to have a biscuit from
14728the Tsar's hand and he felt that he must not give way. He sprang
14729forward and upset an old woman who was catching at a biscuit; the
14730old woman did not consider herself defeated though she was lying on
14731the ground--she grabbed at some biscuits but her hand did not reach
14732them. Petya pushed her hand away with his knee, seized a biscuit,
14733and as if fearing to be too late, again shouted "Hurrah!" with a voice
14734already hoarse.
14735
14736The Emperor went in, and after that the greater part of the crowd
14737began to disperse.
14738
14739"There! I said if only we waited--and so it was!" was being joyfully
14740said by various people.
14741
14742Happy as Petya was, he felt sad at having to go home knowing that
14743all the enjoyment of that day was over. He did not go straight home
14744from the Kremlin, but called on his friend Obolenski, who was
14745fifteen and was also entering the regiment. On returning home Petya
14746announced resolutely and firmly that if he was not allowed to enter
14747the service he would run away. And next day, Count Ilya Rostov--though
14748he had not yet quite yielded--went to inquire how he could arrange for
14749Petya to serve where there would be least danger.
14750
14751
14752
14753
14754
14755CHAPTER XXII
14756
14757
14758Two days later, on the fifteenth of July, an immense number of
14759carriages were standing outside the Sloboda Palace.
14760
14761The great halls were full. In the first were the nobility and gentry
14762in their uniforms, in the second bearded merchants in full-skirted
14763coats of blue cloth and wearing medals. In the noblemen's hall there
14764was an incessant movement and buzz of voices. The chief magnates sat
14765on high-backed chairs at a large table under the portrait of the
14766Emperor, but most of the gentry were strolling about the room.
14767
14768All these nobles, whom Pierre met every day at the Club or in
14769their own houses, were in uniform--some in that of Catherine's day,
14770others in that of Emperor Paul, others again in the new uniforms of
14771Alexander's time or the ordinary uniform of the nobility, and the
14772general characteristic of being in uniform imparted something
14773strange and fantastic to these diverse and familiar personalities,
14774both old and young. The old men, dim-eyed, toothless, bald, sallow,
14775and bloated, or gaunt and wrinkled, were especially striking. For
14776the most part they sat quietly in their places and were silent, or, if
14777they walked about and talked, attached themselves to someone
14778younger. On all these faces, as on the faces of the crowd Petya had
14779seen in the Square, there was a striking contradiction: the general
14780expectation of a solemn event, and at the same time the everyday
14781interests in a boston card party, Peter the cook, Zinaida Dmitrievna's
14782health, and so on.
14783
14784Pierre was there too, buttoned up since early morning in a
14785nobleman's uniform that had become too tight for him. He was agitated;
14786this extraordinary gathering not only of nobles but also of the
14787merchant-class--les etats generaux (States-General)--evoked in him a
14788whole series of ideas he had long laid aside but which were deeply
14789graven in his soul: thoughts of the Contrat social and the French
14790Revolution. The words that had struck him in the Emperor's appeal-
14791that the sovereign was coming to the capital for consultation with his
14792people--strengthened this idea. And imagining that in this direction
14793something important which he had long awaited was drawing near, he
14794strolled about watching and listening to conversations, but nowhere
14795finding any confirmation of the ideas that occupied him.
14796
14797The Emperor's manifesto was read, evoking enthusiasm, and then all
14798moved about discussing it. Besides the ordinary topics of
14799conversation, Pierre heard questions of where the marshals of the
14800nobility were to stand when the Emperor entered, when a ball should be
14801given in the Emperor's honor, whether they should group themselves
14802by districts or by whole provinces... and so on; but as soon as the
14803war was touched on, or what the nobility had been convened for, the
14804talk became undecided and indefinite. Then all preferred listening
14805to speaking.
14806
14807A middle-aged man, handsome and virile, in the uniform of a
14808retired naval officer, was speaking in one of the rooms, and a small
14809crowd was pressing round him. Pierre went up to the circle that had
14810formed round the speaker and listened. Count Ilya Rostov, in a
14811military uniform of Catherine's time, was sauntering with a pleasant
14812smile among the crowd, with all of whom he was acquainted. He too
14813approached that group and listened with a kindly smile and nods of
14814approval, as he always did, to what the speaker was saying. The
14815retired naval man was speaking very boldly, as was evident from the
14816expression on the faces of the listeners and from the fact that some
14817people Pierre knew as the meekest and quietest of men walked away
14818disapprovingly or expressed disagreement with him. Pierre pushed his
14819way into the middle of the group, listened, and convinced himself that
14820the man was indeed a liberal, but of views quite different from his
14821own. The naval officer spoke in a particularly sonorous, musical,
14822and aristocratic baritone voice, pleasantly swallowing his r's and
14823generally slurring his consonants: the voice of a man calling out to
14824his servant, "Heah! Bwing me my pipe!" It was indicative of
14825dissipation and the exercise of authority.
14826
14827"What if the Smolensk people have offahd to waise militia for the
14828Empewah? Ah we to take Smolensk as our patte'n? If the noble
14829awistocwacy of the pwovince of Moscow thinks fit, it can show its
14830loyalty to our sov'weign the Empewah in other ways. Have we
14831fo'gotten the waising of the militia in the yeah 'seven? All that
14832did was to enwich the pwiests' sons and thieves and wobbahs...."
14833
14834Count Ilya Rostov smiled blandly and nodded approval.
14835
14836"And was our militia of any use to the Empia? Not at all! It only
14837wuined our farming! Bettah have another conscwiption... o' ou' men
14838will wetu'n neithah soldiers no' peasants, and we'll get only
14839depwavity fwom them. The nobility don't gwudge theah lives--evewy
14840one of us will go and bwing in more wecwuits, and the sov'weign" (that
14841was the way he referred to the Emperor) "need only say the word and
14842we'll all die fo' him!" added the orator with animation.
14843
14844Count Rostov's mouth watered with pleasure and he nudged Pierre, but
14845Pierre wanted to speak himself. He pushed forward, feeling stirred,
14846but not yet sure what stirred him or what he would say. Scarcely had
14847he opened his mouth when one of the senators, a man without a tooth in
14848his head, with a shrewd though angry expression, standing near the
14849first speaker, interrupted him. Evidently accustomed to managing
14850debates and to maintaining an argument, he began in low but distinct
14851tones:
14852
14853"I imagine, sir," said he, mumbling with his toothless mouth,
14854"that we have been summoned here not to discuss whether it's best
14855for the empire at the present moment to adopt conscription or to
14856call out the militia. We have been summoned to reply to the appeal
14857with which our sovereign the Emperor has honored us. But to judge what
14858is best--conscription or the militia--we can leave to the supreme
14859authority...."
14860
14861Pierre suddenly saw an outlet for his excitement. He hardened his
14862heart against the senator who was introducing this set and narrow
14863attitude into the deliberations of the nobility. Pierre stepped
14864forward and interrupted him. He himself did not yet know what he would
14865say, but he began to speak eagerly, occasionally lapsing into French
14866or expressing himself in bookish Russian.
14867
14868"Excuse me, your excellency," he began. (He was well acquainted with
14869the senator, but thought it necessary on this occasion to address
14870him formally.) "Though I don't agree with the gentleman..." (he
14871hesitated: he wished to say, "Mon tres honorable preopinant"--"My very
14872honorable opponent") "with the gentleman... whom I have not the
14873honor of knowing, I suppose that the nobility have been summoned not
14874merely to express their sympathy and enthusiasm but also to consider
14875the means by which we can assist our Fatherland! I imagine," he went
14876on, warming to his subject, "that the Emperor himself would not be
14877satisfied to find in us merely owners of serfs whom we are willing
14878to devote to his service, and chair a canon* we are ready to make of
14879ourselves--and not to obtain from us any co-co-counsel."
14880
14881
14882*"Food for cannon."
14883
14884
14885Many persons withdrew from the circle, noticing the senator's
14886sarcastic smile and the freedom of Pierre's remarks. Only Count Rostov
14887was pleased with them as he had been pleased with those of the naval
14888officer, the senator, and in general with whatever speech he had
14889last heard.
14890
14891"I think that before discussing these questions," Pierre
14892continued, "we should ask the Emperor--most respectfully ask His
14893Majesty--to let us know the number of our troops and the position in
14894which our army and our forces now are, and then..."
14895
14896But scarcely had Pierre uttered these words before he was attacked
14897from three sides. The most vigorous attack came from an old
14898acquaintance, a boston player who had always been well disposed toward
14899him, Stepan Stepanovich Adraksin. Adraksin was in uniform, and whether
14900as a result of the uniform or from some other cause Pierre saw
14901before him quite a different man. With a sudden expression of
14902malevolence on his aged face, Adraksin shouted at Pierre:
14903
14904"In the first place, I tell you we have no right to question the
14905Emperor about that, and secondly, if the Russian nobility had that
14906right, the Emperor could not answer such a question. The troops are
14907moved according to the enemy's movements and the number of men
14908increases and decreases..."
14909
14910Another voice, that of a nobleman of medium height and about forty
14911years of age, whom Pierre had formerly met at the gypsies' and knew as
14912a bad cardplayer, and who, also transformed by his uniform, came up to
14913Pierre, interrupted Adraksin.
14914
14915"Yes, and this is not a time for discussing," he continued, "but for
14916acting: there is war in Russia! The enemy is advancing to destroy
14917Russia, to desecrate the tombs of our fathers, to carry off our
14918wives and children." The nobleman smote his breast. "We will all
14919arise, every one of us will go, for our father the Tsar!" he
14920shouted, rolling his bloodshot eyes. Several approving voices were
14921heard in the crowd. "We are Russians and will not grudge our blood
14922in defense of our faith, the throne, and the Fatherland! We must cease
14923raving if we are sons of our Fatherland! We will show Europe how
14924Russia rises to the defense of Russia!"
14925
14926Pierre wished to reply, but could not get in a word. He felt that
14927his words, apart from what meaning they conveyed, were less audible
14928than the sound of his opponent's voice.
14929
14930Count Rostov at the back of the crowd was expressing approval;
14931several persons, briskly turning a shoulder to the orator at the end
14932of a phrase, said:
14933
14934"That's right, quite right! Just so!"
14935
14936Pierre wished to say that he was ready to sacrifice his money, his
14937serfs, or himself, only one ought to know the state of affairs in
14938order to be able to improve it, but he was unable to speak. Many
14939voices shouted and talked at the same time, so that Count Rostov had
14940not time to signify his approval of them all, and the group increased,
14941dispersed, re-formed, and then moved with a hum of talk into the
14942largest hall and to the big table. Not only was Pierre's attempt to
14943speak unsuccessful, but he was rudely interrupted, pushed aside, and
14944people turned away from him as from a common enemy. This happened
14945not because they were displeased by the substance of his speech, which
14946had even been forgotten after the many subsequent speeches, but to
14947animate it the crowd needed a tangible object to love and a tangible
14948object to hate. Pierre became the latter. Many other orators spoke
14949after the excited nobleman, and all in the same tone. Many spoke
14950eloquently and with originality.
14951
14952Glinka, the editor of the Russian Messenger, who was recognized
14953(cries of "author! author!" were heard in the crowd), said that
14954"hell must be repulsed by hell," and that he had seen a child
14955smiling at lightning flashes and thunderclaps, but "we will not be
14956that child."
14957
14958"Yes, yes, at thunderclaps!" was repeated approvingly in the back
14959rows of the crowd.
14960
14961The crowd drew up to the large table, at which sat gray-haired or
14962bald seventy-year-old magnates, uniformed and besashed almost all of
14963whom Pierre had seen in their own homes with their buffoons, or
14964playing boston at the clubs. With an incessant hum of voices the crowd
14965advanced to the table. Pressed by the throng against the high backs of
14966the chairs, the orators spoke one after another and sometimes two
14967together. Those standing behind noticed what a speaker omitted to
14968say and hastened to supply it. Others in that heat and crush racked
14969their brains to find some thought and hastened to utter it. The old
14970magnates, whom Pierre knew, sat and turned to look first at one and
14971then at another, and their faces for the most part only expressed
14972the fact that they found it very hot. Pierre, however, felt excited,
14973and the general desire to show that they were ready to go to all
14974lengths--which found expression in the tones and looks more than in
14975the substance of the speeches--infected him too. He did not renounce
14976his opinions, but felt himself in some way to blame and wished to
14977justify himself.
14978
14979"I only said that it would be more to the purpose to make sacrifices
14980when we know what is needed!" said he, trying to be heard above the
14981other voices.
14982
14983One of the old men nearest to him looked round, but his attention
14984was immediately diverted by an exclamation at the other side of the
14985table.
14986
14987"Yes, Moscow will be surrendered! She will be our expiation!"
14988shouted one man.
14989
14990"He is the enemy of mankind!" cried another. "Allow me to speak...."
14991"Gentlemen, you are crushing me!..."
14992
14993
14994
14995
14996
14997CHAPTER XXIII
14998
14999
15000At that moment Count Rostopchin with his protruding chin and alert
15001eyes, wearing the uniform of a general with sash over his shoulder,
15002entered the room, stepping briskly to the front of the crowd of
15003gentry.
15004
15005"Our sovereign the Emperor will be here in a moment," said
15006Rostopchin. "I am straight from the palace. Seeing the position we are
15007in, I think there is little need for discussion. The Emperor has
15008deigned to summon us and the merchants. Millions will pour forth
15009from there"--he pointed to the merchants' hall--"but our business is
15010to supply men and not spare ourselves... That is the least we can do!"
15011
15012A conference took place confined to the magnates sitting at the
15013table. The whole consultation passed more than quietly. After all
15014the preceding noise the sound of their old voices saying one after
15015another, "I agree," or for variety, "I too am of that opinion," and so
15016on had even a mournful effect.
15017
15018The secretary was told to write down the resolution of the Moscow
15019nobility and gentry, that they would furnish ten men, fully
15020equipped, out of every thousand serfs, as the Smolensk gentry had
15021done. Their chairs made a scraping noise as the gentlemen who had
15022conferred rose with apparent relief, and began walking up and down,
15023arm in arm, to stretch their legs and converse in couples.
15024
15025"The Emperor! The Emperor!" a sudden cry resounded through the halls
15026and the whole throng hurried to the entrance.
15027
15028The Emperor entered the hall through a broad path between two
15029lines of nobles. Every face expressed respectful, awe-struck
15030curiosity. Pierre stood rather far off and could not hear all that the
15031Emperor said. From what he did hear he understood that the Emperor
15032spoke of the danger threatening the empire and of the hopes he
15033placed on the Moscow nobility. He was answered by a voice which
15034informed him of the resolution just arrived at.
15035
15036"Gentlemen!" said the Emperor with a quivering voice.
15037
15038There was a rustling among the crowd and it again subsided, so
15039that Pierre distinctly heard the pleasantly human voice of the Emperor
15040saying with emotion:
15041
15042"I never doubted the devotion of the Russian nobles, but today it
15043has surpassed my expectations. I thank you in the name of the
15044Fatherland! Gentlemen, let us act! Time is most precious..."
15045
15046The Emperor ceased speaking, the crowd began pressing round him, and
15047rapturous exclamations were heard from all sides.
15048
15049"Yes, most precious... a royal word," said Count Rostov, with a sob.
15050He stood at the back, and, though he had heard hardly anything,
15051understood everything in his own way.
15052
15053From the hall of the nobility the Emperor went to that of the
15054merchants. There he remained about ten minutes. Pierre was among those
15055who saw him come out from the merchants' hall with tears of emotion in
15056his eyes. As became known later, he had scarcely begun to address
15057the merchants before tears gushed from his eyes and he concluded in
15058a trembling voice. When Pierre saw the Emperor he was coming out
15059accompanied by two merchants, one of whom Pierre knew, a fat
15060otkupshchik. The other was the mayor, a man with a thin sallow face
15061and narrow beard. Both were weeping. Tears filled the thin man's eyes,
15062and the fat otkupshchik sobbed outright like a child and kept
15063repeating:
15064
15065"Our lives and property--take them, Your Majesty!"
15066
15067Pierre's one feeling at the moment was a desire to show that he
15068was ready to go all lengths and was prepared to sacrifice
15069everything. He now felt ashamed of his speech with its
15070constitutional tendency and sought an opportunity of effacing it.
15071Having heard that Count Mamonov was furnishing a regiment, Bezukhov at
15072once informed Rostopchin that he would give a thousand men and their
15073maintenance.
15074
15075Old Rostov could not tell his wife of what had passed without tears,
15076and at once consented to Petya's request and went himself to enter his
15077name.
15078
15079Next day the Emperor left Moscow. The assembled nobles all took
15080off their uniforms and settled down again in their homes and clubs,
15081and not without some groans gave orders to their stewards about the
15082enrollment, feeling amazed themselves at what they had done.
15083
15084
15085
15086
15087
15088BOOK TEN: 1812
15089
15090
15091
15092
15093
15094CHAPTER I
15095
15096
15097Napoleon began the war with Russia because he could not resist going
15098to Dresden, could not help having his head turned by the homage he
15099received, could not help donning a Polish uniform and yielding to
15100the stimulating influence of a June morning, and could not refrain
15101from bursts of anger in the presence of Kurakin and then of Balashev.
15102
15103Alexander refused negotiations because he felt himself to be
15104personally insulted. Barclay de Tolly tried to command the army in the
15105best way, because he wished to fulfill his duty and earn fame as a
15106great commander. Rostov charged the French because he could not
15107restrain his wish for a gallop across a level field; and in the same
15108way the innumerable people who took part in the war acted in accord
15109with their personal characteristics, habits, circumstances, and
15110aims. They were moved by fear or vanity, rejoiced or were indignant,
15111reasoned, imagining that they knew what they were doing and did it
15112of their own free will, but they all were involuntary tools of
15113history, carrying on a work concealed from them but comprehensible
15114to us. Such is the inevitable fate of men of action, and the higher
15115they stand in the social hierarchy the less are they free.
15116
15117The actors of 1812 have long since left the stage, their personal
15118interests have vanished leaving no trace, and nothing remains of
15119that time but its historic results.
15120
15121Providence compelled all these men, striving to attain personal
15122aims, to further the accomplishment of a stupendous result no one of
15123them at all expected--neither Napoleon, nor Alexander, nor still
15124less any of those who did the actual fighting.
15125
15126The cause of the destruction of the French army in 1812 is clear
15127to us now. No one will deny that that cause was, on the one hand,
15128its advance into the heart of Russia late in the season without any
15129preparation for a winter campaign and, on the other, the character
15130given to the war by the burning of Russian towns and the hatred of the
15131foe this aroused among the Russian people. But no one at the time
15132foresaw (what now seems so evident) that this was the only way an army
15133of eight hundred thousand men--the best in the world and led by the
15134best general--could be destroyed in conflict with a raw army of half
15135its numerical strength, and led by inexperienced commanders as the
15136Russian army was. Not only did no one see this, but on the Russian
15137side every effort was made to hinder the only thing that could save
15138Russia, while on the French side, despite Napoleon's experience and
15139so-called military genius, every effort was directed to pushing on
15140to Moscow at the end of the summer, that is, to doing the very thing
15141that was bound to lead to destruction.
15142
15143In historical works on the year 1812 French writers are very fond of
15144saying that Napoleon felt the danger of extending his line, that he
15145sought a battle and that his marshals advised him to stop at Smolensk,
15146and of making similar statements to show that the danger of the
15147campaign was even then understood. Russian authors are still fonder of
15148telling us that from the commencement of the campaign a Scythian war
15149plan was adopted to lure Napoleon into the depths of Russia, and
15150this plan some of them attribute to Pfuel, others to a certain
15151Frenchman, others to Toll, and others again to Alexander himself-
15152pointing to notes, projects, and letters which contain hints of such a
15153
15154line of action. But all these hints at what happened, both from the
15155French side and the Russian, are advanced only because they fit in
15156with the event. Had that event not occurred these hints would have
15157been forgotten, as we have forgotten the thousands and millions of
15158hints and expectations to the contrary which were current then but
15159have now been forgotten because the event falsified them. There are
15160always so many conjectures as to the issue of any event that however
15161it may end there will always be people to say: "I said then that it
15162would be so," quite forgetting that amid their innumerable conjectures
15163many were to quite the contrary effect.
15164
15165Conjectures as to Napoleon's awareness of the danger of extending
15166his line, and (on the Russian side) as to luring the enemy into the
15167depths of Russia, are evidently of that kind, and only by much
15168straining can historians attribute such conceptions to Napoleon and
15169his marshals, or such plans to the Russian commanders. All the facts
15170are in flat contradiction to such conjectures. During the whole period
15171of the war not only was there no wish on the Russian side to draw
15172the French into the heart of the country, but from their first entry
15173into Russia everything was done to stop them. And not only was
15174Napoleon not afraid to extend his line, but he welcomed every step
15175forward as a triumph and did not seek battle as eagerly as in former
15176campaigns, but very lazily.
15177
15178At the very beginning of the war our armies were divided, and our
15179sole aim was to unite them, though uniting the armies was no advantage
15180if we meant to retire and lure the enemy into the depths of the
15181country. Our Emperor joined the army to encourage it to defend every
15182inch of Russian soil and not to retreat. The enormous Drissa camp
15183was formed on Pfuel's plan, and there was no intention of retiring
15184farther. The Emperor reproached the commanders in chief for every step
15185they retired. He could not bear the idea of letting the enemy even
15186reach Smolensk, still less could he contemplate the burning of Moscow,
15187and when our armies did unite he was displeased that Smolensk was
15188abandoned and burned without a general engagement having been fought
15189under its walls.
15190
15191So thought the Emperor, and the Russian commanders and people were
15192still more provoked at the thought that our forces were retreating
15193into the depths of the country.
15194
15195Napoleon having cut our armies apart advanced far into the country
15196and missed several chances of forcing an engagement. In August he
15197was at Smolensk and thought only of how to advance farther, though
15198as we now see that advance was evidently ruinous to him.
15199
15200The facts clearly show that Napoleon did not foresee the danger of
15201the advance on Moscow, nor did Alexander and the Russian commanders
15202then think of luring Napoleon on, but quite the contrary. The luring
15203of Napoleon into the depths of the country was not the result of any
15204plan, for no one believed it to be possible; it resulted from a most
15205complex interplay of intrigues, aims, and wishes among those who
15206took part in the war and had no perception whatever of the inevitable,
15207or of the one way of saving Russia. Everything came about
15208fortuitously. The armies were divided at the commencement of the
15209campaign. We tried to unite them, with the evident intention of giving
15210battle and checking the enemy's advance, and by this effort to unite
15211them while avoiding battle with a much stronger enemy, and necessarily
15212withdrawing the armies at an acute angle--we led the French on to
15213Smolensk. But we withdrew at an acute angle not only because the
15214French advanced between our two armies; the angle became still more
15215acute and we withdrew still farther, because Barclay de Tolly was an
15216unpopular foreigner disliked by Bagration (who would come his
15217command), and Bagration--being in command of the second army--tried to
15218postpone joining up and coming under Barclay's command as long as he
15219could. Bagration was slow in effecting the junction--though that was
15220the chief aim of all at headquarters--because, as he alleged, he
15221exposed his army to danger on this march, and it was best for him to
15222retire more to the left and more to the south, worrying the enemy from
15223flank and rear and securing from the Ukraine recruits for his army;
15224and it looks as if he planned this in order not to come under the
15225command of the detested foreigner Barclay, whose rank was inferior
15226to his own.
15227
15228The Emperor was with the army to encourage it, but his presence
15229and ignorance of what steps to take, and the enormous number of
15230advisers and plans, destroyed the first army's energy and it retired.
15231
15232The intention was to make a stand at the Drissa camp, but
15233Paulucci, aiming at becoming commander in chief, unexpectedly employed
15234his energy to influence Alexander, and Pfuel's whole plan was
15235abandoned and the command entrusted to Barclay. But as Barclay did not
15236inspire confidence his power was limited. The armies were divided,
15237there was no unity of command, and Barclay was unpopular; but from
15238this confusion, division, and the unpopularity of the foreign
15239commander in chief, there resulted on the one hand indecision and
15240the avoidance of a battle (which we could not have refrained from
15241had the armies been united and had someone else, instead of Barclay,
15242been in command) and on the other an ever-increasing indignation
15243against the foreigners and an increase in patriotic zeal.
15244
15245At last the Emperor left the army, and as the most convenient and
15246indeed the only pretext for his departure it was decided that it was
15247necessary for him to inspire the people in the capitals and arouse the
15248nation in general to a patriotic war. And by this visit of the Emperor
15249to Moscow the strength of the Russian army was trebled.
15250
15251He left in order not to obstruct the commander in chief's
15252undivided control of the army, and hoping that more decisive action
15253would then be taken, but the command of the armies became still more
15254confused and enfeebled. Bennigsen, the Tsarevich, and a swarm of
15255adjutants general remained with the army to keep the commander in
15256chief under observation and arouse his energy, and Barclay, feeling
15257less free than ever under the observation of all these "eyes of the
15258Emperor," became still more cautious of undertaking any decisive
15259action and avoided giving battle.
15260
15261Barclay stood for caution. The Tsarevich hinted at treachery and
15262demanded a general engagement. Lubomirski, Bronnitski, Wlocki, and the
15263others of that group stirred up so much trouble that Barclay, under
15264pretext of sending papers to the Emperor, dispatched these Polish
15265adjutants general to Petersburg and plunged into an open struggle with
15266Bennigsen and the Tsarevich.
15267
15268At Smolensk the armies at last reunited, much as Bagration
15269disliked it.
15270
15271Bagration drove up in a carriage to to the house occupied by
15272Barclay. Barclay donned his sash and came out to meet and report to
15273his senior officer Bagration.
15274
15275Despite his seniority in rank Bagration, in this contest of
15276magnanimity, took his orders from Barclay, but, having submitted,
15277agreed with him less than ever. By the Emperor's orders Bagration
15278reported direct to him. He wrote to Arakcheev, the Emperor's
15279confidant: "It must be as my sovereign pleases, but I cannot work with
15280the Minister (meaning Barclay). For God's sake send me somewhere
15281else if only in command of a regiment. I cannot stand it here.
15282Headquarters are so full of Germans that a Russian cannot exist and
15283there is no sense in anything. I thought I was really serving my
15284sovereign and the Fatherland, but it turns out that I am serving
15285Barclay. I confess I do not want to."
15286
15287The swarm of Bronnitskis and Wintzingerodes and their like still
15288further embittered the relations between the commanders in chief,
15289and even less unity resulted. Preparations were made to fight the
15290French before Smolensk. A general was sent to survey the position.
15291This general, hating Barclay, rode to visit a friend of his own, a
15292corps commander, and, having spent the day with him, returned to
15293Barclay and condemned, as unsuitable from every point of view, the
15294battleground he had not seen.
15295
15296While disputes and intrigues were going on about the future field of
15297battle, and while we were looking for the French--having lost touch
15298with them--the French stumbled upon Neverovski's division and
15299reached the walls of Smolensk.
15300
15301It was necessary to fight an unexpected battle at Smolensk to save
15302our lines of communication. The battle was fought and thousands were
15303killed on both sides.
15304
15305Smolensk was abandoned contrary to the wishes of the Emperor and
15306of the whole people. But Smolensk was burned by its own
15307inhabitants-who had been misled by their governor. And these ruined
15308inhabitants, setting an example to other Russians, went to Moscow
15309thinking only of their own losses but kindling hatred of the foe.
15310Napoleon advanced farther and we retired, thus arriving at the very
15311result which caused his destruction.
15312
15313
15314
15315
15316
15317CHAPTER II
15318
15319
15320The day after his son had left, Prince Nicholas sent for Princess
15321Mary to come to his study.
15322
15323"Well? Are you satisfied now?" said he. "You've made me quarrel with
15324my son! Satisfied, are you? That's all you wanted! Satisfied?... It
15325hurts me, it hurts. I'm old and weak and this is what you wanted. Well
15326then, gloat over it! Gloat over it!"
15327
15328After that Princess Mary did not see her father for a whole week. He
15329was ill and did not leave his study.
15330
15331Princess Mary noticed to her surprise that during this illness the
15332old prince not only excluded her from his room, but did not admit
15333Mademoiselle Bourienne either. Tikhon alone attended him.
15334
15335At the end of the week the prince reappeared and resumed his
15336former way of life, devoting himself with special activity to building
15337operations and the arrangement of the gardens and completely
15338breaking off his relations with Mademoiselle Bourienne. His looks
15339and cold tone to his daughter seemed to say: "There, you see? You
15340plotted against me, you lied to Prince Andrew about my relations
15341with that Frenchwoman and made me quarrel with him, but you see I need
15342neither her nor you!"
15343
15344Princess Mary spent half of every day with little Nicholas, watching
15345his lessons, teaching him Russian and music herself, and talking to
15346Dessalles; the rest of the day she spent over her books, with her
15347old nurse, or with "God's folk" who sometimes came by the back door to
15348see her.
15349
15350Of the war Princess Mary thought as women do think about wars. She
15351feared for her brother who was in it, was horrified by and amazed at
15352the strange cruelty that impels men to kill one another, but she did
15353not understand the significance of this war, which seemed to her
15354like all previous wars. She did not realize the significance of this
15355war, though Dessalles with whom she constantly conversed was
15356passionately interested in its progress and tried to explain his own
15357conception of it to her, and though the "God's folk" who came to see
15358her reported, in their own way, the rumors current among the people of
15359an invasion by Antichrist, and though Julie (now Princess
15360Drubetskaya), who had resumed correspondence with her, wrote patriotic
15361letters from Moscow.
15362
15363"I write you in Russian, my good friend," wrote Julie in her
15364Frenchified Russian, "because I have a detestation for all the French,
15365and the same for their language which I cannot support to hear
15366spoken.... We in Moscow are elated by enthusiasm for our adored
15367Emperor.
15368
15369"My poor husband is enduring pains and hunger in Jewish taverns, but
15370the news which I have inspires me yet more.
15371
15372"You heard probably of the heroic exploit of Raevski, embracing
15373his two sons and saying: 'I will perish with them but we will not be
15374shaken!' And truly though the enemy was twice stronger than we, we
15375were unshakable. We pass the time as we can, but in war as in war! The
15376princesses Aline and Sophie sit whole days with me, and we, unhappy
15377widows of live men, make beautiful conversations over our charpie,
15378only you, my friend, are missing..." and so on.
15379
15380The chief reason Princess Mary did not realize the full significance
15381of this war was that the old prince never spoke of it, did not
15382recognize it, and laughed at Dessalles when he mentioned it at dinner.
15383The prince's tone was so calm and confident that Princess Mary
15384unhesitatingly believed him.
15385
15386All that July the old prince was exceedingly active and even
15387animated. He planned another garden and began a new building for the
15388domestic serfs. The only thing that made Princess Mary anxious about
15389him was that he slept very little and, instead of sleeping in his
15390study as usual, changed his sleeping place every day. One day he would
15391order his camp bed to be set up in the glass gallery, another day he
15392remained on the couch or on the lounge chair in the drawing room and
15393dozed there without undressing, while--instead of Mademoiselle
15394Bourienne--a serf boy read to him. Then again he would spend a night
15395in the dining room.
15396
15397On August 1, a second letter was received from Prince Andrew. In his
15398first letter which came soon after he had left home, Prince Andrew had
15399dutifully asked his father's forgiveness for what he had allowed
15400himself to say and begged to be restored to his favor. To this
15401letter the old prince had replied affectionately, and from that time
15402had kept the Frenchwoman at a distance. Prince Andrew's second letter,
15403written near Vitebsk after the French had occupied that town, gave a
15404brief account of the whole campaign, enclosed for them a plan he had
15405drawn and forecasts as to the further progress of the war. In this
15406letter Prince Andrew pointed out to his father the danger of staying
15407at Bald Hills, so near the theater of war and on the army's direct
15408line of march, and advised him to move to Moscow.
15409
15410At dinner that day, on Dessalles' mentioning that the French were
15411said to have already entered Vitebsk, the old prince remembered his
15412son's letter.
15413
15414"There was a letter from Prince Andrew today," he said to Princess
15415Mary--"Haven't you read it?"
15416
15417"No, Father," she replied in a frightened voice.
15418
15419She could not have read the letter as she did not even know it had
15420arrived.
15421
15422"He writes about this war," said the prince, with the ironic smile
15423that had become habitual to him in speaking of the present war.
15424
15425"That must be very interesting," said Dessalles. "Prince Andrew is
15426in a position to know..."
15427
15428"Oh, very interesting!" said Mademoiselle Bourienne.
15429
15430"Go and get it for me," said the old prince to Mademoiselle
15431Bourienne. "You know--under the paperweight on the little table."
15432
15433Mademoiselle Bourienne jumped up eagerly.
15434
15435"No, don't!" he exclaimed with a frown. "You go, Michael Ivanovich."
15436
15437Michael Ivanovich rose and went to the study. But as soon as he
15438had left the room the old prince, looking uneasily round, threw down
15439his napkin and went himself.
15440
15441"They can't do anything... always make some muddle," he muttered.
15442
15443While he was away Princess Mary, Dessalles, Mademoiselle
15444Bourienne, and even little Nicholas exchanged looks in silence. The
15445old prince returned with quick steps, accompanied by Michael
15446Ivanovich, bringing the letter and a plan. These he put down beside
15447him--not letting anyone read them at dinner.
15448
15449On moving to the drawing room he handed the letter to Princess
15450Mary and, spreading out before him the plan of the new building and
15451fixing his eyes upon it, told her to read the letter aloud. When she
15452had done so Princess Mary looked inquiringly at her father. He was
15453examining the plan, evidently engrossed in his own ideas.
15454
15455"What do you think of it, Prince?" Dessalles ventured to ask.
15456
15457"I? I?..." said the prince as if unpleasantly awakened, and not
15458taking his eyes from the plan of the building.
15459
15460"Very possibly the theater of war will move so near to us that..."
15461
15462"Ha ha ha! The theater of war!" said the prince. "I have said and
15463still say that the theater of war is Poland and the enemy will never
15464get beyond the Niemen."
15465
15466Dessalles looked in amazement at the prince, who was talking of
15467the Niemen when the enemy was already at the Dnieper, but Princess
15468Mary, forgetting the geographical position of the Niemen, thought that
15469what her father was saying was correct.
15470
15471"When the snow melts they'll sink in the Polish swamps. Only they
15472could fail to see it," the prince continued, evidently thinking of the
15473campaign of 1807 which seemed to him so recent. "Bennigsen should have
15474advanced into Prussia sooner, then things would have taken a different
15475turn..."
15476
15477"But, Prince," Dessalles began timidly, "the letter mentions
15478Vitebsk...."
15479
15480"Ah, the letter? Yes..." replied the prince peevishly. "Yes...
15481yes..." His face suddenly took on a morose expression. He paused.
15482"Yes, he writes that the French were beaten at... at... what river
15483is it?"
15484
15485Dessalles dropped his eyes.
15486
15487"The prince says nothing about that," he remarked gently.
15488
15489"Doesn't he? But I didn't invent it myself."
15490
15491No one spoke for a long time.
15492
15493"Yes... yes... Well, Michael Ivanovich," he suddenly went on,
15494raising his head and pointing to the plan of the building, "tell me
15495how you mean to alter it...."
15496
15497Michael Ivanovich went up to the plan, and the prince after speaking
15498to him about the building looked angrily at Princess Mary and
15499Dessalles and went to his own room.
15500
15501Princess Mary saw Dessalles' embarrassed and astonished look fixed
15502on her father, noticed his silence, and was struck by the fact that
15503her father had forgotten his son's letter on the drawing-room table;
15504but she was not only afraid to speak of it and ask Dessalles the
15505reason of his confusion and silence, but was afraid even to think
15506about it.
15507
15508In the evening Michael Ivanovich, sent by the prince, came to
15509Princess Mary for Prince Andrew's letter which had been forgotten in
15510the drawing room. She gave it to him and, unpleasant as it was to
15511her to do so, ventured to ask him what her father was doing.
15512
15513"Always busy," replied Michael Ivanovich with a respectfully
15514ironic smile which caused Princess Mary to turn pale. "He's worrying
15515very much about the new building. He has been reading a little, but
15516now"--Michael Ivanovich went on, lowering his voice--"now he's at
15517his desk, busy with his will, I expect." (One of the prince's favorite
15518occupations of late had been the preparation of some papers he meant
15519to leave at his death and which he called his "will.")
15520
15521"And Alpatych is being sent to Smolensk?" asked Princess Mary.
15522
15523"Oh, yes, he has been waiting to start for some time."
15524
15525
15526
15527
15528
15529CHAPTER III
15530
15531
15532When Michael Ivanovich returned to the study with the letter, the
15533old prince, with spectacles on and a shade over his eyes, was
15534sitting at his open bureau with screened candles, holding a paper in
15535his outstretched hand, and in a somewhat dramatic attitude was reading
15536his manuscript--his "Remarks" as he termed it--which was to be
15537transmitted to the Emperor after his death.
15538
15539When Michael Ivanovich went in there were tears in the prince's eyes
15540evoked by the memory of the time when the paper he was now reading had
15541been written. He took the letter from Michael Ivanovich's hand, put it
15542in his pocket, folded up his papers, and called in Alpatych who had
15543long been waiting.
15544
15545The prince had a list of things to be bought in Smolensk and,
15546walking up and down the room past Alpatych who stood by the door, he
15547gave his instructions.
15548
15549"First, notepaper--do you hear? Eight quires, like this sample,
15550gilt-edged... it must be exactly like the sample. Varnish, sealing
15551wax, as in Michael Ivanovich's list."
15552
15553He paced up and down for a while and glanced at his notes.
15554
15555"Then hand to the governor in person a letter about the deed."
15556
15557Next, bolts for the doors of the new building were wanted and had to
15558be of a special shape the prince had himself designed, and a leather
15559case had to be ordered to keep the "will" in.
15560
15561The instructions to Alpatych took over two hours and still the
15562prince did not let him go. He sat down, sank into thought, closed
15563his eyes, and dozed off. Alpatych made a slight movement.
15564
15565"Well, go, go! If anything more is wanted I'll send after you."
15566
15567Alpatych went out. The prince again went to his bureau, glanced into
15568it, fingered his papers, closed the bureau again, and sat down at
15569the table to write to the governor.
15570
15571It was already late when he rose after sealing the letter. He wished
15572to sleep, but he knew he would not be able to and that most depressing
15573thoughts came to him in bed. So he called Tikhon and went through
15574the rooms with him to show him where to set up the bed for that night.
15575
15576He went about looking at every corner. Every place seemed
15577unsatisfactory, but worst of all was his customary couch in the study.
15578That couch was dreadful to him, probably because of the oppressive
15579thoughts he had had when lying there. It was unsatisfactory
15580everywhere, but the corner behind the piano in the sitting room was
15581better than other places: he had never slept there yet.
15582
15583With the help of a footman Tikhon brought in the bedstead and
15584began putting it up.
15585
15586"That's not right! That's not right!" cried the prince, and
15587himself pushed it a few inches from the corner and then closer in
15588again.
15589
15590"Well, at last I've finished, now I'll rest," thought the prince,
15591and let Tikhon undress him.
15592
15593Frowning with vexation at the effort necessary to divest himself
15594of his coat and trousers, the prince undressed, sat down heavily on
15595the bed, and appeared to be meditating as he looked contemptuously
15596at his withered yellow legs. He was not meditating, but only deferring
15597the moment of making the effort to lift those legs up and turn over on
15598the bed. "Ugh, how hard it is! Oh, that this toil might end and you
15599would release me!" thought he. Pressing his lips together he made that
15600effort for the twenty-thousandth time and lay down. But hardly had
15601he done so before he felt the bed rocking backwards and forwards
15602beneath him as if it were breathing heavily and jolting. This happened
15603to him almost every night. He opened his eyes as they were closing.
15604
15605"No peace, damn them!" he muttered, angry he knew not with whom. "Ah
15606yes, there was something else important, very important, that I was
15607keeping till I should be in bed. The bolts? No, I told him about them.
15608No, it was something, something in the drawing room. Princess Mary
15609talked some nonsense. Dessalles, that fool, said something.
15610Something in my pocket--can't remember..."
15611
15612"Tikhon, what did we talk about at dinner?"
15613
15614"About Prince Michael..."
15615
15616"Be quiet, quiet!" The prince slapped his hand on the table. "Yes, I
15617know, Prince Andrew's letter! Princess Mary read it. Dessalles said
15618something about Vitebsk. Now I'll read it."
15619
15620He had the letter taken from his pocket and the table--on which
15621stood a glass of lemonade and a spiral wax candle--moved close to
15622the bed, and putting on his spectacles he began reading. Only now in
15623the stillness of the night, reading it by the faint light under the
15624green shade, did he grasp its meaning for a moment.
15625
15626"The French at Vitebsk, in four days' march they may be at Smolensk;
15627perhaps are already there! Tikhon!" Tikhon jumped up. "No, no, I don't
15628want anything!" he shouted.
15629
15630He put the letter under the candlestick and closed his eyes. And
15631there rose before him the Danube at bright noonday: reeds, the Russian
15632camp, and himself a young general without a wrinkle on his ruddy face,
15633vigorous and alert, entering Potemkin's gaily colored tent, and a
15634burning sense of jealousy of "the favorite" agitated him now as
15635strongly as it had done then. He recalled all the words spoken at that
15636first meeting with Potemkin. And he saw before him a plump, rather
15637sallow-faced, short, stout woman, the Empress Mother, with her smile
15638and her words at her first gracious reception of him, and then that
15639same face on the catafalque, and the encounter he had with Zubov
15640over her coffin about his right to kiss her hand.
15641
15642"Oh, quicker, quicker! To get back to that time and have done with
15643all the present! Quicker, quicker--and that they should leave me in
15644peace!"
15645
15646
15647
15648
15649
15650CHAPTER IV
15651
15652
15653Bald Hills, Prince Nicholas Bolkonski's estate, lay forty miles east
15654from Smolensk and two miles from the main road to Moscow.
15655
15656The same evening that the prince gave his instructions to
15657Alpatych, Dessalles, having asked to see Princess Mary, told her that,
15658as the prince was not very well and was taking no steps to secure
15659his safety, though from Prince Andrew's letter it was evident that
15660to remain at Bald Hills might be dangerous, he respectfully advised
15661her to send a letter by Alpatych to the Provincial Governor at
15662Smolensk, asking him to let her know the state of affairs and the
15663extent of the danger to which Bald Hills was exposed. Dessalles
15664wrote this letter to the Governor for Princess Mary, she signed it,
15665and it was given to Alpatych with instructions to hand it to the
15666Governor and to come back as quickly as possible if there was danger.
15667
15668Having received all his orders Alpatych, wearing a white beaver hat-
15669a present from the prince--and carrying a stick as the prince did,
15670went out accompanied by his family. Three well-fed roans stood ready
15671harnessed to a small conveyance with a leather hood.
15672
15673The larger bell was muffled and the little bells on the harness
15674stuffed with paper. The prince allowed no one at Bald Hills to drive
15675with ringing bells; but on a long journey Alpatych liked to have them.
15676His satellites--the senior clerk, a countinghouse clerk, a scullery
15677maid, a cook, two old women, a little pageboy, the coachman, and
15678various domestic serfs--were seeing him off.
15679
15680His daughter placed chintz-covered down cushions for him to sit on
15681and behind his back. His old sister-in-law popped in a small bundle,
15682and one of the coachmen helped him into the vehicle.
15683
15684"There! There! Women's fuss! Women, women!" said Alpatych, puffing
15685and speaking rapidly just as the prince did, and he climbed into the
15686trap.
15687
15688After giving the clerk orders about the work to be done, Alpatych,
15689not trying to imitate the prince now, lifted the hat from his bald
15690head and crossed himself three times.
15691
15692"If there is anything... come back, Yakov Alpatych! For Christ's
15693sake think of us!" cried his wife, referring to the rumors of war
15694and the enemy.
15695
15696"Women, women! Women's fuss!" muttered Alpatych to himself and
15697started on his journey, looking round at the fields of yellow rye
15698and the still-green, thickly growing oats, and at other quite black
15699fields just being plowed a second time.
15700
15701As he went along he looked with pleasure at the year's splendid crop
15702of corn, scrutinized the strips of ryefield which here and there
15703were already being reaped, made his calculations as to the sowing
15704and the harvest, and asked himself whether he had not forgotten any of
15705the prince's orders.
15706
15707Having baited the horses twice on the way, he arrived at the town
15708toward evening on the fourth of August.
15709
15710Alpatych kept meeting and overtaking baggage trains and troops on
15711the road. As he approached Smolensk he heard the sounds of distant
15712firing, but these did not impress him. What struck him most was the
15713sight of a splendid field of oats in which a camp had been pitched and
15714which was being mown down by the soldiers, evidently for fodder.
15715This fact impressed Alpatych, but in thinking about his own business
15716he soon forgot it.
15717
15718All the interests of his life for more than thirty years had been
15719bounded by the will of the prince, and he never went beyond that
15720limit. Everything not connected with the execution of the prince's
15721orders did not interest and did not even exist for Alpatych.
15722
15723On reaching Smolensk on the evening of the fourth of August he put
15724up in the Gachina suburb across the Dnieper, at the inn kept by
15725Ferapontov, where he had been in the habit of putting up for the
15726last thirty years. Some thirty years ago Ferapontov, by Alpatych's
15727advice, had bought a wood from the prince, had begun to trade, and now
15728had a house, an inn, and a corn dealer's shop in that province. He was
15729a stout, dark, red-faced peasant in the forties, with thick lips, a
15730broad knob of a nose, similar knobs over his black frowning brows, and
15731a round belly.
15732
15733Wearing a waistcoat over his cotton shirt, Ferapontov was standing
15734before his shop which opened onto the street. On seeing Alpatych he
15735went up to him.
15736
15737"You're welcome, Yakov Alpatych. Folks are leaving the town, but you
15738have come to it," said he.
15739
15740"Why are they leaving the town?" asked Alpatych.
15741
15742"That's what I say. Folks are foolish! Always afraid of the French."
15743
15744"Women's fuss, women's fuss!" said Alpatych.
15745
15746"Just what I think, Yakov Alpatych. What I say is: orders have
15747been given not to let them in, so that must be right. And the peasants
15748are asking three rubles for carting--it isn't Christian!"
15749
15750Yakov Alpatych heard without heeding. He asked for a samovar and for
15751hay for his horses, and when he had had his tea he went to bed.
15752
15753All night long troops were moving past the inn. Next morning
15754Alpatych donned a jacket he wore only in town and went out on
15755business. It was a sunny morning and by eight o'clock it was already
15756hot. "A good day for harvesting," thought Alpatych.
15757
15758From beyond the town firing had been heard since early morning. At
15759eight o'clock the booming of cannon was added to the sound of
15760musketry. Many people were hurrying through the streets and there were
15761many soldiers, but cabs were still driving about, tradesmen stood at
15762their shops, and service was being held in the churches as usual.
15763Alpatych went to the shops, to government offices, to the post office,
15764and to the Governor's. In the offices and shops and at the post office
15765everyone was talking about the army and about the enemy who was
15766already attacking the town, everybody was asking what should be
15767done, and all were trying to calm one another.
15768
15769In front of the Governor's house Alpatych found a large number of
15770people, Cossacks, and a traveling carriage of the Governor's. At the
15771porch he met two of the landed gentry, one of whom he knew. This
15772man, an ex-captain of police, was saying angrily:
15773
15774"It's no joke, you know! It's all very well if you're single. 'One
15775man though undone is but one,' as the proverb says, but with
15776thirteen in your family and all the property... They've brought us
15777to utter ruin! What sort of governors are they to do that? They
15778ought to be hanged--the brigands!..."
15779
15780"Oh come, that's enough!" said the other.
15781
15782"What do I care? Let him hear! We're not dogs," said the
15783ex-captain of police, and looking round he noticed Alpatych.
15784
15785"Oh, Yakov Alpatych! What have you come for?"
15786
15787"To see the Governor by his excellency's order," answered
15788Alpatych, lifting his head and proudly thrusting his hand into the
15789bosom of his coat as he always did when he mentioned the prince....
15790"He has ordered me to inquire into the position of affairs," he added.
15791
15792"Yes, go and find out!" shouted the angry gentleman. "They've
15793brought things to such a pass that there are no carts or
15794anything!... There it is again, do you hear?" said he, pointing
15795in the direction whence came the sounds of firing.
15796
15797"They've brought us all to ruin... the brigands!" he repeated, and
15798descended the porch steps.
15799
15800Alpatych swayed his head and went upstairs. In the waiting room were
15801tradesmen, women, and officials, looking silently at one another.
15802The door of the Governor's room opened and they all rose and moved
15803forward. An official ran out, said some words to a merchant, called
15804a stout official with a cross hanging on his neck to follow him, and
15805vanished again, evidently wishing to avoid the inquiring looks and
15806questions addressed to him. Alpatych moved forward and next time the
15807official came out addressed him, one hand placed in the breast of
15808his buttoned coat, and handed him two letters.
15809
15810"To his Honor Baron Asch, from General-in-Chief Prince Bolkonski,"
15811he announced with such solemnity and significance that the official
15812turned to him and took the letters.
15813
15814A few minutes later the Governor received Alpatych and hurriedly
15815said to him:
15816
15817"Inform the prince and princess that I knew nothing: I acted on
15818the highest instructions--here..." and he handed a paper to
15819Alpatych. "Still, as the prince is unwell my advice is that they
15820should go to Moscow. I am just starting myself. Inform them..."
15821
15822But the Governor did not finish: a dusty perspiring officer ran into
15823the room and began to say something in French. The Governor's face
15824expressed terror.
15825
15826"Go," he said, nodding his head to Alpatych, and began questioning
15827the officer.
15828
15829Eager, frightened, helpless glances were turned on Alpatych when
15830he came out of the Governor's room. Involuntarily listening now to the
15831firing, which had drawn nearer and was increasing in strength,
15832Alpatych hurried to his inn. The paper handed to him by the Governor
15833said this:
15834
15835
15836"I assure you that the town of Smolensk is not in the slightest
15837danger as yet and it is unlikely that it will be threatened with
15838any. I from the one side and Prince Bagration from the other are
15839marching to unite our forces before Smolensk, which junction will be
15840effected on the 22nd instant, and both armies with their united forces
15841will defend our compatriots of the province entrusted to your care
15842till our efforts shall have beaten back the enemies of our Fatherland,
15843or till the last warrior in our valiant ranks has perished. From
15844this you will see that you have a perfect right to reassure the
15845inhabitants of Smolensk, for those defended by two such brave armies
15846may feel assured of victory." (Instructions from Barclay de Tolly to
15847Baron Asch, the civil governor of Smolensk, 1812.)
15848
15849
15850People were anxiously roaming about the streets.
15851
15852Carts piled high with household utensils, chairs, and cupboards kept
15853emerging from the gates of the yards and moving along the streets.
15854Loaded carts stood at the house next to Ferapontov's and women were
15855wailing and lamenting as they said good-by. A small watchdog ran round
15856barking in front of the harnessed horses.
15857
15858Alpatych entered the innyard at a quicker pace than usual and went
15859straight to the shed where his horses and trap were. The coachman
15860was asleep. He woke him up, told him to harness, and went into the
15861passage. From the host's room came the sounds of a child crying, the
15862despairing sobs of a woman, and the hoarse angry shouting of
15863Ferapontov. The cook began running hither and thither in the passage
15864like a frightened hen, just as Alpatych entered.
15865
15866"He's done her to death. Killed the mistress!... Beat her... dragged
15867her about so!..."
15868
15869"What for?" asked Alpatych.
15870
15871"She kept begging to go away. She's a woman! 'Take me away,' says
15872she, 'don't let me perish with my little children! Folks,' she says,
15873'are all gone, so why,' she says, 'don't we go?' And he began
15874beating and pulling her about so!"
15875
15876At these words Alpatych nodded as if in approval, and not wishing to
15877hear more went to the door of the room opposite the innkeeper's, where
15878he had left his purchases.
15879
15880"You brute, you murderer!" screamed a thin, pale woman who, with a
15881baby in her arms and her kerchief torn from her head, burst through
15882the door at that moment and down the steps into the yard.
15883
15884Ferapontov came out after her, but on seeing Alpatych adjusted his
15885waistcoat, smoothed his hair, yawned, and followed Alpatych into the
15886opposite room.
15887
15888"Going already?" said he.
15889
15890Alpatych, without answering or looking at his host, sorted his
15891packages and asked how much he owed.
15892
15893"We'll reckon up! Well, have you been to the Governor's?" asked
15894Ferapontov. "What has been decided?"
15895
15896Alpatych replied that the Governor had not told him anything
15897definite.
15898
15899"With our business, how can we get away?" said Ferapontov. "We'd
15900have to pay seven rubles a cartload to Dorogobuzh and I tell them
15901they're not Christians to ask it! Selivanov, now, did a good stroke
15902last Thursday--sold flour to the army at nine rubles a sack. Will
15903you have some tea?" he added.
15904
15905While the horses were being harnessed Alpatych and Ferapontov over
15906their tea talked of the price of corn, the crops, and the good weather
15907for harvesting.
15908
15909"Well, it seems to be getting quieter," remarked Ferapontov,
15910finishing his third cup of tea and getting up. "Ours must have got the
15911best of it. The orders were not to let them in. So we're in force,
15912it seems.... They say the other day Matthew Ivanych Platov drove
15913them into the river Marina and drowned some eighteen thousand in one
15914day."
15915
15916Alpatych collected his parcels, handed them to the coachman who
15917had come in, and settled up with the innkeeper. The noise of wheels,
15918hoofs, and bells was heard from the gateway as a little trap passed
15919out.
15920
15921It was by now late in the afternoon. Half the street was in
15922shadow, the other half brightly lit by the sun. Alpatych looked out of
15923the window and went to the door. Suddenly the strange sound of a
15924far-off whistling and thud was heard, followed by a boom of cannon
15925blending into a dull roar that set the windows rattling.
15926
15927He went out into the street: two men were running past toward the
15928bridge. From different sides came whistling sounds and the thud of
15929cannon balls and bursting shells falling on the town. But these sounds
15930were hardly heard in comparison with the noise of the firing outside
15931the town and attracted little attention from the inhabitants. The town
15932was being bombarded by a hundred and thirty guns which Napoleon had
15933ordered up after four o'clock. The people did not at once realize
15934the meaning of this bombardment.
15935
15936At first the noise of the falling bombs and shells only aroused
15937curiosity. Ferapontov's wife, who till then had not ceased wailing
15938under the shed, became quiet and with the baby in her arms went to the
15939gate, listening to the sounds and looking in silence at the people.
15940
15941The cook and a shop assistant came to the gate. With lively
15942curiosity everyone tried to get a glimpse of the projectiles as they
15943flew over their heads. Several people came round the corner talking
15944eagerly.
15945
15946"What force!" remarked one. "Knocked the roof and ceiling all to
15947splinters!"
15948
15949"Routed up the earth like a pig," said another.
15950
15951"That's grand, it bucks one up!" laughed the first. "Lucky you
15952jumped aside, or it would have wiped you out!"
15953
15954Others joined those men and stopped and told how cannon balls had
15955fallen on a house close to them. Meanwhile still more projectiles, now
15956with the swift sinister whistle of a cannon ball, now with the
15957agreeable intermittent whistle of a shell, flew over people's heads
15958incessantly, but not one fell close by, they all flew over. Alpatych
15959was getting into his trap. The innkeeper stood at the gate.
15960
15961"What are you staring at?" he shouted to the cook, who in her red
15962skirt, with sleeves rolled up, swinging her bare elbows, had stepped
15963to the corner to listen to what was being said.
15964
15965"What marvels!" she exclaimed, but hearing her master's voice she
15966turned back, pulling down her tucked-up skirt.
15967
15968Once more something whistled, but this time quite close, swooping
15969downwards like a little bird; a flame flashed in the middle of the
15970street, something exploded, and the street was shrouded in smoke.
15971
15972"Scoundrel, what are you doing?" shouted the innkeeper, rushing to
15973the cook.
15974
15975At that moment the pitiful wailing of women was heard from different
15976sides, the frightened baby began to cry, and people crowded silently
15977with pale faces round the cook. The loudest sound in that crowd was
15978her wailing.
15979
15980"Oh-h-h! Dear souls, dear kind souls! Don't let me die! My good
15981souls!..."
15982
15983Five minutes later no one remained in the street. The cook, with her
15984thigh broken by a shell splinter, had been carried into the kitchen.
15985Alpatych, his coachman, Ferapontov's wife and children and the house
15986porter were all sitting in the cellar, listening. The roar of guns,
15987the whistling of projectiles, and the piteous moaning of the cook,
15988which rose above the other sounds, did not cease for a moment. The
15989mistress rocked and hushed her baby and when anyone came into the
15990cellar asked in a pathetic whisper what had become of her husband
15991who had remained in the street. A shopman who entered told her that
15992her husband had gone with others to the cathedral, whence they were
15993fetching the wonder-working icon of Smolensk.
15994
15995Toward dusk the cannonade began to subside. Alpatych left the cellar
15996and stopped in the doorway. The evening sky that had been so clear was
15997clouded with smoke, through which, high up, the sickle of the new moon
15998shone strangely. Now that the terrible din of the guns had ceased a
15999hush seemed to reign over the town, broken only by the rustle of
16000footsteps, the moaning, the distant cries, and the crackle of fires
16001which seemed widespread everywhere. The cook's moans had now subsided.
16002On two sides black curling clouds of smoke rose and spread from the
16003fires. Through the streets soldiers in various uniforms walked or
16004ran confusedly in different directions like ants from a ruined
16005ant-hill. Several of them ran into Ferapontov's yard before Alpatych's
16006eyes. Alpatych went out to the gate. A retreating regiment,
16007thronging and hurrying, blocked the street.
16008
16009Noticing him, an officer said: "The town is being abandoned. Get
16010away, get away!" and then, turning to the soldiers, shouted:
16011
16012"I'll teach you to run into the yards!"
16013
16014Alpatych went back to the house, called the coachman, and told him
16015to set off. Ferapontov's whole household came out too, following
16016Alpatych and the coachman. The women, who had been silent till then,
16017suddenly began to wail as they looked at the fires--the smoke and even
16018the flames of which could be seen in the failing twilight--and as if
16019in reply the same kind of lamentation was heard from other parts of
16020the street. Inside the shed Alpatych and the coachman arranged the
16021tangled reins and traces of their horses with trembling hands.
16022
16023As Alpatych was driving out of the gate he saw some ten soldiers
16024in Ferapontov's open shop, talking loudly and filling their bags and
16025knapsacks with flour and sunflower seeds. Just then Ferapontov
16026returned and entered his shop. On seeing the soldiers he was about
16027to shout at them, but suddenly stopped and, clutching at his hair,
16028burst into sobs and laughter:
16029
16030"Loot everything, lads! Don't let those devils get it!" he cried,
16031taking some bags of flour himself and throwing them into the street.
16032
16033Some of the soldiers were frightened and ran away, others went on
16034filling their bags. On seeing Alpatych, Ferapontov turned to him:
16035
16036"Russia is done for!" he cried. "Alpatych, I'll set the place on
16037fire myself. We're done for!..." and Ferapontov ran into the yard.
16038
16039Soldiers were passing in a constant stream along the street blocking
16040it completely, so that Alpatych could not pass out and had to wait.
16041Ferapontov's wife and children were also sitting in a cart waiting
16042till it was possible to drive out.
16043
16044Night had come. There were stars in the sky and the new moon shone
16045out amid the smoke that screened it. On the sloping descent to the
16046Dnieper Alpatych's cart and that of the innkeeper's wife, which were
16047slowly moving amid the rows of soldiers and of other vehicles, had
16048to stop. In a side street near the crossroads where the vehicles had
16049stopped, a house and some shops were on fire. This fire was already
16050burning itself out. The flames now died down and were lost in the
16051black smoke, now suddenly flared up again brightly, lighting up with
16052strange distinctness the faces of the people crowding at the
16053crossroads. Black figures flitted about before the fire, and through
16054the incessant crackling of the flames talking and shouting could be
16055heard. Seeing that his trap would not be able to move on for some
16056time, Alpatych got down and turned into the side street to look at the
16057fire. Soldiers were continually rushing backwards and forwards near
16058it, and he saw two of them and a man in a frieze coat dragging burning
16059beams into another yard across the street, while others carried
16060bundles of hay.
16061
16062Alpatych went up to a large crowd standing before a high barn
16063which was blazing briskly. The walls were all on fire and the back
16064wall had fallen in, the wooden roof was collapsing, and the rafters
16065were alight. The crowd was evidently watching for the roof to fall in,
16066and Alpatych watched for it too.
16067
16068"Alpatych!" a familiar voice suddenly hailed the old man.
16069
16070"Mercy on us! Your excellency!" answered Alpatych, immediately
16071recognizing the voice of his young prince.
16072
16073Prince Andrew in his riding cloak, mounted on a black horse, was
16074looking at Alpatych from the back of the crowd.
16075
16076"Why are you here?" he asked.
16077
16078"Your... your excellency," stammered Alpatych and broke into sobs.
16079"Are we really lost? Master!..."
16080
16081"Why are you here?" Prince Andrew repeated.
16082
16083At that moment the flames flared up and showed his young master's
16084pale worn face. Alpatych told how he had been sent there and how
16085difficult it was to get away.
16086
16087"Are we really quite lost, your excellency?" he asked again.
16088
16089Prince Andrew without replying took out a notebook and raising his
16090knee began writing in pencil on a page he tore out. He wrote to his
16091sister:
16092
16093
16094"Smolensk is being abandoned. Bald Hills will be occupied by the
16095enemy within a week. Set off immediately for Moscow. Let me know at
16096once when you will start. Send by special messenger to Usvyazh."
16097
16098
16099Having written this and given the paper to Alpatych, he told him how
16100to arrange for departure of the prince, the princess, his son, and the
16101boy's tutor, and how and where to let him know immediately. Before
16102he had had time to finish giving these instructions, a chief of
16103staff followed by a suite galloped up to him.
16104
16105"You are a colonel?" shouted the chief of staff with a German
16106accent, in a voice familiar to Prince Andrew. "Houses are set on
16107fire in your presence and you stand by! What does this mean? You
16108will answer for it!" shouted Berg, who was now assistant to the
16109chief of staff of the commander of the left flank of the infantry of
16110the first army, a place, as Berg said, "very agreeable and well en
16111evidence."
16112
16113Prince Andrew looked at him and without replying went on speaking to
16114Alpatych.
16115
16116"So tell them that I shall await a reply till the tenth, and if by
16117the tenth I don't receive news that they have all got away I shall
16118have to throw up everything and come myself to Bald Hills."
16119
16120"Prince," said Berg, recognizing Prince Andrew, "I only spoke
16121because I have to obey orders, because I always do obey exactly....
16122You must please excuse me," he went on apologetically.
16123
16124Something cracked in the flames. The fire died down for a moment and
16125wreaths of black smoke rolled from under the roof. There was another
16126terrible crash and something huge collapsed.
16127
16128"Ou-rou-rou!" yelled the crowd, echoing the crash of the
16129collapsing roof of the barn, the burning grain in which diffused a
16130cakelike aroma all around. The flames flared up again, lighting the
16131animated, delighted, exhausted faces of the spectators.
16132
16133The man in the frieze coat raised his arms and shouted:
16134
16135"It's fine, lads! Now it's raging... It's fine!"
16136
16137"That's the owner himself," cried several voices.
16138
16139"Well then," continued Prince Andrew to Alpatych, "report to them as
16140I have told you"; and not replying a word to Berg who was now mute
16141beside him, he touched his horse and rode down the side street.
16142
16143
16144
16145
16146
16147CHAPTER V
16148
16149
16150From Smolensk the troops continued to retreat, followed by the
16151enemy. On the tenth of August the regiment Prince Andrew commanded was
16152marching along the highroad past the avenue leading to Bald Hills.
16153Heat and drought had continued for more than three weeks. Each day
16154fleecy clouds floated across the sky and occasionally veiled the
16155sun, but toward evening the sky cleared again and the sun set in
16156reddish-brown mist. Heavy night dews alone refreshed the earth. The
16157unreaped corn was scorched and shed its grain. The marshes dried up.
16158The cattle lowed from hunger, finding no food on the sun-parched
16159meadows. Only at night and in the forests while the dew lasted was
16160there any freshness. But on the road, the highroad along which the
16161troops marched, there was no such freshness even at night or when
16162the road passed through the forest; the dew was imperceptible on the
16163sandy dust churned up more than six inches deep. As soon as day dawned
16164the march began. The artillery and baggage wagons moved noiselessly
16165through the deep dust that rose to the very hubs of the wheels, and
16166the infantry sank ankle-deep in that soft, choking, hot dust that
16167never cooled even at night. Some of this dust was kneaded by the
16168feet and wheels, while the rest rose and hung like a cloud over the
16169troops, settling in eyes, ears, hair, and nostrils, and worst of all
16170in the lungs of the men and beasts as they moved along that road.
16171The higher the sun rose the higher rose that cloud of dust, and
16172through the screen of its hot fine particles one could look with naked
16173eye at the sun, which showed like a huge crimson ball in the unclouded
16174sky. There was no wind, and the men choked in that motionless
16175atmosphere. They marched with handkerchiefs tied over their noses
16176and mouths. When they passed through a village they all rushed to
16177the wells and fought for the water and drank it down to the mud.
16178
16179Prince Andrew was in command of a regiment, and the management of
16180that regiment, the welfare of the men and the necessity of receiving
16181and giving orders, engrossed him. The burning of Smolensk and its
16182abandonment made an epoch in his life. A novel feeling of anger
16183against the foe made him forget his own sorrow. He was entirely
16184devoted to the affairs of his regiment and was considerate and kind to
16185his men and officers. In the regiment they called him "our prince,"
16186were proud of him and loved him. But he was kind and gentle only to
16187those of his regiment, to Timokhin and the like--people quite new to
16188him, belonging to a different world and who could not know and
16189understand his past. As soon as he came across a former acquaintance
16190or anyone from the staff, he bristled up immediately and grew
16191spiteful, ironical, and contemptuous. Everything that reminded him
16192of his past was repugnant to him, and so in his relations with that
16193former circle he confined himself to trying to do his duty and not
16194to be unfair.
16195
16196In truth everything presented itself in a dark and gloomy light to
16197Prince Andrew, especially after the abandonment of Smolensk on the
16198sixth of August (he considered that it could and should have been
16199defended) and after his sick father had had to flee to Moscow,
16200abandoning to pillage his dearly beloved Bald Hills which he had built
16201and peopled. But despite this, thanks to his regiment, Prince Andrew
16202had something to think about entirely apart from general questions.
16203Two days previously he had received news that his father, son, and
16204sister had left for Moscow; and though there was nothing for him to do
16205at Bald Hills, Prince Andrew with a characteristic desire to foment
16206his own grief decided that he must ride there.
16207
16208He ordered his horse to be saddled and, leaving his regiment on
16209the march, rode to his father's estate where he had been born and
16210spent his childhood. Riding past the pond where there used always to
16211be dozens of women chattering as they rinsed their linen or beat it
16212with wooden beetles, Prince Andrew noticed that there was not a soul
16213about and that the little washing wharf, torn from its place and
16214half submerged, was floating on its side in the middle of the pond. He
16215rode to the keeper's lodge. No one at the stone entrance gates of
16216the drive and the door stood open. Grass had already begun to grow
16217on the garden paths, and horses and calves were straying in the
16218English park. Prince Andrew rode up to the hothouse; some of the glass
16219panes were broken, and of the trees in tubs some were overturned and
16220others dried up. He called for Taras the gardener, but no one replied.
16221Having gone round the corner of the hothouse to the ornamental garden,
16222he saw that the carved garden fence was broken and branches of the
16223plum trees had been torn off with the fruit. An old peasant whom
16224Prince Andrew in his childhood had often seen at the gate was
16225sitting on a green garden seat, plaiting a bast shoe.
16226
16227He was deaf and did not hear Prince Andrew ride up. He was sitting
16228on the seat the old prince used to like to sit on, and beside him
16229strips of bast were hanging on the broken and withered branch of a
16230magnolia.
16231
16232Prince Andrew rode up to the house. Several limes in the old
16233garden had been cut down and a piebald mare and her foal were
16234wandering in front of the house among the rosebushes. The shutters
16235were all closed, except at one window which was open. A little serf
16236boy, seeing Prince Andrew, ran into the house. Alpatych, having sent
16237his family away, was alone at Bald Hills and was sitting indoors
16238reading the Lives of the Saints. On hearing that Prince Andrew had
16239come, he went out with his spectacles on his nose, buttoning his coat,
16240and, hastily stepping up, without a word began weeping and kissing
16241Prince Andrew's knee.
16242
16243Then, vexed at his own weakness, he turned away and began to
16244report on the position of affairs. Everything precious and valuable
16245had been removed to Bogucharovo. Seventy quarters of grain had also
16246been carted away. The hay and the spring corn, of which Alpatych
16247said there had been a remarkable crop that year, had been commandeered
16248by the troops and mown down while still green. The peasants were
16249ruined; some of them too had gone to Bogucharovo, only a few remained.
16250
16251Without waiting to hear him out, Prince Andrew asked:
16252
16253"When did my father and sister leave?" meaning when did they leave
16254for Moscow.
16255
16256Alpatych, understanding the question to refer to their departure for
16257Bogucharovo, replied that they had left on the seventh and again
16258went into details concerning the estate management, asking for
16259instructions.
16260
16261"Am I to let the troops have the oats, and to take a receipt for
16262them? We have still six hundred quarters left," he inquired.
16263
16264"What am I to say to him?" thought Prince Andrew, looking down on
16265the old man's bald head shining in the sun and seeing by the
16266expression on his face that the old man himself understood how
16267untimely such questions were and only asked them to allay his grief.
16268
16269"Yes, let them have it," replied Prince Andrew.
16270
16271"If you noticed some disorder in the garden," said Alpatych, "it was
16272impossible to prevent it. Three regiments have been here and spent the
16273night, dragoons mostly. I took down the name and rank of their
16274commanding officer, to hand in a complaint about it."
16275
16276"Well, and what are you going to do? Will you stay here if the enemy
16277occupies the place?" asked Prince Andrew.
16278
16279Alpatych turned his face to Prince Andrew, looked at him, and
16280suddenly with a solemn gesture raised his arm.
16281
16282"He is my refuge! His will be done!" he exclaimed.
16283
16284A group of bareheaded peasants was approaching across the meadow
16285toward the prince.
16286
16287"Well, good-by!" said Prince Andrew, bending over to Alpatych.
16288"You must go away too, take away what you can and tell the serfs to go
16289to the Ryazan estate or to the one near Moscow."
16290
16291Alpatych clung to Prince Andrew's leg and burst into sobs. Gently
16292disengaging himself, the prince spurred his horse and rode down the
16293avenue at a gallop.
16294
16295The old man was still sitting in the ornamental garden, like a fly
16296impassive on the face of a loved one who is dead, tapping the last
16297on which he was making the bast shoe, and two little girls, running
16298out from the hot house carrying in their skirts plums they had plucked
16299from the trees there, came upon Prince Andrew. On seeing the young
16300master, the elder one frightened look clutched her younger companion
16301by the hand and hid with her behind a birch tree, not stopping to pick
16302up some green plums they had dropped.
16303
16304Prince Andrew turned away with startled haste, unwilling to let them
16305see that they had been observed. He was sorry for the pretty
16306frightened little girl, was afraid of looking at her, and yet felt
16307an irresistible desire to do so. A new sensation of comfort and relief
16308came over him when, seeing these girls, he realized the existence of
16309other human interests entirely aloof from his own and just as
16310legitimate as those that occupied him. Evidently these girls
16311passionately desired one thing--to carry away and eat those green
16312plums without being caught--and Prince Andrew shared their wish for
16313the success of their enterprise. He could not resist looking at them
16314once more. Believing their danger past, they sprang from their
16315ambush and, chirruping something in their shrill little voices and
16316holding up their skirts, their bare little sunburned feet scampered
16317merrily and quickly across the meadow grass.
16318
16319Prince Andrew was somewhat refreshed by having ridden off the
16320dusty highroad along which the troops were moving. But not far from
16321Bald Hills he again came out on the road and overtook his regiment
16322at its halting place by the dam of a small pond. It was past one
16323o'clock. The sun, a red ball through the dust, burned and scorched his
16324back intolerably through his black coat. The dust always hung
16325motionless above the buzz of talk that came from the resting troops.
16326There was no wind. As he crossed the dam Prince Andrew smelled the
16327ooze and freshness of the pond. He longed to get into that water,
16328however dirty it might be, and he glanced round at the pool from
16329whence came sounds of shrieks and laughter. The small, muddy, green
16330pond had risen visibly more than a foot, flooding the dam, because
16331it was full of the naked white bodies of soldiers with brick-red
16332hands, necks, and faces, who were splashing about in it. All this
16333naked white human flesh, laughing and shrieking, floundered about in
16334that dirty pool like carp stuffed into a watering can, and the
16335suggestion of merriment in that floundering mass rendered it specially
16336pathetic.
16337
16338One fair-haired young soldier of the third company, whom Prince
16339Andrew knew and who had a strap round the calf of one leg, crossed
16340himself, stepped back to get a good run, and plunged into the water;
16341another, a dark noncommissioned officer who was always shaggy, stood
16342up to his waist in the water joyfully wriggling his muscular figure
16343and snorted with satisfaction as he poured the water over his head
16344with hands blackened to the wrists. There were sounds of men
16345slapping one another, yelling, and puffing.
16346
16347Everywhere on the bank, on the dam, and in the pond, there was
16348healthy, white, muscular flesh. The officer, Timokhin, with his red
16349little nose, standing on the dam wiping himself with a towel, felt
16350confused at seeing the prince, but made up his mind to address him
16351nevertheless.
16352
16353"It's very nice, your excellency! Wouldn't you like to?" said he.
16354
16355"It's dirty," replied Prince Andrew, making a grimace.
16356
16357"We'll clear it out for you in a minute," said Timokhin, and,
16358still undressed, ran off to clear the men out of the pond.
16359
16360"The prince wants to bathe."
16361
16362"What prince? Ours?" said many voices, and the men were in such
16363haste to clear out that the prince could hardly stop them. He
16364decided that he would rather wash himself with water in the barn.
16365
16366"Flesh, bodies, cannon fodder!" he thought, and he looked at his own
16367naked body and shuddered, not from cold but from a sense of disgust
16368and horror he did not himself understand, aroused by the sight of that
16369immense number of bodies splashing about in the dirty pond.
16370
16371
16372On the seventh of August Prince Bagration wrote as follows from
16373his quarters at Mikhaylovna on the Smolensk road:
16374
16375
16376Dear Count Alexis Andreevich--(He was writing to Arakcheev but
16377knew that his letter would be read by the Emperor, and therefore
16378weighed every word in it to the best of his ability.)
16379
16380I expect the Minister [Barclay de Tolly] has already reported the
16381abandonment of Smolensk to the enemy. It is pitiable and sad, and
16382the whole army is in despair that this most important place has been
16383wantonly abandoned. I, for my part, begged him personally most
16384urgently and finally wrote him, but nothing would induce him to
16385consent. I swear to you on my honor that Napoleon was in such a fix as
16386never before and might have lost half his army but could not have
16387taken Smolensk. Our troops fought, and are fighting, as never
16388before. With fifteen thousand men I held the enemy at bay for
16389thirty-five hours and beat him; but he would not hold out even for
16390fourteen hours. It is disgraceful, a stain on our army, and as for
16391him, he ought, it seems to me, not to live. If he reports that our
16392losses were great, it is not true; perhaps about four thousand, not
16393more, and not even that; but even were they ten thousand, that's
16394war! But the enemy has lost masses...
16395
16396What would it have cost him to hold out for another two days? They
16397would have had to retire of their own accord, for they had no water
16398for men or horses. He gave me his word he would not retreat, but
16399suddenly sent instructions that he was retiring that night. We
16400cannot fight in this way, or we may soon bring the enemy to Moscow...
16401
16402There is a rumor that you are thinking of peace. God forbid that you
16403should make peace after all our sacrifices and such insane retreats!
16404You would set all Russia against you and every one of us would feel
16405ashamed to wear the uniform. If it has come to this--we must fight
16406as long as Russia can and as long as there are men able to stand...
16407
16408One man ought to be in command, and not two. Your Minister may
16409perhaps be good as a Minister, but as a general he is not merely bad
16410but execrable, yet to him is entrusted the fate of our whole
16411country.... I am really frantic with vexation; forgive my writing
16412boldly. It is clear that the man who advocates the conclusion of a
16413peace, and that the Minister should command the army, does not love
16414our sovereign and desires the ruin of us all. So I write you
16415frankly: call out the militia. For the Minister is leading these
16416visitors after him to Moscow in a most masterly way. The whole army
16417feels great suspicion of the Imperial aide-de-camp Wolzogen. He is
16418said to be more Napoleon's man than ours, and he is always advising
16419the Minister. I am not merely civil to him but obey him like a
16420corporal, though I am his senior. This is painful, but, loving my
16421benefactor and sovereign, I submit. Only I am sorry for the Emperor
16422that he entrusts our fine army to such as he. Consider that on our
16423retreat we have lost by fatigue and left in the hospital more than
16424fifteen thousand men, and had we attacked this would not have
16425happened. Tell me, for God's sake, what will Russia, our mother
16426Russia, say to our being so frightened, and why are we abandoning
16427our good and gallant Fatherland to such rabble and implanting feelings
16428of hatred and shame in all our subjects? What are we scared at and
16429of whom are we afraid? I am not to blame that the Minister is
16430vacillating, a coward, dense, dilatory, and has all bad qualities. The
16431whole army bewails it and calls down curses upon him...
16432
16433
16434
16435
16436
16437CHAPTER VI
16438
16439
16440Among the innumerable categories applicable to the phenomena of
16441human life one may discriminate between those in which substance
16442prevails and those in which form prevails. To the latter--as
16443distinguished from village, country, provincial, or even Moscow
16444life--we may allot Petersburg life, and especially the life of its
16445salons. That life of the salons is unchanging. Since the year 1805
16446we had made peace and had again quarreled with Bonaparte and had
16447made constitutions and unmade them again, but the salons of Anna
16448Pavlovna Helene remained just as they had been--the one seven and
16449the other five years before. At Anna Pavlovna's they talked with
16450perplexity of Bonaparte's successes just as before and saw in them and
16451in the subservience shown to him by the European sovereigns a
16452malicious conspiracy, the sole object of which was to cause
16453unpleasantness and anxiety to the court circle of which Anna
16454Pavlovna was the representative. And in Helene's salon, which
16455Rumyantsev himself honored with his visits, regarding Helene as a
16456remarkably intelligent woman, they talked with the same ecstasy in
164571812 as in 1808 of the "great nation" and the "great man," and
16458regretted our rupture with France, a rupture which, according to them,
16459ought to be promptly terminated by peace.
16460
16461Of late, since the Emperor's return from the army, there had been
16462some excitement in these conflicting salon circles and some
16463demonstrations of hostility to one another, but each camp retained its
16464own tendency. In Anna Pavlovna's circle only those Frenchmen were
16465admitted who were deep-rooted legitimists, and patriotic views were
16466expressed to the effect that one ought not to go to the French theater
16467and that to maintain the French troupe was costing the government as
16468much as a whole army corps. The progress of the war was eagerly
16469followed, and only the reports most flattering to our army were
16470circulated. In the French circle of Helene and Rumyantsev the
16471reports of the cruelty of the enemy and of the war were contradicted
16472and all Napoleon's attempts at conciliation were discussed. In that
16473circle they discountenanced those who advised hurried preparations for
16474a removal to Kazan of the court and the girls' educational
16475establishments under the patronage of the Dowager Empress. In Helene's
16476circle the war in general was regarded as a series of formal
16477demonstrations which would very soon end in peace, and the view
16478prevailed expressed by Bilibin--who now in Petersburg was quite at
16479home in Helene's house, which every clever man was obliged to visit-
16480that not by gunpowder but by those who invented it would matters be
16481settled. In that circle the Moscow enthusiasm--news of which had
16482reached Petersburg simultaneously with the Emperor's return--was
16483ridiculed sarcastically and very cleverly, though with much caution.
16484
16485Anna Pavlovna's circle on the contrary was enraptured by this
16486enthusiasm and spoke of it as Plutarch speaks of the deeds of the
16487ancients. Prince Vasili, who still occupied his former important
16488posts, formed a connecting link between these two circles. He
16489visited his "good friend Anna Pavlovna" as well as his daughter's
16490"diplomatic salon," and often in his constant comings and goings
16491between the two camps became confused and said at Helene's what he
16492should have said at Anna Pavlovna's and vice versa.
16493
16494Soon after the Emperor's return Prince Vasili in a conversation
16495about the war at Anna Pavlovna's severely condemned Barclay de
16496Tolly, but was undecided as to who ought to be appointed commander
16497in chief. One of the visitors, usually spoken of as "a man of great
16498merit," having described how he had that day seen Kutuzov, the newly
16499chosen chief of the Petersburg militia, presiding over the
16500enrollment of recruits at the Treasury, cautiously ventured to suggest
16501that Kutuzov would be the man to satisfy all requirements.
16502
16503Anna Pavlovna remarked with a melancholy smile that Kutuzov had done
16504nothing but cause the Emperor annoyance.
16505
16506"I have talked and talked at the Assembly of the Nobility," Prince
16507Vasili interrupted, "but they did not listen to me. I told them his
16508election as chief of the militia would not please the Emperor. They
16509did not listen to me.
16510
16511"It's all this mania for opposition," he went on. "And who for? It
16512is all because we want to ape the foolish enthusiasm of those
16513Muscovites," Prince Vasili continued, forgetting for a moment that
16514though at Helene's one had to ridicule the Moscow enthusiasm, at
16515Anna Pavlovna's one had to be ecstatic about it. But he retrieved
16516his mistake at once. "Now, is it suitable that Count Kutuzov, the
16517oldest general in Russia, should preside at that tribunal? He will get
16518nothing for his pains! How could they make a man commander in chief
16519who cannot mount a horse, who drops asleep at a council, and has the
16520very worst morals! A good reputation he made for himself at Bucharest!
16521I don't speak of his capacity as a general, but at a time like this
16522how they appoint a decrepit, blind old man, positively
16523blind? A fine idea to have a blind general! He can't see anything.
16524To play blindman's bluff? He can't see at all!"
16525
16526No one replied to his remarks.
16527
16528This was quite correct on the twenty-fourth of July. But on the
16529twenty-ninth of July Kutuzov received the title of Prince. This
16530might indicate a wish to get rid of him, and therefore Prince Vasili's
16531opinion continued to be correct though he was not now in any hurry
16532to express it. But on the eighth of August a committee, consisting
16533of Field Marshal Saltykov, Arakcheev, Vyazmitinov, Lopukhin, and
16534Kochubey met to consider the progress of the war. This committee
16535came to the conclusion that our failures were due to a want of unity
16536in the command and though the members of the committee were aware of
16537the Emperor's dislike of Kutuzov, after a short deliberation they
16538agreed to advise his appointment as commander in chief. That same
16539day Kutuzov was appointed commander in chief with full powers over the
16540armies and over the whole region occupied by them.
16541
16542On the ninth of August Prince Vasili at Anna Pavlovna's again met
16543the "man of great merit." The latter was very attentive to Anna
16544Pavlovna because he wanted to be appointed director of one of the
16545educational establishments for young ladies. Prince Vasili entered the
16546room with the air of a happy conqueror who has attained the object
16547of his desires.
16548
16549"Well, have you heard the great news? Prince Kutuzov is field
16550marshal! All dissensions are at an end! I am so glad, so delighted! At
16551last we have a man!" said he, glancing sternly and significantly round
16552at everyone in the drawing room.
16553
16554The "man of great merit," despite his desire to obtain the post of
16555director, could not refrain from reminding Prince Vasili of his former
16556opinion. Though this was impolite to Prince Vasili in Anna
16557Pavlovna's drawing room, and also to Anna Pavlovna herself who had
16558received the news with delight, he could not resist the temptation.
16559
16560"But, Prince, they say he is blind!" said he, reminding Prince
16561Vasili of his own words.
16562
16563"Eh? Nonsense! He sees well enough," said Prince Vasili rapidly,
16564in a deep voice and with a slight cough--the voice and cough with
16565which he was wont to dispose of all difficulties.
16566
16567"He sees well enough," he added. "And what I am so pleased about,"
16568he went on, "is that our sovereign has given him full powers over
16569all the armies and the whole region--powers no commander in chief ever
16570had before. He is a second autocrat," he concluded with a victorious
16571smile.
16572
16573"God grant it! God grant it!" said Anna Pavlovna.
16574
16575The "man of great merit," who was still a novice in court circles,
16576wishing to flatter Anna Pavlovna by defending her former position on
16577this question, observed:
16578
16579"It is said that the Emperor was reluctant to give Kutuzov those
16580powers. They say he blushed like a girl to whom Joconde is read,
16581when he said to Kutuzov: 'Your Emperor and the Fatherland award you
16582this honor.'"
16583
16584"Perhaps the heart took no part in that speech," said Anna Pavlovna.
16585
16586"Oh, no, no!" warmly rejoined Prince Vasili, who would not now yield
16587Kutuzov to anyone; in his opinion Kutuzov was not only admirable
16588himself, but was adored by everybody. "No, that's impossible," said
16589he, "for our sovereign appreciated him so highly before."
16590
16591"God grant only that Prince Kutuzov assumes real power and does
16592not allow anyone to put a spoke in his wheel," observed Anna Pavlovna.
16593
16594Understanding at once to whom she alluded, Prince Vasili said in a
16595whisper:
16596
16597"I know for a fact that Kutuzov made it an absolute condition that
16598the Tsarevich should not be with the army. Do you know what he said to
16599the Emperor?"
16600
16601And Prince Vasili repeated the words supposed to have been spoken by
16602Kutuzov to the Emperor. "I can neither punish him if he does wrong nor
16603reward him if he does right."
16604
16605"Oh, a very wise man is Prince Kutuzov! I have known him a long
16606time!"
16607
16608"They even say," remarked the "man of great merit" who did not yet
16609possess courtly tact, "that his excellency made it an express
16610condition that the sovereign himself should not be with the army."
16611
16612As soon as he said this both Prince Vasili and Anna Pavlovna
16613turned away from him and glanced sadly at one another with a sigh at
16614his naivete.
16615
16616
16617
16618
16619
16620CHAPTER VII
16621
16622
16623While this was taking place in Petersburg the French had already
16624passed Smolensk and were drawing nearer and nearer to Moscow.
16625Napoleon's historian Thiers, like other of his historians, trying to
16626justify his hero says that he was drawn to the walls of Moscow against
16627his will. He is as right as other historians who look for the
16628explanation of historic events in the will of one man; he is as
16629right as the Russian historians who maintain that Napoleon was drawn
16630to Moscow by the skill of the Russian commanders. Here besides the law
16631of retrospection, which regards all the past as a preparation for
16632events that subsequently occur, the law of reciprocity comes in,
16633confusing the whole matter. A good chessplayer having lost a game is
16634sincerely convinced that his loss resulted from a mistake he made
16635and looks for that mistake in the opening, but forgets that at each
16636stage of the game there were similar mistakes and that none of his
16637moves were perfect. He only notices the mistake to which he pays
16638attention, because his opponent took advantage of it. How much more
16639complex than this is the game of war, which occurs under certain
16640limits of time, and where it is not one will that manipulates lifeless
16641objects, but everything results from innumerable conflicts of
16642various wills!
16643
16644After Smolensk Napoleon sought a battle beyond Dorogobuzh at Vyazma,
16645and then at Tsarevo-Zaymishche, but it happened that owing to a
16646conjunction of innumerable circumstances the Russians could not give
16647battle till they reached Borodino, seventy miles from Moscow. From
16648Vyazma Napoleon ordered a direct advance on Moscow.
16649
16650Moscou, la capitale asiatique de ce grand empire, la ville sacree
16651des peuples d'Alexandre, Moscou avec ses innombrables eglises en forme
16652de pagodes chinoises,* this Moscow gave Napoleon's imagination no
16653rest. On the march from Vyazma to Tsarevo-Zaymishche he rode his light
16654bay bobtailed ambler accompanied by his Guards, his bodyguard, his
16655pages, and aides-de-camp. Berthier, his chief of staff, dropped behind
16656to question a Russian prisoner captured by the cavalry. Followed by
16657Lelorgne d'Ideville, an interpreter, he overtook Napoleon at a
16658gallop and reined in his horse with an amused expression.
16659
16660
16661*"Moscow, the Asiatic capital of this great empire, the sacred
16662city of Alexander's people, Moscow with its innumerable churches
16663shaped like Chinese pagodas."
16664
16665
16666"Well?" asked Napoleon.
16667
16668"One of Platov's Cossacks says that Platov's corps is joining up
16669with the main army and that Kutuzov has been appointed commander in
16670chief. He is a very shrewd and garrulous fellow."
16671
16672Napoleon smiled and told them to give the Cossack a horse and
16673bring the man to him. He wished to talk to him himself. Several
16674adjutants galloped off, and an hour later, Lavrushka, the serf Denisov
16675had handed over to Rostov, rode up to Napoleon in an orderly's
16676jacket and on a French cavalry saddle, with a merry, and tipsy face.
16677Napoleon told him to ride by his side and began questioning him.
16678
16679"You are a Cossack?"
16680
16681"Yes, a Cossack, your Honor."
16682
16683"The Cossack, not knowing in what company he was, for Napoleon's
16684plain appearance had nothing about it that would reveal to an Oriental
16685mind the presence of a monarch, talked with extreme familiarity of the
16686incidents of the war," says Thiers, narrating this episode. In reality
16687Lavrushka, having got drunk the day before and left his master
16688dinnerless, had been whipped and sent to the village in quest of
16689chickens, where he engaged in looting till the French took him
16690prisoner. Lavrushka was one of those coarse, bare-faced lackeys who
16691have seen all sorts of things, consider it necessary to do
16692everything in a mean and cunning way, are ready to render any sort
16693of service to their master, and are keen at guessing their master's
16694baser impulses, especially those prompted by vanity and pettiness.
16695
16696Finding himself in the company of Napoleon, whose identity he had
16697easily and surely recognized, Lavrushka was not in the least abashed
16698but merely did his utmost to gain his new master's favor.
16699
16700He knew very well that this was Napoleon, but Napoleon's presence
16701could no more intimidate him than Rostov's, or a sergeant major's with
16702the rods, would have done, for he had nothing that either the sergeant
16703major or Napoleon could deprive him of.
16704
16705So he rattled on, telling all the gossip he had heard among the
16706orderlies. Much of it true. But when Napoleon asked him whether the
16707Russians thought they would beat Bonaparte or not, Lavrushka screwed
16708up his eyes and considered.
16709
16710In this question he saw subtle cunning, as men of his type see
16711cunning in everything, so he frowned and did not answer immediately.
16712
16713"It's like this," he said thoughtfully, "if there's a battle soon,
16714yours will win. That's right. But if three days pass, then after that,
16715well, then that same battle will not soon be over."
16716
16717Lelorgne d'Ideville smilingly interpreted this speech to Napoleon
16718thus: "If a battle takes place within the next three days the French
16719will win, but if later, God knows what will happen." Napoleon did
16720not smile, though he was evidently in high good humor, and he
16721ordered these words to be repeated.
16722
16723Lavrushka noticed this and to entertain him further, pretending
16724not to know who Napoleon was, added:
16725
16726"We know that you have Bonaparte and that he has beaten everybody in
16727the world, but we are a different matter..."--without knowing why or
16728how this bit of boastful patriotism slipped out at the end.
16729
16730The interpreter translated these words without the last phrase,
16731and Bonaparte smiled. "The young Cossack made his mighty
16732interlocutor smile," says Thiers. After riding a few paces in silence,
16733Napoleon turned to Berthier and said he wished to see how the news
16734that he was talking to the Emperor himself, to that very Emperor who
16735had written his immortally victorious name on the Pyramids, would
16736affect this enfant du Don.*
16737
16738
16739*"Child of the Don."
16740
16741
16742The fact was accordingly conveyed to Lavrushka.
16743
16744Lavrushka, understanding that this was done to perplex him and
16745that Napoleon expected him to be frightened, to gratify his new
16746masters promptly pretended to be astonished and awe-struck, opened his
16747eyes wide, and assumed the expression he usually put on when taken
16748to be whipped. "As soon as Napoleon's interpreter had spoken," says
16749Thiers, "the Cossack, seized by amazement, did not utter another word,
16750but rode on, his eyes fixed on the conqueror whose fame had reached
16751him across the steppes of the East. All his loquacity was suddenly
16752arrested and replaced by a naive and silent feeling of admiration.
16753Napoleon, after making the Cossack a present, had him set free like
16754a bird restored to its native fields."
16755
16756Napoleon rode on, dreaming of the Moscow that so appealed to his
16757imagination, and "the bird restored to its native fields" galloped
16758to our outposts, inventing on the way all that had not taken place but
16759that he meant to relate to his comrades. What had really taken place
16760he did not wish to relate because it seemed to him not worth
16761telling. He found the Cossacks, inquired for the regiment operating
16762with Platov's detachment and by evening found his master, Nicholas
16763Rostov, quartered at Yankovo. Rostov was just mounting to go for a
16764ride round the neighboring villages with Ilyin; he let Lavrushka
16765have another horse and took him along with him.
16766
16767
16768
16769
16770
16771CHAPTER VIII
16772
16773
16774Princess Mary was not in Moscow and out of danger as Prince Andrew
16775supposed.
16776
16777After the return of Alpatych from Smolensk the old prince suddenly
16778seemed to awake as from a dream. He ordered the militiamen to be
16779called up from the villages and armed, and wrote a letter to the
16780commander in chief informing him that he had resolved to remain at
16781Bald Hills to the last extremity and to defend it, leaving to the
16782commander in chief's discretion to take measures or not for the
16783defense of Bald Hills, where one of Russia's oldest generals would
16784be captured or killed, and he announced to his household that he would
16785remain at Bald Hills.
16786
16787But while himself remaining, he gave instructions for the
16788departure of the princess and Dessalles with the little prince to
16789Bogucharovo and thence to Moscow. Princess Mary, alarmed by her
16790father's feverish and sleepless activity after his previous apathy,
16791could not bring herself to leave him alone and for the first time in
16792her life ventured to disobey him. She refused to go away and her
16793father's fury broke over her in a terrible storm. He repeated every
16794injustice he had ever inflicted on her. Trying to convict her, he told
16795her she had worn him out, had caused his quarrel with his son, had
16796harbored nasty suspicions of him, making it the object of her life
16797to poison his existence, and he drove her from his study telling her
16798that if she did not go away it was all the same to him. He declared
16799that he did not wish to remember her existence and warned her not to
16800dare to let him see her. The fact that he did not, as she had
16801feared, order her to be carried away by force but only told her not to
16802let him see her cheered Princess Mary. She knew it was a proof that in
16803the depth of his soul he was glad she was remaining at home and had
16804not gone away.
16805
16806The morning after little Nicholas had left, the old prince donned
16807his full uniform and prepared to visit the commander in chief. His
16808caleche was already at the door. Princess Mary saw him walk out of the
16809house in his uniform wearing all his orders and go down the garden
16810to review his armed peasants and domestic serfs. She sat by the window
16811listening to his voice which reached her from the garden. Suddenly
16812several men came running up the avenue with frightened faces.
16813
16814Princess Mary ran out to the porch, down the flower-bordered path,
16815and into the avenue. A large crowd of militiamen and domestics were
16816moving toward her, and in their midst several men were supporting by
16817the armpits and dragging along a little old man in a uniform and
16818decorations. She ran up to him and, in the play of the sunlight that
16819fell in small round spots through the shade of the lime-tree avenue,
16820could not be sure what change there was in his face. All she could see
16821was that his former stern and determined expression had altered to one
16822of timidity and submission. On seeing his daughter he moved his
16823helpless lips and made a hoarse sound. It was impossible to make out
16824what he wanted. He was lifted up, carried to his study, and laid on
16825the very couch he had so feared of late.
16826
16827The doctor, who was fetched that same night, bled him and said
16828that the prince had had a seizure paralyzing his right side.
16829
16830It was becoming more and more dangerous to remain at Bald Hills, and
16831next day they moved the prince to Bogucharovo, the doctor accompanying
16832him.
16833
16834By the time they reached Bogucharovo, Dessalles and the little
16835prince had already left for Moscow.
16836
16837For three weeks the old prince lay stricken by paralysis in the
16838new house Prince Andrew had built at Bogucharovo, ever in the same
16839state, getting neither better nor worse. He was unconscious and lay
16840like a distorted corpse. He muttered unceasingly, his eyebrows and
16841lips twitching, and it was impossible to tell whether he understood
16842what was going on around him or not. One thing was certain--that he
16843was suffering and wished to say something. But what it was, no one
16844could tell: it might be some caprice of a sick and half-crazy man,
16845or it might relate to public affairs, or possibly to family concerns.
16846
16847The doctor said this restlessness did not mean anything and was
16848due to physical causes; but Princess Mary thought he wished to tell
16849her something, and the fact that her presence always increased his
16850restlessness confirmed her opinion.
16851
16852He was evidently suffering both physically and mentally. There was
16853no hope of recovery. It was impossible for him to travel, it would not
16854do to let him die on the road. "Would it not be better if the end
16855did come, the very end?" Princess Mary sometimes thought. Night and
16856day, hardly sleeping at all, she watched him and, terrible to say,
16857often watched him not with hope of finding signs of improvement but
16858wishing to find symptoms of the approach of the end.
16859
16860Strange as it was to her to acknowledge this feeling in herself, yet
16861there it was. And what seemed still more terrible to her was that
16862since her father's illness began (perhaps even sooner, when she stayed
16863with him expecting something to happen), all the personal desires
16864and hopes that had been forgotten or sleeping within her had awakened.
16865Thoughts that had not entered her mind for years--thoughts of a life
16866free from the fear of her father, and even the possibility of love and
16867of family happiness--floated continually in her imagination like
16868temptations of the devil. Thrust them aside as she would, questions
16869continually recurred to her as to how she would order her life now,
16870after that. These were temptations of the devil and Princess Mary knew
16871it. She knew that the sole weapon against him was prayer, and she
16872tried to pray. She assumed an attitude of prayer, looked at the icons,
16873repeated the words of a prayer, but she could not pray. She felt
16874that a different world had now taken possession of her--the life of
16875a world of strenuous and free activity, quite opposed to the spiritual
16876world in which till now she had been confined and in which her
16877greatest comfort had been prayer. She could not pray, could not
16878weep, and worldly cares took possession of her.
16879
16880It was becoming dangerous to remain in Bogucharovo. News of the
16881approach of the French came from all sides, and in one village, ten
16882miles from Bogucharovo, a homestead had been looted by French
16883marauders.
16884
16885The doctor insisted on the necessity of moving the prince; the
16886provincial Marshal of the Nobility sent an official to Princess Mary
16887to persuade her to get away as quickly as possible, and the head of
16888the rural police having come to Bogucharovo urged the same thing,
16889saying that the French were only some twenty-five miles away, that
16890French proclamations were circulating in the villages, and that if the
16891princess did not take her father away before the fifteenth, he could
16892not answer for the consequences.
16893
16894The princess decided to leave on the fifteenth. The cares of
16895preparation and giving orders, for which everyone came to her,
16896occupied her all day. She spent the night of the fourteenth as
16897usual, without undressing, in the room next to the one where the
16898prince lay. Several times, waking up, she heard his groans and
16899muttering, the creak of his bed, and the steps of Tikhon and the
16900doctor when they turned him over. Several times she listened at the
16901door, and it seemed to her that his mutterings were louder than
16902usual and that they turned him over oftener. She could not sleep and
16903several times went to the door and listened, wishing to enter but
16904not deciding to do so. Though he did not speak, Princess Mary saw
16905and knew how unpleasant every sign of anxiety on his account was to
16906him. She had noticed with what dissatisfaction he turned from the look
16907she sometimes involuntarily fixed on him. She knew that her going in
16908during the night at an unusual hour would irritate him.
16909
16910But never had she felt so grieved for him or so much afraid of
16911losing him. She recalled all her life with him and in every word and
16912act of his found an expression of his love of her. Occasionally amid
16913these memories temptations of the devil would surge into her
16914imagination: thoughts of how things would be after his death, and
16915how her new, liberated life would be ordered. But she drove these
16916thoughts away with disgust. Toward morning he became quiet and she
16917fell asleep.
16918
16919She woke late. That sincerity which often comes with waking showed
16920her clearly what chiefly concerned her about her father's illness.
16921On waking she listened to what was going on behind the door and,
16922hearing him groan, said to herself with a sigh that things were
16923still the same.
16924
16925"But what could have happened? What did I want? I want his death!"
16926she cried with a feeling of loathing for herself.
16927
16928She washed, dressed, said her prayers, and went out to the porch. In
16929front of it stood carriages without horses and things were being
16930packed into the vehicles.
16931
16932It was a warm, gray morning. Princess Mary stopped at the porch,
16933still horrified by her spiritual baseness and trying to arrange her
16934thoughts before going to her father. The doctor came downstairs and
16935went out to her.
16936
16937"He is a little better today," said he. "I was looking for you.
16938One can make out something of what he is saying. His head is
16939clearer. Come in, he is asking for you..."
16940
16941Princess Mary's heart beat so violently at this news that she grew
16942pale and leaned against the wall to keep from falling. To see him,
16943talk to him, feel his eyes on her now that her whole soul was
16944overflowing with those dreadful, wicked temptations, was a torment
16945of joy and terror.
16946
16947"Come," said the doctor.
16948
16949Princess Mary entered her father's room and went up to his bed. He
16950was lying on his back propped up high, and his small bony hands with
16951their knotted purple veins were lying on the quilt; his left eye gazed
16952straight before him, his right eye was awry, and his brows and lips
16953motionless. He seemed altogether so thin, small, and pathetic. His
16954face seemed to have shriveled or melted; his features had grown
16955smaller. Princess Mary went up and kissed his hand. His left hand
16956pressed hers so that she understood that he had long been waiting
16957for her to come. He twitched her hand, and his brows and lips quivered
16958angrily.
16959
16960She looked at him in dismay trying to guess what he wanted of her.
16961When she changed her position so that his left eye could see her
16962face he calmed down, not taking his eyes off her for some seconds.
16963Then his lips and tongue moved, sounds came, and he began to speak,
16964gazing timidly and imploringly at her, evidently afraid that she might
16965not understand.
16966
16967Straining all her faculties Princess Mary looked at him. The comic
16968efforts with which he moved his tongue made her drop her eyes and with
16969difficulty repress the sobs that rose to her throat. He said
16970something, repeating the same words several times. She could not
16971understand them, but tried to guess what he was saying and inquiringly
16972repeated the words he uttered.
16973
16974"Mmm...ar...ate...ate..." he repeated several times.
16975
16976It was quite impossible to understand these sounds. The doctor
16977thought he had guessed them, and inquiringly repeated: "Mary, are
16978you afraid?" The prince shook his head, again repeated the same
16979sounds.
16980
16981"My mind, my mind aches?" questioned Princess Mary.
16982
16983He made a mumbling sound in confirmation of this, took her hand, and
16984began pressing it to different parts of his breast as if trying to
16985find the right place for it.
16986
16987"Always thoughts... about you... thoughts..." he then uttered much
16988more clearly than he had done before, now that he was sure of being
16989understood.
16990
16991Princess Mary pressed her head against his hand, trying to hide
16992her sobs and tears.
16993
16994He moved his hand over her hair.
16995
16996"I have been calling you all night..." he brought out.
16997
16998"If only I had known..." she said through her tears. "I was afraid
16999to come in."
17000
17001He pressed her hand.
17002
17003"Weren't you asleep?"
17004
17005"No, I did not sleep," said Princess Mary, shaking her head.
17006
17007Unconsciously imitating her father, she now tried to express herself
17008as he did, as much as possible by signs, and her tongue too seemed
17009to move with difficulty.
17010
17011"Dear one... Dearest..." Princess Mary could not quite make out what
17012he had said, but from his look it was clear that he had uttered a
17013tender caressing word such as he had never used to her before. "Why
17014didn't you come in?"
17015
17016"And I was wishing for his death!" thought Princess Mary.
17017
17018He was silent awhile.
17019
17020"Thank you... daughter dear!... for all, for all... forgive!...
17021thank you!... forgive!... thank you!..." and tears began to flow
17022from his eyes. "Call Andrew!" he said suddenly, and a childish,
17023timid expression of doubt showed itself on his face as he spoke.
17024
17025He himself seemed aware that his demand was meaningless. So at least
17026it seemed to Princess Mary.
17027
17028"I have a letter from him," she replied.
17029
17030He glanced at her with timid surprise.
17031
17032"Where is he?"
17033
17034"He's with the army, Father, at Smolensk."
17035
17036He closed his eyes and remained silent a long time. Then as if in
17037answer to his doubts and to confirm the fact that now he understood
17038and remembered everything, he nodded his head and reopened his eyes.
17039
17040"Yes," he said, softly and distinctly. "Russia has perished. They've
17041destroyed her."
17042
17043And he began to sob, and again tears flowed from his eyes.
17044Princess Mary could no longer restrain herself and wept while she
17045gazed at his face.
17046
17047Again he closed his eyes. His sobs ceased, he pointed to his eyes,
17048and Tikhon, understanding him, wiped away the tears.
17049
17050Then he again opened his eyes and said something none of them
17051could understand for a long time, till at last Tikhon understood and
17052repeated it. Princess Mary had sought the meaning of his words in
17053the mood in which he had just been speaking. She thought he was
17054speaking of Russia, or Prince Andrew, of herself, of his grandson,
17055or of his own death, and so she could not guess his words.
17056
17057"Put on your white dress. I like it," was what he said.
17058
17059Having understood this Princess Mary sobbed still louder, and the
17060doctor taking her arm led her out to the veranda, soothing her and
17061trying to persuade her to prepare for her journey. When she had left
17062the room the prince again began speaking about his son, about the war,
17063and about the Emperor, angrily twitching his brows and raising his
17064hoarse voice, and then he had a second and final stroke.
17065
17066Princess Mary stayed on the veranda. The day had cleared, it was hot
17067and sunny. She could understand nothing, think of nothing and feel
17068nothing, except passionate love for her father, love such as she
17069thought she had never felt till that moment. She ran out sobbing
17070into the garden and as far as the pond, along the avenues of young
17071lime trees Prince Andrew had planted.
17072
17073"Yes... I... I... I wished for his death! Yes, I wanted it to end
17074quicker.... I wished to be at peace.... And what will become of me?
17075What use will peace be when he is no longer here?" Princess Mary
17076murmured, pacing the garden with hurried steps and pressing her
17077hands to her bosom which heaved with convulsive sobs.
17078
17079When she had completed the tour of the garden, which brought her
17080again to the house, she saw Mademoiselle Bourienne--who had remained
17081at Bogucharovo and did not wish to leave it--coming toward her with
17082a stranger. This was the Marshal of the Nobility of the district,
17083who had come personally to point out to the princess the necessity for
17084her prompt departure. Princess Mary listened without understanding
17085him; she led him to the house, offered him lunch, and sat down with
17086him. Then, excusing herself, she went to the door of the old
17087prince's room. The doctor came out with an agitated face and said
17088she could not enter.
17089
17090"Go away, Princess! Go away... go away!"
17091
17092She returned to the garden and sat down on the grass at the foot
17093of the slope by the pond, where no one could see her. She did not know
17094how long she had been there when she was aroused by the sound of a
17095woman's footsteps running along the path. She rose and saw Dunyasha
17096her maid, who was evidently looking for her, and who stopped
17097suddenly as if in alarm on seeing her mistress.
17098
17099"Please come, Princess... The Prince," said Dunyasha in a breaking
17100voice.
17101
17102"Immediately, I'm coming, I'm coming!" replied the princess
17103hurriedly, not giving Dunyasha time to finish what she was saying, and
17104trying to avoid seeing the girl she ran toward the house.
17105
17106"Princess, it's God's will! You must be prepared for everything,"
17107said the Marshal, meeting her at the house door.
17108
17109"Let me alone; it's not true!" she cried angrily to him.
17110
17111The doctor tried to stop her. She pushed him aside and ran to her
17112father's door. "Why are these people with frightened faces stopping
17113me? I don't want any of them! And what are they doing here?" she
17114thought. She opened the door and the bright daylight in that
17115previously darkened room startled her. In the room were her nurse
17116and other women. They all drew back from the bed, making way for
17117her. He was still lying on the bed as before, but the stern expression
17118of his quiet face made Princess Mary stop short on the threshold.
17119
17120"No, he's not dead--it's impossible!" she told herself and
17121approached him, and repressing the terror that seized her, she pressed
17122her lips to his cheek. But she stepped back immediately. All the force
17123of the tenderness she had been feeling for him vanished instantly
17124and was replaced by a feeling of horror at what lay there before
17125her. "No, he is no more! He is not, but here where he was is something
17126unfamiliar and hostile, some dreadful, terrifying, and repellent
17127mystery!" And hiding her face in her hands, Princess Mary sank into
17128the arms of the doctor, who held her up.
17129
17130
17131In the presence of Tikhon and the doctor the women washed what had
17132been the prince, tied his head up with a handkerchief that the mouth
17133should not stiffen while open, and with another handkerchief tied
17134together the legs that were already spreading apart. Then they dressed
17135him in uniform with his decorations and placed his shriveled little
17136body on a table. Heaven only knows who arranged all this and when, but
17137it all got done as if of its own accord. Toward night candles were
17138burning round his coffin, a pall was spread over it, the floor was
17139strewn with sprays of juniper, a printed band was tucked in under
17140his shriveled head, and in a corner of the room sat a chanter
17141reading the psalms.
17142
17143Just as horses shy and snort and gather about a dead horse, so the
17144inmates of the house and strangers crowded into the drawing room round
17145the coffin--the Marshal, the village Elder, peasant women--and all
17146with fixed and frightened eyes, crossing themselves, bowed and
17147kissed the old prince's cold and stiffened hand.
17148
17149
17150
17151
17152
17153CHAPTER IX
17154
17155
17156Until Prince Andrew settled in Bogucharovo its owners had always
17157been absentees, and its peasants were of quite a different character
17158from those of Bald Hills. They differed from them in speech, dress,
17159and disposition. They were called steppe peasants. The old prince used
17160to approve of them for their endurance at work when they came to
17161Bald Hills to help with the harvest or to dig ponds, and ditches,
17162but he disliked them for their boorishness.
17163
17164Prince Andrew's last stay at Bogucharovo, when he introduced
17165hospitals and schools and reduced the quitrent the peasants had to
17166pay, had not softened their disposition but had on the contrary
17167strengthened in them the traits of character the old prince called
17168boorishness. Various obscure rumors were always current among them: at
17169one time a rumor that they would all be enrolled as Cossacks; at
17170another of a new religion to which they were all to be converted; then
17171of some proclamation of the Tsar's and of an oath to the Tsar Paul
17172in 1797 (in connection with which it was rumored that freedom had been
17173granted them but the landowners had stopped it), then of Peter
17174Fedorovich's return to the throne in seven years' time, when
17175everything would be made free and so "simple" that there would be no
17176restrictions. Rumors of the war with Bonaparte and his invasion were
17177connected in their minds with the same sort of vague notions of
17178Antichrist, the end of the world, and "pure freedom."
17179
17180In the vicinity of Bogucharovo were large villages belonging to
17181the crown or to owners whose serfs paid quitrent and could work
17182where they pleased. There were very few resident landlords in the
17183neighborhood and also very few domestic or literate serfs, and in
17184the lives of the peasantry of those parts the mysterious undercurrents
17185in the life of the Russian people, the causes and meaning of which are
17186so baffling to contemporaries, were more clearly and strongly
17187noticeable than among others. One instance, which had occurred some
17188twenty years before, was a movement among the peasants to emigrate
17189to some unknown "warm rivers." Hundreds of peasants, among them the
17190Bogucharovo folk, suddenly began selling their cattle and moving in
17191whole families toward the southeast. As birds migrate to somewhere
17192beyond the sea, so these men with their wives and children streamed to
17193the southeast, to parts where none of them had ever been. They set off
17194in caravans, bought their freedom one by one or ran away, and drove or
17195walked toward the "warm rivers." Many of them were punished, some sent
17196to Siberia, many died of cold and hunger on the road, many returned of
17197their own accord, and the movement died down of itself just as it
17198had sprung up, without apparent reason. But such undercurrents still
17199existed among the people and gathered new forces ready to manifest
17200themselves just as strangely, unexpectedly, and at the same time
17201simply, naturally, and forcibly. Now in 1812, to anyone living in
17202close touch with these people it was apparent that these undercurrents
17203were acting strongly and nearing an eruption.
17204
17205Alpatych, who had reached Bogucharovo shortly before the old
17206prince's death, noticed an agitation among the peasants, and that
17207contrary to what was happening in the Bald Hills district, where
17208over a radius of forty miles all the peasants were moving away and
17209leaving their villages to be devastated by the Cossacks, the
17210peasants in the steppe region round Bogucharovo were, it was
17211rumored, in touch with the French, received leaflets from them that
17212passed from hand to hand, and did not migrate. He learned from
17213domestic serfs loyal to him that the peasant Karp, who possessed great
17214influence in the village commune and had recently been away driving
17215a government transport, had returned with news that the Cossacks
17216were destroying deserted villages, but that the French did not harm
17217them. Alpatych also knew that on the previous day another peasant
17218had even brought from the village of Visloukhovo, which was occupied
17219by the French, a proclamation by a French general that no harm would
17220be done to the inhabitants, and if they remained they would be paid
17221for anything taken from them. As proof of this the peasant had brought
17222from Visloukhovo a hundred rubles in notes (he did not know that
17223they were false) paid to him in advance for hay.
17224
17225More important still, Alpatych learned that on the morning of the
17226very day he gave the village Elder orders to collect carts to move the
17227princess' luggage from Bogucharovo, there had been a village meeting
17228at which it had been decided not to move but to wait. Yet there was no
17229time to waste. On the fifteenth, the day of the old prince's death,
17230the Marshal had insisted on Princess Mary's leaving at once, as it was
17231becoming dangerous. He had told her that after the sixteenth he
17232could not be responsible for what might happen. On the evening of
17233the day the old prince died the Marshal went away, promising to return
17234next day for the funeral. But this he was unable to do, for he
17235received tidings that the French had unexpectedly advanced, and had
17236barely time to remove his own family and valuables from his estate.
17237
17238For some thirty years Bogucharovo had been managed by the village
17239Elder, Dron, whom the old prince called by the diminutive "Dronushka."
17240
17241Dron was one of those physically and mentally vigorous peasants
17242who grow big beards as soon as they are of age and go on unchanged
17243till they are sixty or seventy, without a gray hair or the loss of a
17244tooth, as straight and strong at sixty as at thirty.
17245
17246Soon after the migration to the "warm rivers," in which he had taken
17247part like the rest, Dron was made village Elder and overseer of
17248Bogucharovo, and had since filled that post irreproachably for
17249twenty-three years. The peasants feared him more than they did their
17250master. The masters, both the old prince and the young, and the
17251steward respected him and jestingly called him "the Minister."
17252During the whole time of his service Dron had never been drunk or ill,
17253never after sleepless nights or the hardest tasks had he shown the
17254least fatigue, and though he could not read he had never forgotten a
17255single money account or the number of quarters of flour in any of
17256the endless cartloads he sold for the prince, nor a single shock of
17257the whole corn crop on any single acre of the Bogucharovo fields.
17258
17259Alpatych, arriving from the devastated Bald Hills estate, sent for
17260his Dron on the day of the prince's funeral and told him to have
17261twelve horses got ready for the princess' carriages and eighteen carts
17262for the things to be removed from Bogucharovo. Though the peasants
17263paid quitrent, Alpatych thought no difficulty would be made about
17264complying with this order, for there were two hundred and thirty
17265households at work in Bogucharovo and the peasants were well to do.
17266But on hearing the order Dron lowered his eyes and remained silent.
17267Alpatych named certain peasants he knew, from whom he told him to take
17268the carts.
17269
17270Dron replied that the horses of these peasants were away carting.
17271Alpatych named others, but they too, according to Dron, had no
17272horses available: some horses were carting for the government,
17273others were too weak, and others had died for want of fodder. It
17274seemed that no horses could be had even for the carriages, much less
17275for the carting.
17276
17277Alpatych looked intently at Dron and frowned. Just as Dron was a
17278model village Elder, so Alpatych had not managed the prince's
17279estates for twenty years in vain. He a model steward, possessing in
17280the highest degree the faculty of divining the needs and instincts
17281of those he dealt with. Having glanced at Dron he at once understood
17282that his answers did not express his personal views but the general
17283mood of the Bogucharovo commune, by which the Elder had already been
17284carried away. But he also knew that Dron, who had acquired property
17285and was hated by the commune, must be hesitating between the two
17286camps: the masters' and the serfs'. He noticed this hesitation in
17287Dron's look and therefore frowned and moved closer up to him.
17288
17289"Now just listen, Dronushka," said he. "Don't talk nonsense to me.
17290His excellency Prince Andrew himself gave me orders to move all the
17291people away and not leave them with the enemy, and there is an order
17292from the Tsar about it too. Anyone who stays is a traitor to the Tsar.
17293Do you hear?"
17294
17295"I hear," Dron answered without lifting his eyes.
17296
17297Alpatych was not satisfied with this reply.
17298
17299"Eh, Dron, it will turn out badly!" he said, shaking his head.
17300
17301"The power is in your hands," Dron rejoined sadly.
17302
17303"Eh, Dron, drop it!" Alpatych repeated, withdrawing his hand from
17304his bosom and solemnly pointing to the floor at Dron's feet. "I can
17305see through you and three yards into the ground under you," he
17306continued, gazing at the floor in front of Dron.
17307
17308Dron was disconcerted, glanced furtively at Alpatych and again
17309lowered his eyes.
17310
17311"You drop this nonsense and tell the people to get ready to leave
17312their homes and go to Moscow and to get carts ready for tomorrow
17313morning for the princess' things. And don't go to any meeting
17314yourself, do you hear?"
17315
17316Dron suddenly fell on his knees.
17317
17318"Yakov Alpatych, discharge me! Take the keys from me and discharge
17319me, for Christ's sake!"
17320
17321"Stop that!" cried Alpatych sternly. "I see through you and three
17322yards under you," he repeated, knowing that his skill in beekeeping,
17323his knowledge of the right time to sow the oats, and the fact that
17324he had been able to retain the old prince's favor for twenty years had
17325long since gained him the reputation of being a wizard, and that the
17326power of seeing three yards under a man is considered an attribute
17327of wizards.
17328
17329Dron got up and was about to say something, but Alpatych interrupted
17330him.
17331
17332"What is it you have got into your heads, eh?... What are you
17333thinking of, eh?"
17334
17335"What am I to do with the people?" said Dron. "They're quite
17336beside themselves; I have already told them..."
17337
17338"'Told them,' I dare say!" said Alpatych. "Are they drinking?" he
17339asked abruptly.
17340
17341"Quite beside themselves, Yakov Alpatych; they've fetched another
17342barrel."
17343
17344"Well, then, listen! I'll go to the police officer, and you tell
17345them so, and that they must stop this and the carts must be got
17346ready."
17347
17348"I understand."
17349
17350Alpatych did not insist further. He had managed people for a long
17351time and knew that the chief way to make them obey is to show no
17352suspicion that they can possibly disobey. Having wrung a submissive "I
17353understand" from Dron, Alpatych contented himself with that, though he
17354not only doubted but felt almost certain that without the help of
17355troops the carts would not be forthcoming.
17356
17357And so it was, for when evening came no carts had been provided.
17358In the village, outside the drink shop, another meeting was being
17359held, which decided that the horses should be driven out into the
17360woods and the carts should not be provided. Without saying anything of
17361this to the princess, Alpatych had his own belongings taken out of the
17362carts which had arrived from Bald Hills and had those horses got ready
17363for the princess' carriages. Meanwhile he went himself to the police
17364authorities.
17365
17366
17367
17368
17369
17370CHAPTER X
17371
17372
17373After her father's funeral Princess Mary shut herself up in her room
17374and did not admit anyone. A maid came to the door to say that Alpatych
17375was asking for orders about their departure. (This was before his talk
17376with Dron.) Princess Mary raised herself on the sofa on which she
17377had been lying and replied through the closed door that she did not
17378mean to go away and begged to be left in peace.
17379
17380The windows of the room in which she was lying looked westward.
17381She lay on the sofa with her face to the wall, fingering the buttons
17382of the leather cushion and seeing nothing but that cushion, and her
17383confused thoughts were centered on one subject--the irrevocability
17384of death and her own spiritual baseness, which she had not
17385suspected, but which had shown itself during her father's illness. She
17386wished to pray but did not dare to, dared not in her present state
17387of mind address herself to God. She lay for a long time in that
17388position.
17389
17390The sun had reached the other side of the house, and its slanting
17391rays shone into the open window, lighting up the room and part of
17392the morocco cushion at which Princess Mary was looking. The flow of
17393her thoughts suddenly stopped. Unconsciously she sat up, smoothed
17394her hair, got up, and went to the window, involuntarily inhaling the
17395freshness of the clear but windy evening.
17396
17397"Yes, you can well enjoy the evening now! He is gone and no one will
17398hinder you," she said to herself, and sinking into a chair she let her
17399head fall on the window sill.
17400
17401Someone spoke her name in a soft and tender voice from the garden
17402and kissed her head. She looked up. It was Mademoiselle Bourienne in a
17403black dress and weepers. She softly approached Princess Mary,
17404sighed, kissed her, and immediately began to cry. The princess
17405looked up at her. All their former disharmony and her own jealousy
17406recurred to her mind. But she remembered too how he had changed of
17407late toward Mademoiselle Bourienne and could not bear to see her,
17408thereby showing how unjust were the reproaches Princess Mary had
17409mentally addressed to her. "Besides, is it for me, for me who
17410desired his death, to condemn anyone?" she thought.
17411
17412Princess Mary vividly pictured to herself the position of
17413Mademoiselle Bourienne, whom she had of late kept at a distance, but
17414who yet was dependent on her and living in her house. She felt sorry
17415for her and held out her hand with a glance of gentle inquiry.
17416Mademoiselle Bourienne at once began crying again and kissed that
17417hand, speaking of the princess' sorrow and making herself a partner in
17418it. She said her only consolation was the fact that the princess
17419allowed her to share her sorrow, that all the old misunderstandings
17420should sink into nothing but this great grief; that she felt herself
17421blameless in regard to everyone, and that he, from above, saw her
17422affection and gratitude. The princess heard her, not heeding her words
17423but occasionally looking up at her and listening to the sound of her
17424voice.
17425
17426"Your position is doubly terrible, dear princess," said Mademoiselle
17427Bourienne after a pause. "I understand that you could not, and cannot,
17428think of yourself, but with my love for you I must do so.... Has
17429Alpatych been to you? Has he spoken to you of going away?" she asked.
17430
17431Princess Mary did not answer. She did not understand who was to go
17432or where to. "Is it possible to plan or think of anything now? Is it
17433not all the same?" she thought, and did not reply.
17434
17435"You know, chere Marie," said Mademoiselle Bourienne, "that we are
17436in danger--are surrounded by the French. It would be dangerous to move
17437now. If we go we are almost sure to be taken prisoners, and God
17438knows..."
17439
17440Princess Mary looked at her companion without understanding what she
17441was talking about.
17442
17443"Oh, if anyone knew how little anything matters to me now," she
17444said. "Of course I would on no account wish to go away from him....
17445Alpatych did say something about going.... Speak to him; I can do
17446nothing, nothing, and don't want to...."
17447
17448"I've spoken to him. He hopes we should be in time to get away
17449tomorrow, but I think it would now be better to stay here," said
17450Mademoiselle Bourienne. "Because, you will agree, chere Marie, to fall
17451into the hands of the soldiers or of riotous peasants would be
17452terrible."
17453
17454Mademoiselle Bourienne took from her reticule a proclamation (not
17455printed on ordinary Russian paper) of General Rameau's, telling people
17456not to leave their homes and that the French authorities would
17457afford them proper protection. She handed this to the princess.
17458
17459"I think it would be best to appeal to that general," she continued,
17460"and and am sure that all due respect would be shown you."
17461
17462Princess Mary read the paper, and her face began to quiver with
17463stifled sobs.
17464
17465"From whom did you get this?" she asked.
17466
17467"They probably recognized that I am French, by my name," replied
17468Mademoiselle Bourienne blushing.
17469
17470Princess Mary, with the paper in her hand, rose from the window
17471and with a pale face went out of the room and into what had been
17472Prince Andrew's study.
17473
17474"Dunyasha, send Alpatych, or Dronushka, or somebody to me!" she
17475said, "and tell Mademoiselle Bourienne not to come to me," she
17476added, hearing Mademoiselle Bourienne's voice. "We must go at once, at
17477once!" she said, appalled at the thought of being left in the hands of
17478the French.
17479
17480"If Prince Andrew heard that I was in the power of the French!
17481That I, the daughter of Prince Nicholas Bolkonski, asked General
17482Rameau for protection and accepted his favor!" This idea horrified
17483her, made her shudder, blush, and feel such a rush of anger and
17484pride as she had never experienced before. All that was distressing,
17485and especially all that was humiliating, in her position rose
17486vividly to her mind. "They, the French, would settle in this house: M.
17487le General Rameau would occupy Prince Andrew's study and amuse himself
17488by looking through and reading his letters and papers. Mademoiselle
17489Bourienne would do the honors of Bogucharovo for him. I should be
17490given a small room as a favor, the soldiers would violate my
17491father's newly dug grave to steal his crosses and stars, they would
17492tell me of their victories over the Russians, and would pretend to
17493sympathize with my sorrow..." thought Princess Mary, not thinking
17494her own thoughts but feeling bound to think like her father and her
17495brother. For herself she did not care where she remained or what
17496happened to her, but she felt herself the representative of her dead
17497father and of Prince Andrew. Involuntarily she thought their
17498thoughts and felt their feelings. What they would have said and what
17499they would have done she felt bound to say and do. She went into
17500Prince Andrew's study, trying to enter completely into his ideas,
17501and considered her position.
17502
17503The demands of life, which had seemed to her annihilated by her
17504father's death, all at once rose before her with a new, previously
17505unknown force and took possession of her.
17506
17507Agitated and flushed she paced the room, sending now for Michael
17508Ivanovich and now for Tikhon or Dron. Dunyasha, the nurse, and the
17509other maids could not say in how far Mademoiselle Bourienne's
17510statement was correct. Alpatych was not at home, he had gone to the
17511police. Neither could the architect Michael Ivanovich, who on being
17512sent for came in with sleepy eyes, tell Princess Mary anything. With
17513just the same smile of agreement with which for fifteen years he had
17514been accustomed to answer the old prince without expressing views of
17515his own, he now replied to Princess Mary, so that nothing definite
17516could be got from his answers. The old valet Tikhon, with sunken,
17517emaciated face that bore the stamp of inconsolable grief, replied:
17518"Yes, Princess" to all Princess Mary's questions and hardly
17519refrained from sobbing as he looked at her.
17520
17521At length Dron, the village Elder, entered the room and with a
17522deep bow to Princess Mary came to a halt by the doorpost.
17523
17524Princess Mary walked up and down the room and stopped in front of
17525him.
17526
17527"Dronushka," she said, regarding as a sure friend this Dronushka who
17528always used to bring a special kind of gingerbread from his visit to
17529the fair at Vyazma every year and smilingly offer it to her,
17530"Dronushka, now since our misfortune..." she began, but could not go
17531on.
17532
17533"We are all in God's hands," said he, with a sigh.
17534
17535They were silent for a while.
17536
17537"Dronushka, Alpatych has gone off somewhere and I have no one to
17538turn to. Is true, as they tell me, that I can't even go away?"
17539
17540"Why shouldn't you go away, your excellency? You can go," said Dron.
17541
17542"I was told it would be dangerous because of the enemy. Dear friend,
17543I can do nothing. I understand nothing. I have nobody! I want to go
17544away tonight or early tomorrow morning."
17545
17546Dron paused. He looked askance at Princess Mary and said: "There are
17547no horses; I told Yakov Alpatych so."
17548
17549"Why are there none?" asked the princess.
17550
17551"It's all God's scourge," said Dron. "What horses we had have been
17552taken for the army or have died--this is such a year! It's not a
17553case of feeding horses--we may die of hunger ourselves! As it is, some
17554go three days without eating. We've nothing, we've been ruined."
17555
17556Princess Mary listened attentively to what he told her.
17557
17558"The peasants are ruined? They have no bread?" she asked.
17559
17560"They're dying of hunger," said Dron. "It's not a case of carting."
17561
17562"But why didn't you tell me, Dronushka? Isn't it possible to help
17563them? I'll do all I can...."
17564
17565To Princess Mary it was strange that now, at a moment when such
17566sorrow was filling her soul, there could be rich people and poor,
17567and the rich could refrain from helping the poor. She had heard
17568vaguely that there was such a thing as "landlord's corn" which was
17569sometimes given to the peasants. She also knew that neither her father
17570nor her brother would refuse to help the peasants in need, she only
17571feared to make some mistake in speaking about the distribution of
17572the grain she wished to give. She was glad such cares presented
17573themselves, enabling her without scruple to forget her own grief.
17574She began asking Dron about the peasants' needs and what there was
17575in Bogucharovo that belonged to the landlord.
17576
17577"But we have grain belonging to my brother?" she said.
17578
17579"The landlord's grain is all safe," replied Dron proudly. "Our
17580prince did not order it to be sold."
17581
17582"Give it to the peasants, let them have all they need; I give you
17583leave in my brother's name," said she.
17584
17585Dron made no answer but sighed deeply.
17586
17587"Give them that corn if there is enough of it. Distribute it all.
17588I give this order in my brother's name; and tell them that what is
17589ours is theirs. We do not grudge them anything. Tell them so."
17590
17591Dron looked intently at the princess while she was speaking.
17592
17593"Discharge me, little mother, for God's sake! Order the keys to be
17594taken from me," said he. "I have served twenty-three years and have
17595done no wrong. Discharge me, for God's sake!"
17596
17597Princess Mary did not understand what he wanted of her or why he was
17598asking to be discharged. She replied that she had never doubted his
17599devotion and that she was ready to do anything for him and for the
17600peasants.
17601
17602
17603
17604
17605
17606CHAPTER XI
17607
17608
17609An hour later Dunyasha came to tell the princess that Dron had come,
17610and all the peasants had assembled at the barn by the princess'
17611order and wished to have word with their mistress.
17612
17613"But I never told them to come," said Princess Mary. "I only told
17614Dron to let them have the grain."
17615
17616"Only, for God's sake, Princess dear, have them sent away and
17617don't go out to them. It's all a trick," said Dunyasha, "and when
17618Yakov Alpatych returns let us get away... and please don't..."
17619
17620"What is a trick?" asked Princess Mary in surprise.
17621
17622"I know it is, only listen to me for God's sake! Ask nurse too. They
17623say they don't agree to leave Bogucharovo as you ordered."
17624
17625"You're making some mistake. I never ordered them to go away,"
17626said Princess Mary. "Call Dronushka."
17627
17628Dron came and confirmed Dunyasha's words; the peasants had come by
17629the princess' order.
17630
17631"But I never sent for them," declared the princess. "You must have
17632given my message wrong. I only said that you were to give them the
17633grain."
17634
17635Dron only sighed in reply.
17636
17637"If you order it they will go away," said he.
17638
17639"No, no. I'll go out to them," said Princess Mary, and in spite of
17640the nurse's and Dunyasha's protests she went out into the porch; Dron,
17641Dunyasha, the nurse, and Michael Ivanovich following her.
17642
17643"They probably think I am offering them the grain to bribe them to
17644remain here, while I myself go away leaving them to the mercy of the
17645French," thought Princess Mary. "I will offer them monthly rations and
17646housing at our Moscow estate. I am sure Andrew would do even more in
17647my place," she thought as she went out in the twilight toward the
17648crowd standing on the pasture by the barn.
17649
17650The men crowded closer together, stirred, and rapidly took off their
17651hats. Princess Mary lowered her eyes and, tripping over her skirt,
17652came close up to them. So many different eyes, old and young, were
17653fixed on her, and there were so many different faces, that she could
17654not distinguish any of them and, feeling that she must speak to them
17655all at once, did not know how to do it. But again the sense that she
17656represented her father and her brother gave her courage, and she
17657boldly began her speech.
17658
17659"I am very glad you have come," she said without raising her eyes,
17660and feeling her heart beating quickly and violently. "Dronushka
17661tells me that the war has ruined you. That is our common misfortune,
17662and I shall grudge nothing to help you. I am myself going away because
17663it is dangerous here... the enemy is near... because... I am giving
17664you everything, my friends, and I beg you to take everything, all
17665our grain, so that you may not suffer want! And if you have been
17666told that I am giving you the grain to keep you here--that is not
17667true. On the contrary, I ask you to go with all your belongings to our
17668estate near Moscow, and I promise you I will see to it that there
17669you shall want for nothing. You shall be given food and lodging."
17670
17671The princess stopped. Sighs were the only sound heard in the crowd.
17672
17673"I am not doing this on my own account," she continued, "I do it
17674in the name of my dead father, who was a good master to you, and of my
17675brother and his son."
17676
17677Again she paused. No one broke the silence.
17678
17679"Ours is a common misfortune and we will share it together. All that
17680is mine is yours," she concluded, scanning the faces before her.
17681
17682All eyes were gazing at her with one and the same expression. She
17683could not fathom whether it was curiosity, devotion, gratitude, or
17684apprehension and distrust--but the expression on all the faces was
17685identical.
17686
17687"We are all very thankful for your bounty, but it won't do for us to
17688take the landlord's grain," said a voice at the back of the crowd.
17689
17690"But why not?" asked the princess.
17691
17692No one replied and Princess Mary, looking round at the crowd,
17693found that every eye she met now was immediately dropped.
17694
17695"But why don't you want to take it?" she asked again.
17696
17697No one answered.
17698
17699The silence began to oppress the princess and she tried to catch
17700someone's eye.
17701
17702"Why don't you speak?" she inquired of a very old man who stood just
17703in front of her leaning on his stick. "If you think something more
17704is wanted, tell me! I will do anything," said she, catching his eye.
17705
17706But as if this angered him, he bent his head quite low and muttered:
17707
17708"Why should we agree? We don't want the grain."
17709
17710"Why should we give up everything? We don't agree. Don't agree....
17711We are sorry for you, but we're not willing. Go away yourself,
17712alone..." came from various sides of the crowd.
17713
17714And again all the faces in that crowd bore an identical
17715expression, though now it was certainly not an expression of curiosity
17716or gratitude, but of angry resolve.
17717
17718"But you can't have understood me," said Princess Mary with a sad
17719smile. "Why don't you want to go? I promise to house and feed you,
17720while here the enemy would ruin you..."
17721
17722But her voice was drowned by the voices of the crowd.
17723
17724"We're not willing. Let them ruin us! We won't take your grain. We
17725don't agree."
17726
17727Again Princess Mary tried to catch someone's eye, but not a single
17728eye in the crowd was turned to her; evidently they were all trying
17729to avoid her look. She felt strange and awkward.
17730
17731"Oh yes, an artful tale! Follow her into slavery! Pull down your
17732houses and go into bondage! I dare say! 'I'll give you grain, indeed!'
17733she says," voices in the crowd were heard saying.
17734
17735With drooping head Princess Mary left the crowd and went back to the
17736house. Having repeated her order to Dron to have horses ready for
17737her departure next morning, she went to her room and remained alone
17738with her own thoughts.
17739
17740
17741
17742
17743
17744CHAPTER XII
17745
17746
17747For a long time that night Princess Mary sat by the open window of
17748her room hearing the sound of the peasants' voices that reached her
17749from the village, but it was not of them she was thinking. She felt
17750that she could not understand them however much she might think
17751about them. She thought only of one thing, her sorrow, which, after
17752the break caused by cares for the present, seemed already to belong to
17753the past. Now she could remember it and weep or pray.
17754
17755After sunset the wind had dropped. The night was calm and fresh.
17756Toward midnight the voices began to subside, a cock crowed, the full
17757moon began to show from behind the lime trees, a fresh white dewy mist
17758began to rise, and stillness reigned over the village and the house.
17759
17760Pictures of the near past--her father's illness and last moments-
17761rose one after another to her memory. With mournful pleasure she now
17762lingered over these images, repelling with horror only the last one,
17763the picture of his death, which she felt she could not contemplate
17764even in imagination at this still and mystic hour of night. And
17765these pictures presented themselves to her so clearly and in such
17766detail that they seemed now present, now past, and now future.
17767
17768She vividly recalled the moment when he had his first stroke and was
17769being dragged along by his armpits through the garden at Bald Hills,
17770muttering something with his helpless tongue, twitching his gray
17771eyebrows and looking uneasily and timidly at her.
17772
17773"Even then he wanted to tell me what he told me the day he died,"
17774she thought. "He had always thought what he said then." And she
17775recalled in all its detail the night at Bald Hills before he had the
17776last stroke, when with a foreboding of disaster she had remained at
17777home against his will. She had not slept and had stolen downstairs
17778on tiptoe, and going to the door of the conservatory where he slept
17779that night had listened at the door. In a suffering and weary voice he
17780was saying something to Tikhon, speaking of the Crimea and its warm
17781nights and of the Empress. Evidently he had wanted to talk. "And why
17782didn't he call me? Why didn't he let me be there instead of Tikhon?"
17783Princess Mary had thought and thought again now. "Now he will never
17784tell anyone what he had in his soul. Never will that moment return for
17785him or for me when he might have said all he longed to say, and not
17786Tikhon but I might have heard and understood him. Why didn't I enter
17787the room?" she thought. "Perhaps he would then have said to me what he
17788said the day he died. While talking to Tikhon he asked about me twice.
17789He wanted to see me, and I was standing close by, outside the door. It
17790was sad and painful for him to talk to Tikhon who did not understand
17791him. I remember how he began speaking to him about Lise as if she were
17792alive--he had forgotten she was dead--and Tikhon reminded him that she
17793was no more, and he shouted, 'Fool!' He was greatly depressed. From
17794behind the door I heard how he lay down on his bed groaning and loudly
17795exclaimed, 'My God!' Why didn't I go in then? What could he have
17796done to me? What could I have lost? And perhaps he would then have
17797been comforted and would have said that word to me." And Princess Mary
17798uttered aloud the caressing word he had said to her on the day of
17799his death. "Dear-est!" she repeated, and began sobbing, with tears
17800that relieved her soul. She now saw his face before her. And not the
17801face she had known ever since she could remember and had always seen
17802at a distance, but the timid, feeble face she had seen for the first
17803time quite closely, with all its wrinkles and details, when she
17804stooped near to his mouth to catch what he said.
17805
17806"Dear-est!" she repeated again.
17807
17808"What was he thinking when he uttered that word? What is he thinking
17809now?" This question suddenly presented itself to her, and in answer
17810she saw him before her with the expression that was on his face as
17811he lay in his coffin with his chin bound up with a white handkerchief.
17812And the horror that had seized her when she touched him and
17813convinced herself that that was not he, but something mysterious and
17814horrible, seized her again. She tried to think of something else and
17815to pray, but could do neither. With wide-open eyes she gazed at the
17816moonlight and the shadows, expecting every moment to see his dead
17817face, and she felt that the silence brooding over the house and within
17818it held her fast.
17819
17820"Dunyasha," she whispered. "Dunyasha!" she screamed wildly, and
17821tearing herself out of this silence she ran to the servants'
17822quarters to meet her old nurse and the maidservants who came running
17823toward her.
17824
17825
17826
17827
17828
17829CHAPTER XIII
17830
17831
17832On the seventeenth of August Rostov and Ilyin, accompanied by
17833Lavrushka who had just returned from captivity and by an hussar
17834orderly, left their quarters at Yankovo, ten miles from Bogucharovo,
17835and went for a ride--to try a new horse Ilyin had bought and to find
17836out whether there was any hay to be had in the villages.
17837
17838For the last three days Bogucharovo had lain between the two hostile
17839armies, so that it was as easy for the Russian rearguard to get to
17840it as for the French vanguard; Rostov, as a careful squadron
17841commander, wished to take such provisions as remained at Bogucharovo
17842before the French could get them.
17843
17844Rostov and Ilyin were in the merriest of moods. On the way to
17845Bogucharovo, a princely estate with a dwelling house and farm where
17846they hoped to find many domestic serfs and pretty girls, they
17847questioned Lavrushka about Napoleon and laughed at his stories, and
17848raced one another to try Ilyin's horse.
17849
17850Rostov had no idea that the village he was entering was the property
17851of that very Bolkonski who had been engaged to his sister.
17852
17853Rostov and Ilyin gave rein to their horses for a last race along the
17854incline before reaching Bogucharovo, and Rostov, outstripping Ilyin,
17855was the first to gallop into the village street.
17856
17857"You're first!" cried Ilyin, flushed.
17858
17859"Yes, always first both on the grassland and here," answered Rostov,
17860stroking his heated Donets horse.
17861
17862"And I'd have won on my Frenchy, your excellency," said Lavrushka
17863from behind, alluding to his shabby cart horse, "only I didn't wish to
17864mortify you."
17865
17866They rode at a footpace to the barn, where a large crowd of peasants
17867was standing.
17868
17869Some of the men bared their heads, others stared at the new arrivals
17870without doffing their caps. Two tall old peasants with wrinkled
17871faces and scanty beards emerged from the tavern, smiling,
17872staggering, and singing some incoherent song, and approached the
17873officers.
17874
17875"Fine fellows!" said Rostov laughing. "Is there any hay here?"
17876
17877"And how like one another," said Ilyin.
17878
17879"A mo-o-st me-r-r-y co-o-m-pa...!" sang one of the peasants with a
17880blissful smile.
17881
17882One of the men came out of the crowd and went up to Rostov.
17883
17884"Who do you belong to?" he asked.
17885
17886"The French," replied Ilyin jestingly, "and here is Napoleon
17887himself"--and he pointed to Lavrushka.
17888
17889"Then you are Russians?" the peasant asked again.
17890
17891"And is there a large force of you here?" said another, a short man,
17892coming up.
17893
17894"Very large," answered Rostov. "But why have you collected here?" he
17895added. "Is it a holiday?"
17896
17897"The old men have met to talk over the business of the commune,"
17898replied the peasant, moving away.
17899
17900At that moment, on the road leading from the big house, two women
17901and a man in a white hat were seen coming toward the officers.
17902
17903"The one in pink is mine, so keep off!" said Ilyin on seeing
17904Dunyasha running resolutely toward him.
17905
17906"She'll be ours!" said Lavrushka to Ilyin, winking.
17907
17908"What do you want, my pretty?" said Ilyin with a smile.
17909
17910"The princess ordered me to ask your regiment and your name."
17911
17912"This is Count Rostov, squadron commander, and I am your humble
17913servant."
17914
17915"Co-o-om-pa-ny!" roared the tipsy peasant with a beatific smile as
17916he looked at Ilyin talking to the girl. Following Dunyasha, Alpatych
17917advanced to Rostov, having bared his head while still at a distance.
17918
17919"May I make bold to trouble your honor?" said he respectfully, but
17920with a shade of contempt for the youthfulness of this officer and with
17921a hand thrust into his bosom. "My mistress, daughter of General in
17922Chief Prince Nicholas Bolkonski who died on the fifteenth of this
17923month, finding herself in difficulties owing to the boorishness of
17924these people"--he pointed to the peasants--"asks you to come up to the
17925house.... Won't you, please, ride on a little farther," said
17926Alpatych with a melancholy smile, "as it is not convenient in the
17927presence of...?" He pointed to the two peasants who kept as close to
17928him as horseflies to a horse.
17929
17930"Ah!... Alpatych... Ah, Yakov Alpatych... Grand! Forgive us for
17931Christ's sake, eh?" said the peasants, smiling joyfully at him.
17932
17933Rostov looked at the tipsy peasants and smiled.
17934
17935"Or perhaps they amuse your honor?" remarked Alpatych with a staid
17936air, as he pointed at the old men with his free hand.
17937
17938"No, there's not much to be amused at here," said Rostov, and rode
17939on a little way. "What's the matter?" he asked.
17940
17941"I make bold to inform your honor that the rude peasants here
17942don't wish to let the mistress leave the estate, and threaten to
17943unharness her horses, so that though everything has been packed up
17944since morning, her excellency cannot get away."
17945
17946"Impossible!" exclaimed Rostov.
17947
17948"I have the honor to report to you the actual truth," said Alpatych.
17949
17950Rostov dismounted, gave his horse to the orderly, and followed
17951Alpatych to the house, questioning him as to the state of affairs.
17952It appeared that the princess' offer of corn to the peasants the
17953previous day, and her talk with Dron and at the meeting, had
17954actually had so bad an effect that Dron had finally given up the
17955keys and joined the peasants and had not appeared when Alpatych sent
17956for him; and that in the morning when the princess gave orders to
17957harness for her journey, the peasants had come in a large crowd to the
17958barn and sent word that they would not let her leave the village: that
17959there was an order not to move, and that they would unharness the
17960horses. Alpatych had gone out to admonish them, but was told (it was
17961chiefly Karp who did the talking, Dron not showing himself in the
17962crowd) that they could not let the princess go, that there was an
17963order to the contrary, but that if she stayed they would serve her
17964as before and obey her in everything.
17965
17966At the moment when Rostov and Ilyin were galloping along the road,
17967Princess Mary, despite the dissuasions of Alpatych, her nurse, and the
17968maids, had given orders to harness and intended to start, but when the
17969cavalrymen were espied they were taken for Frenchmen, the coachman ran
17970away, and the women in the house began to wail.
17971
17972"Father! Benefactor! God has sent you!" exclaimed deeply moved
17973voices as Rostov passed through the anteroom.
17974
17975Princess Mary was sitting helpless and bewildered in the large
17976sitting room, when Rostov was shown in. She could not grasp who he was
17977and why he had come, or what was happening to her. When she saw his
17978Russian face, and by his walk and the first words he uttered
17979recognized him as a man of her own class, she glanced at him with
17980her deep radiant look and began speaking in a voice that faltered
17981and trembled with emotion. This meeting immediately struck Rostov as a
17982romantic event. "A helpless girl overwhelmed with grief, left to the
17983mercy of coarse, rioting peasants! And what a strange fate sent me
17984here! What gentleness and nobility there are in her features and
17985expression!" thought he as he looked at her and listened to her
17986timid story.
17987
17988When she began to tell him that all this had happened the day
17989after her father's funeral, her voiced trembled. She turned away,
17990and then, as if fearing he might take her words as meant to move him
17991to pity, looked at him with an apprehensive glance of inquiry. There
17992were tears in Rostov's eyes. Princess Mary noticed this and glanced
17993gratefully at him with that radiant look which caused the plainness of
17994her face to be forgotten.
17995
17996"I cannot express, Princess, how glad I am that I happened to ride
17997here and am able to show my readiness to serve you," said Rostov,
17998rising. "Go when you please, and I give you my word of honor that no
17999one shall dare to cause you annoyance if only you will allow me to act
18000as your escort." And bowing respectfully, as if to a lady of royal
18001blood, he moved toward the door.
18002
18003Rostov's deferential tone seemed to indicate that though he would
18004consider himself happy to be acquainted with her, he did not wish to
18005take advantage of her misfortunes to intrude upon her.
18006
18007Princess Mary understood this and appreciated his delicacy.
18008
18009"I am very, very grateful to you," she said in French, "but I hope
18010it was all a misunderstanding and that no one is to blame for it." She
18011suddenly began to cry.
18012
18013"Excuse me!" she said.
18014
18015Rostov, knitting his brows, left the room with another low bow.
18016
18017
18018
18019
18020
18021CHAPTER XIV
18022
18023
18024"Well, is she pretty? Ah, friend--my pink one is delicious; her
18025name is Dunyasha...."
18026
18027But on glancing at Rostov's face Ilyin stopped short. He saw that
18028his hero and commander was following quite a different train of
18029thought.
18030
18031Rostov glanced angrily at Ilyin and without replying strode off with
18032rapid steps to the village.
18033
18034"I'll show them; I'll give it to them, the brigands!" said he to
18035himself.
18036
18037Alpatych at a gliding trot, only just managing not to run, kept up
18038with him with difficulty.
18039
18040"What decision have you been pleased to come to?" said he.
18041
18042Rostov stopped and, clenching his fists, suddenly and sternly turned
18043on Alpatych.
18044
18045"Decision? What decision? Old dotard!..." cried he. "What have you
18046been about? Eh? The peasants are rioting, and you can't manage them?
18047You're a traitor yourself! I know you. I'll flay you all alive!..."
18048And as if afraid of wasting his store of anger, he left Alpatych and
18049went rapidly forward. Alpatych, mastering his offended feelings,
18050kept pace with Rostov at a gliding gait and continued to impart his
18051views. He said the peasants were obdurate and that at the present
18052moment it would be imprudent to "overresist" them without an armed
18053force, and would it not be better first to send for the military?
18054
18055"I'll give them armed force... I'll 'overresist' them!" uttered
18056Rostov meaninglessly, breathless with irrational animal fury and the
18057need to vent it.
18058
18059Without considering what he would do he moved unconciously with
18060quick, resolute steps toward the crowd. And the nearer he drew to it
18061the more Alpatych felt that this unreasonable action might produce
18062good results. The peasants in the crowd were similarly impressed
18063when they saw Rostov's rapid, firm steps and resolute, frowning face.
18064
18065After the hussars had come to the village and Rostov had gone to see
18066the princess, a certain confusion and dissension had arisen among
18067the crowd. Some of the peasants said that these new arrivals were
18068Russians and might take it amiss that the mistress was being detained.
18069Dron was of this opinion, but as soon as he expressed it Karp and
18070others attacked their ex-Elder.
18071
18072"How many years have you been fattening on the commune?" Karp
18073shouted at him. "It's all one to you! You'll dig up your pot of
18074money and take it away with you.... What does it matter to you whether
18075our homes are ruined or not?"
18076
18077"We've been told to keep order, and that no one is to leave their
18078homes or take away a single grain, and that's all about it!" cried
18079another.
18080
18081"It was your son's turn to be conscripted, but no fear! You
18082begrudged your lump of a son," a little old man suddenly began
18083attacking Dron--"and so they took my Vanka to be shaved for a soldier!
18084But we all have to die."
18085
18086"To be sure, we all have to die. I'm not against the commune,"
18087said Dron.
18088
18089"That's it--not against it! You've filled your belly...."
18090
18091The two tall peasants had their say. As soon as Rostov, followed
18092by Ilyin, Lavrushka, and Alpatych, came up to the crowd, Karp,
18093thrusting his fingers into his belt and smiling a little, walked to
18094the front. Dron on the contrary retired to the rear and the crowd drew
18095closer together.
18096
18097"Who is your Elder here? Hey?" shouted Rostov, coming up to the
18098crowd with quick steps.
18099
18100"The Elder? What do you want with him?..." asked Karp.
18101
18102But before the words were well out of his mouth, his cap flew off
18103and a fierce blow jerked his head to one side.
18104
18105"Caps off, traitors!" shouted Rostov in a wrathful voice. "Where's
18106the Elder?" he cried furiously.
18107
18108"The Elder.... He wants the Elder!... Dron Zakharych, you!" meek and
18109flustered voices here and there were heard calling and caps began to
18110come off their heads.
18111
18112"We don't riot, we're following the orders," declared Karp, and at
18113that moment several voices began speaking together.
18114
18115"It's as the old men have decided--there's too many of you giving
18116orders."
18117
18118"Arguing? Mutiny!... Brigands! Traitors!" cried Rostov unmeaningly
18119in a voice not his own, gripping Karp by the collar. "Bind him, bind
18120him!" he shouted, though there was no one to bind him but Lavrushka
18121and Alpatych.
18122
18123Lavrushka, however, ran up to Karp and seized him by the arms from
18124behind.
18125
18126"Shall I call up our men from beyond the hill?" he called out.
18127
18128Alpatych turned to the peasants and ordered two of them by name to
18129come and bind Karp. The men obediently came out of the crowd and began
18130taking off their belts.
18131
18132"Where's the Elder?" demanded Rostov in a loud voice.
18133
18134With a pale and frowning face Dron stepped out of the crowd.
18135
18136"Are you the Elder? Bind him, Lavrushka!" shouted Rostov, as if that
18137order, too, could not possibly meet with any opposition.
18138
18139And in fact two more peasants began binding Dron, who took off his
18140own belt and handed it to them, as if to aid them.
18141
18142"And you all listen to me!" said Rostov to the peasants. "Be off
18143to your houses at once, and don't let one of your voices be heard!"
18144
18145"Why, we've not done any harm! We did it just out of foolishness.
18146It's all nonsense... I said then that it was not in order," voices
18147were heard bickering with one another.
18148
18149"There! What did I say?" said Alpatych, coming into his own again.
18150"It's wrong, lads!"
18151
18152 "All our stupidity, Yakov Alpatych," came the answers, and the
18153crowd began at once to disperse through the village.
18154
18155The two bound men were led off to the master's house. The two
18156drunken peasants followed them.
18157
18158"Aye, when I look at you!..." said one of them to Karp.
18159
18160"How can one talk to the masters like that? What were you thinking
18161of, you fool?" added the other--"A real fool!"
18162
18163Two hours later the carts were standing in the courtyard of the
18164Bogucharovo house. The peasants were briskly carrying out the
18165proprietor's goods and packing them on the carts, and Dron,
18166liberated at Princess Mary's wish from the cupboard where he had
18167been confined, was standing in the yard directing the men.
18168
18169"Don't put it in so carelessly," said one of the peasants, a man
18170with a round smiling face, taking a casket from a housemaid. "You know
18171it has cost money! How can you chuck it in like that or shove it under
18172the cord where it'll get rubbed? I don't like that way of doing
18173things. Let it all be done properly, according to rule. Look here, put
18174it under the bast matting and cover it with hay--that's the way!"
18175
18176"Eh, books, books!" said another peasant, bringing out Prince
18177Andrew's library cupboards. "Don't catch up against it! It's heavy,
18178lads--solid books."
18179
18180"Yes, they worked all day and didn't play!" remarked the tall,
18181round-faced peasant gravely, pointing with a significant wink at the
18182dictionaries that were on the top.
18183
18184
18185Unwilling to obtrude himself on the princess, Rostov did not go back
18186to the house but remained in the village awaiting her departure.
18187When her carriage drove out of the house, he mounted and accompanied
18188her eight miles from Bogucharovo to where the road was occupied by our
18189troops. At the inn at Yankovo he respectfully took leave of her, for
18190the first time permitting himself to kiss her hand.
18191
18192"How can you speak so!" he blushingly replied to Princess Mary's
18193expressions of gratitude for her deliverance, as she termed what had
18194occurred. "Any police officer would have done as much! If we had had
18195only peasants to fight, we should not have let the enemy come so far,"
18196said he with a sense of shame and wishing to change the subject. "I am
18197only happy to have had the opportunity of making your acquaintance.
18198Good-by, Princess. I wish you happiness and consolation and hope to
18199meet you again in happier circumstances. If you don't want to make
18200me blush, please don't thank me!"
18201
18202But the princess, if she did not again thank him in words, thanked
18203him with the whole expression of her face, radiant with gratitude
18204and tenderness. She could not believe that there was nothing to
18205thank him for. On the contrary, it seemed to her certain that had he
18206not been there she would have perished at the hands of the mutineers
18207and of the French, and that he had exposed himself to terrible and
18208obvious danger to save her, and even more certain was it that he was a
18209man of lofty and noble soul, able to understand her position and her
18210sorrow. His kind, honest eyes, with the tears rising in them when
18211she herself had begun to cry as she spoke of her loss, did leave her
18212memory.
18213
18214When she had taken leave of him and remained alone she suddenly felt
18215her eyes filling with tears, and then not for the first time the
18216strange question presented itself to her: did she love him?
18217
18218On the rest of the way to Moscow, though the princess' position
18219was not a cheerful one, Dunyasha, who went with her in the carriage,
18220more than once noticed that her mistress leaned out of the window
18221and smiled at something with an expression of mingled joy and sorrow.
18222
18223"Well, supposing I do love him?" thought Princess Mary.
18224
18225Ashamed as she was of acknowledging to herself that she had fallen
18226in love with a man who would perhaps never love her, she comforted
18227herself with the thought that no one would ever know it and that she
18228would not be to blame if, without ever speaking of it to anyone, she
18229continued to the end of her life to love the man with whom she had
18230fallen in love for the first and last time in her life.
18231
18232Sometimes when she recalled his looks, his sympathy, and his
18233words, happiness did not appear impossible to her. It was at those
18234moments that Dunyasha noticed her smiling as she looked out of the
18235carriage window.
18236
18237"Was it not fate that brought him to Bogucharovo, and at that very
18238moment?" thought Princess Mary. "And that caused his sister to
18239refuse my brother?" And in all this Princess Mary saw the hand of
18240Providence.
18241
18242The impression the princess made on Rostov was a very agreeable one.
18243To remember her gave him pleasure, and when his comrades, hearing of
18244his adventure at Bogucharovo, rallied him on having gone to look for
18245hay and having picked up one of the wealthiest heiresses in Russia, he
18246grew angry. It made him angry just because the idea of marrying the
18247gentle Princess Mary, who was attractive to him and had an enormous
18248fortune, had against his will more than once entered his head. For
18249himself personally Nicholas could not wish for a better wife: by
18250marrying her he would make the countess his mother happy, would be
18251able to put his father's affairs in order, and would even--he felt it-
18252ensure Princess Mary's happiness.
18253
18254But Sonya? And his plighted word? That was why Rostov grew angry
18255when he was rallied about Princess Bolkonskaya.
18256
18257
18258
18259
18260
18261CHAPTER XV
18262
18263
18264On receiving command of the armies Kutuzov remembered Prince
18265Andrew and sent an order for him to report at headquarters.
18266
18267Prince Andrew arrived at Tsarevo-Zaymishche on the very day and at
18268the very hour that Kutuzov was reviewing the troops for the first
18269time. He stopped in the village at the priest's house in front of
18270which stood the commander in chief's carriage, and he sat down on
18271the bench at the gate awaiting his Serene Highness, as everyone now
18272called Kutuzov. From the field beyond the village came now sounds of
18273regimental music and now the roar of many voices shouting "Hurrah!" to
18274the new commander in chief. Two orderlies, a courier and a major-domo,
18275stood near by, some ten paces from Prince Andrew, availing
18276themselves of Kutuzov's absence and of the fine weather. A short,
18277swarthy lieutenant colonel of hussars with thick mustaches and
18278whiskers rode up to the gate and, glancing at Prince Andrew,
18279inquired whether his Serene Highness was putting up there and
18280whether he would soon be back.
18281
18282Prince Andrew replied that he was not on his Serene Highness'
18283staff but was himself a new arrival. The lieutenant colonel turned
18284to a smart orderly, who, with the peculiar contempt with which a
18285commander in chief's orderly speaks to officers, replied:
18286
18287"What? His Serene Highness? I expect he'll be here soon. What do you
18288want?"
18289
18290The lieutenant colonel of hussars smiled beneath his mustache at the
18291orderly's tone, dismounted, gave his horse to a dispatch runner, and
18292approached Bolkonski with a slight bow. Bolkonski made room for him on
18293the bench and the lieutenant colonel sat down beside him.
18294
18295"You're also waiting for the commander in chief?" said he. "They say
18296he weceives evewyone, thank God!... It's awful with those sausage
18297eaters! Ermolov had weason to ask to be pwomoted to be a German! Now
18298p'waps Wussians will get a look in. As it was, devil only knows what
18299was happening. We kept wetweating and wetweating. Did you take part in
18300the campaign?" he asked.
18301
18302"I had the pleasure," replied Prince Andrew, "not only of taking
18303part in the retreat but of losing in that retreat all I held dear--not
18304to mention the estate and home of my birth--my father, who died of
18305grief. I belong to the province of Smolensk."
18306
18307"Ah? You're Pwince Bolkonski? Vewy glad to make your acquaintance!
18308I'm Lieutenant Colonel Denisov, better known as 'Vaska,'" said
18309Denisov, pressing Prince Andrew's hand and looking into his face
18310with a particularly kindly attention. "Yes, I heard," said he
18311sympathetically, and after a short pause added: "Yes, it's Scythian
18312warfare. It's all vewy well--only not for those who get it in the
18313neck. So you are Pwince Andwew Bolkonski?" He swayed his head. "Vewy
18314pleased, Pwince, to make your acquaintance!" he repeated again,
18315smiling sadly, and he again pressed Prince Andrew's hand.
18316
18317Prince Andrew knew Denisov from what Natasha had told him of her
18318first suitor. This memory carried him sadly and sweetly back to
18319those painful feelings of which he had not thought lately, but which
18320still found place in his soul. Of late he had received so many new and
18321very serious impressions--such as the retreat from Smolensk, his visit
18322to Bald Hills, and the recent news of his father's death--and had
18323experienced so many emotions, that for a long time past those memories
18324had not entered his mind, and now that they did, they did not act on
18325him with nearly their former strength. For Denisov, too, the
18326memories awakened by the name of Bolkonski belonged to a distant,
18327romantic past, when after supper and after Natasha's singing he had
18328proposed to a little girl of fifteen without realizing what he was
18329doing. He smiled at the recollection of that time and of his love
18330for Natasha, and passed at once to what now interested him
18331passionately and exclusively. This was a plan of campaign he had
18332devised while serving at the outposts during the retreat. He had
18333proposed that plan to Barclay de Tolly and now wished to propose it to
18334Kutuzov. The plan was based on the fact that the French line of
18335operation was too extended, and it proposed that instead of, or
18336concurrently with, action on the front to bar the advance of the
18337French, we should attack their line of communication. He began
18338explaining his plan to Prince Andrew.
18339
18340"They can't hold all that line. It's impossible. I will undertake to
18341bweak thwough. Give me five hundwed men and I will bweak the line,
18342that's certain! There's only one way--guewilla warfare!"
18343
18344Denisov rose and began gesticulating as he explained his plan to
18345Bolkonski. In the midst of his explanation shouts were heard from
18346the army, growing more incoherent and more diffused, mingling with
18347music and songs and coming from the field where the review was held.
18348Sounds of hoofs and shouts were nearing the village.
18349
18350"He's coming! He's coming!" shouted a Cossack standing at the gate.
18351
18352Bolkonski and Denisov moved to the gate, at which a knot of soldiers
18353(a guard of honor) was standing, and they saw Kutuzov coming down
18354the street mounted on a rather small sorrel horse. A huge suite of
18355generals rode behind him. Barclay was riding almost beside him, and
18356a crowd of officers ran after and around them shouting, "Hurrah!"
18357
18358His adjutants galloped into the yard before him. Kutuzov was
18359impatiently urging on his horse, which ambled smoothly under his
18360weight, and he raised his hand to his white Horse Guard's cap with a
18361red band and no peak, nodding his head continually. When he came up to
18362the guard of honor, a fine set of Grenadiers mostly wearing
18363decorations, who were giving him the salute, he looked at them
18364silently and attentively for nearly a minute with the steady gaze of a
18365commander and then turned to the crowd of generals and officers
18366surrounding him. Suddenly his face assumed a subtle expression, he
18367shrugged his shoulders with an air of perplexity.
18368
18369"And with such fine fellows to retreat and retreat! Well, good-by,
18370General," he added, and rode into the yard past Prince Andrew and
18371Denisov.
18372
18373"Hurrah! hurrah! hurrah!" shouted those behind him.
18374
18375Since Prince Andrew had last seen him Kutuzov had grown still more
18376corpulent, flaccid, and fat. But the bleached eyeball, the scar, and
18377the familiar weariness of his expression were still the same. He was
18378wearing the white Horse Guard's cap and a military overcoat with a
18379whip hanging over his shoulder by a thin strap. He sat heavily and
18380swayed limply on his brisk little horse.
18381
18382"Whew... whew... whew!" he whistled just audibly as he rode into the
18383yard. His face expressed the relief of relaxed strain felt by a man
18384who means to rest after a ceremony. He drew his left foot out of the
18385stirrup and, lurching with his whole body and puckering his face
18386with the effort, raised it with difficulty onto the saddle, leaned
18387on his knee, groaned, and slipped down into the arms of the Cossacks
18388and adjutants who stood ready to assist him.
18389
18390He pulled himself together, looked round, screwing up his eyes,
18391glanced at Prince Andrew, and, evidently not recognizing him, moved
18392with his waddling gait to the porch. "Whew... whew... whew!" he
18393whistled, and again glanced at Prince Andrew. As often occurs with old
18394men, it was only after some seconds that the impression produced by
18395Prince Andrew's face linked itself up with Kutuzov's remembrance of
18396his personality.
18397
18398"Ah, how do you do, my dear prince? How do you do, my dear boy? Come
18399along..." said he, glancing wearily round, and he stepped onto the
18400porch which creaked under his weight.
18401
18402He unbuttoned his coat and sat down on a bench in the porch.
18403
18404"And how's your father?"
18405
18406"I received news of his death, yesterday," replied Prince Andrew
18407abruptly.
18408
18409Kutuzov looked at him with eyes wide open with dismay and then
18410took off his cap and crossed himself:
18411
18412"May the kingdom of Heaven be his! God's will be done to us all!" He
18413sighed deeply, his whole chest heaving, and was silent for a while. "I
18414loved him and respected him, and sympathize with you with all my
18415heart."
18416
18417He embraced Prince Andrew, pressing him to his fat breast, and for
18418some time did not let him go. When he released him Prince Andrew saw
18419that Kutuzov's flabby lips were trembling and that tears were in his
18420eyes. He sighed and pressed on the bench with both hands to raise
18421himself.
18422
18423"Come! Come with me, we'll have a talk," said he.
18424
18425But at that moment Denisov, no more intimidated by his superiors
18426than by the enemy, came with jingling spurs up the steps of the porch,
18427despite the angry whispers of the adjutants who tried to stop him.
18428Kutuzov, his hands still pressed on the seat, glanced at him glumly.
18429Denisov, having given his name, announced that he had to communicate
18430to his Serene Highness a matter of great importance for their
18431country's welfare. Kutuzov looked wearily at him and, lifting his
18432hands with a gesture of annoyance, folded them across his stomach,
18433repeating the words: "For our country's welfare? Well, what is it?
18434Speak!" Denisov blushed like a girl (it was strange to see the color
18435rise in that shaggy, bibulous, time-worn face) and boldly began to
18436expound his plan of cutting the enemy's lines of communication between
18437Smolensk and Vyazma. Denisov came from those parts and knew the
18438country well. His plan seemed decidedly a good one, especially from
18439the strength of conviction with which he spoke. Kutuzov looked down at
18440his own legs, occasionally glancing at the door of the adjoining hut
18441as if expecting something unpleasant to emerge from it. And from
18442that hut, while Denisov was speaking, a general with a portfolio under
18443his arm really did appear.
18444
18445"What?" said Kutuzov, in the midst of Denisov's explanations, "are
18446you ready so soon?"
18447
18448"Ready, your Serene Highness," replied the general.
18449
18450Kutuzov swayed his head, as much as to say: "How is one man to
18451deal with it all?" and again listened to Denisov.
18452
18453"I give my word of honor as a Wussian officer," said Denisov,
18454"that I can bweak Napoleon's line of communication!"
18455
18456"What relation are you to Intendant General Kiril Andreevich
18457Denisov?" asked Kutuzov, interrupting him.
18458
18459"He is my uncle, your Sewene Highness."
18460
18461"Ah, we were friends," said Kutuzov cheerfully. "All right, all
18462right, friend, stay here at the staff and tomorrow we'll have a talk."
18463
18464With a nod to Denisov he turned away and put out his hand for the
18465papers Konovnitsyn had brought him.
18466
18467"Would not your Serene Highness like to come inside?" said the
18468general on duty in a discontented voice, "the plans must be examined
18469and several papers have to be signed."
18470
18471An adjutant came out and announced that everything was in
18472readiness within. But Kutuzov evidently did not wish to enter that
18473room till he was disengaged. He made a grimace...
18474
18475"No, tell them to bring a small table out here, my dear boy. I'll
18476look at them here," said he. "Don't go away," he added, turning to
18477Prince Andrew, who remained in the porch and listened to the general's
18478report.
18479
18480While this was being given, Prince Andrew heard the whisper of a
18481woman's voice and the rustle of a silk dress behind the door.
18482Several times on glancing that way he noticed behind that door a
18483plump, rosy, handsome woman in a pink dress with a lilac silk kerchief
18484on her head, holding a dish and evidently awaiting the entrance of the
18485commander in chief. Kutuzov's adjutant whispered to Prince Andrew
18486that this was the wife of the priest whose home it was, and that she
18487intended to offer his Serene Highness bread and salt. "Her husband has
18488welcomed his Serene Highness with the cross at the church, and she
18489intends to welcome him in the house.... She's very pretty," added
18490the adjutant with a smile. At those words Kutuzov looked round. He was
18491listening to the general's report--which consisted chiefly of a
18492criticism of the position at Tsarevo-Zaymishche--as he had listened to
18493Denisov, and seven years previously had listened to the discussion
18494at the Austerlitz council of war. He evidently listened only because
18495he had ears which, though there was a piece of tow in one of them,
18496could not help hearing; but it was evident that nothing the general
18497could say would surprise or even interest him, that he knew all that
18498would be said beforehand, and heard it all only because he had to,
18499as one has to listen to the chanting of a service of prayer. All
18500that Denisov had said was clever and to the point. What the general
18501was saying was even more clever and to the point, but it was evident
18502that Kutuzov despised knowledge and cleverness, and knew of
18503something else that would decide the matter--something independent
18504of cleverness and knowledge. Prince Andrew watched the commander
18505in chief's face attentively, and the only expression he could see
18506there was one of boredom, curiosity as to the meaning of the
18507feminine whispering behind the door, and a desire to observe
18508propriety. It was evident that Kutuzov despised cleverness and
18509learning and even the patriotic feeling shown by Denisov, but despised
18510them not because of his own intellect, feelings, or knowledge--he
18511did not try to display any of these--but because of something else. He
18512despised them because of his old age and experience of life. The
18513only instruction Kutuzov gave of his own accord during that report
18514referred to looting by the Russian troops. At the end of the report
18515the general put before him for signature a paper relating to the
18516recovery of payment from army commanders for green oats mown down by
18517the soldiers, when landowners lodged petitions for compensation.
18518
18519After hearing the matter, Kutuzov smacked his lips together and
18520shook his head.
18521
18522"Into the stove... into the fire with it! I tell you once for all,
18523my dear fellow," said he, "into the fire with all such things! Let
18524them cut the crops and burn wood to their hearts' content. I don't
18525order it or allow it, but I don't exact compensation either. One can't
18526get on without it. 'When wood is chopped the chips will fly.'" He
18527looked at the paper again. "Oh, this German precision!" he muttered,
18528shaking his head.
18529
18530
18531
18532
18533
18534CHAPTER XVI
18535
18536
18537"Well, that's all!" said Kutuzov as he signed the last of the
18538documents, and rising heavily and smoothing out the folds in his fat
18539white neck he moved toward the door with a more cheerful expression.
18540
18541The priest's wife, flushing rosy red, caught up the dish she had
18542after all not managed to present at the right moment, though she had
18543so long been preparing for it, and with a low bow offered it to
18544Kutuzov.
18545
18546He screwed up his eyes, smiled, lifted her chin with his hand, and
18547said:
18548
18549"Ah, what a beauty! Thank you, sweetheart!"
18550
18551He took some gold pieces from his trouser pocket and put them on the
18552dish for her. "Well, my dear, and how are we getting on?" he asked,
18553moving to the door of the room assigned to him. The priest's wife
18554smiled, and with dimples in her rosy cheeks followed him into the
18555room. The adjutant came out to the porch and asked Prince Andrew to
18556lunch with him. Half an hour later Prince Andrew was again called to
18557Kutuzov. He found him reclining in an armchair, still in the same
18558unbuttoned overcoat. He had in his hand a French book which he
18559closed as Prince Andrew entered, marking the place with a knife.
18560Prince Andrew saw by the cover that it was Les Chevaliers du Cygne
18561by Madame de Genlis.
18562
18563"Well, sit down, sit down here. Let's have a talk," said Kutuzov.
18564"It's sad, very sad. But remember, my dear fellow, that I am a
18565father to you, a second father...."
18566
18567Prince Andrew told Kutuzov all he knew of his father's death, and
18568what he had seen at Bald Hills when he passed through it.
18569
18570"What... what they have brought us to!" Kutuzov suddenly cried in an
18571agitated voice, evidently picturing vividly to himself from Prince
18572Andrew's story the condition Russia was in. "But give me time, give me
18573time!" he said with a grim look, evidently not wishing to continue
18574this agitating conversation, and added: "I sent for you to keep you
18575with me."
18576
18577"I thank your Serene Highness, but I fear I am no longer fit for the
18578staff," replied Prince Andrew with a smile which Kutuzov noticed.
18579
18580Kutuzov glanced inquiringly at him.
18581
18582"But above all," added Prince Andrew, "I have grown used to my
18583regiment, am fond of the officers, and I fancy the men also like me. I
18584should be sorry to leave the regiment. If I decline the honor of being
18585with you, believe me..."
18586
18587A shrewd, kindly, yet subtly derisive expression lit up Kutuzov's
18588podgy face. He cut Bolkonski short.
18589
18590"I am sorry, for I need you. But you're right, you're right! It's
18591not here that men are needed. Advisers are always plentiful, but men
18592are not. The regiments would not be what they are if the would-be
18593advisers served there as you do. I remember you at Austerlitz.... I
18594remember, yes, I remember you with the standard!" said Kutuzov, and
18595a flush of pleasure suffused Prince Andrew's face at this
18596recollection.
18597
18598Taking his hand and drawing him downwards, Kutuzov offered his cheek
18599to be kissed, and again Prince Andrew noticed tears in the old man's
18600eyes. Though Prince Andrew knew that Kutuzov's tears came easily,
18601and that he was particularly tender to and considerate of him from a
18602wish to show sympathy with his loss, yet this reminder of Austerlitz
18603was both pleasant and flattering to him.
18604
18605"Go your way and God be with you. I know your path is the path of
18606honor!" He paused. "I missed you at Bucharest, but I needed someone to
18607send." And changing the subject, Kutuzov began to speak of the Turkish
18608war and the peace that had been concluded. "Yes, I have been much
18609blamed," he said, "both for that war and the peace... but everything
18610came at the right time. Tout vient a point a celui qui sait attendre.*
18611And there were as many advisers there as here..." he went on,
18612returning to the subject of "advisers" which evidently occupied him.
18613"Ah, those advisers!" said he. "If we had listened to them all we
18614should not have made peace with Turkey and should not have been
18615through with that war. Everything in haste, but more haste, less
18616speed. Kamenski would have been lost if he had not died. He stormed
18617fortresses with thirty thousand men. It is not difficult to capture
18618a fortress but it is difficult to win a campaign. For that, storming
18619and attacking but patience and time are wanted. Kamenski sent soldiers
18620to Rustchuk, but I only employed these two things and took more
18621fortresses than Kamenski and made them but eat horseflesh!" He swayed
18622his head. "And the French shall too, believe me," he went on,
18623growing warmer and beating his chest, "I'll make them eat horseflesh!"
18624And tears again dimmed his eyes.
18625
18626
18627*"Everything comes in time to him who knows how to wait."
18628
18629
18630"But shan't we have to accept battle?" remarked Prince Andrew.
18631
18632"We shall if everybody wants it; it can't be helped.... But
18633believe me, my dear boy, there is nothing stronger than those two:
18634patience and time, they will do it all. But the advisers n'entendent
18635pas de cette oreille, voila le mal.* Some want a thing--others
18636don't. What's one to do?" he asked, evidently expecting an answer.
18637"Well, what do you want us to do?" he repeated and his eye shone
18638with a deep, shrewd look. "I'll tell you what to do," he continued, as
18639Prince Andrew still did not reply: "I will tell you what to do, and
18640what I do. Dans le doute, mon cher," he paused, "abstiens-toi"*[2]--he
18641articulated the French proverb deliberately.
18642
18643
18644*"Don't see it that way, that's the trouble."
18645
18646*[2] "When in doubt, my dear fellow, do nothing."
18647
18648
18649"Well, good-by, my dear fellow; remember that with all my heart I
18650share your sorrow, and that for you I am not a Serene Highness, nor
18651a prince, nor a commander in chief, but a father! If you want anything
18652come straight to me. Good-by, my dear boy."
18653
18654Again he embraced and kissed Prince Andrew, but before the latter
18655had left the room Kutuzov gave a sigh of relief and went on with his
18656unfinished novel, Les Chevaliers du Cygne by Madame de Genlis.
18657
18658Prince Andrew could not have explained how or why it was, but
18659after that interview with Kutuzov he went back to his regiment
18660reassured as to the general course of affairs and as to the man to
18661whom it had been entrusted. The more he realized the absence of all
18662personal motive in that old man--in whom there seemed to remain only
18663the habit of passions, and in place of an intellect (grouping events
18664and drawing conclusions) only the capacity calmly to contemplate the
18665course of events--the more reassured he was that everything would be
18666as it should. "He will not bring in any plan of his own. He will not
18667devise or undertake anything," thought Prince Andrew, "but he will
18668hear everything, remember everything, and put everything in its place.
18669He will not hinder anything useful nor allow anything harmful. He
18670understands that there is something stronger and more important than
18671his own will--the inevitable course of events, and he can see them and
18672grasp their significance, and seeing that significance can refrain
18673from meddling and renounce his personal wish directed to something
18674else. And above all," thought Prince Andrew, "one believes in him
18675because he's Russian, despite the novel by Genlis and the French
18676proverbs, and because his voice shook when he said: 'What they have
18677brought us to!' and had a sob in it when he said he would 'make them
18678eat horseflesh!'"
18679
18680On such feelings, more or less dimly shared by all, the unanimity
18681and general approval were founded with which, despite court
18682influences, the popular choice of Kutuzov as commander in chief was
18683received.
18684
18685
18686
18687
18688
18689CHAPTER XVII
18690
18691
18692After the Emperor had left Moscow, life flowed on there in its usual
18693course, and its course was so very usual that it was difficult to
18694remember the recent days of patriotic elation and ardor, hard to
18695believe that Russia was really in danger and that the members of the
18696English Club were also sons of the Fatherland ready to sacrifice
18697everything for it. The one thing that recalled the patriotic fervor
18698everyone had displayed during the Emperor's stay was the call for
18699contributions of men and money, a necessity that as soon as the
18700promises had been made assumed a legal, official form and became
18701unavoidable.
18702
18703With the enemy's approach to Moscow, the Moscovites' view of their
18704situation did not grow more serious but on the contrary became even
18705more frivolous, as always happens with people who see a great danger
18706approaching. At the approach of danger there are always two voices
18707that speak with equal power in the human soul: one very reasonably
18708tells a man to consider the nature of the danger and the means of
18709escaping it; the other, still more reasonably, says that it is too
18710depressing and painful to think of the danger, since it is not in
18711man's power to foresee everything and avert the general course of
18712events, and it is therefore better to disregard what is painful till
18713it comes, and to think about what is pleasant. In solitude a man
18714generally listens to the first voice, but in society to the second. So
18715it was now with the inhabitants of Moscow. It was long since people
18716had been as gay in Moscow as that year.
18717
18718Rostopchin's broadsheets, headed by woodcuts of a drink shop, a
18719potman, and a Moscow burgher called Karpushka Chigirin, "who--having
18720been a militiaman and having had rather too much at the pub--heard
18721that Napoleon wished to come to Moscow, grew angry, abused the
18722French in very bad language, came out of the drink shop, and, under
18723the sign of the eagle, began to address the assembled people," were
18724read and discussed, together with the latest of Vasili Lvovich
18725Pushkin's bouts rimes.
18726
18727In the corner room at the Club, members gathered to read these
18728broadsheets, and some liked the way Karpushka jeered at the French,
18729saying: "They will swell up with Russian cabbage, burst with our
18730buckwheat porridge, and choke themselves with cabbage soup. They are
18731all dwarfs and one peasant woman will toss three of them with a
18732hayfork." Others did not like that tone and said it was stupid and
18733vulgar. It was said that Rostopchin had expelled all Frenchmen and
18734even all foreigners from Moscow, and that there had been some spies
18735and agents of Napoleon among them; but this was told chiefly to
18736introduce Rostopchin's witty remark on that occasion. The foreigners
18737were deported to Nizhni by boat, and Rostopchin had said to them in
18738French: "Rentrez en vousmemes; entrez dans la barque, et n'en faites
18739pas une barque de Charon."* There was talk of all the government
18740offices having been already removed from Moscow, and to this
18741Shinshin's witticism was added--that for that alone Moscow ought to be
18742grateful to Napoleon. It was said that Mamonov's regiment would cost
18743him eight hundred thousand rubles, and that Bezukhov had spent even
18744more on his, but that the best thing about Bezukhov's action was
18745that he himself was going to don a uniform and ride at the head of his
18746regiment without charging anything for the show.
18747
18748
18749*"Think it over; get into the barque, and take care not to make it a
18750barque of Charon."
18751
18752
18753"You don't spare anyone," said Julie Drubetskaya as she collected
18754and pressed together a bunch of raveled lint with her thin, beringed
18755fingers.
18756
18757Julie was preparing to leave Moscow next day and was giving a
18758farewell soiree.
18759
18760"Bezukhov est ridicule, but he is so kind and good-natured. What
18761pleasure is there to be so caustique?"
18762
18763"A forfeit!" cried a young man in militia uniform whom Julie
18764called "mon chevalier," and who was going with her to Nizhni.
18765
18766In Julie's set, as in many other circles in Moscow, it had been
18767agreed that they would speak nothing but Russian and that those who
18768made a slip and spoke French should pay fines to the Committee of
18769Voluntary Contributions.
18770
18771"Another forfeit for a Gallicism," said a Russian writer who was
18772present. "'What pleasure is there to be' is not Russian!"
18773
18774"You spare no one," continued Julie to the young man without heeding
18775the author's remark.
18776
18777"For caustique--I am guilty and will pay, and I am prepared to pay
18778again for the pleasure of telling you the truth. For Gallicisms I
18779won't be responsible," she remarked, turning to the author: "I have
18780neither the money nor the time, like Prince Galitsyn, to engage a
18781master to teach me Russian!"
18782
18783"Ah, here he is!" she added. "Quand on... No, no," she said to the
18784militia officer, "you won't catch me. Speak of the sun and you see its
18785rays!" and she smiled amiably at Pierre. "We were just talking of
18786you," she said with the facility in lying natural to a society
18787woman. "We were saying that your regiment would be sure to be better
18788than Mamonov's."
18789
18790"Oh, don't talk to me of my regiment," replied Pierre, kissing his
18791hostess' hand and taking a seat beside her. "I am so sick of it."
18792
18793"You will, of course, command it yourself?" said Julie, directing
18794a sly, sarcastic glance toward the militia officer.
18795
18796The latter in Pierre's presence had ceased to be caustic, and his
18797face expressed perplexity as to what Julie's smile might mean. In
18798spite of his absent-mindedness and good nature, Pierre's personality
18799immediately checked any attempt to ridicule him to his face.
18800
18801"No," said Pierre, with a laughing glance at his big, stout body. "I
18802should make too good a target for the French, besides I am afraid I
18803should hardly be able to climb onto a horse."
18804
18805Among those whom Julie's guests happened to choose to gossip about
18806were the Rostovs.
18807
18808"I hear that their affairs are in a very bad way," said Julie.
18809"And he is so unreasonable, the count himself I mean. The
18810Razumovskis wanted to buy his house and his estate near Moscow, but it
18811drags on and on. He asks too much."
18812
18813"No, I think the sale will come off in a few days," said someone.
18814"Though it is madness to buy anything in Moscow now."
18815
18816"Why?" asked Julie. "You don't think Moscow is in danger?"
18817
18818"Then why are you leaving?"
18819
18820"I? What a question! I am going because... well, because everyone is
18821going: and besides--I am not Joan of Arc or an Amazon."
18822
18823"Well, of course, of course! Let me have some more strips of linen."
18824
18825"If he manages the business properly he will be able to pay off
18826all his debts," said the militia officer, speaking of Rostov.
18827
18828"A kindly old man but not up to much. And why do they stay on so
18829long in Moscow? They meant to leave for the country long ago.
18830Natalie is quite well again now, isn't she?" Julie asked Pierre with a
18831knowing smile.
18832
18833"They are waiting for their younger son," Pierre replied. "He joined
18834Obolenski's Cossacks and went to Belaya Tserkov where the regiment
18835is being formed. But now they have had him transferred to my
18836regiment and are expecting him every day. The count wanted to leave
18837long ago, but the countess won't on any account leave Moscow till
18838her son returns."
18839
18840"I met them the day before yesterday at the Arkharovs'. Natalie
18841has recovered her looks and is brighter. She sang a song. How easily
18842some people get over everything!"
18843
18844"Get over what?" inquired Pierre, looking displeased.
18845
18846Julie smiled.
18847
18848"You know, Count, such knights as you are only found in Madame de
18849Souza's novels."
18850
18851"What knights? What do you mean?" demanded Pierre, blushing.
18852
18853"Oh, come, my dear count! C'est la fable de tout Moscou. Je vous
18854admire, ma parole d'honneur!"*
18855
18856
18857*"It is the talk of all Moscow. My word, I admire you!"
18858
18859
18860"Forfeit, forfeit!" cried the militia officer.
18861
18862"All right, one can't talk--how tiresome!"
18863
18864"What is 'the talk of all Moscow'?" Pierre asked angrily, rising
18865to his feet.
18866
18867"Come now, Count, you know!"
18868
18869"I don't know anything about it," said Pierre.
18870
18871"I know you were friendly with Natalie, and so... but I was always
18872more friendly with Vera--that dear Vera."
18873
18874"No, madame!" Pierre continued in a tone of displeasure, "I have not
18875taken on myself the role of Natalie Rostova's knight at all, and
18876have not been their house for nearly a month. But I cannot
18877understand the cruelty..."
18878
18879"Qui s'excuse s'accuse,"* said Julie, smiling and waving the lint
18880triumphantly, and to have the last word she promptly changed the
18881subject. "Do you know what I heard today? Poor Mary Bolkonskaya
18882arrived in Moscow yesterday. Do you know that she has lost her
18883father?"
18884
18885
18886*"Who excuses himself, accuses himself."
18887
18888
18889"Really? Where is she? I should like very much to see her," said
18890Pierre.
18891
18892"I spent the evening with her yesterday. She is going to their
18893estate near Moscow either today or tomorrow morning, with her nephew."
18894
18895"Well, and how is she?" asked Pierre.
18896
18897"She is well, but sad. But do you know who rescued her? It is
18898quite a romance. Nicholas Rostov! She was surrounded, and they
18899wanted to kill her and had wounded some of her people. He rushed in
18900and saved her...."
18901
18902"Another romance," said the militia officer. "Really, this general
18903flight has been arranged to get all the old maids married off. Catiche
18904is one and Princess Bolkonskaya another."
18905
18906"Do you know, I really believe she is un petit peu amoureuse du
18907jeune homme."*
18908
18909
18910*"A little bit in love with the young man."
18911
18912
18913"Forfeit, forfeit, forfeit!"
18914
18915"But how could one say that in Russian?"
18916
18917
18918
18919
18920
18921CHAPTER XVIII
18922
18923
18924When Pierre returned home he was handed two of Rostopchin's
18925broadsheets that had been brought that day.
18926
18927The first declared that the report that Count Rostopchin had
18928forbidden people to leave Moscow was false; on the contrary he was
18929glad that ladies and tradesmen's wives were leaving the city. "There
18930will be less panic and less gossip," ran the broadsheet "but I will
18931stake my life on it that that will not enter Moscow." These words
18932showed Pierre clearly for the first time that the French would enter
18933Moscow. The second broadsheet stated that our headquarters were at
18934Vyazma, that Count Wittgenstein had defeated the French, but that as
18935many of the inhabitants of Moscow wished to be armed, weapons were
18936ready for them at the arsenal: sabers, pistols, and muskets which
18937could be had at a low price. The tone of the proclamation was not as
18938jocose as in the former Chigirin talks. Pierre pondered over these
18939broadsheets. Evidently the terrible stormcloud he had desired with the
18940whole strength of his soul but which yet aroused involuntary horror in
18941him was drawing near.
18942
18943"Shall I join the army and enter the service, or wait?" he asked
18944himself for the hundredth time. He took a pack of cards that lay on
18945the table and began to lay them out for a game of patience.
18946
18947"If this patience comes out," he said to himself after shuffling the
18948cards, holding them in his hand, and lifting his head, "if it comes
18949out, it means... what does it mean?"
18950
18951He had not decided what it should mean when he heard the voice of
18952the eldest princess at the door asking whether she might come in.
18953
18954"Then it will mean that I must go to the army," said Pierre to
18955himself. "Come in, come in!" he added to the princess.
18956
18957Only the eldest princess, the one with the stony face and long
18958waist, was still living in Pierre's house. The two younger ones had
18959both married.
18960
18961"Excuse my coming to you, cousin," she said in a reproachful and
18962agitated voice. "You know some decision must be come to. What is going
18963to happen? Everyone has left Moscow and the people are rioting. How is
18964it that we are staying on?"
18965
18966"On the contrary, things seem satisfactory, ma cousine," said Pierre
18967in the bantering tone he habitually adopted toward her, always feeling
18968uncomfortable in the role of her benefactor.
18969
18970"Satisfactory, indeed! Very satisfactory! Barbara Ivanovna told me
18971today how our troops are distinguishing themselves. It certainly
18972does them credit! And the people too are quite mutinous--they no
18973longer obey, even my maid has taken to being rude. At this rate they
18974will soon begin beating us. One can't walk in the streets. But,
18975above all, the French will be here any day now, so what are we waiting
18976for? I ask just one thing of you, cousin," she went on, "arrange for
18977me to be taken to Petersburg. Whatever I may be, I can't live under
18978Bonaparte's rule."
18979
18980"Oh, come, ma cousine! Where do you get your information from? On
18981the contrary..."
18982
18983"I won't submit to your Napoleon! Others may if they please.... If
18984you don't want to do this..."
18985
18986"But I will, I'll give the order at once."
18987
18988The princess was apparently vexed at not having anyone to be angry
18989with. Muttering to herself, she sat down on a chair.
18990
18991"But you have been misinformed," said Pierre. "Everything is quiet
18992in the city and there is not the slightest danger. See! I've just been
18993reading..." He showed her the broadsheet. "Count Rostopchin writes
18994that he will stake his life on it that the enemy will not enter
18995Moscow."
18996
18997"Oh, that count of yours!" said the princess malevolently. "He is
18998a hypocrite, a rascal who has himself roused the people to riot.
18999Didn't he write in those idiotic broadsheets that anyone, 'whoever
19000it might be, should be dragged to the lockup by his hair'? (How
19001silly!) 'And honor and glory to whoever captures him,' he says. This
19002is what his cajolery has brought us to! Barbara Ivanovna told me the
19003mob near killed her because she said something in French."
19004
19005"Oh, but it's so... You take everything so to heart," said Pierre,
19006and began laying out his cards for patience.
19007
19008Although that patience did come out, Pierre did not join the army,
19009but remained in deserted Moscow ever in the same state of agitation,
19010irresolution, and alarm, yet at the same time joyfully expecting
19011something terrible.
19012
19013Next day toward evening the princess set off, and Pierre's head
19014steward came to inform him that the money needed for the equipment
19015of his regiment could not be found without selling one of the estates.
19016In general the head steward made out to Pierre that his project of
19017raising a regiment would ruin him. Pierre listened to him, scarcely
19018able to repress a smile.
19019
19020"Well then, sell it," said he. "What's to be done? I can't draw back
19021now!"
19022
19023The worse everything became, especially his own affairs, the
19024better was Pierre pleased and the more evident was it that the
19025catastrophe he expected was approaching. Hardly anyone he knew was
19026left in town. Julie had gone, and so had Princess Mary. Of his
19027intimate friends only the Rostovs remained, but he did not go to see
19028them.
19029
19030To distract his thoughts he drove that day to the village of
19031Vorontsovo to see the great balloon Leppich was constructing to
19032destroy the foe, and a trial balloon that was to go up next day. The
19033balloon was not yet ready, but Pierre learned that it was being
19034constructed by the Emperor's desire. The Emperor had written to
19035Count Rostopchin as follows:
19036
19037
19038As soon as Leppich is ready, get together a crew of reliable and
19039intelligent men for his car and send a courier to General Kutuzov to
19040let him know. I have informed him of the matter.
19041
19042Please impress upon Leppich to be very careful where he descends for
19043the first time, that he may not make a mistake and fall into the
19044enemy's hands. It is essential for him to combine his movements with
19045those of the commander in chief.
19046
19047
19048On his way home from Vorontsovo, as he was passing the Bolotnoe
19049Place Pierre, seeing a large crowd round the Lobnoe Place, stopped and
19050got out of his trap. A French cook accused of being a spy was being
19051flogged. The flogging was only just over, and the executioner was
19052releasing from the flogging bench a stout man with red whiskers, in
19053blue stockings and a green jacket, who was moaning piteously.
19054Another criminal, thin and pale, stood near. Judging by their faces
19055they were both Frenchmen. With a frightened and suffering look
19056resembling that on the thin Frenchman's face, Pierre pushed his way in
19057through the crowd.
19058
19059"What is it? Who is it? What is it for?" he kept asking.
19060
19061But the attention of the crowd--officials, burghers, shopkeepers,
19062peasants, and women in cloaks and in pelisses--was so eagerly centered
19063on what was passing in Lobnoe Place that no one answered him. The
19064stout man rose, frowned, shrugged his shoulders, and evidently
19065trying to appear firm began to pull on his jacket without looking
19066about him, but suddenly his lips trembled and he began to cry, in
19067the way full-blooded grown-up men cry, though angry with himself for
19068doing so. In the crowd people began talking loudly, to stifle their
19069feelings of pity as it seemed to Pierre.
19070
19071"He's cook to some prince."
19072
19073"Eh, mounseer, Russian sauce seems to be sour to a Frenchman... sets
19074his teeth on edge!" said a wrinkled clerk who was standing behind
19075Pierre, when the Frenchman began to cry.
19076
19077The clerk glanced round, evidently hoping that his joke would be
19078appreciated. Some people began to laugh, others continued to watch
19079in dismay the executioner who was undressing the other man.
19080
19081Pierre choked, his face puckered, and he turned hastily away, went
19082back to his trap muttering something to himself as he went, and took
19083his seat. As they drove along he shuddered and exclaimed several times
19084so audibly that the coachman asked him:
19085
19086"What is your pleasure?"
19087
19088"Where are you going?" shouted Pierre to the man, who was driving to
19089Lubyanka Street.
19090
19091"To the Governor's, as you ordered," answered the coachman.
19092
19093"Fool! Idiot!" shouted Pierre, abusing his coachman--a thing he
19094rarely did. "Home, I told you! And drive faster, blockhead!" "I must
19095get away this very day," he murmured to himself.
19096
19097At the sight of the tortured Frenchman and the crowd surrounding the
19098Lobnoe Place, Pierre had so definitely made up his mind that he
19099could no longer remain in Moscow and would leave for the army that
19100very day that it seemed to him that either he had told the coachman
19101this or that the man ought to have known it for himself.
19102
19103On reaching home Pierre gave orders to Evstafey--his head coachman
19104who knew everything, could do anything, and was known to all Moscow-
19105that he would leave that night for the army at Mozhaysk, and that
19106his saddle horses should be sent there. This could not all be arranged
19107that day, so on Evstafey's representation Pierre had to put off his
19108departure till next day to allow time for the relay horses to be
19109sent on in advance.
19110
19111On the twenty-fourth the weather cleared up after a spell of rain,
19112and after dinner Pierre left Moscow. When changing horses that night
19113in Perkhushkovo, he learned that there had been a great battle that
19114evening. (This was the battle of Shevardino.) He was told that there
19115in Perkhushkovo the earth trembled from the firing, but nobody could
19116answer his questions as to who had won. At dawn next day Pierre was
19117approaching Mozhaysk.
19118
19119Every house in Mozhaysk had soldiers quartered in it, and at the
19120hostel where Pierre was met by his groom and coachman there was no
19121room to be had. It was full of officers.
19122
19123Everywhere in Mozhaysk and beyond it, troops were stationed or on
19124the march. Cossacks, foot and horse soldiers, wagons, caissons, and
19125cannon were everywhere. Pierre pushed forward as fast as he could, and
19126the farther he left Moscow behind and the deeper he plunged into
19127that sea of troops the more was he overcome by restless agitation
19128and a new and joyful feeling he had not experienced before. It was a
19129feeling akin to what he had felt at the Sloboda Palace during the
19130Emperor's visit--a sense of the necessity of undertaking something and
19131sacrificing something. He now experienced a glad consciousness that
19132everything that constitutes men's happiness--the comforts of life,
19133wealth, even life itself--is rubbish it is pleasant to throw away,
19134compared with something... With what? Pierre could not say, and he did
19135not try to determine for whom and for what he felt such particular
19136delight in sacrificing everything. He was not occupied with the
19137question of what to sacrifice for; the fact of sacrificing in itself
19138afforded him a new and joyous sensation.
19139
19140
19141
19142
19143
19144CHAPTER XIX
19145
19146
19147On the twenty-fourth of August the battle of the Shevardino
19148Redoubt was fought, on the twenty-fifth not a shot was fired by either
19149side, and on the twenty-sixth the battle of Borodino itself took
19150place.
19151
19152Why and how were the battles of Shevardino and Borodino given and
19153accepted? Why was the battle of Borodino fought? There was not the
19154least sense in it for either the French or the Russians. Its immediate
19155result for the Russians was, and was bound to be, that we were brought
19156nearer to the destruction of Moscow--which we feared more than
19157anything in the world; and for the French its immediate result was
19158that they were brought nearer to the destruction of their whole
19159army--which they feared more than anything in the world. What the
19160result must be was quite obvious, and yet Napoleon offered and Kutuzov
19161accepted that battle.
19162
19163If the commanders had been guided by reason, it would seem that it
19164must have been obvious to Napoleon that by advancing thirteen
19165hundred miles and giving battle with a probability of losing a quarter
19166of his army, he was advancing to certain destruction, and it must have
19167been equally clear to Kutuzov that by accepting battle and risking the
19168loss of a quarter of his army he would certainly lose Moscow. For
19169Kutuzov this was mathematically clear, as it is that if when playing
19170draughts I have one man less and go on exchanging, I shall certainly
19171lose, and therefore should not exchange. When my opponent has
19172sixteen men and I have fourteen, I am only one eighth weaker than
19173he, but when I have exchanged thirteen more men he will be three times
19174as strong as I am.
19175
19176Before the battle of Borodino our strength in proportion to the
19177French was about as five to six, but after that battle it was little
19178more than one to two: previously we had a hundred thousand against a
19179hundred and twenty thousand; afterwards little more than fifty
19180thousand against a hundred thousand. Yet the shrewd and experienced
19181Kutuzov accepted the battle, while Napoleon, who was said to be a
19182commander of genius, gave it, losing a quarter of his army and
19183lengthening his lines of communication still more. If it is said
19184that he expected to end the campaign by occupying Moscow as he had
19185ended a previous campaign by occupying Vienna, there is much
19186evidence to the contrary. Napoleon's historians themselves tell us
19187that from Smolensk onwards he wished to stop, knew the danger of his
19188extended position, and knew that the occupation of Moscow would not be
19189the end of the campaign, for he had seen at Smolensk the state in
19190which Russian towns were left to him, and had not received a single
19191reply to his repeated announcements of his wish to negotiate.
19192
19193In giving and accepting battle at Borodino, Kutuzov acted
19194involuntarily and irrationally. But later on, to fit what had
19195occurred, the historians provided cunningly devised evidence of the
19196foresight and genius the generals who, of all the blind tools of
19197history were the most enslaved and involuntary.
19198
19199The ancients have left us model heroic poems in which the heroes
19200furnish the whole interest of the story, and we are still unable to
19201accustom ourselves to the fact that for our epoch histories of that
19202kind are meaningless.
19203
19204On the other question, how the battle of Borodino and the
19205preceding battle of Shevardino were fought, there also exists a
19206definite and well-known, but quite false, conception. All the
19207historians describe the affair as follows:
19208
19209The Russian army, they say, in its retreat from Smolensk sought
19210out for itself the best position for a general engagement and found
19211such a position at Borodino.
19212
19213The Russians, they say, fortified this position in advance on the
19214left of the highroad (from Moscow to Smolensk) and almost at a right
19215angle to it, from Borodino to Utitsa, at the very place where the
19216battle was fought.
19217
19218In front of this position, they say, a fortified outpost was set
19219up on the Shevardino mound to observe the enemy. On the twenty-fourth,
19220we are told, Napoleon attacked this advanced post and took it, and, on
19221the twenty-sixth, attacked the whole Russian army, which was in
19222position on the field of Borodino.
19223
19224So the histories say, and it is all quite wrong, as anyone who cares
19225to look into the matter can easily convince himself.
19226
19227The Russians did not seek out the best position but, on the
19228contrary, during the retreat passed many positions better than
19229Borodino. They did not stop at any one of these positions because
19230Kutuzov did not wish to occupy a position he had not himself chosen,
19231because the popular demand for a battle had not yet expressed itself
19232strongly enough, and because Miloradovich had not yet arrived with the
19233militia, and for many other reasons. The fact is that other
19234positions they had passed were stronger, and that the position at
19235Borodino (the one where the battle was fought), far from being strong,
19236was no more a position than any other spot one might find in the
19237Russian Empire by sticking a pin into the map at hazard.
19238
19239Not only did the Russians not fortify the position on the field of
19240Borodino to the left of, and at a right angle to, the highroad (that
19241is, the position on which the battle took place), but never till the
19242twenty-fifth of August, 1812, did they think that a battle might be
19243fought there. This was shown first by the fact that there were no
19244entrenchments there by the twenty fifth and that those begun on the
19245twenty-fifth and twenty-sixth were not completed, and secondly, by the
19246position of the Shevardino Redoubt. That redoubt was quite senseless
19247in front of the position where the battle was accepted. Why was it
19248more strongly fortified than any other post? And why were all
19249efforts exhausted and six thousand men sacrificed to defend it till
19250late at night on the twenty-fourth? A Cossack patrol would have
19251sufficed to observe the enemy. Thirdly, as proof that the position
19252on which the battle was fought had not been foreseen and that the
19253Shevardino Redoubt was not an advanced post of that position, we
19254have the fact that up to the twenty-fifth, Barclay de Tolly and
19255Bagration were convinced that the Shevardino Redoubt was the left
19256flank of the position, and that Kutuzov himself in his report, written
19257in hot haste after the battle, speaks of the Shevardino Redoubt as the
19258left flank of the position. It was much later, when reports on the
19259battle of Borodino were written at leisure, that the incorrect and
19260extraordinary statement was invented (probably to justify the mistakes
19261of a commander in chief who had to be represented as infallible)
19262that the Shevardino Redoubt was an advanced post--whereas in reality
19263it was simply a fortified point on the left flank--and that the battle
19264of Borodino was fought by us on an entrenched position previously
19265selected, where as it was fought on a quite unexpected spot which
19266was almost unentrenched.
19267
19268The case was evidently this: a position was selected along the river
19269Kolocha--which crosses the highroad not at a right angle but at an
19270acute angle--so that the left flank was at Shevardino, the right flank
19271near the village of Novoe, and the center at Borodino at the
19272confluence of the rivers Kolocha and Voyna.
19273
19274To anyone who looks at the field of Borodino without thinking of how
19275the battle was actually fought, this position, protected by the
19276river Kolocha, presents itself as obvious for an army whose object was
19277to prevent an enemy from advancing along the Smolensk road to Moscow.
19278
19279Napoleon, riding to Valuevo on the twenty-fourth, did not see (as
19280the history books say he did) the position of the Russians from Utitsa
19281to Borodino (he could not have seen that position because it did not
19282exist), nor did he see an advanced post of the Russian army, but while
19283pursuing the Russian rearguard he came upon the left flank of the
19284Russian position--at the Shevardino Redoubt--and unexpectedly for
19285the Russians moved his army across the Kolocha. And the Russians,
19286not having time to begin a general engagement, withdrew their left
19287wing from the position they had intended to occupy and took up a new
19288position which had not been foreseen and was not fortified. By
19289crossing to the other side of the Kolocha to the left of the highroad,
19290Napoleon shifted the whole forthcoming battle from right to left
19291(looking from the Russian side) and transferred it to the plain
19292between Utitsa, Semenovsk, and Borodino--a plain no more
19293advantageous as a position than any other plain in Russia--and there
19294the whole battle of the twenty-sixth of August took place.
19295
19296Had Napoleon not ridden out on the evening of the twenty-fourth to
19297the Kolocha, and had he not then ordered an immediate attack on the
19298redoubt but had begun the attack next morning, no one would have
19299doubted that the Shevardino Redoubt was the left flank of our and
19300the battle would have taken place where we expected it. In that case
19301we should probably have defended the Shevardino Redoubt--our left
19302flank--still more obstinately. We should have attacked Napoleon in the
19303center or on the right, and the engagement would have taken place on
19304the twenty-fifth, in the position we intended and had fortified. But
19305as the attack on our left flank took place in the evening after the
19306retreat of our rear guard (that is, immediately after the fight at
19307Gridneva), and as the Russian commanders did not wish, or were not
19308in time, to begin a general engagement then on the evening of the
19309twenty-fourth, the first and chief action of the battle of Borodino
19310was already lost on the twenty-fourth, and obviously led to the loss
19311of the one fought on the twenty-sixth.
19312
19313After the loss of the Shevardino Redoubt, we found ourselves on
19314the morning of the twenty-fifth without a position for our left flank,
19315and were forced to bend it back and hastily entrench it where it
19316chanced to be.
19317
19318Not only was the Russian army on the twenty-sixth defended by
19319weak, unfinished entrenchments, but the disadvantage of that
19320position was increased by the fact that the Russian commanders--not
19321having fully realized what had happened, namely the loss of our
19322position on the left flank and the shifting of the whole field of
19323the forthcoming battle from right to left--maintained their extended
19324position from the village of Novoe to Utitsa, and consequently had
19325to move their forces from right to left during the battle. So it
19326happened that throughout the whole battle the Russians opposed the
19327entire French army launched against our left flank with but half as
19328many men. (Poniatowski's action against Utitsa, and Uvarov's on the
19329right flank against the French, were actions distinct from the main
19330course of the battle.) So the battle of Borodino did not take place at
19331all as (in an effort to conceal our commanders' mistakes even at the
19332cost of diminishing the glory due to the Russian army and people) it
19333has been described. The battle of Borodino was not fought on a
19334chosen and entrenched position with forces only slightly weaker than
19335those of the enemy, but, as a result of the loss of the Shevardino
19336Redoubt, the Russians fought the battle of Borodino on an open and
19337almost unentrenched position, with forces only half as numerous as the
19338French; that is to say, under conditions in which it was not merely
19339unthinkable to fight for ten hours and secure an indecisive result,
19340but unthinkable to keep an army even from complete disintegration
19341and flight.
19342
19343
19344
19345
19346
19347CHAPTER XX
19348
19349
19350On the morning of the twenty-fifth Pierre was leaving Mozhaysk. At
19351the descent of the high steep hill, down which a winding road led
19352out of the town past the cathedral on the right, where a service was
19353being held and the bells were ringing, Pierre got out of his vehicle
19354and proceeded on foot. Behind him a cavalry regiment was coming down
19355the hill preceded by its singers. Coming up toward him was a train
19356of carts carrying men who had been wounded in the engagement the day
19357before. The peasant drivers, shouting and lashing their horses, kept
19358crossing from side to side. The carts, in each of which three or
19359four wounded soldiers were lying or sitting, jolted over the stones
19360that had been thrown on the steep incline to make it something like
19361a road. The wounded, bandaged with rags, with pale cheeks,
19362compressed lips, and knitted brows, held on to the sides of the
19363carts as they were jolted against one another. Almost all of them
19364stared with naive, childlike curiosity at Pierre's white hat and green
19365swallow-tail coat.
19366
19367Pierre's coachman shouted angrily at the convoy of wounded to keep
19368to one side of the road. The cavalry regiment, as it descended the
19369hill with its singers, surrounded Pierre's carriage and blocked the
19370road. Pierre stopped, being pressed against the side of the cutting in
19371which the road ran. The sunshine from behind the hill did not
19372penetrate into the cutting and there it was cold and damp, but above
19373Pierre's head was the bright August sunshine and the bells sounded
19374merrily. One of the carts with wounded stopped by the side of the road
19375close to Pierre. The driver in his bast shoes ran panting up to it,
19376placed a stone under one of its tireless hind wheels, and began
19377arranging the breech-band on his little horse.
19378
19379One of the wounded, an old soldier with a bandaged arm who was
19380following the cart on foot, caught hold of it with his sound hand
19381and turned to look at Pierre.
19382
19383"I say, fellow countryman! Will they set us down here or take us
19384on to Moscow?" he asked.
19385
19386Pierre was so deep in thought that he did not hear the question.
19387He was looking now at the cavalry regiment that had met the convoy
19388of wounded, now at the cart by which he was standing, in which two
19389wounded men were sitting and one was lying. One of those sitting up in
19390the cart had probably been wounded in the cheek. His whole head was
19391wrapped in rags and one cheek was swollen to the size of a baby's
19392head. His nose and mouth were twisted to one side. This soldier was
19393looking at the cathedral and crossing himself. Another, a young lad, a
19394fair-haired recruit as white as though there was no blood in his
19395thin face, looked at Pierre kindly, with a fixed smile. The third
19396lay prone so that his face was not visible. The cavalry singers were
19397passing close by:
19398
19399 Ah lost, quite lost... is my head so keen,
19400 Living in a foreign land.
19401
19402they sang their soldiers' dance song.
19403
19404As if responding to them but with a different sort of merriment, the
19405metallic sound of the bells reverberated high above and the hot rays
19406of the sun bathed the top of the opposite slope with yet another
19407sort of merriment. But beneath the slope, by the cart with the wounded
19408near the panting little nag where Pierre stood, it was damp, somber,
19409and sad.
19410
19411The soldier with the swollen cheek looked angrily at the cavalry
19412singers.
19413
19414"Oh, the coxcombs!" he muttered reproachfully.
19415
19416"It's not the soldiers only, but I've seen peasants today, too....
19417The peasants--even they have to go," said the soldier behind the cart,
19418addressing Pierre with a sad smile. "No distinctions made nowadays....
19419They want the whole nation to fall on them--in a word, it's Moscow!
19420They want to make an end of it."
19421
19422In spite of the obscurity of the soldier's words Pierre understood
19423what he wanted to say and nodded approval.
19424
19425The road was clear again; Pierre descended the hill and drove on.
19426
19427He kept looking to either side of the road for familiar faces, but
19428only saw everywhere the unfamiliar faces of various military men of
19429different branches of the service, who all looked with astonishment at
19430his white hat and green tail coat.
19431
19432Having gone nearly three miles he at last met an acquaintance and
19433eagerly addressed him. This was one of the head army doctors. He was
19434driving toward Pierre in a covered gig, sitting beside a young
19435surgeon, and on recognizing Pierre he told the Cossack who occupied
19436the driver's seat to pull up.
19437
19438"Count! Your excellency, how come you to be here?" asked the doctor.
19439
19440"Well, you know, I wanted to see..."
19441
19442"Yes, yes, there will be something to see...."
19443
19444Pierre got out and talked to the doctor, explaining his intention of
19445taking part in a battle.
19446
19447The doctor advised him to apply direct to Kutuzov.
19448
19449"Why should you be God knows where out of sight, during the battle?"
19450he said, exchanging glances with his young companion. "Anyhow his
19451Serene Highness knows you and will receive you graciously. That's what
19452you must do."
19453
19454The doctor seemed tired and in a hurry.
19455
19456"You think so?... Ah, I also wanted to ask you where our position is
19457exactly?" said Pierre.
19458
19459"The position?" repeated the doctor. "Well, that's not my line.
19460Drive past Tatarinova, a lot of digging is going on there. Go up the
19461hillock and you'll see."
19462
19463"Can one see from there?... If you would..."
19464
19465But the doctor interrupted him and moved toward his gig.
19466
19467"I would go with you but on my honor I'm up to here"--and he pointed
19468to his throat. "I'm galloping to the commander of the corps. How do
19469matters stand?... You know, Count, there'll be a battle tomorrow.
19470Out of an army of a hundred thousand we must expect at least twenty
19471thousand wounded, and we haven't stretchers, or bunks, or dressers, or
19472doctors enough for six thousand. We have ten thousand carts, but we
19473need other things as well--we must manage as best we can!"
19474
19475The strange thought that of the thousands of men, young and old, who
19476had stared with merry surprise at his hat (perhaps the very men he had
19477noticed), twenty thousand were inevitably doomed to wounds and death
19478amazed Pierre.
19479
19480"They may die tomorrow; why are they thinking of anything but
19481death?" And by some latent sequence of thought the descent of the
19482Mozhaysk hill, the carts with the wounded, the ringing bells, the
19483slanting rays of the sun, and the songs of the cavalrymen vividly
19484recurred to his mind.
19485
19486"The cavalry ride to battle and meet the wounded and do not for a
19487moment think of what awaits them, but pass by, winking at the wounded.
19488Yet from among these men twenty thousand are doomed to die, and they
19489wonder at my hat! Strange!" thought Pierre, continuing his way to
19490Tatarinova.
19491
19492In front of a landowner's house to the left of the road stood
19493carriages, wagons, and crowds of orderlies and sentinels. The
19494commander in chief was putting up there, but just when Pierre
19495arrived he was not in and hardly any of the staff were there--they had
19496gone to the church service. Pierre drove on toward Gorki.
19497
19498When he had ascended the hill and reached the little village street,
19499he saw for the first time peasant militiamen in their white shirts and
19500with crosses on their caps, who, talking and laughing loudly, animated
19501and perspiring, were at work on a huge knoll overgrown with grass to
19502the right of the road.
19503
19504Some of them were digging, others were wheeling barrowloads of earth
19505along planks, while others stood about doing nothing.
19506
19507Two officers were standing on the knoll, directing the men. On
19508seeing these peasants, who were evidently still amused by the
19509novelty of their position as soldiers, Pierre once more thought of the
19510wounded men at Mozhaysk and understood what the soldier had meant when
19511he said: "They want the whole nation to fall on them." The sight of
19512these bearded peasants at work on the battlefield, with their queer,
19513clumsy boots and perspiring necks, and their shirts opening from the
19514left toward the middle, unfastened, exposing their sunburned
19515collarbones, impressed Pierre more strongly with the solemnity and
19516importance of the moment than anything he had yet seen or heard.
19517
19518
19519
19520
19521
19522CHAPTER XXI
19523
19524
19525Pierre stepped out of his carriage and, passing the toiling
19526militiamen, ascended the knoll from which, according to the doctor,
19527the battlefield could be seen.
19528
19529It was about eleven o'clock. The sun shone somewhat to the left
19530and behind him and brightly lit up the enormous panorama which, rising
19531like an amphitheater, extended before him in the clear rarefied
19532atmosphere.
19533
19534From above on the left, bisecting that amphitheater, wound the
19535Smolensk highroad, passing through a village with a white church
19536some five hundred paces in front of the knoll and below it. This was
19537Borodino. Below the village the road crossed the river by a bridge
19538and, winding down and up, rose higher and higher to the village of
19539Valuevo visible about four miles away, where Napoleon was then
19540stationed. Beyond Valuevo the road disappeared into a yellowing forest
19541on the horizon. Far in the distance in that birch and fir forest to
19542the right of the road, the cross and belfry of the Kolocha Monastery
19543gleamed in the sun. Here and there over the whole of that blue
19544expanse, to right and left of the forest and the road, smoking
19545campfires could be seen and indefinite masses of troops--ours and
19546the enemy's. The ground to the right--along the course of the
19547Kolocha and Moskva rivers--was broken and hilly. Between the hollows
19548the villages of Bezubova and Zakharino showed in the distance. On
19549the left the ground was more level; there were fields of grain, and
19550the smoking ruins of Semenovsk, which had been burned down, could be
19551seen.
19552
19553All that Pierre saw was so indefinite that neither the left nor
19554the right side of the field fully satisfied his expectations.
19555Nowhere could he see the battlefield he had expected to find, but only
19556fields, meadows, troops, woods, the smoke of campfires, villages,
19557mounds, and streams; and try as he would he could descry no military
19558"position" in this place which teemed with life, nor could he even
19559distinguish our troops from the enemy's.
19560
19561"I must ask someone who knows," he thought, and addressed an officer
19562who was looking with curiosity at his huge unmilitary figure.
19563
19564"May I ask you," said Pierre, "what village that is in front?"
19565
19566"Burdino, isn't it?" said the officer, turning to his companion.
19567
19568"Borodino," the other corrected him.
19569
19570The officer, evidently glad of an opportunity for a talk, moved up
19571to Pierre.
19572
19573"Are those our men there?" Pierre inquired.
19574
19575"Yes, and there, further on, are the French," said the officer.
19576"There they are, there... you can see them."
19577
19578"Where? Where?" asked Pierre.
19579
19580"One can see them with the naked eye... Why, there!"
19581
19582The officer pointed with his hand to the smoke visible on the left
19583beyond the river, and the same stern and serious expression that
19584Pierre had noticed on many of the faces he had met came into his face.
19585
19586"Ah, those are the French! And over there?..." Pierre pointed to a
19587knoll on the left, near which some troops could be seen.
19588
19589"Those are ours."
19590
19591"Ah, ours! And there?..." Pierre pointed to another knoll in the
19592distance with a big tree on it, near a village that lay in a hollow
19593where also some campfires were smoking and something black was
19594visible.
19595
19596"That's his again," said the officer. (It was the Shevardino
19597Redoubt.) "It was ours yesterday, but now it is his."
19598
19599"Then how about our position?"
19600
19601"Our position?" replied the officer with a smile of satisfaction. "I
19602can tell you quite clearly, because I constructed nearly all our
19603entrenchments. There, you see? There's our center, at Borodino, just
19604there," and he pointed to the village in front of them with the
19605white church. "That's where one crosses the Kolocha. You see down
19606there where the rows of hay are lying in the hollow, there's the
19607bridge. That's our center. Our right flank is over there"--he
19608pointed sharply to the right, far away in the broken ground--"That's
19609where the Moskva River is, and we have thrown up three redoubts there,
19610very strong ones. The left flank..." here the officer paused. "Well,
19611you see, that's difficult to explain.... Yesterday our left flank
19612was there at Shevardino, you see, where the oak is, but now we have
19613withdrawn our left wing--now it is over there, do you see that village
19614and the smoke? That's Semenovsk, yes, there," he pointed to
19615Raevski's knoll. "But the battle will hardly be there. His having
19616moved his troops there is only a ruse; he will probably pass round
19617to the right of the Moskva. But wherever it may be, many a man will be
19618missing tomorrow!" he remarked.
19619
19620An elderly sergeant who had approached the officer while he was
19621giving these explanations had waited in silence for him to finish
19622speaking, but at this point, evidently not liking the officer's
19623remark, interrupted him.
19624
19625"Gabions must be sent for," said he sternly.
19626
19627The officer appeared abashed, as though he understood that one might
19628think of how many men would be missing tomorrow but ought not to speak
19629to speak of it.
19630
19631"Well, send number three company again," the officer replied
19632hurriedly.
19633
19634"And you, are you one of the doctors?"
19635
19636"No, I've come on my own," answered Pierre, and he went down the
19637hill again, passing the militiamen.
19638
19639"Oh, those damned fellows!" muttered the officer who followed him,
19640holding his nose as he ran past the men at work.
19641
19642"There they are... bringing her, coming... There they are... They'll
19643be here in a minute..." voices were suddenly heard saying; and
19644officers, soldiers, and militiamen began running forward along the
19645road.
19646
19647A church procession was coming up the hill from Borodino. First
19648along the dusty road came the infantry in ranks, bareheaded and with
19649arms reversed. From behind them came the sound of church singing.
19650
19651Soldiers and militiamen ran bareheaded past Pierre toward the
19652procession.
19653
19654"They are bringing her, our Protectress!... The Iberian Mother of
19655God!" someone cried.
19656
19657"The Smolensk Mother of God," another corrected him.
19658
19659The militiamen, both those who had been in the village and those who
19660had been at work on the battery, threw down their spades and ran to
19661meet the church procession. Following the battalion that marched along
19662the dusty road came priests in their vestments--one little old man
19663in a hood with attendants and singers. Behind them soldiers and
19664officers bore a large, dark-faced icon with an embossed metal cover.
19665This was the icon that had been brought from and had since accompanied
19666the army. Behind, before, and on both sides, crowds of militiamen with
19667bared heads walked, ran, and bowed to the ground.
19668
19669At the summit of the hill they stopped with the icon; the men who
19670had been holding it up by the linen bands attached to it were relieved
19671by others, the chanters relit their censers, and service began. The
19672hot rays of the sun beat down vertically and a fresh soft wind
19673played with the hair of the bared heads and with the ribbons
19674decorating the icon. The singing did not sound loud under the open
19675sky. An immense crowd of bareheaded officers, soldiers, and militiamen
19676surrounded the icon. Behind the priest and a chanter stood the
19677notabilities on a spot reserved for them. A bald general with
19678general with a St. George's Cross on his neck stood just behind the
19679priest's back, and without crossing himself (he was evidently a
19680German) patiently awaited the end of the service, which he
19681considered it necessary to hear to the end, probably to arouse the
19682patriotism of the Russian people. Another general stood in a martial
19683pose, crossing himself by shaking his hand in front of his chest while
19684looking about him. Standing among the crowd of peasants, Pierre
19685recognized several acquaintances among these notables, but did not
19686look at them--his whole attention was absorbed in watching the serious
19687expression on the faces of the crowd of soldiers and militiamen who
19688were all gazing eagerly at the icon. As soon as the tired chanters,
19689who were singing the service for the twentieth time that day, began
19690lazily and mechanically to sing: "Save from calamity Thy servants, O
19691Mother of God," and the priest and deacon chimed in: "For to Thee
19692under God we all flee as to an inviolable bulwark and protection,"
19693there again kindled in all those faces the same expression of
19694consciousness of the solemnity of the impending moment that Pierre had
19695seen on the faces at the foot of the hill at Mozhaysk and
19696momentarily on many and many faces he had met that morning; and
19697heads were bowed more frequently and hair tossed back, and sighs and
19698the sound men made as they crossed themselves were heard.
19699
19700The crowd round the icon suddenly parted and pressed against Pierre.
19701Someone, a very important personage judging by the haste with which
19702way was made for him, was approaching the icon.
19703
19704It was Kutuzov, who had been riding round the position and on his
19705way back to Tatarinova had stopped where the service was being held.
19706Pierre recognized him at once by his peculiar figure, which
19707distinguished him from everybody else.
19708
19709With a long overcoat on his his exceedingly stout,
19710round-shouldered body, with uncovered white head and puffy face
19711showing the white ball of the eye he had lost, Kutuzov walked with
19712plunging, swaying gait into the crowd and stopped behind the priest.
19713He crossed himself with an accustomed movement, bent till he touched
19714the ground with his hand, and bowed his white head with a deep sigh.
19715Behind Kutuzov was Bennigsen and the suite. Despite the presence of
19716the commander in chief, who attracted the attention of all the
19717superior officers, the militiamen and soldiers continued their prayers
19718without looking at him.
19719
19720When the service was over, Kutuzov stepped up to the icon, sank
19721heavily to his knees, bowed to the ground, and for a long time tried
19722vainly to rise, but could not do so on account of his weakness and
19723weight. His white head twitched with the effort. At last he rose,
19724kissed the icon as a child does with naively pouting lips, and again
19725bowed till he touched the ground with his hand. The other generals
19726followed his example, then the officers, and after them with excited
19727faces, pressing on one another, crowding, panting, and pushing,
19728scrambled the soldiers and militiamen.
19729
19730
19731
19732
19733
19734CHAPTER XXII
19735
19736
19737Staggering amid the crush, Pierre looked about him.
19738
19739"Count Peter Kirilovich! How did you get here?" said a voice.
19740
19741Pierre looked round. Boris Drubetskoy, brushing his knees with his
19742hand (he had probably soiled them when he, too, had knelt before the
19743icon), came up to him smiling. Boris was elegantly dressed, with a
19744slightly martial touch appropriate to a campaign. He wore a long
19745coat and like Kutuzov had a whip slung across his shoulder.
19746
19747Meanwhile Kutuzov had reached the village and seated himself in
19748the shade of the nearest house, on a bench which one Cossack had run
19749to fetch and another had hastily covered with a rug. An immense and
19750brilliant suite surrounded him.
19751
19752The icon was carried further, accompanied by the throng. Pierre
19753stopped some thirty paces from Kutuzov, talking to Boris.
19754
19755He explained his wish to be present at the battle and to see the
19756position.
19757
19758"This is what you must do," said Boris. "I will do the honors of the
19759camp to you. You will see everything best from where Count Bennigsen
19760will be. I am in attendance on him, you know; I'll mention it to
19761him. But if you want to ride round the position, come along with us.
19762We are just going to the left flank. Then when we get back, do spend
19763the night with me and we'll arrange a game of cards. Of course you
19764know Dmitri Sergeevich? Those are his quarters," and he pointed to the
19765third house in the village of Gorki.
19766
19767"But I should like to see the right flank. They say it's very
19768strong," said Pierre. "I should like to start from the Moskva River
19769and ride round the whole position."
19770
19771"Well, you can do that later, but the chief thing is the left
19772flank."
19773
19774"Yes, yes. But where is Prince Bolkonski's regiment? Can you point
19775it out to me?"
19776
19777"Prince Andrew's? We shall pass it and I'll take you to him."
19778
19779"What about the left flank?" asked Pierre
19780
19781"To tell you the truth, between ourselves, God only knows what state
19782our left flank is in," said Boris confidentially lowering his voice.
19783"It is not at all what Count Bennigsen intended. He meant to fortify
19784that knoll quite differently, but..." Boris shrugged his shoulders,
19785"his Serene Highness would not have it, or someone persuaded him.
19786You see..." but Boris did not finish, for at that moment Kaysarov,
19787Kutuzov's adjutant, came up to Pierre. "Ah, Kaysarov!" said Boris,
19788addressing him with an unembarrassed smile, "I was just trying to
19789explain our position to the count. It is amazing how his Serene
19790Highness could so the intentions of the French!"
19791
19792"You mean the left flank?" asked Kaysarov.
19793
19794
19795"Yes, exactly; the left flank is now extremely strong."
19796
19797Though Kutuzov had dismissed all unnecessary men from the staff,
19798Boris had contrived to remain at headquarters after the changes. He
19799had established himself with Count Bennigsen, who, like all on whom
19800Boris had been in attendance, considered young Prince Drubetskoy an
19801invaluable man.
19802
19803In the higher command there were two sharply defined parties:
19804Kutuzov's party and that of Bennigsen, the chief of staff. Boris
19805belonged to the latter and no one else, while showing servile
19806respect to Kutuzov, could so create an impression that the old
19807fellow was not much good and that Bennigsen managed everything. Now
19808the decisive moment of battle had come when Kutuzov would be destroyed
19809and the power pass to Bennigsen, or even if Kutuzov won the battle
19810it would be felt that everything was done by Bennigsen. In any case
19811many great rewards would have to be given for tomorrow's action, and
19812new men would come to the front. So Boris was full of nervous vivacity
19813all day.
19814
19815After Kaysarov, others whom Pierre knew came up to him, and he had
19816not time to reply to all the questions about Moscow that were showered
19817upon him, or to listen to all that was told him. The faces all
19818expressed animation and apprehension, but it seemed to Pierre that the
19819cause of the excitement shown in some of these faces lay chiefly in
19820questions of personal success; his mind, however, was occupied by
19821the different expression he saw on other faces--an expression that
19822spoke not of personal matters but of the universal questions of life
19823and death. Kutuzov noticed Pierre's figure and the group gathered
19824round him.
19825
19826"Call him to me," said Kutuzov.
19827
19828An adjutant told Pierre of his Serene Highness' wish, and Pierre
19829went toward Kutuzov's bench. But a militiaman got there before him. It
19830was Dolokhov.
19831
19832"How did that fellow get here?" asked Pierre.
19833
19834"He's a creature that wriggles in anywhere!" was the answer. "He has
19835been degraded, you know. Now he wants to bob up again. He's been
19836proposing some scheme or other and has crawled into the enemy's picket
19837line at night.... He's a brave fellow."
19838
19839Pierre took off his hat and bowed respectfully to Kutuzov.
19840
19841"I concluded that if I reported to your Serene Highness you might
19842send me away or say that you knew what I was reporting, but then I
19843shouldn't lose anything..." Dolokhov was saying.
19844
19845"Yes, yes."
19846
19847"But if I were right, I should be rendering a service to my
19848Fatherland for which I am ready to die."
19849
19850"Yes, yes."
19851
19852"And should your Serene Highness require a man who will not spare
19853his skin, please think of me.... Perhaps I may prove useful to your
19854Serene Highness."
19855
19856"Yes... Yes..." Kutuzov repeated, his laughing eye narrowing more
19857and more as he looked at Pierre.
19858
19859Just then Boris, with his courtierlike adroitness, stepped up to
19860Pierre's side near Kutuzov and in a most natural manner, without
19861raising his voice, said to Pierre, as though continuing an interrupted
19862conversation:
19863
19864"The militia have put on clean white shirts to be ready to die. What
19865heroism, Count!"
19866
19867Boris evidently said this to Pierre in order to be overheard by
19868his Serene Highness. He knew Kutuzov's attention would be caught by
19869those words, and so it was.
19870
19871"What are you saying about the militia?" he asked Boris.
19872
19873"Preparing for tomorrow, your Serene Highness--for death--they
19874have put on clean shirts."
19875
19876"Ah... a wonderful, a matchless people!" said Kutuzov; and he closed
19877his eyes and swayed his head. "A matchless people!" he repeated with a
19878sigh.
19879
19880"So you want to smell gunpowder?" he said to Pierre. "Yes, it's a
19881pleasant smell. I have the honor to be one of your wife's adorers.
19882Is she well? My quarters are at your service."
19883
19884And as often happens with old people, Kutuzov began looking about
19885absent-mindedly as if forgetting all he wanted to say or do.
19886
19887Then, evidently remembering what he wanted, he beckoned to Andrew
19888Kaysarov, his adjutant's brother.
19889
19890"Those verses... those verses of Marin's... how do they go, eh?
19891Those he wrote about Gerakov: 'Lectures for the corps inditing'...
19892Recite them, recite them!" said he, evidently preparing to laugh.
19893
19894Kaysarov recited.... Kutuzov smilingly nodded his head to the rhythm
19895of the verses.
19896
19897When Pierre had left Kutuzov, Dolokhov came up to him and took his
19898hand.
19899
19900"I am very glad to meet you here, Count," he said aloud,
19901regardless of the presence of strangers and in a particularly resolute
19902and solemn tone. "On the eve of a day when God alone knows who of us
19903is fated to survive, I am glad of this opportunity to tell you that
19904I regret the misunderstandings that occurred between us and should
19905wish you not to have any ill feeling for me. I beg you to forgive me."
19906
19907Pierre looked at Dolokhov with a smile, not knowing what to say to
19908him. With tears in his eyes Dolokhov embraced Pierre and kissed him.
19909
19910Boris said a few words to his general, and Count Bennigsen turned to
19911Pierre and proposed that he should ride with him along the line.
19912
19913"It will interest you," said he.
19914
19915"Yes, very much," replied Pierre.
19916
19917Half an hour later Kutuzov left for Tatarinova, and Bennigsen and
19918his suite, with Pierre among them, set out on their ride along the
19919line.
19920
19921
19922
19923
19924
19925CHAPTER XXIII
19926
19927
19928From Gorki, Bennigsen descended the highroad to the bridge which,
19929when they had looked it from the hill, the officer had pointed out
19930as being the center of our position and where rows of fragrant
19931new-mown hay lay by the riverside. They rode across that bridge into
19932the village of Borodino and thence turned to the left, passing an
19933enormous number of troops and guns, and came to a high knoll where
19934militiamen were digging. This was the redoubt, as yet unnamed, which
19935afterwards became known as the Raevski Redoubt, or the Knoll
19936Battery, but Pierre paid no special attention to it. He did not know
19937that it would become more memorable to him than any other spot on
19938the plain of Borodino.
19939
19940They then crossed the hollow to Semenovsk, where the soldiers were
19941dragging away the last logs from the huts and barns. Then they rode
19942downhill and uphill, across a ryefield trodden and beaten down as if
19943by hail, following a track freshly made by the artillery over the
19944furrows of the plowed land, and reached some fleches* which were still
19945being dug.
19946
19947
19948*A kind of entrenchment.
19949
19950
19951At the fleches Bennigsen stopped and began looking at the Shevardino
19952Redoubt opposite, which had been ours the day before and where several
19953horsemen could be descried. The officers said that either Napoleon
19954or Murat was there, and they all gazed eagerly at this little group of
19955horsemen. Pierre also looked at them, trying to guess which of the
19956scarcely discernible figures was Napoleon. At last those mounted men
19957rode away from the mound and disappeared.
19958
19959Bennigsen spoke to a general who approached him, and began
19960explaining the whole position of our troops. Pierre listened to him,
19961straining each faculty to understand the essential points of the
19962impending battle, but was mortified to feel that his mental capacity
19963was inadequate for the task. He could make nothing of it. Bennigsen
19964stopped speaking and, noticing that Pierre was listening, suddenly
19965said to him:
19966
19967"I don't think this interests you?"
19968
19969"On the contrary it's very interesting!" replied Pierre not quite
19970truthfully.
19971
19972From the fleches they rode still farther to the left, along a road
19973winding through a thick, low-growing birch wood. In the middle of
19974the wood a brown hare with white feet sprang out and, scared by the
19975tramp of the many horses, grew so confused that it leaped along the
19976road in front of them for some time, arousing general attention and
19977laughter, and only when several voices shouted at it did it dart to
19978one side and disappear in the thicket. After going through the wood
19979for about a mile and a half they came out on a glade where troops of
19980Tuchkov's corps were stationed to defend the left flank.
19981
19982Here, at the extreme left flank, Bennigsen talked a great deal and
19983with much heat, and, as it seemed to Pierre, gave orders of great
19984military importance. In front of Tuchkov's troops was some high ground
19985not occupied by troops. Bennigsen loudly criticized this mistake,
19986saying that it was madness to leave a height which commanded the
19987country around unoccupied and to place troops below it. Some of the
19988generals expressed the same opinion. One in particular declared with
19989martial heat that they were put there to be slaughtered. Bennigsen
19990on his own authority ordered the troops to occupy the high ground.
19991This disposition on the left flank increased Pierre's doubt of his own
19992capacity to understand military matters. Listening to Bennigsen and
19993the generals criticizing the position of the troops behind the hill,
19994he quite understood them and shared their opinion, but for that very
19995reason he could not understand how the man who put them there behind
19996the hill could have made so gross and palpable a blunder.
19997
19998Pierre did not know that these troops were not, as Bennigsen
19999supposed, put there to defend the position, but were in a concealed
20000position as an ambush, that they should not be seen and might be
20001able to strike an approaching enemy unexpectedly. Bennigsen did not
20002know this and moved the troops forward according to his own ideas
20003without mentioning the matter to the commander in chief.
20004
20005
20006
20007
20008
20009CHAPTER XXIV
20010
20011
20012On that bright evening of August 25, Prince Andrew lay leaning on
20013his elbow in a broken-down shed in the village of Knyazkovo at the
20014further end of his regiment's encampment. Through a gap in the
20015broken wall he could see, beside the wooden fence, a row of thirty
20016year-old birches with their lower branches lopped off, a field on
20017which shocks of oats were standing, and some bushes near which rose
20018the smoke of campfires--the soldiers' kitchens.
20019
20020Narrow and burdensome and useless to anyone as his life now seemed
20021to him, Prince Andrew on the eve of battle felt agitated and irritable
20022as he had done seven years before at Austerlitz.
20023
20024He had received and given the orders for next day's battle and had
20025nothing more to do. But his thoughts--the simplest, clearest, and
20026therefore most terrible thoughts--would give him no peace. He knew
20027that tomorrow's battle would be the most terrible of all he had
20028taken part in, and for the first time in his life the possibility of
20029death presented itself to him--not in relation to any worldly matter
20030or with reference to its effect on others, but simply in relation to
20031himself, to his own soul--vividly, plainly, terribly, and almost as
20032a certainty. And from the height of this perception all that had
20033previously tormented and preoccupied him suddenly became illumined
20034by a cold white light without shadows, without perspective, without
20035distinction of outline. All life appeared to him like magic-lantern
20036pictures at which he had long been gazing by artificial light
20037through a glass. Now he suddenly saw those badly daubed pictures in
20038clear daylight and without a glass. "Yes, yes! There they are, those
20039false images that agitated, enraptured, and tormented me," said he
20040to himself, passing in review the principal pictures of the magic
20041lantern of life and regarding them now in the cold white daylight of
20042his clear perception of death. "There they are, those rudely painted
20043figures that once seemed splendid and mysterious. Glory, the good of
20044society, love of a woman, the Fatherland itself--how important these
20045pictures appeared to me, with what profound meaning they seemed to
20046be filled! And it is all so simple, pale, and crude in the cold
20047white light of this morning which I feel is dawning for me." The three
20048great sorrows of his life held his attention in particular: his love
20049for a woman, his father's death, and the French invasion which had
20050overrun half Russia. "Love... that little girl who seemed to me
20051brimming over with mystic forces! Yes, indeed, I loved her. I made
20052romantic plans of love and happiness with her! Oh, what a boy I
20053was!" he said aloud bitterly. "Ah me! I believed in some ideal love
20054which was to keep her faithful to me for the whole year of my absence!
20055Like the gentle dove in the fable she was to pine apart from me....
20056But it was much simpler really.... It was all very simple and
20057horrible."
20058
20059"When my father built Bald Hills he thought the place was his: his
20060land, his air, his peasants. But Napoleon came and swept him aside,
20061unconscious of his existence, as he might brush a chip from his
20062path, and his Bald Hills and his whole life fell to pieces. Princess
20063Mary says it is a trial sent from above. What is the trial for, when
20064he is not here and will never return? He is not here! For whom then is
20065the trial intended? The Fatherland, the destruction of Moscow! And
20066tomorrow I shall be killed, perhaps not even by a Frenchman but by one
20067of our own men, by a soldier discharging a musket close to my ear as
20068one of them did yesterday, and the French will come and take me by
20069head and heels and fling me into a hole that I may not stink under
20070their noses, and new conditions of life will arise, which will seem
20071quite ordinary to others and about which I shall know nothing. I shall
20072not exist..."
20073
20074He looked at the row of birches shining in the sunshine, with
20075their motionless green and yellow foliage and white bark. "To die...
20076to be killed tomorrow... That I should not exist... That all this
20077should still be, but no me...."
20078
20079And the birches with their light and shade, the curly clouds, the
20080smoke of the campfires, and all that was around him changed and seemed
20081terrible and menacing. A cold shiver ran down his spine. He rose
20082quickly, went out of the shed, and began to walk about.
20083
20084After he had returned, voices were heard outside the shed. "Who's
20085that?" he cried.
20086
20087The red-nosed Captain Timokhin, formerly Dolokhov's squadron
20088commander, but now from lack of officers a battalion commander,
20089
20090shyly entered the shed followed by an adjutant and the regimental
20091paymaster.
20092
20093Prince Andrew rose hastily, listened to the business they had come
20094about, gave them some further instructions, and was about to dismiss
20095them when he heard a familiar, lisping, voice behind the shed.
20096
20097"Devil take it!" said the voice of a man stumbling over something.
20098
20099Prince Andrew looked out of the shed and saw Pierre, who had tripped
20100over a pole on the ground and had nearly fallen, coming his way. It
20101was unpleasant to Prince Andrew to meet people of his own set in
20102general, and Pierre especially, for he reminded him of all the painful
20103moments of his last visit to Moscow.
20104
20105"You? What a surprise!" said he. "What brings you here? This is
20106unexpected!"
20107
20108As he said this his eyes and face expressed more than coldness--they
20109expressed hostility, which Pierre noticed at once. He had approached
20110the shed full of animation, but on seeing Prince Andrew's face he felt
20111constrained and ill at ease.
20112
20113"I have come... simply... you know... come... it interests me," said
20114Pierre, who had so often that day senselessly repeated that word
20115"interesting." "I wish to see the battle."
20116
20117"Oh yes, and what do the Masonic brothers say about war? How would
20118they stop it?" said Prince Andrew sarcastically. "Well, and how's
20119Moscow? And my people? Have they reached Moscow at last?" he asked
20120seriously.
20121
20122"Yes, they have. Julie Drubetskaya told me so. I went to see them,
20123but missed them. They have gone to your estate near Moscow."
20124
20125
20126
20127
20128
20129CHAPTER XXV
20130
20131
20132The officers were about to take leave, but Prince Andrew, apparently
20133reluctant to be left alone with his friend, asked them to stay and
20134have tea. Seats were brought in and so was the tea. The officers gazed
20135with surprise at Pierre's huge stout figure and listened to his talk
20136of Moscow and the position of our army, round which he had ridden.
20137Prince Andrew remained silent, and his expression was so forbidding
20138that Pierre addressed his remarks chiefly to the good-natured
20139battalion commander.
20140
20141"So you understand the whole position of our troops?" Prince
20142Andrew interrupted him.
20143
20144"Yes--that is, how do you mean?" said Pierre. "Not being a
20145military man I can't say I have understood it fully, but I
20146understand the general position."
20147
20148"Well, then, you know more than anyone else, be it who it may," said
20149Prince Andrew.
20150
20151"Oh!" said Pierre, looking over his spectacles in perplexity at
20152Prince Andrew. "Well, and what do think of Kutuzov's appointment?"
20153he asked.
20154
20155"I was very glad of his appointment, that's all I know," replied
20156Prince Andrew.
20157
20158"And tell me your opinion of Barclay de Tolly. In Moscow they are
20159saying heaven knows what about him.... What do you think of him?"
20160
20161"Ask them," replied Prince Andrew, indicating the officers.
20162
20163Pierre looked at Timokhin with the condescendingly interrogative
20164smile with which everybody involuntarily addressed that officer.
20165
20166"We see light again, since his Serenity has been appointed, your
20167excellency," said Timokhin timidly, and continually turning to
20168glance at his colonel.
20169
20170"Why so?" asked Pierre.
20171
20172"Well, to mention only firewood and fodder, let me inform you.
20173Why, when we were retreating from Sventsyani we dare not touch a stick
20174or a wisp of hay or anything. You see, we were going away, so he would
20175get it all; wasn't it so, your excellency?" and again Timokhin
20176turned to the prince. "But we daren't. In our regiment two officers
20177were court-martialed for that kind of thing. But when his Serenity
20178took command everything became straight forward. Now we see light..."
20179
20180"Then why was it forbidden?"
20181
20182Timokhin looked about in confusion, not knowing what or how to
20183answer such a question. Pierre put the same question to Prince Andrew.
20184
20185"Why, so as not to lay waste the country we were abandoning to the
20186enemy," said Prince Andrew with venomous irony. "It is very sound: one
20187can't permit the land to be pillaged and accustom the troops to
20188marauding. At Smolensk too he judged correctly that the French might
20189outflank us, as they had larger forces. But he could not understand
20190this," cried Prince Andrew in a shrill voice that seemed to escape him
20191involuntarily: "he could not understand that there, for the first
20192time, we were fighting for Russian soil, and that there was a spirit
20193in the men such as I had never seen before, that we had held the
20194French for two days, and that that success had increased our
20195strength tenfold. He ordered us to retreat, and all our efforts and
20196losses went for nothing. He had no thought of betraying us, he tried
20197to do the best he could, he thought out everything, and that is why he
20198is unsuitable. He is unsuitable now, just because he plans out
20199everything very thoroughly and accurately as every German has to.
20200How can I explain?... Well, say your father has a German valet, and he
20201is a splendid valet and satisfies your father's requirements better
20202than you could, then it's all right to let him serve. But if your
20203father is mortally sick you'll send the valet away and attend to
20204your father with your own unpracticed, awkward hands, and will
20205soothe him better than a skilled man who is a stranger could. So it
20206has been with Barclay. While Russia was well, a foreigner could
20207serve her and be a splendid minister; but as soon as she is in
20208danger she needs one of her own kin. But in your Club they have been
20209making him out a traitor! They slander him as a traitor, and the
20210only result will be that afterwards, ashamed of their false
20211accusations, they will make him out a hero or a genius instead of a
20212traitor, and that will be still more unjust. He is an honest and
20213very punctilious German."
20214
20215"And they say he's a skillful commander," rejoined Pierre.
20216
20217"I don't understand what is meant by 'a skillful commander,'"
20218replied Prince Andrew ironically.
20219
20220"A skillful commander?" replied Pierre. "Why, one who foresees all
20221contingencies... and foresees the adversary's intentions."
20222
20223"But that's impossible," said Prince Andrew as if it were a matter
20224settled long ago.
20225
20226Pierre looked at him in surprise.
20227
20228"And yet they say that war is like a game of chess?" he remarked.
20229
20230"Yes," replied Prince Andrew, "but with this little difference, that
20231in chess you may think over each move as long as you please and are
20232not limited for time, and with this difference too, that a knight is
20233always stronger than a pawn, and two pawns are always stronger than
20234one, while in war a battalion is sometimes stronger than a division
20235and sometimes weaker than a company. The relative strength of bodies
20236of troops can never be known to anyone. Believe me," he went on, "if
20237things depended on arrangements made by the staff, I should be there
20238making arrangements, but instead of that I have the honor to serve
20239here in the regiment with these gentlemen, and I consider that on us
20240tomorrow's battle will depend and not on those others.... Success
20241never depends, and never will depend, on position, or equipment, or
20242even on numbers, and least of all on position."
20243
20244"But on what then?"
20245
20246"On the feeling that is in me and in him," he pointed to Timokhin,
20247"and in each soldier."
20248
20249Prince Andrew glanced at Timokhin, who looked at his commander in
20250alarm and bewilderment. In contrast to his former reticent taciturnity
20251Prince Andrew now seemed excited. He could apparently not refrain from
20252expressing the thoughts that had suddenly occurred to him.
20253
20254"A battle is won by those who firmly resolve to win it! Why did we
20255lose the battle at Austerlitz? The French losses were almost equal
20256to ours, but very early we said to ourselves that we were losing the
20257battle, and we did lose it. And we said so because we had nothing to
20258fight for there, we wanted to get away from the battlefield as soon as
20259we could. 'We've lost, so let us run,' and we ran. If we had not
20260said that till the evening, heaven knows what might not have happened.
20261But tomorrow we shan't say it! You talk about our position, the left
20262flank weak and the right flank too extended," he went on. "That's
20263all nonsense, there's nothing of the kind. But what awaits us
20264tomorrow? A hundred million most diverse chances which will be decided
20265on the instant by the fact that our men or theirs run or do not run,
20266and that this man or that man is killed, but all that is being done at
20267present is only play. The fact is that those men with whom you have
20268ridden round the position not only do not help matters, but hinder.
20269They are only concerned with their own petty interests."
20270
20271"At such a moment?" said Pierre reproachfully.
20272
20273"At such a moment!" Prince Andrew repeated. "To them it is only a
20274moment affording opportunities to undermine a rival and obtain an
20275extra cross or ribbon. For me tomorrow means this: a Russian army of a
20276hundred thousand and a French army of a hundred thousand have met to
20277fight, and the thing is that these two hundred thousand men will fight
20278and the side that fights more fiercely and spares itself least will
20279win. And if you like I will tell you that whatever happens and
20280whatever muddles those at the top may make, we shall win tomorrow's
20281battle. Tomorrow, happen what may, we shall win!"
20282
20283"There now, your excellency! That's the truth, the real truth," said
20284Timokhin. "Who would spare himself now? The soldiers in my
20285battalion, believe me, wouldn't drink their vodka! 'It's not the day
20286for that!' they say."
20287
20288All were silent. The officers rose. Prince Andrew went out of the
20289shed with them, giving final orders to the adjutant. After they had
20290gone Pierre approached Prince Andrew and was about to start a
20291conversation when they heard the clatter of three horses' hoofs on the
20292road not far from the shed, and looking in that direction Prince
20293Andrew recognized Wolzogen and Clausewitz accompanied by a Cossack.
20294They rode close by continuing to converse, and Prince Andrew
20295involuntarily heard these words:
20296
20297"Der Krieg muss in Raum verlegt werden. Der Ansicht kann ich nicht
20298genug Preis geben,"* said one of them.
20299
20300
20301*"The war must be extended widely. I cannot sufficiently commend
20302that view."
20303
20304
20305"Oh, ja," said the other, "der Zweck ist nur den Feind zu schwachen,
20306so kann man gewiss nicht den Verlust der Privat-Personen in Achtung
20307nehmen."*
20308
20309
20310*"Oh, yes, the only aim is to weaken the enemy, so of course one
20311cannot take into account the loss of private individuals."
20312
20313
20314"Oh, no," agreed the other.
20315
20316"Extend widely!" said Prince Andrew with an angry snort, when they
20317had ridden past. "In that 'extend' were my father, son, and sister, at
20318Bald Hills. That's all the same to him! That's what I was saying to
20319you--those German gentlemen won't win the battle tomorrow but will
20320only make all the mess they can, because they have nothing in their
20321German heads but theories not worth an empty eggshell and haven't in
20322their hearts the one thing needed tomorrow--that which Timokhin has.
20323They have yielded up all Europe to him, and have now come to teach us.
20324Fine teachers!" and again his voice grew shrill.
20325
20326"So you think we shall win tomorrow's battle?" asked Pierre.
20327
20328"Yes, yes," answered Prince Andrew absently. "One thing I would do
20329
20330if I had the power," he began again, "I would not take prisoners.
20331Why take prisoners? It's chivalry! The French have destroyed my home
20332and are on their way to destroy Moscow, they have outraged and are
20333outraging me every moment. They are my enemies. In my opinion they are
20334all criminals. And so thinks Timokhin and the whole army. They
20335should be executed! Since they are my foes they cannot be my
20336friends, whatever may have been said at Tilsit."
20337
20338"Yes, yes," muttered Pierre, looking with shining eyes at Prince
20339Andrew. "I quite agree with you!"
20340
20341The question that had perturbed Pierre on the Mozhaysk hill and
20342all that day now seemed to him quite clear and completely solved. He
20343now understood the whole meaning and importance of this war and of the
20344impending battle. All he had seen that day, all the significant and
20345stern expressions on the faces he had seen in passing, were lit up for
20346him by a new light. He understood that latent heat (as they say in
20347physics) of patriotism which was present in all these men he had seen,
20348and this explained to him why they all prepared for death calmly,
20349and as it were lightheartedly.
20350
20351"Not take prisoners," Prince Andrew continued: "That by itself would
20352quite change the whole war and make it less cruel. As it is we have
20353played at war--that's what's vile! We play at magnanimity and all that
20354stuff. Such magnanimity and sensibility are like the magnanimity and
20355sensibility of a lady who faints when she sees a calf being killed:
20356she is so kind-hearted that she can't look at blood, but enjoys eating
20357the calf served up with sauce. They talk to us of the rules of war, of
20358chivalry, of flags of truce, of mercy to the unfortunate and so on.
20359It's all rubbish! I saw chivalry and flags of truce in 1805; they
20360humbugged us and we humbugged them. They plunder other people's
20361houses, issue false paper money, and worst of all they kill my
20362children and my father, and then talk of rules of war and
20363magnanimity to foes! Take no prisoners, but kill and be killed! He who
20364has come to this as I have through the same sufferings..."
20365
20366Prince Andrew, who had thought it was all the same to him whether or
20367not Moscow was taken as Smolensk had been, was suddenly checked in his
20368speech by an unexpected cramp in his throat. He paced up and down a
20369few times in silence, but his eyes glittered feverishly and his lips
20370quivered as he began speaking.
20371
20372"If there was none of this magnanimity in war, we should go to war
20373only when it was worth while going to certain death, as now. Then
20374there would not be war because Paul Ivanovich had offended Michael
20375Ivanovich. And when there was a war, like this one, it would be war!
20376And then the determination of the troops would be quite different.
20377Then all these Westphalians and Hessians whom Napoleon is leading
20378would not follow him into Russia, and we should not go to fight in
20379Austria and Prussia without knowing why. War is not courtesy but the
20380most horrible thing in life; and we ought to understand that and not
20381play at war. We ought to accept this terrible necessity sternly and
20382seriously. It all lies in that: get rid of falsehood and let war be
20383war and not a game. As it is now, war is the favorite pastime of the
20384idle and frivolous. The military calling is the most highly honored.
20385
20386"But what is war? What is needed for success in warfare? What are
20387the habits of the military? The aim of war is murder; the methods of
20388war are spying, treachery, and their encouragement, the ruin of a
20389country's inhabitants, robbing them or stealing to provision the army,
20390and fraud and falsehood termed military craft. The habits of the
20391military class are the absence of freedom, that is, discipline,
20392idleness, ignorance, cruelty, debauchery, and drunkenness. And in
20393spite of all this it is the highest class, respected by everyone.
20394All the kings, except the Chinese, wear military uniforms, and he
20395who kills most people receives the highest rewards.
20396
20397"They meet, as we shall meet tomorrow, to murder one another; they
20398kill and maim tens of thousands, and then have thanksgiving services
20399for having killed so many people (they even exaggerate the number),
20400and they announce a victory, supposing that the more people they
20401have killed the greater their achievement. How does God above look
20402at them and hear them?" exclaimed Prince Andrew in a shrill,
20403piercing voice. "Ah, my friend, it has of late become hard for me to
20404live. I see that I have begun to understand too much. And it doesn't
20405do for man to taste of the tree of knowledge of good and evil....
20406Ah, well, it's not for long!" he added.
20407
20408"However, you're sleepy, and it's time for me to sleep. Go back to
20409Gorki!" said Prince Andrew suddenly.
20410
20411"Oh no!" Pierre replied, looking at Prince Andrew with frightened,
20412compassionate eyes.
20413
20414"Go, go! Before a battle one must have one's sleep out," repeated
20415Prince Andrew.
20416
20417He came quickly up to Pierre and embraced and kissed him.
20418"Good-by, be off!" he shouted. "Whether we meet again or not..."
20419and turning away hurriedly he entered the shed.
20420
20421It was already dark, and Pierre could not make out whether the
20422expression of Prince Andrew's face was angry or tender.
20423
20424For some time he stood in silence considering whether he should
20425follow him or go away. "No, he does not want it!" Pierre concluded.
20426"And I know that this is our last meeting!" He sighed deeply and
20427rode back to Gorki.
20428
20429On re-entering the shed Prince Andrew lay down on a rug, but he
20430could not sleep.
20431
20432He closed his eyes. One picture succeeded another in his
20433imagination. On one of them he dwelt long and joyfully. He vividly
20434recalled an evening in Petersburg. Natasha with animated and excited
20435face was telling him how she had gone to look for mushrooms the
20436previous summer and had lost her way in the big forest. She
20437incoherently described the depths of the forest, her feelings, and a
20438talk with a beekeeper she met, and constantly interrupted her story to
20439say: "No, I can't! I'm not telling it right; no, you don't
20440understand," though he encouraged her by saying that he did
20441understand, and he really had understood all she wanted to say. But
20442Natasha was not satisfied with her own words: she felt that they did
20443not convey the passionately poetic feeling she had experienced that
20444day and wished to convey. "He was such a delightful old man, and it
20445was so dark in the forest... and he had such kind... No, I can't
20446describe it," she had said, flushed and excited. Prince Andrew
20447smiled now the same happy smile as then when he had looked into her
20448eyes. "I understood her," he thought. "I not only understood her,
20449but it was just that inner, spiritual force, that sincerity, that
20450frankness of soul--that very soul of hers which seemed to be
20451fettered by her body--it was that soul I loved in her... loved so
20452strongly and happily..." and suddenly he remembered how his love had
20453ended. "He did not need anything of that kind. He neither saw nor
20454understood anything of the sort. He only saw in her a pretty and fresh
20455young girl, with whom he did not deign to unite his fate. And I?...
20456and he is still alive and gay!"
20457
20458Prince Andrew jumped up as if someone had burned him, and again
20459began pacing up and down in front of the shed.
20460
20461
20462
20463
20464
20465CHAPTER XXVI
20466
20467
20468On August 25, the eve of the battle of Borodino, M. de Beausset,
20469prefect of the French Emperor's palace, arrived at Napoleon's quarters
20470at Valuevo with Colonel Fabvier, the former from Paris and the
20471latter from Madrid.
20472
20473Donning his court uniform, M. de Beausset ordered a box he had
20474brought for the Emperor to be carried before him and entered the first
20475compartment of Napoleon's tent, where he began opening the box while
20476conversing with Napoleon's aides-de-camp who surrounded him.
20477
20478Fabvier, not entering the tent, remained at the entrance talking
20479to some generals of his acquaintance.
20480
20481The Emperor Napoleon had not yet left his bedroom and was
20482finishing his toilet. Slightly snorting and grunting, he presented now
20483his back and now his plump hairy chest to the brush with which his
20484valet was rubbing him down. Another valet, with his finger over the
20485mouth of a bottle, was sprinkling Eau de Cologne on the Emperor's
20486pampered body with an expression which seemed to say that he alone
20487knew where and how much Eau de Cologne should be sprinkled. Napoleon's
20488short hair was wet and matted on the forehead, but his face, though
20489puffy and yellow, expressed physical satisfaction. "Go on, harder,
20490go on!" he muttered to the valet who was rubbing him, slightly
20491twitching and grunting. An aide-de-camp, who had entered the bedroom
20492to report to the Emperor the number of prisoners taken in
20493yesterday's action, was standing by the door after delivering his
20494message, awaiting permission to withdraw. Napoleon, frowning, looked
20495at him from under his brows.
20496
20497"No prisoners!" said he, repeating the aide-de-camp's words. "They
20498are forcing us to exterminate them. So much the worse for the
20499Russian army.... Go on... harder, harder!" he muttered, hunching his
20500back and presenting his fat shoulders.
20501
20502"All right. Let Monsieur de Beausset enter, and Fabvier too," he
20503said, nodding to the aide-de-camp.
20504
20505"Yes, sire," and the aide-de-camp disappeared through the door of
20506the tent.
20507
20508Two valets rapidly dressed His Majesty, and wearing the blue uniform
20509of the Guards he went with firm quick steps to the reception room.
20510
20511De Beausset's hands meanwhile were busily engaged arranging the
20512present he had brought from the Empress, on two chairs directly in
20513front of the entrance. But Napoleon had dressed and come out with such
20514unexpected rapidity that he had not time to finish arranging the
20515surprise.
20516
20517Napoleon noticed at once what they were about and guessed that
20518they were not ready. He did not wish to deprive them of the pleasure
20519of giving him a surprise, so he pretended not to see de Beausset and
20520called Fabvier to him, listening silently and with a stern frown to
20521what Fabvier told him of the heroism and devotion of his troops
20522fighting at Salamanca, at the other end of Europe, with but one
20523thought--to be worthy of their Emperor--and but one fear--to fail to
20524please him. The result of that battle had been deplorable. Napoleon
20525made ironic remarks during Fabvier's account, as if he had not
20526expected that matters could go otherwise in his absence.
20527
20528"I must make up for that in Moscow," said Napoleon. "I'll see you
20529later," he added, and summoned de Beausset, who by that time had
20530prepared the surprise, having placed something on the chairs and
20531covered it with a cloth.
20532
20533De Beausset bowed low, with that courtly French bow which only the
20534old retainers of the Bourbons knew how to make, and approached him,
20535presenting an envelope.
20536
20537Napoleon turned to him gaily and pulled his ear.
20538
20539"You have hurried here. I am very glad. Well, what is Paris saying?"
20540he asked, suddenly changing his former stern expression for a most
20541cordial tone.
20542
20543"Sire, all Paris regrets your absence," replied de Beausset as was
20544proper.
20545
20546But though Napoleon knew that de Beausset had to say something of
20547this kind, and though in his lucid moments he knew it was untrue, he
20548was pleased to hear it from him. Again he honored him by touching
20549his ear.
20550
20551"I am very sorry to have made you travel so far," said he.
20552
20553"Sire, I expected nothing less than to find you at the gates of
20554Moscow," replied de Beausset.
20555
20556Napoleon smiled and, lifting his head absentmindedly, glanced to the
20557right. An aide-de-camp approached with gliding steps and offered him a
20558gold snuffbox, which he took.
20559
20560"Yes, it has happened luckily for you," he said, raising the open
20561snuffbox to his nose. "You are fond of travel, and in three days you
20562will see Moscow. You surely did not expect to see that Asiatic
20563capital. You will have a pleasant journey."
20564
20565De Beausset bowed gratefully at this regard for his taste for travel
20566(of which he had not till then been aware).
20567
20568"Ha, what's this?" asked Napoleon, noticing that all the courtiers
20569were looking at something concealed under a cloth.
20570
20571With courtly adroitness de Beausset half turned and without
20572turning his back to the Emperor retired two steps, twitching off the
20573cloth at the same time, and said:
20574
20575"A present to Your Majesty from the Empress."
20576
20577It was a portrait, painted in bright colors by Gerard, of the son
20578borne to Napoleon by the daughter of the Emperor of Austria, the boy
20579whom for some reason everyone called "The King of Rome."
20580
20581A very pretty curly-headed boy with a look of the Christ in the
20582Sistine Madonna was depicted playing at stick and ball. The ball
20583represented the terrestrial globe and the stick in his other hand a
20584scepter.
20585
20586Though it was not clear what the artist meant to express by
20587depicting the so-called King of Rome spiking the earth with a stick,
20588the allegory apparently seemed to Napoleon, as it had done to all
20589who had seen it in Paris, quite clear and very pleasing.
20590
20591"The King of Rome!" he said, pointing to the portrait with a
20592graceful gesture. "Admirable!"
20593
20594With the natural capacity of an Italian for changing the
20595expression of his face at will, he drew nearer to the portrait and
20596assumed a look of pensive tenderness. He felt that what he now said
20597and did would be historical, and it seemed to him that it would now be
20598best for him--whose grandeur enabled his son to play stick and ball
20599with the terrestrial globe--to show, in contrast to that grandeur, the
20600simplest paternal tenderness. His eyes grew dim, he moved forward,
20601glanced round at a chair (which seemed to place itself under him), and
20602sat down on it before the portrait. At a single gesture from him
20603everyone went out on tiptoe, leaving the great man to himself and
20604his emotion.
20605
20606Having sat still for a while he touched--himself not knowing why-
20607the thick spot of paint representing the highest light in the
20608portrait, rose, and recalled de Beausset and the officer on duty. He
20609ordered the portrait to be carried outside his tent, that the Old
20610Guard, stationed round it, might not be deprived of the pleasure of
20611seeing the King of Rome, the son and heir of their adored monarch.
20612
20613And while he was doing M. de Beausset the honor of breakfasting with
20614him, they heard, as Napoleon had anticipated, the rapturous cries of
20615the officers and men of the Old Guard who had run up to see the
20616portrait.
20617
20618"Vive l'Empereur! Vive le roi de Rome! Vive l'Empereur!" came
20619those ecstatic cries.
20620
20621After breakfast Napoleon in de Beausset's presence dictated his
20622order of the day to the army.
20623
20624"Short and energetic!" he remarked when he had read over the
20625proclamation which he had dictated straight off without corrections.
20626It ran:
20627
20628
20629Soldiers! This is the battle you have so longed for. Victory depends
20630on you. It is essential for us; it will give us all we need:
20631comfortable quarters and a speedy return to our country. Behave as you
20632did at Austerlitz, Friedland, Vitebsk, and Smolensk. Let our
20633remotest posterity recall your achievements this day with pride. Let
20634it be said of each of you: "He was in the great battle before Moscow!"
20635
20636
20637"Before Moscow!" repeated Napoleon, and inviting M. de Beausset, who
20638was so fond of travel, to accompany him on his ride, he went out of
20639the tent to where the horses stood saddled.
20640
20641"Your Majesty is too kind!" replied de Beausset to the invitation to
20642accompany the Emperor; he wanted to sleep, did not know how to ride
20643and was afraid of doing so.
20644
20645But Napoleon nodded to the traveler, and de Beausset had to mount.
20646When Napoleon came out of the tent the shouting of the Guards before
20647his son's portrait grew still louder. Napoleon frowned.
20648
20649"Take him away!" he said, pointing with a gracefully majestic
20650gesture to the portrait. "It is too soon for him to see a field of
20651battle."
20652
20653De Beausset closed his eyes, bowed his head, and sighed deeply, to
20654indicate how profoundly he valued and comprehended the Emperor's
20655words.
20656
20657
20658
20659
20660
20661CHAPTER XXVII
20662
20663
20664On the twenty-fifth of August, so his historians tell us, Napoleon
20665spent the whole day on horseback inspecting the locality,
20666considering plans submitted to him by his marshals, and personally
20667giving commands to his generals.
20668
20669The original line of the Russian forces along the river Kolocha
20670had been dislocated by the capture of the Shevardino Redoubt on the
20671twenty-fourth, and part of the line--the left flank--had been drawn
20672back. That part of the line was not entrenched and in front of it
20673the ground was more open and level than elsewhere. It was evident to
20674anyone, military or not, that it was here the French should attack. It
20675would seem that not much consideration was needed to reach this
20676conclusion, nor any particular care or trouble on the part of the
20677Emperor and his marshals, nor was there any need of that special and
20678supreme quality called genius that people are so apt to ascribe to
20679Napoleon; yet the historians who described the event later and the men
20680who then surrounded Napoleon, and he himself, thought otherwise.
20681
20682Napoleon rode over the plain and surveyed the locality with a
20683profound air and in silence, nodded with approval or shook his head
20684dubiously, and without communicating to the generals around him the
20685profound course of ideas which guided his decisions merely gave them
20686his final conclusions in the form of commands. Having listened to a
20687suggestion from Davout, who was now called Prince d'Eckmuhl, to turn
20688the Russian left wing, Napoleon said it should not be done, without
20689explaining why not. To a proposal made by General Campan (who was to
20690attack the fleches) to lead his division through the woods, Napoleon
20691agreed, though the so-called Duke of Elchingen (Ney) ventured to
20692remark that a movement through the woods was dangerous and might
20693disorder the division.
20694
20695Having inspected the country opposite the Shevardino Redoubt,
20696Napoleon pondered a little in silence and then indicated the spots
20697where two batteries should be set up by the morrow to act against
20698the Russian entrenchments, and the places where, in line with them,
20699the field artillery should be placed.
20700
20701After giving these and other commands he returned to his tent, and
20702the dispositions for the battle were written down from his dictation.
20703
20704These dispositions, of which the French historians write with
20705enthusiasm and other historians with profound respect, were as
20706follows:
20707
20708
20709At dawn the two new batteries established during the night on the
20710plain occupied by the Prince d'Eckmuhl will open fire on the
20711opposing batteries of the enemy.
20712
20713At the same time the commander of the artillery of the 1st Corps,
20714General Pernetti, with thirty cannon of Campan's division and all
20715the howitzers of Dessaix's and Friant's divisions, will move
20716forward, open fire, and overwhelm with shellfire the enemy's
20717battery, against which will operate:
20718
20719 24 guns of the artillery of the Guards
20720 30 guns of Campan's division
20721
20722and 8 guns of Friant's and Dessaix's divisions
20723 --
20724
20725in all 62 guns.
20726
20727
20728The commander of the artillery of the 3rd Corps, General Fouche,
20729will place the howitzers of the 3rd and 8th Corps, sixteen in all,
20730on the flanks of the battery that is to bombard the entrenchment on
20731the left, which will have forty guns in all directed against it.
20732
20733General Sorbier must be ready at the first order to advance with all
20734the howitzers of the Guard's artillery against either one or other
20735of the entrenchments.
20736
20737During the cannonade Prince Poniatowski is to advance through the
20738wood on the village and turn the enemy's position.
20739
20740General Campan will move through the wood to seize the first
20741fortification.
20742
20743After the advance has begun in this manner, orders will be given
20744in accordance with the enemy's movements.
20745
20746The cannonade on the left flank will begin as soon as the guns of
20747the right wing are heard. The sharpshooters of Morand's division and
20748of the vice-King's division will open a heavy fire on seeing the
20749attack commence on the right wing.
20750
20751The vice-King will occupy the village and cross by its three
20752bridges, advancing to the same heights as Morand's and Gibrard's
20753divisions, which under his leadership will be directed against the
20754redoubt and come into line with the rest of the forces.
20755
20756All this must be done in good order (le tout se fera avec ordre et
20757methode) as far as possible retaining troops in reserve.
20758 The Imperial Camp near Mozhaysk,
20759 September, 6, 1812.
20760
20761
20762These dispositions, which are very obscure and confused if one
20763allows oneself to regard the arrangements without religious awe of his
20764genius, related to Napoleon's orders to deal with four points--four
20765different orders. Not one of these was, or could be, carried out.
20766
20767In the disposition it is said first that the batteries placed on the
20768spot chosen by Napoleon, with the guns of Pernetti and Fouche; which
20769were to come in line with them, 102 guns in all, were to open fire and
20770shower shells on the Russian fleches and redoubts. This could not be
20771done, as from the spots selected by Napoleon the projectiles did not
20772carry to the Russian works, and those 102 guns shot into the air until
20773the nearest commander, contrary to Napoleon's instructions, moved them
20774forward.
20775
20776The second order was that Poniatowski, moving to the village through
20777the wood, should turn the Russian left flank. This could not be done
20778and was not done, because Poniatowski, advancing on the village
20779through the wood, met Tuchkov there barring his way, and could not and
20780did not turn the Russian position.
20781
20782The third order was: General Campan will move through the wood to
20783seize the first fortification. General Campan's division did not seize
20784the first fortification but was driven back, for on emerging from
20785the wood it had to reform under grapeshot, of which Napoleon was
20786unaware.
20787
20788The fourth order was: The vice-King will occupy the village
20789(Borodino) and cross by its three bridges, advancing to the same
20790heights as Morand's and Gdrard's divisions (for whose movements no
20791directions are given), which under his leadership will be directed
20792against the redoubt and come into line with the rest of the forces.
20793
20794As far as one can make out, not so much from this unintelligible
20795sentence as from the attempts the vice-King made to execute the orders
20796given him, he was to advance from the left through Borodino to the
20797redoubt while the divisions of Morand and Gerard were to advance
20798simultaneously from the front.
20799
20800All this, like the other parts of the disposition, was not and could
20801not be executed. After passing through Borodino the vice-King was
20802driven back to the Kolocha and could get no farther; while the
20803divisions of Morand and Gerard did not take the redoubt but were
20804driven back, and the redoubt was only taken at the end of the battle
20805by the cavalry (a thing probably unforeseen and not heard of by
20806Napoleon). So not one of the orders in the disposition was, or could
20807be, executed. But in the disposition it is said that, after the
20808fight has commenced in this manner, orders will be given in accordance
20809with the enemy's movements, and so it might be supposed that all
20810necessary arrangements would be made by Napoleon during the battle.
20811But this was not and could not be done, for during the whole battle
20812Napoleon was so far away that, as appeared later, he could not know
20813the course of the battle and not one of his orders during the fight
20814could be executed.
20815
20816
20817
20818
20819
20820CHAPTER XXVIII
20821
20822
20823Many historians say that the French did not win the battle of
20824Borodino because Napoleon had a cold, and that if he had not had a
20825cold the orders he gave before and during the battle would have been
20826still more full of genius and Russia would have been lost and the face
20827of the world have been changed. To historians who believe that
20828Russia was shaped by the will of one man--Peter the Great--and that
20829France from a republic became an empire and French armies went to
20830Russia at the will of one man--Napoleon--to say that Russia remained a
20831power because Napoleon had a bad cold on the twenty-fourth of August
20832may seem logical and convincing.
20833
20834If it had depended on Napoleon's will to fight or not to fight the
20835battle of Borodino, and if this or that other arrangement depended
20836on his will, then evidently a cold affecting the manifestation of
20837his will might have saved Russia, and consequently the valet who
20838omitted to bring Napoleon his waterproof boots on the twenty-fourth
20839would have been the savior of Russia. Along that line of thought
20840such a deduction is indubitable, as indubitable as the deduction
20841Voltaire made in jest (without knowing what he was jesting at) when he
20842saw that the Massacre of St. Bartholomew was due to Charles IX's
20843stomach being deranged. But to men who do not admit that Russia was
20844formed by the will of one man, Peter I, or that the French Empire
20845was formed and the war with Russia begun by the will of one man,
20846Napoleon, that argument seems not merely untrue and irrational, but
20847contrary to all human reality. To the question of what causes historic
20848events another answer presents itself, namely, that the course of
20849human events is predetermined from on high--depends on the coincidence
20850of the wills of all who take part in the events, and that a Napoleon's
20851influence on the course of these events is purely external and
20852fictitious.
20853
20854Strange as at first glance it may seem to suppose that the
20855Massacre of St. Bartholomew was not due to Charles IX's will, though
20856he gave the order for it and thought it was done as a result of that
20857order; and strange as it may seem to suppose that the slaughter of
20858eighty thousand men at Borodino was not due to Napoleon's will, though
20859he ordered the commencement and conduct of the battle and thought it
20860was done because he ordered it; strange as these suppositions
20861appear, yet human dignity--which tells me that each of us is, if not
20862more at least not less a man than the great Napoleon--demands the
20863acceptance of that solution of the question, and historic
20864investigation abundantly confirms it.
20865
20866At the battle of Borodino Napoleon shot at no one and killed no one.
20867That was all done by the soldiers. Therefore it was not he who
20868killed people.
20869
20870The French soldiers went to kill and be killed at the battle of
20871Borodino not because of Napoleon's orders but by their own volition.
20872The whole army--French, Italian, German, Polish, and Dutch--hungry,
20873ragged, and weary of the campaign, felt at the sight of an army
20874blocking their road to Moscow that the wine was drawn and must be
20875drunk. Had Napoleon then forbidden them to fight the Russians, they
20876would have killed him and have proceeded to fight the Russians because
20877it was inevitable.
20878
20879When they heard Napoleon's proclamation offering them, as
20880compensation for mutilation and death, the words of posterity about
20881their having been in the battle before Moscow, they cried "Vive
20882l'Empereur!" just as they had cried "Vive l'Empereur!" at the sight of
20883the portrait of the boy piercing the terrestrial globe with a toy
20884stick, and just as they would have cried "Vive l'Empereur!" at any
20885nonsense that might be told them. There was nothing left for them to
20886do but cry "Vive l'Empereur!" and go to fight, in order to get food
20887and rest as conquerors in Moscow. So it was not because of
20888Napoleon's commands that they killed their fellow men.
20889
20890And it was not Napoleon who directed the course of the battle, for
20891none of his orders were executed and during the battle he did not know
20892what was going on before him. So the way in which these people
20893killed one another was not decided by Napoleon's will but occurred
20894independently of him, in accord with the will of hundreds of thousands
20895of people who took part in the common action. It only seemed to
20896Napoleon that it all took place by his will. And so the question
20897whether he had or had not a cold has no more historic interest than
20898the cold of the least of the transport soldiers.
20899
20900Moreover, the assertion made by various writers that his cold was
20901the cause of his dispositions not being as well planned as on former
20902occasions, and of his orders during the battle not being as good as
20903previously, is quite baseless, which again shows that Napoleon's
20904cold on the twenty-sixth of August was unimportant.
20905
20906The dispositions cited above are not at all worse, but are even
20907better, than previous dispositions by which he had won victories.
20908His pseudo-orders during the battle were also no worse than
20909formerly, but much the same as usual. These dispositions and orders
20910only seem worse than previous ones because the battle of Borodino
20911was the first Napoleon did not win. The profoundest and most excellent
20912dispositions and orders seem very bad, and every learned militarist
20913criticizes them with looks of importance, when they relate to a
20914battle that has been lost, and the very worst dispositions and
20915orders seem very good, and serious people fill whole volumes to
20916demonstrate their merits, when they relate to a battle that has been
20917won.
20918
20919The dispositions drawn up by Weyrother for the battle of
20920Austerlitz were a model of perfection for that kind of composition,
20921but still they were criticized--criticized for their very
20922perfection, for their excessive minuteness.
20923
20924Napoleon at the battle of Borodino fulfilled his office as
20925representative of authority as well as, and even better than, at other
20926battles. He did nothing harmful to the progress of the battle; he
20927inclined to the most reasonable opinions, he made no confusion, did
20928not contradict himself, did not get frightened or run away from the
20929field of battle, but with his great tact and military experience
20930carried out his role of appearing to command, calmly and with dignity.
20931
20932
20933
20934
20935
20936CHAPTER XXIX
20937
20938
20939On returning from a second inspection of the lines, Napoleon
20940remarked:
20941
20942"The chessmen are set up, the game will begin tomorrow!"
20943
20944Having ordered punch and summoned de Beausset, he began to talk to
20945him about Paris and about some changes he meant to make the Empress'
20946household, surprising the prefect by his memory of minute details
20947relating to the court.
20948
20949He showed an interest in trifles, joked about de Beausset's love
20950of travel, and chatted carelessly, as a famous, self-confident surgeon
20951who knows his job does when turning up his sleeves and putting on
20952his apron while a patient is being strapped to the operating table.
20953"The matter is in my hands and is clear and definite in my head.
20954When the times comes to set to work I shall do it as no one else
20955could, but now I can jest, and the more I jest and the calmer I am the
20956more tranquil and confident you ought to be, and the more amazed at my
20957genius."
20958
20959Having finished his second glass of punch, Napoleon went to rest
20960before the serious business which, he considered, awaited him next
20961day. He was so much interested in that task that he was unable to
20962sleep, and in spite of his cold which had grown worse from the
20963dampness of the evening, he went into the large division of the tent
20964at three o'clock in the morning, loudly blowing his nose. He asked
20965whether the Russians had not withdrawn, and was told that the
20966enemy's fires were still in the same places. He nodded approval.
20967
20968The adjutant in attendance came into the tent.
20969
20970"Well, Rapp, do you think we shall do good business today?" Napoleon
20971asked him.
20972
20973"Without doubt, sire," replied Rapp.
20974
20975Napoleon looked at him.
20976
20977"Do you remember, sire, what you did me the honor to say at
20978Smolensk?" continued Rapp. "The wine is drawn and must be drunk."
20979
20980Napoleon frowned and sat silent for a long time leaning his head
20981on his hand.
20982
20983"This poor army!" he suddenly remarked. "It has diminished greatly
20984since Smolensk. Fortune is frankly a courtesan, Rapp. I have always
20985said so and I am beginning to experience it. But the Guards, Rapp, the
20986Guards are intact?" he remarked interrogatively.
20987
20988"Yes, sire," replied Rapp.
20989
20990Napoleon took a lozenge, put it in his mouth, and glanced at his
20991watch. He was not sleepy and it was still not nearly morning. It was
20992impossible to give further orders for the sake of killing time, for
20993the orders had all been given and were now being executed.
20994
20995"Have the biscuits and rice been served out to the regiments of
20996the Guards?" asked Napoleon sternly.
20997
20998"Yes, sire."
20999
21000"The rice too?"
21001
21002Rapp replied that he had given the Emperor's order about the rice,
21003but Napoleon shook his head in dissatisfaction as if not believing
21004that his order had been executed. An attendant came in with punch.
21005Napoleon ordered another glass to be brought for Rapp, and silently
21006sipped his own.
21007
21008"I have neither taste nor smell," he remarked, sniffing at his
21009glass. "This cold is tiresome. They talk about medicine--what is the
21010good of medicine when it can't cure a cold! Corvisart gave me these
21011lozenges but they don't help at all. What can doctors cure? One
21012can't cure anything. Our body is a machine for living. It is organized
21013for that, it is its nature. Let life go on in it unhindered and let it
21014defend itself, it will do more than if you paralyze it by
21015encumbering it with remedies. Our body is like a perfect watch that
21016should go for a certain time; watchmaker cannot open it, he can only
21017adjust it by fumbling, and that blindfold.... Yes, our body is just
21018a machine for living, that is all."
21019
21020And having entered on the path of definition, of which he was
21021fond, Napoleon suddenly and unexpectedly gave a new one.
21022
21023"Do you know, Rapp, what military art is?" asked he. "It is the
21024art of being stronger than the enemy at a given moment. That's all."
21025
21026Rapp made no reply.
21027
21028"Tomorrow we shall have to deal with Kutuzov!" said Napoleon. "We
21029shall see! Do you remember at Braunau he commanded an army for three
21030weeks and did not once mount a horse to inspect his
21031entrenchments.... We shall see!"
21032
21033He looked at his watch. It was still only four o'clock. He did not
21034feel sleepy. The punch was finished and there was still nothing to do.
21035He rose, walked to and fro, put on a warm overcoat and a hat, and went
21036out of the tent. The night was dark and damp, a scarcely perceptible
21037moisture was descending from above. Near by, the campfires were
21038dimly burning among the French Guards, and in the distance those of
21039the Russian line shone through the smoke. The weather was calm, and
21040the rustle and tramp of the French troops already beginning to move to
21041take up their positions were clearly audible.
21042
21043Napoleon walked about in front of his tent, looked at the fires
21044and listened to these sounds, and as he was passing a tall guardsman
21045in a shaggy cap, who was standing sentinel before his tent and had
21046drawn himself up like a black pillar at sight of the Emperor, Napoleon
21047stopped in front of him.
21048
21049"What year did you enter the service?" he asked with that
21050affectation of military bluntness and geniality with which he always
21051addressed the soldiers.
21052
21053The man answered the question.
21054
21055"Ah! One of the old ones! Has your regiment had its rice?"
21056
21057"It has, Your Majesty."
21058
21059Napoleon nodded and walked away.
21060
21061
21062At half-past five Napoleon rode to the village of Shevardino.
21063
21064It was growing light, the sky was clearing, only a single cloud
21065lay in the east. The abandoned campfires were burning themselves out
21066in the faint morning light.
21067
21068On the right a single deep report of a cannon resounded and died
21069away in the prevailing silence. Some minutes passed. A second and a
21070third report shook the air, then a fourth and a fifth boomed
21071solemnly near by on the right.
21072
21073The first shots had not yet ceased to reverberate before others rang
21074out and yet more were heard mingling with and overtaking one another.
21075
21076Napoleon with his suite rode up to the Shevardino Redoubt where he
21077dismounted. The game had begun.
21078
21079
21080
21081
21082
21083CHAPTER XXX
21084
21085
21086On returning to Gorki after having seen Prince Andrew, Pierre
21087ordered his groom to get the horses ready and to call him early in the
21088morning, and then immediately fell asleep behind a partition in a
21089corner Boris had given up to him.
21090
21091Before he was thoroughly awake next morning everybody had already
21092left the hut. The panes were rattling in the little windows and his
21093groom was shaking him.
21094
21095"Your excellency! Your excellency! Your excellency!" he kept
21096repeating pertinaciously while he shook Pierre by the shoulder without
21097looking at him, having apparently lost hope of getting him to wake up.
21098
21099"What? Has it begun? Is it time?" Pierre asked, waking up.
21100
21101"Hear the firing," said the groom, a discharged soldier. "All the
21102gentlemen have gone out, and his Serene Highness himself rode past
21103long ago."
21104
21105Pierre dressed hastily and ran out to the porch. Outside all was
21106bright, fresh, dewy, and cheerful. The sun, just bursting forth from
21107behind a cloud that had concealed it, was shining, with rays still
21108half broken by the clouds, over the roofs of the street opposite, on
21109the dew-besprinkled dust of the road, on the walls of the houses, on
21110the windows, the fence, and on Pierre's horses standing before the
21111hut. The roar of guns sounded more distinct outside. An adjutant
21112accompanied by a Cossack passed by at a sharp trot.
21113
21114"It's time, Count; it's time!" cried the adjutant.
21115
21116Telling the groom to follow him with the horses, Pierre went down
21117the street to the knoll from which he had looked at the field of
21118battle the day before. A crowd of military men was assembled there,
21119members of the staff could be heard conversing in French, and
21120Kutuzov's gray head in a white cap with a red band was visible, his
21121gray nape sunk between his shoulders. He was looking through a field
21122glass down the highroad before him.
21123
21124Mounting the steps to the knoll Pierre looked at the scene before
21125him, spellbound by beauty. It was the same panorama he had admired
21126from that spot the day before, but now the whole place was full of
21127troops and covered by smoke clouds from the guns, and the slanting
21128rays of the bright sun, rising slightly to the left behind Pierre,
21129cast upon it through the clear morning air penetrating streaks of
21130rosy, golden tinted light and long dark shadows. The forest at the
21131farthest extremity of the panorama seemed carved in some precious
21132stone of a yellowish-green color; its undulating outline was
21133silhouetted against the horizon and was pierced beyond Valuevo by
21134the Smolensk highroad crowded with troops. Nearer at hand glittered
21135golden cornfields interspersed with copses. There were troops to be
21136seen everywhere, in front and to the right and left. All this was
21137vivid, majestic, and unexpected; but what impressed Pierre most of all
21138was the view of the battlefield itself, of Borodino and the hollows on
21139both sides of the Kolocha.
21140
21141Above the Kolocha, in Borodino and on both sides of it, especially
21142to the left where the Voyna flowing between its marshy banks falls
21143into the Kolocha, a mist had spread which seemed to melt, to dissolve,
21144and to become translucent when the brilliant sun appeared and
21145magically colored and outlined everything. The smoke of the guns
21146mingled with this mist, and over the whole expanse and through that
21147mist the rays of the morning sun were reflected, flashing back like
21148lightning from the water, from the dew, and from the bayonets of the
21149troops crowded together by the riverbanks and in Borodino. A white
21150church could be seen through the mist, and here and there the roofs of
21151huts in Borodino as well as dense masses of soldiers, or green
21152ammunition chests and ordnance. And all this moved, or seemed to move,
21153as the smoke and mist spread out over the whole space. Just as in
21154the mist-enveloped hollow near Borodino, so along the entire line
21155outside and above it and especially in the woods and fields to the
21156left, in the valleys and on the summits of the high ground, clouds
21157of powder smoke seemed continually to spring up out of nothing, now
21158singly, now several at a time, some translucent, others dense,
21159which, swelling, growing, rolling, and blending, extended over the
21160whole expanse.
21161
21162These puffs of smoke and (strange to say) the sound of
21163the firing produced the chief beauty of the spectacle.
21164
21165"Puff!"--suddenly a round compact cloud of smoke was seen merging
21166from violet into gray and milky white, and "boom!" came the report a
21167second later.
21168
21169"Puff! puff!"--and two clouds arose pushing one another and blending
21170together; and "boom, boom!" came the sounds confirming what the eye
21171had seen.
21172
21173Pierre glanced round at the first cloud, which he had seen as a
21174round compact ball, and in its place already were balloons of smoke
21175floating to one side, and--"puff" (with a pause)--"puff, puff!"
21176three and then four more appeared and then from each, with the same
21177interval--"boom--boom, boom!" came the fine, firm, precise sounds in
21178reply. It seemed as if those smoke clouds sometimes ran and
21179sometimes stood still while woods, fields, and glittering bayonets ran
21180past them. From the left, over fields and bushes, those large balls of
21181smoke were continually appearing followed by their solemn reports,
21182while nearer still, in the hollows and woods, there burst from the
21183muskets small cloudlets that had no time to become balls, but had
21184their little echoes in just the same way. "Trakh-ta-ta-takh!" came the
21185frequent crackle of musketry, but it was irregular and feeble in
21186comparison with the reports of the cannon.
21187
21188Pierre wished to be there with that smoke, those shining bayonets,
21189that movement, and those sounds. He turned to look at Kutuzov and
21190his suite, to compare his impressions with those of others. They
21191were all looking at the field of battle as he was, and, as it seemed
21192to him, with the same feelings. All their faces were now shining
21193with that latent warmth of feeling Pierre had noticed the day before
21194and had fully understood after his talk with Prince Andrew.
21195
21196"Go, my dear fellow, go... and Christ be with you!" Kutuzov was
21197saying to a general who stood beside him, not taking his eye from
21198the battlefield.
21199
21200Having received this order the general passed by Pierre on his way
21201down the knoll.
21202
21203"To the crossing!" said the general coldly and sternly in reply to
21204one of the staff who asked where he was going.
21205
21206"I'll go there too, I too!" thought Pierre, and followed the
21207general.
21208
21209The general mounted a horse a Cossack had brought him. Pierre went
21210to his groom who was holding his horses and, asking which was the
21211quietest, clambered onto it, seized it by the mane, and turning out
21212his toes pressed his heels against its sides and, feeling that his
21213spectacles were slipping off but unable to let go of the mane and
21214reins, he galloped after the general, causing the staff officers to
21215smile as they watched him from the knoll.
21216
21217
21218
21219
21220
21221CHAPTER XXXI
21222
21223
21224Having descended the hill the general after whom Pierre was
21225galloping turned sharply to the left, and Pierre, losing sight of him,
21226galloped in among some ranks of infantry marching ahead of him. He
21227tried to pass either in front of them or to the right or left, but
21228there were soldiers everywhere, all with expression and busy with some
21229unseen but evidently important task. They all gazed with the same
21230dissatisfied and inquiring expression at this stout man in a white
21231hat, who for some unknown reason threatened to trample them under
21232his horse's hoofs.
21233
21234"Why ride into the middle of the battalion?" one of them shouted
21235at him.
21236
21237Another prodded his horse with the butt end of a musket, and Pierre,
21238bending over his saddlebow and hardly able to control his shying
21239horse, galloped ahead of the soldiers where there was a free space.
21240
21241There was a bridge ahead of him, where other soldiers stood
21242firing. Pierre rode up to them. Without being aware of it he had
21243come to the bridge across the Kolocha between Gorki and Borodino,
21244which the French (having occupied Borodino) were attacking in the
21245first phase of the battle. Pierre saw that there was a bridge in front
21246of him and that soldiers were doing something on both sides of it
21247and in the meadow, among the rows of new-mown hay which he had taken
21248no notice of amid the smoke of the campfires the day before; but
21249despite the incessant firing going on there he had no idea that this
21250was the field of battle. He did not notice the sound of the bullets
21251whistling from every side, or the projectiles that flew over him,
21252did not see the enemy on the other side of the river, and for a long
21253time did not notice the killed and wounded, though many fell near him.
21254He looked about him with a smile which did not leave his face.
21255
21256"Why's that fellow in front of the line?" shouted somebody at him
21257again.
21258
21259"To the left!... Keep to the right!" the men shouted to him.
21260
21261Pierre went to the right, and unexpectedly encountered one of
21262Raevski's adjutants whom he knew. The adjutant looked angrily at
21263him, evidently also intending to shout at him, but on recognizing
21264him he nodded.
21265
21266"How have you got here?" he said, and galloped on.
21267
21268Pierre, feeling out of place there, having nothing to do, and afraid
21269of getting in someone's way again, galloped after the adjutant.
21270
21271"What's happening here? May I come with you?" he asked.
21272
21273"One moment, one moment!" replied the adjutant, and riding up to a
21274stout colonel who was standing in the meadow, he gave him some message
21275and then addressed Pierre.
21276
21277"Why have you come here, Count?" he asked with a smile. "Still
21278inquisitive?"
21279
21280"Yes, yes," assented Pierre.
21281
21282But the adjutant turned his horse about and rode on.
21283
21284"Here it's tolerable," said he, "but with Bagration on the left
21285flank they're getting it frightfully hot."
21286
21287"Really?" said Pierre. "Where is that?"
21288
21289"Come along with me to our knoll. We can get a view from there and
21290in our battery it is still bearable," said the adjutant. "Will you
21291come?"
21292
21293"Yes, I'll come with you," replied Pierre, looking round for his
21294groom.
21295
21296It was only now that he noticed wounded men staggering along or
21297being carried on stretchers. On that very meadow he had ridden over
21298the day before, a soldier was lying athwart the rows of scented hay,
21299with his head thrown awkwardly back and his shako off.
21300
21301"Why haven't they carried him away?" Pierre was about to ask, but
21302seeing the stern expression of the adjutant who was also looking
21303that way, he checked himself.
21304
21305Pierre did not find his groom and rode along the hollow with the
21306adjutant to Raevski's Redoubt. His horse lagged behind the
21307adjutant's and jolted him at every step.
21308
21309"You don't seem to be used to riding, Count?" remarked the adjutant.
21310
21311"No it's not that, but her action seems so jerky," said Pierre in
21312a puzzled tone.
21313
21314"Why... she's wounded!" said the adjutant. "In the off foreleg above
21315the knee. A bullet, no doubt. I congratulate you, Count, on your
21316baptism of fire!"
21317
21318Having ridden in the smoke past the Sixth Corps, behind the
21319artillery which had been moved forward and was in action, deafening
21320them with the noise of firing, they came to a small wood. There it was
21321cool and quiet, with a scent of autumn. Pierre and the adjutant
21322dismounted and walked up the hill on foot.
21323
21324"Is the general here?" asked the adjutant on reaching the knoll.
21325
21326"He was here a minute ago but has just gone that way," someone
21327told him, pointing to the right.
21328
21329The adjutant looked at Pierre as if puzzled what to do with him now.
21330
21331"Don't trouble about me," said Pierre. "I'll go up onto the knoll if
21332I may?"
21333
21334"Yes, do. You'll see everything from there and it's less
21335dangerous, and I'll come for you."
21336
21337Pierre went to the battery and the adjutant rode on. They did not
21338meet again, and only much later did Pierre learn that he lost an arm
21339that day.
21340
21341The knoll to which Pierre ascended was that famous one afterwards
21342known to the Russians as the Knoll Battery or Raevski's Redoubt, and
21343to the French as la grande redoute, la fatale redoute, la redoute du
21344centre, around which tens of thousands fell, and which the French
21345regarded as the key to the whole position.
21346
21347This redoubt consisted of a knoll, on three sides of which
21348trenches had been dug. Within the entrenchment stood ten guns that
21349were being fired through openings in the earthwork.
21350
21351In line with the knoll on both sides stood other guns which also
21352fired incessantly. A little behind the guns stood infantry. When
21353ascending that knoll Pierre had no notion that this spot, on which
21354small trenches had been dug and from which a few guns were firing, was
21355the most important point of the battle.
21356
21357On the contrary, just because he happened to be there he thought
21358it one of the least significant parts of the field.
21359
21360Having reached the knoll, Pierre sat down at one end of a trench
21361surrounding the battery and gazed at what was going on around him with
21362an unconsciously happy smile. Occasionally he rose and walked about
21363the battery still with that same smile, trying not to obstruct the
21364soldiers who were loading, hauling the guns, and continually running
21365past him with bags and charges. The guns of that battery were being
21366fired continually one after another with a deafening roar,
21367enveloping the whole neighborhood in powder smoke.
21368
21369In contrast with the dread felt by the infantrymen placed in
21370support, here in the battery where a small number of men busy at their
21371work were separated from the rest by a trench, everyone experienced
21372a common and as it were family feeling of animation.
21373
21374The intrusion of Pierre's nonmilitary figure in a white hat made
21375an unpleasant impression at first. The soldiers looked askance at
21376him with surprise and even alarm as they went past him. The senior
21377artillery officer, a tall, long-legged, pockmarked man, moved over
21378to Pierre as if to see the action of the farthest gun and looked at
21379him with curiosity.
21380
21381A young round-faced officer, quite a boy still and evidently only
21382just out of the Cadet College, who was zealously commanding the two
21383guns entrusted to him, addressed Pierre sternly.
21384
21385"Sir," he said, "permit me to ask you to stand aside. You must not
21386be here."
21387
21388The soldiers shook their heads disapprovingly as they looked at
21389Pierre. But when they had convinced themselves that this man in the
21390white hat was doing no harm, but either sat quietly on the slope of
21391the trench with a shy smile or, politely making way for the
21392soldiers, paced up and down the battery under fire as calmly as if
21393he were on a boulevard, their feeling of hostile distrust gradually
21394began to change into a kindly and bantering sympathy, such as soldiers
21395feel for their dogs, cocks, goats, and in general for the animals that
21396live with the regiment. The men soon accepted Pierre into their
21397family, adopted him, gave him a nickname ("our gentleman"), and made
21398kindly fun of him among themselves.
21399
21400A shell tore up the earth two paces from Pierre and he looked around
21401with a smile as he brushed from his clothes some earth it had thrown
21402up.
21403
21404"And how's it you're not afraid, sir, really now?" a red-faced,
21405broad-shouldered soldier asked Pierre, with a grin that disclosed a
21406set of sound, white teeth.
21407
21408"Are you afraid, then?" said Pierre.
21409
21410"What else do you expect?" answered the soldier. "She has no
21411mercy, you know! When she comes spluttering down, out go your innards.
21412One can't help being afraid," he said laughing.
21413
21414Several of the men, with bright kindly faces, stopped beside Pierre.
21415They seemed not to have expected him to talk like anybody else, and
21416the discovery that he did so delighted them.
21417
21418"It's the business of us soldiers. But in a gentleman it's
21419wonderful! There's a gentleman for you!"
21420
21421"To your places!" cried the young officer to the men gathered
21422round Pierre.
21423
21424The young officer was evidently exercising his duties for the
21425first or second time and therefore treated both his superiors and
21426the men with great precision and formality.
21427
21428The booming cannonade and the fusillade of musketry were growing
21429more intense over the whole field, especially to the left where
21430Bagration's fleches were, but where Pierre was the smoke of the firing
21431made it almost impossible to distinguish anything. Moreover, his whole
21432attention was engrossed by watching the family circle--separated
21433from all else--formed by the men in the battery. His first unconscious
21434feeling of joyful animation produced by the sights and sounds of the
21435battlefield was now replaced by another, especially since he had
21436seen that soldier lying alone in the hayfield. Now, seated on the
21437slope of the trench, he observed the faces of those around him.
21438
21439By ten o'clock some twenty men had already been carried away from
21440the battery; two guns were smashed and cannon balls fell more and more
21441frequently on the battery and spent bullets buzzed and whistled
21442around. But the men in the battery seemed not to notice this, and
21443merry voices and jokes were heard on all sides.
21444
21445"A live one!" shouted a man as a whistling shell approached.
21446
21447"Not this way! To the infantry!" added another with loud laughter,
21448seeing the shell fly past and fall into the ranks of the supports.
21449
21450"Are you bowing to a friend, eh?" remarked another, chaffing a
21451peasant who ducked low as a cannon ball flew over.
21452
21453Several soldiers gathered by the wall of the trench, looking out
21454to see what was happening in front.
21455
21456"They've withdrawn the front line, it has retired," said they,
21457pointing over the earthwork.
21458
21459"Mind your own business," an old sergeant shouted at them. "If
21460they've retired it's because there's work for them to do farther
21461back."
21462
21463And the sergeant, taking one of the men by the shoulders, gave him a
21464shove with his knee. This was followed by a burst of laughter.
21465
21466"To the fifth gun, wheel it up!" came shouts from one side.
21467
21468"Now then, all together, like bargees!" rose the merry voices of
21469those who were moving the gun.
21470
21471"Oh, she nearly knocked our gentleman's hat off!" cried the
21472red-faced humorist, showing his teeth chaffing Pierre. "Awkward
21473baggage!" he added reproachfully to a cannon ball that struck a cannon
21474wheel and a man's leg.
21475
21476"Now then, you foxes!" said another, laughing at some militiamen
21477who, stooping low, entered the battery to carry away the wounded man.
21478
21479"So this gruel isn't to your taste? Oh, you crows! You're scared!"
21480they shouted at the militiamen who stood hesitating before the man
21481whose leg had been torn off.
21482
21483"There, lads... oh, oh!" they mimicked the peasants, "they don't
21484like it at all!"
21485
21486Pierre noticed that after every ball that hit the redoubt, and after
21487every loss, the liveliness increased more and more.
21488
21489As the flames of the fire hidden within come more and more vividly
21490and rapidly from an approaching thundercloud, so, as if in
21491opposition to what was taking place, the lightning of hidden fire
21492growing more and more intense glowed in the faces of these men.
21493
21494Pierre did not look out at the battlefield and was not concerned
21495to know what was happening there; he was entirely absorbed in watching
21496this fire which burned ever more brightly and which he felt was
21497flaming up in the same way in his own soul.
21498
21499At ten o'clock the infantry that had been among the bushes in
21500front of the battery and along the Kamenka streamlet retreated. From
21501the battery they could be seen running back past it carrying their
21502wounded on their muskets. A general with his suite came to the
21503battery, and after speaking to the colonel gave Pierre an angry look
21504and went away again having ordered the infantry supports behind the
21505battery to lie down, so as to be less exposed to fire. After this from
21506amid the ranks of infantry to the right of the battery came the
21507sound of a drum and shouts of command, and from the battery one saw
21508how those ranks of infantry moved forward.
21509
21510Pierre looked over the wall of the trench and was particularly
21511struck by a pale young officer who, letting his sword hang down, was
21512walking backwards and kept glancing uneasily around.
21513
21514The ranks of the infantry disappeared amid the smoke but their
21515long-drawn shout and rapid musketry firing could still be heard. A few
21516minutes later crowds of wounded men and stretcher-bearers came back
21517from that direction. Projectiles began to fall still more frequently
21518in the battery. Several men were lying about who had not been removed.
21519Around the cannon the men moved still more briskly and busily. No
21520one any longer took notice of Pierre. Once or twice he was shouted
21521at for being in the way. The senior officer moved with big, rapid
21522strides from one gun to another with a frowning face. The young
21523officer, with his face still more flushed, commanded the men more
21524scrupulously than ever. The soldiers handed up the charges, turned,
21525loaded, and did their business with strained smartness. They gave
21526little jumps as they walked, as though they were on springs.
21527
21528The stormcloud had come upon them, and in every face the fire
21529which Pierre had watched kindle burned up brightly. Pierre standing
21530beside the commanding officer. The young officer, his hand to his
21531shako, ran up to his superior.
21532
21533"I have the honor to report, sir, that only eight rounds are left.
21534Are we to continue firing?" he asked.
21535
21536"Grapeshot!" the senior shouted, without answering the question,
21537looking over the wall of the trench.
21538
21539Suddenly something happened: the young officer gave a gasp and
21540bending double sat down on the ground like a bird shot on the wing.
21541Everything became strange, confused, and misty in Pierre's eyes.
21542
21543One cannon ball after another whistled by and struck the
21544earthwork, a soldier, or a gun. Pierre, who had not noticed these
21545sounds before, now heard nothing else. On the right of the battery
21546soldiers shouting "Hurrah!" were running not forwards but backwards,
21547it seemed to Pierre.
21548
21549A cannon ball struck the very end of the earth work by which he
21550was standing, crumbling down the earth; a black ball flashed before
21551his eyes and at the same instant plumped into something. Some
21552militiamen who were entering the battery ran back.
21553
21554"All with grapeshot!" shouted the officer.
21555
21556The sergeant ran up to the officer and in a frightened whisper
21557informed him (as a butler at dinner informs his master that there is
21558no more of some wine asked for) that there were no more charges.
21559
21560"The scoundrels! What are they doing?" shouted the officer,
21561turning to Pierre.
21562
21563The officer's face was red and perspiring and his eyes glittered
21564under his frowning brow.
21565
21566"Run to the reserves and bring up the ammunition boxes!" he
21567yelled, angrily avoiding Pierre with his eyes and speaking to his men.
21568
21569"I'll go," said Pierre.
21570
21571The officer, without answering him, strode across to the opposite
21572side.
21573
21574"Don't fire.... Wait!" he shouted.
21575
21576The man who had been ordered to go for ammunition stumbled against
21577Pierre.
21578
21579"Eh, sir, this is no place for you," said he, and ran down the
21580slope.
21581
21582Pierre ran after him, avoiding the spot where the young officer
21583was sitting.
21584
21585One cannon ball, another, and a third flew over him, falling in
21586front, beside, and behind him. Pierre ran down the slope. "Where am
21587I going?" he suddenly asked himself when he was already near the green
21588ammunition wagons. He halted irresolutely, not knowing whether to
21589return or go on. Suddenly a terrible concussion threw him backwards to
21590the ground. At the same instant he was dazzled by a great flash of
21591flame, and immediately a deafening roar, crackling, and whistling made
21592his ears tingle.
21593
21594When he came to himself he was sitting on the ground leaning on
21595his hands; the ammunition wagons he had been approaching no longer
21596existed, only charred green boards and rags littered the scorched
21597grass, and a horse, dangling fragments of its shaft behind it,
21598galloped past, while another horse lay, like Pierre, on the ground,
21599uttering prolonged and piercing cries.
21600
21601
21602
21603
21604
21605CHAPTER XXXII
21606
21607
21608Beside himself with terror Pierre jumped up and ran back to the
21609battery, as to the only refuge from the horrors that surrounded him.
21610
21611On entering the earthwork he noticed that there were men doing
21612something there but that no shots were being fired from the battery.
21613He had no time to realize who these men were. He saw the senior
21614officer lying on the earth wall with his back turned as if he were
21615examining something down below and that one of the soldiers he had
21616noticed before was struggling forward shouting "Brothers!" and
21617trying to free himself from some men who were holding him by the
21618arm. He also saw something else that was strange.
21619
21620But he had not time to realize that the colonel had been killed,
21621that the soldier shouting "Brothers!" was a prisoner, and that another
21622man had been bayoneted in the back before his eyes, for hardly had
21623he run into the redoubt before a thin, sallow-faced, perspiring man in
21624a blue uniform rushed on him sword in hand, shouting something.
21625Instinctively guarding against the shock--for they had been running
21626together at full speed before they saw one another--Pierre put out his
21627hands and seized the man (a French officer) by the shoulder with one
21628hand and by the throat with the other. The officer, dropping his
21629sword, seized Pierre by his collar.
21630
21631For some seconds they gazed with frightened eyes at one another's
21632unfamiliar faces and both were perplexed at what they had done and
21633what they were to do next. "Am I taken prisoner or have I taken him
21634prisoner?" each was thinking. But the French officer was evidently
21635more inclined to think he had been taken prisoner because Pierre's
21636strong hand, impelled by instinctive fear, squeezed his throat ever
21637tighter and tighter. The Frenchman was about to say something, when
21638just above their heads, terrible and low, a cannon ball whistled,
21639and it seemed to Pierre that the French officer's head had been torn
21640off, so swiftly had he ducked it.
21641
21642Pierre too bent his head and let his hands fall. Without further
21643thought as to who had taken whom prisoner, the Frenchman ran back to
21644the battery and Pierre ran down the slope stumbling over the dead
21645and wounded who, it seemed to him, caught at his feet. But before he
21646reached the foot of the knoll he was met by a dense crowd of Russian
21647soldiers who, stumbling, tripping up, and shouting, ran merrily and
21648wildly toward the battery. (This was the attack for which Ermolov
21649claimed the credit, declaring that only his courage and good luck made
21650such a feat possible: it was the attack in which he was said to have
21651thrown some St. George's Crosses he had in his pocket into the battery
21652for the first soldiers to take who got there.)
21653
21654The French who had occupied the battery fled, and our troops
21655shouting "Hurrah!" pursued them so far beyond the battery that it
21656was difficult to call them back.
21657
21658The prisoners were brought down from the battery and among them
21659was a wounded French general, whom the officers surrounded. Crowds
21660of wounded--some known to Pierre and some unknown--Russians and
21661French, with faces distorted by suffering, walked, crawled, and were
21662carried on stretchers from the battery. Pierre again went up onto
21663the knoll where he had spent over an hour, and of that family circle
21664which had received him as a member he did not find a single one. There
21665were many dead whom he did not know, but some he recognized. The young
21666officer still sat in the same way, bent double, in a pool of blood
21667at the edge of the earth wall. The red-faced man was still
21668twitching, but they did not carry him away.
21669
21670Pierre ran down the slope once more.
21671
21672"Now they will stop it, now they will be horrified at what they have
21673done!" he thought, aimlessly going toward a crowd of stretcher bearers
21674moving from the battlefield.
21675
21676But behind the veil of smoke the sun was still high, and in front
21677and especially to the left, near Semenovsk, something seemed to be
21678seething in the smoke, and the roar of cannon and musketry did not
21679diminish, but even increased to desperation like a man who,
21680straining himself, shrieks with all his remaining strength.
21681
21682
21683
21684
21685
21686CHAPTER XXXIII
21687
21688
21689The chief action of the battle of Borodino was fought within the
21690seven thousand feet between Borodino and Bagration's fleches. Beyond
21691that space there was, on the one side, a demonstration made by the
21692Russians with Uvarov's cavalry at midday, and on the other side,
21693beyond Utitsa, Poniatowski's collision with Tuchkov; but these two
21694were detached and feeble actions in comparison with what took place in
21695the center of the battlefield. On the field between Borodino and the
21696fleches, beside the wood, the chief action of the day took place on an
21697open space visible from both sides and was fought in the simplest
21698and most artless way.
21699
21700The battle began on both sides with a cannonade from several hundred
21701guns.
21702
21703Then when the whole field was covered with smoke, two divisions,
21704Campan's and Dessaix's, advanced from the French right, while
21705Murat's troops advanced on Borodino from their left.
21706
21707From the Shevardino Redoubt where Napoleon was standing the
21708fleches were two thirds of a mile away, and it was more than a mile as
21709the crow flies to Borodino, so that Napoleon could not see what was
21710happening there, especially as the smoke mingling with the mist hid
21711the whole locality. The soldiers of Dessaix's division advancing
21712against the fleches could only be seen till they had entered the
21713hollow that lay between them and the fleches. As soon as they had
21714descended into that hollow, the smoke of the guns and musketry on
21715the fleches grew so dense that it covered the whole approach on that
21716side of it. Through the smoke glimpses could be caught of something
21717black--probably men--and at times the glint of bayonets. But whether
21718they were moving or stationary, whether they were French or Russian,
21719could not be discovered from the Shevardino Redoubt.
21720
21721The sun had risen brightly and its slanting rays struck straight
21722into Napoleon's face as, shading his eyes with his hand, he looked
21723at the fleches. The smoke spread out before them, and at times it
21724looked as if the smoke were moving, at times as if the troops moved.
21725Sometimes shouts were heard through the firing, but it was
21726impossible to tell what was being done there.
21727
21728Napoleon, standing on the knoll, looked through a field glass, and
21729in its small circlet saw smoke and men, sometimes his own and
21730sometimes Russians, but when he looked again with the naked eye, he
21731could not tell where what he had seen was.
21732
21733He descended the knoll and began walking up and down before it.
21734
21735Occasionally he stopped, listened to the firing, and gazed
21736intently at the battlefield.
21737
21738But not only was it impossible to make out what was happening from
21739where he was standing down below, or from the knoll above on which
21740some of his generals had taken their stand, but even from the
21741fleches themselves--in which by this time there were now Russian and
21742now French soldiers, alternately or together, dead, wounded, alive,
21743frightened, or maddened--even at those fleches themselves it was
21744impossible to make out what was taking place. There for several
21745hours amid incessant cannon and musketry fire, now Russians were
21746seen alone, now Frenchmen alone, now infantry, and now cavalry: they
21747appeared, fired, fell, collided, not knowing what to do with one
21748another, screamed, and ran back again.
21749
21750From the battlefield adjutants he had sent out, and orderlies from
21751his marshals, kept galloping up to Napoleon with reports of the
21752progress of the action, but all these reports were false, both because
21753it was impossible in the heat of battle to say what was happening at
21754any given moment and because many of the adjutants did not go to the
21755actual place of conflict but reported what they had heard from others;
21756and also because while an adjutant was riding more than a mile to
21757Napoleon circumstances changed and the news he brought was already
21758becoming false. Thus an adjutant galloped up from Murat with tidings
21759that Borodino had been occupied and the bridge over the Kolocha was in
21760the hands of the French. The adjutant asked whether Napoleon wished
21761the troops to cross it? Napoleon gave orders that the troops should
21762form up on the farther side and wait. But before that order was given-
21763almost as soon in fact as the adjutant had left Borodino--the bridge
21764had been retaken by the Russians and burned, in the very skirmish at
21765which Pierre had been present at the beginning of the battle.
21766
21767An adjutant galloped up from the fleches with a pale and
21768frightened face and reported to Napoleon that their attack had been
21769repulsed, Campan wounded, and Davout killed; yet at the very time
21770the adjutant had been told that the French had been repulsed, the
21771fleches had in fact been recaptured by other French troops, and Davout
21772was alive and only slightly bruised. On the basis of these necessarily
21773untrustworthy reports Napoleon gave his orders, which had either
21774been executed before he gave them or could not be and were not
21775executed.
21776
21777The marshals and generals, who were nearer to the field of battle
21778but, like Napoleon, did not take part in the actual fighting and
21779only occasionally went within musket range, made their own
21780arrangements without asking Napoleon and issued orders where and in
21781what direction to fire and where cavalry should gallop and infantry
21782should run. But even their orders, like Napoleon's, were seldom
21783carried out, and then but partially. For the most part things happened
21784contrary to their orders. Soldiers ordered to advance ran back on
21785meeting grapeshot; soldiers ordered to remain where they were,
21786suddenly, seeing Russians unexpectedly before them, sometimes rushed
21787back and sometimes forward, and the cavalry dashed without orders in
21788pursuit of the flying Russians. In this way two cavalry regiments
21789galloped through the Semenovsk hollow and as soon as they reached
21790the top of the incline turned round and galloped full speed back
21791again. The infantry moved in the same way, sometimes running to
21792quite other places than those they were ordered to go to. All orders
21793as to where and when to move the guns, when to send infantry to
21794shoot or horsemen to ride down the Russian infantry--all such orders
21795were given by the officers on the spot nearest to the units concerned,
21796without asking either Ney, Davout, or Murat, much less Napoleon.
21797They did not fear getting into trouble for not fulfilling orders or
21798for acting on their own initiative, for in battle what is at stake
21799is what is dearest to man--his own life--and it sometimes seems that
21800safety lies in running back, sometimes in running forward; and these
21801men who were right in the heat of the battle acted according to the
21802mood of the moment. In reality, however, all these movements forward
21803and backward did not improve or alter the position of the troops.
21804All their rushing and galloping at one another did little harm, the
21805harm of disablement and death was caused by the balls and bullets that
21806flew over the fields on which these men were floundering about. As
21807soon as they left the place where the balls and bullets were flying
21808about, their superiors, located in the background, re-formed them
21809and brought them under discipline and under the influence of that
21810discipline led them back to the zone of fire, where under the
21811influence of fear of death they lost their discipline and rushed about
21812according to the chance promptings of the throng.
21813
21814
21815
21816
21817
21818CHAPTER XXXIV
21819
21820
21821Napoleon's generals--Davout, Ney, and Murat, who were near that
21822region of fire and sometimes even entered it--repeatedly led into it
21823huge masses of well-ordered troops. But contrary to what had always
21824happened in their former battles, instead of the news they expected of
21825the enemy's flight, these orderly masses returned thence as
21826disorganized and terrified mobs. The generals re-formed them, but
21827their numbers constantly decreased. In the middle of the day Murat
21828sent his adjutant to Napoleon to demand reinforcements.
21829
21830Napoleon sat at the foot of the knoll, drinking punch, when
21831Murat's adjutant galloped up with an assurance that the Russians would
21832be routed if His Majesty would let him have another division.
21833
21834"Reinforcements?" said Napoleon in a tone of stern surprise, looking
21835at the adjutant--a handsome lad with long black curls arranged like
21836Murat's own--as though he did not understand his words.
21837
21838"Reinforcements!" thought Napoleon to himself. "How can they need
21839reinforcements when they already have half the army directed against a
21840weak, unentrenched Russian wing?"
21841
21842"Tell the King of Naples," said he sternly, "that it is not noon
21843yet, and I don't yet see my chessboard clearly. Go!..."
21844
21845The handsome boy adjutant with the long hair sighed deeply without
21846removing his hand from his hat and galloped back to where men were
21847being slaughtered.
21848
21849Napoleon rose and having summoned Caulaincourt and Berthier began
21850talking to them about matters unconnected with the battle.
21851
21852In the midst of this conversation, which was beginning to interest
21853Napoleon, Berthier's eyes turned to look at a general with a suite,
21854who was galloping toward the knoll on a lathering horse. It was
21855Belliard. Having dismounted he went up to the Emperor with rapid
21856strides and in a loud voice began boldly demonstrating the necessity
21857of sending reinforcements. He swore on his honor that the Russians
21858were lost if the Emperor would give another division.
21859
21860Napoleon shrugged his shoulders and continued to pace up and down
21861without replying. Belliard began talking loudly and eagerly to the
21862generals of the suite around him.
21863
21864"You are very fiery, Belliard," said Napoleon, when he again came up
21865to the general. "In the heat of a battle it is easy to make a mistake.
21866Go and have another look and then come back to me."
21867
21868Before Belliard was out of sight, a messenger from another part of
21869the battlefield galloped up.
21870
21871"Now then, what do you want?" asked Napoleon in the tone of a man
21872irritated at being continually disturbed.
21873
21874"Sire, the prince..." began the adjutant.
21875
21876"Asks for reinforcements?" said Napoleon with an angry gesture.
21877
21878The adjutant bent his head affirmatively and began to report, but
21879the Emperor turned from him, took a couple of steps, stopped, came
21880back, and called Berthier.
21881
21882"We must give reserves," he said, moving his arms slightly apart.
21883"Who do you think should be sent there?" he asked of Berthier (whom he
21884subsequently termed "that gosling I have made an eagle").
21885
21886"Send Claparede's division, sire," replied Berthier, who knew all
21887the divisions regiments, and battalions by heart.
21888
21889Napoleon nodded assent.
21890
21891The adjutant galloped to Claparede's division and a few minutes
21892later the Young Guards stationed behind the knoll moved forward.
21893Napoleon gazed silently in that direction.
21894
21895"No!" he suddenly said to Berthier. "I can't send Claparede. Send
21896Friant's division."
21897
21898Though there was no advantage in sending Friant's division instead
21899of Claparede's, and even in obvious inconvenience and delay in
21900stopping Claparede and sending Friant now, the order was carried out
21901exactly. Napoleon did not notice that in regard to his army he was
21902playing the part of a doctor who hinders by his medicines--a role he
21903so justly understood and condemned.
21904
21905Friant's division disappeared as the others had done into the
21906smoke of the battlefield. From all sides adjutants continued to arrive
21907at a gallop and as if by agreement all said the same thing. They all
21908asked for reinforcements and all said that the Russians were holding
21909their positions and maintaining a hellish fire under which the
21910French army was melting away.
21911
21912Napoleon sat on a campstool, wrapped in thought.
21913
21914M. de Beausset, the man so fond of travel, having fasted since
21915morning, came up to the Emperor and ventured respectfully to suggest
21916lunch to His Majesty.
21917
21918"I hope I may now congratulate Your Majesty on a victory?" said he.
21919
21920Napoleon silently shook his head in negation. Assuming the
21921negation to refer only to the victory and not to the lunch, M. de
21922Beausset ventured with respectful jocularity to remark that there is
21923no reason for not having lunch when one can get it.
21924
21925"Go away..." exclaimed Napoleon suddenly and morosely, and turned
21926aside.
21927
21928A beatific smile of regret, repentance, and ecstasy beamed on M.
21929de Beausset's face and he glided away to the other generals.
21930
21931Napoleon was experiencing a feeling of depression like that of an
21932ever-lucky gambler who, after recklessly flinging money about and
21933always winning, suddenly just when he has calculated all the chances
21934of the game, finds that the more he considers his play the more surely
21935he loses.
21936
21937His troops were the same, his generals the same, the same
21938preparations had been made, the same dispositions, and the same
21939proclamation courte et energique, he himself was still the same: he
21940knew that and knew that he was now even more experienced and
21941skillful than before. Even the enemy was the same as at Austerlitz and
21942Friedland--yet the terrible stroke of his arm had supernaturally
21943become impotent.
21944
21945All the old methods that had been unfailingly crowned with
21946success: the concentration of batteries on one point, an attack by
21947reserves to break the enemy's line, and a cavalry attack by "the men
21948of iron," all these methods had already been employed, yet not only
21949was there no victory, but from all sides came the same news of
21950generals killed and wounded, of reinforcements needed, of the
21951impossibility of driving back the Russians, and of disorganization
21952among his own troops.
21953
21954Formerly, after he had given two or three orders and uttered a few
21955phrases, marshals and adjutants had come galloping up with
21956congratulations and happy faces, announcing the trophies taken, the
21957corps of prisoners, bundles of enemy eagles and standards, cannon
21958and stores, and Murat had only begged leave to loose the cavalry to
21959gather in the baggage wagons. So it had been at Lodi, Marengo, Arcola,
21960Jena, Austerlitz, Wagram, and so on. But now something strange was
21961happening to his troops.
21962
21963Despite news of the capture of the fleches, Napoleon saw that this
21964was not the same, not at all the same, as what had happened in his
21965former battles. He saw that what he was feeling was felt by all the
21966men about him experienced in the art of war. All their faces looked
21967dejected, and they all shunned one another's eyes--only a de
21968Beausset could fail to grasp the meaning of what was happening.
21969
21970But Napoleon with his long experience of war well knew the meaning
21971of a battle not gained by the attacking side in eight hours, after all
21972efforts had been expended. He knew that it was a lost battle and
21973that the least accident might now--with the fight balanced on such a
21974strained center--destroy him and his army.
21975
21976When he ran his mind over the whole of this strange Russian campaign
21977in which not one battle had been won, and in which not a flag, or
21978cannon, or army corps had been captured in two months, when he
21979looked at the concealed depression on the faces around him and heard
21980reports of the Russians still holding their ground--a terrible feeling
21981like a nightmare took possession of him, and all the unlucky accidents
21982that might destroy him occurred to his mind. The Russians might fall
21983on his left wing, might break through his center, he himself might
21984be killed by a stray cannon ball. All this was possible. In former
21985battles he had only considered the possibilities of success, but now
21986innumerable unlucky chances presented themselves, and he expected them
21987all. Yes, it was like a dream in which a man fancies that a ruffian is
21988coming to attack him, and raises his arm to strike that ruffian a
21989terrible blow which he knows should annihilate him, but then feels
21990that his arm drops powerless and limp like a rag, and the horror of
21991unavoidable destruction seizes him in his helplessness.
21992
21993The news that the Russians were attacking the left flank of the
21994French army aroused that horror in Napoleon. He sat silently on a
21995campstool below the knoll, with head bowed and elbows on his knees.
21996Berthier approached and suggested that they should ride along the line
21997to ascertain the position of affairs.
21998
21999"What? What do you say?" asked Napoleon. "Yes, tell them to bring me
22000my horse."
22001
22002He mounted and rode toward Semenovsk.
22003
22004Amid the powder smoke, slowly dispersing over the whole space
22005through which Napoleon rode, horses and men were lying in pools of
22006blood, singly or in heaps. Neither Napoleon nor any of his generals
22007had ever before seen such horrors or so many slain in such a small
22008area. The roar of guns, that had not ceased for ten hours, wearied the
22009ear and gave a peculiar significance to the spectacle, as music does
22010to tableaux vivants. Napoleon rode up the high ground at Semenovsk,
22011and through the smoke saw ranks of men in uniforms of a color
22012unfamiliar to him. They were Russians.
22013
22014The Russians stood in serried ranks behind Semenovsk village and its
22015knoll, and their guns boomed incessantly along their line and sent
22016forth clouds of smoke. It was no longer a battle: it was a
22017continuous slaughter which could be of no avail either to the French
22018or the Russians. Napoleon stopped his horse and again fell into the
22019reverie from which Berthier had aroused him. He could not stop what
22020was going on before him and around him and was supposed to be directed
22021by him and to depend on him, and from its lack of success this affair,
22022for the first time, seemed to him unnecessary and horrible.
22023
22024One of the generals rode up to Napoleon and ventured to offer to
22025lead the Old Guard into action. Ney and Berthier, standing near
22026Napoleon, exchanged looks and smiled contemptuously at this
22027general's senseless offer.
22028
22029Napoleon bowed his head and remained silent a long time.
22030
22031"At eight hundred leagues from France, I will not have my Guard
22032destroyed!" he said, and turning his horse rode back to Shevardino.
22033
22034
22035
22036
22037
22038CHAPTER XXXV
22039
22040
22041On the rug-covered bench where Pierre had seen him in the morning
22042sat Kutuzov, his gray head hanging, his heavy body relaxed. He gave no
22043orders, but only assented to or dissented from what others suggested.
22044
22045"Yes, yes, do that," he replied to various proposals. "Yes, yes: go,
22046dear boy, and have a look," he would say to one or another of those
22047about him; or, "No, don't, we'd better wait!" He listened to the
22048reports that were brought him and gave directions when his
22049subordinates demanded that of him; but when listening to the reports
22050it seemed as if he were not interested in the import of the words
22051spoken, but rather in something else--in the expression of face and
22052tone of voice of those who were reporting. By long years of military
22053experience he knew, and with the wisdom of age understood, that it
22054is impossible for one man to direct hundreds of thousands of others
22055struggling with death, and he knew that the result of a battle is
22056decided not by the orders of a commander in chief, nor the place where
22057the troops are stationed, nor by the number of cannon or of
22058slaughtered men, but by that intangible force called the spirit of the
22059army, and he watched this force and guided it in as far as that was in
22060his power.
22061
22062Kutuzov's general expression was one of concentrated quiet
22063attention, and his face wore a strained look as if he found it
22064difficult to master the fatigue of his old and feeble body.
22065
22066At eleven o'clock they brought him news that the fleches captured by
22067the French had been retaken, but that Prince Bagration was wounded.
22068Kutuzov groaned and swayed his head.
22069
22070"Ride over to Prince Peter Ivanovich and find out about it exactly,"
22071he said to one of his adjutants, and then turned to the Duke of
22072Wurttemberg who was standing behind him.
22073
22074"Will Your Highness please take command of the first army?"
22075
22076Soon after the duke's departure--before he could possibly have
22077reached Semenovsk--his adjutant came back from him and told Kutuzov
22078that the duke asked for more troops.
22079
22080Kutuzov made a grimace and sent an order to Dokhturov to take over
22081the command of the first army, and a request to the duke--whom he said
22082he could not spare at such an important moment--to return to him. When
22083they brought him news that Murat had been taken prisoner, and the
22084staff officers congratulated him, Kutuzov smiled.
22085
22086"Wait a little, gentlemen," said he. "The battle is won, and there
22087is nothing extraordinary in the capture of Murat. Still, it is
22088better to wait before we rejoice."
22089
22090But he sent an adjutant to take the news round the army.
22091
22092When Scherbinin came galloping from the left flank with news that
22093the French had captured the fleches and the village of Semenovsk,
22094Kutuzov, guessing by the sounds of the battle and by Scherbinin's
22095looks that the news was bad, rose as if to stretch his legs and,
22096taking Scherbinin's arm, led him aside.
22097
22098"Go, my dear fellow," he said to Ermolov, "and see whether something
22099can't be done."
22100
22101Kutuzov was in Gorki, near the center of the Russian position. The
22102attack directed by Napoleon against our left flank had been several
22103times repulsed. In the center the French had not got beyond
22104Borodino, and on their left flank Uvarov's cavalry had put the
22105French to flight.
22106
22107Toward three o'clock the French attacks ceased. On the faces of
22108all who came from the field of battle, and of those who stood around
22109him, Kutuzov noticed an expression of extreme tension. He was
22110satisfied with the day's success--a success exceeding his
22111expectations, but the old man's strength was failing him. Several
22112times his head dropped low as if it were falling and he dozed off.
22113Dinner was brought him.
22114
22115Adjutant General Wolzogen, the man who when riding past Prince
22116Andrew had said, "the war should be extended widely," and whom
22117Bagration so detested, rode up while Kutuzov was at dinner. Wolzogen
22118had come from Barclay de Tolly to report on the progress of affairs on
22119the left flank. The sagacious Barclay de Tolly, seeing crowds of
22120wounded men running back and the disordered rear of the army,
22121weighed all the circumstances, concluded that the battle was lost, and
22122sent his favorite officer to the commander in chief with that news.
22123
22124Kutuzov was chewing a piece of roast chicken with difficulty and
22125glanced at Wolzogen with eyes that brightened under their puckering
22126lids.
22127
22128Wolzogen, nonchalantly stretching his legs, approached Kutuzov
22129with a half-contemptuous smile on his lips, scarcely touching the peak
22130of his cap.
22131
22132He treated his Serene Highness with a somewhat affected
22133nonchalance intended to show that, as a highly trained military man,
22134he left it to Russians to make an idol of this useless old man, but
22135that he knew whom he was dealing with. "Der alte Herr" (as in their
22136own set the Germans called Kutuzov) "is making himself very
22137comfortable," thought Wolzogen, and looking severely at the dishes
22138in front of Kutuzov he began to report to "the old gentleman" the
22139position of affairs on the left flank as Barclay had ordered him to
22140and as he himself had seen and understood it.
22141
22142"All the points of our position are in the enemy's hands and we
22143cannot dislodge them for lack of troops, the men are running away
22144and it is impossible to stop them," he reported.
22145
22146Kutuzov ceased chewing and fixed an astonished gaze on Wolzogen,
22147as if not understand what was said to him. Wolzogen, noticing "the old
22148gentleman's" agitation, said with a smile:
22149
22150"I have not considered it right to conceal from your Serene Highness
22151what I have seen. The troops are in complete disorder..."
22152
22153"You have seen? You have seen?..." Kutuzov shouted frowning, and
22154rising quickly he went up to Wolzogen.
22155
22156"How... how dare you!..." he shouted, choking and making a
22157threatening gesture with his trembling arms: "How dare you, sir, say
22158that to me? You know nothing about it. Tell General Barclay from me
22159that his information is incorrect and that the real course of the
22160battle is better known to me, the commander in chief, than to him."
22161
22162Wolzogen was about to make a rejoinder, but Kutuzov interrupted him.
22163
22164"The enemy has been repulsed on the left and defeated on the right
22165flank. If you have seen amiss, sir, do not allow yourself to say
22166what you don't know! Be so good as to ride to General Barclay and
22167inform him of my firm intention to attack the enemy tomorrow," said
22168Kutuzov sternly.
22169
22170All were silent, and the only sound audible was the heavy
22171breathing of the panting old general.
22172
22173"They are repulsed everywhere, for which I thank God and our brave
22174army! The enemy is beaten, and tomorrow we shall drive him from the
22175sacred soil of Russia," said Kutuzov crossing himself, and he suddenly
22176sobbed as his eyes filled with tears.
22177
22178Wolzogen, shrugging his shoulders and curling his lips, stepped
22179silently aside, marveling at "the old gentleman's" conceited
22180stupidity.
22181
22182"Ah, here he is, my hero!" said Kutuzov to a portly, handsome,
22183dark-haired general who was just ascending the knoll.
22184
22185This was Raevski, who had spent the whole day at the most
22186important part of the field of Borodino.
22187
22188Raevski reported that the troops were firmly holding their ground
22189and that the French no longer ventured to attack.
22190
22191After hearing him, Kutuzov said in French:
22192
22193"Then you do not think, like some others, that we must retreat?"
22194
22195"On the contrary, your Highness, in indecisive actions it is
22196always the most stubborn who remain victors," replied Raevski, "and in
22197my opinion..."
22198
22199"Kaysarov!" Kutuzov called to his adjutant. "Sit down and write
22200out the order of the day for tomorrow. And you," he continued,
22201addressing another, "ride along the line and that tomorrow we attack."
22202
22203While Kutuzov was talking to Raevski and dictating the order of
22204the day, Wolzogen returned from Barclay and said that General
22205Barclay wished to have written confirmation of the order the field
22206marshal had given.
22207
22208Kutuzov, without looking at Wolzogen, gave directions for the
22209order to be written out which the former commander in chief, to
22210avoid personal responsibility, very judiciously wished to receive.
22211
22212And by means of that mysterious indefinable bond which maintains
22213throughout an army one and the same temper, known as "the spirit of
22214the army," and which constitutes the sinew of war, Kutuzov's words,
22215his order for a battle next day, immediately became known from one end
22216of the army to the other.
22217
22218It was far from being the same words or the same order that
22219reached the farthest links of that chain. The tales passing from mouth
22220to mouth at different ends of the army did not even resemble what
22221Kutuzov had said, but the sense of his words spread everywhere because
22222what he said was not the outcome of cunning calculations, but of a
22223feeling that lay in the commander in chief's soul as in that of
22224every Russian.
22225
22226And on learning that tomorrow they were to attack the enemy, and
22227hearing from the highest quarters a confirmation of what they wanted
22228to believe, the exhausted, wavering men felt comforted and inspirited.
22229
22230
22231
22232
22233
22234CHAPTER XXXVI
22235
22236
22237Prince Andrew's regiment was among the reserves which till after one
22238o'clock were stationed inactive behind Semenovsk, under heavy
22239artillery fire. Toward two o'clock the regiment, having already lost
22240more than two hundred men, was moved forward into a trampled
22241oatfield in the gap between Semenovsk and the Knoll Battery, where
22242thousands of men perished that day and on which an intense,
22243concentrated fire from several hundred enemy guns was directed between
22244one and two o'clock.
22245
22246Without moving from that spot or firing a single shot the regiment
22247here lost another third of its men. From in front and especially
22248from the right, in the unlifting smoke the guns boomed, and out of the
22249mysterious domain of smoke that overlay the whole space in front,
22250quick hissing cannon balls and slow whistling shells flew unceasingly.
22251At times, as if to allow them a respite, a quarter of an hour passed
22252during which the cannon balls and shells all flew overhead, but
22253sometimes several men were torn from the regiment in a minute and
22254the slain were continually being dragged away and the wounded
22255carried off.
22256
22257With each fresh blow less and less chance of life remained for those
22258not yet killed. The regiment stood in columns of battalion, three
22259hundred paces apart, but nevertheless the men were always in one and
22260the same mood. All alike were taciturn and morose. Talk was rarely
22261heard in the ranks, and it ceased altogether every time the thud of
22262a successful shot and the cry of "stretchers!" was heard. Most of
22263the time, by their officers' order, the men sat on the ground. One,
22264having taken off his shako, carefully loosened the gathers of its
22265lining and drew them tight again; another, rubbing some dry clay
22266between his palms, polished his bayonet; another fingered the strap
22267and pulled the buckle of his bandolier, while another smoothed and
22268refolded his leg bands and put his boots on again. Some built little
22269houses of the tufts in the plowed ground, or plaited baskets from
22270the straw in the cornfield. All seemed fully absorbed in these
22271pursuits. When men were killed or wounded, when rows of stretchers
22272went past, when some troops retreated, and when great masses of the
22273enemy came into view through the smoke, no one paid any attention to
22274these things. But when our artillery or cavalry advanced or some of
22275our infantry were seen to move forward, words of approval were heard
22276on all sides. But the liveliest attention was attracted by occurrences
22277quite apart from, and unconnected with, the battle. It was as if the
22278minds of these morally exhausted men found relief in everyday,
22279commonplace occurrences. A battery of artillery was passing in front
22280of the regiment. The horse of an ammunition cart put its leg over a
22281trace. "Hey, look at the trace horse!... Get her leg out! She'll
22282fall.... Ah, they don't see it!" came identical shouts from the
22283ranks all along the regiment. Another time, general attention was
22284attracted by a small brown dog, coming heaven knows whence, which
22285trotted in a preoccupied manner in front of the ranks with tail
22286stiffly erect till suddenly a shell fell close by, when it yelped,
22287tucked its tail between its legs, and darted aside. Yells and
22288shrieks of laughter rose from the whole regiment. But such
22289distractions lasted only a moment, and for eight hours the men had
22290been inactive, without food, in constant fear of death, and their pale
22291and gloomy faces grew ever paler and gloomier.
22292
22293Prince Andrew, pale and gloomy like everyone in the regiment,
22294paced up and down from the border of one patch to another, at the edge
22295of the meadow beside an oatfield, with head bowed and arms behind
22296his back. There was nothing for him to do and no orders to be given.
22297Everything went on of itself. The killed were dragged from the
22298front, the wounded carried away, and the ranks closed up. If any
22299soldiers ran to the rear they returned immediately and hastily. At
22300first Prince Andrew, considering it his duty to rouse the courage of
22301the men and to set them an example, walked about among the ranks,
22302but he soon became convinced that this was unnecessary and that
22303there was nothing he could teach them. All the powers of his soul,
22304as of every soldier there, were unconsciously bent on avoiding the
22305contemplation of the horrors of their situation. He walked along the
22306meadow, dragging his feet, rustling the grass, and gazing at the
22307dust that covered his boots; now he took big strides trying to keep to
22308the footprints left on the meadow by the mowers, then he counted his
22309steps, calculating how often he must walk from one strip to another to
22310walk a mile, then he stripped the flowers from the wormwood that
22311grew along a boundary rut, rubbed them in his palms, and smelled their
22312pungent, sweetly bitter scent. Nothing remained of the previous
22313day's thoughts. He thought of nothing. He listened with weary ears
22314to the ever-recurring sounds, distinguishing the whistle of flying
22315projectiles from the booming of the reports, glanced at the tiresomely
22316familiar faces of the men of the first battalion, and waited. "Here it
22317comes... this one is coming our way again!" he thought, listening to
22318an approaching whistle in the hidden region of smoke. "One, another!
22319Again! It has hit...." He stopped and looked at the ranks. "No, it has
22320gone over. But this one has hit!" And again he started trying to reach
22321the boundary strip in sixteen paces. A whizz and a thud! Five paces
22322from him, a cannon ball tore up the dry earth and disappeared. A chill
22323ran down his back. Again he glanced at the ranks. Probably many had
22324been hit--a large crowd had gathered near the second battalion.
22325
22326"Adjutant!" he shouted. "Order them not to crowd together."
22327
22328The adjutant, having obeyed this instruction, approached Prince
22329Andrew. From the other side a battalion commander rode up.
22330
22331"Look out!" came a frightened cry from a soldier and, like a bird
22332whirring in rapid flight and alighting on the ground, a shell
22333dropped with little noise within two steps of Prince Andrew and
22334close to the battalion commander's horse. The horse first,
22335regardless of whether it was right or wrong to show fear, snorted,
22336reared almost throwing the major, and galloped aside. The horse's
22337terror infected the men.
22338
22339"Lie down!" cried the adjutant, throwing himself flat on the ground.
22340
22341Prince Andrew hesitated. The smoking shell spun like a top between
22342him and the prostrate adjutant, near a wormwood plant between the
22343field and the meadow.
22344
22345"Can this be death?" thought Prince Andrew, looking with a quite
22346new, envious glance at the grass, the wormwood, and the streamlet of
22347smoke that curled up from the rotating black ball. "I cannot, I do not
22348wish to die. I love life--I love this grass, this earth, this air...."
22349He thought this, and at the same time remembered that people were
22350looking at him.
22351
22352"It's shameful, sir!" he said to the adjutant. "What..."
22353
22354He did not finish speaking. At one and the same moment came the
22355sound of an explosion, a whistle of splinters as from a breaking
22356window frame, a suffocating smell of powder, and Prince Andrew started
22357to one side, raising his arm, and fell on his chest. Several
22358officers ran up to him. From the right side of his abdomen, blood
22359was welling out making a large stain on the grass.
22360
22361The militiamen with stretchers who were called up stood behind the
22362officers. Prince Andrew lay on his chest with his face in the grass,
22363breathing heavily and noisily.
22364
22365"What are you waiting for? Come along!"
22366
22367The peasants went up and took him by his shoulders and legs, but
22368he moaned piteously and, exchanging looks, they set him down again.
22369
22370"Pick him up, lift him, it's all the same!" cried someone.
22371
22372They again took him by the shoulders and laid him on the stretcher.
22373
22374"Ah, God! My God! What is it? The stomach? That means death! My
22375God!"--voices among the officers were heard saying.
22376
22377"It flew a hair's breadth past my ear," said the adjutant.
22378
22379The peasants, adjusting the stretcher to their shoulders, started
22380hurriedly along the path they had trodden down, to the dressing
22381station.
22382
22383"Keep in step! Ah... those peasants!" shouted an officer, seizing by
22384their shoulders and checking the peasants, who were walking unevenly
22385and jolting the stretcher.
22386
22387"Get into step, Fedor... I say, Fedor!" said the foremost peasant.
22388
22389"Now that's right!" said the one behind joyfully, when he had got
22390into step.
22391
22392"Your excellency! Eh, Prince!" said the trembling voice of Timokhin,
22393who had run up and was looking down on the stretcher.
22394
22395Prince Andrew opened his eyes and looked up at the speaker from
22396the stretcher into which his head had sunk deep and again his
22397eyelids drooped.
22398
22399
22400The militiamen carried Prince Andrew to dressing station by the
22401wood, where wagons were stationed. The dressing station consisted of
22402three tents with flaps turned back, pitched at the edge of a birch
22403wood. In the wood, wagons and horses were standing. The horses were
22404eating oats from their movable troughs and sparrows flew down and
22405pecked the grains that fell. Some crows, scenting blood, flew among
22406the birch trees cawing impatiently. Around the tents, over more than
22407five acres, bloodstained men in various garbs stood, sat, or lay.
22408Around the wounded stood crowds of soldier stretcher-bearers with
22409dismal and attentive faces, whom the officers keeping order tried in
22410vain to drive from the spot. Disregarding the officers' orders, the
22411soldiers stood leaning against their stretchers and gazing intently,
22412as if trying to comprehend the difficult problem of what was taking
22413place before them. From the tents came now loud angry cries and now
22414plaintive groans. Occasionally dressers ran out to fetch water, or
22415to point out those who were to be brought in next. The wounded men
22416awaiting their turn outside the tents groaned, sighed, wept, screamed,
22417swore, or asked for vodka. Some were delirious. Prince Andrew's
22418bearers, stepping over the wounded who had not yet been bandaged, took
22419him, as a regimental commander, close up to one of the tents and there
22420stopped, awaiting instructions. Prince Andrew opened his eyes and
22421for a long time could not make out what was going on around him. He
22422remembered the meadow, the wormwood, the field, the whirling black
22423ball, and his sudden rush of passionate love of life. Two steps from
22424him, leaning against a branch and talking loudly and attracting
22425general attention, stood a tall, handsome, black-haired
22426noncommissioned officer with a bandaged head. He had been wounded in
22427the head and leg by bullets. Around him, eagerly listening to his
22428talk, a crowd of wounded and stretcher-bearers was gathered.
22429
22430"We kicked him out from there so that he chucked everything, we
22431grabbed the King himself!" cried he, looking around him with eyes that
22432glittered with fever. "If only reserves had come up just then, lads,
22433there wouldn't have been nothing left of him! I tell you surely..."
22434
22435Like all the others near the speaker, Prince Andrew looked at him
22436with shining eyes and experienced a sense of comfort. "But isn't it
22437all the same now?" thought he. "And what will be there, and what has
22438there been here? Why was I so reluctant to part with life? There was
22439something in this life I did not and do not understand."
22440
22441
22442
22443
22444
22445CHAPTER XXXVII
22446
22447
22448One of the doctors came out of the tent in a bloodstained apron,
22449holding a cigar between the thumb and little finger of one of his
22450small bloodstained hands, so as not to smear it. He raised his head
22451and looked about him, but above the level of the wounded men. He
22452evidently wanted a little respite. After turning his head from right
22453to left for some time, he sighed and looked down.
22454
22455"All right, immediately," he replied to a dresser who pointed Prince
22456Andrew out to him, and he told them to carry him into the tent.
22457
22458Murmurs arose among the wounded who were waiting.
22459
22460"It seems that even in the next world only the gentry are to have
22461a chance!" remarked one.
22462
22463Prince Andrew was carried in and laid on a table that had only
22464just been cleared and which a dresser was washing down. Prince
22465Andrew could not make out distinctly what was in that tent. The
22466pitiful groans from all sides and the torturing pain in his thigh,
22467stomach, and back distracted him. All he saw about him merged into a
22468general impression of naked, bleeding human bodies that seemed to fill
22469the whole of the low tent, as a few weeks previously, on that hot
22470August day, such bodies had filled the dirty pond beside the
22471Smolensk road. Yes, it was the same flesh, the same chair a canon, the
22472sight of which had even then filled him with horror, as by a
22473presentiment.
22474
22475There were three operating tables in the tent. Two were occupied,
22476and on the third they placed Prince Andrew. For a little while he
22477was left alone and involuntarily witnessed what was taking place on
22478the other two tables. On the nearest one sat a Tartar, probably a
22479Cossack, judging by the uniform thrown down beside him. Four
22480soldiers were holding him, and a spectacled doctor was cutting into
22481his muscular brown back.
22482
22483"Ooh, ooh, ooh!" grunted the Tartar, and suddenly lifting up his
22484swarthy snub-nosed face with its high cheekbones, and baring his white
22485teeth, he began to wriggle and twitch his body and utter piercing,
22486ringing, and prolonged yells. On the other table, round which many
22487people were crowding, a tall well-fed man lay on his back with his
22488head thrown back. His curly hair, its color, and the shape of his head
22489seemed strangely familiar to Prince Andrew. Several dressers were
22490pressing on his chest to hold him down. One large, white, plump leg
22491twitched rapidly all the time with a feverish tremor. The man was
22492sobbing and choking convulsively. Two doctors--one of whom was pale
22493and trembling--were silently doing something to this man's other, gory
22494leg. When he had finished with the Tartar, whom they covered with an
22495overcoat, the spectacled doctor came up to Prince Andrew, wiping his
22496hands.
22497
22498He glanced at Prince Andrew's face and quickly turned away.
22499
22500"Undress him! What are you waiting for?" he cried angrily to the
22501dressers.
22502
22503His very first, remotest recollections of childhood came back to
22504Prince Andrew's mind when the dresser with sleeves rolled up began
22505hastily to undo the buttons of his clothes and undressed him. The
22506doctor bent down over the wound, felt it, and sighed deeply. Then he
22507made a sign to someone, and the torturing pain in his abdomen caused
22508Prince Andrew to lose consciousness. When he came to himself the
22509splintered portions of his thighbone had been extracted, the torn
22510flesh cut away, and the wound bandaged. Water was being sprinkled on
22511his face. As soon as Prince Andrew opened his eyes, the doctor bent
22512over, kissed him silently on the lips, and hurried away.
22513
22514After the sufferings he had been enduring, Prince Andrew enjoyed a
22515blissful feeling such as he had not experienced for a long time. All
22516the best and happiest moments of his life--especially his earliest
22517childhood, when he used to be undressed and put to bed, and when
22518leaning over him his nurse sang him to sleep and he, burying his
22519head in the pillow, felt happy in the mere consciousness of life-
22520returned to his memory, not merely as something past but as
22521something present.
22522
22523The doctors were busily engaged with the wounded man the shape of
22524whose head seemed familiar to Prince Andrew: they were lifting him
22525up and trying to quiet him.
22526
22527"Show it to me.... Oh, ooh... Oh! Oh, ooh!" his frightened moans
22528could be heard, subdued by suffering and broken by sobs.
22529
22530Hearing those moans Prince Andrew wanted to weep.
22531Whether because he was dying without glory, or because he was sorry to
22532part with life, or because of those memories of a childhood that could
22533not return, or because he was suffering and others were suffering
22534and that man near him was groaning so piteously--he felt like
22535weeping childlike, kindly, and almost happy tears.
22536
22537The wounded man was shown his amputated leg stained with clotted
22538blood and with the boot still on.
22539
22540"Oh! Oh, ooh!" he sobbed, like a woman.
22541
22542The doctor who had been standing beside him, preventing Prince
22543Andrew from seeing his face, moved away.
22544
22545"My God! What is this? Why is he here?" said Prince Andrew to
22546himself.
22547
22548In the miserable, sobbing, enfeebled man whose leg had just been
22549amputated, he recognized Anatole Kuragin. Men were supporting him in
22550their arms and offering him a glass of water, but his trembling,
22551swollen lips could not grasp its rim. Anatole was sobbing painfully.
22552"Yes, it is he! Yes, that man is somehow closely and painfully
22553connected with me," thought Prince Andrew, not yet clearly grasping
22554what he saw before him. "What is the connection of that man with my
22555childhood and life?" he asked himself without finding an answer. And
22556suddenly a new unexpected memory from that realm of pure and loving
22557childhood presented itself to him. He remembered Natasha as he had
22558seen her for the first time at the ball in 1810, with her slender neck
22559and arms and with a frightened happy face ready for rapture, and
22560love and tenderness for her, stronger and more vivid than ever,
22561awoke in his soul. He now remembered the connection that existed
22562between himself and this man who was dimly gazing at him through tears
22563that filled his swollen eyes. He remembered everything, and ecstatic
22564pity and love for that man overflowed his happy heart.
22565
22566Prince Andrew could no longer restrain himself and wept tender
22567loving tears for his fellow men, for himself, and for his own and
22568their errors.
22569
22570"Compassion, love of our brothers, for those who love us and for
22571those who hate us, love of our enemies; yes, that love which God
22572preached on earth and which Princess Mary taught me and I did not
22573understand--that is what made me sorry to part with life, that is what
22574remained for me had I lived. But now it is too late. I know it!"
22575
22576
22577
22578
22579
22580CHAPTER XXXVIII
22581
22582
22583The terrible spectacle of the battlefield covered with dead and
22584wounded, together with the heaviness of his head and the news that
22585some twenty generals he knew personally had been killed or wounded,
22586and the consciousness of the impotence of his once mighty arm,
22587produced an unexpected impression on Napoleon who usually liked to
22588look at the killed and wounded, thereby, he considered, testing his
22589strength of mind. This day the horrible appearance of the
22590battlefield overcame that strength of mind which he thought
22591constituted his merit and his greatness. He rode hurriedly from the
22592battlefield and returned to the Shevardino knoll, where he sat on
22593his campstool, his sallow face swollen and heavy, his eyes dim, his
22594nose red, and his voice hoarse, involuntarily listening, with downcast
22595eyes, to the sounds of firing. With painful dejection he awaited the
22596end of this action, in which he regarded himself as a participant
22597and which he was unable to arrest. A personal, human feeling for a
22598brief moment got the better of the artificial phantasm of life he
22599had served so long. He felt in his own person the sufferings and death
22600he had witnessed on the battlefield. The heaviness of his head and
22601chest reminded him of the possibility of suffering and death for
22602himself. At that moment he did not desire Moscow, or victory, or glory
22603(what need had he for any more glory?). The one thing he wished for
22604was rest, tranquillity, and freedom. But when he had been on the
22605Semenovsk heights the artillery commander had proposed to him to bring
22606several batteries of artillery up to those heights to strengthen the
22607fire on the Russian troops crowded in front of Knyazkovo. Napoleon had
22608assented and had given orders that news should be brought to him of
22609the effect those batteries produced.
22610
22611An adjutant came now to inform him that the fire of two hundred guns
22612had been concentrated on the Russians, as he had ordered, but that
22613they still held their ground.
22614
22615"Our fire is mowing them down by rows, but still they hold on," said
22616the adjutant.
22617
22618"They want more!..." said Napoleon in a hoarse voice.
22619
22620"Sire?" asked the adjutant who had not heard the remark.
22621
22622"They want more!" croaked Napoleon frowning. "Let them have it!"
22623
22624Even before he gave that order the thing he did not desire, and
22625for which he gave the order only because he thought it was expected of
22626him, was being done. And he fell back into that artificial realm of
22627imaginary greatness, and again--as a horse walking a treadmill
22628thinks it is doing something for itself--he submissively fulfilled the
22629cruel, sad, gloomy, and inhuman role predestined for him.
22630
22631And not for that day and hour alone were the mind and conscience
22632darkened of this man on whom the responsibility for what was happening
22633lay more than on all the others who took part in it. Never to the
22634end of his life could he understand goodness, beauty, or truth, or the
22635significance of his actions which were too contrary to goodness and
22636truth, too remote from everything human, for him ever to be able to
22637grasp their meaning. He could not disavow his actions, belauded as
22638they were by half the world, and so he had to repudiate truth,
22639goodness, and all humanity.
22640
22641Not only on that day, as he rode over the battlefield strewn with
22642men killed and maimed (by his will as he believed), did he reckon as
22643he looked at them how many Russians there were for each Frenchman and,
22644deceiving himself, find reason for rejoicing in the calculation that
22645there were five Russians for every Frenchman. Not on that day alone
22646did he write in a letter to Paris that "the battle field was
22647superb," because fifty thousand corpses lay there, but even on the
22648island of St. Helena in the peaceful solitude where he said he
22649intended to devote his leisure to an account of the great deeds he had
22650done, he wrote:
22651
22652
22653The Russian war should have been the most popular war of modern
22654times: it was a war of good sense, for real interests, for the
22655tranquillity and security of all; it was purely pacific and
22656conservative.
22657
22658It was a war for a great cause, the end of uncertainties and the
22659beginning of security. A new horizon and new labors were opening
22660out, full of well-being and prosperity for all. The European system
22661was already founded; all that remained was to organize it.
22662
22663Satisfied on these great points and with tranquility everywhere, I
22664too should have had my Congress and my Holy Alliance. Those ideas were
22665stolen from me. In that reunion of great sovereigns we should have
22666discussed our interests like one family, and have rendered account
22667to the peoples as clerk to master.
22668
22669Europe would in this way soon have been, in fact, but one people,
22670and anyone who traveled anywhere would have found himself always in
22671the common fatherland. I should have demanded the freedom of all
22672navigable rivers for everybody, that the seas should be common to all,
22673and that the great standing armies should be reduced henceforth to
22674mere guards for the sovereigns.
22675
22676On returning to France, to the bosom of the great, strong,
22677magnificent, peaceful, and glorious fatherland, I should have
22678proclaimed her frontiers immutable; all future wars purely
22679defensive, all aggrandizement antinational. I should have associated
22680my son in the Empire; my dictatorship would have been finished, and
22681his constitutional reign would have begun.
22682
22683Paris would have been the capital of the world, and the French the
22684envy of the nations!
22685
22686My leisure then, and my old age, would have been devoted, in company
22687with the Empress and during the royal apprenticeship of my son, to
22688leisurely visiting, with our own horses and like a true country
22689couple, every corner of the Empire, receiving complaints, redressing
22690wrongs, and scattering public buildings and benefactions on all
22691sides and everywhere.
22692
22693
22694Napoleon, predestined by Providence for the gloomy role of
22695executioner of the peoples, assured himself that the aim of his
22696actions had been the peoples' welfare and that he could control the
22697fate of millions and by the employment of power confer benefactions.
22698
22699
22700"Of four hundred thousand who crossed the Vistula," he wrote further
22701of the Russian war, "half were Austrians, Prussians, Saxons, Poles,
22702Bavarians, Wurttembergers, Mecklenburgers, Spaniards, Italians, and
22703Neapolitans. The Imperial army, strictly speaking, was one third
22704composed of Dutch, Belgians, men from the borders of the Rhine,
22705Piedmontese, Swiss, Genevese, Tuscans, Romans, inhabitants of the
22706Thirty-second Military Division, of Bremen, of Hamburg, and so on:
22707it included scarcely a hundred and forty thousand who spoke French.
22708The Russian expedition actually cost France less than fifty thousand
22709men; the Russian army in its retreat from Vilna to Moscow lost in
22710the various battles four times more men than the French army; the
22711burning of Moscow cost the lives of a hundred thousand Russians who
22712died of cold and want in the woods; finally, in its march from
22713Moscow to the Oder the Russian army also suffered from the severity of
22714the season; so that by the the time it reached Vilna it numbered
22715only fifty thousand, and at Kalisch less than eighteen thousand."
22716
22717
22718He imagined that the war with Russia came about by his will, and the
22719horrors that occurred did not stagger his soul. He boldly took the
22720whole responsibility for what happened, and his darkened mind found
22721justification in the belief that among the hundreds of thousands who
22722perished there were fewer Frenchmen than Hessians and Bavarians.
22723
22724
22725
22726
22727
22728CHAPTER XXXIX
22729
22730
22731Several tens of thousands of the slain lay in diverse postures and
22732various uniforms on the fields and meadows belonging to the Davydov
22733family and to the crown serfs--those fields and meadows where for
22734hundreds of years the peasants of Borodino, Gorki, Shevardino, and
22735Semenovsk had reaped their harvests and pastured their cattle. At
22736the dressing stations the grass and earth were soaked with blood for a
22737space of some three acres around. Crowds of men of various arms,
22738wounded and unwounded, with frightened faces, dragged themselves
22739back to Mozhaysk from the one army and back to Valuevo from the other.
22740Other crowds, exhausted and hungry, went forward led by their
22741officers. Others held their ground and continued to fire.
22742
22743Over the whole field, previously so gaily beautiful with the glitter
22744of bayonets and cloudlets of smoke in the morning sun, there now
22745spread a mist of damp and smoke and a strange acid smell of
22746saltpeter and blood. Clouds gathered and drops of rain began to fall
22747on the dead and wounded, on the frightened, exhausted, and
22748hesitating men, as if to say: "Enough, men! Enough! Cease... bethink
22749yourselves! What are you doing?"
22750
22751To the men of both sides alike, worn out by want of food and rest,
22752it began equally to appear doubtful whether they should continue to
22753slaughter one another; all the faces expressed hesitation, and the
22754question arose in every soul: "For what, for whom, must I kill and
22755be killed?... You may go and kill whom you please, but I don't want to
22756do so anymore!" By evening this thought had ripened in every soul.
22757At any moment these men might have been seized with horror at what
22758they were doing and might have thrown up everything and run away
22759anywhere.
22760
22761But though toward the end of the battle the men felt all the
22762horror of what they were doing, though they would have been glad to
22763leave off, some incomprehensible, mysterious power continued to
22764control them, and they still brought up the charges, loaded, aimed,
22765and applied the match, though only one artilleryman survived out of
22766every three, and though they stumbled and panted with fatigue,
22767perspiring and stained with blood and powder. The cannon balls flew
22768just as swiftly and cruelly from both sides, crushing human bodies,
22769and that terrible work which was not done by the will of a man but
22770at the will of Him who governs men and worlds continued.
22771
22772Anyone looking at the disorganized rear of the Russian army would
22773have said that, if only the French made one more slight effort, it
22774would disappear; and anyone looking at the rear of the French army
22775would have said that the Russians need only make one more slight
22776effort and the French would be destroyed. But neither the French nor
22777the Russians made that effort, and the flame of battle burned slowly
22778out.
22779
22780The Russians did not make that effort because they were not
22781attacking the French. At the beginning of the battle they stood
22782blocking the way to Moscow and they still did so at the end of the
22783battle as at the beginning. But even had the aim of the Russians
22784been to drive the French from their positions, they could not have
22785made this last effort, for all the Russian troops had been broken
22786up, there was no part of the Russian army that had not suffered in the
22787battle, and though still holding their positions they had lost ONE
22788HALF of their army.
22789
22790The French, with the memory of all their former victories during
22791fifteen years, with the assurance of Napoleon's invincibility, with
22792the consciousness that they had captured part of the battlefield and
22793had lost only a quarter of their men and still had their Guards
22794intact, twenty thousand strong, might easily have made that effort.
22795The French had attacked the Russian army in order to drive it from its
22796position ought to have made that effort, for as long as the Russians
22797continued to block the road to Moscow as before, the aim of the French
22798had not been attained and all their efforts and losses were in vain.
22799But the French did not make that effort. Some historians say that
22800Napoleon need only have used his Old Guards, who were intact, and
22801the battle would have been won. To speak of what would have happened
22802had Napoleon sent his Guards is like talking of what would happen if
22803autumn became spring. It could not be. Napoleon did not give his
22804Guards, not because he did not want to, but because it could not be
22805done. All the generals, officers, and soldiers of the French army knew
22806it could not be done, because the flagging spirit of the troops
22807would not permit it.
22808
22809It was not Napoleon alone who had experienced that nightmare feeling
22810of the mighty arm being stricken powerless, but all the generals and
22811soldiers of his army whether they had taken part in the battle or not,
22812after all their experience of previous battles--when after one tenth
22813of such efforts the enemy had fled--experienced a similar feeling of
22814terror before an enemy who, after losing HALF his men, stood as
22815threateningly at the end as at the beginning of the battle. The
22816moral force of the attacking French army was exhausted. Not that
22817sort of victory which is defined by the capture of pieces of
22818material fastened to sticks, called standards, and of the ground on
22819which the troops had stood and were standing, but a moral victory that
22820convinces the enemy of the moral superiority of his opponent and of
22821his own impotence was gained by the Russians at Borodino. The French
22822invaders, like an infuriated animal that has in its onslaught received
22823a mortal wound, felt that they were perishing, but could not stop, any
22824more than the Russian army, weaker by one half, could help swerving.
22825By impetus gained, the French army was still able to roll forward to
22826Moscow, but there, without further effort on the part of the Russians,
22827it had to perish, bleeding from the mortal wound it had received at
22828Borodino. The direct consequence of the battle of Borodino was
22829Napoleon's senseless flight from Moscow, his retreat along the old
22830Smolensk road, the destruction of the invading army of five hundred
22831thousand men, and the downfall of Napoleonic France, on which at
22832Borodino for the first time the hand of an opponent of stronger spirit
22833had been laid.
22834
22835
22836
22837
22838
22839BOOK ELEVEN: 1812
22840
22841
22842
22843
22844
22845CHAPTER I
22846
22847
22848Absolute continuity of motion is not comprehensible to the human
22849mind. Laws of motion of any kind become comprehensible to man only
22850when he examines arbitrarily selected elements of that motion; but
22851at the same time, a large proportion of human error comes from the
22852arbitrary division of continuous motion into discontinuous elements.
22853There is a well known, so-called sophism of the ancients consisting in
22854this, that Achilles could never catch up with a tortoise he was
22855following, in spite of the fact that he traveled ten times as fast
22856as the tortoise. By the time Achilles has covered the distance that
22857separated him from the tortoise, the tortoise has covered one tenth of
22858that distance ahead of him: when Achilles has covered that tenth,
22859the tortoise has covered another one hundredth, and so on forever.
22860This problem seemed to the ancients insoluble. The absurd answer (that
22861Achilles could never overtake the tortoise) resulted from this: that
22862motion was arbitrarily divided into discontinuous elements, whereas
22863the motion both of Achilles and of the tortoise was continuous.
22864
22865By adopting smaller and smaller elements of motion we only
22866approach a solution of the problem, but never reach it. Only when we
22867have admitted the conception of the infinitely small, and the
22868resulting geometrical progression with a common ratio of one tenth,
22869and have found the sum of this progression to infinity, do we reach
22870a solution of the problem.
22871
22872A modern branch of mathematics having achieved the art of dealing
22873with the infinitely small can now yield solutions in other more
22874complex problems of motion which used to appear insoluble.
22875
22876This modern branch of mathematics, unknown to the ancients, when
22877dealing with problems of motion admits the conception of the
22878infinitely small, and so conforms to the chief condition of motion
22879(absolute continuity) and thereby corrects the inevitable error
22880which the human mind cannot avoid when it deals with separate elements
22881of motion instead of examining continuous motion.
22882
22883In seeking the laws of historical movement just the same thing
22884happens. The movement of humanity, arising as it does from innumerable
22885arbitrary human wills, is continuous.
22886
22887To understand the laws of this continuous movement is the aim of
22888history. But to arrive at these laws, resulting from the sum of all
22889those human wills, man's mind postulates arbitrary and disconnected
22890units. The first method of history is to take an arbitrarily
22891selected series of continuous events and examine it apart from others,
22892though there is and can be no beginning to any event, for one event
22893always flows uninterruptedly from another.
22894
22895The second method is to consider the actions of some one man--a king
22896or a commander--as equivalent to the sum of many individual wills;
22897whereas the sum of individual wills is never expressed by the activity
22898of a single historic personage.
22899
22900Historical science in its endeavor to draw nearer to truth
22901continually takes smaller and smaller units for examination. But
22902however small the units it takes, we feel that to take any unit
22903disconnected from others, or to assume a beginning of any
22904phenomenon, or to say that the will of many men is expressed by the
22905actions of any one historic personage, is in itself false.
22906
22907It needs no critical exertion to reduce utterly to dust any
22908deductions drawn from history. It is merely necessary to select some
22909larger or smaller unit as the subject of observation--as criticism has
22910every right to do, seeing that whatever unit history observes must
22911always be arbitrarily selected.
22912
22913Only by taking infinitesimally small units for observation (the
22914differential of history, that is, the individual tendencies of men)
22915and attaining to the art of integrating them (that is, finding the sum
22916of these infinitesimals) can we hope to arrive at the laws of history.
22917
22918The first fifteen years of the nineteenth century in Europe
22919present an extraordinary movement of millions of people. Men leave
22920their customary pursuits, hasten from one side of Europe to the other,
22921plunder and slaughter one another, triumph and are plunged in despair,
22922and for some years the whole course of life is altered and presents an
22923intensive movement which first increases and then slackens. What was
22924the cause of this movement, by what laws was it governed? asks the
22925mind of man.
22926
22927The historians, replying to this question, lay before us the sayings
22928and doings of a few dozen men in a building in the city of Paris,
22929calling these sayings and doings "the Revolution"; then they give a
22930detailed biography of Napoleon and of certain people favorable or
22931hostile to him; tell of the influence some of these people had on
22932others, and say: that is why this movement took place and those are
22933its laws.
22934
22935But the mind of man not only refuses to believe this explanation,
22936but plainly says that this method of explanation is fallacious,
22937because in it a weaker phenomenon is taken as the cause of a stronger.
22938The sum of human wills produced the Revolution and Napoleon, and
22939only the sum of those wills first tolerated and then destroyed them.
22940
22941"But every time there have been conquests there have been
22942conquerors; every time there has been a revolution in any state
22943there have been great men," says history. And, indeed, human reason
22944replies: every time conquerors appear there have been wars, but this
22945does not prove that the conquerors caused the wars and that it is
22946possible to find the laws of a war in the personal activity of a
22947single man. Whenever I look at my watch and its hands point to ten,
22948I hear the bells of the neighboring church; but because the bells
22949begin to ring when the hands of the clock reach ten, I have no right
22950to assume that the movement of the bells is caused by the position
22951of the hands of the watch.
22952
22953Whenever I see the movement of a locomotive I hear the whistle and
22954see the valves opening and wheels turning; but I have no right to
22955conclude that the whistling and the turning of wheels are the cause of
22956the movement of the engine.
22957
22958The peasants say that a cold wind blows in late spring because the
22959oaks are budding, and really every spring cold winds do blow when
22960the oak is budding. But though I do not know what causes the cold
22961winds to blow when the oak buds unfold, I cannot agree with the
22962peasants that the unfolding of the oak buds is the cause of the cold
22963wind, for the force of the wind is beyond the influence of the buds. I
22964see only a coincidence of occurrences such as happens with all the
22965phenomena of life, and I see that however much and however carefully I
22966observe the hands of the watch, and the valves and wheels of the
22967engine, and the oak, I shall not discover the cause of the bells
22968ringing, the engine moving, or of the winds of spring. To that I
22969must entirely change my point of view and study the laws of the
22970movement of steam, of the bells, and of the wind. History must do
22971the same. And attempts in this direction have already been made.
22972
22973To study the laws of history we must completely change the subject
22974of our observation, must leave aside kings, ministers, and generals,
22975and the common, infinitesimally small elements by which the masses are
22976moved. No one can say in how far it is possible for man to advance
22977in this way toward an understanding of the laws of history; but it
22978is evident that only along that path does the possibility of
22979discovering the laws of history lie, and that as yet not a millionth
22980part as much mental effort has been applied in this direction by
22981historians as has been devoted to describing the actions of various
22982kings, commanders, and ministers and propounding the historians' own
22983reflections concerning these actions.
22984
22985
22986
22987
22988
22989CHAPTER II
22990
22991
22992The forces of a dozen European nations burst into Russia. The
22993Russian army and people avoided a collision till Smolensk was reached,
22994and again from Smolensk to Borodino. The French army pushed on to
22995Moscow, its goal, its impetus ever increasing as it neared its aim,
22996just as the velocity of a falling body increases as it approaches
22997the earth. Behind it were seven hundred miles of hunger-stricken,
22998hostile country; ahead were a few dozen miles separating it from its
22999goal. Every soldier in Napoleon's army felt this and the invasion
23000moved on by its own momentum.
23001
23002The more the Russian army retreated the more fiercely a spirit of
23003hatred of the enemy flared up, and while it retreated the army
23004increased and consolidated. At Borodino a collision took place.
23005Neither army was broken up, but the Russian army retreated immediately
23006after the collision as inevitably as a ball recoils after colliding
23007with another having a greater momentum, and with equal inevitability
23008the ball of invasion that had advanced with such momentum rolled on
23009for some distance, though the collision had deprived it of all its
23010force.
23011
23012The Russians retreated eighty miles--to beyond Moscow--and the
23013French reached Moscow and there came to a standstill. For five weeks
23014after that there was not a single battle. The French did not move.
23015As a bleeding, mortally wounded animal licks its wounds, they remained
23016inert in Moscow for five weeks, and then suddenly, with no fresh
23017reason, fled back: they made a dash for the Kaluga road, and (after
23018a victory--for at Malo-Yaroslavets the field of conflict again
23019remained theirs) without undertaking a single serious battle, they
23020fled still more rapidly back to Smolensk, beyond Smolensk, beyond
23021the Berezina, beyond Vilna, and farther still.
23022
23023On the evening of the twenty-sixth of August, Kutuzov and the
23024whole Russian army were convinced that the battle of Borodino was a
23025victory. Kutuzov reported so to the Emperor. He gave orders to prepare
23026for a fresh conflict to finish the enemy and did this not to deceive
23027anyone, but because he knew that the enemy was beaten, as everyone who
23028had taken part in the battle knew it.
23029
23030But all that evening and next day reports came in one after
23031another of unheard-of losses, of the loss of half the army, and a
23032fresh battle proved physically impossible.
23033
23034It was impossible to give battle before information had been
23035collected, the wounded gathered in, the supplies of ammunition
23036replenished, the slain reckoned up, new officers appointed to
23037replace those who had been killed, and before the men had had food and
23038sleep. And meanwhile, the very next morning after the battle, the
23039French army advanced of itself upon the Russians, carried forward by
23040the force of its own momentum now seemingly increased in inverse
23041proportion to the square of the distance from its aim. Kutuzov's
23042wish was to attack next day, and the whole army desired to do so.
23043But to make an attack the wish to do so is not sufficient, there
23044must also be a possibility of doing it, and that possibility did not
23045exist. It was impossible not to retreat a day's march, and then in the
23046same way it was impossible not to retreat another and a third day's
23047march, and at last, on the first of September when the army drew
23048near Moscow--despite the strength of the feeling that had arisen in
23049all ranks--the force of circumstances compelled it to retire beyond
23050Moscow. And the troops retired one more, last, day's march, and
23051abandoned Moscow to the enemy.
23052
23053For people accustomed to think that plans of campaign and battles
23054are made by generals--as any one of us sitting over a map in his study
23055may imagine how he would have arranged things in this or that
23056battle--the questions present themselves: Why did Kutuzov during the
23057retreat not do this or that? Why did he not take up a position
23058before reaching Fili? Why did he not retire at once by the Kaluga
23059road, abandoning Moscow? and so on. People accustomed to think in that
23060way forget, or do not know, the inevitable conditions which always
23061limit the activities of any commander in chief. The activity of a
23062commander in chief does not all resemble the activity we imagine to
23063ourselves when we sit at case in our studies examining some campaign
23064on the map, with a certain number of troops on this and that side in a
23065certain known locality, and begin our plans from some given moment.
23066A commander in chief is never dealing with the beginning of any event-
23067the position from which we always contemplate it. The commander in
23068chief is always in the midst of a series of shifting events and so
23069he never can at any moment consider the whole import of an event
23070that is occurring. Moment by moment the event is imperceptibly shaping
23071itself, and at every moment of this continuous, uninterrupted
23072shaping of events the commander in chief is in the midst of a most
23073complex play of intrigues, worries, contingencies, authorities,
23074projects, counsels, threats, and deceptions and is continually obliged
23075to reply to innumerable questions addressed to him, which constantly
23076conflict with one another.
23077
23078Learned military authorities quite seriously tell us that Kutuzov
23079should have moved his army to the Kaluga road long before reaching
23080Fili, and that somebody actually submitted such a proposal to him. But
23081a commander in chief, especially at a difficult moment, has always
23082before him not one proposal but dozens simultaneously. And all these
23083proposals, based on strategics and tactics, contradict each other.
23084
23085A commander in chief's business, it would seem, is simply to
23086choose one of these projects. But even that he cannot do. Events and
23087time do not wait. For instance, on the twenty-eighth it is suggested
23088to him to cross to the Kaluga road, but just then an adjutant
23089gallops up from Miloradovich asking whether he is to engage the French
23090or retire. An order must be given him at once, that instant. And the
23091order to retreat carries us past the turn to the Kaluga road. And
23092after the adjutant comes the commissary general asking where the
23093stores are to be taken, and the chief of the hospitals asks where
23094the wounded are to go, and a courier from Petersburg brings a letter
23095from the sovereign which does not admit of the possibility of
23096abandoning Moscow, and the commander in chief's rival, the man who
23097is undermining him (and there are always not merely one but several
23098such), presents a new project diametrically opposed to that of turning
23099to the Kaluga road, and the commander in chief himself needs sleep and
23100refreshment to maintain his energy and a respectable general who has
23101been overlooked in the distribution of rewards comes to complain,
23102and the inhabitants of the district pray to be defended, and an
23103officer sent to inspect the locality comes in and gives a report quite
23104contrary to what was said by the officer previously sent; and a spy, a
23105prisoner, and a general who has been on reconnaissance, all describe
23106the position of the enemy's army differently. People accustomed to
23107misunderstand or to forget these inevitable conditions of a
23108commander in chief's actions describe to us, for instance, the
23109position of the army at Fili and assume that the commander in chief
23110could, on the first of September, quite freely decide whether to
23111abandon Moscow or defend it; whereas, with the Russian army less
23112than four miles from Moscow, no such question existed. When had that
23113question been settled? At Drissa and at Smolensk and most palpably
23114of all on the twenty-fourth of August at Shevardino and on the
23115twenty-sixth at Borodino, and each day and hour and minute of the
23116retreat from Borodino to Fili.
23117
23118
23119
23120
23121
23122CHAPTER III
23123
23124
23125When Ermolov, having been sent by Kutuzov to inspect the position,
23126told the field marshal that it was impossible to fight there before
23127Moscow and that they must retreat, Kutuzov looked at him in silence.
23128
23129"Give me your hand," said he and, turning it over so as to feel
23130the pulse, added: "You are not well, my dear fellow. Think what you
23131are saying!"
23132
23133Kutuzov could not yet admit the possibility of retreating beyond
23134Moscow without a battle.
23135
23136On the Poklonny Hill, four miles from the Dorogomilov gate of
23137Moscow, Kutuzov got out of his carriage and sat down on a bench by the
23138roadside. A great crowd of generals gathered round him, and Count
23139Rostopchin, who had come out from Moscow, joined them. This
23140brilliant company separated into several groups who all discussed
23141the advantages and disadvantages of the position, the state of the
23142army, the plans suggested, the situation of Moscow, and military
23143questions generally. Though they had not been summoned for the
23144purpose, and though it was not so called, they all felt that this
23145was really a council of war. The conversations all dealt with public
23146questions. If anyone gave or asked for personal news, it was done in a
23147whisper and they immediately reverted to general matters. No jokes, or
23148laughter, or smiles even, were seen among all these men. They
23149evidently all made an effort to hold themselves at the height the
23150situation demanded. And all these groups, while talking among
23151themselves, tried to keep near the commander in chief (whose bench
23152formed the center of the gathering) and to speak so that he might
23153overhear them. The commander in chief listened to what was being
23154said and sometimes asked them to repeat their remarks, but did not
23155himself take part in the conversations or express any opinion. After
23156hearing what was being said by one or other of these groups he
23157generally turned away with an air of disappointment, as though they
23158were not speaking of anything he wished to hear. Some discussed the
23159position that had been chosen, criticizing not the position itself
23160so much as the mental capacity of those who had chosen it. Others
23161argued that a mistake had been made earlier and that a battle should
23162have been fought two days before. Others again spoke of the battle
23163of Salamanca, which was described by Crosart, a newly arrived
23164Frenchman in a Spanish uniform. (This Frenchman and one of the
23165German princes serving with the Russian army were discussing the siege
23166of Saragossa and considering the possibility of defending Moscow in
23167a similar manner.) Count Rostopchin was telling a fourth group that he
23168was prepared to die with the city train bands under the walls of the
23169capital, but that he still could not help regretting having been
23170left in ignorance of what was happening, and that had he known it
23171sooner things would have been different.... A fifth group,
23172displaying the profundity of their strategic perceptions, discussed
23173the direction the troops would now have to take. A sixth group was
23174talking absolute nonsense. Kutuzov's expression grew more and more
23175preoccupied and gloomy. From all this talk he saw only one thing: that
23176to defend Moscow was a physical impossibility in the full meaning of
23177those words, that is to say, so utterly impossible that if any
23178senseless commander were to give orders to fight, confusion would
23179result but the battle would still not take place. It would not take
23180place because the commanders not merely all recognized the position to
23181be impossible, but in their conversations were only discussing what
23182would happen after its inevitable abandonment. How could the
23183commanders lead their troops to a field of battle they considered
23184impossible to hold? The lower-grade officers and even the soldiers
23185(who too reason) also considered the position impossible and therefore
23186could not go to fight, fully convinced as they were of defeat. If
23187Bennigsen insisted on the position being defended and others still
23188discussed it, the question was no longer important in itself but
23189only as a pretext for disputes and intrigue. This Kutuzov knew well.
23190
23191Bennigsen, who had chosen the position, warmly displayed his Russian
23192patriotism (Kutuzov could not listen to this without wincing) by
23193insisting that Moscow must be defended. His aim was as clear as
23194daylight to Kutuzov: if the defense failed, to throw the blame on
23195Kutuzov who had brought the army as far as the Sparrow Hills without
23196giving battle; if it succeeded, to claim the success as his own; or if
23197battle were not given, to clear himself of the crime of abandoning
23198Moscow. But this intrigue did not now occupy the old man's mind. One
23199terrible question absorbed him and to that question he heard no
23200reply from anyone. The question for him now was: "Have I really
23201allowed Napoleon to reach Moscow, and when did I do so? When was it
23202decided? Can it have been yesterday when I ordered Platov to
23203retreat, or was it the evening before, when I had a nap and told
23204Bennigsen to issue orders? Or was it earlier still?... When, when
23205was this terrible affair decided? Moscow must be abandoned. The army
23206must retreat and the order to do so must be given." To give that
23207terrible order seemed to him equivalent to resigning the command of
23208the army. And not only did he love power to which he was accustomed
23209(the honours awarded to Prince Prozorovski, under whom he had served
23210in Turkey, galled him), but he was convinced that he was destined to
23211save Russia and that that was why, against the Emperor's wish and by
23212the will of the people, he had been chosen commander in chief. He
23213was convinced that he alone could maintain command of the army in
23214these difficult circumstances, and that in all the world he alone
23215could encounter the invincible Napoleon without fear, and he was
23216horrified at the thought of the order he had to issue. But something
23217had to be decided, and these conversations around him which were
23218assuming too free a character must be stopped.
23219
23220He called the most important generals to him.
23221
23222"My head, be it good or bad, must depend on itself," said he, rising
23223from the bench, and he rode to Fili where his carriages were waiting.
23224
23225
23226
23227
23228
23229CHAPTER IV
23230
23231
23232The Council of War began to assemble at two in the afternoon in
23233the better and roomier part of Andrew Savostyanov's hut. The men,
23234women, and children of the large peasant family crowded into the
23235back room across the passage. Only Malasha, Andrew's six-year-old
23236granddaughter whom his Serene Highness had petted and to whom he had
23237given a lump of sugar while drinking his tea, remained on the top of
23238the brick oven in the larger room. Malasha looked down from the oven
23239with shy delight at the faces, uniforms, and decorations of the
23240generals, who one after another came into the room and sat down on the
23241broad benches in the corner under the icons. "Granddad" himself, as
23242Malasha in her own mind called Kutuzov, sat apart in a dark corner
23243behind the oven. He sat, sunk deep in a folding armchair, and
23244continually cleared his throat and pulled at the collar of his coat
23245which, though it was unbuttoned, still seemed to pinch his neck. Those
23246who entered went up one by one to the field marshal; he pressed the
23247hands of some and nodded to others. His adjutant Kaysarov was about to
23248draw back the curtain of the window facing Kutuzov, but the latter
23249moved his hand angrily and Kaysarov understood that his Serene
23250Highness did not wish his face to be seen.
23251
23252Round the peasant's deal table, on which lay maps, plans, pencils,
23253and papers, so many people gathered that the orderlies brought in
23254another bench and put it beside the table. Ermolov, Kaysarov, and
23255Toll, who had just arrived, sat down on this bench. In the foremost
23256place, immediately under the icons, sat Barclay de Tolly, his high
23257forehead merging into his bald crown. He had a St. George's Cross
23258round his neck and looked pale and ill. He had been feverish for two
23259days and was now shivering and in pain. Beside him sat Uvarov, who
23260with rapid gesticulations was giving him some information, speaking in
23261low tones as they all did. Chubby little Dokhturov was listening
23262attentively with eyebrows raised and arms folded on his stomach. On
23263the other side sat Count Ostermann-Tolstoy, seemingly absorbed in
23264his own thoughts. His broad head with its bold features and glittering
23265eyes was resting on his hand. Raevski, twitching forward the black
23266hair on his temples as was his habit, glanced now at Kutuzov and now
23267at the door with a look of impatience. Konovnitsyn's firm, handsome,
23268and kindly face was lit up by a tender, sly smile. His glance met
23269Malasha's, and the expression of his eyes caused the little girl to
23270smile.
23271
23272They were all waiting for Bennigsen, who on the pretext of
23273inspecting the position was finishing his savory dinner. They waited
23274for him from four till six o'clock and did not begin their
23275deliberations all that time talked in low tones of other matters.
23276
23277Only when Bennigsen had entered the hut did Kutuzov leave his corner
23278and draw toward the table, but not near enough for the candles that
23279had been placed there to light up his face.
23280
23281Bennigsen opened the council with the question: "Are we to abandon
23282Russia's ancient and sacred capital without a struggle, or are we to
23283defend it?" A prolonged and general silence followed. There was a
23284frown on every face and only Kutuzov's angry grunts and occasional
23285cough broke the silence. All eyes were gazing at him. Malasha too
23286looked at "Granddad." She was nearest to him and saw how his face
23287puckered; he seemed about to cry, but this did not last long.
23288
23289"Russia's ancient and sacred capital!" he suddenly said, repeating
23290Bennigsen's words in an angry voice and thereby drawing attention to
23291the false note in them. "Allow me to tell you, your excellency, that
23292that question has no meaning for a Russian." (He lurched his heavy
23293body forward.) "Such a question cannot be put; it is senseless! The
23294question I have asked these gentlemen to meet to discuss is a military
23295one. The question is that of saving Russia. Is it better to give up
23296Moscow without a battle, or by accepting battle to risk losing the
23297army as well as Moscow? That is the question on which I want your
23298opinion," and he sank back in his chair.
23299
23300The discussion began. Bennigsen did not yet consider his game
23301lost. Admitting the view of Barclay and others that a defensive battle
23302at Fili was impossible, but imbued with Russian patriotism and the
23303love of Moscow, he proposed to move troops from the right to the
23304left flank during the night and attack the French right flank the
23305following day. Opinions were divided, and arguments were advanced
23306for and against that project. Ermolov, Dokhturov, and Raevski agreed
23307with Bennigsen. Whether feeling it necessary to make a sacrifice
23308before abandoning the capital or guided by other, personal
23309considerations, these generals seemed not to understand that this
23310council could not alter the inevitable course of events and that
23311Moscow was in effect already abandoned. The other generals, however,
23312understood it and, leaving aside the question of Moscow, of the
23313direction the army should take in its retreat. Malasha, who kept her
23314eyes fixed on what was going on before her, understood the meaning
23315of the council differently. It seemed to her that it was only a
23316personal struggle between "Granddad" and "Long-coat" as she termed
23317Bennigsen. She saw that they grew spiteful when they spoke to one
23318another, and in her heart she sided with "Granddad." In the midst of
23319the conversation she noticed "Granddad" give Bennigsen a quick, subtle
23320glance, and then to her joys he saw that "Granddad" said something
23321to "Long-coat" which settled him. Bennigsen suddenly reddened and
23322paced angrily up and down the room. What so affected him was Kutuzov's
23323calm and quiet comment on the advantage or disadvantage of Bennigsen's
23324proposal to move troops by night from the right to the left flank to
23325attack the French right wing.
23326
23327"Gentlemen," said Kutuzov, "I cannot approve of the count's plan.
23328Moving troops in close proximity to an enemy is always dangerous,
23329and military history supports that view. For instance..." Kutuzov
23330seemed to reflect, searching for an example, then with a clear,
23331naive look at Bennigsen he added: "Oh yes; take the battle of
23332Friedland, which I think the count well remembers, and which was...
23333not fully successful, only because our troops were rearranged too near
23334the enemy..."
23335
23336There followed a momentary pause, which seemed very long to them
23337all.
23338
23339The discussion recommenced, but pauses frequently occurred and
23340they all felt that there was no more to be said.
23341
23342During one of these pauses Kutuzov heaved a deep sigh as if
23343preparing to speak. They all looked at him.
23344
23345"Well, gentlemen, I see that it is I who will have to pay for the
23346broken crockery," said he, and rising slowly he moved to the table.
23347"Gentlemen, I have heard your views. Some of you will not agree with
23348me. But I," he paused, "by the authority entrusted to me by my
23349Sovereign and country, order a retreat."
23350
23351After that the generals began to disperse with the solemnity and
23352circumspect silence of people who are leaving, after a funeral.
23353
23354Some of the generals, in low tones and in a strain very different
23355from the way they had spoken during the council, communicated
23356something to their commander in chief.
23357
23358Malasha, who had long been expected for supper, climbed carefully
23359backwards down from the oven, her bare little feet catching at its
23360projections, and slipping between the legs of the generals she
23361darted out of the room.
23362
23363When he had dismissed the generals Kutuzov sat a long time with
23364his elbows on the table, thinking always of the same terrible
23365question: "When, when did the abandonment of Moscow become inevitable?
23366When was that done which settled the matter? And who was to blame
23367for it?"
23368
23369"I did not expect this," said he to his adjutant Schneider when
23370the latter came in late that night. "I did not expect this! I did
23371not think this would happen."
23372
23373"You should take some rest, your Serene Highness," replied
23374Schneider.
23375
23376"But no! They shall eat horseflesh yet, like the Turks!" exclaimed
23377Kutuzov without replying, striking the table with his podgy fist.
23378"They shall too, if only..."
23379
23380
23381
23382
23383
23384CHAPTER V
23385
23386
23387At that very time, in circumstances even more important than
23388retreating without a battle, namely the evacuation and burning of
23389Moscow, Rostopchin, who is usually represented as being the instigator
23390of that event, acted in an altogether different manner from Kutuzov.
23391
23392After the battle of Borodino the abandonment and burning of Moscow
23393was as inevitable as the retreat of the army beyond Moscow without
23394fighting.
23395
23396Every Russian might have predicted it, not by reasoning but by the
23397feeling implanted in each of us and in our fathers.
23398
23399The same thing that took place in Moscow had happened in all the
23400towns and villages on Russian soil beginning with Smolensk, without
23401the participation of Count Rostopchin and his broadsheets. The
23402people awaited the enemy unconcernedly, did not riot or become excited
23403or tear anyone to pieces, but faced its fate, feeling within it the
23404strength to find what it should do at that most difficult moment.
23405And as soon as the enemy drew near the wealthy classes went away
23406abandoning their property, while the poorer remained and burned and
23407destroyed what was left.
23408
23409The consciousness that this would be so and would always be so was
23410and is present in the heart of every Russian. And a consciousness of
23411this, and a foreboding that Moscow would be taken, was present in
23412Russian Moscow society in 1812. Those who had quitted Moscow already
23413in July and at the beginning of August showed that they expected this.
23414Those who went away, taking what they could and abandoning their
23415houses and half their belongings, did so from the latent patriotism
23416which expresses itself not by phrases or by giving one's children to
23417save the fatherland and similar unnatural exploits, but unobtrusively,
23418simply, organically, and therefore in the way that always produces the
23419most powerful results.
23420
23421"It is disgraceful to run away from danger; only cowards are running
23422away from Moscow," they were told. In his broadsheets Rostopchin
23423impressed on them that to leave Moscow was shameful. They were ashamed
23424to be called cowards, ashamed to leave, but still they left, knowing
23425it had to be done. Why did they go? It is impossible to suppose that
23426Rostopchin had scared them by his accounts of horrors Napoleon had
23427committed in conquered countries. The first people to go away were the
23428rich educated people who knew quite well that Vienna and Berlin had
23429remained intact and that during Napoleon's occupation the
23430inhabitants had spent their time pleasantly in the company of the
23431charming Frenchmen whom the Russians, and especially the Russian
23432ladies, then liked so much.
23433
23434They went away because for Russians there could be no question as to
23435whether things would go well or ill under French rule in Moscow. It
23436was out of the question to be under French rule, it would be the worst
23437thing that could happen. They went away even before the battle of
23438Borodino and still more rapidly after it, despite Rostopchin's calls
23439to defend Moscow or the announcement of his intention to take the
23440wonder-working icon of the Iberian Mother of God and go to fight, or
23441of the balloons that were to destroy the French, and despite all the
23442nonsense Rostopchin wrote in his broadsheets. They knew that it was
23443for the army to fight, and that if it could not succeed it would not
23444do to take young ladies and house serfs to the Three Hills quarter
23445of Moscow to fight Napoleon, and that they must go away, sorry as they
23446were to abandon their property to destruction. They went away
23447without thinking of the tremendous significance of that immense and
23448wealthy city being given over to destruction, for a great city with
23449wooden buildings was certain when abandoned by its inhabitants to be
23450burned. They went away each on his own account, and yet it was only in
23451consequence of their going away that the momentous event was
23452accomplished that will always remain the greatest glory of the Russian
23453people. The lady who, afraid of being stopped by Count Rostopchin's
23454orders, had already in June moved with her Negroes and her women
23455jesters from Moscow to her Saratov estate, with a vague
23456consciousness that she was not Bonaparte's servant, was really,
23457simply, and truly carrying out the great work which saved Russia.
23458But Count Rostopchin, who now taunted those who left Moscow and now
23459had the government offices removed; now distributed quite useless
23460weapons to the drunken rabble; now had processions displaying the
23461icons, and now forbade Father Augustin to remove icons or the relics
23462of saints; now seized all the private carts in Moscow and on one
23463hundred and thirty-six of them removed the balloon that was being
23464constructed by Leppich; now hinted that he would burn Moscow and
23465related how he had set fire to his own house; now wrote a proclamation
23466to the French solemnly upbraiding them for having destroyed his
23467Orphanage; now claimed the glory of having hinted that he would burn
23468Moscow and now repudiated the deed; now ordered the people to catch
23469all spies and bring them to him, and now reproached them for doing so;
23470now expelled all the French residents from Moscow, and now allowed
23471Madame Aubert-Chalme (the center of the whole French colony in Moscow)
23472to remain, but ordered the venerable old postmaster Klyucharev to be
23473arrested and exiled for no particular offense; now assembled the
23474people at the Three Hills to fight the French and now, to get rid of
23475them, handed over to them a man to be killed and himself drove away by
23476a back gate; now declared that he would not survive the fall of
23477Moscow, and now wrote French verses in albums concerning his share
23478in the affair--this man did not understand the meaning of what was
23479happening but merely wanted to do something himself that would
23480astonish people, to perform some patriotically heroic feat; and like a
23481child he made sport of the momentous, and unavoidable event--the
23482abandonment and burning of Moscow--and tried with his puny hand now to
23483speed and now to stay the enormous, popular tide that bore him along
23484with it.
23485
23486
23487
23488
23489
23490CHAPTER VI
23491
23492
23493Helene, having returned with the court from Vilna to Petersburg,
23494found herself in a difficult position.
23495
23496In Petersburg she had enjoyed the special protection of a grandee
23497who occupied one of the highest posts in the Empire. In Vilna she
23498had formed an intimacy with a young foreign prince. When she
23499returned to Petersburg both the magnate and the prince were there, and
23500both claimed their rights. Helene was faced by a new problem--how to
23501preserve her intimacy with both without offending either.
23502
23503What would have seemed difficult or even impossible to another woman
23504did not cause the least embarrassment to Countess Bezukhova, who
23505evidently deserved her reputation of being a very clever woman. Had
23506she attempted concealment, or tried to extricate herself from her
23507awkward position by cunning, she would have spoiled her case by
23508acknowledging herself guilty. But Helene, like a really great man
23509who can do whatever he pleases, at once assumed her own position to be
23510correct, as she sincerely believed it to be, and that everyone else
23511was to blame.
23512
23513The first time the young foreigner allowed himself to reproach
23514her, she lifted her beautiful head and, half turning to him, said
23515firmly: "That's just like a man--selfish and cruel! I expected nothing
23516else. A woman sacrifices herself for you, she suffers, and this is her
23517reward! What right have you, monseigneur, to demand an account of my
23518attachments and friendships? He is a man who has been more than a
23519father to me!" The prince was about to say something, but Helene
23520interrupted him.
23521
23522"Well, yes," said she, "it may be that he has other sentiments for
23523me than those of a father, but that is not a reason for me to shut
23524my door on him. I am not a man, that I should repay kindness with
23525ingratitude! Know, monseigneur, that in all that relates to my
23526intimate feelings I render account only to God and to my
23527conscience," she concluded, laying her hand on her beautiful, fully
23528expanded bosom and looking up to heaven.
23529
23530"But for heaven's sake listen to me!"
23531
23532"Marry me, and I will be your slave!"
23533
23534"But that's impossible."
23535
23536"You won't deign to demean yourself by marrying me, you..." said
23537Helene, beginning to cry.
23538
23539The prince tried to comfort her, but Helene, as if quite distraught,
23540said through her tears that there was nothing to prevent her marrying,
23541that there were precedents (there were up to that time very few, but
23542she mentioned Napoleon and some other exalted personages), that she
23543had never been her husband's wife, and that she had been sacrificed.
23544
23545"But the law, religion..." said the prince, already yielding.
23546
23547"The law, religion... What have they been invented for if they can't
23548arrange that?" said Helene.
23549
23550The prince was surprised that so simple an idea had not occurred
23551to him, and he applied for advice to the holy brethren of the
23552Society of Jesus, with whom he was on intimate terms.
23553
23554A few days later at one of those enchanting fetes which Helene
23555gave at her country house on the Stone Island, the charming Monsieur
23556de Jobert, a man no longer young, with snow white hair and brilliant
23557black eyes, a Jesuit a robe courte* was presented to her, and in the
23558garden by the light of the illuminations and to the sound of music
23559talked to her for a long time of the love of God, of Christ, of the
23560Sacred Heart, and of the consolations the one true Catholic religion
23561affords in this world and the next. Helene was touched, and more
23562than once tears rose to her eyes and to those of Monsieur de Jobert
23563and their voices trembled. A dance, for which her partner came to seek
23564her, put an end to her discourse with her future directeur de
23565conscience, but the next evening Monsieur de Jobert came to see Helene
23566when she was alone, and after that often came again.
23567
23568
23569*Lay member of the Society of Jesus.
23570
23571
23572One day he took the countess to a Roman Catholic church, where she
23573knelt down before the altar to which she was led. The enchanting,
23574middle-aged Frenchman laid his hands on her head and, as she herself
23575afterward described it, she felt something like a fresh breeze
23576wafted into her soul. It was explained to her that this was la grace.
23577
23578After that a long-frocked abbe was brought to her. She confessed
23579to him, and he absolved her from her sins. Next day she received a box
23580containing the Sacred Host, which was left at her house for her to
23581partake of. A few days later Helene learned with pleasure that she had
23582now been admitted to the true Catholic Church and that in a few days
23583the Pope himself would hear of her and would send her a certain
23584document.
23585
23586All that was done around her and to her at this time, all the
23587attention devoted to her by so many clever men and expressed in such
23588pleasant, refined ways, and the state of dove-like purity she was
23589now in (she wore only white dresses and white ribbons all that time)
23590gave her pleasure, but her pleasure did not cause her for a moment
23591to forget her aim. And as it always happens in contests of cunning
23592that a stupid person gets the better of cleverer ones, Helene-
23593having realized that the main object of all these words and all this
23594trouble was, after converting her to Catholicism, to obtain money from
23595her for Jesuit institutions (as to which she received indications)-
23596before parting with her money insisted that the various operations
23597necessary to free her from her husband should be performed. In her
23598view the aim of every religion was merely to preserve certain
23599proprieties while affording satisfaction to human desires. And with
23600this aim, in one of her talks with her Father Confessor, she
23601insisted on an answer to the question, in how far was she bound by her
23602marriage?
23603
23604They were sitting in the twilight by a window in the drawing room.
23605The scent of flowers came in at the window. Helene was wearing a white
23606dress, transparent over her shoulders and bosom. The abbe, a
23607well-fed man with a plump, clean-shaven chin, a pleasant firm mouth,
23608and white hands meekly folded on his knees, sat close to Helene and,
23609with a subtle smile on his lips and a peaceful look of delight at
23610her beauty, occasionally glanced at her face as he explained his
23611opinion on the subject. Helene with an uneasy smile looked at his
23612curly hair and his plump, clean-shaven, blackish cheeks and every
23613moment expected the conversation to take a fresh turn. But the abbe,
23614though he evidently enjoyed the beauty of his companion, was
23615absorbed in his mastery of the matter.
23616
23617The course of the Father Confessor's arguments ran as follows:
23618"Ignorant of the import of what you were undertaking, you made a vow
23619of conjugal fidelity to a man who on his part, by entering the married
23620state without faith in the religious significance of marriage,
23621committed an act of sacrilege. That marriage lacked the dual
23622significance it should have had. Yet in spite of this your vow was
23623binding. You swerved from it. What did you commit by so acting? A
23624venial, or a mortal, sin? A venial sin, for you acted without evil
23625intention. If now you married again with the object of bearing
23626children, your sin might be forgiven. But the question is again a
23627twofold one: firstly..."
23628
23629But suddenly Helene, who was getting bored, said with one of her
23630bewitching smiles: "But I think that having espoused the true religion
23631I cannot be bound by what a false religion laid upon me."
23632
23633The director of her conscience was astounded at having the case
23634presented to him thus with the simplicity of Columbus' egg. He was
23635delighted at the unexpected rapidity of his pupil's progress, but
23636could not abandon the edifice of argument he had laboriously
23637constructed.
23638
23639"Let us understand one another, Countess," said he with a smile, and
23640began refuting his spiritual daughter's arguments.
23641
23642
23643
23644
23645
23646CHAPTER VII
23647
23648
23649Helene understood that the question was very simple and easy from
23650the ecclesiastical point of view, and that her directors were making
23651difficulties only because they were apprehensive as to how the
23652matter would be regarded by the secular authorities.
23653
23654So she decided that it was necessary to prepare the opinion of
23655society. She provoked the jealousy of the elderly magnate and told him
23656what she had told her other suitor; that is, she put the matter so
23657that the only way for him to obtain a right over her was to marry her.
23658The elderly magnate was at first as much taken aback by this
23659suggestion of marriage with a woman whose husband was alive, as the
23660younger man had been, but Helene's imperturbable conviction that it
23661was as simple and natural as marrying a maiden had its effect on him
23662too. Had Helene herself shown the least sign of hesitation, shame,
23663or secrecy, her cause would certainly have been lost; but not only did
23664she show no signs of secrecy or shame, on the contrary, with
23665good-natured naivete she told her intimate friends (and these were all
23666Petersburg) that both the prince and the magnate had proposed to her
23667and that she loved both and was afraid of grieving either.
23668
23669A rumor immediately spread in Petersburg, not that Helene wanted
23670to be divorced from her husband (had such a report spread many would
23671have opposed so illegal an intention) but simply that the
23672unfortunate and interesting Helene was in doubt which of the two men
23673she should marry. The question was no longer whether this was
23674possible, but only which was the better match and how the matter would
23675be regarded at court. There were, it is true, some rigid individuals
23676unable to rise to the height of such a question, who saw in the
23677project a desecration of the sacrament of marriage, but there were not
23678many such and they remained silent, while the majority were interested
23679in Helene's good fortune and in the question which match would be
23680the more advantageous. Whether it was right or wrong to remarry
23681while one had a husband living they did not discuss, for that question
23682had evidently been settled by people "wiser than you or me," as they
23683said, and to doubt the correctness of that decision would be to risk
23684exposing one's stupidity and incapacity to live in society.
23685
23686Only Marya Dmitrievna Akhrosimova, had come to Petersburg that
23687summer to see one of her sons, allowed herself plainly to express an
23688opinion contrary to the general one. Meeting Helene at a ball she
23689stopped her in the middle of the room and, amid general silence,
23690said in her gruff voice: "So wives of living men have started marrying
23691again! Perhaps you think you have invented a novelty? You have been
23692forestalled, my dear! It was thought of long ago. It is done in all
23693the brothels," and with these words Marya Dmitrievna, turning up her
23694wide sleeves with her usual threatening gesture and glancing sternly
23695round, moved across the room.
23696
23697Though people were afraid of Marya Dmitrievna she was regarded in
23698Petersburg as a buffoon, and so of what she had said they only
23699noticed, and repeated in a whisper, the one coarse word she had
23700used, supposing the whole sting of her remark to lie in that word.
23701
23702Prince Vasili, who of late very often forgot what he had said and
23703repeated one and the same thing a hundred times, remarked to his
23704daughter whenever he chanced to see her:
23705
23706"Helene, I have a word to say to you," and he would lead her
23707aside, drawing her hand downward. "I have heard of certain projects
23708concerning... you know. Well my dear child, you know how your father's
23709heart rejoices to know that you... You have suffered so much....
23710But, my dear child, consult only your own heart. That is all I have to
23711say," and concealing his unvarying emotion he would press his cheek
23712against his daughter's and move away.
23713
23714Bilibin, who had not lost his reputation of an exceedingly clever
23715man, and who was one of the disinterested friends so
23716brilliant a woman as Helene always has--men friends who can never
23717change into lovers--once gave her his view of the matter at a small
23718and intimate gathering.
23719
23720"Listen, Bilibin," said Helene (she always called friends of that
23721sort by their surnames), and she touched his coat sleeve with her
23722white, beringed fingers. "Tell me, as you would a sister, what I ought
23723to do. Which of the two?"
23724
23725Bilibin wrinkled up the skin over his eyebrows and pondered, with
23726a smile on his lips.
23727
23728"You are not taking me unawares, you know," said he. "As a true
23729friend, I have thought and thought again about your affair. You see,
23730if you marry the prince"--he meant the younger man--and he crooked one
23731finger, "you forever lose the chance of marrying the other, and you
23732will displease the court besides. (You know there is some kind of
23733connection.) But if you marry the old count you will make his last
23734days happy, and as widow of the Grand... the prince would no longer be
23735making a mesalliance by marrying you," and Bilibin smoothed out his
23736forehead.
23737
23738"That's a true friend!" said Helene beaming, and again touching
23739Bilibin's sleeve. "But I love them, you know, and don't want to
23740distress either of them. I would give my life for the happiness of
23741them both."
23742
23743Bilibin shrugged his shoulders, as much as to say that not even he
23744could help in that difficulty.
23745
23746"Une maitresse-femme!* That's what is called putting things
23747squarely. She would like to be married to all three at the same time,"
23748thought he.
23749
23750
23751*A masterly woman.
23752
23753
23754"But tell me, how will your husband look at the matter?" Bilibin
23755asked, his reputation being so well established that he did not fear
23756to ask so naive a question. "Will he agree?"
23757
23758"Oh, he loves me so!" said Helene, who for some reason imagined that
23759Pierre too loved her. "He will do anything for me."
23760
23761Bilibin puckered his skin in preparation for something witty.
23762
23763"Even divorce you?" said he.
23764
23765Helene laughed.
23766
23767Among those who ventured to doubt the justifiability of the proposed
23768marriage was Helene's mother, Princess Kuragina. She was continually
23769tormented by jealousy of her daughter, and now that jealousy concerned
23770a subject near to her own heart, she could not reconcile herself to
23771the idea. She consulted a Russian priest as to the possibility of
23772divorce and remarriage during a husband's lifetime, and the priest
23773told her that it was impossible, and to her delight showed her a
23774text in the Gospel which (as it seemed to him) plainly remarriage
23775while the husband is alive.
23776
23777Armed with these arguments, which appeared to her unanswerable,
23778she drove to her daughter's early one morning so as to find her alone.
23779
23780Having listened to her mother's objections, Helene smiled blandly
23781and ironically.
23782
23783"But it says plainly: 'Whosoever shall marry her that is
23784divorced...'" said the old princess.
23785
23786"Ah, Maman, ne dites pas de betises. Vous ne comprenez rein. Dans ma
23787position j'ai des devoirs,"* said Helene changing from Russian, in
23788which language she always felt that her case did not sound quite
23789clear, into French which suited it better.
23790
23791
23792*"Oh, Mamma, don't talk nonsense! You don't understand anything.
23793In my position I have obligations.
23794
23795
23796"But, my dear...."
23797
23798"Oh, Mamma, how is it you don't understand that the Holy Father, who
23799has the right to grant dispensations..."
23800
23801Just then the lady companion who lived with Helene came in to
23802announce that His Highness was in the ballroom and wished to see her.
23803
23804"Non, dites-lui que je ne veux pas le voir, que je suis furieuse
23805contre lui, parce qu'il m' a manque parole."*
23806
23807
23808*"No, tell him I don't wish to see him, I am furious with him for
23809not keeping his word to me."
23810
23811
23812"Comtesse, a tout peche misericorde,"* said a fair-haired young
23813man with a long face and nose, as he entered the room.
23814
23815
23816*"Countess, there is mercy for every sin."
23817
23818
23819The old princess rose respectfully and curtsied. The young man who
23820had entered took no notice of her. The princess nodded to her daughter
23821and sidled out of the room.
23822
23823"Yes, she is right," thought the old princess, all her convictions
23824dissipated by the appearance of His Highness. "She is right, but how
23825is it that we in our irrecoverable youth did not know it? Yet it is so
23826simple," she thought as she got into her carriage.
23827
23828
23829By the beginning of August Helene's affairs were clearly defined and
23830she wrote a letter to her husband--who, as she imagined, loved her
23831very much--informing him of her intention to marry N.N. and of her
23832having embraced the one true faith, and asking him to carry out all
23833the formalities necessary for a divorce, which would be explained to
23834him by the bearer of the letter.
23835
23836
23837And so I pray God to have you, my friend, in His holy and powerful
23838keeping--Your friend Helene.
23839
23840
23841This letter was brought to Pierre's house when he was on the field
23842of Borodino.
23843
23844
23845
23846
23847
23848CHAPTER VIII
23849
23850
23851Toward the end of the battle of Borodino, Pierre, having run down
23852from Raevski's battery a second time, made his way through a gully
23853to Knyazkovo with a crowd of soldiers, reached the dressing station,
23854and seeing blood and hearing cries and groans hurried on, still
23855entangled in the crowds of soldiers.
23856
23857The one thing he now desired with his whole soul was to get away
23858quickly from the terrible sensations amid which he had lived that
23859day and return to ordinary conditions of life and sleep quietly in a
23860room in his own bed. He felt that only in the ordinary conditions of
23861life would he be able to understand himself and all he had seen and
23862felt. But such ordinary conditions of life were nowhere to be found.
23863
23864Though shells and bullets did not whistle over the road along
23865which he was going, still on all sides there was what there had been
23866on the field of battle. There were still the same suffering,
23867exhausted, and sometimes strangely indifferent faces, the same
23868blood, the same soldiers' overcoats, the same sounds of firing
23869which, though distant now, still aroused terror, and besides this
23870there were the foul air and the dust.
23871
23872Having gone a couple of miles along the Mozhaysk road, Pierre sat
23873down by the roadside.
23874
23875Dusk had fallen, and the roar of guns died away. Pierre lay
23876leaning on his elbow for a long time, gazing at the shadows that moved
23877past him in the darkness. He was continually imagining that a cannon
23878ball was flying toward him with a terrific whizz, and then he
23879shuddered and sat up. He had no idea how long he had been there. In
23880the middle of the night three soldiers, having brought some
23881firewood, settled down near him and began lighting a fire.
23882
23883The soldiers, who threw sidelong glances at Pierre, got the fire
23884to burn and placed an iron pot on it into which they broke some
23885dried bread and put a little dripping. The pleasant odor of greasy
23886viands mingled with the smell of smoke. Pierre sat up and sighed.
23887The three soldiers were eating and talking among themselves, taking no
23888notice of him.
23889
23890"And who may you be?" one of them suddenly asked Pierre, evidently
23891meaning what Pierre himself had in mind, namely: "If you want to eat
23892we'll give you some food, only let us know whether you are an honest
23893man."
23894
23895"I, I..." said Pierre, feeling it necessary to minimize his social
23896position as much as possible so as to be nearer to the soldiers and
23897better understood by them. "By rights I am a militia officer, but my
23898men are not here. I came to the battle and have lost them."
23899
23900"There now!" said one of the soldiers.
23901
23902Another shook his head.
23903
23904"Would you like a little mash?" the first soldier asked, and
23905handed Pierre a wooden spoon after licking it clean.
23906
23907Pierre sat down by the fire and began eating the mash, as they
23908called the food in the cauldron, and he thought it more delicious than
23909any food he had ever tasted. As he sat bending greedily over it,
23910helping himself to large spoonfuls and chewing one after another,
23911his was lit up by the fire and the soldiers looked at him in silence.
23912
23913"Where have you to go to? Tell us!" said one of them.
23914
23915"To Mozhaysk."
23916
23917"You're a gentleman, aren't you?"
23918
23919"Yes."
23920
23921"And what's your name?"
23922
23923"Peter Kirilych."
23924
23925"Well then, Peter Kirilych, come along with us, we'll take you
23926there."
23927
23928In the total darkness the soldiers walked with Pierre to Mozhaysk.
23929
23930By the time they got near Mozhaysk and began ascending the steep
23931hill into the town, the cocks were already crowing. Pierre went on
23932with the soldiers, quite forgetting that his inn was at the bottom
23933of the hill and that he had already passed it. He would not soon
23934have remembered this, such was his state of forgetfulness, had he
23935not halfway up the hill stumbled upon his groom, who had been to
23936look for him in the town and was returning to the inn. The groom
23937recognized Pierre in the darkness by his white hat.
23938
23939"Your excellency!" he said. "Why, we were beginning to despair!
23940How is it you are on foot? And where are you going, please?"
23941
23942"Oh, yes!" said Pierre.
23943
23944The soldiers stopped.
23945
23946"So you've found your folk?" said one of them. "Well, good-by, Peter
23947Kirilych--isn't it?"
23948
23949"Good-by, Peter Kirilych!" Pierre heard the other voices repeat.
23950
23951"Good-by!" he said and turned with his groom toward the inn.
23952
23953"I ought to give them something!" he thought, and felt in his
23954pocket. "No, better not!" said another, inner voice.
23955
23956There was not a room to be had at the inn, they were all occupied.
23957Pierre went out into the yard and, covering himself up head and all,
23958lay down in his carriage.
23959
23960
23961
23962
23963
23964CHAPTER IX
23965
23966
23967Scarcely had Pierre laid his head on the pillow before he felt
23968himself falling asleep, but suddenly, almost with the distinctness
23969of reality, he heard the boom, boom, boom of firing, the thud of
23970projectiles, groans and cries, and smelled blood and powder, and a
23971feeling of horror and dread of death seized him. Filled with fright he
23972opened his eyes and lifted his head from under his cloak. All was
23973tranquil in the yard. Only someone's orderly passed through the
23974gateway, splashing through the mud, and talked to the innkeeper. Above
23975Pierre's head some pigeons, disturbed by the movement he had made in
23976sitting up, fluttered under the dark roof of the penthouse. The
23977whole courtyard was permeated by a strong peaceful smell of stable
23978yards, delightful to Pierre at that moment. He could see the clear
23979starry sky between the dark roofs of two penthouses.
23980
23981"Thank God, there is no more of that!" he thought, covering up his
23982head again. "Oh, what a terrible thing is fear, and how shamefully I
23983yielded to it! But they... they were steady and calm all the time,
23984to the end..." thought he.
23985
23986They, in Pierre's mind, were the soldiers, those who had been at the
23987battery, those who had given him food, and those who had prayed before
23988the icon. They, those strange men he had not previously known, stood
23989out clearly and sharply from everyone else.
23990
23991"To be a soldier, just a soldier!" thought Pierre as he fell asleep,
23992"to enter communal life completely, to be imbued by what makes them
23993what they are. But how cast off all the superfluous, devilish burden
23994of my outer man? There was a time when I could have done it. I could
23995have run away from my father, as I wanted to. Or I might have been
23996sent to serve as a soldier after the duel with Dolokhov." And the
23997memory of the dinner at the English Club when he had challenged
23998Dolokhov flashed through Pierre's mind, and then he remembered his
23999benefactor at Torzhok. And now a picture of a solemn meeting of the
24000lodge presented itself to his mind. It was taking place at the English
24001Club and someone near and dear to him sat at the end of the table.
24002"Yes, that is he! It is my benefactor. But he died!" thought Pierre.
24003"Yes, he died, and I did not know he was alive. How sorry I am that he
24004died, and how glad I am that he is alive again!" On one side of the
24005table sat Anatole, Dolokhov, Nesvitski, Denisov, and others like
24006them (in his dream the category to which these men belonged was as
24007clearly defined in his mind as the category of those he termed
24008they), and he heard those people, Anatole and Dolokhov, shouting and
24009singing loudly; yet through their shouting the voice of his benefactor
24010was heard speaking all the time and the sound of his words was as
24011weighty and uninterrupted as the booming on the battlefield, but
24012pleasant and comforting. Pierre did not understand what his benefactor
24013was saying, but he knew (the categories of thoughts were also quite
24014distinct in his dream) that he was talking of goodness and the
24015possibility of being what they were. And they with their simple, kind,
24016firm faces surrounded his benefactor on all sides. But though they
24017were kindly they did not look at Pierre and did not know him.
24018Wishing to speak and to attract their attention, he got up, but at
24019that moment his legs grew cold and bare.
24020
24021He felt ashamed, and with one arm covered his legs from which his
24022cloak had in fact slipped. For a moment as he was rearranging his
24023cloak Pierre opened his eyes and saw the same penthouse roofs,
24024posts, and yard, but now they were all bluish, lit up, and
24025glittering with frost or dew.
24026
24027"It is dawn," thought Pierre. "But that's not what I want. I want to
24028hear and understand my benefactor's words." Again he covered himself
24029up with his cloak, but now neither the lodge nor his benefactor was
24030there. There were only thoughts clearly expressed in words, thoughts
24031that someone was uttering or that he himself was formulating.
24032
24033Afterwards when he recalled those thoughts Pierre was convinced that
24034someone outside himself had spoken them, though the impressions of
24035that day had evoked them. He had never, it seemed to him, been able to
24036think and express his thoughts like that when awake.
24037
24038"To endure war is the most difficult subordination of man's
24039freedom to the law of God," the voice had said. "Simplicity is
24040submission to the will of God; you cannot escape from Him. And they
24041are simple. They do not talk, but act. The spoken word is silver but
24042the unspoken is golden. Man can be master of nothing while he fears
24043death, but he who does not fear it possesses all. If there were no
24044suffering, man would not know his limitations, would not know himself.
24045The hardest thing [Pierre went on thinking, or hearing, in his
24046dream] is to be able in your soul to unite the meaning of all. To
24047unite all?" he asked himself. "No, not to unite. Thoughts cannot be
24048united, but to harness all these thoughts together is what we need!
24049Yes, one must harness them, must harness them!" he repeated to himself
24050with inward rapture, feeling that these words and they alone expressed
24051what he wanted to say and solved the question that tormented him.
24052
24053"Yes, one must harness, it is time to harness."
24054
24055"Time to harness, time to harness, your excellency! Your
24056excellency!" some voice was repeating. "We must harness, it is time to
24057harness...."
24058
24059It was the voice of the groom, trying to wake him. The sun shone
24060straight into Pierre's face. He glanced at the dirty innyard in the
24061middle of which soldiers were watering their lean horses at the pump
24062while carts were passing out of the gate. Pierre turned away with
24063repugnance, and closing his eyes quickly fell back on the carriage
24064seat. "No, I don't want that, I don't want to see and understand that.
24065I want to understand what was revealing itself to me in my dream.
24066One second more and I should have understood it all! But what am I
24067to do? Harness, but how can I harness everything?" and Pierre felt
24068with horror that the meaning of all he had seen and thought in the
24069dream had been destroyed.
24070
24071The groom, the coachman, and the innkeeper told Pierre that an
24072officer had come with news that the French were already near
24073Mozhaysk and that our men were leaving it.
24074
24075Pierre got up and, having told them to harness and overtake him,
24076went on foot through the town.
24077
24078The troops were moving on, leaving about ten thousand wounded behind
24079them. There were wounded in the yards, at the windows of the houses,
24080and the streets were crowded with them. In the streets, around carts
24081that were to take some of the wounded away, shouts, curses, and
24082blows could be heard. Pierre offered the use of his carriage, which
24083had overtaken him, to a wounded general he knew, and drove with him
24084to Moscow. On the way Pierre was told of the death of his
24085brother-in-law Anatole and of that of Prince Andrew.
24086
24087
24088
24089
24090
24091CHAPTER X
24092
24093
24094On the thirteenth of August Pierre reached Moscow. Close to the
24095gates of the city he was met by Count Rostopchin's adjutant.
24096
24097"We have been looking for you everywhere," said the adjutant. "The
24098count wants to see you particularly. He asks you to come to him at
24099once on a very important matter."
24100
24101Without going home, Pierre took a cab and drove to see the Moscow
24102commander in chief.
24103
24104Count Rostopchin had only that morning returned to town from his
24105summer villa at Sokolniki. The anteroom and reception room of his
24106house were full of officials who had been summoned or had come for
24107orders. Vasilchikov and Platov had already seen the count and
24108explained to him that it was impossible to defend Moscow and that it
24109would have to be surrendered. Though this news was being concealed
24110from the inhabitants, the officials--the heads of the various
24111government departments--knew that Moscow would soon be in the
24112enemy's hands, just as Count Rostopchin himself knew it, and to escape
24113personal responsibility they had all come to the governor to ask how
24114they were to deal with their various departments.
24115
24116As Pierre was entering the reception room a courier from the army
24117came out of Rostopchin's private room.
24118
24119In answer to questions with which he was greeted, the courier made a
24120despairing gesture with his hand and passed through the room.
24121
24122While waiting in the reception room Pierre with weary eyes watched
24123the various officials, old and young, military and civilian, who
24124were there. They all seemed dissatisfied and uneasy. Pierre went up to
24125a group of men, one of whom he knew. After greeting Pierre they
24126continued their conversation.
24127
24128"If they're sent out and brought back again later on it will do no
24129harm, but as things are now one can't answer for anything."
24130
24131"But you see what he writes..." said another, pointing to a
24132printed sheet he held in his hand.
24133
24134"That's another matter. That's necessary for the people," said the
24135first.
24136
24137"What is it?" asked Pierre.
24138
24139"Oh, it's a fresh broadsheet."
24140
24141Pierre took it and began reading.
24142
24143
24144His Serene Highness has passed through Mozhaysk in order to join
24145up with the troops moving toward him and has taken up a strong
24146position where the enemy will not soon attack him. Forty eight guns
24147with ammunition have been sent him from here, and his Serene
24148Highness says he will defend Moscow to the last drop of blood and is
24149even ready to fight in the streets. Do not be upset, brothers, that
24150the law courts are closed; things have to be put in order, and we will
24151deal with villains in our own way! When the time comes I shall want
24152both town and peasant lads and will raise the cry a day or two
24153beforehand, but they are not wanted yet so I hold my peace. An ax will
24154be useful, a hunting spear not bad, but a three-pronged fork will be
24155best of all: a Frenchman is no heavier than a sheaf of rye. Tomorrow
24156after dinner I shall take the Iberian icon of the Mother of God to the
24157wounded in the Catherine Hospital where we will have some water
24158blessed. That will help them to get well quicker. I, too, am well now:
24159one of my eyes was sore but now I am on the lookout with both.
24160
24161
24162"But military men have told me that it is impossible to fight in the
24163town," said Pierre, "and that the position..."
24164
24165"Well, of course! That's what we were saying," replied the first
24166speaker.
24167
24168"And what does he mean by 'One of my eyes was sore but now I am on
24169the lookout with both'?" asked Pierre.
24170
24171"The count had a sty," replied the adjutant smiling, "and was very
24172much upset when I told him people had come to ask what was the
24173matter with him. By the by, Count," he added suddenly, addressing
24174Pierre with a smile, "we heard that you have family troubles and
24175that the countess, your wife..."
24176
24177"I have heard nothing," Pierre replied unconcernedly. "But what have
24178you heard?"
24179
24180"Oh, well, you know people often invent things. I only say what I
24181heard."
24182
24183"But what did you hear?"
24184
24185"Well, they say," continued the adjutant with the same smile,
24186"that the countess, your wife, is preparing to go abroad. I expect
24187it's nonsense...."
24188
24189"Possibly," remarked Pierre, looking about him absent-mindedly. "And
24190who is that?" he asked, indicating a short old man in a clean blue
24191peasant overcoat, with a big snow-white beard and eyebrows and a ruddy
24192face.
24193
24194"He? That's a tradesman, that is to say, he's the restaurant keeper,
24195Vereshchagin. Perhaps you have heard of that affair with the
24196proclamation."
24197
24198"Oh, so that is Vereshchagin!" said Pierre, looking at the firm,
24199calm face of the old man and seeking any indication of his being a
24200traitor.
24201
24202"That's not he himself, that's the father of the fellow who wrote
24203the proclamation," said the adjutant. "The young man is in prison
24204and I expect it will go hard with him."
24205
24206An old gentleman wearing a star and another official, a German
24207wearing a cross round his neck, approached the speaker.
24208
24209"It's a complicated story, you know," said the adjutant. "That
24210proclamation appeared about two months ago. The count was informed
24211of it. He gave orders to investigate the matter. Gabriel Ivanovich
24212here made the inquiries. The proclamation had passed through exactly
24213sixty-three hands. He asked one, 'From whom did you get it?' 'From
24214so-and-so.' He went to the next one. 'From whom did you get it?' and
24215so on till he reached Vereshchagin, a half educated tradesman, you
24216know, 'a pet of a trader,'" said the adjutant smiling. "They asked
24217him, 'Who gave it you?' And the point is that we knew whom he had it
24218from. He could only have had it from the Postmaster. But evidently
24219they had come to some understanding. He replied: 'From no one; I
24220made it up myself.' They threatened and questioned him, but he stuck
24221to that: 'I made it up myself.' And so it was reported to the count,
24222who sent for the man. 'From whom did you get the proclamation?' 'I
24223wrote it myself.' Well, you know the count," said the adjutant
24224cheerfully, with a smile of pride, "he flared up dreadfully--and
24225just think of the fellow's audacity, lying, and obstinacy!"
24226
24227 "And the count wanted him to say it was from Klyucharev? I
24228understand!" said Pierre.
24229
24230"Not at all," rejoined the adjutant in dismay. "Klyucharev had his
24231own sins to answer for without that and that is why he has been
24232banished. But the point is that the count was much annoyed. 'How could
24233you have written it yourself?' said he, and he took up the Hamburg
24234Gazette that was lying on the table. 'Here it is! You did not write it
24235yourself but translated it, and translated it abominably, because
24236you don't even know French, you fool.' And what do you think? 'No,'
24237said he, 'I have not read any papers, I made it up myself.' 'If that's
24238so, you're a traitor and I'll have you tried, and you'll be hanged!
24239Say from whom you had it.' 'I have seen no papers, I made it up
24240myself.' And that was the end of it. The count had the father fetched,
24241but the fellow stuck to it. He was sent for trial and condemned to
24242hard labor, I believe. Now the father has come to intercede for him.
24243But he's a good-for-nothing lad! You know that sort of tradesman's
24244son, a dandy and lady-killer. He attended some lectures somewhere
24245and imagines that the devil is no match for him. That's the sort of
24246fellow he is. His father keeps a cookshop here by the Stone Bridge,
24247and you know there was a large icon of God Almighty painted with a
24248scepter in one hand and an orb in the other. Well, he took that icon
24249home with him for a few days and what did he do? He found some
24250scoundrel of a painter..."
24251
24252
24253
24254
24255
24256CHAPTER XI
24257
24258
24259In the middle of this fresh tale Pierre was summoned to the
24260commander in chief.
24261
24262When he entered the private room Count Rostopchin, puckering his
24263face, was rubbing his forehead and eyes with his hand. A short man was
24264saying something, but when Pierre entered he stopped speaking and went
24265out.
24266
24267"Ah, how do you do, great warrior?" said Rostopchin as soon as the
24268short man had left the room. "We have heard of your prowess. But
24269that's not the point. Between ourselves, mon cher, do you belong to
24270the Masons?" he went on severely, as though there were something wrong
24271about it which he nevertheless intended to pardon. Pierre remained
24272silent. "I am well informed, my friend, but I am aware that there
24273are Masons and I hope that you are not one of those who
24274on pretense of saving mankind wish to ruin Russia."
24275
24276"Yes, I am a Mason," Pierre replied.
24277
24278"There, you see, mon cher! I expect you know that Messrs.
24279Speranski and Magnitski have been deported to their proper place.
24280Mr. Klyucharev has been treated in the same way, and so have others
24281who on the plea of building up the temple of Solomon have tried to
24282destroy the temple of their fatherland. You can understand that
24283there are reasons for this and that I could not have exiled the
24284Postmaster had he not been a harmful person. It has now come to my
24285knowledge that you lent him your carriage for his removal from town,
24286and that you have even accepted papers from him for safe custody. I
24287like you and don't wish you any harm and--as you are only half my age-
24288I advise you, as a father would, to cease all communication with men
24289of that stamp and to leave here as soon as possible."
24290
24291"But what did Klyucharev do wrong, Count?" asked Pierre.
24292
24293"That is for me to know, but not for you to ask," shouted
24294Rostopchin.
24295
24296"If he is accused of circulating Napoleon's proclamation it is not
24297proved that he did so," said Pierre without looking at Rostopchin,
24298"and Vereshchagin..."
24299
24300"There we are!" Rostopchin shouted at Pierre louder than before,
24301frowning suddenly. "Vereshchagin is a renegade and a traitor who
24302will be punished as he deserves," said he with the vindictive heat
24303with which people speak when recalling an insult. "But I did not
24304summon you to discuss my actions, but to give you advice--or an
24305order if you prefer it. I beg you to leave the town and break off
24306all communication with such men as Klyucharev. And I will knock the
24307nonsense out of anybody"--but probably realizing that he was
24308shouting at Bezukhov who so far was not guilty of anything, he
24309added, taking Pierre's hand in a friendly manner, "We are on the eve
24310of a public disaster and I haven't time to be polite to everybody
24311who has business with me. My head is sometimes in a whirl. Well, mon
24312cher, what are you doing personally?"
24313
24314"Why, nothing," answered Pierre without raising his eyes or changing
24315the thoughtful expression of his face.
24316
24317The count frowned.
24318
24319"A word of friendly advice, mon cher. Be off as soon as you can,
24320that's all I have to tell you. Happy he who has ears to hear. Good-by,
24321my dear fellow. Oh, by the by!" he shouted through the doorway after
24322Pierre, "is it true that the countess has fallen into the clutches
24323of the holy fathers of the Society of Jesus?"
24324
24325Pierre did not answer and left Rostopchin's room more sullen and
24326angry than he had ever before shown himself.
24327
24328When he reached home it was already getting dark. Some eight
24329people had come to see him that evening: the secretary of a committee,
24330the colonel of his battalion, his steward, his major-domo, and various
24331petitioners. They all had business with Pierre and wanted decisions
24332from him. Pierre did not understand and was not interested in any of
24333these questions and only answered them in order to get rid of these
24334people. When left alone at last he opened and read his wife's letter.
24335
24336"They, the soldiers at the battery, Prince Andrew killed... that old
24337man... Simplicity is submission to God. Suffering is necessary...
24338the meaning of all... one must harness... my wife is getting
24339married... One must forget and understand..." And going to his bed
24340he threw himself on it without undressing and immediately fell asleep.
24341
24342When he awoke next morning the major-domo came to inform him that
24343a special messenger, a police officer, had come from Count
24344Rostopchin to know whether Count Bezukhov had left or was leaving
24345the town.
24346
24347A dozen persons who had business with Pierre were awaiting him in
24348the drawing room. Pierre dressed hurriedly and, instead of going to
24349see them, went to the back porch and out through the gate.
24350
24351From that time till the end of the destruction of Moscow no one of
24352Bezukhov's household, despite all the search they made, saw Pierre
24353again or knew where he was.
24354
24355
24356
24357
24358
24359CHAPTER XII
24360
24361
24362The Rostovs remained in Moscow till the first of September, that is,
24363till the eve of the enemy's entry into the city.
24364
24365After Petya had joined Obolenski's regiment of Cossacks and left for
24366Belaya Tserkov where that regiment was forming, the countess was
24367seized with terror. The thought that both her sons were at the war,
24368had both gone from under her wing, that today or tomorrow either or
24369both of them might be killed like the three sons of one of her
24370acquaintances, struck her that summer for the first time with cruel
24371clearness. She tried to get Nicholas back and wished to go herself
24372to join Petya, or to get him an appointment somewhere in Petersburg,
24373but neither of these proved possible. Petya could not return unless
24374his regiment did so or unless he was transferred to another regiment
24375on active service. Nicholas was somewhere with the army and had not
24376sent a word since his last letter, in which he had given a detailed
24377account of his meeting with Princess Mary. The countess did not
24378sleep at night, or when she did fall asleep dreamed that she saw her
24379sons lying dead. After many consultations and conversations, the count
24380at last devised means to tranquillize her. He got Petya transferred
24381from Obolenski's regiment to Bezukhov's, which was in training near
24382Moscow. Though Petya would remain in the service, this transfer
24383would give the countess the consolation of seeing at least one of
24384her sons under her wing, and she hoped to arrange matters for her
24385Petya so as not to let him go again, but always get him appointed to
24386places where he could not possibly take part in a battle. As long as
24387Nicholas alone was in danger the countess imagined that she loved
24388her first-born more than all her other children and even reproached
24389herself for it; but when her youngest: the scapegrace who had been bad
24390at lessons, was always breaking things in the house and making himself
24391a nuisance to everybody, that snub-nosed Petya with his merry black
24392eyes and fresh rosy cheeks where soft down was just beginning to show-
24393when he was thrown amid those big, dreadful, cruel men who were
24394fighting somewhere about something and apparently finding pleasure
24395in it--then his mother thought she loved him more, much more, than all
24396her other children. The nearer the time came for Petya to return,
24397the more uneasy grew the countess. She began to think she would
24398never live to see such happiness. The presence of Sonya, of her
24399beloved Natasha, or even of her husband irritated her. "What do I want
24400with them? I want no one but Petya," she thought.
24401
24402At the end of August the Rostovs received another letter from
24403Nicholas. He wrote from the province of Voronezh where he had been
24404sent to procure remounts, but that letter did not set the countess
24405at ease. Knowing that one son was out of danger she became the more
24406anxious about Petya.
24407
24408Though by the twentieth of August nearly all the Rostovs'
24409acquaintances had left Moscow, and though everybody tried to
24410persuade the countess to get away as quickly as possible, she would
24411not bear of leaving before her treasure, her adored Petya, returned.
24412On the twenty-eighth of August he arrived. The passionate tenderness
24413with which his mother received him did not please the sixteen-year-old
24414officer. Though she concealed from him her intention of keeping him
24415under her wing, Petya guessed her designs, and instinctively fearing
24416that he might give way to emotion when with her--might "become
24417womanish" as he termed it to himself--he treated her coldly, avoided
24418her, and during his stay in Moscow attached himself exclusively to
24419Natasha for whom he had always had a particularly brotherly
24420tenderness, almost lover-like.
24421
24422Owing to the count's customary carelessness nothing was ready for
24423their departure by the twenty-eighth of August and the carts that were
24424to come from their Ryazan and Moscow estates to remove their household
24425belongings did not arrive till the thirtieth.
24426
24427From the twenty-eighth till the thirty-first all Moscow was in a
24428bustle and commotion. Every day thousands of men wounded at Borodino
24429were brought in by the Dorogomilov gate and taken to various parts
24430of Moscow, and thousands of carts conveyed the inhabitants and their
24431possessions out by the other gates. In spite of Rostopchin's
24432broadsheets, or because of them or independently of them, the
24433strangest and most contradictory rumors were current in the town. Some
24434said that no one was to be allowed to leave the city, others on the
24435contrary said that all the icons had been taken out of the churches
24436and everybody was to be ordered to leave. Some said there had been
24437another battle after Borodino at which the French had been routed,
24438while others on the contrary reported that the Russian army bad been
24439destroyed. Some talked about the Moscow militia which, preceded by the
24440clergy, would go to the Three Hills; others whispered that Augustin
24441had been forbidden to leave, that traitors had been seized, that the
24442peasants were rioting and robbing people on their way from Moscow, and
24443so on. But all this was only talk; in reality (though the Council of
24444Fili, at which it was decided to abandon Moscow, had not yet been
24445held) both those who went away and those who remained behind felt,
24446though they did not show it, that Moscow would certainly be abandoned,
24447and that they ought to get away as quickly as possible and save
24448their belongings. It was felt that everything would suddenly break
24449up and change, but up to the first of September nothing had done so.
24450As a criminal who is being led to execution knows that he must die
24451immediately, but yet looks about him and straightens the cap that is
24452awry on his head, so Moscow involuntarily continued its wonted life,
24453though it knew that the time of its destruction was near when the
24454conditions of life to which its people were accustomed to submit would
24455be completely upset.
24456
24457During the three days preceding the occupation of Moscow the whole
24458Rostov family was absorbed in various activities. The head of the
24459family, Count Ilya Rostov, continually drove about the city collecting
24460the current rumors from all sides and gave superficial and hasty
24461orders at home about the preparations for their departure.
24462
24463The countess watched the things being packed, was dissatisfied
24464with everything, was constantly in pursuit of Petya who was always
24465running away from her, and was jealous of Natasha with whom he spent
24466all his time. Sonya alone directed the practical side of matters by
24467getting things packed. But of late Sonya had been particularly sad and
24468silent. Nicholas' letter in which he mentioned Princess Mary had
24469elicited, in her presence, joyous comments from the countess, who
24470saw an intervention of Providence in this meeting of the princess
24471and Nicholas.
24472
24473"I was never pleased at Bolkonski's engagement to Natasha," said the
24474countess, "but I always wanted Nicholas to marry the princess, and had
24475a presentiment that it would happen. What a good thing it would be!"
24476
24477Sonya felt that this was true: that the only possibility of
24478retrieving the Rostovs' affairs was by Nicholas marrying a rich woman,
24479and that the princess was a good match. It was very bitter for her.
24480But despite her grief, or perhaps just because of it, she took on
24481herself all the difficult work of directing the storing and packing of
24482their things and was busy for whole days. The count and countess
24483turned to her when they had any orders to give. Petya and Natasha on
24484the contrary, far from helping their parents, were generally a
24485nuisance and a hindrance to everyone. Almost all day long the house
24486resounded with their running feet, their cries, and their
24487spontaneous laughter. They laughed and were gay not because there
24488was any reason to laugh, but because gaiety and mirth were in their
24489hearts and so everything that happened was a cause for gaiety and
24490laughter to them. Petya was in high spirits because having left home a
24491boy he had returned (as everybody told him) a fine young man,
24492because he was at home, because he had left Belaya Tserkov where there
24493was no hope of soon taking part in a battle and had come to Moscow
24494where there was to be fighting in a few days, and chiefly because
24495Natasha, whose lead he always followed, was in high spirits. Natasha
24496was gay because she had been sad too long and now nothing reminded her
24497of the cause of her sadness, and because she was feeling well. She was
24498also happy because she had someone to adore her: the adoration of
24499others was a lubricant the wheels of her machine needed to make them
24500run freely--and Petya adored her. Above all, they were gay because
24501there was a war near Moscow, there would be fighting at the town
24502gates, arms were being given out, everybody was escaping--going away
24503somewhere, and in general something extraordinary was happening, and
24504that is always exciting, especially to the young.
24505
24506
24507
24508
24509
24510CHAPTER XIII
24511
24512
24513On Saturday, the thirty-first of August, everything in the
24514Rostovs' house seemed topsy-turvy. All the doors were open, all the
24515furniture was being carried out or moved about, and the mirrors and
24516pictures had been taken down. There were trunks in the rooms, and hay,
24517wrapping paper, and ropes were scattered about. The peasants and house
24518serfs carrying out the things were treading heavily on the parquet
24519floors. The yard was crowded with peasant carts, some loaded high
24520and already corded up, others still empty.
24521
24522The voices and footsteps of the many servants and of the peasants
24523who had come with the carts resounded as they shouted to one another
24524in the yard and in the house. The count bad been out since morning.
24525The countess had a headache brought on by all the noise and turmoil
24526and was lying down in the new sitting room with a vinegar compress
24527on her head. Petya was not at home, he had gone to visit a friend with
24528whom he meant to obtain a transfer from the militia to the active
24529army. Sonya was in the ballroom looking after the packing of the glass
24530and china. Natasha was sitting on the floor of her dismantled room
24531with dresses, ribbons, and scarves strewn all about her, gazing
24532fixedly at the floor and holding in her hands the old ball dress
24533(already out of fashion) which she had worn at her first Petersburg
24534ball.
24535
24536Natasha was ashamed of doing nothing when everyone else was so busy,
24537and several times that morning had tried to set to work, but her heart
24538was not in it, and she could not and did not know how to do anything
24539except with all her heart and all her might. For a while she had stood
24540beside Sonya while the china was being packed and tried to help, but
24541soon gave it up and went to her room to pack her own things. At
24542first she found it amusing to give away dresses and ribbons to the
24543maids, but when that was done and what was left had still to be
24544packed, she found it dull.
24545
24546"Dunyasha, you pack! You will, won't you, dear?" And when Dunyasha
24547willingly promised to do it all for her, Natasha sat down on the
24548floor, took her old ball dress, and fell into a reverie quite
24549unrelated to what ought to have occupied her thoughts now. She was
24550roused from her reverie by the talk of the maids in the next room
24551(which was theirs) and by the sound of their hurried footsteps going
24552to the back porch. Natasha got up and looked out of the window. An
24553enormously long row of carts full of wounded men had stopped in the
24554street.
24555
24556The housekeeper, the old nurse, the cooks, coachmen, maids, footmen,
24557postilions, and scullions stood at the gate, staring at the wounded.
24558
24559Natasha, throwing a clean pocket handkerchief over her hair and
24560holding an end of it in each hand, went out into the street.
24561
24562The former housekeeper, old Mavra Kuzminichna, had stepped out of
24563the crowd by the gate, gone up to a cart with a hood constructed of
24564bast mats, and was speaking to a pale young officer who lay inside.
24565Natasha moved a few steps forward and stopped shyly, still holding her
24566handkerchief, and listened to what the housekeeper was saying.
24567
24568"Then you have nobody in Moscow?" she was saying. "You would be more
24569comfortable somewhere in a house... in ours, for instance... the
24570family are leaving."
24571
24572"I don't know if it would be allowed," replied the officer in a weak
24573voice. "Here is our commanding officer... ask him," and he pointed
24574to a stout major who was walking back along the street past the row of
24575carts.
24576
24577Natasha glanced with frightened eyes at the face of the wounded
24578officer and at once went to meet the major.
24579
24580"May the wounded men stay in our house?" she asked.
24581
24582The major raised his hand to his cap with a smile.
24583
24584"Which one do you want, Ma'am'selle?" said he, screwing up his
24585eyes and smiling.
24586
24587Natasha quietly repeated her question, and her face and whole manner
24588were so serious, though she was still holding the ends of her
24589handkerchief, that the major ceased smiling and after some reflection-
24590as if considering in how far the thing was possible--replied in the
24591affirmative.
24592
24593"Oh yes, why not? They may," he said.
24594
24595With a slight inclination of her head, Natasha stepped back
24596quickly to Mavra Kuzminichna, who stood talking compassionately to the
24597officer.
24598
24599"They may. He says they may!" whispered Natasha.
24600
24601The cart in which the officer lay was turned into the Rostovs' yard,
24602and dozens of carts with wounded men began at the invitation of the
24603townsfolk to turn into the yards and to draw up at the entrances of
24604the houses in Povarskaya Street. Natasha was evidently pleased to be
24605dealing with new people outside the ordinary routine of her life.
24606She and Mavra Kuzminichna tried to get as many of the wounded as
24607possible into their yard.
24608
24609"Your Papa must be told, though," said Mavra Kuzminichna.
24610
24611"Never mind, never mind, what does it matter? For one day we can
24612move into the drawing room. They can have all our half of the house."
24613
24614"There now, young lady, you do take things into your head! Even if
24615we put them into the wing, the men's room, or the nurse's room, we
24616must ask permission."
24617
24618"Well, I'll ask."
24619
24620Natasha ran into the house and went on tiptoe through the
24621half-open door into the sitting room, where there was a smell of
24622vinegar and Hoffman's drops.
24623
24624"Are you asleep, Mamma?"
24625
24626"Oh, what sleep-?" said the countess, waking up just as she was
24627dropping into a doze.
24628
24629"Mamma darling!" said Natasha, kneeling by her mother and bringing
24630her face close to her mother's, "I am sorry, forgive me, I'll never do
24631it again; I woke you up! Mavra Kuzminichna has sent me: they have
24632brought some wounded here--officers. Will you let them come? They have
24633nowhere to go. I knew you'd let them come!" she said quickly all in
24634one breath.
24635
24636"What officers? Whom have they brought? I don't understand
24637anything about it," said the countess.
24638
24639Natasha laughed, and the countess too smiled slightly.
24640
24641"I knew you'd give permission... so I'll tell them," and, having
24642kissed her mother, Natasha got up and went to the door.
24643
24644In the hall she met her father, who had returned with bad news.
24645
24646"We've stayed too long!" said the count with involuntary vexation.
24647"The Club is closed and the police are leaving."
24648
24649"Papa, is it all right--I've invited some of the wounded into the
24650house?" said Natasha.
24651
24652"Of course it is," he answered absently. "That's not the point. I
24653beg you not to indulge in trifles now, but to help to pack, and
24654tomorrow we must go, go, go!...."
24655
24656And the count gave a similar order to the major-domo and the
24657servants.
24658
24659At dinner Petya having returned home told them the news he had
24660heard. He said the people had been getting arms in the Kremlin, and
24661that though Rostopchin's broadsheet had said that he would sound a
24662call two or three days in advance, the order had certainly already
24663been given for everyone to go armed to the Three Hills tomorrow, and
24664that there would be a big battle there.
24665
24666The countess looked with timid horror at her son's eager, excited
24667face as he said this. She realized that if she said a word about his
24668not going to the battle (she knew he enjoyed the thought of the
24669impending engagement) he would say something about men, honor, and the
24670fatherland--something senseless, masculine, and obstinate which
24671there would be no contradicting, and her plans would be spoiled; and
24672so, hoping to arrange to leave before then and take Petya with her
24673as their protector and defender, she did not answer him, but after
24674dinner called the count aside and implored him with tears to take
24675her away quickly, that very night if possible. With a woman's
24676involuntary loving cunning she, who till then had not shown any alarm,
24677said that she would die of fright if they did not leave that very
24678night. Without any pretense she was now afraid of everything.
24679
24680
24681
24682
24683
24684CHAPTER XIV
24685
24686
24687Madame Schoss, who had been out to visit her daughter, increased the
24688countess' fears still more by telling what she had seen at a spirit
24689dealer's in Myasnitski Street. When returning by that street she had
24690been unable to pass because of a drunken crowd rioting in front of the
24691shop. She had taken a cab and driven home by a side street and the
24692cabman had told her that the people were breaking open the barrels
24693at the drink store, having received orders to do so.
24694
24695After dinner the whole Rostov household set to work with
24696enthusiastic haste packing their belongings and preparing for their
24697departure. The old count, suddenly setting to work, kept passing
24698from the yard to the house and back again, shouting confused
24699instructions to the hurrying people, and flurrying them still more.
24700Petya directed things in the yard. Sonya, owing to the count's
24701contradictory orders, lost her head and did not know what to do. The
24702servants ran noisily about the house and yard, shouting and disputing.
24703Natasha, with the ardor characteristic of all she did suddenly set
24704to work too. At first her intervention in the business of packing
24705was received skeptically. Everybody expected some prank from her and
24706did not wish to obey her; but she resolutely and passionately demanded
24707obedience, grew angry and nearly cried because they did not heed
24708her, and at last succeeded in making them believe her. Her first
24709exploit, which cost her immense effort and established her
24710authority, was the packing of the carpets. The count had valuable
24711Gobelin tapestries and Persian carpets in the house. When Natasha
24712set to work two cases were standing open in the ballroom, one almost
24713full up with crockery, the other with carpets. There was also much
24714china standing on the tables, and still more was being brought in from
24715the storeroom. A third case was needed and servants had gone to
24716fetch it.
24717
24718"Sonya, wait a bit--we'll pack everything into these," said Natasha.
24719
24720"You can't, Miss, we have tried to," said the butler's assistant.
24721
24722"No, wait a minute, please."
24723
24724And Natasha began rapidly taking out of the case dishes and plates
24725wrapped in paper.
24726
24727"The dishes must go in here among the carpets," said she.
24728
24729"Why, it's a mercy if we can get the carpets alone into three
24730cases," said the butler's assistant.
24731
24732"Oh, wait, please!" And Natasha began rapidly and deftly sorting out
24733the things. "These aren't needed," said she, putting aside some plates
24734of Kiev ware. "These--yes, these must go among the carpets," she said,
24735referring to the Saxony china dishes.
24736
24737"Don't, Natasha! Leave it alone! We'll get it all packed," urged
24738Sonya reproachfully.
24739
24740"What a young lady she is!" remarked the major-domo.
24741
24742But Natasha would not give in. She turned everything out and began
24743quickly repacking, deciding that the inferior Russian carpets and
24744unnecessary crockery should not be taken at all. When everything had
24745been taken out of the cases, they recommenced packing, and it turned
24746out that when the cheaper things not worth taking had nearly all
24747been rejected, the valuable ones really did all go into the two cases.
24748Only the lid of the case containing the carpets would not shut down. A
24749few more things might have been taken out, but Natasha insisted on
24750having her own way. She packed, repacked, pressed, made the butler's
24751assistant and Petya--whom she had drawn into the business of
24752packing--press on the lid, and made desperate efforts herself.
24753
24754"That's enough, Natasha," said Sonya. "I see you were right, but
24755just take out the top one."
24756
24757"I won't!" cried Natasha, with one hand bolding back the hair that
24758hung over her perspiring face, while with the other she pressed down
24759the carpets. "Now press, Petya! Press, Vasilich, press hard!" she
24760cried.
24761
24762The carpets yielded and the lid closed; Natasha, clapping her hands,
24763screamed with delight and tears fell from her eyes. But this only
24764lasted a moment. She at once set to work afresh and they now trusted
24765her completely. The count was not angry even when they told him that
24766Natasha had countermanded an order of his, and the servants now came
24767to her to ask whether a cart was sufficiently loaded, and whether it
24768might be corded up. Thanks to Natasha's directions the work now went
24769on expeditiously, unnecessary things were left, and the most
24770valuable packed as compactly as possible.
24771
24772But hard as they all worked till quite late that night, they could
24773not get everything packed. The countess had fallen asleep and the
24774count, having put off their departure till next morning, went to bed.
24775
24776Sonya and Natasha slept in the sitting room without undressing.
24777
24778That night another wounded man was driven down the Povarskaya, and
24779Mavra Kuzminichna, who was standing at the gate, had him brought
24780into the Rostovs' yard. Mavra Kuzminichna concluded that he was a very
24781important man. He was being conveyed in a caleche with a raised
24782hood, and was quite covered by an apron. On the box beside the
24783driver sat a venerable old attendant. A doctor and two soldiers
24784followed the carriage in a cart.
24785
24786"Please come in here. The masters are going away and the whole house
24787will be empty," said the old woman to the old attendant.
24788
24789"Well, perhaps," said he with a sigh. "We don't expect to get him
24790home alive! We have a house of our own in Moscow, but it's a long
24791way from here, and there's nobody living in it."
24792
24793"Do us the honor to come in, there's plenty of everything in the
24794master's house. Come in," said Mavra Kuzminichna. "Is he very ill?"
24795she asked.
24796
24797The attendant made a hopeless gesture.
24798
24799"We don't expect to get him home! We must ask the doctor."
24800
24801And the old servant got down from the box and went up to the cart.
24802
24803"All right!" said the doctor.
24804
24805The old servant returned to the caleche, looked into it, shook his
24806head disconsolately, told the driver to turn into the yard, and
24807stopped beside Mavra Kuzminichna.
24808
24809"O, Lord Jesus Christ!" she murmured.
24810
24811She invited them to take the wounded man into the house.
24812
24813"The masters won't object..." she said.
24814
24815But they had to avoid carrying the man upstairs, and so they took
24816him into the wing and put him in the room that had been Madame
24817Schoss'.
24818
24819This wounded man was Prince Andrew Bolkonski.
24820
24821
24822
24823
24824
24825CHAPTER XV
24826
24827
24828Moscow's last day had come. It was a clear bright autumn day, a
24829Sunday. The church bells everywhere were ringing for service, just
24830as usual on Sundays. Nobody seemed yet to realize what awaited the
24831city.
24832
24833Only two things indicated the social condition of Moscow--the
24834rabble, that is the poor people, and the price of commodities. An
24835enormous crowd of factory hands, house serfs, and peasants, with
24836whom some officials, seminarists, and gentry were mingled, had gone
24837early that morning to the Three Hills. Having waited there for
24838Rostopchin who did not turn up, they became convinced that Moscow
24839would be surrendered, and then dispersed all about the town to the
24840public houses and cookshops. Prices too that day indicated the state
24841of affairs. The price of weapons, of gold, of carts and horses, kept
24842rising, but the value of paper money and city articles kept falling,
24843so that by midday there were instances of carters removing valuable
24844goods, such as cloth, and receiving in payment a half of what they
24845carted, while peasant horses were fetching five hundred rubles each,
24846and furniture, mirrors, and bronzes were being given away for nothing.
24847
24848In the Rostovs' staid old-fashioned house the dissolution of
24849former conditions of life was but little noticeable. As to the serfs
24850the only indication was that three out of their huge retinue
24851disappeared during the night, but nothing was stolen; and as to the
24852value of their possessions, the thirty peasant carts that had come
24853in from their estates and which many people envied proved to be
24854extremely valuable and they were offered enormous sums of money for
24855them. Not only were huge sums offered for the horses and carts, but on
24856the previous evening and early in the morning of the first of
24857September, orderlies and servants sent by wounded officers came to the
24858Rostovs' and wounded men dragged themselves there from the Rostovs'
24859and from neighboring houses where they were accommodated, entreating
24860the servants to try to get them a lift out of Moscow. The major-domo
24861to whom these entreaties were addressed, though he was sorry for the
24862wounded, resolutely refused, saying that he dare not even mention
24863the matter to the count. Pity these wounded men as one might, it was
24864evident that if they were given one cart there would be no reason to
24865refuse another, or all the carts and one's own carriages as well.
24866Thirty carts could not save all the wounded and in the general
24867catastrophe one could not disregard oneself and one's own family. So
24868thought the major-domo on his master's behalf.
24869
24870On waking up that morning Count Ilya Rostov left his bedroom softly,
24871so as not to wake the countess who had fallen asleep only toward
24872morning, and came out to the porch in his lilac silk dressing gown. In
24873the yard stood the carts ready corded. The carriages were at the front
24874porch. The major-domo stood at the porch talking to an elderly orderly
24875and to a pale young officer with a bandaged arm. On seeing the count
24876the major-domo made a significant and stern gesture to them both to go
24877away.
24878
24879"Well, Vasilich, is everything ready?" asked the count, and stroking
24880his bald head he looked good-naturedly at the officer and the
24881orderly and nodded to them. (He liked to see new faces.)
24882
24883"We can harness at once, your excellency."
24884
24885"Well, that's right. As soon as the countess wakes we'll be off, God
24886willing! What is it, gentlemen?" he added, turning to the officer.
24887"Are you staying in my house?"
24888
24889The officer came nearer and suddenly his face flushed crimson.
24890
24891"Count, be so good as to allow me... for God's sake, to get into
24892some corner of one of your carts! I have nothing here with me.... I
24893shall be all right on a loaded cart..."
24894
24895Before the officer had finished speaking the orderly made the same
24896request on behalf of his master.
24897
24898"Oh, yes, yes, yes!" said the count hastily. "I shall be very
24899pleased, very pleased. Vasilich, you'll see to it. Just unload one
24900or two carts. Well, what of it... do what's necessary..." said the
24901count, muttering some indefinite order.
24902
24903But at the same moment an expression of warm gratitude on the
24904officer's face had already sealed the order. The count looked around
24905him. In the yard, at the gates, at the window of the wings, wounded
24906officers and their orderlies were to be seen. They were all looking at
24907the count and moving toward the porch.
24908
24909"Please step into the gallery, your excellency," said the
24910major-domo. "What are your orders about the pictures?"
24911
24912The count went into the house with him, repeating his order not to
24913refuse the wounded who asked for a lift.
24914
24915"Well, never mind, some of the things can be unloaded," he added
24916in a soft, confidential voice, as though afraid of being overheard.
24917
24918At nine o'clock the countess woke up, and Matrena Timofeevna, who
24919had been her lady's maid before her marriage and now performed a
24920sort of chief gendarme's duty for her, came to say that Madame
24921Schoss was much offended and the young ladies' summer dresses could
24922not be left behind. On inquiry, the countess learned that Madame
24923Schoss was offended because her trunk had been taken down from its
24924cart, and all the loads were being uncorded and the luggage taken
24925out of the carts to make room for wounded men whom the count in the
24926simplicity of his heart had ordered that they should take with them.
24927The countess sent for her husband.
24928
24929"What is this, my dear? I hear that the luggage is being unloaded."
24930
24931"You know, love, I wanted to tell you... Countess dear... an officer
24932came to me to ask for a few carts for the wounded. After all, ours are
24933things that can be bought but think what being left behind means to
24934them!... Really now, in our own yard--we asked them in ourselves and
24935there are officers among them.... You know, I think, my dear... let
24936them be taken... where's the hurry?"
24937
24938The count spoke timidly, as he always did when talking of money
24939matters. The countess was accustomed to this tone as a precursor of
24940news of something detrimental to the children's interests, such as the
24941building of a new gallery or conservatory, the inauguration of a
24942private theater or an orchestra. She was accustomed always to oppose
24943anything announced in that timid tone and considered it her duty to do
24944so.
24945
24946She assumed her dolefully submissive manner and said to her husband:
24947"Listen to me, Count, you have managed matters so that we are
24948getting nothing for the house, and now you wish to throw away all our-
24949all the children's property! You said yourself that we have a
24950hundred thousand rubles' worth of things in the house. I don't
24951consent, my dear, I don't! Do as you please! It's the government's
24952business to look after the wounded; they know that. Look at the
24953Lopukhins opposite, they cleared out everything two days ago. That's
24954what other people do. It's only we who are such fools. If you have
24955no pity on me, have some for the children."
24956
24957Flourishing his arms in despair the count left the room without
24958replying.
24959
24960"Papa, what are you doing that for?" asked Natasha, who had followed
24961him into her mother's room.
24962
24963"Nothing! What business is it of yours?" muttered the count angrily.
24964
24965"But I heard," said Natasha. "Why does Mamma object?"
24966
24967"What business is it of yours?" cried the count.
24968
24969Natasha stepped up to the window and pondered.
24970
24971"Papa! Here's Berg coming to see us," said she, looking out of the
24972window.
24973
24974
24975
24976
24977
24978CHAPTER XVI
24979
24980
24981Berg, the Rostovs' son-in-law, was already a colonel wearing the
24982orders of Vladimir and Anna, and he still filled the quiet and
24983agreeable post of assistant to the head of the staff of the
24984assistant commander of the first division of the Second Army.
24985
24986On the first of September he had come to Moscow from the army.
24987
24988He had nothing to do in Moscow, but he had noticed that everyone
24989in the army was asking for leave to visit Moscow and had something
24990to do there. So he considered it necessary to ask for leave of absence
24991for family and domestic reasons.
24992
24993Berg drove up to his father-in-law's house in his spruce little trap
24994with a pair of sleek roans, exactly like those of a certain prince. He
24995looked attentively at the carts in the yard and while going up to
24996the porch took out a clean pocket handkerchief and tied a knot in it.
24997
24998From the anteroom Berg ran with smooth though impatient steps into
24999the drawing room, where he embraced the count, kissed the hands of
25000Natasha and Sonya, and hastened to inquire after "Mamma's" health.
25001
25002"Health, at a time like this?" said the count. "Come, tell us the
25003news! Is the army retreating or will there be another battle?"
25004
25005"God Almighty alone can decide the fate of our fatherland, Papa,"
25006said Berg. "The army is burning with a spirit of heroism and the
25007leaders, so to say, have now assembled in council. No one knows what
25008is coming. But in general I can tell you, Papa, that such a heroic
25009spirit, the truly antique valor of the Russian army, which they--which
25010it" (he corrected himself) "has shown or displayed in the battle of
25011the twenty-sixth--there are no words worthy to do it justice! I tell
25012you, Papa" (he smote himself on the breast as a general he had heard
25013speaking had done, but Berg did it a trifle late for he should have
25014struck his breast at the words "Russian army"), "I tell you frankly
25015that we, the commanders, far from having to urge the men on or
25016anything of that kind, could hardly restrain those... those... yes,
25017those exploits of antique valor," he went on rapidly. "General Barclay
25018de Tolly risked his life everywhere at the head of the troops, I can
25019assure you. Our corps was stationed on a hillside. You can imagine!"
25020
25021And Berg related all that he remembered of the various tales he
25022had heard those days. Natasha watched him with an intent gaze that
25023confused him, as if she were trying to find in his face the answer
25024to some question.
25025
25026"Altogether such heroism as was displayed by the Russian warriors
25027cannot be imagined or adequately praised!" said Berg, glancing round
25028at Natasha, and as if anxious to conciliate her, replying to her
25029intent look with a smile. "'Russia is not in Moscow, she lives in
25030the hearts of her sons!' Isn't it so, Papa?" said he.
25031
25032Just then the countess came in from the sitting room with a weary
25033and dissatisfied expression. Berg hurriedly jumped up, kissed her
25034hand, asked about her health, and, swaying his head from side to
25035side to express sympathy, remained standing beside her.
25036
25037"Yes, Mamma, I tell you sincerely that these are hard and sad
25038times for every Russian. But why are you so anxious? You have still
25039time to get away...."
25040
25041"I can't think what the servants are about," said the countess,
25042turning to her husband. "I have just been told that nothing is ready
25043yet. Somebody after all must see to things. One misses Mitenka at such
25044times. There won't be any end to it."
25045
25046The count was about to say something, but evidently restrained
25047himself. He got up from his chair and went to the door.
25048
25049At that moment Berg drew out his handkerchief as if to blow his nose
25050and, seeing the knot in it, pondered, shaking his head sadly and
25051significantly.
25052
25053"And I have a great favor to ask of you, Papa," said he.
25054
25055"Hm..." said the count, and stopped.
25056
25057"I was driving past Yusupov's house just now," said Berg with a
25058laugh, "when the steward, a man I know, ran out and asked me whether I
25059wouldn't buy something. I went in out of curiosity, you know, and
25060there is a small chiffonier and a dressing table. You know how dear
25061Vera wanted a chiffonier like that and how we had a dispute about it."
25062(At the mention of the chiffonier and dressing table Berg
25063involuntarily changed his tone to one of pleasure at his admirable
25064domestic arrangements.) "And it's such a beauty! It pulls out and
25065has a secret English drawer, you know! And dear Vera has long wanted
25066one. I wish to give her a surprise, you see. I saw so many of those
25067peasant carts in your yard. Please let me have one, I will pay the man
25068well, and..."
25069
25070The count frowned and coughed.
25071
25072"Ask the countess, I don't give orders."
25073
25074"If it's inconvenient, please don't," said Berg. "Only I so wanted
25075it, for dear Vera's sake."
25076
25077"Oh, go to the devil, all of you! To the devil, the devil, the
25078devil..." cried the old count. "My head's in a whirl!"
25079
25080And he left the room. The countess began to cry.
25081
25082"Yes, Mamma! Yes, these are very hard times!" said Berg.
25083
25084Natasha left the room with her father and, as if finding it
25085difficult to reach some decision, first followed him and then ran
25086downstairs.
25087
25088Petya was in the porch, engaged in giving out weapons to the
25089servants who were to leave Moscow. The loaded carts were still
25090standing in the yard. Two of them had been uncorded and a wounded
25091officer was climbing into one of them helped by an orderly.
25092
25093"Do you know what it's about?" Petya asked Natasha.
25094
25095She understood that he meant what were their parents quarreling
25096about. She did not answer.
25097
25098"It's because Papa wanted to give up all the carts to the
25099wounded," said Petya. "Vasilich told me. I consider..."
25100
25101"I consider," Natasha suddenly almost shouted, turning her angry
25102face to Petya, "I consider it so horrid, so abominable, so... I
25103don't know what. Are we despicable Germans?"
25104
25105Her throat quivered with convulsive sobs and, afraid of weakening
25106and letting the force of her anger run to waste, she turned and rushed
25107headlong up the stairs.
25108
25109Berg was sitting beside the countess consoling her with the
25110respectful attention of a relative. The count, pipe in hand, was
25111pacing up and down the room, when Natasha, her face distorted by
25112anger, burst in like a tempest and approached her mother with rapid
25113steps.
25114
25115"It's horrid! It's abominable!" she screamed. "You can't possibly
25116have ordered it!"
25117
25118Berg and the countess looked at her, perplexed and frightened. The
25119count stood still at the window and listened.
25120
25121"Mamma, it's impossible: see what is going on in the yard!" she
25122cried. "They will be left!..."
25123
25124"What's the matter with you? Who are 'they'? What do you want?"
25125
25126"Why, the wounded! It's impossible, Mamma. It's monstrous!... No,
25127Mamma darling, it's not the thing. Please forgive me, darling....
25128Mamma, what does it matter what we take away? Only look what is
25129going on in the yard... Mamma!... It's impossible!"
25130
25131The count stood by the window and listened without turning round.
25132Suddenly he sniffed and put his face closer to the window.
25133
25134The countess glanced at her daughter, saw her face full of shame for
25135her mother, saw her agitation, and understood why her husband did
25136not turn to look at her now, and she glanced round quite disconcerted.
25137
25138"Oh, do as you like! Am I hindering anyone?" she said, not
25139surrendering at once.
25140
25141"Mamma, darling, forgive me!"
25142
25143But the countess pushed her daughter away and went up to her
25144husband.
25145
25146"My dear, you order what is right.... You know I don't understand
25147about it," said she, dropping her eyes shamefacedly.
25148
25149"The eggs... the eggs are teaching the hen," muttered the count
25150through tears of joy, and he embraced his wife who was glad to hide
25151her look of shame on his breast.
25152
25153"Papa! Mamma! May I see to it? May I?..." asked Natasha. "We will
25154still take all the most necessary things."
25155
25156The count nodded affirmatively, and Natasha, at the rapid pace at
25157which she used to run when playing at tag, ran through the ballroom to
25158the anteroom and downstairs into the yard.
25159
25160The servants gathered round Natasha, but could not believe the
25161strange order she brought them until the count himself, in his
25162wife's name, confirmed the order to give up all the carts to the
25163wounded and take the trunks to the storerooms. When they understood
25164that order the servants set to work at this new task with pleasure and
25165zeal. It no longer seemed strange to them but on the contrary it
25166seemed the only thing that could be done, just as a quarter of an hour
25167before it had not seemed strange to anyone that the wounded should
25168be left behind and the goods carted away but that had seemed the
25169only thing to do.
25170
25171The whole household, as if to atone for not having done it sooner,
25172set eagerly to work at the new task of placing the wounded in the
25173carts. The wounded dragged themselves out of their rooms and stood
25174with pale but happy faces round the carts. The news that carts were to
25175be had spread to the neighboring houses, from which wounded men
25176began to come into the Rostovs' yard. Many of the wounded asked them
25177not to unload the carts but only to let them sit on the top of the
25178things. But the work of unloading, once started, could not be
25179arrested. It seemed not to matter whether all or only half the
25180things were left behind. Cases full of china, bronzes, pictures, and
25181mirrors that had been so carefully packed the night before now lay
25182about the yard, and still they went on searching for and finding
25183possibilities of unloading this or that and letting the wounded have
25184another and yet another cart.
25185
25186"We can take four more men," said the steward. "They can have my
25187trap, or else what is to become of them?"
25188
25189"Let them have my wardrobe cart," said the countess. "Dunyasha can
25190go with me in the carriage."
25191
25192They unloaded the wardrobe cart and sent it to take wounded men from
25193a house two doors off. The whole household, servants included, was
25194bright and animated. Natasha was in a state of rapturous excitement
25195such as she had not known for a long time.
25196
25197"What could we fasten this onto?" asked the servants, trying to
25198fix a trunk on the narrow footboard behind a carriage. "We must keep
25199at least one cart."
25200
25201"What's in it?" asked Natasha.
25202
25203"The count's books."
25204
25205"Leave it, Vasilich will put it away. It's not wanted."
25206
25207The phaeton was full of people and there was a doubt as to where
25208Count Peter could sit.
25209
25210"On the box. You'll sit on the box, won't you, Petya?" cried
25211Natasha.
25212
25213Sonya too was busy all this time, but the aim of her efforts was
25214quite different from Natasha's. She was putting away the things that
25215had to be left behind and making a list of them as the countess
25216wished, and she tried to get as much taken away with them as possible.
25217
25218
25219
25220
25221
25222CHAPTER XVII
25223
25224
25225Before two o'clock in the afternoon the Rostovs' four carriages,
25226packed full and with the horses harnessed, stood at the front door.
25227One by one the carts with the wounded had moved out of the yard.
25228
25229The caleche in which Prince Andrew was being taken attracted Sonya's
25230attention as it passed the front porch. With the help of a maid she
25231was arranging a seat for the countess in the huge high coach that
25232stood at the entrance.
25233
25234"Whose caleche is that?" she inquired, leaning out of the carriage
25235window.
25236
25237"Why, didn't you know, Miss?" replied the maid. "The wounded prince:
25238he spent the night in our house and is going with us."
25239
25240"But who is it? What's his name?"
25241
25242"It's our intended that was--Prince Bolkonski himself! They say he
25243is dying," replied the maid with a sigh.
25244
25245Sonya jumped out of the coach and ran to the countess. The countess,
25246tired out and already dressed in shawl and bonnet for her journey, was
25247pacing up and down the drawing room, waiting for the household to
25248assemble for the usual silent prayer with closed doors before
25249starting. Natasha was not in the room.
25250
25251"Mamma," said Sonya, "Prince Andrew is here, mortally wounded. He is
25252going with us."
25253
25254The countess opened her eyes in dismay and, seizing Sonya's arm,
25255glanced around.
25256
25257"Natasha?" she murmured.
25258
25259At that moment this news had only one significance for both of them.
25260They knew their Natasha, and alarm as to what would happen if she
25261heard this news stifled all sympathy for the man they both liked.
25262
25263"Natasha does not know yet, but he is going with us," said Sonya.
25264
25265"You say he is dying?"
25266
25267Sonya nodded.
25268
25269The countess put her arms around Sonya and began to cry.
25270
25271"The ways of God are past finding out!" she thought, feeling that
25272the Almighty Hand, hitherto unseen, was becoming manifest in all
25273that was now taking place.
25274
25275"Well, Mamma? Everything is ready. What's the matter?" asked
25276Natasha, as with animated face she ran into the room.
25277
25278"Nothing," answered the countess. "If everything is ready let us
25279start."
25280
25281And the countess bent over her reticule to hide her agitated face.
25282Sonya embraced Natasha and kissed her.
25283
25284Natasha looked at her inquiringly.
25285
25286"What is it? What has happened?"
25287
25288"Nothing... No..."
25289
25290"Is it something very bad for me? What is it?" persisted Natasha
25291with her quick intuition.
25292
25293Sonya sighed and made no reply. The count, Petya, Madame Schoss,
25294Mavra Kuzminichna, and Vasilich came into the drawing room and, having
25295closed the doors, they all sat down and remained for some moments
25296silently seated without looking at one another.
25297
25298The count was the first to rise, and with a loud sigh crossed
25299himself before the icon. All the others did the same. Then the count
25300embraced Mavra Kuzminichna and Vasilich, who were to remain in Moscow,
25301and while they caught at his hand and kissed his shoulder he patted
25302their backs lightly with some vaguely affectionate and comforting
25303words. The countess went into the oratory and there Sonya found her on
25304her knees before the icons that had been left here and there hanging
25305on the wall. (The most precious ones, with which some family tradition
25306was connected, were being taken with them.)
25307
25308In the porch and in the yard the men whom Petya had armed with
25309swords and daggers, with trousers tucked inside their high boots and
25310with belts and girdles tightened, were taking leave of those remaining
25311behind.
25312
25313As is always the case at a departure, much had been forgotten or put
25314in the wrong place, and for a long time two menservants stood one on
25315each side of the open door and the carriage steps waiting to help
25316the countess in, while maids rushed with cushions and bundles from the
25317house to the carriages, the caleche, the phaeton, and back again.
25318
25319"They always will forget everything!" said the countess. "Don't
25320you know I can't sit like that?"
25321
25322And Dunyasha, with clenched teeth, without replying but with an
25323aggrieved look on her face, hastily got into the coach to rearrange
25324the seat.
25325
25326"Oh, those servants!" said the count, swaying his head.
25327
25328Efim, the old coachman, who was the only one the countess trusted to
25329drive her, sat perched up high on the box and did not so much as
25330glance round at what was going on behind him. From thirty years'
25331experience he knew it would be some time yet before the order, "Be
25332off, in God's name!" would be given him: and he knew that even when it
25333was said he would be stopped once or twice more while they sent back
25334to fetch something that had been forgotten, and even after that he
25335would again be stopped and the countess herself would lean out of
25336the window and beg him for the love of heaven to drive carefully
25337down the hill. He knew all this and therefore waited calmly for what
25338would happen, with more patience than the horses, especially the
25339near one, the chestnut Falcon, who was pawing the ground and
25340champing his bit. At last all were seated, the carriage steps were
25341folded and pulled up, the door was shut, somebody was sent for a
25342traveling case, and the countess leaned out and said what she had to
25343say. Then Efim deliberately doffed his hat and began crossing himself.
25344The postilion and all the other servants did the same. "Off, in
25345God's name!" said Efim, putting on his hat. "Start!" The postilion
25346started the horses, the off pole horse tugged at his collar, the
25347high springs creaked, and the body of the coach swayed. The footman
25348sprang onto the box of the moving coach which jolted as it passed
25349out of the yard onto the uneven roadway; the other vehicles jolted
25350in their turn, and the procession of carriages moved up the street. In
25351the carriages, the caleche, and the phaeton, all crossed themselves as
25352they passed the church opposite the house. Those who were to remain in
25353Moscow walked on either side of the vehicles seeing the travelers off.
25354
25355Rarely had Natasha experienced so joyful a feeling as now, sitting
25356in the carriage beside the countess and gazing at the slowly
25357receding walls of forsaken, agitated Moscow. Occasionally she leaned
25358out of the carriage window and looked back and then forward at the
25359long train of wounded in front of them. Almost at the head of the line
25360she could see the raised hood of Prince Andrew's caleche. She did
25361not know who was in it, but each time she looked at the procession her
25362eyes sought that caleche. She knew it was right in front.
25363
25364In Kudrino, from the Nikitski, Presnya, and Podnovinsk Streets
25365came several other trains of vehicles similar to the Rostovs', and
25366as they passed along the Sadovaya Street the carriages and carts
25367formed two rows abreast.
25368
25369As they were going round the Sukharev water tower Natasha, who was
25370inquisitively and alertly scrutinizing the people driving or walking
25371past, suddenly cried out in joyful surprise:
25372
25373"Dear me! Mamma, Sonya, look, it's he!"
25374
25375"Who? Who?"
25376
25377"Look! Yes, on my word, it's Bezukhov!" said Natasha, putting her
25378head out of the carriage and staring at a tall, stout man in a
25379coachman's long coat, who from his manner of walking and moving was
25380evidently a gentleman in disguise, and who was passing under the
25381arch of the Sukharev tower accompanied by a small, sallow-faced,
25382beardless old man in a frieze coat.
25383
25384"Yes, it really is Bezukhov in a coachman's coat, with a
25385queer-looking old boy. Really," said Natasha, "look, look!"
25386
25387"No, it's not he. How can you talk such nonsense?"
25388
25389"Mamma," screamed Natasha, "I'll stake my head it's he! I assure
25390you! Stop, stop!" she cried to the coachman.
25391
25392But the coachman could not stop, for from the Meshchanski Street
25393came more carts and carriages, and the Rostovs were being shouted at
25394to move on and not block the way.
25395
25396In fact, however, though now much farther off than before, the
25397Rostovs all saw Pierre--or someone extraordinarily like him--in a
25398coachman's coat, going down the street with head bent and a serious
25399face beside a small, beardless old man who looked like a footman. That
25400old man noticed a face thrust out of the carriage window gazing at
25401them, and respectfully touching Pierre's elbow said something to him
25402and pointed to the carriage. Pierre, evidently engrossed in thought,
25403could not at first understand him. At length when he had understood
25404and looked in the direction the old man indicated, he recognized
25405Natasha, and following his first impulse stepped instantly and rapidly
25406toward the coach. But having taken a dozen steps he seemed to remember
25407something and stopped.
25408
25409Natasha's face, leaning out of the window, beamed with quizzical
25410kindliness.
25411
25412"Peter Kirilovich, come here! We have recognized you! This is
25413wonderful!" she cried, holding out her hand to him. "What are you
25414doing? Why are you like this?"
25415
25416Pierre took her outstretched hand and kissed it awkwardly as he
25417walked along beside her while the coach still moved on.
25418
25419"What is the matter, Count?" asked the countess in a surprised and
25420commiserating tone.
25421
25422"What? What? Why? Don't ask me," said Pierre, and looked round at
25423Natasha whose radiant, happy expression--of which he was conscious
25424without looking at her--filled him with enchantment.
25425
25426"Are you remaining in Moscow, then?"
25427
25428Pierre hesitated.
25429
25430"In Moscow?" he said in a questioning tone. "Yes, in Moscow.
25431Goodby!"
25432
25433"Ah, if only I were a man? I'd certainly stay with you. How
25434splendid!" said Natasha. "Mamma, if you'll let me, I'll stay!"
25435
25436Pierre glanced absently at Natasha and was about to say something,
25437but the countess interrupted him.
25438
25439"You were at the battle, we heard."
25440
25441"Yes, I was," Pierre answered. "There will be another battle
25442tomorrow..." he began, but Natasha interrupted him.
25443
25444"But what is the matter with you, Count? You are not like
25445yourself...."
25446
25447"Oh, don't ask me, don't ask me! I don't know myself. Tomorrow...
25448But no! Good-by, good-by!" he muttered. "It's an awful time!" and
25449dropping behind the carriage he stepped onto the pavement.
25450
25451Natasha continued to lean out of the window for a long time, beaming
25452at him with her kindly, slightly quizzical, happy smile.
25453
25454
25455
25456
25457
25458CHAPTER XVIII
25459
25460
25461For the last two days, ever since leaving home, Pierre had been
25462living in the empty house of his deceased benefactor, Bazdeev. This is
25463how it happened.
25464
25465When he woke up on the morning after his return to Moscow and his
25466interview with Count Rostopchin, he could not for some time make out
25467where he was and what was expected of him. When he was informed that
25468among others awaiting him in his reception room there was a
25469Frenchman who had brought a letter from his wife, the Countess Helene,
25470he felt suddenly overcome by that sense of confusion and
25471hopelessness to which he was apt to succumb. He felt that everything
25472was now at an end, all was in confusion and crumbling to pieces,
25473that nobody was right or wrong, the future held nothing, and there was
25474no escape from this position. Smiling unnaturally and muttering to
25475himself, he first sat down on the sofa in an attitude of despair, then
25476rose, went to the door of the reception room and peeped through the
25477crack, returned flourishing his arms, and took up a book. His
25478major-domo came in a second time to say that the Frenchman who had
25479brought the letter from the countess was very anxious to see him if
25480only for a minute, and that someone from Bazdeev's widow had called to
25481ask Pierre to take charge of her husband's books, as she herself was
25482leaving for the country.
25483
25484"Oh, yes, in a minute; wait... or no! No, of course... go and say
25485I will come directly," Pierre replied to the major-domo.
25486
25487But as soon as the man had left the room Pierre took up his hat
25488which was lying on the table and went out of his study by the other
25489door. There was no one in the passage. He went along the whole
25490length of this passage to the stairs and, frowning and rubbing his
25491forehead with both hands, went down as far as the first landing. The
25492hall porter was standing at the front door. From the landing where
25493Pierre stood there was a second staircase leading to the back
25494entrance. He went down that staircase and out into the yard. No one
25495had seen him. But there were some carriages waiting, and as soon as
25496Pierre stepped out of the gate the coachmen and the yard porter
25497noticed him and raised their caps to him. When he felt he was being
25498looked at he behaved like an ostrich which hides its head in a bush in
25499order not to be seen: he hung his head and quickening his pace went
25500down the street.
25501
25502Of all the affairs awaiting Pierre that day the sorting of Joseph
25503Bazdeev's books and papers appeared to him the most necessary.
25504
25505
25506He hired the first cab he met and told the driver to go to the
25507Patriarch's Ponds, where the widow Bazdeev's house was.
25508
25509Continually turning round to look at the rows of loaded carts that
25510were making their way from all sides out of Moscow, and balancing
25511his bulky body so as not to slip out of the ramshackle old vehicle,
25512Pierre, experiencing the joyful feeling of a boy escaping from school,
25513began to talk to his driver.
25514
25515The man told him that arms were being distributed today at the
25516Kremlin and that tomorrow everyone would be sent out beyond the
25517Three Hills gates and a great battle would be fought there.
25518
25519Having reached the Patriarch's Ponds Pierre found the Bazdeevs'
25520house, where he had not been for a long time past. He went up to the
25521gate. Gerasim, that sallow beardless old man Pierre had seen at
25522Torzhok five years before with Joseph Bazdeev, came out in answer to
25523his knock.
25524
25525"At home?" asked Pierre.
25526
25527"Owing to the present state of things Sophia Danilovna has gone to
25528the Torzhok estate with the children, your excellency."
25529
25530"I will come in all the same, I have to look through the books,"
25531said Pierre.
25532
25533"Be so good as to step in. Makar Alexeevich, the brother of my
25534late master--may the kingdom of heaven be his--has remained here,
25535but he is in a weak state as you know," said the old servant.
25536
25537Pierre knew that Makar Alexeevich was Joseph Bazdeev's half-insane
25538brother and a hard drinker.
25539
25540"Yes, yes, I know. Let us go in..." said Pierre and entered the
25541house.
25542
25543A tall, bald-headed old man with a red nose, wearing a dressing gown
25544and with galoshes on his bare feet, stood in the anteroom. On seeing
25545Pierre he muttered something angrily and went away along the passage.
25546
25547"He was a very clever man but has now grown quite feeble, as your
25548honor sees," said Gerasim. "Will you step into the study?" Pierre
25549nodded. "As it was sealed up so it has remained, but Sophia
25550Danilovna gave orders that if anyone should come from you they were to
25551have the books."
25552
25553Pierre went into that gloomy study which he had entered with such
25554trepidation in his benefactor's lifetime. The room, dusty and
25555untouched since the death of Joseph Bazdeev was now even gloomier.
25556
25557Gerasim opened one of the shutters and left the room on tiptoe.
25558Pierre went round the study, approached the cupboard in which the
25559manuscripts were kept, and took out what had once been one of the most
25560important, the holy of holies of the order. This was the authentic
25561Scotch Acts with Bazdeev's notes and explanations. He sat down at
25562the dusty writing table, and, having laid the manuscripts before
25563him, opened them out, closed them, finally pushed them away, and
25564resting his head on his hand sank into meditation.
25565
25566Gerasim looked cautiously into the study several times and saw
25567Pierre always sitting in the same attitude.
25568
25569More than two hours passed and Gerasim took the liberty of making
25570a slight noise at the door to attract his attention, but Pierre did
25571not hear him.
25572
25573"Is the cabman to be discharged, your honor?"
25574
25575"Oh yes!" said Pierre, rousing himself and rising hurriedly. "Look
25576here," he added, taking Gerasim by a button of his coat and looking
25577down at the old man with moist, shining, and ecstatic eyes, "I say, do
25578you know that there is going to be a battle tomorrow?"
25579
25580"We heard so," replied the man.
25581
25582"I beg you not to tell anyone who I am, and to do what I ask you."
25583
25584"Yes, your excellency," replied Gerasim. "Will you have something to
25585eat?"
25586
25587"No, but I want something else. I want peasant clothes and a
25588pistol," said Pierre, unexpectedly blushing.
25589
25590"Yes, your excellency," said Gerasim after thinking for a moment.
25591
25592All the rest of that day Pierre spent alone in his benefactor's
25593study, and Gerasim heard him pacing restlessly from one corner to
25594another and talking to himself. And he spent the night on a bed made
25595up for him there.
25596
25597Gerasim, being a servant who in his time had seen many strange
25598things, accepted Pierre's taking up his residence in the house without
25599surprise, and seemed pleased to have someone to wait on. That same
25600evening--without even asking himself what they were wanted for--he
25601procured a coachman's coat and cap for Pierre, and promised to get him
25602the pistol next day. Makar Alexeevich came twice that evening
25603shuffling along in his galoshes as far as the door and stopped and
25604looked ingratiatingly at Pierre. But as soon as Pierre turned toward
25605him he wrapped his dressing gown around him with a shamefaced and
25606angry look and hurried away. It was when Pierre (wearing the
25607coachman's coat which Gerasim had procured for him and had disinfected
25608by steam) was on his way with the old man to buy the pistol at the
25609Sukharev market that he met the Rostovs.
25610
25611
25612
25613
25614
25615CHAPTER XIX
25616
25617
25618Kutuzov's order to retreat through Moscow to the Ryazan road was
25619issued at night on the first of September.
25620
25621The first troops started at once, and during the night they
25622marched slowly and steadily without hurry. At daybreak, however, those
25623nearing the town at the Dorogomilov bridge saw ahead of them masses of
25624soldiers crowding and hurrying across the bridge, ascending on the
25625opposite side and blocking the streets and alleys, while endless
25626masses of troops were bearing down on them from behind, and an
25627unreasoning hurry and alarm overcame them. They all rushed forward
25628to the bridge, onto it, and to the fords and the boats. Kutuzov
25629himself had driven round by side streets to the other side of Moscow.
25630
25631By ten o'clock in the morning of the second of September, only the
25632rear guard remained in the Dorogomilov suburb, where they had ample
25633room. The main army was on the other side of Moscow or beyond it.
25634
25635At that very time, at ten in the morning of the second of September,
25636Napoleon was standing among his troops on the Poklonny Hill looking at
25637the panorama spread out before him. From the twenty-sixth of August to
25638the second of September, that is from the battle of Borodino to the
25639entry of the French into Moscow, during the whole of that agitating,
25640memorable week, there had been the extraordinary autumn weather that
25641always comes as a surprise, when the sun hangs low and gives more heat
25642than in spring, when everything shines so brightly in the rare clear
25643atmosphere that the eyes smart, when the lungs are strengthened and
25644refreshed by inhaling the aromatic autumn air, when even the nights
25645are warm, and when in those dark warm nights, golden stars startle and
25646delight us continually by falling from the sky.
25647
25648At ten in the morning of the second of September this weather
25649still held.
25650
25651The brightness of the morning was magical. Moscow seen from the
25652Poklonny Hill lay spaciously spread out with her river, her gardens,
25653and her churches, and she seemed to be living her usual life, her
25654cupolas glittering like stars in the sunlight.
25655
25656The view of the strange city with its peculiar architecture, such as
25657he had never seen before, filled Napoleon with the rather envious
25658and uneasy curiosity men feel when they see an alien form of life that
25659has no knowledge of them. This city was evidently living with the full
25660force of its own life. By the indefinite signs which, even at a
25661distance, distinguish a living body from a dead one, Napoleon from the
25662Poklonny Hill perceived the throb of life in the town and felt, as
25663it were, the breathing of that great and beautiful body.
25664
25665Every Russian looking at Moscow feels her to be a mother; every
25666foreigner who sees her, even if ignorant of her significance as the
25667mother city, must feel her feminine character, and Napoleon felt it.
25668
25669"Cette ville asiatique aux innombrables eglises, Moscou la sainte.
25670La voila done enfin, cette fameuse ville! Il etait temps,"* said he,
25671and dismounting he ordered a plan of Moscow to be spread out before
25672him, and summoned Lelorgne d'Ideville, the interpreter.
25673
25674
25675*"That Asiatic city of the innumerable churches, holy Moscow! Here
25676it is then at last, that famous city. It was high time."
25677
25678
25679"A town captured by the enemy is like a maid who has lost her
25680honor," thought he (he had said so to Tuchkov at Smolensk). From
25681that point of view he gazed at the Oriental beauty he had not seen
25682before. It seemed strange to him that his long-felt wish, which had
25683seemed unattainable, had at last been realized. In the clear morning
25684light he gazed now at the city and now at the plan, considering its
25685details, and the assurance of possessing it agitated and awed him.
25686
25687"But could it be otherwise?" he thought. "Here is this capital at my
25688feet. Where is Alexander now, and of what is he thinking? A strange,
25689beautiful, and majestic city; and a strange and majestic moment! In
25690what light must I appear to them!" thought he, thinking of his troops.
25691"Here she is, the reward for all those fainthearted men," he
25692reflected, glancing at those near him and at the troops who were
25693approaching and forming up. "One word from me, one movement of my
25694hand, and that ancient capital of the Tsars would perish. But my
25695clemency is always ready to descend upon the vanquished. I must be
25696magnanimous and truly great. But no, it can't be true that I am in
25697Moscow," he suddenly thought. "Yet here she is lying at my feet,
25698with her golden domes and crosses scintillating and twinkling in the
25699sunshine. But I shall spare her. On the ancient monuments of barbarism
25700and despotism I will inscribe great words of justice and mercy....
25701It is just this which Alexander will feel most painfully, I know him."
25702(It seemed to Napoleon that the chief import of what was taking
25703place lay in the personal struggle between himself and Alexander.)
25704"From the height of the Kremlin--yes, there is the Kremlin, yes--I
25705will give them just laws; I will teach them the meaning of true
25706civilization, I will make generations of boyars remember their
25707conqueror with love. I will tell the deputation that I did not, and do
25708not, desire war, that I have waged war only against the false policy
25709of their court; that I love and respect Alexander and that in Moscow I
25710will accept terms of peace worthy of myself and of my people. I do not
25711wish to utilize the fortunes of war to humiliate an honored monarch.
25712'Boyars,' I will say to them, 'I do not desire war, I desire the peace
25713and welfare of all my subjects.' However, I know their presence will
25714inspire me, and I shall speak to them as I always do: clearly,
25715impressively, and majestically. But can it be true that I am in
25716Moscow? Yes, there she lies."
25717
25718"Qu'on m'amene les boyars,"* said he to his suite.
25719
25720
25721*"Bring the boyars to me."
25722
25723
25724A general with a brilliant suite galloped off at once to fetch the
25725boyars.
25726
25727Two hours passed. Napoleon had lunched and was again standing in the
25728same place on the Poklonny Hill awaiting the deputation. His speech to
25729the boyars had already taken definite shape in his imagination. That
25730speech was full of dignity and greatness as Napoleon understood it.
25731
25732He was himself carried away by the tone of magnanimity he intended
25733to adopt toward Moscow. In his imagination he appointed days for
25734assemblies at the palace of the Tsars, at which Russian notables and
25735his own would mingle. He mentally appointed a governor, one who
25736would win the hearts of the people. Having learned that there were
25737many charitable institutions in Moscow he mentally decided that he
25738would shower favors on them all. He thought that, as in Africa he
25739had to put on a burnoose and sit in a mosque, so in Moscow he must
25740be beneficent like the Tsars. And in order finally to touch the hearts
25741of the Russians--and being like all Frenchmen unable to imagine
25742anything sentimental without a reference to ma chere, ma tendre, ma
25743pauvre mere* --he decided that he would place an inscription on all
25744these establishments in large letters: "This establishment is
25745dedicated to my dear mother." Or no, it should be simply: Maison de ma
25746Mere,*[2] he concluded. "But am I really in Moscow? Yes, here it
25747lies before me, but why is the deputation from the city so long in
25748appearing?" he wondered.
25749
25750
25751*"My dear, my tender, my poor mother."
25752
25753*[2] "House of my Mother."
25754
25755
25756Meanwhile an agitated consultation was being carried on in
25757whispers among his generals and marshals at the rear of his suite.
25758Those sent to fetch the deputation had returned with the news that
25759Moscow was empty, that everyone had left it. The faces of those who
25760were not conferring together were pale and perturbed. They were not
25761alarmed by the fact that Moscow had been abandoned by its
25762inhabitants (grave as that fact seemed), but by the question how to
25763tell the Emperor--without putting him in the terrible position of
25764appearing ridiculous--that he had been awaiting the boyars so long
25765in vain: that there were drunken mobs left in Moscow but no one
25766else. Some said that a deputation of some sort must be scraped
25767together, others disputed that opinion and maintained that the Emperor
25768should first be carefully and skillfully prepared, and then told the
25769truth.
25770
25771"He will have to be told, all the same," said some gentlemen of
25772the suite. "But, gentlemen..."
25773
25774The position was the more awkward because the Emperor, meditating
25775upon his magnanimous plans, was pacing patiently up and down before
25776the outspread map, occasionally glancing along the road to Moscow from
25777under his lifted hand with a bright and proud smile.
25778
25779"But it's impossible..." declared the gentlemen of the suite,
25780shrugging their shoulders but not venturing to utter the implied word-
25781le ridicule...
25782
25783At last the Emperor, tired of futile expectation, his actor's
25784instinct suggesting to him that the sublime moment having been too
25785long drawn out was beginning to lose its sublimity, gave a sign with
25786his hand. A single report of a signaling gun followed, and the troops,
25787who were already spread out on different sides of Moscow, moved into
25788the city through Tver, Kaluga, and Dorogomilov gates. Faster and
25789faster, vying with one another, they moved at the double or at a trot,
25790vanishing amid the clouds of dust they raised and making the air
25791ring with a deafening roar of mingling shouts.
25792
25793Drawn on by the movement of his troops Napoleon rode with them as
25794far as the Dorogomilov gate, but there again stopped and,
25795dismounting from his horse, paced for a long time by the
25796Kammer-Kollezski rampart, awaiting the deputation.
25797
25798
25799
25800
25801
25802CHAPTER XX
25803
25804Meanwhile Moscow was empty. There were still people in it, perhaps a
25805fiftieth part of its former inhabitants had remained, but it was
25806empty. It was empty in the sense that a dying queenless hive is empty.
25807
25808In a queenless hive no life is left though to a superficial glance
25809it seems as much alive as other hives.
25810
25811The bees circle round a queenless hive in the hot beams of the
25812midday sun as gaily as around the living hives; from a distance it
25813smells of honey like the others, and bees fly in and out in the same
25814way. But one has only to observe that hive to realize that there is no
25815longer any life in it. The bees do not fly in the same way, the
25816smell and the sound that meet the beekeeper are not the same. To the
25817beekeeper's tap on the wall of the sick hive, instead of the former
25818instant unanimous humming of tens of thousands of bees with their
25819abdomens threateningly compressed, and producing by the rapid
25820vibration of their wings an aerial living sound, the only reply is a
25821disconnected buzzing from different parts of the deserted hive. From
25822the alighting board, instead of the former spirituous fragrant smell
25823of honey and venom, and the warm whiffs of crowded life, comes an odor
25824of emptiness and decay mingling with the smell of honey. There are
25825no longer sentinels sounding the alarm with their abdomens raised, and
25826ready to die in defense of the hive. There is no longer the measured
25827quiet sound of throbbing activity, like the sound of boiling water,
25828but diverse discordant sounds of disorder. In and out of the hive long
25829black robber bees smeared with honey fly timidly and shiftily. They do
25830not sting, but crawl away from danger. Formerly only bees laden with
25831honey flew into the hive, and they flew out empty; now they fly out
25832laden. The beekeeper opens the lower part of the hive and peers in.
25833Instead of black, glossy bees--tamed by toil, clinging to one
25834another's legs and drawing out the wax, with a ceaseless hum of labor-
25835that used to hang in long clusters down to the floor of the hive,
25836drowsy shriveled bees crawl about separately in various directions
25837on the floor and walls of the hive. Instead of a neatly glued floor,
25838swept by the bees with the fanning of their wings, there is a floor
25839littered with bits of wax, excrement, dying bees scarcely moving their
25840legs, and dead ones that have not been cleared away.
25841
25842The beekeeper opens the upper part of the hive and examines the
25843super. Instead of serried rows of bees sealing up every gap in the
25844combs and keeping the brood warm, he sees the skillful complex
25845structures of the combs, but no longer in their former state of
25846purity. All is neglected and foul. Black robber bees are swiftly and
25847stealthily prowling about the combs, and the short home bees,
25848shriveled and listless as if they were old, creep slowly about without
25849trying to hinder the robbers, having lost all motive and all sense
25850of life. Drones, bumblebees, wasps, and butterflies knock awkwardly
25851against the walls of the hive in their flight. Here and there among
25852the cells containing dead brood and honey an angry buzzing can
25853sometimes be heard. Here and there a couple of bees, by force of habit
25854and custom cleaning out the brood cells, with efforts beyond their
25855strength laboriously drag away a dead bee or bumblebee without knowing
25856why they do it. In another corner two old bees are languidly fighting,
25857or cleaning themselves, or feeding one another, without themselves
25858knowing whether they do it with friendly or hostile intent. In a third
25859place a crowd of bees, crushing one another, attack some victim and
25860fight and smother it, and the victim, enfeebled or killed, drops
25861from above slowly and lightly as a feather, among the heap of corpses.
25862The keeper opens the two center partitions to examine the brood cells.
25863In place of the former close dark circles formed by thousands of
25864bees sitting back to back and guarding the high mystery of generation,
25865he sees hundreds of dull, listless, and sleepy shells of bees. They
25866have almost all died unawares, sitting in the sanctuary they had
25867guarded and which is now no more. They reek of decay and death. Only a
25868few of them still move, rise, and feebly fly to settle on the
25869enemy's hand, lacking the spirit to die stinging him; the rest are
25870dead and fall as lightly as fish scales. The beekeeper closes the
25871hive, chalks a mark on it, and when he has time tears out its contents
25872and burns it clean.
25873
25874So in the same way Moscow was empty when Napoleon, weary, uneasy,
25875and morose, paced up and down in front of the Kammer-Kollezski
25876rampart, awaiting what to his mind was a necessary, if but formal,
25877observance of the proprieties--a deputation.
25878
25879In various corners of Moscow there still remained a few people
25880aimlessly moving about, following their old habits and hardly aware of
25881what they were doing.
25882
25883When with due circumspection Napoleon was informed that Moscow was
25884empty, he looked angrily at his informant, turned away, and silently
25885continued to walk to and fro.
25886
25887"My carriage!" he said.
25888
25889He took his seat beside the aide-de-camp on duty and drove into
25890the suburb. "Moscow deserted!" he said to himself. "What an incredible
25891event!"
25892
25893He did not drive into the town, but put up at an inn in the
25894Dorogomilov suburb.
25895
25896The coup de theatre had not come off.
25897
25898
25899
25900
25901
25902CHAPTER XXI
25903
25904
25905The Russian troops were passing through Moscow from two o'clock at
25906night till two in the afternoon and bore away with them the wounded
25907and the last of the inhabitants who were leaving.
25908
25909The greatest crush during the movement of the troops took place at
25910the Stone, Moskva, and Yauza bridges.
25911
25912While the troops, dividing into two parts when passing around the
25913Kremlin, were thronging the Moskva and the Stone bridges, a great many
25914soldiers, taking advantage of the stoppage and congestion, turned back
25915from the bridges and slipped stealthily and silently past the church
25916of Vasili the Beatified and under the Borovitski gate, back up the
25917hill to the Red Square where some instinct told them they could easily
25918take things not belonging to them. Crowds of the kind seen at cheap
25919sales filled all the passages and alleys of the Bazaar. But there were
25920no dealers with voices of ingratiating affability inviting customers
25921to enter; there were no hawkers, nor the usual motley crowd of
25922female purchasers--but only soldiers, in uniforms and overcoats though
25923without muskets, entering the Bazaar empty-handed and silently
25924making their way out through its passages with bundles. Tradesmen
25925and their assistants (of whom there were but few) moved about among
25926the soldiers quite bewildered. They unlocked their shops and locked
25927them up again, and themselves carried goods away with the help their
25928assistants. On the square in front of the Bazaar were drummers beating
25929the muster call. But the roll of the drums did not make the looting
25930soldiers run in the direction of the drum as formerly, but made
25931them, on the contrary, run farther away. Among the soldiers in the
25932shops and passages some men were to be seen in gray coats, with
25933closely shaven heads. Two officers, one with a scarf over his
25934uniform and mounted on a lean, dark-gray horse, the other in an
25935overcoat and on foot, stood at the corner of Ilyinka Street,
25936talking. A third officer galloped up to them.
25937
25938"The general orders them all to be driven out at once, without fail.
25939This is outrageous! Half the men have dispersed."
25940
25941"Where are you off to?... Where?..." he shouted to three infantrymen
25942without muskets who, holding up the skirts of their overcoats, were
25943slipping past him into the Bazaar passage. "Stop, you rascals!"
25944
25945"But how are you going to stop them?" replied another officer.
25946"There is no getting them together. The army should push on before the
25947rest bolt, that's all!"
25948
25949"How can one push on? They are stuck there, wedged on the bridge,
25950and don't move. Shouldn't we put a cordon round to prevent the rest
25951from running away?"
25952
25953"Come, go in there and drive them out!" shouted the senior officer.
25954
25955The officer in the scarf dismounted, called up a drummer, and went
25956with him into the arcade. Some soldiers started running away in a
25957group. A shopkeeper with red pimples on his cheeks near the nose,
25958and a calm, persistent, calculating expression on his plump face,
25959hurriedly and ostentatiously approached the officer, swinging his
25960arms.
25961
25962"Your honor!" said he. "Be so good as to protect us! We won't grudge
25963trifles, you are welcome to anything--we shall be delighted!
25964Pray!... I'll fetch a piece of cloth at once for such an honorable
25965gentleman, or even two pieces with pleasure. For we feel how it is;
25966but what's all this--sheer robbery! If you please, could not guards be
25967placed if only to let us close the shop...."
25968
25969Several shopkeepers crowded round the officer.
25970
25971"Eh, what twaddle!" said one of them, a thin, stern-looking man.
25972"When one's head is gone one doesn't weep for one's hair! Take what
25973any of you like!" And flourishing his arm energetically he turned
25974sideways to the officer.
25975
25976"It's all very well for you, Ivan Sidorych, to talk," said the first
25977tradesman angrily. "Please step inside, your honor!"
25978
25979"Talk indeed!" cried the thin one. "In my three shops here I have
25980a hundred thousand rubles' worth of goods. Can they be saved when
25981the army has gone? Eh, what people! 'Against God's might our hands
25982can't fight.'"
25983
25984"Come inside, your honor!" repeated the tradesman, bowing.
25985
25986The officer stood perplexed and his face showed indecision.
25987
25988"It's not my business!" he exclaimed, and strode on quickly down one
25989of the passages.
25990
25991From one open shop came the sound of blows and vituperation, and
25992just as the officer came up to it a man in a gray coat with a shaven
25993head was flung out violently.
25994
25995This man, bent double, rushed past the tradesman and the officer.
25996The officer pounced on the soldiers who were in the shops, but at that
25997moment fearful screams reached them from the huge crowd on the
25998Moskva bridge and the officer ran out into the square.
25999
26000"What is it? What is it?" he asked, but his comrade was already
26001galloping off past Vasili the Beatified in the direction from which
26002the screams came.
26003
26004The officer mounted his horse and rode after him. When he reached
26005the bridge he saw two unlimbered guns, the infantry crossing the
26006bridge, several overturned carts, and frightened and laughing faces
26007among the troops. Beside the cannon a cart was standing to which two
26008horses were harnessed. Four borzois with collars were pressing close
26009to the wheels. The cart was loaded high, and at the very top, beside a
26010child's chair with its legs in the air, sat a peasant woman uttering
26011piercing and desperate shrieks. He was told by his fellow officers
26012that the screams of the crowd and the shrieks of the woman were due to
26013the fact that General Ermolov, coming up to the crowd and learning
26014that soldiers were dispersing among the shops while crowds of
26015civilians blocked the bridge, had ordered two guns to be unlimbered
26016and made a show of firing at the bridge. The crowd, crushing one
26017another, upsetting carts, and shouting and squeezing desperately,
26018had cleared off the bridge and the troops were now moving forward.
26019
26020
26021
26022
26023
26024CHAPTER XXII
26025
26026
26027Meanwhile, the city itself was deserted. There was hardly anyone
26028in the streets. The gates and shops were all closed, only here and
26029there round the taverns solitary shouts or drunken songs could be
26030heard. Nobody drove through the streets and footsteps were rarely
26031heard. The Povarskaya was quite still and deserted. The huge courtyard
26032of the Rostovs' house was littered with wisps of hay and with dung
26033from the horses, and not a soul was to be seen there. In the great
26034drawing room of the house, which had been left with all it
26035contained, were two people. They were the yard porter Ignat, and the
26036page boy Mishka, Vasilich's grandson who had stayed in Moscow with his
26037grandfather. Mishka had opened the clavichord and was strumming on
26038it with one finger. The yard porter, his arms akimbo, stood smiling
26039with satisfaction before the large mirror.
26040
26041"Isn't it fine, eh, Uncle Ignat?" said the boy, suddenly beginning
26042to strike the keyboard with both hands.
26043
26044"Only fancy!" answered Ignat, surprised at the broadening grin on
26045his face in the mirror.
26046
26047"Impudence! Impudence!" they heard behind them the voice of Mavra
26048Kuzminichna who had entered silently. "How he's grinning, the fat mug!
26049Is that what you're here for? Nothing's cleared away down there and
26050Vasilich is worn out. Just you wait a bit!"
26051
26052Ignat left off smiling, adjusted his belt, and went out of the
26053room with meekly downcast eyes.
26054
26055"Aunt, I did it gently," said the boy.
26056
26057"I'll give you something gently, you monkey you!" cried Mavra
26058Kuzminichna, raising her arm threateningly. "Go and get the samovar to
26059boil for your grandfather."
26060
26061Mavra Kuzminichna flicked the dust off the clavichord and closed it,
26062and with a deep sigh left the drawing room and locked its main door.
26063
26064Going out into the yard she paused to consider where she should go
26065next--to drink tea in the servants' wing with Vasilich, or into the
26066storeroom to put away what still lay about.
26067
26068She heard the sound of quick footsteps in the quiet street.
26069Someone stopped at the gate, and the latch rattled as someone tried to
26070open it. Mavra Kuzminichna went to the gate.
26071
26072"Who do you want?"
26073
26074"The count--Count Ilya Andreevich Rostov."
26075
26076"And who are you?"
26077
26078"An officer, I have to see him," came the reply in a pleasant,
26079well-bred Russian voice.
26080
26081Mavra Kuzminichna opened the gate and an officer of eighteen, with
26082the round face of a Rostov, entered the yard.
26083
26084"They have gone away, sir. Went away yesterday at vespertime,"
26085said Mavra Kuzminichna cordially.
26086
26087The young officer standing in the gateway, as if hesitating
26088whether to enter or not, clicked his tongue.
26089
26090"Ah, how annoying!" he muttered. "I should have come yesterday....
26091Ah, what a pity."
26092
26093Meanwhile, Mavra Kuzminichna was attentively and sympathetically
26094examining the familiar Rostov features of the young man's face, his
26095tattered coat and trodden-down boots.
26096
26097"What did you want to see the count for?" she asked.
26098
26099"Oh well... it can't be helped!" said he in a tone of vexation and
26100placed his hand on the gate as if to leave.
26101
26102He again paused in indecision.
26103
26104"You see," he suddenly said, "I am a kinsman of the count's and he
26105has been very kind to me. As you see" (he glanced with an amused air
26106and good-natured smile at his coat and boots) "my things are worn
26107out and I have no money, so I was going to ask the count..."
26108
26109Mavra Kuzminichna did not let him finish.
26110
26111"Just wait a minute, sir. One little moment," said she.
26112
26113And as soon as the officer let go of the gate handle she turned and,
26114hurrying away on her old legs, went through the back yard to the
26115servants' quarters.
26116
26117While Mavra Kuzminichna was running to her room the officer walked
26118about the yard gazing at his worn-out boots with lowered head and a
26119faint smile on his lips. "What a pity I've missed Uncle! What a nice
26120old woman! Where has she run off to? And how am I to find the
26121nearest way to overtake my regiment, which must by now be getting near
26122the Rogozhski gate?" thought he. Just then Mavra Kuzminichna
26123appeared from behind the corner of the house with a frightened yet
26124resolute look, carrying a rolled-up check kerchief in her hand.
26125While still a few steps from the officer she unfolded the kerchief and
26126took out of it a white twenty-five-ruble assignat and hastily handed
26127it to him.
26128
26129"If his excellency had been at home, as a kinsman he would of
26130course... but as it is..."
26131
26132Mavra Kuzminichna grew abashed and confused. The officer did not
26133decline, but took the note quietly and thanked her.
26134
26135"If the count had been at home..." Mavra Kuzminichna went on
26136apologetically. "Christ be with you, sir! May God preserve you!"
26137said she, bowing as she saw him out.
26138
26139Swaying his head and smiling as if amused at himself, the officer
26140ran almost at a trot through the deserted streets toward the Yauza
26141bridge to overtake his regiment.
26142
26143But Mavra Kuzminichna stood at the closed gate for some time with
26144moist eyes, pensively swaying her head and feeling an unexpected
26145flow of motherly tenderness and pity for the unknown young officer.
26146
26147
26148
26149
26150
26151CHAPTER XXIII
26152
26153
26154From an unfinished house on the Varvarka, the ground floor of
26155which was a dramshop, came drunken shouts and songs. On benches
26156round the tables in a dirty little room sat some ten factory hands.
26157Tipsy and perspiring, with dim eyes and wide-open mouths, they were
26158all laboriously singing some song or other. They were singing
26159discordantly, arduously, and with great effort, evidently not
26160because they wished to sing, but because they wanted to show they were
26161drunk and on a spree. One, a tall, fair-haired lad in a clean blue
26162coat, was standing over the others. His face with its fine straight
26163nose would have been handsome had it not been for his thin,
26164compressed, twitching lips and dull, gloomy, fixed eyes. Evidently
26165possessed by some idea, he stood over those who were singing, and
26166solemnly and jerkily flourished above their heads his white arm with
26167the sleeve turned up to the elbow, trying unnaturally to spread out
26168his dirty fingers. The sleeve of his coat kept slipping down and he
26169always carefully rolled it up again with his left hand, as if it
26170were most important that the sinewy white arm he was flourishing
26171should be bare. In the midst of the song cries were heard, and
26172fighting and blows in the passage and porch. The tall lad waved his
26173arm.
26174
26175"Stop it!" he exclaimed peremptorily. "There's a fight, lads!"
26176And, still rolling up his sleeve, he went out to the porch.
26177
26178The factory hands followed him. These men, who under the
26179leadership of the tall lad were drinking in the dramshop that morning,
26180had brought the publican some skins from the factory and for this
26181had had drink served them. The blacksmiths from a neighboring
26182smithy, hearing the sounds of revelry in the tavern and supposing it
26183to have been broken into, wished to force their way in too and a fight
26184in the porch had resulted.
26185
26186The publican was fighting one of the smiths at the door, and when
26187the workmen came out the smith, wrenching himself free from the tavern
26188keeper, fell face downward on the pavement.
26189
26190Another smith tried to enter the doorway, pressing against the
26191publican with his chest.
26192
26193The lad with the turned-up sleeve gave the smith a blow in the
26194face and cried wildly: "They're fighting us, lads!"
26195
26196At that moment the first smith got up and, scratching his bruised
26197face to make it bleed, shouted in a tearful voice: "Police! Murder!...
26198They've killed a man, lads!"
26199
26200"Oh, gracious me, a man beaten to death--killed!..." screamed a
26201woman coming out of a gate close by.
26202
26203A crowd gathered round the bloodstained smith.
26204
26205"Haven't you robbed people enough--taking their last shirts?" said a
26206voice addressing the publican. "What have you killed a man for, you
26207thief?"
26208
26209The tall lad, standing in the porch, turned his bleared eyes from
26210the publican to the smith and back again as if considering whom he
26211ought to fight now.
26212
26213"Murderer!" he shouted suddenly to the publican. "Bind him, lads!"
26214
26215"I daresay you would like to bind me!" shouted the publican, pushing
26216away the men advancing on him, and snatching his cap from his head
26217he flung it on the ground.
26218
26219As if this action had some mysterious and menacing significance, the
26220workmen surrounding the publican paused in indecision.
26221
26222"I know the law very well, mates! I'll take the matter to the
26223captain of police. You think I won't get to him? Robbery is not
26224permitted to anybody now a days!" shouted the publican, picking up his
26225cap.
26226
26227"Come along then! Come along then!" the publican and the tall
26228young fellow repeated one after the other, and they moved up the
26229street together.
26230
26231The bloodstained smith went beside them. The factory hands and
26232others followed behind, talking and shouting.
26233
26234At the corner of the Moroseyka, opposite a large house with closed
26235shutters and bearing a bootmaker's signboard, stood a score of thin,
26236worn-out, gloomy-faced bootmakers, wearing overalls and long
26237tattered coats.
26238
26239"He should pay folks off properly," a thin workingman, with frowning
26240brows and a straggly beard, was saying.
26241
26242"But he's sucked our blood and now he thinks he's quit of us. He's
26243been misleading us all the week and now that he's brought us to this
26244pass he's made off."
26245
26246On seeing the crowd and the bloodstained man the workman ceased
26247speaking, and with eager curiosity all the bootmakers joined the
26248moving crowd.
26249
26250"Where are all the folks going?"
26251
26252"Why, to the police, of course!"
26253
26254"I say, is it true that we have been beaten?" "And what did you
26255think? Look what folks are saying."
26256
26257Questions and answers were heard. The publican, taking advantage
26258of the increased crowd, dropped behind and returned to his tavern.
26259
26260The tall youth, not noticing the disappearance of his foe, waved his
26261bare arm and went on talking incessantly, attracting general attention
26262to himself. It was around him that the people chiefly crowded,
26263expecting answers from him to the questions that occupied all their
26264minds.
26265
26266"He must keep order, keep the law, that's what the government is
26267there for. Am I not right, good Christians?" said the tall youth, with
26268a scarcely perceptible smile. "He thinks there's no government! How
26269can one do without government? Or else there would be plenty who'd rob
26270us."
26271
26272"Why talk nonsense?" rejoined voices in the crowd. "Will they give
26273up Moscow like this? They told you that for fun, and you believed
26274it! Aren't there plenty of troops on the march? Let him in, indeed!
26275That's what the government is for. You'd better listen to what
26276people are saying," said some of the mob pointing to the tall youth.
26277
26278By the wall of China-Town a smaller group of people were gathered
26279round a man in a frieze coat who held a paper in his hand.
26280
26281"An ukase, they are reading an ukase! Reading an ukase!" cried
26282voices in the crowd, and the people rushed toward the reader.
26283
26284The man in the frieze coat was reading the broadsheet of August 31
26285When the crowd collected round him he seemed confused, but at the
26286demand of the tall lad who had pushed his way up to him, he began in a
26287rather tremulous voice to read the sheet from the beginning.
26288
26289"Early tomorrow I shall go to his Serene Highness," he read
26290("Sirin Highness," said the tall fellow with a triumphant smile on his
26291lips and a frown on his brow), "to consult with him to act, and to aid
26292the army to exterminate these scoundrels. We too will take part..."
26293the reader went on, and then paused ("Do you see," shouted the youth
26294victoriously, "he's going to clear up the whole affair for
26295you...."), "in destroying them, and will send these visitors to the
26296devil. I will come back to dinner, and we'll set to work. We will
26297do, completely do, and undo these scoundrels."
26298
26299The last words were read out in the midst of complete silence. The
26300tall lad hung his head gloomily. It was evident that no one had
26301understood the last part. In particular, the words "I will come back
26302to dinner," evidently displeased both reader and audience. The
26303people's minds were tuned to a high pitch and this was too simple
26304and needlessly comprehensible--it was what any one of them might
26305have said and therefore was what an ukase emanating from the highest
26306authority should not say.
26307
26308They all stood despondent and silent. The tall youth moved his
26309lips and swayed from side to side.
26310
26311"We should ask him... that's he himself?"... "Yes, ask him
26312indeed!... Why not? He'll explain"... voices in the rear of the
26313crowd were suddenly heard saying, and the general attention turned
26314to the police superintendent's trap which drove into the square
26315attended by two mounted dragoons.
26316
26317The superintendent of police, who had that morning by Count
26318Rostopchin's orders to burn the barges and had in connection with that
26319matter acquired a large sum of money which was at that moment in his
26320pocket, on seeing a crowd bearing down upon him told his coachman to
26321stop.
26322
26323"What people are these?" he shouted to the men, who were moving
26324singly and timidly in the direction of his trap.
26325
26326"What people are these?" he shouted again, receiving no answer.
26327
26328"Your honor..." replied the shopman in the frieze coat, "your honor,
26329in accord with the proclamation of his highest excellency the count,
26330they desire to serve, not sparing their lives, and it is not any
26331kind of riot, but as his highest excellence said..."
26332
26333"The count has not left, he is here, and an order will be issued
26334concerning you," said the superintendent of police. "Go on!" he
26335ordered his coachman.
26336
26337The crowd halted, pressing around those who had heard what the
26338superintendent had said, and looking at the departing trap.
26339
26340The superintendent of police turned round at that moment with a
26341scared look, said something to his coachman, and his horses
26342increased their speed.
26343
26344"It's a fraud, lads! Lead the way to him, himself!" shouted the tall
26345youth. "Don't let him go, lads! Let him answer us! Keep him!"
26346shouted different people and the people dashed in pursuit of the trap.
26347
26348Following the superintendent of police and talking loudly the
26349crowd went in the direction of the Lubyanka Street.
26350
26351"There now, the gentry and merchants have gone away and left us to
26352perish. Do they think we're dogs?" voices in the crowd were heard
26353saying more and more frequently.
26354
26355
26356
26357
26358
26359CHAPTER XXIV
26360
26361
26362On the evening of the first of September, after his interview with
26363Kutuzov, Count Rostopchin had returned to Moscow mortified and
26364offended because he had not been invited to attend the council of war,
26365and because Kutuzov had paid no attention to his offer to take part in
26366the defense of the city; amazed also at the novel outlook revealed
26367to him at the camp, which treated the tranquillity of the capital
26368and its patriotic fervor as not merely secondary but quite
26369irrelevant and unimportant matters. Distressed, offended, and
26370surprised by all this, Rostopchin had returned to Moscow. After supper
26371he lay down on a sofa without undressing, and was awakened soon
26372after midnight by a courier bringing him a letter from Kutuzov. This
26373letter requested the count to send police officers to guide the troops
26374through the town, as the army was retreating to the Ryazan road beyond
26375Moscow. This was not news to Rostopchin. He had known that Moscow
26376would be abandoned not merely since his interview the previous day
26377with Kutuzov on the Poklonny Hill but ever since the battle of
26378Borodino, for all the generals who came to Moscow after that battle
26379had said unanimously that it was impossible to fight another battle,
26380and since then the government property had been removed every night,
26381and half the inhabitants had left the city with Rostopchin's own
26382permission. Yet all the same this information astonished and irritated
26383the count, coming as it did in the form of a simple note with an order
26384from Kutuzov, and received at night, breaking in on his beauty sleep.
26385
26386When later on in his memoirs Count Rostopchin explained his
26387actions at this time, he repeatedly says that he was then actuated
26388by two important considerations: to maintain tranquillity in Moscow
26389and expedite the departure of the inhabitants. If one accepts this
26390twofold aim all Rostopchin's actions appear irreproachable. "Why
26391were the holy relics, the arms, ammunition, gunpowder, and stores of
26392corn not removed? Why were thousands of inhabitants deceived into
26393believing that Moscow would not be given up--and thereby ruined?"
26394"To presence the tranquillity of the city," explains Count Rostopchin.
26395"Why were bundles of useless papers from the government offices, and
26396Leppich's balloon and other articles removed?" "To leave the town
26397empty," explains Count Rostopchin. One need only admit that public
26398tranquillity is in danger and any action finds a justification.
26399
26400All the horrors of the reign of terror were based only on solicitude
26401for public tranquillity.
26402
26403On what, then, was Count Rostopchin's fear for the tranquillity of
26404Moscow based in 1812? What reason was there for assuming any
26405probability of an uprising in the city? The inhabitants were leaving
26406it and the retreating troops were filling it. Why should that cause
26407the masses to riot?
26408
26409Neither in Moscow nor anywhere in Russia did anything resembling
26410an insurrection ever occur when the enemy entered a town. More than
26411ten thousand people were still in Moscow on the first and second of
26412September, and except for a mob in the governor's courtyard, assembled
26413there at his bidding, nothing happened. It is obvious that there would
26414have been even less reason to expect a disturbance among the people if
26415after the battle of Borodino, when the surrender of Moscow became
26416certain or at least probable, Rostopchin instead of exciting the
26417people by distributing arms and broadsheets had taken steps to
26418remove all the holy relics, the gunpowder, munitions, and money, and
26419had told the population plainly that the town would be abandoned.
26420
26421Rostopchin, though he had patriotic sentiments, was a sanguine and
26422impulsive man who had always moved in the highest administrative
26423circles and had no understanding at all of the people he supposed
26424himself to be guiding. Ever since the enemy's entry into Smolensk he
26425had in imagination been playing the role of director of the popular
26426feeling of "the heart of Russia." Not only did it seem to him (as to
26427all administrators) that he controlled the external actions of
26428Moscow's inhabitants, but he also thought he controlled their mental
26429attitude by means of his broadsheets and posters, written in a
26430coarse tone which the people despise in their own class and do not
26431understand from those in authority. Rostopchin was so pleased with the
26432fine role of leader of popular feeling, and had grown so used to it,
26433that the necessity of relinquishing that role and abandoning Moscow
26434without any heroic display took him unawares and he suddenly felt
26435the ground slip away from under his feet, so that he positively did
26436not know what to do. Though he knew it was coming, he did not till the
26437last moment wholeheartedly believe that Moscow would be abandoned, and
26438did not prepare for it. The inhabitants left against his wishes. If
26439the government offices were removed, this was only done on the
26440demand of officials to whom the count yielded reluctantly. He was
26441absorbed in the role he had created for himself. As is often the
26442case with those gifted with an ardent imagination, though he had
26443long known that Moscow would be abandoned he knew it only with his
26444intellect, he did not believe it in his heart and did not adapt
26445himself mentally to this new position of affairs.
26446
26447All his painstaking and energetic activity (in how far it was useful
26448and had any effect on the people is another question) had been
26449simply directed toward arousing in the masses his own feeling of
26450patriotic hatred of the French.
26451
26452But when events assumed their true historical character, when
26453expressing hatred for the French in words proved insufficient, when it
26454was not even possible to express that hatred by fighting a battle,
26455when self-confidence was of no avail in relation to the one question
26456before Moscow, when the whole population streamed out of Moscow as one
26457man, abandoning their belongings and proving by that negative action
26458all the depth of their national feeling, then the role chosen by
26459Rostopchin suddenly appeared senseless. He unexpectedly felt himself
26460ridiculous, weak, and alone, with no ground to stand on.
26461
26462When, awakened from his sleep, he received that cold, peremptory
26463note from Kutuzov, he felt the more irritated the more he felt himself
26464to blame. All that he had been specially put in charge of, the state
26465property which he should have removed, was still in Moscow and it
26466was no longer possible to take the whole of it away.
26467
26468"Who is to blame for it? Who has let things come to such a pass?" he
26469ruminated. "Not I, of course. I had everything ready. I had Moscow
26470firmly in hand. And this is what they have let it come to! Villains!
26471Traitors!" he thought, without clearly defining who the villains and
26472traitors were, but feeling it necessary to hate those traitors whoever
26473they might be who were to blame for the false and ridiculous
26474position in which he found himself.
26475
26476All that night Count Rostopchin issued orders, for which people came
26477to him from all parts of Moscow. Those about him had never seen the
26478count so morose and irritable.
26479
26480"Your excellency, the Director of the Registrar's Department has
26481sent for instructions... From the Consistory, from the Senate, from
26482the University, from the Foundling Hospital, the Suffragan has sent...
26483asking for information.... What are your orders about the Fire
26484Brigade? From the governor of the prison... from the superintendent of
26485the lunatic asylum..." All night long such announcements were
26486continually being received by the count.
26487
26488To all these inquiries he gave brief and angry replies indicating
26489that orders from him were not now needed, that the whole affair,
26490carefully prepared by him, had now been ruined by somebody, and that
26491that somebody would have to bear the whole responsibility for all that
26492might happen.
26493
26494"Oh, tell that blockhead," he said in reply to the question from the
26495Registrar's Department, "that he should remain to guard his documents.
26496Now why are you asking silly questions about the Fire Brigade? They
26497have horses, let them be off to Vladimir, and not leave them to the
26498French."
26499
26500"Your excellency, the superintendent of the lunatic asylum has come:
26501what are your commands?"
26502
26503"My commands? Let them go away, that's all.... And let the
26504lunatics out into the town. When lunatics command our armies God
26505evidently means these other madmen to be free."
26506
26507In reply to an inquiry about the convicts in the prison, Count
26508Rostopchin shouted angrily at the governor:
26509
26510"Do you expect me to give you two battalions--which we have not got-
26511for a convoy? Release them, that's all about it!"
26512
26513"Your excellency, there are some political prisoners, Meshkov,
26514Vereshchagin..."
26515
26516"Vereshchagin! Hasn't he been hanged yet?" shouted Rostopchin.
26517"Bring him to me!"
26518
26519
26520
26521
26522
26523CHAPTER XXV
26524
26525
26526Toward nine o'clock in the morning, when the troops were already
26527moving through Moscow, nobody came to the count any more for
26528instructions. Those who were able to get away were going of their
26529own accord, those who remained behind decided for themselves what they
26530must do.
26531
26532The count ordered his carriage that he might drive to Sokolniki, and
26533sat in his study with folded hands, morose, sallow, and taciturn.
26534
26535In quiet and untroubled times it seems to every administrator that
26536it is only by his efforts that the whole population under his rule
26537is kept going, and in this consciousness of being indispensable
26538every administrator finds the chief reward of his labor and efforts.
26539While the sea of history remains calm the ruler-administrator in his
26540frail bark, holding on with a boat hook to the ship of the people
26541and himself moving, naturally imagines that his efforts move the
26542ship he is holding on to. But as soon as a storm arises and the sea
26543begins to heave and the ship to move, such a delusion is no longer
26544possible. The ship moves independently with its own enormous motion,
26545the boat hook no longer reaches the moving vessel, and suddenly the
26546administrator, instead of appearing a ruler and a source of power,
26547becomes an insignificant, useless, feeble man.
26548
26549Rostopchin felt this, and it was this which exasperated him.
26550
26551The superintendent of police, whom the crowd had stopped, went in to
26552see him at the same time as an adjutant who informed the count that
26553the horses were harnessed. They were both pale, and the superintendent
26554of police, after reporting that he had executed the instructions he
26555had received, informed the count that an immense crowd had collected
26556in the courtyard and wished to see him.
26557
26558Without saying a word Rostopchin rose and walked hastily to his
26559light, luxurious drawing room, went to the balcony door, took hold
26560of the handle, let it go again, and went to the window from which he
26561had a better view of the whole crowd. The tall lad was standing in
26562front, flourishing his arm and saying something with a stern look. The
26563blood stained smith stood beside him with a gloomy face. A drone of
26564voices was audible through the closed window.
26565
26566"Is my carriage ready?" asked Rostopchin, stepping back from the
26567window.
26568
26569"It is, your excellency," replied the adjutant.
26570
26571Rostopchin went again to the balcony door.
26572
26573"But what do they want?" he asked the superintendent of police.
26574
26575"Your excellency, they say they have got ready, according to your
26576orders, to go against the French, and they shouted something about
26577treachery. But it is a turbulent crowd, your excellency--I hardly
26578managed to get away from it. Your excellency, I venture to suggest..."
26579
26580"You may go. I don't need you to tell me what to do!" exclaimed
26581Rostopchin angrily.
26582
26583He stood by the balcony door looking at the crowd.
26584
26585"This is what they have done with Russia! This is what they have
26586done with me!" thought he, full of an irrepressible fury that welled
26587up within him against the someone to whom what was happening might
26588be attributed. As often happens with passionate people, he was
26589mastered by anger but was still seeking an object on which to vent it.
26590"Here is that mob, the dregs of the people," he thought as he gazed at
26591the crowd: "this rabble they have roused by their folly! They want a
26592victim," he thought as he looked at the tall lad flourishing his
26593arm. And this thought occurred to him just because he himself
26594desired a victim, something on which to vent his rage.
26595
26596"Is the carriage ready?" he asked again.
26597
26598"Yes, your excellency. What are your orders about Vereshchagin? He
26599is waiting at the porch," said the adjutant.
26600
26601"Ah!" exclaimed Rostopchin, as if struck by an unexpected
26602recollection.
26603
26604And rapidly opening the door he went resolutely out onto the
26605balcony. The talking instantly ceased, hats and caps were doffed,
26606and all eyes were raised to the count.
26607
26608"Good morning, lads!" said the count briskly and loudly. "Thank
26609you for coming. I'll come out to you in a moment, but we must first
26610settle with the villain. We must punish the villain who has caused the
26611ruin of Moscow. Wait for me!"
26612
26613And the count stepped as briskly back into the room and slammed
26614the door behind him.
26615
26616A murmur of approbation and satisfaction ran through the crowd.
26617"He'll settle with all the villains, you'll see! And you said the
26618French... He'll show you what law is!" the mob were saying as if
26619reproving one another for their lack of confidence.
26620
26621A few minutes later an officer came hurriedly out of the front door,
26622gave an order, and the dragoons formed up in line. The crowd moved
26623eagerly from the balcony toward the porch. Rostopchin, coming out
26624there with quick angry steps, looked hastily around as if seeking
26625someone.
26626
26627"Where is he?" he inquired. And as he spoke he saw a young man
26628coming round the corner of the house between two dragoons. He had a
26629long thin neck, and his head, that had been half shaved, was again
26630covered by short hair. This young man was dressed in a threadbare blue
26631cloth coat lined with fox fur, that had once been smart, and dirty
26632hempen convict trousers, over which were pulled his thin, dirty,
26633trodden-down boots. On his thin, weak legs were heavy chains which
26634hampered his irresolute movements.
26635
26636"Ah!" said Rostopchin, hurriedly turning away his eyes from the
26637young man in the fur-lined coat and pointing to the bottom step of the
26638porch. "Put him there."
26639
26640The young man in his clattering chains stepped clumsily to the
26641spot indicated, holding away with one finger the coat collar which
26642chafed his neck, turned his long neck twice this way and that, sighed,
26643and submissively folded before him his thin hands, unused to work.
26644
26645For several seconds while the young man was taking his place on
26646the step the silence continued. Only among the back rows of the
26647people, who were all pressing toward the one spot, could sighs,
26648groans, and the shuffling of feet be heard.
26649
26650While waiting for the young man to take his place on the step
26651Rostopchin stood frowning and rubbing his face with his hand.
26652
26653"Lads!" said he, with a metallic ring in his voice. "This man,
26654Vereshchagin, is the scoundrel by whose doing Moscow is perishing."
26655
26656The young man in the fur-lined coat, stooping a little, stood in a
26657submissive attitude, his fingers clasped before him. His emaciated
26658young face, disfigured by the half-shaven head, hung down
26659hopelessly. At the count's first words he raised it slowly and
26660looked up at him as if wishing to say something or at least to meet
26661his eye. But Rostopchin did not look at him. A vein in the young man's
26662long thin neck swelled like a cord and went blue behind the ear, and
26663suddenly his face flushed.
26664
26665All eyes were fixed on him. He looked at the crowd, and rendered
26666more hopeful by the expression he read on the faces there, he smiled
26667sadly and timidly, and lowering his head shifted his feet on the step.
26668
26669"He has betrayed his Tsar and his country, he had gone over to
26670Bonaparte. He alone of all the Russians has disgraced the Russian
26671name, he has caused Moscow to perish," said Rostopchin in a sharp,
26672even voice, but suddenly he glanced down at Vereshchagin who continued
26673to stand in the same submissive attitude. As if inflamed by the sight,
26674he raised his arm and addressed the people, almost shouting:
26675
26676"Deal with him as you think fit! I hand him over to you."
26677
26678The crowd remained silent and only pressed closer and closer to
26679one another. To keep one another back, to breathe in that stifling
26680atmosphere, to be unable to stir, and to await something unknown,
26681uncomprehended, and terrible, was becoming unbearable. Those
26682standing in front, who had seen and heard what had taken place
26683before them, all stood with wide open eyes and mouths, straining
26684with all their strength, and held back the crowd that was pushing
26685behind them.
26686
26687"Beat him!... Let the traitor perish and not disgrace the Russian
26688name!" shouted Rostopchin. "Cut him down. I command it."
26689
26690Hearing not so much the words as the angry tone of Rostopchin's
26691voice, the crowd moaned and heaved forward, but again paused.
26692
26693"Count!" exclaimed the timid yet theatrical voice of Vereshchagin in
26694the midst of the momentary silence that ensued, "Count! One God is
26695above us both...." He lifted his head and again the thick vein in
26696his thin neck filled with blood and the color rapidly came and went in
26697his face.
26698
26699He did not finish what he wished to say.
26700
26701"Cut him down! I command it..." shouted Rostopchin, suddenly growing
26702pale like Vereshchagin.
26703
26704"Draw sabers!" cried the dragoon officer, drawing his own.
26705
26706Another still stronger wave flowed through the crowd and reaching
26707the front ranks carried it swaying to the very steps of the porch. The
26708tall youth, with a stony look on his face, and rigid and uplifted arm,
26709stood beside Vereshchagin.
26710
26711"Saber him!" the dragoon officer almost whispered.
26712
26713And one of the soldiers, his face all at once distorted with fury,
26714struck Vereshchagin on the head with the blunt side of his saber.
26715
26716"Ah!" cried Vereshchagin in meek surprise, looking round with a
26717frightened glance as if not understanding why this was done to him.
26718A similar moan of surprise and horror ran through the crowd. "O Lord!"
26719exclaimed a sorrowful voice.
26720
26721But after the exclamation of surprise that had escaped from
26722Vereshchagin he uttered a plaintive cry of pain, and that cry was
26723fatal. The barrier of human feeling, strained to the utmost, that
26724had held the crowd in check suddenly broke. The crime had begun and
26725must now be completed. The plaintive moan of reproach was drowned by
26726the threatening and angry roar of the crowd. Like the seventh and last
26727wave that shatters a ship, that last irresistible wave burst from
26728the rear and reached the front ranks, carrying them off their feet and
26729engulfing them all. The dragoon was about to repeat his blow.
26730Vereshchagin with a cry of horror, covering his head with his hands,
26731rushed toward the crowd. The tall youth, against whom he stumbled,
26732seized his thin neck with his hands and, yelling wildly, fell with him
26733under the feet of the pressing, struggling crowd.
26734
26735Some beat and tore at Vereshchagin, others at the tall youth. And
26736the screams of those that were being trampled on and of those who
26737tried to rescue the tall lad only increased the fury of the crowd.
26738It was a long time before the dragoons could extricate the bleeding
26739youth, beaten almost to death. And for a long time, despite the
26740feverish haste with which the mob tried to end the work that had
26741been begun, those who were hitting, throttling, and tearing at
26742Vereshchagin were unable to kill him, for the crowd pressed from all
26743sides, swaying as one mass with them in the center and rendering it
26744impossible for them either to kill him or let him go.
26745
26746"Hit him with an ax, eh!... Crushed?... Traitor, he sold
26747Christ.... Still alive... tenacious... serves him right! Torture
26748serves a thief right. Use the hatchet!... What--still alive?"
26749
26750Only when the victim ceased to struggle and his cries changed to a
26751long-drawn, measured death rattle did the crowd around his
26752prostrate, bleeding corpse begin rapidly to change places. Each one
26753came up, glanced at what had been done, and with horror, reproach, and
26754astonishment pushed back again.
26755
26756"O Lord! The people are like wild beasts! How could he be alive?"
26757voices in the crowd could be heard saying. "Quite a young fellow
26758too... must have been a merchant's son. What men!... and they say he's
26759not the right one.... How not the right one?... O Lord! And there's
26760another has been beaten too--they say he's nearly done for.... Oh, the
26761people... Aren't they afraid of sinning?..." said the same mob now,
26762looking with pained distress at the dead body with its long, thin,
26763half-severed neck and its livid face stained with blood and dust.
26764
26765A painstaking police officer, considering the presence of a corpse
26766in his excellency's courtyard unseemly, told the dragoons to take it
26767away. Two dragoons took it by its distorted legs and dragged it
26768along the ground. The gory, dust-stained, half-shaven head with its
26769long neck trailed twisting along the ground. The crowd shrank back
26770from it.
26771
26772At the moment when Vereshchagin fell and the crowd closed in with
26773savage yells and swayed about him, Rostopchin suddenly turned pale
26774and, instead of going to the back entrance where his carriage
26775awaited him, went with hurried steps and bent head, not knowing
26776where and why, along the passage leading to the rooms on the ground
26777floor. The count's face was white and he could not control the
26778feverish twitching of his lower jaw.
26779
26780
26781"This way, your excellency... Where are you going?... This way,
26782please..." said a trembling, frightened voice behind him.
26783
26784Count Rostopchin was unable to reply and, turning obediently, went
26785in the direction indicated. At the back entrance stood his caleche.
26786The distant roar of the yelling crowd was audible even there. He
26787hastily took his seat and told the coachman to drive him to his
26788country house in Sokolniki.
26789
26790When they reached the Myasnitski Street and could no longer hear the
26791shouts of the mob, the count began to repent. He remembered with
26792dissatisfaction the agitation and fear he had betrayed before his
26793subordinates. "The mob is terrible--disgusting," he said to himself in
26794French. "They are like wolves whom nothing but flesh can appease."
26795"Count! One God is above us both!"--Vereshchagin's words suddenly
26796recurred to him, and a disagreeable shiver ran down his back. But this
26797was only a momentary feeling and Count Rostopchin smiled
26798disdainfully at himself. "I had other duties," thought he. "The people
26799had to be appeased. Many other victims have perished and are perishing
26800for the public good"--and he began thinking of his social duties to
26801his family and to the city entrusted to him, and of himself--not
26802himself as Theodore Vasilyevich Rostopchin (he fancied that Theodore
26803Vasilyevich Rostopchin was sacrificing himself for the public good)
26804but himself as governor, the representative of authority and of the
26805Tsar. "Had I been simply Theodore Vasilyevich my course of action
26806would have been quite different, but it was my duty to safeguard my
26807life and dignity as commander in chief."
26808
26809Lightly swaying on the flexible springs of his carriage and no
26810longer hearing the terrible sounds of the crowd, Rostopchin grew
26811physically calm and, as always happens, as soon as he became
26812physically tranquil his mind devised reasons why he should be mentally
26813tranquil too. The thought which tranquillized Rostopchin was not a new
26814one. Since the world began and men have killed one another no one
26815has ever committed such a crime against his fellow man without
26816comforting himself with this same idea. This idea is le bien public,
26817the hypothetical welfare of other people.
26818
26819To a man not swayed by passion that welfare is never certain, but he
26820who commits such a crime always knows just where that welfare lies.
26821And Rostopchin now knew it.
26822
26823Not only did his reason not reproach him for what he had done, but
26824he even found cause for self-satisfaction in having so successfully
26825contrived to avail himself of a convenient opportunity to punish a
26826criminal and at the same time pacify the mob.
26827
26828"Vereshchagin was tried and condemned to death," thought
26829Rostopchin (though the Senate had only condemned Vereshchagin to
26830hard labor), "he was a traitor and a spy. I could not let him go
26831unpunished and so I have killed two birds with one stone: to appease
26832the mob I gave them a victim and at the same time punished a
26833miscreant."
26834
26835Having reached his country house and begun to give orders about
26836domestic arrangements, the count grew quite tranquil.
26837
26838Half an hour later he was driving with his fast horses across the
26839Sokolniki field, no longer thinking of what had occurred but
26840considering what was to come. He was driving to the Yauza bridge where
26841he had heard that Kutuzov was. Count Rostopchin was mentally preparing
26842the angry and stinging reproaches he meant to address to Kutuzov for
26843his deception. He would make that foxy old courtier feel that the
26844responsibility for all the calamities that would follow the
26845abandonment of the city and the ruin of Russia (as Rostopchin regarded
26846it) would fall upon his doting old head. Planning beforehand what he
26847would say to Kutuzov, Rostopchin turned angrily in his caleche and
26848gazed sternly from side to side.
26849
26850The Sokolniki field was deserted. Only at the end of it, in front of
26851the almshouse and the lunatic asylum, could be seen some people in
26852white and others like them walking singly across the field shouting
26853and gesticulating.
26854
26855One of these was running to cross the path of Count Rostopchin's
26856carriage, and the count himself, his coachman, and his dragoons looked
26857with vague horror and curiosity at these released lunatics and
26858especially at the one running toward them.
26859
26860Swaying from side to side on his long, thin legs in his fluttering
26861dressing gown, this lunatic was running impetuously, his gaze fixed on
26862Rostopchin, shouting something in a hoarse voice and making signs to
26863him to stop. The lunatic's solemn, gloomy face was thin and yellow,
26864with its beard growing in uneven tufts. His black, agate pupils with
26865saffron-yellow whites moved restlessly near the lower eyelids.
26866
26867"Stop! Pull up, I tell you!" he cried in a piercing voice, and again
26868shouted something breathlessly with emphatic intonations and gestures.
26869
26870Coming abreast of the caleche he ran beside it.
26871
26872"Thrice have they slain me, thrice have I risen from the dead.
26873They stoned me, crucified me... I shall rise... shall rise... shall
26874rise. They have torn my body. The kingdom of God will be overthrown...
26875Thrice will I overthrow it and thrice re-establish it!" he cried,
26876raising his voice higher and higher.
26877
26878Count Rostopchin suddenly grew pale as he had done when the crowd
26879closed in on Vereshchagin. He turned away. "Go fas... faster!" he
26880cried in a trembling voice to his coachman. The caleche flew over
26881the ground as fast as the horses could draw it, but for a long time
26882Count Rostopchin still heard the insane despairing screams growing
26883fainter in the distance, while his eyes saw nothing but the
26884astonished, frightened, bloodstained face of "the traitor" in the
26885fur-lined coat.
26886
26887Recent as that mental picture was, Rostopchin already felt that it
26888had cut deep into his heart and drawn blood. Even now he felt
26889clearly that the gory trace of that recollection would not pass with
26890time, but that the terrible memory would, on the contrary, dwell in
26891his heart ever more cruelly and painfully to the end of his life. He
26892seemed still to hear the sound of his own words: "Cut him down! I
26893command it...."
26894
26895"Why did I utter those words? It was by some accident I said
26896them.... I need not have said them," he thought. "And then nothing
26897would have happened." He saw the frightened and then infuriated face
26898of the dragoon who dealt the blow, the look of silent, timid
26899reproach that boy in the fur-lined coat had turned upon him. "But I
26900did not do it for my own sake. I was bound to act that way.... The
26901mob, the traitor... the public welfare," thought he.
26902
26903Troops were still crowding at the Yauza bridge. It was hot. Kutuzov,
26904dejected and frowning, sat on a bench by the bridge toying with his
26905whip in the sand when a caleche dashed up noisily. A man in a
26906general's uniform with plumes in his hat went up to Kutuzov and said
26907something in French. It was Count Rostopchin. He told Kutuzov that
26908he had come because Moscow, the capital, was no more and only the army
26909remained.
26910
26911"Things would have been different if your Serene Highness had not
26912told me that you would not abandon Moscow without another battle;
26913all this would not have happened," he said.
26914
26915Kutuzov looked at Rostopchin as if, not grasping what was said to
26916him, he was trying to read something peculiar written at that moment
26917on the face of the man addressing him. Rostopchin grew confused and
26918became silent. Kutuzov slightly shook his head and not taking his
26919penetrating gaze from Rostopchin's face muttered softly:
26920
26921"No! I shall not give up Moscow without a battle!"
26922
26923Whether Kutuzov was thinking of something entirely different when he
26924spoke those words, or uttered them purposely, knowing them to be
26925meaningless, at any rate Rostopchin made no reply and hastily left
26926him. And strange to say, the Governor of Moscow, the proud Count
26927Rostopchin, took up a Cossack whip and went to the bridge where he
26928began with shouts to drive on the carts that blocked the way.
26929
26930
26931
26932
26933
26934CHAPTER XXVI
26935
26936
26937Toward four o'clock in the afternoon Murat's troops were entering
26938Moscow. In front rode a detachment of Wurttemberg hussars and behind
26939them rode the King of Naples himself accompanied by a numerous suite.
26940
26941About the middle of the Arbat Street, near the Church of the
26942Miraculous Icon of St. Nicholas, Murat halted to await news from the
26943advanced detachment as to the condition in which they had found the
26944citadel, le Kremlin.
26945
26946Around Murat gathered a group of those who had remained in Moscow.
26947They all stared in timid bewilderment at the strange, long-haired
26948commander dressed up in feathers and gold.
26949
26950"Is that their Tsar himself? He's not bad!" low voices could be
26951heard saying.
26952
26953An interpreter rode up to the group.
26954
26955"Take off your cap... your caps!" These words went from one to
26956another in the crowd. The interpreter addressed an old porter and
26957asked if it was far to the Kremlin. The porter, listening in
26958perplexity to the unfamiliar Polish accent and not realizing that
26959the interpreter was speaking Russian, did not understand what was
26960being said to him and slipped behind the others.
26961
26962Murat approached the interpreter and told him to ask where the
26963Russian army was. One of the Russians understood what was asked and
26964several voices at once began answering the interpreter. A French
26965officer, returning from the advanced detachment, rode up to Murat
26966and reported that the gates of the citadel had been barricaded and
26967that there was probably an ambuscade there.
26968
26969"Good!" said Murat and, turning to one of the gentlemen in his
26970suite, ordered four light guns to be moved forward to fire at the
26971gates.
26972
26973The guns emerged at a trot from the column following Murat and
26974advanced up the Arbat. When they reached the end of the Vozdvizhenka
26975Street they halted and drew in the Square. Several French officers
26976superintended the placing of the guns and looked at the Kremlin
26977through field glasses.
26978
26979The bells in the Kremlin were ringing for vespers, and this sound
26980troubled the French. They imagined it to be a call to arms. A few
26981infantrymen ran to the Kutafyev Gate. Beams and wooden screens had
26982been put there, and two musket shots rang out from under the gate as
26983soon as an officer and men began to run toward it. A general who was
26984standing by the guns shouted some words of command to the officer, and
26985the latter ran back again with his men.
26986
26987The sound of three more shots came from the gate.
26988
26989One shot struck a French soldier's foot, and from behind the screens
26990came the strange sound of a few voices shouting. Instantly as at a
26991word of command the expression of cheerful serenity on the faces of
26992the French general, officers, and men changed to one of determined
26993concentrated readiness for strife and suffering. To all of them from
26994the marshal to the least soldier, that place was not the Vozdvizhenka,
26995Mokhavaya, or Kutafyev Street, nor the Troitsa Gate (places familiar
26996in Moscow), but a new battlefield which would probably prove
26997sanguinary. And all made ready for that battle. The cries from the
26998gates ceased. The guns were advanced, the artillerymen blew the ash
26999off their linstocks, and an officer gave the word "Fire!" This was
27000followed by two whistling sounds of canister shot, one after
27001another. The shot rattled against the stone of the gate and upon the
27002wooden beams and screens, and two wavering clouds of smoke rose over
27003the Square.
27004
27005A few instants after the echo of the reports resounding over the
27006stone-built Kremlin had died away the French heard a strange sound
27007above their head. Thousands of crows rose above the walls and
27008circled in the air, cawing and noisily flapping their wings.
27009Together with that sound came a solitary human cry from the gateway
27010and amid the smoke appeared the figure of a bareheaded man in a
27011peasant's coat. He grasped a musket and took aim at the French.
27012"Fire!" repeated the officer once more, and the reports of a musket
27013and of two cannon shots were heard simultaneously. The gate again
27014hidden by smoke.
27015
27016Nothing more stirred behind the screens and the French infantry
27017soldiers and officers advanced to the gate. In the gateway lay three
27018wounded and four dead. Two men in peasant coats ran away at the foot
27019of the wall, toward the Znamenka.
27020
27021"Clear that away!" said the officer, pointing to the beams and the
27022corpses, and the French soldiers, after dispatching the wounded, threw
27023the corpses over the parapet.
27024
27025Who these men were nobody knew. "Clear that away!" was all that
27026was said of them, and they were thrown over the parapet and removed
27027later on that they might not stink. Thiers alone dedicates a few
27028eloquent lines to their memory: "These wretches had occupied the
27029sacred citadel, having supplied themselves with guns from the arsenal,
27030and fired" (the wretches) "at the French. Some of them were sabered
27031and the Kremlin was purged of their presence."
27032
27033Murat was informed that the way had been cleared. The French entered
27034the gates and began pitching their camp in the Senate Square. Out of
27035the windows of the Senate House the soldiers threw chairs into the
27036Square for fuel and kindled fires there.
27037
27038Other detachments passed through the Kremlin and encamped along
27039the Moroseyka, the Lubyanka, and Pokrovka Streets. Others quartered
27040themselves along the Vozdvizhenka, the Nikolski, and the Tverskoy
27041Streets. No masters of the houses being found anywhere, the French
27042were not billeted on the inhabitants as is usual in towns but lived in
27043it as in a camp.
27044
27045Though tattered, hungry, worn out, and reduced to a third of their
27046original number, the French entered Moscow in good marching order.
27047It was a weary and famished, but still a fighting and menacing army.
27048But it remained an army only until its soldiers had dispersed into
27049their different lodgings. As soon as the men of the various
27050regiments began to disperse among the wealthy and deserted houses, the
27051army was lost forever and there came into being something nondescript,
27052neither citizens nor soldiers but what are known as marauders. When
27053five weeks later these same men left Moscow, they no longer formed
27054an army. They were a mob of marauders, each carrying a quantity of
27055articles which seemed to him valuable or useful. The aim of each man
27056when he left Moscow was no longer, as it had been, to conquer, but
27057merely to keep what he had acquired. Like a monkey which puts its
27058paw into the narrow neck of a jug, and having seized a handful of nuts
27059will not open its fist for fear of losing what it holds, and therefore
27060perishes, the French when they left Moscow had inevitably to perish
27061because they carried their loot with them, yet to abandon what they
27062had stolen was as impossible for them as it is for the monkey to
27063open its paw and let go of its nuts. Ten minutes after each regiment
27064had entered a Moscow district, not a soldier or officer was left.
27065Men in military uniforms and Hessian boots could be seen through the
27066windows, laughing and walking through the rooms. In cellars and
27067storerooms similar men were busy among the provisions, and in the
27068yards unlocking or breaking open coach house and stable doors,
27069lighting fires in kitchens and kneading and baking bread with
27070rolled-up sleeves, and cooking; or frightening, amusing, or
27071caressing women and children. There were many such men both in the
27072shops and houses--but there was no army.
27073
27074Order after order was issued by the French commanders that day
27075forbidding the men to disperse about the town, sternly forbidding
27076any violence to the inhabitants or any looting, and announcing a
27077roll call for that very evening. But despite all these measures the
27078men, who had till then constituted an army, flowed all over the
27079wealthy, deserted city with its comforts and plentiful supplies. As
27080a hungry herd of cattle keeps well together when crossing a barren
27081field, but gets out of hand and at once disperses uncontrollably as
27082soon as it reaches rich pastures, so did the army disperse all over
27083the wealthy city.
27084
27085No residents were left in Moscow, and the soldiers--like water
27086percolating through sand--spread irresistibly through the city in
27087all directions from the Kremlin into which they had first marched. The
27088cavalry, on entering a merchant's house that had been abandoned and
27089finding there stabling more than sufficient for their horses, went on,
27090all the same, to the next house which seemed to them better. Many of
27091them appropriated several houses, chalked their names on them, and
27092quarreled and even fought with other companies for them. Before they
27093had had time to secure quarters the soldiers ran out into the
27094streets to see the city and, hearing that everything had been
27095abandoned, rushed to places where valuables were to be had for the
27096taking. The officers followed to check the soldiers and were
27097involuntarily drawn into doing the same. In Carriage Row carriages had
27098been left in the shops, and generals flocked there to select
27099caleches and coaches for themselves. The few inhabitants who had
27100remained invited commanding officers to their houses, hoping thereby
27101to secure themselves from being plundered. There were masses of wealth
27102and there seemed no end to it. All around the quarters occupied by the
27103French were other regions still unexplored and unoccupied where,
27104they thought, yet greater riches might be found. And Moscow engulfed
27105the army ever deeper and deeper. When water is spilled on dry ground
27106both the dry ground and the water disappear and mud results; and in
27107the same way the entry of the famished army into the rich and deserted
27108city resulted in fires and looting and the destruction of both the
27109army and the wealthy city.
27110
27111
27112The French attributed the Fire of Moscow au patriotisme feroce de
27113Rostopchine,* the Russians to the barbarity of the French. In reality,
27114however, it was not, and could not be, possible to explain the burning
27115of Moscow by making any individual, or any group of people,
27116responsible for it. Moscow was burned because it found itself in a
27117position in which any town built of wood was bound to burn, quite
27118apart from whether it had, or had not, a hundred and thirty inferior
27119fire engines. Deserted Moscow had to burn as inevitably as a heap of
27120shavings has to burn on which sparks continually fall for several
27121days. A town built of wood, where scarcely a day passes without
27122conflagrations when the house owners are in residence and a police
27123force is present, cannot help burning when its inhabitants have left
27124it and it is occupied by soldiers who smoke pipes, make campfires of
27125the Senate chairs in the Senate Square, and cook themselves meals
27126twice a day. In peacetime it is only necessary to billet troops in the
27127villages of any district and the number of fires in that district
27128immediately increases. How much then must the probability of fire be
27129increased in an abandoned, wooden town where foreign troops are
27130quartered. "Le patriotisme feroce de Rostopchine" and the barbarity of
27131the French were not to blame in the matter. Moscow was set on fire
27132by the soldiers' pipes, kitchens, and campfires, and by the
27133carelessness of enemy soldiers occupying houses they did not own. Even
27134if there was any arson (which is very doubtful, for no one had any
27135reason to burn the houses--in any case a troublesome and dangerous
27136thing to do), arson cannot be regarded as the cause, for the same
27137thing would have happened without any incendiarism.
27138
27139
27140*To Rostopchin's ferocious patriotism.
27141
27142
27143However tempting it might be for the French to blame Rostopchin's
27144ferocity and for Russians to blame the scoundrel Bonaparte, or later
27145on to place an heroic torch in the hands of their own people, it is
27146impossible not to see that there could be no such direct cause of
27147the fire, for Moscow had to burn as every village, factory, or house
27148must burn which is left by its owners and in which strangers are
27149allowed to live and cook their porridge. Moscow was burned by its
27150inhabitants, it is true, but by those who had abandoned it and not
27151by those who remained in it. Moscow when occupied by the enemy did not
27152remain intact like Berlin, Vienna, and other towns, simply because its
27153inhabitants abandoned it and did not welcome the French with bread and
27154salt, nor bring them the keys of the city.
27155
27156
27157
27158
27159
27160CHAPTER XXVII
27161
27162
27163The absorption of the French by Moscow, radiating starwise as it
27164did, only reached the quarter where Pierre was staying by the
27165evening of the second of September.
27166
27167After the last two days spent in solitude and unusual circumstances,
27168Pierre was in a state bordering on insanity. He was completely
27169obsessed by one persistent thought. He did not know how or when this
27170thought had taken such possession of him, but he remembered nothing of
27171the past, understood nothing of the present, and all he saw and
27172heard appeared to him like a dream.
27173
27174He had left home only to escape the intricate tangle of life's
27175demands that enmeshed him, and which in his present condition he was
27176unable to unravel. He had gone to Joseph Alexeevich's house, on the
27177plea of sorting the deceased's books and papers, only in search of
27178rest from life's turmoil, for in his mind the memory of Joseph
27179Alexeevich was connected with a world of eternal, solemn, and calm
27180thoughts, quite contrary to the restless confusion into which he
27181felt himself being drawn. He sought a quiet refuge, and in Joseph
27182Alexeevich's study he really found it. When he sat with his elbows
27183on the dusty writing table in the deathlike stillness of the study,
27184calm and significant memories of the last few days rose one after
27185another in his imagination, particularly of the battle of Borodino and
27186of that vague sense of his own insignificance and insincerity compared
27187with the truth, simplicity, and strength of the class of men he
27188mentally classed as they. When Gerasim roused him from his reverie the
27189idea occurred to him of taking part in the popular defense of Moscow
27190which he knew was projected. And with that object he had asked Gerasim
27191to get him a peasant's coat and a pistol, confiding to him his
27192intentions of remaining in Joseph Alexeevich's house and keeping his
27193name secret. Then during the first day spent in inaction and
27194solitude (he tried several times to fix his attention on the Masonic
27195manuscripts, but was unable to do so) the idea that had previously
27196occurred to him of the cabalistic significance of his name in
27197connection with Bonaparte's more than once vaguely presented itself.
27198But the idea that he, L'russe Besuhof, was destined to set a limit
27199to the power of the Beast was as yet only one of the fancies that
27200often passed through his mind and left no trace behind.
27201
27202When, having bought the coat merely with the object of taking part
27203among the people in the defense of Moscow, Pierre had met the
27204Rostovs and Natasha had said to him: "Are you remaining in
27205Moscow?... How splendid!" the thought flashed into his mind that it
27206really would be a good thing, even if Moscow were taken, for him to
27207remain there and do what he was predestined to do.
27208
27209Next day, with the sole idea of not sparing himself and not
27210lagging in any way behind them, Pierre went to the Three Hills gate.
27211But when he returned to the house convinced that Moscow would not be
27212defended, he suddenly felt that what before had seemed to him merely a
27213possibility had now become absolutely necessary and inevitable. He
27214must remain in Moscow, concealing his name, and must meet Napoleon and
27215kill him, and either perish or put an end to the misery of all Europe-
27216which it seemed to him was solely due to Napoleon.
27217
27218Pierre knew all the details of the attempt on Bonaparte's life in
272191809 by a German student in Vienna, and knew that the student had been
27220shot. And the risk to which he would expose his life by carrying out
27221his design excited him still more.
27222
27223Two equally strong feelings drew Pierre irresistibly to this
27224purpose. The first was a feeling of the necessity of sacrifice and
27225suffering in view of the common calamity, the same feeling that had
27226caused him to go to Mozhaysk on the twenty-fifth and to make his way
27227to the very thick of the battle and had now caused him to run away
27228from his home and, in place of the luxury and comfort to which he
27229was accustomed, to sleep on a hard sofa without undressing and eat the
27230same food as Gerasim. The other was that vague and quite Russian
27231feeling of contempt for everything conventional, artificial, and
27232human--for everything the majority of men regard as the greatest
27233good in the world. Pierre had first experienced this strange and
27234fascinating feeling at the Sloboda Palace, when he had suddenly felt
27235that wealth, power, and life--all that men so painstakingly acquire
27236and guard--if it has any worth has so only by reason the joy with
27237which it can all be renounced.
27238
27239It was the feeling that induces a volunteer recruit to spend his
27240last penny on drink, and a drunken man to smash mirrors or glasses for
27241no apparent reason and knowing that it will cost him all the money
27242he possesses: the feeling which causes a man to perform actions
27243which from an ordinary point of view are insane, to test, as it
27244were, his personal power and strength, affirming the existence of a
27245higher, nonhuman criterion of life.
27246
27247From the very day Pierre had experienced this feeling for the
27248first time at the Sloboda Palace he had been continuously under its
27249influence, but only now found full satisfaction for it. Moreover, at
27250this moment Pierre was supported in his design and prevented from
27251renouncing it by what he had already done in that direction. If he
27252were now to leave Moscow like everyone else, his flight from home, the
27253peasant coat, the pistol, and his announcement to the Rostovs that
27254he would remain in Moscow would all become not merely meaningless
27255but contemptible and ridiculous, and to this Pierre was very
27256sensitive.
27257
27258Pierre's physical condition, as is always the case, corresponded
27259to his mental state. The unaccustomed coarse food, the vodka he
27260drank during those days, the absence of wine and cigars, his dirty
27261unchanged linen, two almost sleepless nights passed on a short sofa
27262without bedding--all this kept him in a state of excitement
27263bordering on insanity.
27264
27265It was two o'clock in the afternoon. The French had already
27266entered Moscow. Pierre knew this, but instead of acting he only
27267thought about his undertaking, going over its minutest details in
27268his mind. In his fancy he did not clearly picture to himself either
27269the striking of the blow or the death of Napoleon, but with
27270extraordinary vividness and melancholy enjoyment imagined his own
27271destruction and heroic endurance.
27272
27273"Yes, alone, for the sake of all, I must do it or perish!" he
27274thought. "Yes, I will approach... and then suddenly... with pistol
27275or dagger? But that is all the same! 'It is not I but the hand of
27276Providence that punishes thee,' I shall say," thought he, imagining
27277what he would say when killing Napoleon. "Well then, take me and
27278execute me!" he went on, speaking to himself and bowing his head
27279with a sad but firm expression.
27280
27281While Pierre, standing in the middle of the room, was talking to
27282himself in this way, the study door opened and on the threshold
27283appeared the figure of Makar Alexeevich, always so timid before but
27284now quite transformed.
27285
27286His dressing gown was unfastened, his face red and distorted. He was
27287obviously drunk. On seeing Pierre he grew confused at first, but
27288noticing embarrassment on Pierre's face immediately grew bold and,
27289staggering on his thin legs, advanced into the middle of the room.
27290
27291"They're frightened," he said confidentially in a hoarse voice. "I
27292say I won't surrender, I say... Am I not right, sir?"
27293
27294He paused and then suddenly seeing the pistol on the table seized it
27295with unexpected rapidity and ran out into the corridor.
27296
27297Gerasim and the porter, who had followed Makar Alexeevich, stopped
27298him in the vestibule and tried to take the pistol from him. Pierre,
27299coming out into the corridor, looked with pity and repulsion at the
27300half-crazy old man. Makar Alexeevich, frowning with exertion, held
27301on to the pistol and screamed hoarsely, evidently with some heroic
27302fancy in his head.
27303
27304"To arms! Board them! No, you shan't get it," he yelled.
27305
27306"That will do, please, that will do. Have the goodness--please, sir,
27307to let go! Please, sir..." pleaded Gerasim, trying carefully to
27308steer Makar Alexeevich by the elbows back to the door.
27309
27310"Who are you? Bonaparte!..." shouted Makar Alexeevich.
27311
27312"That's not right, sir. Come to your room, please, and rest. Allow
27313me to have the pistol."
27314
27315"Be off, thou base slave! Touch me not! See this?" shouted Makar
27316Alexeevich, brandishing the pistol. "Board them!"
27317
27318"Catch hold!" whispered Gerasim to the porter.
27319
27320They seized Makar Alexeevich by the arms and dragged him to the
27321door.
27322
27323The vestibule was filled with the discordant sounds of a struggle
27324and of a tipsy, hoarse voice.
27325
27326Suddenly a fresh sound, a piercing feminine scream, reverberated
27327from the porch and the cook came running into the vestibule.
27328
27329"It's them! Gracious heavens! O Lord, four of them, horsemen!" she
27330cried.
27331
27332Gerasim and the porter let Makar Alexeevich go, and in the now
27333silent corridor the sound of several hands knocking at the front
27334door could be heard.
27335
27336
27337
27338
27339
27340CHAPTER XXVIII
27341
27342
27343Pierre, having decided that until he had carried out his design he
27344would disclose neither his identity nor his knowledge of French, stood
27345at the half-open door of the corridor, intending to conceal himself as
27346soon as the French entered. But the French entered and still Pierre
27347did not retire--an irresistible curiosity kept him there.
27348
27349There were two of them. One was an officer--a tall, soldierly,
27350handsome man--the other evidently a private or an orderly,
27351sunburned, short, and thin, with sunken cheeks and a dull
27352expression. The officer walked in front, leaning on a stick and
27353slightly limping. When he had advanced a few steps he stopped,
27354having apparently decided that these were good quarters, turned
27355round to the soldiers standing at the entrance, and in a loud voice of
27356command ordered them to put up the horses. Having done that, the
27357officer, lifting his elbow with a smart gesture, stroked his
27358mustache and lightly touched his hat.
27359
27360"Bonjour, la compagnie!"* said he gaily, smiling and looking about
27361him.
27362
27363
27364*"Good day, everybody!"
27365
27366
27367No one gave any reply.
27368
27369"Vous etes le bourgeois?"* the officer asked Gerasim.
27370
27371
27372*"Are you the master here?"
27373
27374
27375Gerasim gazed at the officer with an alarmed and inquiring look.
27376
27377"Quartier, quartier, logement!" said the officer, looking down at
27378the little man with a condescending and good-natured smile. "Les
27379francais sont de bons enfants. Que diable! Voyons! Ne nous fachons
27380pas, mon vieux!"* added he, clapping the scared and silent Gerasim
27381on the shoulder. "Well, does no one speak French in this
27382establishment?" he asked again in French, looking around and meeting
27383Pierre's eyes. Pierre moved away from the door.
27384
27385
27386*"Quarters, quarters, lodgings! The French are good fellows. What
27387the devil! There, don't let us be cross, old fellow!"
27388
27389
27390Again the officer turned to Gerasim and asked him to show him the
27391rooms in the house.
27392
27393"Master, not here--don't understand... me, you..." said Gerasim,
27394trying to render his words more comprehensible by contorting them.
27395
27396Still smiling, the French officer spread out his hands before
27397Gerasim's nose, intimating that he did not understand him either,
27398and moved, limping, to the door at which Pierre was standing. Pierre
27399wished to go away and conceal himself, but at that moment he saw Makar
27400Alexeevich appearing at the open kitchen door with the pistol in his
27401hand. With a madman's cunning, Makar Alexeevich eyed the Frenchman,
27402raised his pistol, and took aim.
27403
27404"Board them!" yelled the tipsy man, trying to press the trigger.
27405Hearing the yell the officer turned round, and at the same moment
27406Pierre threw himself on the drunkard. Just when Pierre snatched at and
27407struck up the pistol Makar Alexeevich at last got his fingers on the
27408trigger, there was a deafening report, and all were enveloped in a
27409cloud of smoke. The Frenchman turned pale and rushed to the door.
27410
27411Forgetting his intention of concealing his knowledge of French,
27412Pierre, snatching away the pistol and throwing it down, ran up to
27413the officer and addressed him in French.
27414
27415"You are not wounded?" he asked.
27416
27417"I think not," answered the Frenchman, feeling himself over. "But
27418I have had a lucky escape this time," he added, pointing to the
27419damaged plaster of the wall. "Who is that man?" said he, looking
27420sternly at Pierre.
27421
27422"Oh, I am really in despair at what has occurred," said Pierre
27423rapidly, quite forgetting the part he had intended to play. "He is
27424an unfortunate madman who did not know what he was doing."
27425
27426The officer went up to Makar Alexeevich and took him by the collar.
27427
27428Makar Alexeevich was standing with parted lips, swaying, as if about
27429to fall asleep, as he leaned against the wall.
27430
27431"Brigand! You shall pay for this," said the Frenchman, letting go of
27432him. "We French are merciful after victory, but we do not pardon
27433traitors," he added, with a look of gloomy dignity and a fine
27434energetic gesture.
27435
27436Pierre continued, in French, to persuade the officer not to hold
27437that drunken imbecile to account. The Frenchman listened in silence
27438with the same gloomy expression, but suddenly turned to Pierre with
27439a smile. For a few seconds he looked at him in silence. His handsome
27440face assumed a melodramatically gentle expression and he held out
27441his hand.
27442
27443"You have saved my life. You are French," said he.
27444
27445For a Frenchman that deduction was indubitable. Only a Frenchman
27446could perform a great deed, and to save his life--the life of M.
27447Ramballe, captain of the 13th Light Regiment--was undoubtedly a very
27448great deed.
27449
27450But however indubitable that conclusion and the officer's conviction
27451based upon it, Pierre felt it necessary to disillusion him.
27452
27453"I am Russian," he said quickly.
27454
27455"Tut, tut, tut! Tell that to others," said the officer, waving his
27456finger before his nose and smiling. "You shall tell me all about
27457that presently. I am delighted to meet a compatriot. Well, and what
27458are we to do with this man?" he added, addressing himself to Pierre as
27459to a brother.
27460
27461Even if Pierre were not a Frenchman, having once received that
27462loftiest of human appellations he could not renounce it, said the
27463officer's look and tone. In reply to his last question Pierre again
27464explained who Makar Alexeevich was and how just before their arrival
27465that drunken imbecile had seized the loaded pistol which they had
27466not had time to recover from him, and begged the officer to let the
27467deed go unpunished.
27468
27469The Frenchman expanded his chest and made a majestic gesture with
27470his arm.
27471
27472"You have saved my life! You are French. You ask his pardon? I grant
27473it you. Lead that man away!" said he quickly and energetically, and
27474taking the arm of Pierre whom he had promoted to be a Frenchman for
27475saving his life, he went with him into the room.
27476
27477The soldiers in the yard, hearing the shot, came into the passage
27478asking what had happened, and expressed their readiness to punish
27479the culprits, but the officer sternly checked them.
27480
27481"You will be called in when you are wanted," he said.
27482
27483The soldiers went out again, and the orderly, who had meanwhile
27484had time to visit the kitchen, came up to his officer.
27485
27486"Captain, there is soup and a leg of mutton in the kitchen," said
27487he. "Shall I serve them up?"
27488
27489"Yes, and some wine," answered the captain.
27490
27491
27492
27493
27494
27495CHAPTER XXIX
27496
27497
27498When the French officer went into the room with Pierre the latter
27499again thought it his duty to assure him that he was not French and
27500wished to go away, but the officer would not hear of it. He was so
27501very polite, amiable, good-natured, and genuinely grateful to Pierre
27502for saving his life that Pierre had not the heart to refuse, and sat
27503down with him in the parlor--the first room they entered. To
27504Pierre's assurances that he was not a Frenchman, the captain,
27505evidently not understanding how anyone could decline so flattering
27506an appellation, shrugged his shoulders and said that if Pierre
27507absolutely insisted on passing for a Russian let it be so, but for all
27508that he would be forever bound to Pierre by gratitude for saving his
27509life.
27510
27511Had this man been endowed with the slightest capacity for perceiving
27512the feelings of others, and had he at all understood what Pierre's
27513feelings were, the latter would probably have left him, but the
27514man's animated obtuseness to everything other than himself disarmed
27515Pierre.
27516
27517"A Frenchman or a Russian prince incognito," said the officer,
27518looking at Pierre's fine though dirty linen and at the ring on his
27519finger. "I owe my life to you and offer you my friendship. A Frenchman
27520never forgets either an insult or a service. I offer you my
27521friendship. That is all I can say."
27522
27523There was so much good nature and nobility (in the French sense of
27524the word) in the officer's voice, in the expression of his face and in
27525his gestures, that Pierre, unconsciously smiling in response to the
27526Frenchman's smile, pressed the hand held out to him.
27527
27528"Captain Ramballe, of the 13th Light Regiment, Chevalier of the
27529Legion of Honor for the affair on the seventh of September," he
27530introduced himself, a self-satisfied irrepressible smile puckering his
27531lips under his mustache. "Will you now be so good as to tell me with
27532whom I have the honor of conversing so pleasantly, instead of being in
27533the ambulance with that maniac's bullet in my body?"
27534
27535Pierre replied that he could not tell him his name and, blushing,
27536began to try to invent a name and to say something about his reason
27537for concealing it, but the Frenchman hastily interrupted him.
27538
27539"Oh, please!" said he. "I understand your reasons. You are an
27540officer... a superior officer perhaps. You have borne arms against us.
27541That's not my business. I owe you my life. That is enough for me. I am
27542quite at your service. You belong to the gentry?" he concluded with
27543a shade of inquiry in his tone. Pierre bent his head. "Your
27544baptismal name, if you please. That is all I ask. Monsieur Pierre, you
27545say.... That's all I want to know."
27546
27547When the mutton and an omelet had been served and a samovar and
27548vodka brought, with some wine which the French had taken from a
27549Russian cellar and brought with them, Ramballe invited Pierre to share
27550his dinner, and himself began to eat greedily and quickly like a
27551healthy and hungry man, munching his food rapidly with his strong
27552teeth, continually smacking his lips, and repeating--"Excellent!
27553Delicious!" His face grew red and was covered with perspiration.
27554Pierre was hungry and shared the dinner with pleasure. Morel, the
27555orderly, brought some hot water in a saucepan and placed a bottle of
27556claret in it. He also brought a bottle of kvass, taken from the
27557kitchen for them to try. That beverage was already known to the French
27558and had been given a special name. They called it limonade de cochon
27559(pig's lemonade), and Morel spoke well of the limonade de cochon he
27560had found in the kitchen. But as the captain had the wine they had
27561taken while passing through Moscow, he left the kvass to Morel and
27562applied himself to the bottle of Bordeaux. He wrapped the bottle up to
27563its neck in a table napkin and poured out wine for himself and for
27564Pierre. The satisfaction of his hunger and the wine rendered the
27565captain still more lively and he chatted incessantly all through
27566dinner.
27567
27568"Yes, my dear Monsieur Pierre, I owe you a fine votive candle for
27569saving me from that maniac.... You see, I have bullets enough in my
27570body already. Here is one I got at Wagram" (he touched his side)
27571"and a second at Smolensk"--he showed a scar on his cheek--"and this
27572leg which as you see does not want to march, I got that on the seventh
27573at the great battle of la Moskowa. Sacre Dieu! It was splendid! That
27574deluge of fire was worth seeing. It was a tough job you set us
27575there, my word! You may be proud of it! And on my honor, in spite of
27576the cough I caught there, I should be ready to begin again. I pity
27577those who did not see it."
27578
27579"I was there," said Pierre.
27580
27581"Bah, really? So much the better! You are certainly brave foes.
27582The great redoubt held out well, by my pipe!" continued the Frenchman.
27583"And you made us pay dear for it. I was at it three times--sure as I
27584sit here. Three times we reached the guns and three times we were
27585thrown back like cardboard figures. Oh, it was beautiful, Monsieur
27586Pierre! Your grenadiers were splendid, by heaven! I saw them close
27587up their ranks six times in succession and march as if on parade. Fine
27588fellows! Our King of Naples, who knows what's what, cried 'Bravo!' Ha,
27589ha! So you are one of us soldiers!" he added, smiling, after a
27590momentary pause. "So much the better, so much the better, Monsieur
27591Pierre! Terrible in battle... gallant... with the fair" (he winked and
27592smiled), "that's what the French are, Monsieur Pierre, aren't they?"
27593
27594The captain was so naively and good-humoredly gay, so real, and so
27595pleased with himself that Pierre almost winked back as he looked
27596merrily at him. Probably the word "gallant" turned the captain's
27597thoughts to the state of Moscow.
27598
27599"Apropos, tell me please, is it true that the women have all left
27600Moscow? What a queer idea! What had they to be afraid of?"
27601
27602"Would not the French ladies leave Paris if the Russians entered
27603it?" asked Pierre.
27604
27605"Ha, ha, ha!" The Frenchman emitted a merry, sanguine chuckle,
27606patting Pierre on the shoulder. "What a thing to say!" he exclaimed.
27607"Paris?... But Paris, Paris..."
27608
27609"Paris--the capital of the world," Pierre finished his remark for
27610him.
27611
27612The captain looked at Pierre. He had a habit of stopping short in
27613the middle of his talk and gazing intently with his laughing, kindly
27614eyes.
27615
27616"Well, if you hadn't told me you were Russian, I should have wagered
27617that you were Parisian! You have that... I don't know what, that..."
27618and having uttered this compliment, he again gazed at him in silence.
27619
27620"I have been in Paris. I spent years there," said Pierre.
27621
27622"Oh yes, one sees that plainly. Paris!... A man who doesn't know
27623Paris is a savage. You can tell a Parisian two leagues off. Paris is
27624Talma, la Duchenois, Potier, the Sorbonne, the boulevards," and
27625noticing that his conclusion was weaker than what had gone before,
27626he added quickly: "There is only one Paris in the world. You have been
27627to Paris and have remained Russian. Well, I don't esteem you the
27628less for it."
27629
27630Under the influence of the wine he had drunk, and after the days
27631he had spent alone with his depressing thoughts, Pierre
27632involuntarily enjoyed talking with this cheerful and good-natured man.
27633
27634"To return to your ladies--I hear they are lovely. What a wretched
27635idea to go and bury themselves in the steppes when the French army
27636is in Moscow. What a chance those girls have missed! Your peasants,
27637now--that's another thing; but you civilized people, you ought to know
27638us better than that. We took Vienna, Berlin, Madrid, Naples, Rome,
27639Warsaw, all the world's capitals.... We are feared, but we are
27640loved. We are nice to know. And then the Emperor..." he began, but
27641Pierre interrupted him.
27642
27643"The Emperor," Pierre repeated, and his face suddenly became sad and
27644embarrassed, "is the Emperor...?"
27645
27646"The Emperor? He is generosity, mercy, justice, order, genius-
27647that's what the Emperor is! It is I, Ramballe, who tell you so.... I
27648assure you I was his enemy eight years ago. My father was an
27649emigrant count.... But that man has vanquished me. He has taken hold
27650of me. I could not resist the sight of the grandeur and glory with
27651which he has covered France. When I understood what he wanted--when
27652I saw that he was preparing a bed of laurels for us, you know, I
27653said to myself: 'That is a monarch,' and I devoted myself to him! So
27654there! Oh yes, mon cher, he is the greatest man of the ages past or
27655future."
27656
27657"Is he in Moscow?" Pierre stammered with a guilty look.
27658
27659The Frenchman looked at his guilty face and smiled.
27660
27661"No, he will make his entry tomorrow," he replied, and continued his
27662talk.
27663
27664Their conversation was interrupted by the cries of several voices at
27665the gate and by Morel, who came to say that some Wurttemberg hussars
27666had come and wanted to put up their horses in the yard where the
27667captain's horses were. This difficulty had arisen chiefly because
27668the hussars did not understand what was said to them in French.
27669
27670The captain had their senior sergeant called in, and in a stern
27671voice asked him to what regiment he belonged, who was his commanding
27672officer, and by what right he allowed himself to claim quarters that
27673were already occupied. The German who knew little French, answered the
27674two first questions by giving the names of his regiment and of his
27675commanding officer, but in reply to the third question which he did
27676not understand said, introducing broken French into his own German,
27677that he was the quartermaster of the regiment and his commander had
27678ordered him to occupy all the houses one after another. Pierre, who
27679knew German, translated what the German said to the captain and gave
27680the captain's reply to the Wurttemberg hussar in German. When he had
27681understood what was said to him, the German submitted and took his men
27682elsewhere. The captain went out into the porch and gave some orders in
27683a loud voice.
27684
27685When he returned to the room Pierre was sitting in the same place as
27686before, with his head in his hands. His face expressed suffering. He
27687really was suffering at that moment. When the captain went out and
27688he was left alone, suddenly he came to himself and realized the
27689position he was in. It was not that Moscow had been taken or that
27690the happy conquerors were masters in it and were patronizing him.
27691Painful as that was it was not that which tormented Pierre at the
27692moment. He was tormented by the consciousness of his own weakness. The
27693few glasses of wine he had drunk and the conversation with this
27694good-natured man had destroyed the mood of concentrated gloom in which
27695he had spent the last few days and which was essential for the
27696execution of his design. The pistol, dagger, and peasant coat were
27697ready. Napoleon was to enter the town next day. Pierre still
27698considered that it would be a useful and worthy action to slay the
27699evildoer, but now he felt that he would not do it. He did not know
27700why, but he felt a foreboding that he would not carry out his
27701intention. He struggled against the confession of his weakness but
27702dimly felt that he could not overcome it and that his former gloomy
27703frame of mind, concerning vengeance, killing, and self-sacrifice,
27704had been dispersed like dust by contact with the first man he met.
27705
27706The captain returned to the room, limping slightly and whistling a
27707tune.
27708
27709The Frenchman's chatter which had previously amused Pierre now
27710repelled him. The tune he was whistling, his gait, and the gesture
27711with which he twirled his mustache, all now seemed offensive. "I
27712will go away immediately. I won't say another word to him," thought
27713Pierre. He thought this, but still sat in the same place. A strange
27714feeling of weakness tied him to the spot; he wished to get up and go
27715away, but could not do so.
27716
27717The captain, on the other hand, seemed very cheerful. He paced up
27718and down the room twice. His eyes shone and his mustache twitched as
27719if he were smiling to himself at some amusing thought.
27720
27721"The colonel of those Wurttembergers is delightful," he suddenly
27722said. "He's a German, but a nice fellow all the same.... But he's a
27723German." He sat down facing Pierre. "By the way, you know German,
27724then?"
27725
27726Pierre looked at him in silence.
27727
27728"What is the German for 'shelter'?"
27729
27730"Shelter?" Pierre repeated. "The German for shelter is Unterkunft."
27731
27732"How do you say it?" the captain asked quickly and doubtfully.
27733
27734"Unterkunft," Pierre repeated.
27735
27736"Onterkoff," said the captain and looked at Pierre for some
27737seconds with laughing eyes. "These Germans are first-rate fools, don't
27738you think so, Monsieur Pierre?" he concluded.
27739
27740"Well, let's have another bottle of this Moscow Bordeaux, shall
27741we? Morel will warm us up another little bottle. Morel!" he called out
27742gaily.
27743
27744Morel brought candles and a bottle of wine. The captain looked at
27745Pierre by the candlelight and was evidently struck by the troubled
27746expression on his companion's face. Ramballe, with genuine distress
27747and sympathy in his face, went up to Pierre and bent over him.
27748
27749"There now, we're sad," said he, touching Pierre's hand. "Have I
27750upset you? No, really, have you anything against me?" he asked Pierre.
27751"Perhaps it's the state of affairs?"
27752
27753Pierre did not answer, but looked cordially into the Frenchman's
27754eyes whose expression of sympathy was pleasing to him.
27755
27756"Honestly, without speaking of what I owe you, I feel friendship for
27757you. Can I do anything for you? Dispose of me. It is for life and
27758death. I say it with my hand on my heart!" said he, striking his
27759chest.
27760
27761"Thank you," said Pierre.
27762
27763The captain gazed intently at him as he had done when he learned
27764that "shelter" was Unterkunft in German, and his face suddenly
27765brightened.
27766
27767"Well, in that case, I drink to our friendship!" he cried gaily,
27768filling two glasses with wine.
27769
27770Pierre took one of the glasses and emptied it. Ramballe emptied
27771his too, again pressed Pierre's hand, and leaned his elbows on the
27772table in a pensive attitude.
27773
27774"Yes, my dear friend," he began, "such is fortune's caprice. Who
27775would have said that I should be a soldier and a captain of dragoons
27776in the service of Bonaparte, as we used to call him? Yet here I am
27777in Moscow with him. I must tell you, mon cher," he continued in the
27778sad and measured tones of a man who intends to tell a long story,
27779"that our name is one of the most ancient in France."
27780
27781And with a Frenchman's easy and naive frankness the captain told
27782Pierre the story of his ancestors, his childhood, youth, and
27783manhood, and all about his relations and his financial and family
27784affairs, "ma pauvre mere" playing of course an important part in the
27785story.
27786
27787"But all that is only life's setting, the real thing is love-
27788love! Am I not right, Monsieur Pierre?" said he, growing animated.
27789"Another glass?"
27790
27791Pierre again emptied his glass and poured himself out a third.
27792
27793"Oh, women, women!" and the captain, looking with glistening eyes at
27794Pierre, began talking of love and of his love affairs.
27795
27796There were very many of these, as one could easily believe,
27797looking at the officer's handsome, self-satisfied face, and noting the
27798eager enthusiasm with which he spoke of women. Though all Ramballe's
27799love stories had the sensual character which Frenchmen regard as the
27800special charm and poetry of love, yet he told his story with such
27801sincere conviction that he alone had experienced and known all the
27802charm of love and he described women so alluringly that Pierre
27803listened to him with curiosity.
27804
27805It was plain that l'amour which the Frenchman was so fond of was not
27806that low and simple kind that Pierre had once felt for his wife, nor
27807was it the romantic love stimulated by himself that he experienced for
27808Natasha. (Ramballe despised both these kinds of love equally: the
27809one he considered the "love of clodhoppers" and the other the "love of
27810simpletons.") L'amour which the Frenchman worshiped consisted
27811principally in the unnaturalness of his relation to the woman and in a
27812combination of incongruities giving the chief charm to the feeling.
27813
27814Thus the captain touchingly recounted the story of his love for a
27815fascinating marquise of thirty-five and at the same time for a
27816charming, innocent child of seventeen, daughter of the bewitching
27817marquise. The conflict of magnanimity between the mother and the
27818daughter, ending in the mother's sacrificing herself and offering
27819her daughter in marriage to her lover, even now agitated the
27820captain, though it was the memory of a distant past. Then he recounted
27821an episode in which the husband played the part of the lover, and
27822he--the lover--assumed the role of the husband, as well as several
27823droll incidents from his recollections of Germany, where "shelter"
27824is called Unterkunft and where the husbands eat sauerkraut and the
27825young girls are "too blonde."
27826
27827Finally, the latest episode in Poland still fresh in the captain's
27828memory, and which he narrated with rapid gestures and glowing face,
27829was of how he had saved the life of a Pole (in general, the saving
27830of life continually occurred in the captain's stories) and the Pole
27831had entrusted to him his enchanting wife (parisienne de coeur) while
27832himself entering the French service. The captain was happy, the
27833enchanting Polish lady wished to elope with him, but, prompted by
27834magnanimity, the captain restored the wife to the husband, saying as
27835he did so: "I have saved your life, and I save your honor!" Having
27836repeated these words the captain wiped his eyes and gave himself a
27837shake, as if driving away the weakness which assailed him at this
27838touching recollection.
27839
27840Listening to the captain's tales, Pierre--as often happens late in
27841the evening and under the influence of wine--followed all that was
27842told him, understood it all, and at the same time followed a train
27843of personal memories which, he knew not why, suddenly arose in his
27844mind. While listening to these love stories his own love for Natasha
27845unexpectedly rose to his mind, and going over the pictures of that
27846love in his imagination he mentally compared them with Ramballe's
27847tales. Listening to the story of the struggle between love and duty,
27848Pierre saw before his eyes every minutest detail of his last meeting
27849with the object of his love at the Sukharev water tower. At the time
27850of that meeting it had not produced an effect upon him--he had not
27851even once recalled it. But now it seemed to him that that meeting
27852had had in it something very important and poetic.
27853
27854"Peter Kirilovich, come here! We have recognized you," he now seemed
27855to hear the words she had uttered and to see before him her eyes,
27856her smile, her traveling hood, and a stray lock of her hair... and
27857there seemed to him something pathetic and touching in all this.
27858
27859Having finished his tale about the enchanting Polish lady, the
27860captain asked Pierre if he had ever experienced a similar impulse to
27861sacrifice himself for love and a feeling of envy of the legitimate
27862husband.
27863
27864Challenged by this question Pierre raised his head and felt a need
27865to express the thoughts that filled his mind. He began to explain that
27866he understood love for a women somewhat differently. He said that in
27867all his life he had loved and still loved only one woman, and that she
27868could never be his.
27869
27870"Tiens!" said the captain.
27871
27872Pierre then explained that he had loved this woman from his earliest
27873years, but that he had not dared to think of her because she was too
27874young, and because he had been an illegitimate son without a name.
27875Afterwards when he had received a name and wealth he dared not think
27876of her because he loved her too well, placing her far above everything
27877in the world, and especially therefore above himself.
27878
27879When he had reached this point, Pierre asked the captain whether
27880he understood that.
27881
27882The captain made a gesture signifying that even if he did not
27883understand it he begged Pierre to continue.
27884
27885"Platonic love, clouds..." he muttered.
27886
27887Whether it was the wine he had drunk, or an impulse of frankness, or
27888the thought that this man did not, and never would, know any of
27889those who played a part in his story, or whether it was all these
27890things together, something loosened Pierre's tongue. Speaking
27891thickly and with a faraway look in his shining eyes, he told the whole
27892story of his life: his marriage, Natasha's love for his best friend,
27893her betrayal of him, and all his own simple relations with her.
27894Urged on by Ramballe's questions he also told what he had at first
27895concealed--his own position and even his name.
27896
27897More than anything else in Pierre's story the captain was
27898impressed by the fact that Pierre was very rich, had two mansions in
27899Moscow, and that he had abandoned everything and not left the city,
27900but remained there concealing his name and station.
27901
27902When it was late at night they went out together into the street.
27903The night was warm and light. To the left of the house on the Pokrovka
27904a fire glowed--the first of those that were beginning in Moscow. To
27905the right and high up in the sky was the sickle of the waning moon and
27906opposite to it hung that bright comet which was connected in
27907Pierre's heart with his love. At the gate stood Gerasim, the cook, and
27908two Frenchmen. Their laughter and their mutually incomprehensible
27909remarks in two languages could be heard. They were looking at the glow
27910seen in the town.
27911
27912There was nothing terrible in the one small, distant fire in the
27913immense city.
27914
27915Gazing at the high starry sky, at the moon, at the comet, and at the
27916glow from the fire, Pierre experienced a joyful emotion. "There now,
27917how good it is, what more does one need?" thought he. And suddenly
27918remembering his intention he grew dizzy and felt so faint that he
27919leaned against the fence to save himself from falling.
27920
27921Without taking leave of his new friend, Pierre left the gate with
27922unsteady steps and returning to his room lay down on the sofa and
27923immediately fell asleep.
27924
27925
27926
27927
27928
27929CHAPTER XXX
27930
27931
27932The glow of the first fire that began on the second of September was
27933watched from the various roads by the fugitive Muscovites and by the
27934retreating troops, with many different feelings.
27935
27936The Rostov party spent the night at Mytishchi, fourteen miles from
27937Moscow. They had started so late on the first of September, the road
27938had been so blocked by vehicles and troops, so many things had been
27939forgotten for which servants were sent back, that they had decided
27940to spend that night at a place three miles out of Moscow. The next
27941morning they woke late and were again delayed so often that they
27942only got as far as Great Mytishchi. At ten o'clock that evening the
27943Rostov family and the wounded traveling with them were all distributed
27944in the yards and huts of that large village. The Rostovs' servants and
27945coachmen and the orderlies of the wounded officers, after attending to
27946their masters, had supper, fed the horses, and came out into the
27947porches.
27948
27949In a neighboring hut lay Raevski's adjutant with a fractured
27950wrist. The awful pain he suffered made him moan incessantly and
27951piteously, and his moaning sounded terrible in the darkness of the
27952autumn night. He had spent the first night in the same yard as the
27953Rostovs. The countess said she had been unable to close her eyes on
27954account of his moaning, and at Mytishchi she moved into a worse hut
27955simply to be farther away from the wounded man.
27956
27957In the darkness of the night one of the servants noticed, above
27958the high body of a coach standing before the porch, the small glow
27959of another fire. One glow had long been visible and everybody knew
27960that it was Little Mytishchi burning--set on fire by Mamonov's
27961Cossacks.
27962
27963"But look here, brothers, there's another fire!" remarked an
27964orderly.
27965
27966All turned their attention to the glow.
27967
27968"But they told us Little Mytishchi had been set on fire by Mamonov's
27969Cossacks."
27970
27971"But that's not Mytishchi, it's farther away."
27972
27973"Look, it must be in Moscow!"
27974
27975Two of the gazers went round to the other side of the coach and
27976sat down on its steps.
27977
27978"It's more to the left, why, Little Mytishchi is over there, and
27979this is right on the other side."
27980
27981Several men joined the first two.
27982
27983"See how it's flaring," said one. "That's a fire in Moscow: either
27984in the Sushchevski or the Rogozhski quarter."
27985
27986No one replied to this remark and for some time they all gazed
27987silently at the spreading flames of the second fire in the distance.
27988
27989Old Daniel Terentich, the count's valet (as he was called), came
27990up to the group and shouted at Mishka.
27991
27992"What are you staring at, you good-for-nothing?... The count will be
27993calling and there's nobody there; go and gather the clothes together."
27994
27995"I only ran out to get some water," said Mishka.
27996
27997"But what do you think, Daniel Terentich? Doesn't it look as if that
27998glow were in Moscow?" remarked one of the footmen.
27999
28000Daniel Terentich made no reply, and again for a long time they
28001were all silent. The glow spread, rising and failing, farther and
28002farther still.
28003
28004"God have mercy.... It's windy and dry..." said another voice.
28005
28006"Just look! See what it's doing now. O Lord! You can even see the
28007crows flying. Lord have mercy on us sinners!"
28008
28009"They'll put it out, no fear!"
28010
28011"Who's to put it out?" Daniel Terentich, who had hitherto been
28012silent, was heard to say. His voice was calm and deliberate. "Moscow
28013it is, brothers," said he. "Mother Moscow, the white..." his voice
28014faltered, and he gave way to an old man's sob.
28015
28016And it was as if they had all only waited for this to realize the
28017significance for them of the glow they were watching. Sighs were
28018heard, words of prayer, and the sobbing of the count's old valet.
28019
28020
28021
28022
28023
28024CHAPTER XXXI
28025
28026
28027The valet, returning to the cottage, informed the count that
28028Moscow was burning. The count donned his dressing gown and went out to
28029look. Sonya and Madame Schoss, who had not yet undressed, went out
28030with him. Only Natasha and the countess remained in the room. Petya
28031was no longer with the family, he had gone on with his regiment
28032which was making for Troitsa.
28033
28034The countess, on hearing that Moscow was on fire, began to cry.
28035Natasha, pale, with a fixed look, was sitting on the bench under the
28036icons just where she had sat down on arriving and paid no attention to
28037her father's words. She was listening to the ceaseless moaning of
28038the adjutant, three houses off.
28039
28040"Oh, how terrible," said Sonya returning from the yard chilled and
28041frightened. "I believe the whole of Moscow will burn, there's an awful
28042glow! Natasha, do look! You can see it from the window," she said to
28043her cousin, evidently wishing to distract her mind.
28044
28045But Natasha looked at her as if not understanding what was said to
28046her and again fixed her eyes on the corner of the stove. She had
28047been in this condition of stupor since the morning, when Sonya, to the
28048surprise and annoyance of the countess, had for some unaccountable
28049reason found it necessary to tell Natasha of Prince Andrew's wound and
28050of his being with their party. The countess had seldom been so angry
28051with anyone as she was with Sonya. Sonya had cried and begged to be
28052forgiven and now, as if trying to atone for her fault, paid
28053unceasing attention to her cousin.
28054
28055"Look, Natasha, how dreadfully it is burning!" said she.
28056
28057"What's burning?" asked Natasha. "Oh, yes, Moscow."
28058
28059And as if in order not to offend Sonya and to get rid of her, she
28060turned her face to the window, looked out in such a way that it was
28061evident that she could not see anything, and again settled down in her
28062former attitude.
28063
28064"But you didn't see it!"
28065
28066"Yes, really I did," Natasha replied in a voice that pleaded to be
28067left in peace.
28068
28069Both the countess and Sonya understood that, naturally, neither
28070Moscow nor the burning of Moscow nor anything else could seem of
28071importance to Natasha.
28072
28073The count returned and lay down behind the partition. The countess
28074went up to her daughter and touched her head with the back of her hand
28075as she was wont to do when Natasha was ill, then touched her
28076forehead with her lips as if to feel whether she was feverish, and
28077finally kissed her.
28078
28079"You are cold. You are trembling all over. You'd better lie down,"
28080said the countess.
28081
28082"Lie down? All right, I will. I'll lie down at once," said Natasha.
28083
28084When Natasha had been told that morning that Prince Andrew was
28085seriously wounded and was traveling with their party, she had at first
28086asked many questions: Where was he going? How was he wounded? Was it
28087serious? And could she see him? But after she had been told that she
28088could not see him, that he was seriously wounded but that his life was
28089not in danger, she ceased to ask questions or to speak at all,
28090evidently disbelieving what they told her, and convinced that say what
28091she might she would still be told the same. All the way she had sat
28092motionless in a corner of the coach with wide open eyes, and the
28093expression in them which the countess knew so well and feared so much,
28094and now she sat in the same way on the bench where she had seated
28095herself on arriving. She was planning something and either deciding or
28096had already decided something in her mind. The countess knew this, but
28097what it might be she did not know, and this alarmed and tormented her.
28098
28099"Natasha, undress, darling; lie down on my bed."
28100
28101A bed had been made on a bedstead for the countess only. Madame
28102Schoss and the two girls were to sleep on some hay on the floor.
28103
28104"No, Mamma, I will lie down here on the floor," Natasha replied
28105irritably and she went to the window and opened it. Through the open
28106window the moans of the adjutant could be heard more distinctly. She
28107put her head out into the damp night air, and the countess saw her
28108slim neck shaking with sobs and throbbing against the window frame.
28109Natasha knew it was not Prince Andrew who was moaning. She knew Prince
28110Andrew was in the same yard as themselves and in a part of the hut
28111across the passage; but this dreadful incessant moaning made her
28112sob. The countess exchanged a look with Sonya.
28113
28114"Lie down, darling; lie down, my pet," said the countess, softly
28115touching Natasha's shoulders. "Come, lie down."
28116
28117"Oh, yes... I'll lie down at once," said Natasha, and began
28118hurriedly undressing, tugging at the tapes of her petticoat.
28119
28120When she had thrown off her dress and put on a dressing jacket,
28121she sat down with her foot under her on the bed that had been made
28122up on the floor, jerked her thin and rather short plait of hair to the
28123front, and began replaiting it. Her long, thin, practiced fingers
28124rapidly unplaited, replaited, and tied up her plait. Her head moved
28125from side to side from habit, but her eyes, feverishly wide, looked
28126fixedly before her. When her toilet for the night was finished she
28127sank gently onto the sheet spread over the hay on the side nearest the
28128door.
28129
28130"Natasha, you'd better lie in the middle," said Sonya.
28131
28132"I'll stay here," muttered Natasha. "Do lie down," she added
28133crossly, and buried her face in the pillow.
28134
28135The countess, Madame Schoss, and Sonya undressed hastily and lay
28136down. The small lamp in front of the icons was the only light left
28137in the room. But in the yard there was a light from the fire at Little
28138Mytishchi a mile and a half away, and through the night came the noise
28139of people shouting at a tavern Mamonov's Cossacks had set up across
28140the street, and the adjutant's unceasing moans could still be heard.
28141
28142For a long time Natasha listened attentively to the sounds that
28143reached her from inside and outside the room and did not move. First
28144she heard her mother praying and sighing and the creaking of her bed
28145under her, then Madame Schoss' familiar whistling snore and Sonya's
28146gentle breathing. Then the countess called to Natasha. Natasha did not
28147answer.
28148
28149"I think she's asleep, Mamma," said Sonya softly.
28150
28151After short silence the countess spoke again but this time no one
28152replied.
28153
28154Soon after that Natasha heard her mother's even breathing. Natasha
28155did not move, though her little bare foot, thrust out from under the
28156quilt, was growing cold on the bare floor.
28157
28158As if to celebrate a victory over everybody, a cricket chirped in
28159a crack in the wall. A cock crowed far off and another replied near
28160by. The shouting in the tavern had died down; only the moaning of
28161the adjutant was heard. Natasha sat up.
28162
28163"Sonya, are you asleep? Mamma?" she whispered.
28164
28165No one replied. Natasha rose slowly and carefully, crossed
28166herself, and stepped cautiously on the cold and dirty floor with her
28167slim, supple, bare feet. The boards of the floor creaked. Stepping
28168cautiously from one foot to the other she ran like a kitten the few
28169steps to the door and grasped the cold door handle.
28170
28171It seemed to her that something heavy was beating rhythmically
28172against all the walls of the room: it was her own heart, sinking
28173with alarm and terror and overflowing with love.
28174
28175She opened the door and stepped across the threshold and onto the
28176cold, damp earthen floor of the passage. The cold she felt refreshed
28177her. With her bare feet she touched a sleeping man, stepped over
28178him, and opened the door into the part of the hut where Prince
28179Andrew lay. It was dark in there. In the farthest corner, on a bench
28180beside a bed on which something was lying, stood a tallow candle
28181with a long, thick, and smoldering wick.
28182
28183From the moment she had been told that of Prince Andrew's wound
28184and his presence there, Natasha had resolved to see him. She did not
28185know why she had to, she knew the meeting would be painful, but felt
28186the more convinced that it was necessary.
28187
28188All day she had lived only in hope of seeing him that night. But now
28189that the moment had come she was filled with dread of what she might
28190see. How was he maimed? What was left of him? Was he like that
28191incessant moaning of the adjutant's? Yes, he was altogether like that.
28192In her imagination he was that terrible moaning personified. When
28193she saw an indistinct shape in the corner, and mistook his knees
28194raised under the quilt for his shoulders, she imagined a horrible body
28195there, and stood still in terror. But an irresistible impulse drew her
28196forward. She cautiously took one step and then another, and found
28197herself in the middle of a small room containing baggage. Another man-
28198Timokhin--was lying in a corner on the benches beneath the icons,
28199and two others--the doctor and a valet--lay on the floor.
28200
28201The valet sat up and whispered something. Timokhin, kept awake by
28202the pain in his wounded leg, gazed with wide-open eyes at this strange
28203apparition of a girl in a white chemise, dressing jacket, and
28204nightcap. The valet's sleepy, frightened exclamation, "What do you
28205want? What's the matter?" made Natasha approach more swiftly to what
28206was lying in the corner. Horribly unlike a man as that body looked,
28207she must see him. She passed the valet, the snuff fell from the candle
28208wick, and she saw Prince Andrew clearly with his arms outside the
28209quilt, and such as she had always seen him.
28210
28211He was the same as ever, but the feverish color of his face, his
28212glittering eyes rapturously turned toward her, and especially his
28213neck, delicate as a child's, revealed by the turn-down collar of his
28214shirt, gave him a peculiarly innocent, childlike look, such as she had
28215never seen on him before. She went up to him and with a swift,
28216flexible, youthful movement dropped on her knees.
28217
28218He smiled and held out his hand to her.
28219
28220
28221
28222
28223
28224CHAPTER XXXII
28225
28226
28227Seven days had passed since Prince Andrew found himself in the
28228ambulance station on the field of Borodino. His feverish state and the
28229inflammation of his bowels, which were injured, were in the doctor's
28230
28231opinion sure to carry him off. But on the seventh day he ate with
28232pleasure a piece of bread with some tea, and the doctor noticed that
28233his temperature was lower. He had regained consciousness that morning.
28234The first night after they left Moscow had been fairly warm and he had
28235remained in the caleche, but at Mytishchi the wounded man himself
28236asked to be taken out and given some tea. The pain caused by his
28237removal into the hut had made him groan aloud and again lose
28238consciousness. When he had been placed on his camp bed he lay for a
28239long time motionless with closed eyes. Then he opened them and
28240whispered softly: "And the tea?" His remembering such a small detail
28241of everyday life astonished the doctor. He felt Prince Andrew's pulse,
28242and to his surprise and dissatisfaction found it had improved. He
28243was dissatisfied because he knew by experience that if his patient did
28244not die now, he would do so a little later with greater suffering.
28245Timokhin, the red-nosed major of Prince Andrew's regiment, had
28246joined him in Moscow and was being taken along with him, having been
28247wounded in the leg at the battle of Borodino. They were accompanied by
28248a doctor, Prince Andrew's valet, his coachman, and two orderlies.
28249
28250They gave Prince Andrew some tea. He drank it eagerly, looking
28251with feverish eyes at the door in front of him as if trying to
28252understand and remember something.
28253
28254"I don't want any more. Is Timokhin here?" he asked.
28255
28256Timokhin crept along the bench to him.
28257
28258"I am here, your excellency."
28259
28260"How's your wound?"
28261
28262"Mine, sir? All right. But how about you?"
28263
28264Prince Andrew again pondered as if trying to remember something.
28265
28266"Couldn't one get a book?" he asked.
28267
28268"What book?"
28269
28270"The Gospels. I haven't one."
28271
28272The doctor promised to procure it for him and began to ask how he
28273was feeling. Prince Andrew answered all his questions reluctantly
28274but reasonably, and then said he wanted a bolster placed under him
28275as he was uncomfortable and in great pain. The doctor and valet lifted
28276the cloak with which he was covered and, making wry faces at the
28277noisome smell of mortifying flesh that came from the wound, began
28278examining that dreadful place. The doctor was very much displeased
28279about something and made a change in the dressings, turning the
28280wounded man over so that he groaned again and grew unconscious and
28281delirious from the agony. He kept asking them to get him the book
28282and put it under him.
28283
28284"What trouble would it be to you?" he said. "I have not got one.
28285Please get it for me and put it under for a moment," he pleaded in a
28286piteous voice.
28287
28288The doctor went into the passage to wash his hands.
28289
28290"You fellows have no conscience," said he to the valet who was
28291pouring water over his hands. "For just one moment I didn't look after
28292you... It's such pain, you know, that I wonder how he can bear it."
28293
28294"By the Lord Jesus Christ, I thought we had put something under
28295him!" said the valet.
28296
28297The first time Prince Andrew understood where he was and what was
28298the matter with him and remembered being wounded and how was when he
28299asked to be carried into the hut after his caleche had stopped at
28300Mytishchi. After growing confused from pain while being carried into
28301the hut he again regained consciousness, and while drinking tea once
28302more recalled all that had happened to him, and above all vividly
28303remembered the moment at the ambulance station when, at the sight of
28304the sufferings of a man he disliked, those new thoughts had come to
28305him which promised him happiness. And those thoughts, though now vague
28306and indefinite, again possessed his soul. He remembered that he had
28307now a new source of happiness and that this happiness had something to
28308do with the Gospels. That was why he asked for a copy of them. The
28309uncomfortable position in which they had put him and turned him over
28310again confused his thoughts, and when he came to himself a third
28311time it was in the complete stillness of the night. Everybody near him
28312was sleeping. A cricket chirped from across the passage; someone was
28313shouting and singing in the street; cockroaches rustled on the
28314table, on the icons, and on the walls, and a big fly flopped at the
28315head of the bed and around the candle beside him, the wick of which
28316was charred and had shaped itself like a mushroom.
28317
28318His mind was not in a normal state. A healthy man usually thinks of,
28319feels, and remembers innumerable things simultaneously, but has the
28320power and will to select one sequence of thoughts or events on which
28321to fix his whole attention. A healthy man can tear himself away from
28322the deepest reflections to say a civil word to someone who comes in
28323and can then return again to his own thoughts. But Prince Andrew's
28324mind was not in a normal state in that respect. All the powers of
28325his mind were more active and clearer than ever, but they acted
28326apart from his will. Most diverse thoughts and images occupied him
28327simultaneously. At times his brain suddenly began to work with a
28328vigor, clearness, and depth it had never reached when he was in
28329health, but suddenly in the midst of its work it would turn to some
28330unexpected idea and he had not the strength to turn it back again.
28331
28332"Yes, a new happiness was revealed to me of which man cannot be
28333deprived," he thought as he lay in the semi-darkness of the quiet hut,
28334gazing fixedly before him with feverish wide open eyes. "A happiness
28335lying beyond material forces, outside the material influences that act
28336on man--a happiness of the soul alone, the happiness of loving.
28337Every man can understand it, but to conceive it and enjoin it was
28338possible only for God. But how did God enjoin that law? And why was
28339the Son...?"
28340
28341And suddenly the sequence of these thoughts broke off, and Prince
28342Andrew heard (without knowing whether it was a delusion or reality)
28343a soft whispering voice incessantly and rhythmically repeating
28344"piti-piti-piti," and then "titi," and then again "piti-piti-piti,"
28345and "ti-ti" once more. At the same time he felt that above his face,
28346above the very middle of it, some strange airy structure was being
28347erected out of slender needles or splinters, to the sound of this
28348whispered music. He felt that he had to balance carefully (though it
28349was difficult) so that this airy structure should not collapse; but
28350nevertheless it kept collapsing and again slowly rising to the sound
28351of whispered rhythmic music--"it stretches, stretches, spreading out
28352and stretching," said Prince Andrew to himself. While listening to
28353this whispering and feeling the sensation of this drawing out and
28354the construction of this edifice of needles, he also saw by glimpses a
28355red halo round the candle, and heard the rustle of the cockroaches and
28356the buzzing of the fly that flopped against his pillow and his face.
28357Each time the fly touched his face it gave him a burning sensation and
28358yet to his surprise it did not destroy the structure, though it
28359knocked against the very region of his face where it was rising. But
28360besides this there was something else of importance. It was
28361something white by the door--the statue of a sphinx, which also
28362oppressed him.
28363
28364"But perhaps that's my shirt on the table," he thought, "and
28365that's my legs, and that is the door, but why is it always
28366stretching and drawing itself out, and 'piti-piti-piti' and 'ti-ti'
28367and 'piti-piti-piti'...? That's enough, please leave off!" Prince
28368Andrew painfully entreated someone. And suddenly thoughts and feelings
28369again swam to the surface of his mind with peculiar clearness and
28370force.
28371
28372"Yes--love," he thought again quite clearly. "But not love which
28373loves for something, for some quality, for some purpose, or for some
28374reason, but the love which I--while dying--first experienced when I
28375saw my enemy and yet loved him. I experienced that feeling of love
28376which is the very essence of the soul and does not require an
28377object. Now again I feel that bliss. To love one's neighbors, to
28378love one's enemies, to love everything, to love God in all His
28379manifestations. It is possible to love someone dear to you with
28380human love, but an enemy can only be loved by divine love. That is why
28381I experienced such joy when I felt that I loved that man. What has
28382become of him? Is he alive?...
28383
28384"When loving with human love one may pass from love to hatred, but
28385divine love cannot change. No, neither death nor anything else can
28386destroy it. It is the very essence of the soul. Yet how many people
28387have I hated in my life? And of them all, I loved and hated none as
28388I did her." And he vividly pictured to himself Natasha, not as he
28389had done in the past with nothing but her charms which gave him
28390delight, but for the first time picturing to himself her soul. And
28391he understood her feelings, her sufferings, shame, and remorse. He now
28392understood for the first time all the cruelty of his rejection of her,
28393the cruelty of his rupture with her. "If only it were possible for
28394me to see her once more! Just once, looking into those eyes to say..."
28395
28396
28397"Piti-piti-piti and ti-ti and piti-piti-piti boom!" flopped the
28398fly... And his attention was suddenly carried into another world, a
28399world of reality and delirium in which something particular was
28400happening. In that world some structure was still being erected and
28401did not fall, something was still stretching out, and the candle
28402with its red halo was still burning, and the same shirtlike sphinx lay
28403near the door; but besides all this something creaked, there was a
28404whiff of fresh air, and a new white sphinx appeared, standing at the
28405door. And that sphinx had the pale face and shining eyes of the very
28406Natasha of whom he had just been thinking.
28407
28408"Oh, how oppressive this continual delirium is," thought Prince
28409Andrew, trying to drive that face from his imagination. But the face
28410remained before him with the force of reality and drew nearer.
28411Prince Andrew wished to return that former world of pure thought,
28412but he could not, and delirium drew him back into its domain. The soft
28413whispering voice continued its rhythmic murmur, something oppressed
28414him and stretched out, and the strange face was before him. Prince
28415Andrew collected all his strength in an effort to recover his
28416senses, he moved a little, and suddenly there was a ringing in his
28417ears, a dimness in his eyes, and like a man plunged into water he lost
28418consciousness. When he came to himself, Natasha, that same living
28419Natasha whom of all people he most longed to love with this new pure
28420divine love that had been revealed to him, was kneeling before him. He
28421realized that it was the real living Natasha, and he was not surprised
28422but quietly happy. Natasha, motionless on her knees (she was unable to
28423stir), with frightened eyes riveted on him, was restraining her
28424sobs. Her face was pale and rigid. Only in the lower part of it
28425something quivered.
28426
28427Prince Andrew sighed with relief, smiled, and held out his hand.
28428
28429"You?" he said. "How fortunate!"
28430
28431With a rapid but careful movement Natasha drew nearer to him on
28432her knees and, taking his hand carefully, bent her face over it and
28433began kissing it, just touching it lightly with her lips.
28434
28435"Forgive me!" she whispered, raising her head and glancing at him.
28436"Forgive me!"
28437
28438"I love you," said Prince Andrew.
28439
28440"Forgive...!"
28441
28442"Forgive what?" he asked.
28443
28444"Forgive me for what I ha-ve do-ne!" faltered Natasha in a
28445scarcely audible, broken whisper, and began kissing his hand more
28446rapidly, just touching it with her lips.
28447
28448"I love you more, better than before," said Prince Andrew, lifting
28449her face with his hand so as to look into her eyes.
28450
28451Those eyes, filled with happy tears, gazed at him timidly,
28452compassionately, and with joyous love. Natasha's thin pale face,
28453with its swollen lips, was more than plain--it was dreadful. But
28454Prince Andrew did not see that, he saw her shining eyes which were
28455beautiful. They heard the sound of voices behind them.
28456
28457Peter the valet, who was now wide awake, had roused the doctor.
28458Timokhin, who had not slept at all because of the pain in his leg, had
28459long been watching all that was going on, carefully covering his
28460bare body with the sheet as he huddled up on his bench.
28461
28462"What's this?" said the doctor, rising from his bed. "Please go
28463away, madam!"
28464
28465At that moment a maid sent by the countess, who had noticed her
28466daughter's absence, knocked at the door.
28467
28468Like a somnambulist aroused from her sleep Natasha went out of the
28469room and, returning to her hut, fell sobbing on her bed.
28470
28471
28472From that time, during all the rest of the Rostovs' journey, at
28473every halting place and wherever they spent a night, Natasha never
28474left the wounded Bolkonski, and the doctor had to admit that he had
28475not expected from a young girl either such firmness or such skill in
28476nursing a wounded man.
28477
28478Dreadful as the countess imagined it would be should Prince Andrew
28479die in her daughter's arms during the journey--as, judging by what the
28480doctor said, it seemed might easily happen--she could not oppose
28481Natasha. Though with the intimacy now established between the
28482wounded man and Natasha the thought occurred that should he recover
28483their former engagement would be renewed, no one--least of all Natasha
28484and Prince Andrew--spoke of this: the unsettled question of life and
28485death, which hung not only over Bolkonski but over all Russia, shut
28486out all other considerations.
28487
28488
28489
28490
28491
28492CHAPTER XXXIII
28493
28494
28495On the third of September Pierre awoke late. His head was aching,
28496the clothes in which he had slept without undressing felt
28497uncomfortable on his body, and his mind had a dim consciousness of
28498something shameful he had done the day before. That something shameful
28499was his yesterday's conversation with Captain Ramballe.
28500
28501It was eleven by the clock, but it seemed peculiarly dark out of
28502doors. Pierre rose, rubbed his eyes, and seeing the pistol with an
28503engraved stock which Gerasim had replaced on the writing table, he
28504remembered where he was and what lay before him that very day.
28505
28506"Am I not too late?" he thought. "No, probably he won't make his
28507entry into Moscow before noon."
28508
28509Pierre did not allow himself to reflect on what lay before him,
28510but hastened to act.
28511
28512After arranging his clothes, he took the pistol and was about to
28513go out. But it then occurred to him for the first time that he
28514certainly could not carry the weapon in his hand through the
28515streets. It was difficult to hide such a big pistol even under his
28516wide coat. He could not carry it unnoticed in his belt or under his
28517arm. Besides, it had been discharged, and he had not had time to
28518reload it. "No matter, dagger will do," he said to himself, though
28519when planning his design he had more than once come to the
28520conclusion that the chief mistake made by the student in 1809 had been
28521to try to kill Napoleon with a dagger. But as his chief aim
28522consisted not in carrying out his design, but in proving to himself
28523that he would not abandon his intention and was doing all he could
28524to achieve it, Pierre hastily took the blunt jagged dagger in a
28525green sheath which he had bought at the Sukharev market with the
28526pistol, and hid it under his waistcoat.
28527
28528Having tied a girdle over his coat and pulled his cap low on his
28529head, Pierre went down the corridor, trying to avoid making a noise or
28530meeting the captain, and passed out into the street.
28531
28532The conflagration, at which he had looked with so much
28533indifference the evening before, had greatly increased during the
28534night. Moscow was on fire in several places. The buildings in Carriage
28535Row, across the river, in the Bazaar and the Povarskoy, as well as the
28536barges on the Moskva River and the timber yards by the Dorogomilov
28537Bridge, were all ablaze.
28538
28539Pierre's way led through side streets to the Povarskoy and from
28540there to the church of St. Nicholas on the Arbat, where he had long
28541before decided that the deed should should be done. The gates of
28542most of the houses were locked and the shutters up. The streets and
28543lanes were deserted. The air was full of smoke and the smell of
28544burning. Now and then he met Russians with anxious and timid faces,
28545and Frenchmen with an air not of the city but of the camp, walking
28546in the middle of the streets. Both the Russians and the French
28547looked at Pierre with surprise. Besides his height and stoutness,
28548and the strange morose look of suffering in his face and whole figure,
28549the Russians stared at Pierre because they could not make out to
28550what class he could belong. The French followed him with
28551astonishment in their eyes chiefly because Pierre, unlike all the
28552other Russians who gazed at the French with fear and curiosity, paid
28553no attention to them. At the gate of one house three Frenchmen, who
28554were explaining something to some Russians who did not understand
28555them, stopped Pierre asking if he did not know French.
28556
28557Pierre shook his head and went on. In another side street a sentinel
28558standing beside a green caisson shouted at him, but only when the
28559shout was threateningly repeated and he heard the click of the man's
28560musket as he raised it did Pierre understand that he had to pass on
28561the other side of the street. He heard nothing and saw nothing of what
28562went on around him. He carried his resolution within himself in terror
28563and haste, like something dreadful and alien to him, for, after the
28564previous night's experience, he was afraid of losing it. But he was
28565not destined to bring his mood safely to his destination. And even had
28566he not been hindered by anything on the way, his intention could not
28567now have been carried out, for Napoleon had passed the Arbat more than
28568four hours previously on his way from the Dorogomilov suburb to the
28569Kremlin, and was now sitting in a very gloomy frame of mind in a royal
28570study in the Kremlin, giving detailed and exact orders as to
28571measures to be taken immediately to extinguish the fire, to prevent
28572looting, and to reassure the inhabitants. But Pierre did not know
28573this; he was entirely absorbed in what lay before him, and was
28574tortured--as those are who obstinately undertake a task that is
28575impossible for them not because of its difficulty but because of its
28576incompatibility with their natures--by the fear of weakening at the
28577decisive moment and so losing his self-esteem.
28578
28579Though he heard and saw nothing around him he found his way by
28580instinct and did not go wrong in the side streets that led to the
28581Povarskoy.
28582
28583As Pierre approached that street the smoke became denser and denser-
28584he even felt the heat of the fire. Occasionally curly tongues of flame
28585rose from under the roofs of the houses. He met more people in the
28586streets and they were more excited. But Pierre, though he felt that
28587something unusual was happening around him, did not realize that he
28588was approaching the fire. As he was going along a foot path across a
28589wide-open space adjoining the Povarskoy on one side and the gardens of
28590Prince Gruzinski's house on the other, Pierre suddenly heard the
28591desperate weeping of a woman close to him. He stopped as if
28592awakening from a dream and lifted his head.
28593
28594By the side of the path, on the dusty dry grass, all sorts of
28595household goods lay in a heap: featherbeds, a samovar, icons, and
28596trunks. On the ground, beside the trunks, sat a thin woman no longer
28597young, with long, prominent upper teeth, and wearing a black cloak and
28598cap. This woman, swaying to and fro and muttering something, was
28599choking with sobs. Two girls of about ten and twelve, dressed in dirty
28600short frocks and cloaks, were staring at their mother with a look of
28601stupefaction on their pale frightened faces. The youngest child, a boy
28602of about seven, who wore an overcoat and an immense cap evidently
28603not his own, was crying in his old nurse's arms. A dirty, barefooted
28604maid was sitting on a trunk, and, having undone her pale-colored
28605plait, was pulling it straight and sniffing at her singed hair. The
28606woman's husband, a short, round-shouldered man in the undress
28607uniform of a civilian official, with sausage-shaped whiskers and
28608showing under his square-set cap the hair smoothly brushed forward
28609over his temples, with expressionless face was moving the trunks,
28610which were placed one on another, and was dragging some garments
28611from under them.
28612
28613As soon as she saw Pierre, the woman almost threw herself at his
28614feet.
28615
28616"Dear people, good Christians, save me, help me, dear friends...
28617help us, somebody," she muttered between her sobs. "My girl... My
28618daughter! My youngest daughter is left behind. She's burned! Ooh!
28619Was it for this I nursed you.... Ooh!"
28620
28621"Don't, Mary Nikolievna!" said her husband to her in a low voice,
28622evidently only to justify himself before the stranger. "Sister must
28623have taken her, or else where can she be?" he added.
28624
28625"Monster! Villain!" shouted the woman angrily, suddenly ceasing to
28626weep. "You have no heart, you don't feel for your own child! Another
28627man would have rescued her from the fire. But this is a monster and
28628neither a man nor a father! You, honored sir, are a noble man," she
28629went on, addressing Pierre rapidly between her sobs. "The fire broke
28630out alongside, and blew our way, the maid called out 'Fire!' and we
28631rushed to collect our things. We ran out just as we were.... This is
28632what we have brought away.... The icons, and my dowry bed, all the
28633rest is lost. We seized the children. But not Katie! Ooh! O
28634Lord!..." and again she began to sob. "My child, my dear one!
28635Burned, burned!"
28636
28637"But where was she left?" asked Pierre.
28638
28639From the expression of his animated face the woman saw that this man
28640might help her.
28641
28642"Oh, dear sir!" she cried, seizing him by the legs. "My
28643benefactor, set my heart at ease.... Aniska, go, you horrid girl, show
28644him the way!" she cried to the maid, angrily opening her mouth and
28645still farther exposing her long teeth.
28646
28647"Show me the way, show me, I... I'll do it," gasped Pierre rapidly.
28648
28649The dirty maidservant stepped from behind the trunk, put up her
28650plait, sighed, and went on her short, bare feet along the path. Pierre
28651felt as if he had come back to life after a heavy swoon. He held his
28652head higher, his eyes shone with the light of life, and with swift
28653steps he followed the maid, overtook her, and came out on the
28654Povarskoy. The whole street was full of clouds of black smoke. Tongues
28655of flame here and there broke through that cloud. A great number of
28656people crowded in front of the conflagration. In the middle of the
28657street stood a French general saying something to those around him.
28658Pierre, accompanied by the maid, was advancing to the spot where the
28659general stood, but the French soldiers stopped him.
28660
28661"On ne passe pas!"* cried a voice.
28662
28663
28664*"You can't pass!
28665
28666
28667"This way, uncle," cried the girl. "We'll pass through the side
28668street, by the Nikulins'!"
28669
28670Pierre turned back, giving a spring now and then to keep up with
28671her. She ran across the street, turned down a side street to the left,
28672and, passing three houses, turned into a yard on the right.
28673
28674"It's here, close by," said she and, running across the yard, opened
28675a gate in a wooden fence and, stopping, pointed out to him a small
28676wooden wing of the house, which was burning brightly and fiercely. One
28677of its sides had fallen in, another was on fire, and bright flames
28678issued from the openings of the windows and from under the roof.
28679
28680As Pierre passed through the fence gate, he was enveloped by hot air
28681and involuntarily stopped.
28682
28683"Which is it? Which is your house?" he asked.
28684
28685"Ooh!" wailed the girl, pointing to the wing. "That's it, that was
28686our lodging. You've burned to death, our treasure, Katie, my
28687precious little missy! Ooh!" lamented Aniska, who at the sight of
28688the fire felt that she too must give expression to her feelings.
28689
28690Pierre rushed to the wing, but the heat was so great that he
28691involuntarily passed round in a curve and came upon the large house
28692that was as yet burning only at one end, just below the roof, and
28693around which swarmed a crowd of Frenchmen. At first Pierre did not
28694realize what these men, who were dragging something out, were about;
28695but seeing before him a Frenchman hitting a peasant with a blunt saber
28696and trying to take from him a fox-fur coat, he vaguely understood that
28697looting was going on there, but he had no time to dwell on that idea.
28698
28699The sounds of crackling and the din of falling walls and ceilings,
28700the whistle and hiss of the flames, the excited shouts of the
28701people, and the sight of the swaying smoke, now gathering into thick
28702black clouds and now soaring up with glittering sparks, with here
28703and there dense sheaves of flame (now red and now like golden fish
28704scales creeping along the walls), and the heat and smoke and
28705rapidity of motion, produced on Pierre the usual animating effects
28706of a conflagration. It had a peculiarly strong effect on him because
28707at the sight of the fire he felt himself suddenly freed from the ideas
28708that had weighed him down. He felt young, bright, adroit, and
28709resolute. He ran round to the other side of the lodge and was about to
28710dash into that part of it which was still standing, when just above
28711his head he heard several voices shouting and then a cracking sound
28712and the ring of something heavy falling close beside him.
28713
28714Pierre looked up and saw at a window of the large house some
28715Frenchmen who had just thrown out the drawer of a chest, filled with
28716metal articles. Other French soldiers standing below went up to the
28717drawer.
28718
28719"What does this fellow want?" shouted one of them referring to
28720Pierre.
28721
28722"There's a child in that house. Haven't you seen a child?" cried
28723Pierre.
28724
28725"What's he talking about? Get along!" said several voices, and one
28726of the soldiers, evidently afraid that Pierre might want to take
28727from them some of the plate and bronzes that were in the drawer, moved
28728threateningly toward him.
28729
28730"A child?" shouted a Frenchman from above. "I did hear something
28731squealing in the garden. Perhaps it's his brat that the fellow is
28732looking for. After all, one must be human, you know...."
28733
28734"Where is it? Where?" said Pierre.
28735
28736"There! There!" shouted the Frenchman at the window, pointing to the
28737garden at the back of the house. "Wait a bit--I'm coming down."
28738
28739And a minute or two later the Frenchman, a black-eyed fellow with
28740a spot on his cheek, in shirt sleeves, really did jump out of a window
28741on the ground floor, and clapping Pierre on the shoulder ran with
28742him into the garden.
28743
28744"Hurry up, you others!" he called out to his comrades. "It's getting
28745hot."
28746
28747When they reached a gravel path behind the house the Frenchman
28748pulled Pierre by the arm and pointed to a round, graveled space
28749where a three-year-old girl in a pink dress was lying under a seat.
28750
28751"There is your child! Oh, a girl, so much the better!" said the
28752Frenchman. "Good-by, Fatty. We must be human, we are all mortal you
28753know!" and the Frenchman with the spot on his cheek ran back to his
28754comrades.
28755
28756Breathless with joy, Pierre ran to the little girl and was going
28757to take her in his arms. But seeing a stranger the sickly,
28758scrofulous-looking child, unattractively like her mother, began to
28759yell and run away. Pierre, however, seized her and lifted her in his
28760arms. She screamed desperately and angrily and tried with her little
28761hands to pull Pierre's hands away and to bite them with her slobbering
28762mouth. Pierre was seized by a sense of horror and repulsion such as he
28763had experienced when touching some nasty little animal. But he made an
28764effort not to throw the child down and ran with her to the large
28765house. It was now, however, impossible to get back the way he had
28766come; the maid, Aniska, was no longer there, and Pierre with a feeling
28767of pity and disgust pressed the wet, painfully sobbing child to
28768himself as tenderly as he could and ran with her through the garden
28769seeking another way out.
28770
28771
28772
28773
28774
28775CHAPTER XXXIV
28776
28777
28778Having run through different yards and side streets, Pierre got back
28779with his little burden to the Gruzinski garden at the corner of the
28780Povarskoy. He did not at first recognize the place from which he had
28781set out to look for the child, so crowded was it now with people and
28782goods that had been dragged out of the houses. Besides Russian
28783families who had taken refuge here from the fire with their
28784belongings, there were several French soldiers in a variety of
28785clothing. Pierre took no notice of them. He hurried to find the family
28786of that civil servant in order to restore the daughter to her mother
28787and go to save someone else. Pierre felt that he had still much to
28788do and to do quickly. Glowing with the heat and from running, he
28789felt at that moment more strongly than ever the sense of youth,
28790animation, and determination that had come on him when he ran to
28791save the child. She had now become quiet and, clinging with her little
28792hands to Pierre's coat, sat on his arm gazing about her like some
28793little wild animal. He glanced at her occasionally with a slight
28794smile. He fancied he saw something pathetically innocent in that
28795frightened, sickly little face.
28796
28797He did not find the civil servant or his wife where he had left
28798them. He walked among the crowd with rapid steps, scanning the various
28799faces he met. Involuntarily he noticed a Georgian or Armenian family
28800consisting of a very handsome old man of Oriental type, wearing a new,
28801cloth-covered, sheepskin coat and new boots, an old woman of similar
28802type, and a young woman. That very young woman seemed to Pierre the
28803perfection of Oriental beauty, with her sharply outlined, arched,
28804black eyebrows and the extraordinarily soft, bright color of her long,
28805beautiful, expressionless face. Amid the scattered property and the
28806crowd on the open space, she, in her rich satin cloak with a bright
28807lilac shawl on her head, suggested a delicate exotic plant thrown
28808out onto the snow. She was sitting on some bundles a little behind the
28809old woman, and looked from under her long lashes with motionless,
28810large, almond-shaped eyes at the ground before her. Evidently she
28811was aware of her beauty and fearful because of it. Her face struck
28812Pierre and, hurrying along by the fence, he turned several times to
28813look at her. When he had reached the fence, still without finding
28814those he sought, he stopped and looked about him.
28815
28816With the child in his arms his figure was now more conspicuous
28817than before, and a group of Russians, both men and women, gathered
28818about him.
28819
28820"Have you lost anyone, my dear fellow? You're of the gentry
28821yourself, aren't you? Whose child is it?" they asked him.
28822
28823Pierre replied that the child belonged to a woman in a black coat
28824who had been sitting there with her other children, and he asked
28825whether anyone knew where she had gone.
28826
28827"Why, that must be the Anferovs," said an old deacon, addressing a
28828pockmarked peasant woman. "Lord have mercy, Lord have mercy!" he added
28829in his customary bass.
28830
28831"The Anferovs? No," said the woman. "They left in the morning.
28832That must be either Mary Nikolievna's or the Ivanovs'!"
28833
28834"He says 'a woman,' and Mary Nikolievna is a lady," remarked a house
28835serf.
28836
28837"Do you know her? She's thin, with long teeth," said Pierre.
28838
28839"That's Mary Nikolievna! They went inside the garden when these
28840wolves swooped down," said the woman, pointing to the French soldiers.
28841
28842"O Lord, have mercy!" added the deacon.
28843
28844"Go over that way, they're there. It's she! She kept on lamenting
28845and crying," continued the woman. "It's she. Here, this way!"
28846
28847But Pierre was not listening to the woman. He had for some seconds
28848been intently watching what was going on a few steps away. He was
28849looking at the Armenian family and at two French soldiers who had gone
28850up to them. One of these, a nimble little man, was wearing a blue coat
28851tied round the waist with a rope. He had a nightcap on his head and
28852his feet were bare. The other, whose appearance particularly struck
28853Pierre, was a long, lank, round-shouldered, fair-haired man, slow in
28854his movements and with an idiotic expression of face. He wore a
28855woman's loose gown of frieze, blue trousers, and large torn Hessian
28856boots. The little barefooted Frenchman in the blue coat went up to the
28857Armenians and, saying something, immediately seized the old man by his
28858legs and the old man at once began pulling off his boots. The other in
28859the frieze gown stopped in front of the beautiful Armenian girl and
28860with his hands in his pockets stood staring at her, motionless and
28861silent.
28862
28863"Here, take the child!" said Pierre peremptorily and hurriedly to
28864the woman, handing the little girl to her. "Give her back to them,
28865give her back!" he almost shouted, putting the child, who began
28866screaming, on the ground, and again looking at the Frenchman and the
28867Armenian family.
28868
28869The old man was already sitting barefoot. The little Frenchman had
28870secured his second boot and was slapping one boot against the other.
28871The old man was saying something in a voice broken by sobs, but Pierre
28872caught but a glimpse of this, his whole attention was directed to
28873the Frenchman in the frieze gown who meanwhile, swaying slowly from
28874side to side, had drawn nearer to the young woman and taking his hands
28875from his pockets had seized her by the neck.
28876
28877The beautiful Armenian still sat motionless and in the same
28878attitude, with her long lashes drooping as if she did not see or
28879feel what the soldier was doing to her.
28880
28881While Pierre was running the few steps that separated him from the
28882Frenchman, the tall marauder in the frieze gown was already tearing
28883from her neck the necklace the young Armenian was wearing, and the
28884young woman, clutching at her neck, screamed piercingly.
28885
28886"Let that woman alone!" exclaimed Pierre hoarsely in a furious
28887voice, seizing the soldier by his round shoulders and throwing him
28888aside.
28889
28890The soldier fell, got up, and ran away. But his comrade, throwing
28891down the boots and drawing his sword, moved threateningly toward
28892Pierre.
28893
28894"Voyons, Pas de betises!"* he cried.
28895
28896
28897*"Look here, no nonsense!"
28898
28899
28900Pierre was in such a transport of rage that he remembered nothing
28901and his strength increased tenfold. He rushed at the barefooted
28902Frenchman and, before the latter had time to draw his sword, knocked
28903him off his feet and hammered him with his fists. Shouts of approval
28904were heard from the crowd around, and at the same moment a mounted
28905patrol of French Uhlans appeared from round the corner. The Uhlans
28906came up at a trot to Pierre and the Frenchman and surrounded them.
28907Pierre remembered nothing of what happened after that. He only
28908remembered beating someone and being beaten and finally feeling that
28909his hands were bound and that a crowd of French soldiers stood
28910around him and were searching him.
28911
28912"Lieutenant, he has a dagger," were the first words Pierre
28913understood.
28914
28915"Ah, a weapon?" said the officer and turned to the barefooted
28916soldier who had been arrested with Pierre. "All right, you can tell
28917all about it at the court-martial." Then he turned to Pierre. "Do
28918you speak French?"
28919
28920Pierre looked around him with bloodshot eyes and did not reply.
28921His face probably looked very terrible, for the officer said something
28922in a whisper and four more Uhlans left the ranks and placed themselves
28923on both sides of Pierre.
28924
28925"Do you speak French?" the officer asked again, keeping at a
28926distance from Pierre. "Call the interpreter."
28927
28928A little man in Russian civilian clothes rode out from the ranks,
28929and by his clothes and manner of speaking Pierre at once knew him to
28930be a French salesman from one of the Moscow shops.
28931
28932"He does not look like a common man," said the interpreter, after
28933a searching look at Pierre.
28934
28935"Ah, he looks very much like an incendiary," remarked the officer.
28936"And ask him who he is," he added.
28937
28938"Who are you?" asked the interpreter in poor Russian. "You must
28939answer the chief."
28940
28941"I will not tell you who I am. I am your prisoner--take me!"
28942Pierre suddenly replied in French.
28943
28944"Ah, ah!" muttered the officer with a frown. "Well then, march!"
28945
28946A crowd had collected round the Uhlans. Nearest to Pierre stood
28947the pockmarked peasant woman with the little girl, and when the patrol
28948started she moved forward.
28949
28950"Where are they taking you to, you poor dear?" said she. "And the
28951little girl, the little girl, what am I to do with her if she's not
28952theirs?" said the woman.
28953
28954"What does that woman want?" asked the officer.
28955
28956Pierre was as if intoxicated. His elation increased at the sight
28957of the little girl he had saved.
28958
28959"What does she want?" he murmured. "She is bringing me my daughter
28960whom I have just saved from the flames," said he. "Good-by!" And
28961without knowing how this aimless lie had escaped him, he went along
28962with resolute and triumphant steps between the French soldiers.
28963
28964The French patrol was one of those sent out through the various
28965streets of Moscow by Durosnel's order to put a stop to the pillage,
28966and especially to catch the incendiaries who, according to the general
28967opinion which had that day originated among the higher French
28968officers, were the cause of the conflagrations. After marching through
28969a number of streets the patrol arrested five more Russian suspects:
28970a small shopkeeper, two seminary students, a peasant, and a house
28971serf, besides several looters. But of all these various suspected
28972characters, Pierre was considered to be the most suspicious of all.
28973When they had all been brought for the night to a large house on the
28974Zubov Rampart that was being used as a guardhouse, Pierre was placed
28975apart under strict guard.
28976
28977
28978
28979
28980
28981BOOK TWELVE: 1812
28982
28983
28984
28985
28986
28987CHAPTER I
28988
28989
28990In Petersburg at that time a complicated struggle was being
28991carried on with greater heat than ever in the highest circles, between
28992the parties of Rumyantsev, the French, Marya Fedorovna, the Tsarevich,
28993and others, drowned as usual by the buzzing of the court drones. But
28994the calm, luxurious life of Petersburg, concerned only about
28995phantoms and reflections of real life, went on in its old way and made
28996it hard, except by a great effort, to realize the danger and the
28997difficult position of the Russian people. There were the same
28998receptions and balls, the same French theater, the same court
28999interests and service interests and intrigues as usual. Only in the
29000very highest circles were attempts made to keep in mind the
29001difficulties of the actual position. Stories were whispered of how
29002differently the two Empresses behaved in these difficult
29003circumstances. The Empress Marya, concerned for the welfare of the
29004charitable and educational institutions under her patronage, had given
29005directions that they should all be removed to Kazan, and the things
29006belonging to these institutions had already been packed up. The
29007Empress Elisabeth, however, when asked what instructions she would
29008be pleased to give--with her characteristic Russian patriotism had
29009replied that she could give no directions about state institutions for
29010that was the affair of the sovereign, but as far as she personally was
29011concerned she would be the last to quit Petersburg.
29012
29013At Anna Pavlovna's on the twenty-sixth of August, the very day of
29014the battle of Borodino, there was a soiree, the chief feature of which
29015was to be the reading of a letter from His Lordship the Bishop when
29016sending the Emperor an icon of the Venerable Sergius. It was
29017regarded as a model of ecclesiastical, patriotic eloquence. Prince
29018Vasili himself, famed for his elocution, was to read it. (He used to
29019read at the Empress'.) The art of his reading was supposed to lie in
29020rolling out the words, quite independently of their meaning, in a loud
29021and singsong voice alternating between a despairing wail and a
29022tender murmur, so that the wail fell quite at random on one word and
29023the murmur on another. This reading, as was always the case at Anna
29024Pavlovna's soirees, had a political significance. That evening she
29025expected several important personages who had to be made ashamed of
29026their visits to the French theater and aroused to a patriotic
29027temper. A good many people had already arrived, but Anna Pavlovna, not
29028yet seeing all those whom she wanted in her drawing room, did not
29029let the reading begin but wound up the springs of a general
29030conversation.
29031
29032The news of the day in Petersburg was the illness of Countess
29033Bezukhova. She had fallen ill unexpectedly a few days previously,
29034had missed several gatherings of which she was usually ornament, and
29035was said to be receiving no one, and instead of the celebrated
29036Petersburg doctors who usually attended her had entrusted herself to
29037some Italian doctor who was treating her in some new and unusual way.
29038
29039They all knew very well that the enchanting countess' illness
29040arose from an inconvenience resulting from marrying two husbands at
29041the same time, and that the Italian's cure consisted in removing
29042such inconvenience; but in Anna Pavlovna's presence no one dared to
29043think of this or even appear to know it.
29044
29045"They say the poor countess is very ill. The doctor says it is
29046angina pectoris."
29047
29048"Angina? Oh, that's a terrible illness!"
29049
29050"They say that the rivals are reconciled, thanks to the angina..."
29051and the word angina was repeated with great satisfaction.
29052
29053"The count is pathetic, they say. He cried like a child when the
29054doctor told him the case was dangerous."
29055
29056"Oh, it would be a terrible loss, she is an enchanting woman."
29057
29058"You are speaking of the poor countess?" said Anna Pavlovna,
29059coming up just then. "I sent to ask for news, and hear that she is a
29060little better. Oh, she is certainly the most charming woman in the
29061world," she went on, with a smile at her own enthusiasm. "We belong to
29062different camps, but that does not prevent my esteeming her as she
29063deserves. She is very unfortunate!" added Anna Pavlovna.
29064
29065Supposing that by these words Anna Pavlovna was somewhat lifting the
29066veil from the secret of the countess' malady, an unwary young man
29067ventured to express surprise that well known doctors had not been
29068called in and that the countess was being attended by a charlatan
29069who might employ dangerous remedies.
29070
29071"Your information maybe better than mine," Anna Pavlovna suddenly
29072and venomously retorted on the inexperienced young man, "but I know on
29073good authority that this doctor is a very learned and able man. He
29074is private physician to the Queen of Spain."
29075
29076And having thus demolished the young man, Anna Pavlovna turned to
29077another group where Bilibin was talking about the Austrians: having
29078wrinkled up his face he was evidently preparing to smooth it out again
29079and utter one of his mots.
29080
29081"I think it is delightful," he said, referring to a diplomatic
29082note that had been sent to Vienna with some Austrian banners
29083captured from the French by Wittgenstein, "the hero of Petropol" as he
29084was then called in Petersburg.
29085
29086"What? What's that?" asked Anna Pavlovna, securing silence for the
29087mot, which she had heard before.
29088
29089And Bilibin repeated the actual words of the diplomatic dispatch,
29090which he had himself composed.
29091
29092"The Emperor returns these Austrian banners," said Bilibin,
29093"friendly banners gone astray and found on a wrong path," and his brow
29094became smooth again.
29095
29096"Charming, charming!" observed Prince Vasili.
29097
29098"The path to Warsaw, perhaps," Prince Hippolyte remarked loudly
29099and unexpectedly. Everybody looked at him, understanding what he
29100meant. Prince Hippolyte himself glanced around with amused surprise.
29101He knew no more than the others what his words meant. During his
29102diplomatic career he had more than once noticed that such utterances
29103were received as very witty, and at every opportunity he uttered in
29104that way the first words that entered his head. "It may turn out
29105very well," he thought, "but if not, they'll know how to arrange
29106matters." And really, during the awkward silence that ensued, that
29107insufficiently patriotic person entered whom Anna Pavlovna had been
29108waiting for and wished to convert, and she, smiling and shaking a
29109finger at Hippolyte, invited Prince Vasili to the table and bringing
29110him two candles and the manuscript begged him to begin. Everyone
29111became silent.
29112
29113
29114"Most Gracious Sovereign and Emperor!" Prince Vasili sternly
29115declaimed, looking round at his audience as if to inquire whether
29116anyone had anything to say to the contrary. But no one said
29117anything. "Moscow, our ancient capital, the New Jerusalem, receives
29118her Christ"--he placed a sudden emphasis on the word her--"as a mother
29119receives her zealous sons into her arms, and through the gathering
29120mists, foreseeing the brilliant glory of thy rule, sings in
29121exultation, 'Hosanna, blessed is he that cometh!'"
29122
29123
29124Prince Vasili pronounced these last words in a tearful voice.
29125
29126Bilibin attentively examined his nails, and many of those present
29127appeared intimidated, as if asking in what they were to blame. Anna
29128Pavlovna whispered the next words in advance, like an old woman
29129muttering the prayer at Communion: "Let the bold and insolent
29130Goliath..." she whispered.
29131
29132Prince Vasili continued.
29133
29134
29135"Let the bold and insolent Goliath from the borders of France
29136encompass the realms of Russia with death-bearing terrors; humble
29137Faith, the sling of the Russian David, shall suddenly smite his head
29138in his blood-thirsty pride. This icon of the Venerable Sergius, the
29139servant of God and zealous champion of old of our country's weal, is
29140offered to Your Imperial Majesty. I grieve that my waning strength
29141prevents rejoicing in the sight of your most gracious presence. I
29142raise fervent prayers to Heaven that the Almighty may exalt the race
29143of the just, and mercifully fulfill the desires of Your Majesty."
29144
29145
29146"What force! What a style!" was uttered in approval both of reader
29147and of author.
29148
29149Animated by that address Anna Pavlovna's guests talked for a long
29150time of the state of the fatherland and offered various conjectures as
29151to the result of the battle to be fought in a few days.
29152
29153"You will see," said Anna Pavlovna, "that tomorrow, on the Emperor's
29154birthday, we shall receive news. I have a favorable presentiment!"
29155
29156
29157
29158
29159
29160CHAPTER II
29161
29162
29163Anna Pavlovna's presentiment was in fact fulfilled. Next day
29164during the service at the palace church in honor of the Emperor's
29165birthday, Prince Volkonski was called out of the church and received a
29166dispatch from Prince Kutuzov. It was Kutuzov's report, written from
29167Tatarinova on the day of the battle. Kutuzov wrote that the Russians
29168had not retreated a step, that the French losses were much heavier
29169than ours, and that he was writing in haste from the field of battle
29170before collecting full information. It followed that there must have
29171been a victory. And at once, without leaving the church, thanks were
29172rendered to the Creator for His help and for the victory.
29173
29174Anna Pavlovna's presentiment was justified, and all that morning a
29175joyously festive mood reigned in the city. Everyone believed the
29176victory to have been complete, and some even spoke of Napoleon's
29177having been captured, of his deposition, and of the choice of a new
29178ruler for France.
29179
29180It is very difficult for events to be reflected in their real
29181strength and completeness amid the conditions of court life and far
29182from the scene of action. General events involuntarily group
29183themselves around some particular incident. So now the courtiers'
29184pleasure was based as much on the fact that the news had arrived on
29185the Emperor's birthday as on the fact of the victory itself. It was
29186like a successfully arranged surprise. Mention was made in Kutuzov's
29187report of the Russian losses, among which figured the names of
29188Tuchkov, Bagration, and Kutaysov. In the Petersburg world this sad
29189side of the affair again involuntarily centered round a single
29190incident: Kutaysov's death. Everybody knew him, the Emperor liked him,
29191and he was young and interesting. That day everyone met with the
29192words:
29193
29194"What a wonderful coincidence! Just during the service. But what a
29195loss Kutaysov is! How sorry I am!"
29196
29197"What did I tell about Kutuzov?" Prince Vasili now said with a
29198prophet's pride. "I always said he was the only man capable of
29199defeating Napoleon."
29200
29201But next day no news arrived from the army and the public mood
29202grew anxious. The courtiers suffered because of the suffering the
29203suspense occasioned the Emperor.
29204
29205"Fancy the Emperor's position!" said they, and instead of
29206extolling Kutuzov as they had done the day before, they condemned
29207him as the cause of the Emperor's anxiety. That day Prince Vasili no
29208longer boasted of his protege Kutuzov, but remained silent when the
29209commander in chief was mentioned. Moreover, toward evening, as if
29210everything conspired to make Petersburg society anxious and uneasy,
29211a terrible piece of news was added. Countess Helene Bezukhova had
29212suddenly died of that terrible malady it had been so agreeable to
29213mention. Officially, at large gatherings, everyone said that
29214Countess Bezukhova had died of a terrible attack of angina pectoris,
29215but in intimate circles details were mentioned of how the private
29216physician of the Queen of Spain had prescribed small doses of a
29217certain drug to produce a certain effect; but Helene, tortured by
29218the fact that the old count suspected her and that her husband to whom
29219she had written (that wretched, profligate Pierre) had not replied,
29220had suddenly taken a very large dose of the drug, and had died in
29221agony before assistance could be rendered her. It was said that Prince
29222Vasili and the old count had turned upon the Italian, but the latter
29223had produced such letters from the unfortunate deceased that they
29224had immediately let the matter drop.
29225
29226Talk in general centered round three melancholy facts: the Emperor's
29227lack of news, the loss of Kutuzov, and the death of Helene.
29228
29229On the third day after Kutuzov's report a country gentleman
29230arrived from Moscow, and news of the surrender of Moscow to the French
29231spread through the whole town. This was terrible! What a position
29232for the Emperor to be in! Kutuzov was a traitor, and Prince Vasili
29233during the visits of condolence paid to him on the occasion of his
29234daughter's death said of Kutuzov, whom he had formerly praised (it was
29235excusable for him in his grief to forget what he had said), that it
29236was impossible to expect anything else from a blind and depraved old
29237man.
29238
29239"I only wonder that the fate of Russia could have been entrusted
29240to such a man."
29241
29242As long as this news remained unofficial it was possible to doubt
29243it, but the next day the following communication was received from
29244Count Rostopchin:
29245
29246
29247Prince Kutuzov's adjutant has brought me a letter in which he
29248demands police officers to guide the army to the Ryazan road. He
29249writes that he is regretfully abandoning Moscow. Sire! Kutuzov's
29250action decides the fate of the capital and of your empire! Russia will
29251shudder to learn of the abandonment of the city in which her greatness
29252is centered and in which lie the ashes of your ancestors! I shall
29253follow the army. I have had everything removed, and it only remains
29254for me to weep over the fate of my fatherland.
29255
29256
29257On receiving this dispatch the Emperor sent Prince Volkonski to
29258Kutuzov with the following rescript:
29259
29260
29261Prince Michael Ilarionovich! Since the twenty-ninth of August I have
29262received no communication from you, yet on the first of September I
29263received from the commander in chief of Moscow, via Yaroslavl, the sad
29264news that you, with the army, have decided to abandon Moscow. You
29265can yourself imagine the effect this news has had on me, and your
29266silence increases my astonishment. I am sending this by
29267Adjutant-General Prince Volkonski, to hear from you the situation of
29268the army and the reasons that have induced you to take this melancholy
29269decision.
29270
29271
29272
29273
29274
29275CHAPTER III
29276
29277
29278Nine days after the abandonment of Moscow, a messenger from
29279Kutuzov reached Petersburg with the official announcement of that
29280event. This messenger was Michaud, a Frenchman who did not know
29281Russian, but who was quoique etranger, russe de coeur et d'ame,* as he
29282said of himself.
29283
29284
29285*Though a foreigner, Russian in heart and soul.
29286
29287
29288The Emperor at once received this messenger in his study at the
29289palace on Stone Island. Michaud, who had never seen Moscow before
29290the campaign and who did not know Russian, yet felt deeply moved (as
29291he wrote) when he appeared before notre tres gracieux souverain*
29292with the news of the burning of Moscow, dont les flammes eclairaient
29293sa route.*[2]
29294
29295
29296*Our most gracious sovereign.
29297
29298*[2] Whose flames illumined his route.
29299
29300
29301Though the source of M. Michaud's chagrin must have been different
29302from that which caused Russians to grieve, he had such a sad face when
29303shown into the Emperor's study that the latter at once asked:
29304
29305"Have you brought me sad news, Colonel?"
29306
29307"Very sad, sire," replied Michaud, lowering his eyes with a sigh.
29308"The abandonment of Moscow."
29309
29310"Have they surrendered my ancient capital without a battle?" asked
29311the Emperor quickly, his face suddenly flushing.
29312
29313Michaud respectfully delivered the message Kutuzov had entrusted
29314to him, which was that it had been impossible to fight before
29315Moscow, and that as the only remaining choice was between losing the
29316army as well as Moscow, or losing Moscow alone, the field marshal
29317had to choose the latter.
29318
29319The Emperor listened in silence, not looking at Michaud.
29320
29321"Has the enemy entered the city?" he asked.
29322
29323"Yes, sire, and Moscow is now in ashes. I left it all in flames,"
29324replied Michaud in a decided tone, but glancing at the Emperor he
29325was frightened by what he had done.
29326
29327The Emperor began to breathe heavily and rapidly, his lower lip
29328trembled, and tears instantly appeared in his fine blue eyes.
29329
29330But this lasted only a moment. He suddenly frowned, as if blaming
29331himself for his weakness, and raising his head addressed Michaud in
29332a firm voice:
29333
29334"I see, Colonel, from all that is happening, that Providence
29335requires great sacrifices of us... I am ready to submit myself in
29336all things to His will; but tell me, Michaud, how did you leave the
29337army when it saw my ancient capital abandoned without a battle? Did
29338you not notice discouragement?..."
29339
29340Seeing that his most gracious ruler was calm once more, Michaud also
29341grew calm, but was not immediately ready to reply to the Emperor's
29342direct and relevant question which required a direct answer.
29343
29344"Sire, will you allow me to speak frankly as befits a loyal
29345soldier?" he asked to gain time.
29346
29347"Colonel, I always require it," replied the Emperor. "Conceal
29348nothing from me, I wish to know absolutely how things are."
29349
29350"Sire!" said Michaud with a subtle, scarcely perceptible smile on
29351his lips, having now prepared a well-phrased reply, "sire, I left
29352the whole army, from its chiefs to the lowest soldier, without
29353exception in desperate and agonized terror..."
29354
29355"How is that?" the Emperor interrupted him, frowning sternly. "Would
29356misfortune make my Russians lose heart?... Never!"
29357
29358Michaud had only waited for this to bring out the phrase he had
29359prepared.
29360
29361"Sire," he said, with respectful playfulness, "they are only
29362afraid lest Your Majesty, in the goodness of your heart, should
29363allow yourself to be persuaded to make peace. They are burning for the
29364combat," declared this representative of the Russian nation, "and to
29365prove to Your Majesty by the sacrifice of their lives how devoted they
29366are...."
29367
29368"Ah!" said the Emperor reassured, and with a kindly gleam in his
29369eyes, he patted Michaud on the shoulder. "You set me at ease,
29370Colonel."
29371
29372He bent his head and was silent for some time.
29373
29374"Well, then, go back to the army," he said, drawing himself up to
29375his full height and addressing Michaud with a gracious and majestic
29376gesture, "and tell our brave men and all my good subjects wherever you
29377go that when I have not a soldier left I shall put myself at the
29378head of my beloved nobility and my good peasants and so use the last
29379resources of my empire. It still offers me more than my enemies
29380suppose," said the Emperor growing more and more animated; "but should
29381it ever be ordained by Divine Providence," he continued, raising to
29382heaven his fine eyes shining with emotion, "that my dynasty should
29383cease to reign on the throne of my ancestors, then after exhausting
29384all the means at my command, I shall let my beard grow to here" (he
29385pointed halfway down his chest) "and go and eat potatoes with the
29386meanest of my peasants, rather than sign the disgrace of my country
29387and of my beloved people whose sacrifices I know how to appreciate."
29388
29389Having uttered these words in an agitated voice the Emperor suddenly
29390turned away as if to hide from Michaud the tears that rose to his
29391eyes, and went to the further end of his study. Having stood there a
29392few moments, he strode back to Michaud and pressed his arm below the
29393elbow with a vigorous movement. The Emperor's mild and handsome face
29394was flushed and his eyes gleamed with resolution and anger.
29395
29396"Colonel Michaud, do not forget what I say to you here, perhaps we
29397may recall it with pleasure someday... Napoleon or I," said the
29398Emperor, touching his breast. "We can no longer both reign together. I
29399have learned to know him, and he will not deceive me any more...."
29400
29401And the Emperor paused, with a frown.
29402
29403When he heard these words and saw the expression of firm
29404resolution in the Emperor's eyes, Michaud--quoique etranger, russe
29405de coeur et d'ame--at that solemn moment felt himself enraptured by
29406all that he had heard (as he used afterwards to say), and gave
29407expression to his own feelings and those of the Russian people whose
29408representative he considered himself to be, in the following words:
29409
29410"Sire!" said he, "Your Majesty is at this moment signing the glory
29411of the nation and the salvation of Europe!"
29412
29413With an inclination of the head the Emperor dismissed him.
29414
29415
29416
29417
29418
29419CHAPTER IV
29420
29421
29422It is natural for us who were not living in those days to imagine
29423that when half Russia had been conquered and the inhabitants were
29424fleeing to distant provinces, and one levy after another was being
29425raised for the defense of the fatherland, all Russians from the
29426greatest to the least were solely engaged in sacrificing themselves,
29427saving their fatherland, or weeping over its downfall. The tales and
29428descriptions of that time without exception speak only of the
29429self-sacrifice, patriotic devotion, despair, grief, and the heroism of
29430the Russians. But it was not really so. It appears so to us because we
29431see only the general historic interest of that time and do not see all
29432the personal human interests that people had. Yet in reality those
29433personal interests of the moment so much transcend the general
29434interests that they always prevent the public interest from being felt
29435or even noticed. Most of the people at that time paid no attention
29436to the general progress of events but were guided only by their
29437private interests, and they were the very people whose activities at
29438that period were most useful.
29439
29440Those who tried to understand the general course of events and to
29441take part in it by self-sacrifice and heroism were the most useless
29442members of society, they saw everything upside down, and all they
29443did for the common good turned out to be useless and foolish--like
29444Pierre's and Mamonov's regiments which looted Russian villages, and
29445the lint the young ladies prepared and that never reached the wounded,
29446and so on. Even those, fond of intellectual talk and of expressing
29447their feelings, who discussed Russia's position at the time
29448involuntarily introduced into their conversation either a shade of
29449pretense and falsehood or useless condemnation and anger directed
29450against people accused of actions no one could possibly be guilty
29451of. In historic events the rule forbidding us to eat of the fruit of
29452the Tree of Knowledge is specially applicable. Only unconscious action
29453bears fruit, and he who plays a part in an historic event never
29454understands its significance. If he tries to realize it his efforts
29455are fruitless.
29456
29457The more closely a man was engaged in the events then taking place
29458in Russia the less did he realize their significance. In Petersburg
29459and in the provinces at a distance from Moscow, ladies, and
29460gentlemen in militia uniforms, wept for Russia and its ancient capital
29461and talked of self-sacrifice and so on; but in the army which
29462retired beyond Moscow there was little talk or thought of Moscow,
29463and when they caught sight of its burned ruins no one swore to be
29464avenged on the French, but they thought about their next pay, their
29465next quarters, of Matreshka the vivandiere, and like matters.
29466
29467As the war had caught him in the service, Nicholas Rostov took a
29468close and prolonged part in the defense of his country, but did so
29469casually, without any aim at self-sacrifice, and he therefore looked
29470at what was going on in Russia without despair and without dismally
29471racking his brains over it. Had he been asked what he thought of the
29472state of Russia, he would have said that it was not his business to
29473think about it, that Kutuzov and others were there for that purpose,
29474but that he had heard that the regiments were to be made up to their
29475full strength, that fighting would probably go on for a long time yet,
29476and that things being so it was quite likely he might be in command of
29477a regiment in a couple of years' time.
29478
29479As he looked at the matter in this way, he learned that he was being
29480sent to Voronezh to buy remounts for his division, not only without
29481regret at being prevented from taking part in the coming battle, but
29482with the greatest pleasure--which he did not conceal and which his
29483comrades fully understood.
29484
29485A few days before the battle of Borodino, Nicholas received the
29486necessary money and warrants, and having sent some hussars on in
29487advance, he set out with post horses for Voronezh.
29488
29489Only a man who has experienced it--that is, has passed some months
29490continuously in an atmosphere of campaigning and war--can understand
29491the delight Nicholas felt when he escaped from the region covered by
29492the army's foraging operations, provision trains, and hospitals. When-
29493free from soldiers, wagons, and the filthy traces of a camp--he saw
29494villages with peasants and peasant women, gentlemen's country
29495houses, fields where cattle were grazing, posthouses with
29496stationmasters asleep in them, he rejoiced as though seeing all this
29497for the first time. What for a long while specially surprised and
29498delighted him were the women, young and healthy, without a dozen
29499officers making up to each of them; women, too, who were pleased and
29500flattered that a passing officer should joke with them.
29501
29502In the highest spirits Nicholas arrived at night at a hotel in
29503Voronezh, ordered things he had long been deprived of in camp, and
29504next day, very clean-shaven and in a full-dress uniform he had not
29505worn for a long time, went to present himself to the authorities.
29506
29507The commander of the militia was a civilian general, an old man
29508who was evidently pleased with his military designation and rank. He
29509received Nicholas brusquely (imagining this to be characteristically
29510military) and questioned him with an important air, as if
29511considering the general progress of affairs and approving and
29512disapproving with full right to do so. Nicholas was in such good
29513spirits that this merely amused him.
29514
29515From the commander of the militia he drove to the governor. The
29516governor was a brisk little man, very simple and affable. He indicated
29517the stud farms at which Nicholas might procure horses, recommended
29518to him a horse dealer in the town and a landowner fourteen miles out
29519of town who had the best horses, and promised to assist him in every
29520way.
29521
29522"You are Count Ilya Rostov's son? My wife was a great friend of your
29523mother's. We are at home on Thursdays--today is Thursday, so please
29524come and see us quite informally," said the governor, taking leave
29525of him.
29526
29527Immediately on leaving the governor's, Nicholas hired post horses
29528and, taking his squadron quartermaster with him, drove at a gallop
29529to the landowner, fourteen miles away, who had the stud. Everything
29530seemed to him pleasant and easy during that first part of his stay
29531in Voronezh and, as usually happens when a man is in a pleasant
29532state of mind, everything went well and easily.
29533
29534The landowner to whom Nicholas went was a bachelor, an old
29535cavalryman, a horse fancier, a sportsman, the possessor of some
29536century-old brandy and some old Hungarian wine, who had a snuggery
29537where he smoked, and who owned some splendid horses.
29538
29539In very few words Nicholas bought seventeen picked stallions for six
29540thousand rubles--to serve, as he said, as samples of his remounts.
29541After dining and taking rather too much of the Hungarian wine,
29542Nicholas--having exchanged kisses with the landowner, with whom he was
29543already on the friendliest terms--galloped back over abominable roads,
29544in the brightest frame of mind, continually urging on the driver so as
29545to be in time for the governor's party.
29546
29547When he had changed, poured water over his head, and scented
29548himself, Nicholas arrived at the governor's rather late, but with
29549the phrase "better late than never" on his lips.
29550
29551It was not a ball, nor had dancing been announced, but everyone knew
29552that Catherine Petrovna would play valses and the ecossaise on the
29553clavichord and that there would be dancing, and so everyone had come
29554as to a ball.
29555
29556Provincial life in 1812 went on very much as usual, but with this
29557difference, that it was livelier in the towns in consequence of the
29558arrival of many wealthy families from Moscow, and as in everything
29559that went on in Russia at that time a special recklessness was
29560noticeable, an "in for a penny, in for a pound--who cares?" spirit,
29561and the inevitable small talk, instead of turning on the weather and
29562mutual acquaintances, now turned on Moscow, the army, and Napoleon.
29563
29564The society gathered together at the governor's was the best in
29565Voronezh.
29566
29567There were a great many ladies and some of Nicholas' Moscow
29568acquaintances, but there were no men who could at all vie with the
29569cavalier of St. George, the hussar remount officer, the good-natured
29570and well-bred Count Rostov. Among the men was an Italian prisoner,
29571an officer of the French army; and Nicholas felt that the presence
29572of that prisoner enhanced his own importance as a Russian hero. The
29573Italian was, as it were, a war trophy. Nicholas felt this, it seemed
29574to him that everyone regarded the Italian in the same light, and he
29575treated him cordially though with dignity and restraint.
29576
29577As soon as Nicholas entered in his hussar uniform, diffusing
29578around him a fragrance of perfume and wine, and had uttered the
29579words "better late than never" and heard them repeated several times
29580by others, people clustered around him; all eyes turned on him, and he
29581felt at once that he had entered into his proper position in the
29582province--that of a universal favorite: a very pleasant position,
29583and intoxicatingly so after his long privations. At posting
29584stations, at inns, and in the landowner's snuggery, maidservants had
29585been flattered by his notice, and here too at the governor's party
29586there were (as it seemed to Nicholas) an inexhaustible number of
29587pretty young women, married and unmarried, impatiently awaiting his
29588notice. The women and girls flirted with him and, from the first
29589day, the people concerned themselves to get this fine young
29590daredevil of an hussar married and settled down. Among these was the
29591governor's wife herself, who welcomed Rostov as a near relative and
29592called him "Nicholas."
29593
29594Catherine Petrovna did actually play valses and the ecossaise, and
29595dancing began in which Nicholas still further captivated the
29596provincial society by his agility. His particularly free manner of
29597dancing even surprised them all. Nicholas was himself rather surprised
29598at the way he danced that evening. He had never danced like that in
29599Moscow and would even have considered such a very free and easy manner
29600improper and in bad form, but here he felt it incumbent on him to
29601astonish them all by something unusual, something they would have to
29602accept as the regular thing in the capital though new to them in the
29603provinces.
29604
29605All the evening Nicholas paid attention to a blue-eyed, plump and
29606pleasing little blonde, the wife of one of the provincial officials.
29607With the naive conviction of young men in a merry mood that other
29608men's wives were created for them, Rostov did not leave the lady's
29609side and treated her husband in a friendly and conspiratorial style,
29610as if, without speaking of it, they knew how capitally Nicholas and
29611the lady would get on together. The husband, however, did not seem
29612to share that conviction and tried to behave morosely with Rostov. But
29613the latter's good-natured naivete was so boundless that sometimes even
29614he involuntarily yielded to Nicholas' good humor. Toward the end of
29615the evening, however, as the wife's face grew more flushed and
29616animated, the husband's became more and more melancholy and solemn, as
29617though there were but a given amount of animation between them and
29618as the wife's share increased the husband's diminished.
29619
29620
29621
29622
29623
29624CHAPTER V
29625
29626
29627Nicholas sat leaning slightly forward in an armchair, bending
29628closely over the blonde lady and paying her mythological compliments
29629with a smile that never left his face. Jauntily shifting the
29630position of his legs in their tight riding breeches, diffusing an odor
29631of perfume, and admiring his partner, himself, and the fine outlines
29632of his legs in their well-fitting Hessian boots, Nicholas told the
29633blonde lady that he wished to run away with a certain lady here in
29634Voronezh.
29635
29636"Which lady?"
29637
29638"A charming lady, a divine one. Her eyes" (Nicholas looked at his
29639partner) "are blue, her mouth coral and ivory; her figure" (he glanced
29640at her shoulders) "like Diana's...."
29641
29642The husband came up and sullenly asked his wife what she was talking
29643about.
29644
29645"Ah, Nikita Ivanych!" cried Nicholas, rising politely, and as if
29646wishing Nikita Ivanych to share his joke, he began to tell him of
29647his intention to elope with a blonde lady.
29648
29649The husband smiled gloomily, the wife gaily. The governor's
29650good-natured wife came up with a look of disapproval.
29651
29652"Anna Ignatyevna wants to see you, Nicholas," said she,
29653pronouncing the name so that Nicholas at once understood that Anna
29654Ignatyevna was a very important person. "Come, Nicholas! You know
29655you let me call you so?"
29656
29657"Oh, yes, Aunt. Who is she?"
29658
29659"Anna Ignatyevna Malvintseva. She has heard from her niece how you
29660rescued her... Can you guess?"
29661
29662"I rescued such a lot of them!" said Nicholas.
29663
29664"Her niece, Princess Bolkonskaya. She is here in Voronezh with her
29665aunt. Oho! How you blush. Why, are...?"
29666
29667"Not a bit! Please don't, Aunt!"
29668
29669"Very well, very well!... Oh, what a fellow you are!"
29670
29671The governor's wife led him up to a tall and very stout old lady
29672with a blue headdress, who had just finished her game of cards with
29673the most important personages of the town. This was Malvintseva,
29674Princess Mary's aunt on her mother's side, a rich, childless widow who
29675always lived in Voronezh. When Rostov approached her she was
29676standing settling up for the game. She looked at him and, screwing
29677up her eyes sternly, continued to upbraid the general who had won from
29678her.
29679
29680"Very pleased, mon cher," she then said, holding out her hand to
29681Nicholas. "Pray come and see me."
29682
29683After a few words about Princess Mary and her late father, whom
29684Malvintseva had evidently not liked, and having asked what Nicholas
29685knew of Prince Andrew, who also was evidently no favorite of hers, the
29686important old lady dismissed Nicholas after repeating her invitation
29687to come to see her.
29688
29689Nicholas promised to come and blushed again as he bowed. At the
29690mention of Princess Mary he experienced a feeling of shyness and
29691even of fear, which he himself did not understand.
29692
29693When he had parted from Malvintseva Nicholas wished to return to the
29694dancing, but the governor's little wife placed her plump hand on his
29695sleeve and, saying that she wanted to have a talk with him, led him to
29696her sitting room, from which those who were there immediately withdrew
29697so as not to be in her way.
29698
29699"Do you know, dear boy," began the governor's wife with a serious
29700expression on her kind little face, "that really would be the match
29701for you: would you like me to arrange it?"
29702
29703"Whom do you mean, Aunt?" asked Nicholas.
29704
29705"I will make a match for you with the princess. Catherine Petrovna
29706speaks of Lily, but I say, no--the princess! Do you want me to do
29707it? I am sure your mother will be grateful to me. What a charming girl
29708she is, really! And she is not at all so plain, either."
29709
29710"Not at all," replied Nicholas as if offended at the idea. "As
29711befits a soldier, Aunt, I don't force myself on anyone or refuse
29712anything," he said before he had time to consider what he was saying.
29713
29714"Well then, remember, this is not a joke!"
29715
29716"Of course not!"
29717
29718"Yes, yes," the governor's wife said as if talking to herself. "But,
29719my dear boy, among other things you are too attentive to the other,
29720the blonde. One is sorry for the husband, really...."
29721
29722"Oh no, we are good friends with him," said Nicholas in the
29723simplicity of his heart; it did not enter his head that a pastime so
29724pleasant to himself might not be pleasant to someone else.
29725
29726"But what nonsense I have been saying to the governor's wife!"
29727thought Nicholas suddenly at supper. "She will really begin to arrange
29728a match... and Soyna...?" And on taking leave of the governor's
29729wife, when she again smilingly said to him, "Well then, remember!"
29730he drew her aside.
29731
29732"But see here, to tell the truth, Aunt..."
29733
29734"What is it, my dear? Come, let's sit down here," said she.
29735
29736Nicholas suddenly felt a desire and need to tell his most intimate
29737thoughts (which he would not have told to his mother, his sister, or
29738his friend) to this woman who was almost a stranger. When he
29739afterwards recalled that impulse to unsolicited and inexplicable
29740frankness which had very important results for him, it seemed to
29741him--as it seems to everyone in such cases--that it was merely some
29742silly whim that seized him: yet that burst of frankness, together with
29743other trifling events, had immense consequences for him and for all
29744his family.
29745
29746"You see, Aunt, Mamma has long wanted me to marry an heiress, but
29747the very idea of marrying for money is repugnant to me."
29748
29749"Oh yes, I understand," said the governor's wife.
29750
29751"But Princess Bolkonskaya--that's another matter. I will tell you
29752the truth. In the first place I like her very much, I feel drawn to
29753her; and then, after I met her under such circumstances--so strangely,
29754the idea often occurred to me: 'This is fate.' Especially if you
29755remember that Mamma had long been thinking of it; but I had never
29756happened to meet her before, somehow it had always happened that we
29757did not meet. And as long as my sister Natasha was engaged to her
29758brother it was of course out of the question for me to think of
29759marrying her. And it must needs happen that I should meet her just
29760when Natasha's engagement had been broken off... and then
29761everything... So you see... I never told this to anyone and never
29762will, only to you."
29763
29764The governor's wife pressed his elbow gratefully.
29765
29766"You know Sonya, my cousin? I love her, and promised to marry her,
29767and will do so.... So you see there can be no question about-" said
29768Nicholas incoherently and blushing.
29769
29770"My dear boy, what a way to look at it! You know Sonya has nothing
29771and you yourself say your Papa's affairs are in a very bad way. And
29772what about your mother? It would kill her, that's one thing. And
29773what sort of life would it be for Sonya--if she's a girl with a heart?
29774Your mother in despair, and you all ruined.... No, my dear, you and
29775Sonya ought to understand that."
29776
29777Nicholas remained silent. It comforted him to hear these arguments.
29778
29779"All the same, Aunt, it is impossible," he rejoined with a sigh,
29780after a short pause. "Besides, would the princess have me? And
29781besides, she is now in mourning. How can one think of it!"
29782
29783"But you don't suppose I'm going to get you married at once? There
29784is always a right way of doing things," replied the governor's wife.
29785
29786"What a matchmaker you are, Aunt..." said Nicholas, kissing her
29787plump little hand.
29788
29789
29790
29791
29792
29793CHAPTER VI
29794
29795
29796On reaching Moscow after her meeting with Rostov, Princess Mary
29797had found her nephew there with his tutor, and a letter from Prince
29798Andrew giving her instructions how to get to her Aunt Malvintseva at
29799Voronezh. That feeling akin to temptation which had tormented her
29800during her father's illness, since his death, and especially since her
29801meeting with Rostov was smothered by arrangements for the journey,
29802anxiety about her brother, settling in a new house, meeting new
29803people, and attending to her nephew's education. She was sad. Now,
29804after a month passed in quiet surroundings, she felt more and more
29805deeply the loss of her father which was associated in her mind with
29806the ruin of Russia. She was agitated and incessantly tortured by the
29807thought of the dangers to which her brother, the only intimate
29808person now remaining to her, was exposed. She was worried too about
29809her nephew's education for which she had always felt herself
29810incompetent, but in the depths of her soul she felt at peace--a
29811peace arising from consciousness of having stifled those personal
29812dreams and hopes that had been on the point of awakening within her
29813and were related to her meeting with Rostov.
29814
29815The day after her party the governor's wife came to see
29816Malvintseva and, after discussing her plan with the aunt, remarked
29817that though under present circumstances a formal betrothal was, of
29818course, not to be thought of, all the same the young people might be
29819brought together and could get to know one another. Malvintseva
29820expressed approval, and the governor's wife began to speak of Rostov
29821in Mary's presence, praising him and telling how he had blushed when
29822Princess Mary's name was mentioned. But Princess Mary experienced a
29823painful rather than a joyful feeling--her mental tranquillity was
29824destroyed, and desires, doubts, self-reproach, and hopes reawoke.
29825
29826During the two days that elapsed before Rostov called, Princess Mary
29827continually thought of how she ought to behave to him. First she
29828decided not to come to the drawing room when he called to see her
29829aunt--that it would not be proper for her, in her deep mourning, to
29830receive visitors; then she thought this would be rude after what he
29831had done for her; then it occurred to her that her aunt and the
29832governor's wife had intentions concerning herself and Rostov--their
29833looks and words at times seemed to confirm this supposition--then
29834she told herself that only she, with her sinful nature, could think
29835this of them: they could not forget that situated as she was, while
29836still wearing deep mourning, such matchmaking would be an insult to
29837her and to her father's memory. Assuming that she did go down to see
29838him, Princess Mary imagined the words he would say to her and what she
29839would say to him, and these words sometimes seemed undeservedly cold
29840and then to mean too much. More than anything she feared lest the
29841confusion she felt might overwhelm her and betray her as soon as she
29842saw him.
29843
29844But when on Sunday after church the footman announced in the drawing
29845room that Count Rostov had called, the princess showed no confusion,
29846only a slight blush suffused her cheeks and her eyes lit up with a new
29847and radiant light.
29848
29849"You have met him, Aunt?" said she in a calm voice, unable herself
29850to understand that she could be outwardly so calm and natural.
29851
29852When Rostov entered the room, the princess dropped her eyes for an
29853instant, as if to give the visitor time to greet her aunt, and then
29854just as Nicholas turned to her she raised her head and met his look
29855with shining eyes. With a movement full of dignity and grace she
29856half rose with a smile of pleasure, held out her slender, delicate
29857hand to him, and began to speak in a voice in which for the first time
29858new deep womanly notes vibrated. Mademoiselle Bourienne, who was in
29859the drawing room, looked at Princess Mary in bewildered surprise.
29860Herself a consummate coquette, she could not have maneuvered better on
29861meeting a man she wished to attract.
29862
29863"Either black is particularly becoming to her or she really has
29864greatly improved without my having noticed it. And above all, what
29865tact and grace!" thought Mademoiselle Bourienne.
29866
29867Had Princess Mary been capable of reflection at that moment, she
29868would have been more surprised than Mademoiselle Bourienne at the
29869change that had taken place in herself. From the moment she recognized
29870that dear, loved face, a new life force took possession of her and
29871compelled her to speak and act apart from her own will. From the
29872time Rostov entered, her face became suddenly transformed. It was as
29873if a light had been kindled in a carved and painted lantern and the
29874intricate, skillful, artistic work on its sides, that previously
29875seemed dark, coarse, and meaningless, was suddenly shown up in
29876unexpected and striking beauty. For the first time all that pure,
29877spiritual, inward travail through which she had lived appeared on
29878the surface. All her inward labor, her dissatisfaction with herself,
29879her sufferings, her strivings after goodness, her meekness, love,
29880and self-sacrifice--all this now shone in those radiant eyes, in her
29881delicate smile, and in every trait of her gentle face.
29882
29883Rostov saw all this as clearly as if he had known her whole life. He
29884felt that the being before him was quite different from, and better
29885than, anyone he had met before, and above all better than himself.
29886
29887Their conversation was very simple and unimportant. They spoke of
29888the war, and like everyone else unconsciously exaggerated their sorrow
29889about it; they spoke of their last meeting--Nicholas trying to
29890change the subject--they talked of the governor's kind wife, of
29891Nicholas' relations, and of Princess Mary's.
29892
29893She did not talk about her brother, diverting the conversation as
29894soon as her aunt mentioned Andrew. Evidently she could speak of
29895Russia's misfortunes with a certain artificiality, but her brother was
29896too near her heart and she neither could nor would speak lightly of
29897him. Nicholas noticed this, as he noticed every shade of Princess
29898Mary's character with an observation unusual to him, and everything
29899confirmed his conviction that she was a quite unusual and
29900extraordinary being. Nicholas blushed and was confused when people
29901spoke to him about the princess (as she did when he was mentioned) and
29902even when he thought of her, but in her presence he felt quite at
29903ease, and said not at all what he had prepared, but what, quite
29904appropriately, occurred to him at the moment.
29905
29906When a pause occurred during his short visit, Nicholas, as is
29907usual when there are children, turned to Prince Andrew's little son,
29908caressing him and asking whether he would like to be an hussar. He
29909took the boy on his knee, played with him, and looked round at
29910Princess Mary. With a softened, happy, timid look she watched the
29911boy she loved in the arms of the man she loved. Nicholas also
29912noticed that look and, as if understanding it, flushed with pleasure
29913and began to kiss the boy with good natured playfulness.
29914
29915As she was in mourning Princess Mary did not go out into society,
29916and Nicholas did not think it the proper thing to visit her again; but
29917all the same the governor's wife went on with her matchmaking, passing
29918on to Nicholas the flattering things Princess Mary said of him and
29919vice versa, and insisting on his declaring himself to Princess Mary.
29920For this purpose she arranged a meeting between the young people at
29921the bishop's house before Mass.
29922
29923Though Rostov told the governeor's wife that he would not make any
29924declaration to Princess Mary, he promised to go.
29925
29926As at Tilsit Rostov had not allowed himself to doubt that what
29927everybody considered right was right, so now, after a short but
29928sincere struggle between his effort to arrange his life by his own
29929sense of justice, and in obedient submission to circumstances, he
29930chose the latter and yielded to the power he felt irresistibly
29931carrying him he knew not where. He knew that after his promise to
29932Sonya it would be what he deemed base to declare his feelings to
29933Princess Mary. And he knew that he would never act basely. But he also
29934knew (or rather felt at the bottom of his heart) that by resigning
29935himself now to the force of circumstances and to those who were
29936guiding him, he was not only doing nothing wrong, but was doing
29937something very important--more important than anything he had ever
29938done in his life.
29939
29940After meeting Princess Mary, though the course of his life went on
29941externally as before, all his former amusements lost their charm for
29942him and he often thought about her. But he never thought about her
29943as he had thought of all the young ladies without exception whom he
29944had met in society, nor as he had for a long time, and at one time
29945rapturously, thought about Sonya. He had pictured each of those
29946young ladies as almost all honest-hearted young men do, that is, as
29947a possible wife, adapting her in his imagination to all the conditions
29948of married life: a white dressing gown, his wife at the tea table, his
29949wife's carriage, little ones, Mamma and Papa, their relations to
29950her, and so on--and these pictures of the future had given him
29951pleasure. But with Princess Mary, to whom they were trying to get
29952him engaged, he could never picture anything of future married life.
29953If he tried, his pictures seemed incongruous and false. It made him
29954afraid.
29955
29956
29957
29958
29959
29960CHAPTER VII
29961
29962
29963The dreadful news of the battle of Borodino, of our losses in killed
29964and wounded, and the still more terrible news of the loss of Moscow
29965reached Voronezh in the middle of September. Princess Mary, having
29966learned of her brother's wound only from the Gazette and having no
29967definite news of him, prepared (so Nicholas heard, he had not seen her
29968again himself) to set off in search of Prince Andrew.
29969
29970When he received the news of the battle of Borodino and the
29971abandonment of Moscow, Rostov was not seized with despair, anger,
29972the desire for vengeance, or any feeling of that kind, but
29973everything in Voronezh suddenly seemed to him dull and tiresome, and
29974he experienced an indefinite feeling of shame and awkwardness. The
29975conversations he heard seemed to him insincere; he did not know how to
29976judge all these affairs and felt that only in the regiment would
29977everything again become clear to him. He made haste to finish buying
29978the horses, and often became unreasonably angry with his servant and
29979squadron quartermaster.
29980
29981A few days before his departure a special thanksgiving, at which
29982Nicholas was present, was held in the cathedral for the Russian
29983victory. He stood a little behind the governor and held himself with
29984military decorum through the service, meditating on a great variety of
29985subjects. When the service was over the governor's wife beckoned him
29986to her.
29987
29988"Have you seen the princess?" she asked, indicating with a
29989movement of her head a lady standing on the opposite side, beyond
29990the choir.
29991
29992Nicholas immediately recognized Princess Mary not so much by the
29993profile he saw under her bonnet as by the feeling of solicitude,
29994timidity, and pity that immediately overcame him. Princess Mary,
29995evidently engrossed by her thoughts, was crossing herself for the last
29996time before leaving the church.
29997
29998Nicholas looked at her face with surprise. It was the same face he
29999had seen before, there was the same general expression of refined,
30000inner, spiritual labor, but now it was quite differently lit up. There
30001was a pathetic expression of sorrow, prayer, and hope in it. As had
30002occurred before when she was present, Nicholas went up to her
30003without waiting to be prompted by the governor's wife and not asking
30004himself whether or not it was right and proper to address her here
30005in church, and told her he had heard of her trouble and sympathized
30006with his whole soul. As soon as she heard his voice a vivid glow
30007kindled in her face, lighting up both her sorrow and her joy.
30008
30009"There is one thing I wanted to tell you, Princess," said Rostov.
30010"It is that if your brother, Prince Andrew Nikolievich, were not
30011living, it would have been at once announced in the Gazette, as he
30012is a colonel."
30013
30014The princess looked at him, not grasping what he was saying, but
30015cheered by the expression of regretful sympathy on his face.
30016
30017"And I have known so many cases of a splinter wound" (the Gazette
30018said it was a shell) "either proving fatal at once or being very
30019slight," continued Nicholas. "We must hope for the best, and I am
30020sure..."
30021
30022Princess Mary interrupted him.
30023
30024"Oh, that would be so dread..." she began and, prevented by
30025agitation from finishing, she bent her head with a movement as
30026graceful as everything she did in his presence and, looking up at
30027him gratefully, went out, following her aunt.
30028
30029That evening Nicholas did not go out, but stayed at home to settle
30030some accounts with the horse dealers. When he had finished that
30031business it was already too late to go anywhere but still too early to
30032go to bed, and for a long time he paced up and down the room,
30033reflecting on his life, a thing he rarely did.
30034
30035Princess Mary had made an agreeable impression on him when he had
30036met her in Smolensk province. His having encountered her in such
30037exceptional circumstances, and his mother having at one time mentioned
30038her to him as a good match, had drawn his particular attention to her.
30039When he met her again in Voronezh the impression she made on him was
30040not merely pleasing but powerful. Nicholas had been struck by the
30041peculiar moral beauty he observed in her at this time. He was,
30042however, preparing to go away and it had not entered his head to
30043regret that he was thus depriving himself of chances of meeting her.
30044But that day's encounter in church had, he felt, sunk deeper than
30045was desirable for his peace of mind. That pale, sad, refined face,
30046that radiant look, those gentle graceful gestures, and especially
30047the deep and tender sorrow expressed in all her features agitated
30048him and evoked his sympathy. In men Rostov could not bear to see the
30049expression of a higher spiritual life (that was why he did not like
30050Prince Andrew) and he referred to it contemptuously as philosophy
30051and dreaminess, but in Princess Mary that very sorrow which revealed
30052the depth of a whole spiritual world foreign to him was an
30053irresistible attraction.
30054
30055"She must be a wonderful woman. A real angel!" he said to himself.
30056"Why am I not free? Why was I in such a hurry with Sonya?" And he
30057involuntarily compared the two: the lack of spirituality in the one
30058and the abundance of it in the other--a spirituality he himself lacked
30059and therefore valued most highly. He tried to picture what would
30060happen were he free. How he would propose to her and how she would
30061become his wife. But no, he could not imagine that. He felt awed,
30062and no clear picture presented itself to his mind. He had long ago
30063pictured to himself a future with Sonya, and that was all clear and
30064simple just because it had all been thought out and he knew all
30065there was in Sonya, but it was impossible to picture a future with
30066Princess Mary, because he did not understand her but simply loved her.
30067
30068Reveries about Sonya had had something merry and playful in them,
30069but to dream of Princess Mary was always difficult and a little
30070frightening.
30071
30072"How she prayed!" he thought. "It was plain that her whole soul
30073was in her prayer. Yes, that was the prayer that moves mountains,
30074and I am sure her prayer will be answered. Why don't I pray for what I
30075want?" he suddenly thought. "What do I want? To be free, released from
30076Sonya... She was right," he thought, remembering what the governor's
30077wife had said: "Nothing but misfortune can come of marrying Sonya.
30078Muddles, grief for Mamma... business difficulties... muddles, terrible
30079muddles! Besides, I don't love her--not as I should. O, God! release
30080me from this dreadful, inextricable position!" he suddenly began to
30081pray. "Yes, prayer can move mountains, but one must have faith and not
30082pray as Natasha and I used to as children, that the snow might turn
30083into sugar--and then run out into the yard to see whether it had
30084done so. No, but I am not praying for trifles now," he thought as he
30085put his pipe down in a corner, and folding his hands placed himself
30086before the icon. Softened by memories of Princess Mary he began to
30087pray as he had not done for a long time. Tears were in his eyes and in
30088his throat when the door opened and Lavrushka came in with some
30089papers.
30090
30091"Blockhead! Why do you come in without being called?" cried
30092Nicholas, quickly changing his attitude.
30093
30094"From the governor," said Lavrushka in a sleepy voice. "A courier
30095has arrived and there's a letter for you."
30096
30097"Well, all right, thanks. You can go!"
30098
30099Nicholas took the two letters, one of which was from his mother
30100and the other from Sonya. He recognized them by the handwriting and
30101opened Sonya's first. He had read only a few lines when he turned pale
30102and his eyes opened wide with fear and joy.
30103
30104"No, it's not possible!" he cried aloud.
30105
30106Unable to sit still he paced up and down the room holding the letter
30107and reading it. He glanced through it, then read it again, and then
30108again, and standing still in the middle of the room he raised his
30109shoulders, stretching out his hands, with his mouth wide open and
30110his eyes fixed. What he had just been praying for with confidence that
30111God would hear him had come to pass; but Nicholas was as much
30112astonished as if it were something extraordinary and unexpected, and
30113as if the very fact that it had happened so quickly proved that it had
30114not come from God to whom he had prayed, but by some ordinary
30115coincidence.
30116
30117This unexpected and, as it seemed to Nicholas, quite voluntary
30118letter from Sonya freed him from the knot that fettered him and from
30119which there had seemed no escape. She wrote that the last
30120unfortunate events--the loss of almost the whole of the Rostovs'
30121Moscow property--and the countess' repeatedly expressed wish that
30122Nicholas should marry Princess Bolkonskaya, together with his
30123silence and coldness of late, had all combined to make her decide to
30124release him from his promise and set him completely free.
30125
30126
30127It would be too painful to me to think that I might be a cause of
30128sorrow or discord in the family that has been so good to me (she
30129wrote), and my love has no aim but the happiness of those I love;
30130so, Nicholas, I beg you to consider yourself free, and to be assured
30131that, in spite of everything, no one can love you more than does
30132
30133Your Sonya
30134
30135
30136Both letters were written from Troitsa. The other, from the
30137countess, described their last days in Moscow, their departure, the
30138fire, and the destruction of all their property. In this letter the
30139countess also mentioned that Prince Andrew was among the wounded
30140traveling with them; his state was very critical, but the doctor
30141said there was now more hope. Sonya and Natasha were nursing him.
30142
30143Next day Nicholas took his mother's letter and went to see
30144Princess Mary. Neither he nor she said a word about what "Natasha
30145nursing him" might mean, but thanks to this letter Nicholas suddenly
30146became almost as intimate with the princess as if they were relations.
30147
30148The following day he saw Princess Mary off on her journey to
30149Yaroslavl, and a few days later left to rejoin his regiment.
30150
30151
30152
30153
30154
30155CHAPTER VIII
30156
30157
30158Sonya's letter written from Troitsa, which had come as an answer
30159to Nicholas' prayer, was prompted by this: the thought of getting
30160Nicholas married to an heiress occupied the old countess' mind more
30161and more. She knew that Sonya was the chief obstacle to this
30162happening, and Sonya's life in the countess' house had grown harder
30163and harder, especially after they had received a letter from
30164Nicholas telling of his meeting with Princess Mary in Bogucharovo. The
30165countess let no occasion slip of making humiliating or cruel allusions
30166to Sonya.
30167
30168But a few days before they left Moscow, moved and excited by all
30169that was going on, she called Sonya to her and, instead of reproaching
30170and making demands on her, tearfully implored her to sacrifice herself
30171and repay all that the family had done for her by breaking off her
30172engagement with Nicholas.
30173
30174"I shall not be at peace till you promise me this."
30175
30176Sonya burst into hysterical tears and replied through her sobs
30177that she would do anything and was prepared for anything, but gave
30178no actual promise and could not bring herself to decide to do what was
30179demanded of her. She must sacrifice herself for the family that had
30180reared and brought her up. To sacrifice herself for others was Sonya's
30181habit. Her position in the house was such that only by sacrifice could
30182she show her worth, and she was accustomed to this and loved doing it.
30183But in all her former acts of self-sacrifice she had been happily
30184conscious that they raised her in her own esteem and in that of
30185others, and so made her more worthy of Nicholas whom she loved more
30186than anything in the world. But now they wanted her to sacrifice the
30187very thing that constituted the whole reward for her self-sacrifice
30188and the whole meaning of her life. And for the first time she felt
30189bitterness against those who had been her benefactors only to
30190torture her the more painfully; she felt jealous of Natasha who had
30191never experienced anything of this sort, had never needed to sacrifice
30192herself, but made others sacrifice themselves for her and yet was
30193beloved by everybody. And for the first time Sonya felt that out of
30194her pure, quiet love for Nicholas a passionate feeling was beginning
30195to grow up which was stronger than principle, virtue, or religion.
30196Under the influence of this feeling Sonya, whose life of dependence
30197had taught her involuntarily to be secretive, having answered the
30198countess in vague general terms, avoided talking with her and resolved
30199to wait till she should see Nicholas, not in order to set him free but
30200on the contrary at that meeting to bind him to her forever.
30201
30202The bustle and terror of the Rostovs' last days in Moscow stifled
30203the gloomy thoughts that oppressed Sonya. She was glad to find
30204escape from them in practical activity. But when she heard of Prince
30205Andrew's presence in their house, despite her sincere pity for him and
30206for Natasha, she was seized by a joyful and superstitious feeling that
30207God did not intend her to be separated from Nicholas. She knew that
30208Natasha loved no one but Prince Andrew and had never ceased to love
30209him. She knew that being thrown together again under such terrible
30210circumstances they would again fall in love with one another, and that
30211Nicholas would then not be able to marry Princess Mary as they would
30212be within the prohibited degrees of affinity. Despite all the terror
30213of what had happened during those last days and during the first
30214days of their journey, this feeling that Providence was intervening in
30215her personal affairs cheered Sonya.
30216
30217At the Troitsa monastery the Rostovs first broke their journey for a
30218whole day.
30219
30220Three large rooms were assigned to them in the monastery hostelry,
30221one of which was occupied by Prince Andrew. The wounded man was much
30222better that day and Natasha was sitting with him. In the next room sat
30223the count and countess respectfully conversing with the prior, who was
30224calling on them as old acquaintances and benefactors of the monastery.
30225Sonya was there too, tormented by curiosity as to what Prince Andrew
30226and Natasha were talking about. She heard the sound of their voices
30227through the door. That door opened and Natasha came out, looking
30228excited. Not noticing the monk, who had risen to greet her and was
30229drawing back the wide sleeve on his right arm, she went up to Sonya
30230and took her hand.
30231
30232"Natasha, what are you about? Come here!" said the countess.
30233
30234Natasha went up to the monk for his blessing, and advised her to
30235pray for aid to God and His saint.
30236
30237As soon as the prior withdrew, Natasha took her friend by the hand
30238and went with her into the unoccupied room.
30239
30240"Sonya, will he live?" she asked. "Sonya, how happy I am, and how
30241unhappy!... Sonya, dovey, everything is as it used to be. If only he
30242lives! He cannot... because... because... of" and Natasha burst into
30243tears.
30244
30245"Yes! I knew it! Thank God!" murmured Sonya. "He will live."
30246
30247Sonya was not less agitated than her friend by the latter's fear and
30248grief and by her own personal feelings which she shared with no one.
30249Sobbing, she kissed and comforted Natasha. "If only he lives!" she
30250thought. Having wept, talked, and wiped away their tears, the two
30251friends went together to Prince Andrew's door. Natasha opened it
30252cautiously and glanced into the room, Sonya standing beside her at the
30253half-open door.
30254
30255Prince Andrew was lying raised high on three pillows. His pale
30256face was calm, his eyes closed, and they could see his regular
30257breathing.
30258
30259"O, Natasha!" Sonya suddenly almost screamed, catching her
30260companion's arm and stepping back from the door.
30261
30262"What? What is it?" asked Natasha.
30263
30264"It's that, that..." said Sonya, with a white face and trembling
30265lips.
30266
30267Natasha softly closed the door and went with Sonya to the window,
30268not yet understanding what the latter was telling her.
30269
30270"You remember," said Sonya with a solemn and frightened
30271expression. "You remember when I looked in the mirror for you... at
30272Otradnoe at Christmas? Do you remember what I saw?"
30273
30274"Yes, yes!" cried Natasha opening her eyes wide, and vaguely
30275recalling that Sonya had told her something about Prince Andrew whom
30276she had seen lying down.
30277
30278"You remember?" Sonya went on. "I saw it then and told everybody,
30279you and Dunyasha. I saw him lying on a bed," said she, making a
30280gesture with her hand and a lifted finger at each detail, "and that he
30281had his eyes closed and was covered just with a pink quilt, and that
30282his hands were folded," she concluded, convincing herself that the
30283details she had just seen were exactly what she had seen in the
30284mirror.
30285
30286She had in fact seen nothing then but had mentioned the first
30287thing that came into her head, but what she had invented then seemed
30288to her now as real as any other recollection. She not only
30289remembered what she had then said--that he turned to look at her and
30290smiled and was covered with something red--but was firmly convinced
30291that she had then seen and said that he was covered with a pink
30292quilt and that his eyes were closed.
30293
30294"Yes, yes, it really was pink!" cried Natasha, who now thought she
30295too remembered the word pink being used, and saw in this the most
30296extraordinary and mysterious part of the prediction.
30297
30298"But what does it mean?" she added meditatively.
30299
30300"Oh, I don't know, it is all so strange," replied Sonya, clutching
30301at her head.
30302
30303A few minutes later Prince Andrew rang and Natasha went to him,
30304but Sonya, feeling unusually excited and touched, remained at the
30305window thinking about the strangeness of what had occurred.
30306
30307
30308They had an opportunity that day to send letters to the army, and
30309the countess was writing to her son.
30310
30311"Sonya!" said the countess, raising her eyes from her letter as
30312her niece passed, "Sonya, won't you write to Nicholas?" She spoke in a
30313soft, tremulous voice, and in the weary eyes that looked over her
30314spectacles Sonya read all that the countess meant to convey with these
30315words. Those eyes expressed entreaty, shame at having to ask, fear
30316of a refusal, and readiness for relentless hatred in case of such
30317refusal.
30318
30319Sonya went up to the countess and, kneeling down, kissed her hand.
30320
30321"Yes, Mamma, I will write," said she.
30322
30323Sonya was softened, excited, and touched by all that had occurred
30324that day, especially by the mysterious fulfillment she had just seen
30325of her vision. Now that she knew that the renewal of Natasha's
30326relations with Prince Andrew would prevent Nicholas from marrying
30327Princess Mary, she was joyfully conscious of a return of that
30328self-sacrificing spirit in which she was accustomed to live and
30329loved to live. So with a joyful consciousness of performing a
30330magnanimous deed--interrupted several times by the tears that dimmed
30331her velvety black eyes--she wrote that touching letter the arrival
30332of which had so amazed Nicholas.
30333
30334
30335
30336
30337
30338CHAPTER IX
30339
30340
30341The officer and soldiers who had arrested Pierre treated him with
30342hostility but yet with respect, in the guardhouse to which he was
30343taken. In their attitude toward him could still be felt both
30344uncertainty as to who he might be--perhaps a very important person-
30345and hostility as a result of their recent personal conflict with him.
30346
30347But when the guard was relieved next morning, Pierre felt that for
30348the new guard--both officers and men--he was not as interesting as
30349he had been to his captors; and in fact the guard of the second day
30350did not recognize in this big, stout man in a peasant coat the
30351vigorous person who had fought so desperately with the marauder and
30352the convoy and had uttered those solemn words about saving a child;
30353they saw in him only No. 17 of the captured Russians, arrested and
30354detained for some reason by order of the Higher Command. If they
30355noticed anything remarkable about Pierre, it was only his unabashed,
30356meditative concentration and thoughtfulness, and the way he spoke
30357French, which struck them as surprisingly good. In spite of this he
30358was placed that day with the other arrested suspects, as the
30359separate room he had occupied was required by an officer.
30360
30361All the Russians confined with Pierre were men of the lowest class
30362and, recognizing him as a gentleman, they all avoided him, more
30363especially as he spoke French. Pierre felt sad at hearing them
30364making fun of him.
30365
30366That evening he learned that all these prisoners (he, probably,
30367among them) were to be tried for incendiarism. On the third day he was
30368taken with the others to a house where a French general with a white
30369mustache sat with two colonels and other Frenchmen with scarves on
30370their arms. With the precision and definiteness customary in
30371addressing prisoners, and which is supposed to preclude human frailty,
30372Pierre like the others was questioned as to who he was, where he had
30373been, with what object, and so on.
30374
30375These questions, like questions put at trials generally, left the
30376essence of the matter aside, shut out the possibility of that
30377essence's being revealed, and were designed only to form a channel
30378through which the judges wished the answers of the accused to flow
30379so as to lead to the desired result, namely a conviction. As soon as
30380Pierre began to say anything that did not fit in with that aim, the
30381channel was removed and the water could flow to waste. Pierre felt,
30382moreover, what the accused always feel at their trial, perplexity as
30383to why these questions were put to him. He had a feeling that it was
30384only out of condescension or a kind of civility that this device of
30385placing a channel was employed. He knew he was in these men's power,
30386that only by force had they brought him there, that force alone gave
30387them the right to demand answers to their questions, and that the sole
30388object of that assembly was to inculpate him. And so, as they had
30389the power and wish to inculpate him, this expedient of an inquiry
30390and trial seemed unnecessary. It was evident that any answer would
30391lead to conviction. When asked what he was doing when he was arrested,
30392Pierre replied in a rather tragic manner that he was restoring to
30393its parents a child he had saved from the flames. Why had he fought
30394the marauder? Pierre answered that he "was protecting a woman," and
30395that "to protect a woman who was being insulted was the duty of
30396every man; that..." They interrupted him, for this was not to the
30397point. Why was he in the yard of a burning house where witnesses had
30398seen him? He replied that he had gone out to see what was happening in
30399Moscow. Again they interrupted him: they had not asked where he was
30400going, but why he was found near the fire? Who was he? they asked,
30401repeating their first question, which he had declined to answer. Again
30402he replied that he could not answer it.
30403
30404"Put that down, that's bad... very bad," sternly remarked the
30405general with the white mustache and red flushed face.
30406
30407
30408On the fourth day fires broke out on the Zubovski rampart.
30409
30410Pierre and thirteen others were moved to the coach house of a
30411merchant's house near the Crimean bridge. On his way through the
30412streets Pierre felt stifled by the smoke which seemed to hang over the
30413whole city. Fires were visible on all sides. He did not then realize
30414the significance of the burning of Moscow, and looked at the fires
30415with horror.
30416
30417He passed four days in the coach house near the Crimean bridge and
30418during that time learned, from the talk of the French soldiers, that
30419all those confined there were awaiting a decision which might come any
30420day from the marshal. What marshal this was, Pierre could not learn
30421from the soldiers. Evidently for them "the marshal" represented a very
30422high and rather mysterious power.
30423
30424These first days, before the eighth of September when the
30425prisoners were had up for a second examination, were the hardest of
30426all for Pierre.
30427
30428
30429
30430
30431
30432CHAPTER X
30433
30434
30435On the eighth of September an officer--a very important one
30436judging by the respect the guards showed him--entered the coach
30437house where the prisoners were. This officer, probably someone on
30438the staff, was holding a paper in his hand, and called over all the
30439Russians there, naming Pierre as "the man who does not give his name."
30440Glancing indolently and indifferently at all the prisoners, he ordered
30441the officer in charge to have them decently dressed and tidied up
30442before taking them to the marshal. An hour later a squad of soldiers
30443arrived and Pierre with thirteen others was led to the Virgin's Field.
30444It was a fine day, sunny after rain, and the air was unusually pure.
30445The smoke did not hang low as on the day when Pierre had been taken
30446from the guardhouse on the Zubovski rampart, but rose through the pure
30447air in columns. No flames were seen, but columns of smoke rose on
30448all sides, and all Moscow as far as Pierre could see was one vast
30449charred ruin. On all sides there were waste spaces with only stoves
30450and chimney stacks still standing, and here and there the blackened
30451walls of some brick houses. Pierre gazed at the ruins and did not
30452recognize districts he had known well. Here and there he could see
30453churches that had not been burned. The Kremlin, which was not
30454destroyed, gleamed white in the distance with its towers and the
30455belfry of Ivan the Great. The domes of the New Convent of the Virgin
30456glittered brightly and its bells were ringing particularly clearly.
30457These bells reminded Pierre that it was Sunday and the feast of the
30458Nativity of the Virgin. But there seemed to be no one to celebrate
30459this holiday: everywhere were blackened ruins, and the few Russians to
30460be seen were tattered and frightened people who tried to hide when
30461they saw the French.
30462
30463It was plain that the Russian nest was ruined and destroyed, but
30464in place of the Russian order of life that had been destroyed,
30465Pierre unconsciously felt that a quite different, firm, French order
30466had been established over this ruined nest. He felt this in the
30467looks of the soldiers who, marching in regular ranks briskly and
30468gaily, were escorting him and the other criminals; he felt it in the
30469looks of an important French official in a carriage and pair driven by
30470a soldier, whom they met on the way. He felt it in the merry sounds of
30471regimental music he heard from the left side of the field, and felt
30472and realized it especially from the list of prisoners the French
30473officer had read out when he came that morning. Pierre had been
30474taken by one set of soldiers and led first to one and then to
30475another place with dozens of other men, and it seemed that they
30476might have forgotten him, or confused him with the others. But no: the
30477answers he had given when questioned had come back to him in his
30478designation as "the man who does not give his name," and under that
30479appellation, which to Pierre seemed terrible, they were now leading
30480him somewhere with unhesitating assurance on their faces that he and
30481all the other prisoners were exactly the ones they wanted and that
30482they were being taken to the proper place. Pierre felt himself to be
30483an insignificant chip fallen among the wheels of a machine whose
30484action he did not understand but which was working well.
30485
30486He and the other prisoners were taken to the right side of the
30487Virgin's Field, to a large white house with an immense garden not
30488far from the convent. This was Prince Shcherbitov's house, where
30489Pierre had often been in other days, and which, as he learned from the
30490talk of the soldiers, was now occupied by the marshal, the Duke of
30491Eckmuhl (Davout).
30492
30493They were taken to the entrance and led into the house one by one.
30494Pierre was the sixth to enter. He was conducted through a glass
30495gallery, an anteroom, and a hall, which were familiar to him, into a
30496long low study at the door of which stood an adjutant.
30497
30498Davout, spectacles on nose, sat bent over a table at the further end
30499of the room. Pierre went close up to him, but Davout, evidently
30500consulting a paper that lay before him, did not look up. Without
30501raising his eyes, he said in a low voice:
30502
30503"Who are you?"
30504
30505Pierre was silent because he was incapable of uttering a word. To
30506him Davout was not merely a French general, but a man notorious for
30507his cruelty. Looking at his cold face, as he sat like a stern
30508schoolmaster who was prepared to wait awhile for an answer, Pierre
30509felt that every instant of delay might cost him his life; but he did
30510not know what to say. He did not venture to repeat what he had said at
30511his first examination, yet to disclose his rank and position was
30512dangerous and embarrassing. So he was silent. But before he had
30513decided what to do, Davout raised his head, pushed his spectacles back
30514on his forehead, screwed up his eyes, and looked intently at him.
30515
30516"I know that man," he said in a cold, measured tone, evidently
30517calculated to frighten Pierre.
30518
30519The chill that had been running down Pierre's back now seized his
30520head as in a vise.
30521
30522"You cannot know me, General, I have never seen you..."
30523
30524"He is a Russian spy," Davout interrupted, addressing another
30525general who was present, but whom Pierre had not noticed.
30526
30527Davout turned away. With an unexpected reverberation in his voice
30528Pierre rapidly began:
30529
30530"No, monseigneur," he said, suddenly remembering that Davout was a
30531duke. "No, monseigneur, you cannot have known me. I am a militia
30532officer and have not quitted Moscow."
30533
30534"Your name?" asked Davout.
30535
30536"Bezukhov."
30537
30538"What proof have I that you are not lying?"
30539
30540"Monseigneur!" exclaimed Pierre, not in an offended but in a
30541pleading voice.
30542
30543Davout looked up and gazed intently at him. For some seconds they
30544looked at one another, and that look saved Pierre. Apart from
30545conditions of war and law, that look established human relations
30546between the two men. At that moment an immense number of things passed
30547dimly through both their minds, and they realized that they were
30548both children of humanity and were brothers.
30549
30550At the first glance, when Davout had only raised his head from the
30551papers where human affairs and lives were indicated by numbers, Pierre
30552was merely a circumstance, and Davout could have shot him without
30553burdening his conscience with an evil deed, but now he saw in him a
30554human being. He reflected for a moment.
30555
30556"How can you show me that you are telling the truth?" said Davout
30557coldly.
30558
30559Pierre remembered Ramballe, and named him and his regiment and the
30560street where the house was.
30561
30562"You are not what you say," returned Davout.
30563
30564In a trembling, faltering voice Pierre began adducing proofs of
30565the truth of his statements.
30566
30567But at that moment an adjutant entered and reported something to
30568Davout.
30569
30570Davout brightened up at the news the adjutant brought, and began
30571buttoning up his uniform. It seemed that he had quite forgotten
30572Pierre.
30573
30574When the adjutant reminded him of the prisoner, he jerked his head
30575in Pierre's direction with a frown and ordered him to be led away. But
30576where they were to take him Pierre did not know: back to the coach
30577house or to the place of execution his companions had pointed out to
30578him as they crossed the Virgin's Field.
30579
30580He turned his head and saw that the adjutant was putting another
30581question to Davout.
30582
30583"Yes, of course!" replied Davout, but what this "yes" meant,
30584Pierre did not know.
30585
30586Pierre could not afterwards remember how he went, whether it was
30587far, or in which direction. His faculties were quite numbed, he was
30588stupefied, and noticing nothing around him went on moving his legs
30589as the others did till they all stopped and he stopped too. The only
30590thought in his mind at that time was: who was it that had really
30591sentenced him to death? Not the men on the commission that had first
30592examined him--not one of them wished to or, evidently, could have done
30593it. It was not Davout, who had looked at him in so human a way. In
30594another moment Davout would have realized that he was doing wrong, but
30595just then the adjutant had come in and interrupted him. The
30596adjutant, also, had evidently had no evil intent though he might
30597have refrained from coming in. Then who was executing him, killing
30598him, depriving him of life--him, Pierre, with all his memories,
30599aspirations, hopes, and thoughts? Who was doing this? And Pierre
30600felt that it was no one.
30601
30602It was a system--a concurrence of circumstances.
30603
30604A system of some sort was killing him--Pierre--depriving him of
30605life, of everything, annihilating him.
30606
30607
30608
30609
30610
30611CHAPTER XI
30612
30613
30614From Prince Shcherbatov's house the prisoners were led straight down
30615the Virgin's Field, to the left of the nunnery, as far as a kitchen
30616garden in which a post had been set up. Beyond that post a fresh pit
30617had been dug in the ground, and near the post and the pit a large
30618crowd stood in a semicircle. The crowd consisted of a few Russians and
30619many of Napoleon's soldiers who were not on duty--Germans, Italians,
30620and Frenchmen, in a variety of uniforms. To the right and left of
30621the post stood rows of French troops in blue uniforms with red
30622epaulets and high boots and shakos.
30623
30624The prisoners were placed in a certain order, according to the
30625list (Pierre was sixth), and were led to the post. Several drums
30626suddenly began to beat on both sides of them, and at that sound Pierre
30627felt as if part of his soul had been torn away. He lost the power of
30628thinking or understanding. He could only hear and see. And he had only
30629one wish--that the frightful thing that had to happen should happen
30630quickly. Pierre looked round at his fellow prisoners and scrutinized
30631them.
30632
30633The two first were convicts with shaven heads. One was tall and
30634thin, the other dark, shaggy, and sinewy, with a flat nose. The
30635third was a domestic serf, about forty-five years old, with grizzled
30636hair and a plump, well-nourished body. The fourth was a peasant, a
30637very handsome man with a broad, light-brown beard and black eyes.
30638The fifth was a factory hand, a thin, sallow-faced lad of eighteen
30639in a loose coat.
30640
30641Pierre heard the French consulting whether to shoot them
30642separately or two at a time. "In couples," replied the officer in
30643command in a calm voice. There was a stir in the ranks of the soldiers
30644and it was evident that they were all hurrying--not as men hurry to do
30645something they understand, but as people hurry to finish a necessary
30646but unpleasant and incomprehensible task.
30647
30648A French official wearing a scarf came up to the right of the row of
30649prisoners and read out the sentence in Russian and in French.
30650
30651Then two pairs of Frenchmen approached the criminals and at the
30652officer's command took the two convicts who stood first in the row.
30653The convicts stopped when they reached the post and, while sacks
30654were being brought, looked dumbly around as a wounded beast looks at
30655an approaching huntsman. One crossed himself continually, the other
30656scratched his back and made a movement of the lips resembling a smile.
30657With hurried hands the soldiers blindfolded them, drawing the sacks
30658over their heads, and bound them to the post.
30659
30660Twelve sharpshooters with muskets stepped out of the ranks with a
30661firm regular tread and halted eight paces from the post. Pierre turned
30662away to avoid seeing what was going to happen. Suddenly a crackling,
30663rolling noise was heard which seemed to him louder than the most
30664terrific thunder, and he looked round. There was some smoke, and the
30665Frenchmen were doing something near the pit, with pale faces and
30666trembling hands. Two more prisoners were led up. In the same way and
30667with similar looks, these two glanced vainly at the onlookers with
30668only a silent appeal for protection in their eyes, evidently unable to
30669understand or believe what was going to happen to them. They could not
30670believe it because they alone knew what their life meant to them,
30671and so they neither understood nor believed that it could be taken
30672from them.
30673
30674Again Pierre did not wish to look and again turned away; but again
30675the sound as of a frightful explosion struck his ear, and at the
30676same moment he saw smoke, blood, and the pale, scared faces of the
30677Frenchmen who were again doing something by the post, their
30678trembling hands impeding one another. Pierre, breathing heavily,
30679looked around as if asking what it meant. The same question was
30680expressed in all the looks that met his.
30681
30682On the faces of all the Russians and of the French soldiers and
30683officers without exception, he read the same dismay, horror, and
30684conflict that were in his own heart. "But who, after all, is doing
30685this? They are all suffering as I am. Who then is it? Who?" flashed
30686for an instant through his mind.
30687
30688"Sharpshooters of the 86th, forward!" shouted someone. The fifth
30689prisoner, the one next to Pierre, was led away--alone. Pierre did
30690not understand that he was saved, that he and the rest had been
30691brought there only to witness the execution. With ever-growing horror,
30692and no sense of joy or relief, he gazed at what was taking place.
30693The fifth man was the factory lad in the loose cloak. The moment
30694they laid hands on him he sprang aside in terror and clutched at
30695Pierre. (Pierre shuddered and shook himself free.) The lad was
30696unable to walk. They dragged him along, holding him up under the arms,
30697and he screamed. When they got him to the post he grew quiet, as if he
30698suddenly understood something. Whether he understood that screaming
30699was useless or whether he thought it incredible that men should kill
30700him, at any rate he took his stand at the post, waiting to be
30701blindfolded like the others, and like a wounded animal looked around
30702him with glittering eyes.
30703
30704Pierre was no longer able to turn away and close his eyes. His
30705curiosity and agitation, like that of the whole crowd, reached the
30706highest pitch at this fifth murder. Like the others this fifth man
30707seemed calm; he wrapped his loose cloak closer and rubbed one bare
30708foot with the other.
30709
30710When they began to blindfold him he himself adjusted the knot
30711which hurt the back of his head; then when they propped him against
30712the bloodstained post, he leaned back and, not being comfortable in
30713that position, straightened himself, adjusted his feet, and leaned
30714back again more comfortably. Pierre did not take his eyes from him and
30715did not miss his slightest movement.
30716
30717Probably a word of command was given and was followed by the reports
30718of eight muskets; but try as he would Pierre could not afterwards
30719remember having heard the slightest sound of the shots. He only saw
30720how the workman suddenly sank down on the cords that held him, how
30721blood showed itself in two places, how the ropes slackened under the
30722weight of the hanging body, and how the workman sat down, his head
30723hanging unnaturally and one leg bent under him. Pierre ran up to the
30724post. No one hindered him. Pale, frightened people were doing
30725something around the workman. The lower jaw of an old Frenchman with a
30726thick mustache trembled as he untied the ropes. The body collapsed.
30727The soldiers dragged it awkwardly from the post and began pushing it
30728into the pit.
30729
30730They all plainly and certainly knew that they were criminals who
30731must hide the traces of their guilt as quickly as possible.
30732
30733Pierre glanced into the pit and saw that the factory lad was lying
30734with his knees close up to his head and one shoulder higher than the
30735other. That shoulder rose and fell rhythmically and convulsively,
30736but spadefuls of earth were already being thrown over the whole
30737body. One of the soldiers, evidently suffering, shouted gruffly and
30738angrily at Pierre to go back. But Pierre did not understand him and
30739remained near the post, and no one drove him away.
30740
30741When the pit had been filled up a command was given. Pierre was
30742taken back to his place, and the rows of troops on both sides of the
30743post made a half turn and went past it at a measured pace. The
30744twenty-four sharpshooters with discharged muskets, standing in the
30745center of the circle, ran back to their places as the companies passed
30746by.
30747
30748Pierre gazed now with dazed eyes at these sharpshooters who ran in
30749couples out of the circle. All but one rejoined their companies.
30750This one, a young soldier, his face deadly pale, his shako pushed
30751back, and his musket resting on the ground, still stood near the pit
30752at the spot from which he had fired. He swayed like a drunken man,
30753taking some steps forward and back to save himself from falling. An
30754old, noncommissioned officer ran out of the ranks and taking him by
30755the elbow dragged him to his company. The crowd of Russians and
30756Frenchmen began to disperse. They all went away silently and with
30757drooping heads.
30758
30759"That will teach them to start fires," said one of the Frenchmen.
30760
30761Pierre glanced round at the speaker and saw that it was a soldier
30762who was trying to find some relief after what had been done, but was
30763not able to do so. Without finishing what he had begun to say he
30764made a hopeless movement with his arm and went away.
30765
30766
30767
30768
30769
30770CHAPTER XII
30771
30772
30773After the execution Pierre was separated from the rest of the
30774prisoners and placed alone in a small, ruined, and befouled church.
30775
30776Toward evening a noncommissioned officer entered with two soldiers
30777and told him that he had been pardoned and would now go to the
30778barracks for the prisoners of war. Without understanding what was said
30779to him, Pierre got up and went with the soldiers. They took him to the
30780upper end of the field, where there were some sheds built of charred
30781planks, beams, and battens, and led him into one of them. In the
30782darkness some twenty different men surrounded Pierre. He looked at
30783them without understanding who they were, why they were there, or what
30784they wanted of him. He heard what they said, but did not understand
30785the meaning of the words and made no kind of deduction from or
30786application of them. He replied to questions they put to him, but
30787did not consider who was listening to his replies, nor how they
30788would understand them. He looked at their faces and figures, but
30789they all seemed to him equally meaningless.
30790
30791From the moment Pierre had witnessed those terrible murders
30792committed by men who did not wish to commit them, it was as if the
30793mainspring of his life, on which everything depended and which made
30794everything appear alive, had suddenly been wrenched out and everything
30795had collapsed into a heap of meaningless rubbish. Though he did not
30796acknowledge it to himself, his faith in the right ordering of the
30797universe, in humanity, in his own soul, and in God, had been
30798destroyed. He had experienced this before, but never so strongly as
30799now. When similar doubts had assailed him before, they had been the
30800result of his own wrongdoing, and at the bottom of his heart he had
30801felt that relief from his despair and from those doubts was to be
30802found within himself. But now he felt that the universe had crumbled
30803before his eyes and only meaningless ruins remained, and this not by
30804any fault of his own. He felt that it was not in his power to regain
30805faith in the meaning of life.
30806
30807Around him in the darkness men were standing and evidently something
30808about him interested them greatly. They were telling him something and
30809asking him something. Then they led him away somewhere, and at last he
30810found himself in a corner of the shed among men who were laughing
30811and talking on all sides.
30812
30813"Well, then, mates... that very prince who..." some voice at the
30814other end of the shed was saying, with a strong emphasis on the word
30815who.
30816
30817Sitting silent and motionless on a heap of straw against the wall,
30818Pierre sometimes opened and sometimes closed his eyes. But as soon
30819as he closed them he saw before him the dreadful face of the factory
30820lad--especially dreadful because of its simplicity--and the faces of
30821the murderers, even more dreadful because of their disquiet. And he
30822opened his eyes again and stared vacantly into the darkness around
30823him.
30824
30825Beside him in a stooping position sat a small man of whose
30826presence he was first made aware by a strong smell of perspiration
30827which came from him every time he moved. This man was doing
30828something to his legs in the darkness, and though Pierre could not see
30829his face he felt that the man continually glanced at him. On growing
30830used to the darkness Pierre saw that the man was taking off his leg
30831bands, and the way he did it aroused Pierre's interest.
30832
30833Having unwound the string that tied the band on one leg, he
30834carefully coiled it up and immediately set to work on the other leg,
30835glancing up at Pierre. While one hand hung up the first string the
30836other was already unwinding the band on the second leg. In this way,
30837having carefully removed the leg bands by deft circular motions of his
30838arm following one another uninterruptedly, the man hung the leg
30839bands up on some pegs fixed above his head. Then he took out a
30840knife, cut something, closed the knife, placed it under the head of
30841his bed, and, seating himself comfortably, clasped his arms round
30842his lifted knees and fixed his eyes on Pierre. The latter was
30843conscious of something pleasant, comforting, and well rounded in these
30844deft movements, in the man's well-ordered arrangements in his
30845corner, and even in his very smell, and he looked at the man without
30846taking his eyes from him.
30847
30848"You've seen a lot of trouble, sir, eh?" the little man suddenly
30849said.
30850
30851And there was so much kindliness and simplicity in his singsong
30852voice that Pierre tried to reply, but his jaw trembled and he felt
30853tears rising to his eyes. The little fellow, giving Pierre no time
30854to betray his confusion, instantly continued in the same pleasant
30855tones:
30856
30857"Eh, lad, don't fret!" said he, in the tender singsong caressing
30858voice old Russian peasant women employ. "Don't fret, friend--'suffer
30859an hour, live for an age!' that's how it is, my dear fellow. And
30860here we live, thank heaven, without offense. Among these folk, too,
30861there are good men as well as bad," said he, and still speaking, he
30862turned on his knees with a supple movement, got up, coughed, and
30863went off to another part of the shed.
30864
30865"Eh, you rascal!" Pierre heard the same kind voice saying at the
30866other end of the shed. "So you've come, you rascal? She remembers...
30867Now, now, that'll do!"
30868
30869And the soldier, pushing away a little dog that was jumping up at
30870him, returned to his place and sat down. In his hands he had something
30871wrapped in a rag.
30872
30873"Here, eat a bit, sir," said he, resuming his former respectful tone
30874as he unwrapped and offered Pierre some baked potatoes. "We had soup
30875for dinner and the potatoes are grand!"
30876
30877Pierre had not eaten all day and the smell of the potatoes seemed
30878extremely pleasant to him. He thanked the soldier and began to eat.
30879
30880"Well, are they all right?" said the soldier with a smile. "You
30881should do like this."
30882
30883He took a potato, drew out his clasp knife, cut the potato into
30884two equal halves on the palm of his hand, sprinkled some salt on it
30885from the rag, and handed it to Pierre.
30886
30887"The potatoes are grand!" he said once more. "Eat some like that!"
30888
30889Pierre thought he had never eaten anything that tasted better.
30890
30891"Oh, I'm all right," said he, "but why did they shoot those poor
30892fellows? The last one was hardly twenty."
30893
30894"Tss, tt...!" said the little man. "Ah, what a sin... what a sin!"
30895he added quickly, and as if his words were always waiting ready in his
30896mouth and flew out involuntarily he went on: "How was it, sir, that
30897you stayed in Moscow?"
30898
30899"I didn't think they would come so soon. I stayed accidentally,"
30900replied Pierre.
30901
30902"And how did they arrest you, dear lad? At your house?"
30903
30904"No, I went to look at the fire, and they arrested me there, and
30905tried me as an incendiary."
30906
30907"Where there's law there's injustice," put in the little man.
30908
30909"And have you been here long?" Pierre asked as he munched the last
30910of the potato.
30911
30912"I? It was last Sunday they took me, out of a hospital in Moscow."
30913
30914"Why, are you a soldier then?"
30915
30916"Yes, we are soldiers of the Apsheron regiment. I was dying of
30917fever. We weren't told anything. There were some twenty of us lying
30918there. We had no idea, never guessed at all."
30919
30920"And do you feel sad here?" Pierre inquired.
30921
30922"How can one help it, lad? My name is Platon, and the surname is
30923Karataev," he added, evidently wishing to make it easier for Pierre to
30924address him. "They call me 'little falcon' in the regiment. How is one
30925to help feeling sad? Moscow--she's the mother of cities. How can one
30926see all this and not feel sad? But 'the maggot gnaws the cabbage,
30927yet dies first'; that's what the old folks used to tell us," he
30928added rapidly.
30929
30930"What? What did you say?" asked Pierre.
30931
30932"Who? I?" said Karataev. "I say things happen not as we plan but
30933as God judges," he replied, thinking that he was repeating what he had
30934said before, and immediately continued:
30935
30936"Well, and you, have you a family estate, sir? And a house? So you
30937have abundance, then? And a housewife? And your old parents, are
30938they still living?" he asked.
30939
30940And though it was too dark for Pierre to see, he felt that a
30941suppressed smile of kindliness puckered the soldier's lips as he put
30942these questions. He seemed grieved that Pierre had no parents,
30943especially that he had no mother.
30944
30945"A wife for counsel, a mother-in-law for welcome, but there's none
30946as dear as one's own mother!" said he. "Well, and have you little
30947ones?" he went on asking.
30948
30949Again Pierre's negative answer seemed to distress him, and he
30950hastened to add:
30951
30952"Never mind! You're young folks yet, and please God may still have
30953some. The great thing is to live in harmony...."
30954
30955"But it's all the same now," Pierre could not help saying.
30956
30957"Ah, my dear fellow!" rejoined Karataev, "never decline a prison
30958or a beggar's sack!"
30959
30960He seated himself more comfortably and coughed, evidently
30961preparing to tell a long story.
30962
30963"Well, my dear fellow, I was still living at home," he began. "We
30964had a well-to-do homestead, plenty of land, we peasants lived well and
30965our house was one to thank God for. When Father and we went out mowing
30966there were seven of us. We lived well. We were real peasants. It so
30967happened..."
30968
30969And Platon Karataev told a long story of how he had gone into
30970someone's copse to take wood, how he had been caught by the keeper,
30971had been tried, flogged, and sent to serve as a soldier.
30972
30973"Well, lad," and a smile changed the tone of his voice "we thought
30974it was a misfortune but it turned out a blessing! If it had not been
30975for my sin, my brother would have had to go as a soldier. But he, my
30976younger brother, had five little ones, while I, you see, only left a
30977wife behind. We had a little girl, but God took her before I went as a
30978soldier. I come home on leave and I'll tell you how it was, I look and
30979see that they are living better than before. The yard full of
30980cattle, the women at home, two brothers away earning wages, and only
30981Michael the youngest, at home. Father, he says, 'All my children are
30982the same to me: it hurts the same whichever finger gets bitten. But if
30983Platon hadn't been shaved for a soldier, Michael would have had to
30984go.' called us all to him and, will you believe it, placed us in front
30985of the icons. 'Michael,' he says, 'come here and bow down to his feet;
30986and you, young woman, you bow down too; and you, grandchildren, also
30987bow down before him! Do you understand?' he says. That's how it is,
30988dear fellow. Fate looks for a head. But we are always judging, 'that's
30989not well--that's not right!' Our luck is like water in a dragnet:
30990you pull at it and it bulges, but when you've drawn it out it's empty!
30991That's how it is."
30992
30993And Platon shifted his seat on the straw.
30994
30995After a short silence he rose.
30996
30997"Well, I think you must be sleepy," said he, and began rapidly
30998crossing himself and repeating:
30999
31000"Lord Jesus Christ, holy Saint Nicholas, Frola and Lavra! Lord Jesus
31001Christ, holy Saint Nicholas, Frola and Lavra! Lord Jesus Christ,
31002have mercy on us and save us!" he concluded, then bowed to the ground,
31003got up, sighed, and sat down again on his heap of straw. "That's the
31004way. Lay me down like a stone, O God, and raise me up like a loaf," he
31005muttered as he lay down, pulling his coat over him.
31006
31007"What prayer was that you were saying?" asked Pierre.
31008
31009"Eh?" murmured Platon, who had almost fallen asleep. "What was I
31010saying? I was praying. Don't you pray?"
31011
31012"Yes, I do," said Pierre. "But what was that you said: Frola and
31013Lavra?"
31014
31015"Well, of course," replied Platon quickly, "the horses' saints.
31016One must pity the animals too. Eh, the rascal! Now you've curled up
31017and got warm, you daughter of a bitch!" said Karataev, touching the
31018dog that lay at his feet, and again turning over he fell asleep
31019immediately.
31020
31021Sounds of crying and screaming came from somewhere in the distance
31022outside, and flames were visible through the cracks of the shed, but
31023inside it was quiet and dark. For a long time Pierre did not sleep,
31024but lay with eyes open in the darkness, listening to the regular
31025snoring of Platon who lay beside him, and he felt that the world
31026that had been shattered was once more stirring in his soul with a
31027new beauty and on new and unshakable foundations.
31028
31029
31030
31031
31032
31033CHAPTER XIII
31034
31035
31036Twenty-three soldiers, three officers, and two officials were
31037confined in the shed in which Pierre had been placed and where he
31038remained for four weeks.
31039
31040When Pierre remembered them afterwards they all seemed misty figures
31041to him except Platon Karataev, who always remained in his mind a
31042most vivid and precious memory and the personification of everything
31043Russian, kindly, and round. When Pierre saw his neighbor next
31044morning at dawn the first impression of him, as of something round,
31045was fully confirmed: Platon's whole figure--in a French overcoat
31046girdled with a cord, a soldier's cap, and bast shoes--was round. His
31047head was quite round, his back, chest, shoulders, and even his arms,
31048which he held as if ever ready to embrace something, were rounded, his
31049pleasant smile and his large, gentle brown eyes were also round.
31050
31051Platon Karataev must have been fifty, judging by his stories of
31052campaigns he had been in, told as by an old soldier. He did not
31053himself know his age and was quite unable to determine it. But his
31054brilliantly white, strong teeth which showed in two unbroken
31055semicircles when he laughed--as he often did--were all sound and good,
31056there was not a gray hair in his beard or on his head, and his whole
31057body gave an impression of suppleness and especially of firmness and
31058endurance.
31059
31060His face, despite its fine, rounded wrinkles, had an expression of
31061innocence and youth, his voice was pleasant and musical. But the chief
31062peculiarity of his speech was its directness and appositeness. It
31063was evident that he never considered what he had said or was going
31064to say, and consequently the rapidity and justice of his intonation
31065had an irresistible persuasiveness.
31066
31067His physical strength and agility during the first days of his
31068imprisonment were such that he seemed not to know what fatigue and
31069sickness meant. Every night before lying down, he said: "Lord, lay
31070me down as a stone and raise me up as a loaf!" and every morning on
31071getting up, he said: "I lay down and curled up, I get up and shake
31072myself." And indeed he only had to lie down, to fall asleep like a
31073stone, and he only had to shake himself, to be ready without a
31074moment's delay for some work, just as children are ready to play
31075directly they awake. He could do everything, not very well but not
31076badly. He baked, cooked, sewed, planed, and mended boots. He was
31077always busy, and only at night allowed himself conversation--of
31078which he was fond--and songs. He did not sing like a trained singer
31079who knows he is listened to, but like the birds, evidently giving vent
31080to the sounds in the same way that one stretches oneself or walks
31081about to get rid of stiffness, and the sounds were always
31082high-pitched, mournful, delicate, and almost feminine, and his face at
31083such times was very serious.
31084
31085Having been taken prisoner and allowed his beard to grow, he
31086seemed to have thrown off all that had been forced upon him-
31087everything military and alien to himself--and had returned to his
31088former peasant habits.
31089
31090"A soldier on leave--a shirt outside breeches," he would say.
31091
31092He did not like talking about his life as a soldier, though he did
31093not complain, and often mentioned that he had not been flogged once
31094during the whole of his army service. When he related anything it
31095was generally some old and evidently precious memory of his
31096"Christian" life, as he called his peasant existence. The proverbs, of
31097which his talk was full, were for the most part not the coarse and
31098indecent saws soldiers employ, but those folk sayings which taken
31099without a context seem so insignificant, but when used appositely
31100suddenly acquire a significance of profound wisdom.
31101
31102He would often say the exact opposite of what he had said on a
31103previous occasion, yet both would be right. He liked to talk and he
31104talked well, adorning his speech with terms of endearment and with
31105folk sayings which Pierre thought he invented himself, but the chief
31106charm of his talk lay in the fact that the commonest events--sometimes
31107just such as Pierre had witnessed without taking notice of them-
31108assumed in Karataev's a character of solemn fitness. He liked to
31109hear the folk tales one of the soldiers used to tell of an evening
31110(they were always the same), but most of all he liked to hear
31111stories of real life. He would smile joyfully when listening to such
31112stories, now and then putting in a word or asking a question to make
31113the moral beauty of what he was told clear to himself. Karataev had no
31114attachments, friendships, or love, as Pierre understood them, but
31115loved and lived affectionately with everything life brought him in
31116contact with, particularly with man--not any particular man, but those
31117with whom he happened to be. He loved his dog, his comrades, the
31118French, and Pierre who was his neighbor, but Pierre felt that in spite
31119of Karataev's affectionate tenderness for him (by which he
31120unconsciously gave Pierre's spiritual life its due) he would not
31121have grieved for a moment at parting from him. And Pierre began to
31122feel in the same way toward Karataev.
31123
31124To all the other prisoners Platon Karataev seemed a most ordinary
31125soldier. They called him "little falcon" or "Platosha," chaffed him
31126good-naturedly, and sent him on errands. But to Pierre he always
31127remained what he had seemed that first night: an unfathomable,
31128rounded, eternal personification of the spirit of simplicity and
31129truth.
31130
31131Platon Karataev knew nothing by heart except his prayers. When he
31132began to speak he seemed not to know how he would conclude.
31133
31134Sometimes Pierre, struck by the meaning of his words, would ask
31135him to repeat them, but Platon could never recall what he had said a
31136moment before, just as he never could repeat to Pierre the words of
31137his favorite song: native and birch tree and my heart is sick occurred
31138in it, but when spoken and not sung, no meaning could be got out of
31139it. He did not, and could not, understand the meaning of words apart
31140from their context. Every word and action of his was the manifestation
31141of an activity unknown to him, which was his life. But his life, as he
31142regarded it, had no meaning as a separate thing. It had meaning only
31143as part of a whole of which he was always conscious. His words and
31144actions flowed from him as evenly, inevitably, and spontaneously as
31145fragrance exhales from a flower. He could not understand the value
31146or significance of any word or deed taken separately.
31147
31148
31149
31150
31151
31152CHAPTER XIV
31153
31154
31155When Princess Mary heard from Nicholas that her brother was with the
31156Rostovs at Yaroslavl she at once prepared to go there, in spite of her
31157aunt's efforts to dissuade her--and not merely to go herself but to
31158take her nephew with her. Whether it were difficult or easy,
31159possible or impossible, she did not ask and did not want to know: it
31160was her duty not only herself to be near her brother who was perhaps
31161dying, but to do everything possible to take his son to him, and so
31162she prepared to set off. That she had not heard from Prince Andrew
31163himself, Princess Mary attributed to his being too weak to write or to
31164his considering the long journey too hard and too dangerous for her
31165and his son.
31166
31167In a few days Princess Mary was ready to start. Her equipages were
31168the huge family coach in which she had traveled to Voronezh, a
31169semiopen trap, and a baggage cart. With her traveled Mademoiselle
31170Bourienne, little Nicholas and his tutor, her old nurse, three
31171maids, Tikhon, and a young footman and courier her aunt had sent to
31172accompany her.
31173
31174The usual route through Moscow could not be thought of, and the
31175roundabout way Princess Mary was obliged to take through Lipetsk,
31176Ryazan, Vladimir, and Shuya was very long and, as post horses were not
31177everywhere obtainable, very difficult, and near Ryazan where the
31178French were said to have shown themselves was even dangerous.
31179
31180During this difficult journey Mademoiselle Bourienne, Dessalles, and
31181Princess Mary's servants were astonished at her energy and firmness of
31182spirit. She went to bed later and rose earlier than any of them, and
31183no difficulties daunted her. Thanks to her activity and energy,
31184which infected her fellow travelers, they approached Yaroslavl by
31185the end of the second week.
31186
31187The last days of her stay in Voronezh had been the happiest of her
31188life. Her love for Rostov no longer tormented or agitated her. It
31189filled her whole soul, had become an integral part of herself, and she
31190no longer struggled against it. Latterly she had become convinced that
31191she loved and was beloved, though she never said this definitely to
31192herself in words. She had become convinced of it at her last interview
31193with Nicholas, when he had come to tell her that her brother was
31194with the Rostovs. Not by a single word had Nicholas alluded to the
31195fact that Prince Andrew's relations with Natasha might, if he
31196recovered, be renewed, but Princess Mary saw by his face that he
31197knew and thought of this.
31198
31199Yet in spite of that, his relation to her--considerate, delicate,
31200and loving--not only remained unchanged, but it sometimes seemed to
31201Princess Mary that he was even glad that the family connection between
31202them allowed him to express his friendship more freely. She knew
31203that she loved for the first and only time in her life and felt that
31204she was beloved, and was happy in regard to it.
31205
31206But this happiness on one side of her spiritual nature did not
31207prevent her feeling grief for her brother with full force; on the
31208contrary, that spiritual tranquility on the one side made it the
31209more possible for her to give full play to her feeling for her
31210brother. That feeling was so strong at the moment of leaving
31211Voronezh that those who saw her off, as they looked at her careworn,
31212despairing face, felt sure she would fall ill on the journey. But
31213the very difficulties and preoccupations of the journey, which she
31214took so actively in hand, saved her for a while from her grief and
31215gave her strength.
31216
31217As always happens when traveling, Princess Mary thought only of
31218the journey itself, forgetting its object. But as she approached
31219Yaroslavl the thought of what might await her there--not after many
31220days, but that very evening--again presented itself to her and her
31221agitation increased to its utmost limit.
31222
31223The courier who had been sent on in advance to find out where the
31224Rostovs were staying in Yaroslavl, and in what condition Prince Andrew
31225was, when he met the big coach just entering the town gates was
31226appalled by the terrible pallor of the princess' face that looked
31227out at him from the window.
31228
31229"I have found out everything, your excellency: the Rostovs are
31230staying at the merchant Bronnikov's house, in the Square not far
31231from here, right above the Volga," said the courier.
31232
31233Princess Mary looked at him with frightened inquiry, not
31234understanding why he did not reply to what she chiefly wanted to know:
31235how was her brother? Mademoiselle Bourienne put that question for her.
31236
31237"How is the prince?" she asked.
31238
31239"His excellency is staying in the same house with them."
31240
31241"Then he is alive," thought Princess Mary, and asked in a low voice:
31242"How is he?"
31243
31244"The servants say he is still the same."
31245
31246What "still the same" might mean Princess Mary did not ask, but with
31247an unnoticed glance at little seven-year-old Nicholas, who was sitting
31248in front of her looking with pleasure at the town, she bowed her
31249head and did not raise it again till the heavy coach, rumbling,
31250shaking and swaying, came to a stop. The carriage steps clattered as
31251they were let down.
31252
31253The carriage door was opened. On the left there was water--a great
31254river--and on the right a porch. There were people at the entrance:
31255servants, and a rosy girl with a large plait of black hair, smiling as
31256it seemed to Princess Mary in an unpleasantly affected way. (This
31257was Sonya.) Princess Mary ran up the steps. "This way, this way!" said
31258the girl, with the same artificial smile, and the princess found
31259herself in the hall facing an elderly woman of Oriental type, who came
31260rapidly to meet her with a look of emotion. This was the countess. She
31261embraced Princess Mary and kissed her.
31262
31263"Mon enfant!" she muttered, "je vous aime et vous connais depuis
31264longtemps."*
31265
31266
31267*"My child! I love you and have known you a long time."
31268
31269 Despite her excitement, Princess Mary realized that this was the
31270countess and that it was necessary to say something to her. Hardly
31271knowing how she did it, she contrived to utter a few polite phrases in
31272French in the same tone as those that had been addressed to her, and
31273asked: "How is he?"
31274
31275"The doctor says that he is not in danger," said the countess, but
31276as she spoke she raised her eyes with a sigh, and her gesture conveyed
31277a contradiction of her words.
31278
31279"Where is he? Can I see him--can I?" asked the princess.
31280
31281"One moment, Princess, one moment, my dear! Is this his son?" said
31282the countess, turning to little Nicholas who was coming in with
31283Dessalles. "There will be room for everybody, this is a big house. Oh,
31284what a lovely boy!"
31285
31286The countess took Princess Mary into the drawing room, where Sonya
31287was talking to Mademoiselle Bourienne. The countess caressed the
31288boy, and the old count came in and welcomed the princess. He had
31289changed very much since Princess Mary had last seen him. Then he had
31290been a brisk, cheerful, self-assured old man; now he seemed a pitiful,
31291bewildered person. While talking to Princess Mary he continually
31292looked round as if asking everyone whether he was doing the right
31293thing. After the destruction of Moscow and of his property, thrown out
31294of his accustomed groove he seemed to have lost the sense of his own
31295significance and to feel that there was no longer a place for him in
31296life.
31297
31298In spite of her one desire to see her brother as soon as possible,
31299and her vexation that at the moment when all she wanted was to see him
31300they should be trying to entertain her and pretending to admire her
31301nephew, the princess noticed all that was going on around her and felt
31302the necessity of submitting, for a time, to this new order of things
31303which she had entered. She knew it to be necessary, and though it
31304was hard for her she was not vexed with these people.
31305
31306"This is my niece," said the count, introducing Sonya--"You don't
31307know her, Princess?"
31308
31309Princess Mary turned to Sonya and, trying to stifle the hostile
31310feeling that arose in her toward the girl, she kissed her. But she
31311felt oppressed by the fact that the mood of everyone around her was so
31312far from what was in her own heart.
31313
31314"Where is he?" she asked again, addressing them all.
31315
31316"He is downstairs. Natasha is with him," answered Sonya, flushing.
31317"We have sent to ask. I think you must be tired, Princess."
31318
31319Tears of vexation showed themselves in Princess Mary's eyes. She
31320turned away and was about to ask the countess again how to go to
31321him, when light, impetuous, and seemingly buoyant steps were heard
31322at the door. The princess looked round and saw Natasha coming in,
31323almost running--that Natasha whom she had liked so little at their
31324meeting in Moscow long since.
31325
31326But hardly had the princess looked at Natasha's face before she
31327realized that here was a real comrade in her grief, and consequently a
31328friend. She ran to meet her, embraced her, and began to cry on her
31329shoulder.
31330
31331As soon as Natasha, sitting at the head of Prince Andrew's bed,
31332heard of Princess Mary's arrival, she softly left his room and
31333hastened to her with those swift steps that had sounded buoyant to
31334Princess Mary.
31335
31336There was only one expression on her agitated face when she ran into
31337the drawing room--that of love--boundless love for him, for her, and
31338for all that was near to the man she loved; and of pity, suffering for
31339others, and passionate desire to give herself entirely to helping
31340them. It was plain that at that moment there was in Natasha's heart no
31341thought of herself or of her own relations with Prince Andrew.
31342
31343Princess Mary, with her acute sensibility, understood all this at
31344the first glance at Natasha's face, and wept on her shoulder with
31345sorrowful pleasure.
31346
31347"Come, come to him, Mary," said Natasha, leading her into the
31348other room.
31349
31350Princess Mary raised her head, dried her eyes, and turned to
31351Natasha. She felt that from her she would be able to understand and
31352learn everything.
31353
31354"How..." she began her question but stopped short.
31355
31356She felt that it was impossible to ask, or to answer, in words.
31357Natasha's face eyes would have to tell her all more clearly
31358and profoundly.
31359
31360Natasha was gazing at her, but seemed afraid and in doubt whether to
31361say all she knew or not; she seemed to feel that before those luminous
31362eyes which penetrated into the very depths of her heart, it was
31363impossible not to tell the whole truth which she saw. And suddenly,
31364Natasha's lips twitched, ugly wrinkles gathered round her mouth, and
31365covering her face with her hands she burst into sobs.
31366
31367Princess Mary understood.
31368
31369But she still hoped, and asked, in words she herself did not trust:
31370
31371"But how is his wound? What is his general condition?"
31372
31373"You, you... will see," was all Natasha could say.
31374
31375They sat a little while downstairs near his room till they had
31376left off crying and were able to go to him with calm faces.
31377
31378"How has his whole illness gone? Is it long since he grew worse?
31379When did this happen?" Princess Mary inquired.
31380
31381Natasha told her that at first there had been danger from his
31382feverish condition and the pain he suffered, but at Troitsa that had
31383passed and the doctor had only been afraid of gangrene. That danger
31384had also passed. When they reached Yaroslavl the wound had begun to
31385fester (Natasha knew all about such things as festering) and the
31386doctor had said that the festering might take a normal course. Then
31387fever set in, but the doctor had said the fever was not very serious.
31388
31389"But two days ago this suddenly happened," said Natasha,
31390struggling with her sobs. "I don't know why, but you will see what
31391he is like."
31392
31393"Is he weaker? Thinner?" asked the princess.
31394
31395"No, it's not that, but worse. You will see. O, Mary, he is too
31396good, he cannot, cannot live, because..."
31397
31398
31399
31400
31401
31402CHAPTER XV
31403
31404
31405When Natasha opened Prince Andrew's door with a familiar movement
31406and let Princess Mary pass into the room before her, the princess felt
31407the sobs in her throat. Hard as she had tried to prepare herself,
31408and now tried to remain tranquil, she knew that she would be unable to
31409look at him without tears.
31410
31411The princess understood what Natasha had meant by the words: "two
31412days ago this suddenly happened." She understood those words to mean
31413that he had suddenly softened and that this softening and gentleness
31414were signs of approaching death. As she stepped to the door she
31415already saw in imagination Andrew's face as she remembered it in
31416childhood, a gentle, mild, sympathetic face which he had rarely shown,
31417and which therefore affected her very strongly. She was sure he
31418would speak soft, tender words to her such as her father had uttered
31419before his death, and that she would not be able to bear it and
31420would burst into sobs in his presence. Yet sooner or later it had to
31421be, and she went in. The sobs rose higher and higher in her throat
31422as she more and more clearly distinguished his form and her
31423shortsighted eyes tried to make out his features, and then she saw his
31424face and met his gaze.
31425
31426He was lying in a squirrel-fur dressing gown on a divan,
31427surrounded by pillows. He was thin and pale. In one thin,
31428translucently white hand he held a handkerchief, while with the
31429other he stroked the delicate mustache he had grown, moving his
31430fingers slowly. His eyes gazed at them as they entered.
31431
31432On seeing his face and meeting his eyes Princess Mary's pace
31433suddenly slackened, she felt her tears dry up and her sobs ceased. She
31434suddenly felt guilty and grew timid on catching the expression of
31435his face and eyes.
31436
31437"But in what am I to blame?" she asked herself. And his cold,
31438stern look replied: "Because you are alive and thinking of the living,
31439while I..."
31440
31441In the deep gaze that seemed to look not outwards but
31442inwards there was an almost hostile expression as he slowly regarded
31443his sister and Natasha.
31444
31445He kissed his sister, holding her hand in his as was their wont.
31446
31447"How are you, Mary? How did you manage to get here?" said he in a
31448voice as calm and aloof as his look.
31449
31450Had he screamed in agony, that scream would not have struck such
31451horror into Princess Mary's heart as the tone of his voice.
31452
31453"And have you brought little Nicholas?" he asked in the same slow,
31454quiet manner and with an obvious effort to remember.
31455
31456"How are you now?" said Princess Mary, herself surprised at what she
31457was saying.
31458
31459"That, my dear, you must ask the doctor," he replied, and again
31460making an evident effort to be affectionate, he said with his lips
31461only (his words clearly did not correspond to his thoughts):
31462
31463"Merci, chere amie, d'etre venue."*
31464
31465
31466*"Thank you for coming, my dear."
31467
31468
31469Princess Mary pressed his hand. The pressure made him wince just
31470perceptibly. He was silent, and she did not know what to say. She
31471now understood what had happened to him two days before. In his words,
31472his tone, and especially in that calm, almost antagonistic look
31473could be felt an estrangement from everything belonging to this world,
31474terrible in one who is alive. Evidently only with an effort did he
31475understand anything living; but it was obvious that he failed to
31476understand, not because he lacked the power to do so but because he
31477understood something else--something the living did not and could
31478not understand--and which wholly occupied his mind.
31479
31480"There, you see how strangely fate has brought us together," said
31481he, breaking the silence and pointing to Natasha. "She looks after
31482me all the time."
31483
31484Princess Mary heard him and did not understand how he could say such
31485a thing. He, the sensitive, tender Prince Andrew, how could he say
31486that, before her whom he loved and who loved him? Had he expected to
31487live he could not have said those words in that offensively cold tone.
31488If he had not known that he was dying, how could he have failed to
31489pity her and how could he speak like that in her presence? The only
31490explanation was that he was indifferent, because something else,
31491much more important, had been revealed to him.
31492
31493The conversation was cold and disconnected and continually broke
31494off.
31495
31496"Mary came by way of Ryazan," said Natasha.
31497
31498Prince Andrew did not notice that she called his sister Mary, and
31499only after calling her so in his presence did Natasha notice it
31500herself.
31501
31502"Really?" he asked.
31503
31504"They told her that all Moscow has been burned down, and that..."
31505
31506Natasha stopped. It was impossible to talk. It was plain that he was
31507making an effort to listen, but could not do so.
31508
31509"Yes, they say it's burned," he said. "It's a great pity," and he
31510gazed straight before him, absently stroking his mustache with his
31511fingers.
31512
31513"And so you have met Count Nicholas, Mary?" Prince Andrew suddenly
31514said, evidently wishing to speak pleasantly to them. "He wrote here
31515that he took a great liking to you," he went on simply and calmly,
31516evidently unable to understand all the complex significance his
31517words had for living people. "If you liked him too, it would be a good
31518thing for you to get married," he added rather more quickly, as if
31519pleased at having found words he had long been seeking.
31520
31521Princess Mary heard his words but they had no meaning for her,
31522except as a proof of how far away he now was from everything living.
31523
31524"Why talk of me?" she said quietly and glanced at Natasha.
31525
31526Natasha, who felt her glance, did not look at her. All three were
31527again silent.
31528
31529"Andrew, would you like..." Princess Mary suddenly said in a
31530trembling voice, "would you like to see little Nicholas? He is
31531always talking about you!"
31532
31533Prince Andrew smiled just perceptibly and for the first time, but
31534Princess Mary, who knew his face so well, saw with horror that he
31535did not smile with pleasure or affection for his son, but with
31536quiet, gentle irony because he thought she was trying what she
31537believed to be the last means of arousing him.
31538
31539"Yes, I shall be very glad to see him. Is he quite well?"
31540
31541When little Nicholas was brought into Prince Andrew's room he looked
31542at his father with frightened eyes, but did not cry, because no one
31543else was crying. Prince Andrew kissed him and evidently did not know
31544what to say to him.
31545
31546When Nicholas had been led away, Princess Mary again went up to
31547her brother, kissed him, and unable to restrain her tears any longer
31548began to cry.
31549
31550He looked at her attentively.
31551
31552"Is it about Nicholas?" he asked.
31553
31554Princess Mary nodded her head, weeping.
31555
31556"Mary, you know the Gosp..." but he broke off.
31557
31558"What did you say?"
31559
31560"Nothing. You mustn't cry here," he said, looking at her with the
31561same cold expression.
31562
31563
31564When Princess Mary began to cry, he understood that she was crying
31565at the thought that little Nicholas would be left without a father.
31566With a great effort he tried to return to life and to see things
31567from their point of view.
31568
31569"Yes, to them it must seem sad!" he thought. "But how simple it is.
31570
31571"The fowls of the air sow not, neither do they reap, yet your Father
31572feedeth them," he said to himself and wished to say to Princess
31573Mary; "but no, they will take it their own way, they won't understand!
31574They can't understand that all those feelings they prize so--all our
31575feelings, all those ideas that seem so important to us, are
31576unnecessary. We cannot understand one another," and he remained
31577silent.
31578
31579
31580Prince Andrew's little son was seven. He could scarcely read, and
31581knew nothing. After that day he lived through many things, gaining
31582knowledge, observation, and experience, but had he possessed all the
31583faculties he afterwards acquired, he could not have had a better or
31584more profound understanding of the meaning of the scene he had
31585witnessed between his father, Mary, and Natasha, than he had then.
31586He understood it completely, and, leaving the room without crying,
31587went silently up to Natasha who had come out with him and looked shyly
31588at her with his beautiful, thoughtful eyes, then his uplifted, rosy
31589upper lip trembled and leaning his head against her he began to cry.
31590
31591After that he avoided Dessalles and the countess who caressed him
31592and either sat alone or came timidly to Princess Mary, or to Natasha
31593of whom he seemed even fonder than of his aunt, and clung to them
31594quietly and shyly.
31595
31596When Princess Mary had left Prince Andrew she fully understood
31597what Natasha's face had told her. She did not speak any more to
31598Natasha of hopes of saving his life. She took turns with her beside
31599his sofa, and did not cry any more, but prayed continually, turning in
31600soul to that Eternal and Unfathomable, whose presence above the
31601dying man was now so evident.
31602
31603
31604
31605
31606
31607CHAPTER XVI
31608
31609
31610Not only did Prince Andrew know he would die, but he felt that he
31611was dying and was already half dead. He was conscious of an
31612aloofness from everything earthly and a strange and joyous lightness
31613of existence. Without haste or agitation he awaited what was coming.
31614That inexorable, eternal, distant, and unknown the presence of which
31615he had felt continually all his life--was now near to him and, by
31616the strange lightness he experienced, almost comprehensible and
31617palpable...
31618
31619
31620Formerly he had feared the end. He had twice experienced that
31621terribly tormenting fear of death--the end--but now he no longer
31622understood that fear.
31623
31624 He had felt it for the first time when the shell spun like a top
31625before him, and he looked at the fallow field, the bushes, and the
31626sky, and knew that he was face to face with death. When he came to
31627himself after being wounded and the flower of eternal, unfettered love
31628had instantly unfolded itself in his soul as if freed from the bondage
31629of life that had restrained it, he no longer feared death and ceased
31630to think about it.
31631
31632During the hours of solitude, suffering, and partial delirium he
31633spent after he was wounded, the more deeply he penetrated into the new
31634principle of eternal love revealed to him, the more he unconsciously
31635detached himself from earthly life. To love everything and everybody
31636and always to sacrifice oneself for love meant not to love anyone, not
31637to live this earthly life. And the more imbued he became with that
31638principle of love, the more he renounced life and the more
31639completely he destroyed that dreadful barrier which--in the absence of
31640such love--stands between life and death. When during those first days
31641he remembered that he would have to die, he said to himself: "Well,
31642what of it? So much the better!"
31643
31644But after the night in Mytishchi when, half delirious, he had seen
31645her for whom he longed appear before him and, having pressed her
31646hand to his lips, had shed gentle, happy tears, love for a
31647particular woman again crept unobserved into his heart and once more
31648bound him to life. And joyful and agitating thoughts began to occupy
31649his mind. Recalling the moment at the ambulance station when he had
31650seen Kuragin, he could not now regain the feeling he then had, but was
31651tormented by the question whether Kuragin was alive. And he dared
31652not inquire.
31653
31654His illness pursued its normal physical course, but what Natasha
31655referred to when she said: "This suddenly happened," had occurred
31656two days before Princess Mary arrived. It was the last spiritual
31657struggle between life and death, in which death gained the victory. It
31658was the unexpected realization of the fact that he still valued life
31659as presented to him in the form of his love for Natasha, and a last,
31660though ultimately vanquished, attack of terror before the unknown.
31661
31662It was evening. As usual after dinner he was slightly feverish,
31663and his thoughts were preternaturally clear. Sonya was sitting by
31664the table. He began to doze. Suddenly a feeling of happiness seized
31665him.
31666
31667"Ah, she has come!" thought he.
31668
31669And so it was: in Sonya's place sat Natasha who had just come in
31670noiselessly.
31671
31672Since she had begun looking after him, he had always experienced
31673this physical consciousness of her nearness. She was sitting in an
31674armchair placed sideways, screening the light of the candle from
31675him, and was knitting a stocking. She had learned to knit stockings
31676since Prince Andrew had casually mentioned that no one nursed the sick
31677so well as old nurses who knit stockings, and that there is
31678something soothing in the knitting of stockings. The needles clicked
31679lightly in her slender, rapidly moving hands, and he could clearly see
31680the thoughtful profile of her drooping face. She moved, and the ball
31681rolled off her knees. She started, glanced round at him, and screening
31682the candle with her hand stooped carefully with a supple and exact
31683movement, picked up the ball, and regained her former position.
31684
31685He looked at her without moving and saw that she wanted to draw a
31686deep breath after stooping, but refrained from doing so and breathed
31687cautiously.
31688
31689At the Troitsa monastery they had spoken of the past, and he had
31690told her that if he lived he would always thank God for his wound
31691which had brought them together again, but after that they never spoke
31692of the future.
31693
31694"Can it or can it not be?" he now thought as he looked at her and
31695listened to the light click of the steel needles. "Can fate have
31696brought me to her so strangely only for me to die?... Is it possible
31697that the truth of life has been revealed to me only to show me that
31698I have spent my life in falsity? I love her more than anything in
31699the world! But what am I to do if I love her?" he thought, and he
31700involuntarily groaned, from a habit acquired during his sufferings.
31701
31702On hearing that sound Natasha put down the stocking, leaned nearer
31703to him, and suddenly, noticing his shining eyes, stepped lightly up to
31704him and bent over him.
31705
31706"You are not asleep?"
31707
31708"No, I have been looking at you a long time. I felt you come in.
31709No one else gives me that sense of soft tranquillity that you do...
31710that light. I want to weep for joy."
31711
31712Natasha drew closer to him. Her face shone with rapturous joy.
31713
31714"Natasha, I love you too much! More than anything in the world."
31715
31716"And I!"--She turned away for an instant. "Why too much?" she asked.
31717
31718"Why too much?... Well, what do you, what do you feel in your
31719soul, your whole soul--shall I live? What do you think?"
31720
31721"I am sure of it, sure!" Natasha almost shouted, taking hold of both
31722his hands with a passionate movement.
31723
31724He remained silent awhile.
31725
31726"How good it would be!" and taking her hand he kissed it.
31727
31728Natasha felt happy and agitated, but at once remembered that this
31729would not do and that he had to be quiet.
31730
31731"But you have not slept," she said, repressing her joy. "Try to
31732sleep... please!"
31733
31734He pressed her hand and released it, and she went back to the candle
31735and sat down again in her former position. Twice she turned and looked
31736at him, and her eyes met his beaming at her. She set herself a task on
31737her stocking and resolved not to turn round till it was finished.
31738
31739Soon he really shut his eyes and fell asleep. He did not sleep
31740long and suddenly awoke with a start and in a cold perspiration.
31741
31742As he fell asleep he had still been thinking of the subject that now
31743always occupied his mind--about life and death, and chiefly about
31744death. He felt himself nearer to it.
31745
31746"Love? What is love?" he thought.
31747
31748"Love hinders death. Love is life. All, everything that I
31749understand, I understand only because I love. Everything is,
31750everything exists, only because I love. Everything is united by it
31751alone. Love is God, and to die means that I, a particle of love, shall
31752return to the general and eternal source." These thoughts seemed to
31753him comforting. But they were only thoughts. Something was lacking
31754in them, they were not clear, they were too one-sidedly personal and
31755brain-spun. And there was the former agitation and obscurity. He
31756fell asleep.
31757
31758He dreamed that he was lying in the room he really was in, but
31759that he was quite well and unwounded. Many various, indifferent, and
31760insignificant people appeared before him. He talked to them and
31761discussed something trivial. They were preparing to go away somewhere.
31762Prince Andrew dimly realized that all this was trivial and that he had
31763more important cares, but he continued to speak, surprising them by
31764empty witticisms. Gradually, unnoticed, all these persons began to
31765disappear and a single question, that of the closed door, superseded
31766all else. He rose and went to the door to bolt and lock it. Everything
31767depended on whether he was, or was not, in time to lock it. He went,
31768and tried to hurry, but his legs refused to move and he knew he
31769would not be in time to lock the door though he painfully strained all
31770his powers. He was seized by an agonizing fear. And that fear was
31771the fear of death. It stood behind the door. But just when he was
31772clumsily creeping toward the door, that dreadful something on the
31773other side was already pressing against it and forcing its way in.
31774Something not human--death--was breaking in through that door, and had
31775to be kept out. He seized the door, making a final effort to hold it
31776back--to lock it was no longer possible--but his efforts were weak and
31777clumsy and the door, pushed from behind by that terror, opened and
31778closed again.
31779
31780Once again it pushed from outside. His last superhuman efforts
31781were vain and both halves of the door noiselessly opened. It
31782entered, and it was death, and Prince Andrew died.
31783
31784But at the instant he died, Prince Andrew remembered that he was
31785asleep, and at the very instant he died, having made an effort, he
31786awoke.
31787
31788"Yes, it was death! I died--and woke up. Yes, death is an
31789awakening!" And all at once it grew light in his soul and the veil
31790that had till then concealed the unknown was lifted from his spiritual
31791vision. He felt as if powers till then confined within him had been
31792liberated, and that strange lightness did not again leave him.
31793
31794When, waking in a cold perspiration, he moved on the divan,
31795Natasha went up and asked him what was the matter. He did not answer
31796and looked at her strangely, not understanding.
31797
31798That was what had happened to him two days before Princess Mary's
31799arrival. From that day, as the doctor expressed it, the wasting
31800fever assumed a malignant character, but what the doctor said did
31801not interest Natasha, she saw the terrible moral symptoms which to her
31802were more convincing.
31803
31804From that day an awakening from life came to Prince Andrew
31805together with his awakening from sleep. And compared to the duration
31806of life it did not seem to him slower than an awakening from sleep
31807compared to the duration of a dream.
31808
31809There was nothing terrible or violent in this comparatively slow
31810awakening.
31811
31812His last days and hours passed in an ordinary and simple way. Both
31813Princess Mary and Natasha, who did not leave him, felt this. They
31814did not weep or shudder and during these last days they themselves
31815felt that they were not attending on him (he was no longer there, he
31816had left them) but on what reminded them most closely of him--his
31817body. Both felt this so strongly that the outward and terrible side of
31818death did not affect them and they did not feel it necessary to foment
31819their grief. Neither in his presence nor out of it did they weep,
31820nor did they ever talk to one another about him. They felt that they
31821could not express in words what they understood.
31822
31823They both saw that he was sinking slowly and quietly, deeper and
31824deeper, away from them, and they both knew that this had to be so
31825and that it was right.
31826
31827He confessed, and received communion: everyone came to take leave of
31828him. When they brought his son to him, he pressed his lips to the
31829boy's and turned away, not because he felt it hard and sad (Princess
31830Mary and Natasha understood that) but simply because he thought it was
31831all that was required of him, but when they told him to bless the boy,
31832he did what was demanded and looked round as if asking whether there
31833was anything else he should do.
31834
31835When the last convulsions of the body, which the spirit was leaving,
31836occurred, Princess Mary and Natasha were present.
31837
31838"Is it over?" said Princess Mary when his body had for a few minutes
31839lain motionless, growing cold before them. Natasha went up, looked
31840at the dead eyes, and hastened to close them. She closed them but
31841did not kiss them, but clung to that which reminded her most nearly of
31842him--his body.
31843
31844"Where has he gone? Where is he now?..."
31845
31846When the body, washed and dressed, lay in the coffin on a table,
31847everyone came to take leave of him and they all wept.
31848
31849Little Nicholas cried because his heart was rent by painful
31850perplexity. The countess and Sonya cried from pity for Natasha and
31851because he was no more. The old count cried because he felt that
31852before long, he, too, must take the same terrible step.
31853
31854Natasha and Princess Mary also wept now, but not because of their
31855own personal grief; they wept with a reverent and softening emotion
31856which had taken possession of their souls at the consciousness of
31857the simple and solemn mystery of death that had been accomplished in
31858their presence.
31859
31860
31861
31862
31863
31864BOOK THIRTEEN: 1812
31865
31866
31867
31868
31869
31870CHAPTER I
31871
31872
31873Man's mind cannot grasp the causes of events in their
31874completeness, but the desire to find those causes is implanted in
31875man's soul. And without considering the multiplicity and complexity of
31876the conditions any one of which taken separately may seem to be the
31877cause, he snatches at the first approximation to a cause that seems to
31878him intelligible and says: "This is the cause!" In historical events
31879(where the actions of men are the subject of observation) the first
31880and most primitive approximation to present itself was the will of the
31881gods and, after that, the will of those who stood in the most
31882prominent position--the heroes of history. But we need only
31883penetrate to the essence of any historic event--which lies in the
31884activity of the general mass of men who take part in it--to be
31885convinced that the will of the historic hero does not control the
31886actions of the mass but is itself continually controlled. It may
31887seem to be a matter of indifference whether we understand the
31888meaning of historical events this way or that; yet there is the same
31889difference between a man who says that the people of the West moved on
31890the East because Napoleon wished it and a man who says that this
31891happened because it had to happen, as there is between those who
31892declared that the earth was stationary and that the planets moved
31893round it and those who admitted that they did not know what upheld the
31894earth, but knew there were laws directing its movement and that of the
31895other planets. There is, and can be, no cause of an historical event
31896except the one cause of all causes. But there are laws directing
31897events, and some of these laws are known to us while we are
31898conscious of others we cannot comprehend. The discovery of these
31899laws is only possible when we have quite abandoned the
31900attempt to find the cause in the will of some one man, just as the
31901discovery of the laws of the motion of the planets was possible only
31902when men abandoned the conception of the fixity of the earth.
31903
31904The historians consider that, next to the battle of Borodino and the
31905occupation of Moscow by the enemy and its destruction by fire, the
31906most important episode of the war of 1812 was the movement of the
31907Russian army from the Ryazana to the Kaluga road and to the Tarutino
31908camp--the so-called flank march across the Krasnaya Pakhra River. They
31909ascribe the glory of that achievement of genius to different men and
31910dispute as to whom the honor is due. Even foreign historians,
31911including the French, acknowledge the genius of the Russian commanders
31912when they speak of that flank march. But it is hard to understand
31913why military writers, and following them others, consider this flank
31914march to be the profound conception of some one man who saved Russia
31915and destroyed Napoleon. In the first place it is hard to understand
31916where the profundity and genius of this movement lay, for not much
31917mental effort was needed to see that the best position for an army
31918when it is not being attacked is where there are most provisions;
31919and even a dull boy of thirteen could have guessed that the best
31920position for an army after its retreat from Moscow in 1812 was on
31921the Kaluga road. So it is impossible to understand by what reasoning
31922the historians reach the conclusion that this maneuver was a
31923profound one. And it is even more difficult to understand just why
31924they think that this maneuver was calculated to save Russia and
31925destroy the French; for this flank march, had it been preceded,
31926accompanied, or followed by other circumstances, might have proved
31927ruinous to the Russians and salutary for the French. If the position
31928of the Russian army really began to improve from the time of that
31929march, it does not at all follow that the march was the cause of it.
31930
31931That flank march might not only have failed to give any advantage to
31932the Russian army, but might in other circumstances have led to its
31933destruction. What would have happened had Moscow not burned down? If
31934Murat had not lost sight of the Russians? If Napoleon had not remained
31935inactive? If the Russian army at Krasnaya Pakhra had given battle as
31936Bennigsen and Barclay advised? What would have happened had the French
31937attacked the Russians while they were marching beyond the Pakhra? What
31938would have happened if on approaching Tarutino, Napoleon had
31939attacked the Russians with but a tenth of the energy he had shown when
31940he attacked them at Smolensk? What would have happened had the
31941French moved on Petersburg?... In any of these eventualities the flank
31942march that brought salvation might have proved disastrous.
31943
31944The third and most incomprehensible thing is that people studying
31945history deliberately avoid seeing that this flank march cannot be
31946attributed to any one man, that no one ever foresaw it, and that in
31947reality, like the retreat from Fili, it did not suggest itself to
31948anyone in its entirety, but resulted--moment by moment, step by
31949step, event by event--from an endless number of most diverse
31950circumstances and was only seen in its entirety when it had been
31951accomplished and belonged to the past.
31952
31953At the council at Fili the prevailing thought in the minds of the
31954Russian commanders was the one naturally suggesting itself, namely,
31955a direct retreat by the Nizhni road. In proof of this there is the
31956fact that the majority of the council voted for such a retreat, and
31957above all there is the well-known conversation after the council,
31958between the commander in chief and Lanskoy, who was in charge of the
31959commissariat department. Lanskoy informed the commander in chief
31960that the army supplies were for the most part stored along the Oka
31961in the Tula and Ryazan provinces, and that if they retreated on Nizhni
31962the army would be separated from its supplies by the broad river
31963Oka, which cannot be crossed early in winter. This was the first
31964indication of the necessity of deviating from what had previously
31965seemed the most natural course--a direct retreat on Nizhni-Novgorod.
31966The army turned more to the south, along the Ryazan road and nearer to
31967its supplies. Subsequently the inactivity of the French (who even
31968lost sight of the Russian army), concern for the safety of the arsenal
31969at Tula, and especially the advantages of drawing nearer to its
31970supplies caused the army to turn still further south to the Tula road.
31971Having crossed over, by a forced march, to the Tula road beyond the
31972Pakhra, the Russian commanders intended to remain at Podolsk and had
31973no thought of the Tarutino position; but innumerable circumstances and
31974the reappearance of French troops who had for a time lost touch with
31975the Russians, and projects of giving battle, and above all the
31976abundance of provisions in Kaluga province, obliged our army to turn
31977still more to the south and to cross from the Tula to the Kaluga
31978road and go to Tarutino, which was between the roads along which those
31979supplies lay. Just as it is impossible to say when it was decided to
31980abandon Moscow, so it is impossible to say precisely when, or by whom,
31981it was decided to move to Tarutino. Only when the army had got
31982there, as the result of innumerable and varying forces, did people
31983begin to assure themselves that they had desired this movement and
31984long ago foreseen its result.
31985
31986
31987
31988
31989
31990CHAPTER II
31991
31992
31993The famous flank movement merely consisted in this: after the
31994advance of the French had ceased, the Russian army, which had been
31995continually retreating straight back from the invaders, deviated
31996from that direct course and, not finding itself pursued, was naturally
31997drawn toward the district where supplies were abundant.
31998
31999If instead of imagining to ourselves commanders of genius leading
32000the Russian army, we picture that army without any leaders, it could
32001not have done anything but make a return movement toward Moscow,
32002describing an arc in the direction where most provisions were to be
32003found and where the country was richest.
32004
32005That movement from the Nizhni to the Ryazan, Tula, and Kaluga
32006roads was so natural that even the Russian marauders moved in that
32007direction, and demands were sent from Petersburg for Kutuzov to take
32008his army that way. At Tarutino Kutuzov received what was almost a
32009reprimand from the Emperor for having moved his army along the
32010Ryazan road, and the Emperor's letter indicated to him the very
32011position he had already occupied near Kaluga.
32012
32013Having rolled like a ball in the direction of the impetus given by
32014the whole campaign and by the battle of Borodino, the Russian army-
32015when the strength of that impetus was exhausted and no fresh push
32016was received--assumed the position natural to it.
32017
32018Kutuzov's merit lay, not in any strategic maneuver of genius, as
32019it is called, but in the fact that he alone understood the
32020significance of what had happened. He alone then understood the
32021meaning of the French army's inactivity, he alone continued to
32022assert that the battle of Borodino had been a victory, he alone--who
32023as commander in chief might have been expected to be eager to
32024attack--employed his whole strength to restrain the Russian army
32025from useless engagements.
32026
32027The beast wounded at Borodino was lying where the fleeing hunter had
32028left him; but whether he was still alive, whether he was strong and
32029merely lying low, the hunter did not know. Suddenly the beast was
32030heard to moan.
32031
32032The moan of that wounded beast (the French army) which betrayed
32033its calamitous condition was the sending of Lauriston to Kutuzov's
32034camp with overtures for peace.
32035
32036Napoleon, with his usual assurance that whatever entered his head
32037was right, wrote to Kutuzov the first words that occurred to him,
32038though they were meaningless.
32039
32040
32041MONSIEUR LE PRINCE KOUTOUZOV: I am sending one of my
32042adjutants-general to discuss several interesting questions with you. I
32043beg your Highness to credit what he says to you, especially when he
32044expresses the sentiment of esteem and special regard I have long
32045entertained for your person. This letter having no other object, I
32046pray God, monsieur le Prince Koutouzov, to keep you in His holy and
32047gracious protection!
32048
32049NAPOLEON
32050
32051MOSCOW, OCTOBER 30, 1812
32052
32053
32054Kutuzov replied: "I should be cursed by posterity were I looked on
32055as the initiator of a settlement of any sort. Such is the present
32056spirit of my nation." But he continued to exert all his powers to
32057restrain his troops from attacking.
32058
32059During the month that the French troops were pillaging in Moscow and
32060the Russian troops were quietly encamped at Tarutino, a change had
32061taken place in the relative strength of the two armies--both in spirit
32062and in number--as a result of which the superiority had passed to
32063the Russian side. Though the condition and numbers of the French
32064army were unknown to the Russians, as soon as that change occurred the
32065need of attacking at once showed itself by countless signs. These
32066signs were: Lauriston's mission; the abundance of provisions at
32067Tarutino; the reports coming in from all sides of the inactivity and
32068disorder of the French; the flow of recruits to our regiments; the
32069fine weather; the long rest the Russian soldiers had enjoyed, and
32070the impatience to do what they had been assembled for, which usually
32071shows itself in an army that has been resting; curiosity as to what
32072the French army, so long lost sight of, was doing; the boldness with
32073which our outposts now scouted close up to the French stationed at
32074Tarutino; the news of easy successes gained by peasants and
32075guerrilla troops over the French, the envy aroused by this; the desire
32076for revenge that lay in the heart of every Russian as long as the
32077French were in Moscow, and (above all) a dim consciousness in every
32078soldier's mind that the relative strength of the armies had changed
32079and that the advantage was now on our side. There was a substantial
32080change in the relative strength, and an advance had become inevitable.
32081And at once, as a clock begins to strike and chime as soon as the
32082minute hand has completed a full circle, this change was shown by an
32083increased activity, whirring, and chiming in the higher spheres.
32084
32085
32086
32087
32088
32089CHAPTER III
32090
32091
32092The Russian army was commanded by Kutuzov and his staff, and also by
32093the Emperor from Petersburg. Before the news of the abandonment of
32094Moscow had been received in Petersburg, a detailed plan of the whole
32095campaign had been drawn up and sent to Kutuzov for his guidance.
32096Though this plan had been drawn up on the supposition that Moscow
32097was still in our hands, it was approved by the staff and accepted as a
32098basis for action. Kutuzov only replied that movements arranged from
32099a distance were always difficult to execute. So fresh instructions
32100were sent for the solution of difficulties that might be
32101encountered, as well as fresh people who were to watch Kutuzov's
32102actions and report upon them.
32103
32104Besides this, the whole staff of the Russian army was now
32105reorganized. The posts left vacant by Bagration, who had been
32106killed, and by Barclay, who had gone away in dudgeon, had to be
32107filled. Very serious consideration was given to the question whether
32108it would be better to put A in B's place and B in D's, or on the
32109contrary to put D in A's place, and so on--as if anything more than
32110A's or B's satisfaction depended on this.
32111
32112As a result of the hostility between Kutuzov and Bennigsen, his
32113Chief of Staff, the presence of confidential representatives of the
32114Emperor, and these transfers, a more than usually complicated play
32115of parties was going on among the staff of the army. A was undermining
32116B, D was undermining C, and so on in all possible combinations and
32117permutations. In all these plottings the subject of intrigue was
32118generally the conduct of the war, which all these men believed they
32119were directing; but this affair of the war went on independently of
32120them, as it had to go: that is, never in the way people devised, but
32121flowing always from the essential attitude of the masses. Only in
32122the highest spheres did all these schemes, crossings, and
32123interminglings appear to be a true reflection of what had to happen.
32124
32125
32126Prince Michael Ilarionovich! (wrote the Emperor on the second of
32127October in a letter that reached Kutuzov after the battle at Tarutino)
32128Since September 2 Moscow has been in the hands of the enemy. Your last
32129reports were written on the twentieth, and during all this time not
32130only has no action been taken against the enemy or for the relief of
32131the ancient capital, but according to your last report you have even
32132retreated farther. Serpukhov is already occupied by an enemy
32133detachment and Tula with its famous arsenal so indispensable to the
32134army, is in danger. From General Wintzingerode's reports, I see that
32135an enemy corps of ten thousand men is moving on the Petersburg road.
32136Another corps of several thousand men is moving on Dmitrov. A third
32137has advanced along the Vladimir road, and a fourth, rather
32138considerable detachment is stationed between Ruza and Mozhaysk.
32139Napoleon himself was in Moscow as late as the twenty-fifth. In view of
32140all this information, when the enemy has scattered his forces in large
32141detachments, and with Napoleon and his Guards in Moscow, is it
32142possible that the enemy's forces confronting you are so considerable
32143as not to allow of your taking the offensive? On the contrary, he is
32144probably pursuing you with detachments, or at most with an army
32145corps much weaker than the army entrusted to you. It would seem
32146that, availing yourself of these circumstances, you might
32147advantageously attack a weaker one and annihilate him, or at least
32148oblige him to retreat, retaining in our hands an important part of the
32149provinces now occupied by the enemy, and thereby averting danger
32150from Tula and other towns in the interior. You will be responsible
32151if the enemy is able to direct a force of any size against
32152Petersburg to threaten this capital in which it has not been
32153possible to retain many troops; for with the army entrusted to you,
32154and acting with resolution and energy, you have ample means to avert
32155this fresh calamity. Remember that you have still to answer to our
32156offended country for the loss of Moscow. You have experienced my
32157readiness to reward you. That readiness will not weaken in me, but I
32158and Russia have a right to expect from you all the zeal, firmness, and
32159success which your intellect, military talent, and the courage of
32160the troops you command justify us in expecting.
32161
32162
32163But by the time this letter, which proved that the real relation
32164of the forces had already made itself felt in Petersburg, was
32165dispatched, Kutuzov had found himself unable any longer to restrain
32166the army he commanded from attacking and a battle had taken place.
32167
32168On the second of October a Cossack, Shapovalov, who was out
32169scouting, killed one hare and wounded another. Following the wounded
32170hare he made his way far into the forest and came upon the left
32171flank of Murat's army, encamped there without any precautions. The
32172Cossack laughingly told his comrades how he had almost fallen into the
32173hands of the French. A cornet, hearing the story, informed his
32174commander.
32175
32176The Cossack was sent for and questioned. The Cossack officers wished
32177to take advantage of this chance to capture some horses, but one of
32178the superior officers, who was acquainted with the higher authorities,
32179reported the incident to a general on the staff. The state of
32180things on the staff had of late been exceedingly strained. Ermolov had
32181been to see Bennigsen a few days previously and had entreated him to
32182use his influence with the commander in chief to induce him to take
32183the offensive.
32184
32185"If I did not know you I should think you did not want what you
32186are asking for. I need only advise anything and his Highness is sure
32187to do the opposite," replied Bennigsen.
32188
32189The Cossack's report, confirmed by horse patrols who were sent
32190out, was the final proof that events had matured. The tightly coiled
32191spring was released, the clock began to whirr and the chimes to
32192play. Despite all his supposed power, his intellect, his experience,
32193and his knowledge of men, Kutuzov--having taken into consideration the
32194Cossack's report, a note from Bennigsen who sent personal reports to
32195the Emperor, the wishes he supposed the Emperor to hold, and the
32196fact that all the generals expressed the same wish--could no longer
32197check the inevitable movement, and gave the order to do what he
32198regarded as useless and harmful--gave his approval, that is, to the
32199accomplished fact.
32200
32201
32202
32203
32204
32205CHAPTER IV
32206
32207
32208Bennigsen's note and the Cossack's information that the left flank
32209of the French was unguarded were merely final indications that it
32210was necessary to order an attack, and it was fixed for the fifth of
32211October.
32212
32213On the morning of the fourth of October Kutuzov signed the
32214dispositions. Toll read them to Ermolov, asking him to attend to the
32215further arrangements.
32216
32217"All right--all right. I haven't time just now," replied Ermolov,
32218and left the hut.
32219
32220The dispositions drawn up by Toll were very good. As in the
32221Austerlitz dispositions, it was written--though not in German this
32222time:
32223
32224"The First Column will march here and here," "the Second Column will
32225march there and there," and so on; and on paper, all these columns
32226arrived at their places at the appointed time and destroyed the enemy.
32227Everything had been admirably thought out as is usual in dispositions,
32228and as is always the case, not a single column reached its place at
32229the appointed time.
32230
32231When the necessary number of copies of the dispositions had been
32232prepared, an officer was summoned and sent to deliver them to
32233Ermolov to deal with. A young officer of the Horse Guards, Kutuzov's
32234orderly, pleased at the importance of the mission entrusted to him,
32235went to Ermolov's quarters.
32236
32237"Gone away," said Ermolov's orderly.
32238
32239The officer of the Horse Guards went to a general with whom
32240Ermolov was often to be found.
32241
32242"No, and the general's out too."
32243
32244The officer, mounting his horse, rode off to someone else.
32245
32246"No, he's gone out."
32247
32248"If only they don't make me responsible for this delay! What a
32249nuisance it is!" thought the officer, and he rode round the whole
32250camp. One man said he had seen Ermolov ride past with some other
32251generals, others said he must have returned home. The officer searched
32252till six o'clock in the evening without even stopping to eat.
32253Ermolov was nowhere to be found and no one knew where he was. The
32254officer snatched a little food at a comrade's, and rode again to the
32255vanguard to find Miloradovich. Miloradovich too was away, but here
32256he was told that he had gone to a ball at General Kikin's and that
32257Ermolov was probably there too.
32258
32259"But where is it?"
32260
32261"Why, there, over at Echkino," said a Cossack officer, pointing to a
32262country house in the far distance.
32263
32264"What, outside our line?"
32265
32266"They've put two regiments as outposts, and they're having such a
32267spree there, it's awful! Two bands and three sets of singers!"
32268
32269The officer rode out beyond our lines to Echkino. While still at a
32270distance he heard as he rode the merry sounds of a soldier's dance
32271song proceeding from the house.
32272
32273"In the meadows... in the meadows!" he heard, accompanied by
32274whistling and the sound of a torban, drowned every now and then by
32275shouts. These sounds made his spirits rise, but at the same time he
32276was afraid that he would be blamed for not having executed sooner
32277the important order entrusted to him. It was already past eight
32278o'clock. He dismounted and went up into the porch of a large country
32279house which had remained intact between the Russian and French forces.
32280In the refreshment room and the hall, footmen were bustling about with
32281wine and viands. Groups of singers stood outside the windows. The
32282officer was admitted and immediately saw all the chief generals of the
32283army together, and among them Ermolov's big imposing figure. They
32284all had their coats unbuttoned and were standing in a semicircle
32285with flushed and animated faces, laughing loudly. In the middle of the
32286room a short handsome general with a red face was dancing the trepak
32287with much spirit and agility.
32288
32289"Ha, ha, ha! Bravo, Nicholas Ivanych! Ha, ha, ha!"
32290
32291The officer felt that by arriving with important orders at such a
32292moment he was doubly to blame, and he would have preferred to wait;
32293but one of the generals espied him and, hearing what he had come
32294about, informed Ermolov.
32295
32296Ermolov came forward with a frown on his face and, hearing what
32297the officer had to say, took the papers from him without a word.
32298
32299
32300"You think he went off just by chance?" said a comrade, who was on
32301the staff that evening, to the officer of the Horse Guards,
32302referring to Ermolov. "It was a trick. It was done on purpose to get
32303Konovnitsyn into trouble. You'll see what a mess there'll be
32304tomorrow."
32305
32306
32307
32308
32309
32310CHAPTER V
32311
32312
32313Next day the decrepit Kutuzov, having given orders to be called
32314early, said his prayers, dressed, and, with an unpleasant
32315consciousness of having to direct a battle he did not approve of,
32316got into his caleche and drove from Letashovka (a village three and
32317a half miles from Tarutino) to the place where the attacking columns
32318were to meet. He sat in the caleche, dozing and waking up by turns,
32319and listening for any sound of firing on the right as an indication
32320that the action had begun. But all was still quiet. A damp dull autumn
32321morning was just dawning. On approaching Tarutino Kutuzov noticed
32322cavalrymen leading their horses to water across the road along which
32323he was driving. Kutuzov looked at them searchingly, stopped his
32324carriage, and inquired what regiment they belonged to. They belonged
32325to a column that should have been far in front and in ambush long
32326before then. "It may be a mistake," thought the old commander in
32327chief. But a little further on he saw infantry regiments with their
32328arms piled and the soldiers, only partly dressed, eating their rye
32329porridge and carrying fuel. He sent for an officer. The officer
32330reported that no order to advance had been received.
32331
32332"How! Not rec..." Kutuzov began, but checked himself immediately and
32333sent for a senior officer. Getting out of his caleche, he waited
32334with drooping head and breathing heavily, pacing silently up and down.
32335When Eykhen, the officer of the general staff whom he had summoned,
32336appeared, Kutuzov went purple in the face, not because that officer
32337was to blame for the mistake, but because he was an object of
32338sufficient importance for him to vent his wrath on. Trembling and
32339panting the old man fell into that state of fury in which he sometimes
32340used to roll on the ground, and he fell upon Eykhen, threatening him
32341with his hands, shouting and loading him with gross abuse. Another
32342man, Captain Brozin, who happened to turn up and who was not at all to
32343blame, suffered the same fate.
32344
32345"What sort of another blackguard are you? I'll have you shot!
32346Scoundrels!" yelled Kutuzov in a hoarse voice, waving his arms and
32347reeling.
32348
32349He was suffering physically. He, the commander in chief, a Serene
32350Highness who everybody said possessed powers such as no man had ever
32351had in Russia, to be placed in this position--made the laughingstock
32352of the whole army! "I needn't have been in such a hurry to pray
32353about today, or have kept awake thinking everything over all night,"
32354thought he to himself. "When I was a chit of an officer no one would
32355have dared to mock me so... and now!" He was in a state of physical
32356suffering as if from corporal punishment, and could not avoid
32357expressing it by cries of anger and distress. But his strength soon
32358began to fail him, and looking about him, conscious of having said
32359much that was amiss, he again got into his caleche and drove back in
32360silence.
32361
32362His wrath, once expended, did not return, and blinking feebly he
32363listened to excuses and self-justifications (Ermolov did not come to
32364see him till the next day) and to the insistence of Bennigsen,
32365Konovnitsyn, and Toll that the movement that had miscarried should
32366be executed next day. And once more Kutuzov had to consent.
32367
32368
32369
32370
32371
32372CHAPTER VI
32373
32374
32375Next day the troops assembled in their appointed places in the
32376evening and advanced during the night. It was an autumn night with
32377dark purple clouds, but no rain. The ground was damp but not muddy,
32378and the troops advanced noiselessly, only occasionally a jingling of
32379the artillery could be faintly heard. The men were forbidden to talk
32380out loud, to smoke their pipes, or to strike a light, and they tried
32381to prevent their horses neighing. The secrecy of the undertaking
32382heightened its charm and they marched gaily. Some columns,
32383supposing they had reached their destination, halted, piled arms, and
32384settled down on the cold ground, but the majority marched all night
32385and arrived at places where they evidently should not have been.
32386
32387Only Count Orlov-Denisov with his Cossacks (the least important
32388detachment of all) got to his appointed place at the right time.
32389This detachment halted at the outskirts of a forest, on the path
32390leading from the village of Stromilova to Dmitrovsk.
32391
32392Toward dawn, Count Orlov-Denisov, who had dozed off, was awakened by
32393a deserter from the French army being brought to him. This was a
32394Polish sergeant of Poniatowski's corps, who explained in Polish that
32395he had come over because he had been slighted in the service: that
32396he ought long ago to have been made an officer, that he was braver
32397than any of them, and so he had left them and wished to pay them
32398out. He said that Murat was spending the night less than a mile from
32399where they were, and that if they would let him have a convoy of a
32400hundred men he would capture him alive. Count Orlov-Denisov
32401consulted his fellow officers.
32402
32403The offer was too tempting to be refused. Everyone volunteered to go
32404and everybody advised making the attempt. After much disputing and
32405arguing, Major-General Grekov with two Cossack regiments decided to go
32406with the Polish sergeant.
32407
32408"Now, remember," said Count Orlov-Denisov to the sergeant at
32409parting, "if you have been lying I'll have you hanged like a dog;
32410but if it's true you shall have a hundred gold pieces!"
32411
32412Without replying, the sergeant, with a resolute air, mounted and
32413rode away with Grekov whose men had quickly assembled. They
32414disappeared into the forest, and Count Orlov-Denisov, having seen
32415Grekov off, returned, shivering from the freshness of the early dawn
32416and excited by what he had undertaken on his own responsibility, and
32417began looking at the enemy camp, now just visible in the deceptive
32418light of dawn and the dying campfires. Our columns ought to have begun
32419to appear on an open declivity to his right. He looked in that
32420direction, but though the columns would have been visible quite far
32421off, they were not to be seen. It seemed to the count that things were
32422beginning to stir in the French camp, and his keen-sighted adjutant
32423confirmed this.
32424
32425"Oh, it is really too late," said Count Orlov, looking at the camp.
32426
32427As often happens when someone we have trusted is no longer before
32428our eyes, it suddenly seemed quite clear and obvious to him that the
32429sergeant was an impostor, that he had lied, and that the whole Russian
32430attack would be ruined by the absence of those two regiments, which he
32431would lead away heaven only knew where. How could one capture a
32432commander in chief from among such a mass of troops!
32433
32434"I am sure that rascal was lying," said the count.
32435
32436"They can still be called back," said one of his suite, who like
32437Count Orlov felt distrustful of the adventure when he looked at the
32438enemy's camp.
32439
32440"Eh? Really... what do you think? Should we let them go on or not?"
32441
32442"Will you have them fetched back?"
32443
32444"Fetch them back, fetch them back!" said Count Orlov with sudden
32445determination, looking at his watch. "It will be too late. It is quite
32446light."
32447
32448And the adjutant galloped through the forest after Grekov. When
32449Grekov returned, Count Orlov-Denisov, excited both by the abandoned
32450attempt and by vainly awaiting the infantry columns that still did not
32451appear, as well as by the proximity of the enemy, resolved to advance.
32452All his men felt the same excitement.
32453
32454"Mount!" he commanded in a whisper. The men took their places and
32455crossed themselves.... "Forward, with God's aid!"
32456
32457"Hurrah-ah-ah!" reverberated in the forest, and the Cossack
32458companies, trailing their lances and advancing one after another as if
32459poured out of a sack, dashed gaily across the brook toward the camp.
32460
32461One desperate, frightened yell from the first French soldier who saw
32462the Cossacks, and all who were in the camp, undressed and only just
32463waking up, ran off in all directions, abandoning cannons, muskets, and
32464horses.
32465
32466Had the Cossacks pursued the French, without heeding what was behind
32467and around them, they would have captured Murat and everything
32468there. That was what the officers desired. But it was impossible to
32469make the Cossacks budge when once they had got booty and prisoners.
32470None of them listened to orders. Fifteen hundred prisoners and
32471thirty-eight guns were taken on the spot, besides standards and
32472(what seemed most important to the Cossacks) horses, saddles,
32473horsecloths, and the like. All this had to be dealt with, the
32474prisoners and guns secured, the booty divided--not without some
32475shouting and even a little themselves--and it was on this that the
32476Cossacks all busied themselves.
32477
32478The French, not being farther pursued, began to recover
32479themselves: they formed into detachments and began firing.
32480Orlov-Denisov, still waiting for the other columns to arrive, advanced
32481no further.
32482
32483Meantime, according to the dispositions which said that "the First
32484Column will march" and so on, the infantry of the belated columns,
32485commanded by Bennigsen and directed by Toll, had started in due
32486order and, as always happens, had got somewhere, but not to their
32487appointed places. As always happens the men, starting cheerfully,
32488began to halt; murmurs were heard, there was a sense of confusion, and
32489finally a backward movement. Adjutants and generals galloped about,
32490shouted, grew angry, quarreled, said they had come quite wrong and
32491were late, gave vent to a little abuse, and at last gave it all up and
32492went forward, simply to get somewhere. "We shall get somewhere or
32493other!" And they did indeed get somewhere, though not to their right
32494places; a few eventually even got to their right place, but too late
32495to be of any use and only in time to be fired at. Toll, who in this
32496battle played the part of Weyrother at Austerlitz, galloped
32497assiduously from place to place, finding everything upside down
32498everywhere. Thus he stumbled on Bagovut's corps in a wood when it
32499was already broad daylight, though the corps should long before have
32500joined Orlov-Denisov. Excited and vexed by the failure and supposing
32501that someone must be responsible for it, Toll galloped up to the
32502commander of the corps and began upbraiding him severely, saying
32503that he ought to be shot. General Bagovut, a fighting old soldier of
32504placid temperament, being also upset by all the delay, confusion,
32505and cross-purposes, fell into a rage to everybody's surprise and quite
32506contrary to his usual character and said disagreeable things to Toll.
32507
32508"I prefer not to take lessons from anyone, but I can die with my men
32509as well as anybody," he said, and advanced with a single division.
32510
32511Coming out onto a field under the enemy's fire, this brave general
32512went straight ahead, leading his men under fire, without considering
32513in his agitation whether going into action now, with a single
32514division, would be of any use or no. Danger, cannon balls, and bullets
32515were just what he needed in his angry mood. One of the first bullets
32516killed him, and other bullets killed many of his men. And his division
32517remained under fire for some time quite uselessly.
32518
32519
32520
32521
32522
32523CHAPTER VII
32524
32525
32526Meanwhile another column was to have attacked the French from the
32527front, but Kutuzov accompanied that column. He well knew that
32528nothing but confusion would come of this battle undertaken against his
32529will, and as far as was in his power held the troops back. He did
32530not advance.
32531
32532He rode silently on his small gray horse, indolently answering
32533suggestions that they should attack.
32534
32535"The word attack is always on your tongue, but you don't see that we
32536are unable to execute complicated maneuvers," said he to
32537Miloradovich who asked permission to advance.
32538
32539"We couldn't take Murat prisoner this morning or get to the place in
32540time, and nothing can be done now!" he replied to someone else.
32541
32542When Kutuzov was informed that at the French rear--where according
32543to the reports of the Cossacks there had previously been nobody--there
32544were now two battalions of Poles, he gave a sidelong glance at Ermolov
32545who was behind him and to whom he had not spoken since the previous
32546day.
32547
32548"You see! They are asking to attack and making plans of all kinds,
32549but as soon as one gets to business nothing is ready, and the enemy,
32550forewarned, takes measures accordingly."
32551
32552Ermolov screwed up his eyes and smiled faintly on hearing these
32553words. He understood that for him the storm had blown over, and that
32554Kutuzov would content himself with that hint.
32555
32556"He's having a little fun at my expense," said Ermolov softly,
32557nudging with his knee Raevski who was at his side.
32558
32559Soon after this, Ermolov moved up to Kutuzov and respectfully
32560remarked:
32561
32562"It is not too late yet, your Highness--the enemy has not gone away-
32563if you were to order an attack! If not, the Guards will not so much as
32564see a little smoke."
32565
32566Kutuzov did not reply, but when they reported to him that Murat's
32567troops were in retreat he ordered an advance, though at every
32568hundred paces he halted for three quarters of an hour.
32569
32570The whole battle consisted in what Orlov-Denisov's Cossacks had
32571done: the rest of the army merely lost some hundreds of men uselessly.
32572
32573In consequence of this battle Kutuzov received a diamond decoration,
32574and Bennigsen some diamonds and a hundred thousand rubles, others also
32575received pleasant recognitions corresponding to their various
32576grades, and following the battle fresh changes were made in the staff.
32577
32578"That's how everything is done with us, all topsy-turvy!" said the
32579Russian officers and generals after the Tarutino battle, letting it be
32580understood that some fool there is doing things all wrong but that
32581we ourselves should not have done so, just as people speak today.
32582But people who talk like that either do not know what they are talking
32583about or deliberately deceive themselves. No battle--Tarutino,
32584Borodino, or Austerlitz--takes place as those who planned it
32585anticipated. That is an essential condition.
32586
32587A countless number of free forces (for nowhere is man freer than
32588during a battle, where it is a question of life and death) influence
32589the course taken by the fight, and that course never can be known in
32590advance and never coincides with the direction of any one force.
32591
32592If many simultaneously and variously directed forces act on a
32593given body, the direction of its motion cannot coincide with any one
32594of those forces, but will always be a mean--what in mechanics is
32595represented by the diagonal of a parallelogram of forces.
32596
32597If in the descriptions given by historians, especially French
32598ones, we find their wars and battles carried out in accordance with
32599previously formed plans, the only conclusion to be drawn is that those
32600descriptions are false.
32601
32602The battle of Tarutino obviously did not attain the aim Toll had
32603in view--to lead the troops into action in the order prescribed by the
32604dispositions; nor that which Count Orlov-Denisov may have had in view-
32605to take Murat prisoner; nor the result of immediately destroying the
32606whole corps, which Bennigsen and others may have had in view; nor
32607the aim of the officer who wished to go into action to distinguish
32608himself; nor that of the Cossack who wanted more booty than he got,
32609and so on. But if the aim of the battle was what actually resulted and
32610what all the Russians of that day desired--to drive the French out
32611of Russia and destroy their army--it is quite clear that the battle of
32612Tarutino, just because of its incongruities, was exactly what was
32613wanted at that stage of the campaign. It would be difficult and even
32614impossible to imagine any result more opportune than the actual
32615outcome of this battle. With a minimum of effort and insignificant
32616losses, despite the greatest confusion, the most important results
32617of the whole campaign were attained: the transition from retreat to
32618advance, an exposure of the weakness of the French, and the
32619administration of that shock which Napoleon's army had only awaited to
32620begin its flight.
32621
32622
32623
32624
32625
32626CHAPTER VIII
32627
32628
32629Napoleon enters Moscow after the brilliant victory de la Moskowa;
32630there can be no doubt about the victory for the battlefield remains in
32631the hands of the French. The Russians retreat and abandon their
32632ancient capital. Moscow, abounding in provisions, arms, munitions, and
32633incalculable wealth, is in Napoleon's hands. The Russian army, only
32634half the strength of the French, does not make a single attempt to
32635attack for a whole month. Napoleon's position is most brilliant. He
32636can either fall on the Russian army with double its strength and
32637destroy it; negotiate an advantageous peace, or in case of a refusal
32638make a menacing move on Petersburg, or even, in the case of a reverse,
32639return to Smolensk or Vilna; or remain in Moscow; in short, no special
32640genius would seem to be required to retain the brilliant position
32641the French held at that time. For that, only very simple and easy
32642steps were necessary: not to allow the troops to loot, to prepare
32643winter clothing--of which there was sufficient in Moscow for the whole
32644army--and methodically to collect the provisions, of which
32645(according to the French historians) there were enough in Moscow to
32646supply the whole army for six months. Yet Napoleon, that greatest of
32647all geniuses, who the historians declare had control of the army, took
32648none of these steps.
32649
32650He not merely did nothing of the kind, but on the contrary he used
32651his power to select the most foolish and ruinous of all the courses
32652open to him. Of all that Napoleon might have done: wintering in
32653Moscow, advancing on Petersburg or on Nizhni-Novgorod, or retiring
32654by a more northerly or more southerly route (say by the road Kutuzov
32655afterwards took), nothing more stupid or disastrous can be imagined
32656than what he actually did. He remained in Moscow till October, letting
32657the troops plunder the city; then, hesitating whether to leave a
32658garrison behind him, he quitted Moscow, approached Kutuzov without
32659joining battle, turned to the right and reached Malo-Yaroslavets,
32660again without attempting to break through and take the road Kutuzov
32661took, but retiring instead to Mozhaysk along the devastated Smolensk
32662road. Nothing more stupid than that could have been devised, or more
32663disastrous for the army, as the sequel showed. Had Napoleon's aim been
32664to destroy his army, the most skillful strategist could hardly have
32665devised any series of actions that would so completely have
32666accomplished that purpose, independently of anything the Russian
32667army might do.
32668
32669
32670Napoleon, the man of genius, did this! But to say that he
32671destroyed his army because he wished to, or because he was very
32672stupid, would be as unjust as to say that he had brought his troops to
32673Moscow because he wished to and because he was very clever and a
32674genius.
32675
32676In both cases his personal activity, having no more force than the
32677personal activity of any soldier, merely coincided with the laws
32678that guided the event.
32679
32680The historians quite falsely represent Napoleon's faculties as
32681having weakened in Moscow, and do so only because the results did
32682not justify his actions. He employed all his ability and strength to
32683do the best he could for himself and his army, as he had done
32684previously and as he did subsequently in 1813. His activity at that
32685time was no less astounding than it was in Egypt, in Italy, in
32686Austria, and in Prussia. We do not know for certain in how far his
32687genius was genuine in Egypt--where forty centuries looked down upon
32688his grandeur--for his great exploits there are all told us by
32689Frenchmen. We cannot accurately estimate his genius in Austria or
32690Prussia, for we have to draw our information from French or German
32691sources, and the incomprehensible surrender of whole corps without
32692fighting and of fortresses without a siege must incline Germans to
32693recognize his genius as the only explanation of the war carried on
32694in Germany. But we, thank God, have no need to recognize his genius in
32695order to hide our shame. We have paid for the right to look at the
32696matter plainly and simply, and we will not abandon that right.
32697
32698His activity in Moscow was as amazing and as full of genius as
32699elsewhere. Order after order order and plan after plan were issued
32700by him from the time he entered Moscow till the time he left it. The
32701absence of citizens and of a deputation, and even the burning of
32702Moscow, did not disconcert him. He did not lose sight either of the
32703welfare of his army or of the doings of the enemy, or of the welfare
32704of the people of Russia, or of the direction of affairs in Paris, or
32705of diplomatic considerations concerning the terms of the anticipated
32706peace.
32707
32708
32709
32710
32711
32712CHAPTER IX
32713
32714
32715With regard to military matters, Napoleon immediately on his entry
32716into Moscow gave General Sabastiani strict orders to observe the
32717movements of the Russian army, sent army corps out along the different
32718roads, and charged Murat to find Kutuzov. Then he gave careful
32719directions about the fortification of the Kremlin, and drew up a
32720brilliant plan for a future campaign over the whole map of Russia.
32721
32722With regard to diplomatic questions, Napoleon summoned Captain
32723Yakovlev, who had been robbed and was in rags and did not know how
32724to get out of Moscow, minutely explained to him his whole policy and
32725his magnanimity, and having written a letter to the Emperor
32726Alexander in which he considered it his duty to inform his Friend
32727and Brother that Rostopchin had managed affairs badly in Moscow, he
32728dispatched Yakovlev to Petersburg.
32729
32730Having similarly explained his views and his magnanimity to
32731Tutolmin, he dispatched that old man also to Petersburg to negotiate.
32732
32733With regard to legal matters, immediately after the fires he gave
32734orders to find and execute the incendiaries. And the scoundrel
32735Rostopchin was punished by an order to burn down his houses.
32736
32737With regard to administrative matters, Moscow was granted a
32738constitution. A municipality was established and the following
32739announcement issued:
32740
32741
32742INHABITANTS OF MOSCOW!
32743
32744Your misfortunes are cruel, but His Majesty the Emperor and King
32745desires to arrest their course. Terrible examples have taught you
32746how he punishes disobedience and crime. Strict measures have been
32747taken to put an end to disorder and to re-establish public security. A
32748paternal administration, chosen from among yourselves, will form
32749your municipality or city government. It will take care of you, of
32750your needs, and of your welfare. Its members will be distinguished
32751by a red ribbon worn across the shoulder, and the mayor of the city
32752will wear a white belt as well. But when not on duty they will only
32753wear a red ribbon round the left arm.
32754
32755The city police is established on its former footing, and better
32756order already prevails in consequence of its activity. The
32757government has appointed two commissaries general, or chiefs of
32758police, and twenty commissaries or captains of wards have been
32759appointed to the different wards of the city. You will recognize
32760them by the white ribbon they will wear on the left arm. Several
32761churches of different denominations are open, and divine service is
32762performed in them unhindered. Your fellow citizens are returning every
32763day to their homes. and orders have been given that they should find
32764in them the help and protection due to their misfortunes. These are
32765the measures the government has adopted to re-establish order and
32766relieve your condition. But to achieve this aim it is necessary that
32767you should add your efforts and should, if possible, forget the
32768misfortunes you have suffered, should entertain the hope of a less
32769cruel fate, should be certain that inevitable and ignominious death
32770awaits those who make any attempt on your persons or on what remains
32771of your property, and finally that you should not doubt that these
32772will be safeguarded, since such is the will of the greatest and most
32773just of monarchs. Soldiers and citizens, of whatever nation you may
32774be, re-establish public confidence, the source of the welfare of a
32775state, live like brothers, render mutual aid and protection one to
32776another, unite to defeat the intentions of the evil-minded, obey the
32777military and civil authorities, and your tears will soon cease to
32778flow!
32779
32780
32781With regard to supplies for the army, Napoleon decreed that all
32782the troops in turn should enter Moscow a la maraude* to obtain
32783provisions for themselves, so that the army might have its future
32784provided for.
32785
32786
32787*As looters.
32788
32789
32790With regard to religion, Napoleon ordered the priests to be
32791brought back and services to be again performed in the churches.
32792
32793With regard to commerce and to provisioning the army, the
32794following was placarded everywhere:
32795
32796
32797PROCLAMATION!
32798
32799You, peaceful inhabitants of Moscow, artisans and workmen whom
32800misfortune has driven from the city, and you scattered tillers of
32801the soil, still kept out in the fields by groundless fear, listen!
32802Tranquillity is returning to this capital and order is being
32803restored in it. Your fellow countrymen are emerging boldly from
32804their hiding places on finding that they are respected. Any violence
32805to them or to their property is promptly punished. His Majesty the
32806Emperor and King protects them, and considers no one among you his
32807enemy except those who disobey his orders. He desires to end your
32808misfortunes and restore you to your homes and families. Respond,
32809therefore, to his benevolent intentions and come to us without fear.
32810Inhabitants, return with confidence to your abodes! You will soon find
32811means of satisfying your needs. Craftsmen and industrious artisans,
32812return to your work, your houses, your shops, where the protection
32813of guards awaits you! You shall receive proper pay for your work.
32814And lastly you too, peasants, come from the forests where you are
32815hiding in terror, return to your huts without fear, in full
32816assurance that you will find protection! Markets are established in
32817the city where peasants can bring their surplus supplies and the
32818products of the soil. The government has taken the following steps
32819to ensure freedom of sale for them: (1) From today, peasants,
32820husbandmen, and those living in the neighborhood of Moscow may without
32821any danger bring their supplies of all kinds to two appointed markets,
32822of which one is on the Mokhovaya Street and the other at the Provision
32823Market. (2) Such supplies will be bought from them at such prices as
32824seller and buyer may agree on, and if a seller is unable to obtain a
32825fair price he will be free to take his goods back to his village and
32826no one may hinder him under any pretense. (3) Sunday and Wednesday
32827of each week are appointed as the chief market days and to that end
32828a sufficient number of troops will be stationed along the highroads on
32829Tuesdays and Saturdays at such distances from the town as to protect
32830the carts. (4) Similar measures will be taken that peasants with their
32831carts and horses may meet with no hindrance on their return journey.
32832(5) Steps will immediately be taken to re-establish ordinary trading.
32833
32834Inhabitants of the city and villages, and you, workingmen and
32835artisans, to whatever nation you belong, you are called on to carry
32836out the paternal intentions of His Majesty the Emperor and King and to
32837co-operate with him for the public welfare! Lay your respect and
32838confidence at his feet and do not delay to unite with us!
32839
32840
32841With the object of raising the spirits of the troops and of the
32842people, reviews were constantly held and rewards distributed. The
32843Emperor rode through the streets to comfort the inhabitants, and,
32844despite his preoccupation with state affairs, himself visited the
32845theaters that were established by his order.
32846
32847In regard to philanthropy, the greatest virtue of crowned heads,
32848Napoleon also did all in his power. He caused the words Maison de ma
32849Mere to be inscribed on the charitable institutions, thereby combining
32850tender filial affection with the majestic benevolence of a monarch. He
32851visited the Foundling Hospital and, allowing the orphans saved by
32852him to kiss his white hands, graciously conversed with Tutolmin. Then,
32853as Thiers eloquently recounts, he ordered his soldiers to be paid in
32854forged Russian money which he had prepared: "Raising the use of
32855these means by an act worthy of himself and of the French army, he let
32856relief be distributed to those who had been burned out. But as food
32857was too precious to be given to foreigners, who were for the most part
32858enemies, Napoleon preferred to supply them with money with which to
32859purchase food from outside, and had paper rubles distributed to them."
32860
32861With reference to army discipline, orders were continually being
32862issued to inflict severe punishment for the nonperformance of military
32863duties and to suppress robbery.
32864
32865
32866
32867
32868
32869CHAPTER X
32870
32871
32872But strange to say, all these measures, efforts, and plans--which
32873were not at all worse than others issued in similar circumstances--did
32874not affect the essence of the matter but, like the hands of a clock
32875detached from the mechanism, swung about in an arbitrary and aimless
32876way without engaging the cogwheels.
32877
32878With reference to the military side--the plan of campaign--that work
32879of genius of which Thiers remarks that, "His genius never devised
32880anything more profound, more skillful, or more admirable," and
32881enters into a polemic with M. Fain to prove that this work of genius
32882must be referred not to the fourth but to the fifteenth of October-
32883that plan never was or could be executed, for it was quite out of
32884touch with the facts of the case. The fortifying of the Kremlin, for
32885which la Mosquee (as Napoleon termed the church of Basil the
32886Beatified) was to have been razed to the ground, proved quite useless.
32887The mining of the Kremlin only helped toward fulfilling Napoleon's
32888wish that it should be blown up when he left Moscow--as a child
32889wants the floor on which he has hurt himself to be beaten. The pursuit
32890of the Russian army, about which Napoleon was so concerned, produced
32891an unheard-of result. The French generals lost touch with the
32892Russian army of sixty thousand men, and according to Thiers it was
32893only eventually found, like a lost pin, by the skill--and apparently
32894the genius--of Murat.
32895
32896With reference to diplomacy, all Napoleon's arguments as to his
32897magnanimity and justice, both to Tutolmin and to Yakovlev (whose chief
32898concern was to obtain a greatcoat and a conveyance), proved useless;
32899Alexander did not receive these envoys and did not reply to their
32900embassage.
32901
32902With regard to legal matters, after the execution of the supposed
32903incendiaries the rest of Moscow burned down.
32904
32905With regard to administrative matters, the establishment of a
32906municipality did not stop the robberies and was only of use to certain
32907people who formed part of that municipality and under pretext of
32908preserving order looted Moscow or saved their own property from
32909being looted.
32910
32911With regard to religion, as to which in Egypt matters had so
32912easily been settled by Napoleon's visit to a mosque, no results were
32913achieved. Two or three priests who were found in Moscow did try to
32914carry out Napoleon's wish, but one of them was slapped in the face
32915by a French soldier while conducting service, and a French official
32916reported of another that: "The priest whom I found and invited to
32917say Mass cleaned and locked up the church. That night the doors were
32918again broken open, the padlocks smashed, the books mutilated, and
32919other disorders perpetrated."
32920
32921With reference to commerce, the proclamation to industrious
32922workmen and to peasants evoked no response. There were no
32923industrious workmen, and the peasants caught the commissaries who
32924ventured too far out of town with the proclamation and killed them.
32925
32926As to the theaters for the entertainment of the people and the
32927troops, these did not meet with success either. The theaters set up in
32928the Kremlin and in Posnyakov's house were closed again at once because
32929the actors and actresses were robbed.
32930
32931Even philanthropy did not have the desired effect. The genuine as
32932well as the false paper money which flooded Moscow lost its value. The
32933French, collecting booty, cared only for gold. Not only was the
32934paper money valueless which Napoleon so graciously distributed to
32935the unfortunate, but even silver lost its value in relation to gold.
32936
32937But the most amazing example of the ineffectiveness of the orders
32938given by the authorities at that time was Napoleon's attempt to stop
32939the looting and re-establish discipline.
32940
32941This is what the army authorities were reporting:
32942
32943"Looting continues in the city despite the decrees against it. Order
32944is not yet restored and not a single merchant is carrying on trade
32945in a lawful manner. The sutlers alone venture to trade, and they
32946sell stolen goods."
32947
32948"The neighborhood of my ward continues to be pillaged by soldiers of
32949the 3rd Corps who, not satisfied with taking from the unfortunate
32950inhabitants hiding in the cellars the little they have left, even have
32951the ferocity to wound them with their sabers, as I have repeatedly
32952witnessed."
32953
32954"Nothing new, except that the soldiers are robbing and pillaging-
32955October 9."
32956
32957"Robbery and pillaging continue. There is a band of thieves in our
32958district who ought to be arrested by a strong force--October 11."
32959
32960"The Emperor is extremely displeased that despite the strict
32961orders to stop pillage, parties of marauding Guards are continually
32962seen returning to the Kremlin. Among the Old Guard disorder and
32963pillage were renewed more violently than ever yesterday evening,
32964last night, and today. The Emperor sees with regret that the picked
32965soldiers appointed to guard his person, who should set an example of
32966discipline, carry disobedience to such a point that they break into
32967the cellars and stores containing army supplies. Others have disgraced
32968themselves to the extent of disobeying sentinels and officers, and
32969have abused and beaten them."
32970
32971"The Grand Marshal of the palace," wrote the governor, "complains
32972bitterly that in spite of repeated orders, the soldiers continue to
32973commit nuisances in all the courtyards and even under the very windows
32974of the Emperor."
32975
32976That army, like a herd of cattle run wild and trampling underfoot
32977the provender which might have saved it from starvation, disintegrated
32978and perished with each additional day it remained in Moscow. But it
32979did not go away.
32980
32981It began to run away only when suddenly seized by a panic caused
32982by the capture of transport trains on the Smolensk road, and by the
32983battle of Tarutino. The news of that battle of Tarutino,
32984unexpectedly received by Napoleon at a review, evoked in him a
32985desire to punish the Russians (Thiers says), and he issued the order
32986for departure which the whole army was demanding.
32987
32988Fleeing from Moscow the soldiers took with them everything they
32989had stolen. Napoleon, too, carried away his own personal tresor, but
32990on seeing the baggage trains that impeded the army, he was (Thiers
32991says) horror-struck. And yet with his experience of war he did not
32992order all the superfluous vehicles to be burned, as he had done with
32993those of a certain marshal when approaching Moscow. He gazed at the
32994caleches and carriages in which soldiers were riding and remarked that
32995it was a very good thing, as those vehicles could be used to carry
32996provisions, the sick, and the wounded.
32997
32998The plight of the whole army resembled that of a wounded animal
32999which feels it is perishing and does not know what it is doing. To
33000study the skillful tactics and aims of Napoleon and his army from
33001the time it entered Moscow till it was destroyed is like studying
33002the dying leaps and shudders of a mortally wounded animal. Very
33003often a wounded animal, hearing a rustle, rushes straight at the
33004hunter's gun, runs forward and back again, and hastens its own end.
33005Napoleon, under pressure from his whole army, did the same thing.
33006The rustle of the battle of Tarutino frightened the beast, and it
33007rushed forward onto the hunter's gun, reached him, turned back, and
33008finally--like any wild beast--ran back along the most
33009disadvantageous and dangerous path, where the old scent was familiar.
33010
33011During the whole of that period Napoleon, who seems to us to have
33012been the leader of all these movements--as the figurehead of a ship
33013may seem to a savage to guide the vessel--acted like a child who,
33014holding a couple of strings inside a carriage, thinks he is driving
33015it.
33016
33017
33018
33019
33020
33021CHAPTER XI
33022
33023
33024Early in the morning of the sixth of October Pierre went out of
33025the shed, and on returning stopped by the door to play with a little
33026blue-gray dog, with a long body and short bandy legs, that jumped
33027about him. This little dog lived in their shed, sleeping beside
33028Karataev at night; it sometimes made excursions into the town but
33029always returned again. Probably it had never had an owner, and it
33030still belonged to nobody and had no name. The French called it Azor;
33031the soldier who told stories called it Femgalka; Karataev and others
33032called it Gray, or sometimes Flabby. Its lack of a master, a name,
33033or even of a breed or any definite color did not seem to trouble the
33034blue-gray dog in the least. Its furry tail stood up firm and round
33035as a plume, its bandy legs served it so well that it would often
33036gracefully lift a hind leg and run very easily and quickly on three
33037legs, as if disdaining to use all four. Everything pleased it. Now
33038it would roll on its back, yelping with delight, now bask in the sun
33039with a thoughtful air of importance, and now frolic about playing with
33040a chip of wood or a straw.
33041
33042Pierre's attire by now consisted of a dirty torn shirt (the only
33043remnant of his former clothing), a pair of soldier's trousers which by
33044Karataev's advice he tied with string round the ankles for warmth, and
33045a peasant coat and cap. Physically he had changed much during this
33046time. He no longer seemed stout, though he still had the appearance of
33047solidity and strength hereditary in his family. A beard and mustache
33048covered the lower part of his face, and a tangle of hair, infested
33049with lice, curled round his head like a cap. The look of his eyes
33050was resolute, calm, and animatedly alert, as never before. The
33051former slackness which had shown itself even in his eyes was now
33052replaced by an energetic readiness for action and resistance. His feet
33053were bare.
33054
33055Pierre first looked down the field across which vehicles and
33056horsemen were passing that morning, then into the distance across
33057the river, then at the dog who was pretending to be in earnest about
33058biting him, and then at his bare feet which he placed with pleasure in
33059various positions, moving his dirty thick big toes. Every time he
33060looked at his bare feet a smile of animated self-satisfaction
33061flitted across his face. The sight of them reminded him of all he
33062had experienced and learned during these weeks and this recollection
33063was pleasant to him.
33064
33065For some days the weather had been calm and clear with slight frosts
33066in the mornings--what is called an "old wives' summer."
33067
33068In the sunshine the air was warm, and that warmth was particularly
33069pleasant with the invigorating freshness of the morning frost still in
33070the air.
33071
33072On everything--far and near--lay the magic crystal glitter seen only
33073at that time autumn. The Sparrow Hills were visible in the distance,
33074with the village, the church, and the large white house. The bare
33075trees, the sand, the bricks and roofs of the houses, the green
33076church spire, and the corners of the white house in the distance,
33077all stood out in the transparent air in most delicate outline and with
33078unnatural clearness. Near by could be seen the familiar ruins of a
33079half-burned mansion occupied by the French, with lilac bushes still
33080showing dark green beside the fence. And even that ruined and befouled
33081house--which in dull weather was repulsively ugly--seemed quietly
33082beautiful now, in the clear, motionless brilliance.
33083
33084A French corporal, with coat unbuttoned in a homely way, a
33085skullcap on his head, and a short pipe in his mouth, came from
33086behind a corner of the shed and approached Pierre with a friendly
33087wink.
33088
33089"What sunshine, Monsieur Kiril!" (Their name for Pierre.) "Eh?
33090Just like spring!"
33091
33092And the corporal leaned against the door and offered Pierre his
33093pipe, though whenever he offered it Pierre always declined it.
33094
33095"To be on the march in such weather..." he began.
33096
33097Pierre inquired what was being said about leaving, and the
33098corporal told him that nearly all the troops were starting and there
33099ought to be an order about the prisoners that day. Sokolov, one of the
33100soldiers in the shed with Pierre, was dying, and Pierre told the
33101corporal that something should be done about him. The corporal replied
33102that Pierre need not worry about that as they had an ambulance and a
33103permanent hospital and arrangements would be made for the sick, and
33104that in general everything that could happen had been foreseen by
33105the authorities.
33106
33107"Besides, Monsieur Kiril, you have only to say a word to the
33108captain, you know. He is a man who never forgets anything. Speak to
33109the captain when he makes his round, he will do anything for you."
33110
33111(The captain of whom the corporal spoke often had long chats with
33112Pierre and showed him all sorts of favors.)
33113
33114"'You see, St. Thomas,' he said to me the other day. 'Monsieur Kiril
33115is a man of education, who speaks French. He is a Russian seigneur who
33116has had misfortunes, but he is a man. He knows what's what.... If he
33117wants anything and asks me, he won't get a refusal. When one has
33118studied, you see, one likes education and well-bred people.' It is for
33119your sake I mention it, Monsieur Kiril. The other day if it had not
33120been for you that affair would have ended ill."
33121
33122And after chatting a while longer, the corporal went away. (The
33123affair he had alluded to had happened a few days before--a fight
33124between the prisoners and the French soldiers, in which Pierre had
33125succeeded in pacifying his comrades.) Some of the prisoners who had
33126heard Pierre talking to the corporal immediately asked what the
33127Frenchman had said. While Pierre was repeating what he had been told
33128about the army leaving Moscow, a thin, sallow, tattered French soldier
33129came up to the door of the shed. Rapidly and timidly raising his
33130fingers to his forehead by way of greeting, he asked Pierre whether
33131the soldier Platoche to whom he had given a shirt to sew was in that
33132shed.
33133
33134A week before the French had had boot leather and linen issued to
33135them, which they had given out to the prisoners to make up into
33136boots and shirts for them.
33137
33138"Ready, ready, dear fellow!" said Karataev, coming out with a neatly
33139folded shirt.
33140
33141Karataev, on account of the warm weather and for convenience at
33142work, was wearing only trousers and a tattered shirt as black as soot.
33143His hair was bound round, workman fashion, with a wisp of lime-tree
33144bast, and his round face seemed rounder and pleasanter than ever.
33145
33146"A promise is own brother to performance! I said Friday and here
33147it is, ready," said Platon, smiling and unfolding the shirt he had
33148sewn.
33149
33150The Frenchman glanced around uneasily and then, as if overcoming his
33151hesitation, rapidly threw off his uniform and put on the shirt. He had
33152a long, greasy, flowered silk waistcoat next to his sallow, thin
33153bare body, but no shirt. He was evidently afraid the prisoners looking
33154on would laugh at him, and thrust his head into the shirt hurriedly.
33155None of the prisoners said a word.
33156
33157"See, it fits well!" Platon kept repeating, pulling the shirt
33158straight.
33159
33160The Frenchman, having pushed his head and hands through, without
33161raising his eyes, looked down at the shirt and examined the seams.
33162
33163"You see, dear man, this is not a sewing shop, and I had no proper
33164tools; and, as they say, one needs a tool even to kill a louse,"
33165said Platon with one of his round smiles, obviously pleased with his
33166work.
33167
33168"It's good, quite good, thank you," said the Frenchman, in French,
33169"but there must be some linen left over.
33170
33171"It will fit better still when it sets to your body," said Karataev,
33172still admiring his handiwork. "You'll be nice and comfortable...."
33173
33174"Thanks, thanks, old fellow.... But the bits left over?" said the
33175Frenchman again and smiled. He took out an assignation ruble note
33176and gave it to Karataev. "But give me the pieces that are over."
33177
33178Pierre saw that Platon did not want to understand what the Frenchman
33179was saying, and he looked on without interfering. Karataev thanked the
33180Frenchman for the money and went on admiring his own work. The
33181Frenchman insisted on having the pieces returned that were left over
33182and asked Pierre to translate what he said.
33183
33184"What does he want the bits for?" said Karataev. "They'd make fine
33185leg bands for us. Well, never mind."
33186
33187And Karataev, with a suddenly changed and saddened expression,
33188took a small bundle of scraps from inside his shirt and gave it to the
33189Frenchman without looking at him. "Oh dear!" muttered Karataev and
33190went away. The Frenchman looked at the linen, considered for a moment,
33191then looked inquiringly at Pierre and, as if Pierre's look had told
33192him something, suddenly blushed and shouted in a squeaky voice:
33193
33194"Platoche! Eh, Platoche! Keep them yourself!" And handing back the
33195odd bits he turned and went out.
33196
33197"There, look at that," said Karataev, swaying his head. "People said
33198they were not Christians, but they too have souls. It's what the old
33199folk used to say: 'A sweating hand's an open hand, a dry hand's
33200close.' He's naked, but yet he's given it back."
33201
33202Karataev smiled thoughtfully and was silent awhile looking at the
33203pieces.
33204
33205"But they'll make grand leg bands, dear friend," he said, and went
33206back into the shed.
33207
33208
33209
33210
33211
33212CHAPTER XII
33213
33214
33215Four weeks had passed since Pierre had been taken prisoner and
33216though the French had offered to move him from the men's to the
33217officers' shed, he had stayed in the shed where he was first put.
33218
33219In burned and devastated Moscow Pierre experienced almost the
33220extreme limits of privation a man can endure; but thanks to his
33221physical strength and health, of which he had till then been
33222unconscious, and thanks especially to the fact that the privations
33223came so gradually that it was impossible to say when they began, he
33224endured his position not only lightly but joyfully. And just at this
33225time he obtained the tranquillity and ease of mind he had formerly
33226striven in vain to reach. He had long sought in different ways that
33227tranquillity of mind, that inner harmony which had so impressed him in
33228the soldiers at the battle of Borodino. He had sought it in
33229philanthropy, in Freemasonry, in the dissipations of town life, in
33230wine, in heroic feats of self-sacrifice, and in romantic love for
33231Natasha; he had sought it by reasoning--and all these quests and
33232experiments had failed him. And now without thinking about it he had
33233found that peace and inner harmony only through the horror of death,
33234through privation, and through what he recognized in Karataev.
33235
33236Those dreadful moments he had lived through at the executions had as
33237it were forever washed away from his imagination and memory the
33238agitating thoughts and feelings that had formerly seemed so important.
33239It did not now occur to him to think of Russia, or the war, or
33240politics, or Napoleon. It was plain to him that all these things
33241were no business of his, and that he was not called on to judge
33242concerning them and therefore could not do so. "Russia and summer
33243weather are not bound together," he thought, repeating words of
33244Karataev's which he found strangely consoling. His intention of
33245killing Napoleon and his calculations of the cabalistic number of
33246the beast of the Apocalypse now seemed to him meaningless and even
33247ridiculous. His anger with his wife and anxiety that his name should
33248not be smirched now seemed not merely trivial but even amusing. What
33249concern was it of his that somewhere or other that woman was leading
33250the life she preferred? What did it matter to anybody, and
33251especially to him, whether or not they found out that their prisoner's
33252name was Count Bezukhov?
33253
33254He now often remembered his conversation with Prince Andrew and
33255quite agreed with him, though he understood Prince Andrew's thoughts
33256somewhat differently. Prince Andrew had thought and said that
33257happiness could only be negative, but had said it with a shade of
33258bitterness and irony as though he was really saying that all desire
33259for positive happiness is implanted in us merely to torment us and
33260never be satisfied. But Pierre believed it without any mental
33261reservation. The absence of suffering, the satisfaction of one's needs
33262and consequent freedom in the choice of one's occupation, that is,
33263of one's way of life, now seemed to Pierre to be indubitably man's
33264highest happiness. Here and now for the first time he fully
33265appreciated the enjoyment of eating when he wanted to eat, drinking
33266when he wanted to drink, sleeping when he wanted to sleep, of warmth
33267when he was cold, of talking to a fellow man when he wished to talk
33268and to hear a human voice. The satisfaction of one's needs--good food,
33269cleanliness, and freedom--now that he was deprived of all this, seemed
33270to Pierre to constitute perfect happiness; and the choice of
33271occupation, that is, of his way of life--now that that was so
33272restricted--seemed to him such an easy matter that he forgot that a
33273superfluity of the comforts of life destroys all joy in satisfying
33274one's needs, while great freedom in the choice of occupation--such
33275freedom as his wealth, his education, and his social position had
33276given him in his own life--is just what makes the choice of occupation
33277insolubly difficult and destroys the desire and possibility of
33278having an occupation.
33279
33280All Pierre's daydreams now turned on the time when he would be free.
33281Yet subsequently, and for the rest of his life, he thought and spoke
33282with enthusiasm of that month of captivity, of those irrecoverable,
33283strong, joyful sensations, and chiefly of the complete peace of mind
33284and inner freedom which he experienced only during those weeks.
33285
33286When on the first day he got up early, went out of the shed at dawn,
33287and saw the cupolas and crosses of the New Convent of the Virgin still
33288dark at first, the hoarfrost on the dusty grass, the Sparrow Hills,
33289and the wooded banks above the winding river vanishing in the purple
33290distance, when he felt the contact of the fresh air and heard the
33291noise of the crows flying from Moscow across the field, and when
33292afterwards light gleamed from the east and the sun's rim appeared
33293solemnly from behind a cloud, and the cupolas and crosses, the
33294hoarfrost, the distance and the river, all began to sparkle in the
33295glad light--Pierre felt a new joy and strength in life such as he
33296had never before known. And this not only stayed with him during the
33297whole of his imprisonment, but even grew in strength as the
33298hardships of his position increased.
33299
33300That feeling of alertness and of readiness for anything was still
33301further strengthened in him by the high opinion his fellow prisoners
33302formed of him soon after his arrival at the shed. With his knowledge
33303of languages, the respect shown him by the French, his simplicity, his
33304readiness to give anything asked of him (he received the allowance
33305of three rubles a week made to officers); with his strength, which
33306he showed to the soldiers by pressing nails into the walls of the hut;
33307his gentleness to his companions, and his capacity for sitting still
33308and thinking without doing anything (which seemed to them
33309incomprehensible), he appeared to them a rather mysterious and
33310superior being. The very qualities that had been a hindrance, if not
33311actually harmful, to him in the world he had lived in--his strength,
33312his disdain for the comforts of life, his absent-mindedness and
33313simplicity--here among these people gave him almost the status of a
33314hero. And Pierre felt that their opinion placed responsibilities
33315upon him.
33316
33317
33318
33319
33320CHAPTER XIII
33321
33322
33323The French evacuation began on the night between the sixth and
33324seventh of October: kitchens and sheds were dismantled, carts
33325loaded, and troops and baggage trains started.
33326
33327At seven in the morning a French convoy in marching trim, wearing
33328shakos and carrying muskets, knapsacks, and enormous sacks, stood in
33329front of the sheds, and animated French talk mingled with curses
33330sounded all along the lines.
33331
33332In the shed everyone was ready, dressed, belted, shod, and only
33333awaited the order to start. The sick soldier, Sokolov, pale and thin
33334with dark shadows round his eyes, alone sat in his place barefoot
33335and not dressed. His eyes, prominent from the emaciation of his
33336face, gazed inquiringly at his comrades who were paying no attention
33337to him, and he moaned regularly and quietly. It was evidently not so
33338much his sufferings that caused him to moan (he had dysentery) as
33339his fear and grief at being left alone.
33340
33341Pierre, girt with a rope round his waist and wearing shoes
33342Karataev had made for him from some leather a French soldier had
33343torn off a tea chest and brought to have his boots mended with, went
33344up to the sick man and squatted down beside him.
33345
33346"You know, Sokolov, they are not all going away! They have a
33347hospital here. You may be better off than we others," said Pierre.
33348
33349"O Lord! Oh, it will be the death of me! O Lord!" moaned the man
33350in a louder voice.
33351
33352"I'll go and ask them again directly," said Pierre, rising and going
33353to the door of the shed.
33354
33355Just as Pierre reached the door, the corporal who had offered him
33356a pipe the day before came up to it with two soldiers. The corporal
33357and soldiers were in marching kit with knapsacks and shakos that had
33358metal straps, and these changed their familiar faces.
33359
33360The corporal came, according to orders, to shut the door. The
33361prisoners had to be counted before being let out.
33362
33363"Corporal, what will they do with the sick man?..." Pierre began.
33364
33365But even as he spoke he began to doubt whether this was the corporal
33366he knew or a stranger, so unlike himself did the corporal seem at that
33367moment. Moreover, just as Pierre was speaking a sharp rattle of
33368drums was suddenly heard from both sides. The corporal frowned at
33369Pierre's words and, uttering some meaningless oaths, slammed the door.
33370The shed became semidark, and the sharp rattle of the drums on two
33371sides drowned the sick man's groans.
33372
33373"There it is!... It again!..." said Pierre to himself, and an
33374involuntary shudder ran down his spine. In the corporal's changed
33375face, in the sound of his voice, in the stirring and deafening noise
33376of the drums, he recognized that mysterious, callous force which
33377compelled people against their will to kill their fellow men--that
33378force the effect of which he had witnessed during the executions. To
33379fear or to try to escape that force, to address entreaties or
33380exhortations to those who served as its tools, was useless. Pierre
33381knew this now. One had to wait and endure. He did not again go to
33382the sick man, nor turn to look at him, but stood frowning by the
33383door of the hut.
33384
33385When that door was opened and the prisoners, crowding against one
33386another like a flock of sheep, squeezed into the exit, Pierre pushed
33387his way forward and approached that very captain who as the corporal
33388had assured him was ready to do anything for him. The captain was also
33389in marching kit, and on his cold face appeared that same it which
33390Pierre had recognized in the corporal's words and in the roll of the
33391drums.
33392
33393"Pass on, pass on!" the captain reiterated, frowning sternly, and
33394looking at the prisoners who thronged past him.
33395
33396Pierre went up to him, though he knew his attempt would be vain.
33397
33398"What now?" the officer asked with a cold look as if not recognizing
33399Pierre.
33400
33401Pierre told him about the sick man.
33402
33403"He'll manage to walk, devil take him!" said the captain. "Pass
33404on, pass on!" he continued without looking at Pierre.
33405
33406"But he is dying," Pierre again began.
33407
33408"Be so good..." shouted the captain, frowning angrily.
33409
33410"Dram-da-da-dam, dam-dam..." rattled the drums, and Pierre
33411understood that this mysterious force completely controlled these
33412men and that it was now useless to say any more.
33413
33414The officer prisoners were separated from the soldiers and told to
33415march in front. There were about thirty officers, with Pierre among
33416them, and about three hundred men.
33417
33418The officers, who had come from the other sheds, were all
33419strangers to Pierre and much better dressed than he. They looked at
33420him and at his shoes mistrustfully, as at an alien. Not far from him
33421walked a fat major with a sallow, bloated, angry face, who was wearing
33422a Kazan dressing grown tied round with a towel, and who evidently
33423enjoyed the respect of his fellow prisoners. He kept one hand, in
33424which he clasped his tobacco pouch, inside the bosom of his dressing
33425gown and held the stem of his pipe firmly with the other. Panting
33426and puffing, the major grumbled and growled at everybody because he
33427thought he was being pushed and that they were all hurrying when
33428they had nowhere to hurry to and were all surprised at something
33429when there was nothing to be surprised at. Another, a thin little
33430officer, was speaking to everyone, conjecturing where they were now
33431being taken and how far they would get that day. An official in felt
33432boots and wearing a commissariat uniform ran round from side to side
33433and gazed at the ruins of Moscow, loudly announcing his observations
33434as to what had been burned down and what this or that part of the city
33435was that they could see. A third officer, who by his accent was a
33436Pole, disputed with the commissariat officer, arguing that he was
33437mistaken in his identification of the different wards of Moscow.
33438
33439"What are you disputing about?" said the major angrily. "What does
33440it matter whether it is St. Nicholas or St. Blasius? You see it's
33441burned down, and there's an end of it.... What are you pushing for?
33442Isn't the road wide enough?" said he, turning to a man behind him
33443who was not pushing him at all.
33444
33445"Oh, oh, oh! What have they done?" the prisoners on one side and
33446another were heard saying as they gazed on the charred ruins. "All
33447beyond the river, and Zubova, and in the Kremlin.... Just look!
33448There's not half of it left. Yes, I told you--the whole quarter beyond
33449the river, and so it is."
33450
33451"Well, you know it's burned, so what's the use of talking?" said the
33452major.
33453
33454As they passed near a church in the Khamovniki (one of the few
33455unburned quarters of Moscow) the whole mass of prisoners suddenly
33456started to one side and exclamations of horror and disgust were heard.
33457
33458"Ah, the villains! What heathens! Yes; dead, dead, so he is... And
33459smeared with something!"
33460
33461Pierre too drew near the church where the thing was that evoked
33462these exclamations, and dimly made out something leaning against the
33463palings surrounding the church. From the words of his comrades who saw
33464better than he did, he found that this was the body of a man, set
33465upright against the palings with its face smeared with soot.
33466
33467"Go on! What the devil... Go on! Thirty thousand devils!..." the
33468convoy guards began cursing and the French soldiers, with fresh
33469virulence, drove away with their swords the crowd of prisoners who
33470were gazing at the dead man.
33471
33472
33473
33474
33475
33476CHAPTER XIV
33477
33478
33479Through the cross streets of the Khamovniki quarter the prisoners
33480marched, followed only by their escort and the vehicles and wagons
33481belonging to that escort, but when they reached the supply stores they
33482came among a huge and closely packed train of artillery mingled with
33483private vehicles.
33484
33485At the bridge they all halted, waiting for those in front to get
33486across. From the bridge they had a view of endless lines of moving
33487baggage trains before and behind them. To the right, where the
33488Kaluga road turns near Neskuchny, endless rows of troops and carts
33489stretched away into the distance. These were troops of Beauharnais'
33490corps which had started before any of the others. Behind, along the
33491riverside and across the Stone Bridge, were Ney's troops and
33492transport.
33493
33494Davout's troops, in whose charge were the prisoners, were crossing
33495the Crimean bridge and some were already debouching into the Kaluga
33496road. But the baggage trains stretched out so that the last of
33497Beauharnais' train had not yet got out of Moscow and reached the
33498Kaluga road when the vanguard of Ney's army was already emerging
33499from the Great Ordynka Street.
33500
33501When they had crossed the Crimean bridge the prisoners moved a few
33502steps forward, halted, and again moved on, and from all sides vehicles
33503and men crowded closer and closer together. They advanced the few
33504hundred paces that separated the bridge from the Kaluga road, taking
33505more than an hour to do so, and came out upon the square where the
33506streets of the Transmoskva ward and the Kaluga road converge, and
33507the prisoners jammed close together had to stand for some hours at
33508that crossway. From all sides, like the roar of the sea, were heard
33509the rattle of wheels, the tramp of feet, and incessant shouts of anger
33510and abuse. Pierre stood pressed against the wall of a charred house,
33511listening to that noise which mingled in his imagination with the roll
33512of the drums.
33513
33514To get a better view, several officer prisoners climbed onto the
33515wall of the half-burned house against which Pierre was leaning.
33516
33517"What crowds! Just look at the crowds!... They've loaded goods
33518even on the cannon! Look there, those are furs!" they exclaimed. "Just
33519see what the blackguards have looted.... There! See what that one
33520has behind in the cart.... Why, those are settings taken from some
33521icons, by heaven!... Oh, the rascals!... See how that fellow has
33522loaded himself up, he can hardly walk! Good lord, they've even grabbed
33523those chaises!... See that fellow there sitting on the trunks....
33524Heavens! They're fighting."
33525
33526"That's right, hit him on the snout--on his snout! Like this, we
33527shan't get away before evening. Look, look there.... Why, that must be
33528Napoleon's own. See what horses! And the monograms with a crown!
33529It's like a portable house.... That fellow's dropped his sack and
33530doesn't see it. Fighting again... A woman with a baby, and not
33531bad-looking either! Yes, I dare say, that's the way they'll let you
33532pass... Just look, there's no end to it. Russian wenches, by heaven,
33533so they are! In carriages--see how comfortably they've settled
33534themselves!"
33535
33536Again, as at the church in Khamovniki, a wave of general curiosity
33537bore all the prisoners forward onto the road, and Pierre, thanks to
33538his stature, saw over the heads of the others what so attracted
33539their curiosity. In three carriages involved among the munition carts,
33540closely squeezed together, sat women with rouged faces, dressed in
33541glaring colors, who were shouting something in shrill voices.
33542
33543From the moment Pierre had recognized the appearance of the
33544mysterious force nothing had seemed to him strange or dreadful:
33545neither the corpse smeared with soot for fun nor these women
33546hurrying away nor the burned ruins of Moscow. All that he now
33547witnessed scarcely made an impression on him--as if his soul, making
33548ready for a hard struggle, refused to receive impressions that might
33549weaken it.
33550
33551The women's vehicles drove by. Behind them came more carts,
33552soldiers, wagons, soldiers, gun carriages, carriages, soldiers,
33553ammunition carts, more soldiers, and now and then women.
33554
33555Pierre did not see the people as individuals but saw their movement.
33556
33557All these people and horses seemed driven forward by some
33558invisible power. During the hour Pierre watched them they all came
33559flowing from the different streets with one and the same desire to get
33560on quickly; they all jostled one another, began to grow angry and to
33561fight, white teeth gleamed, brows frowned, ever the same words of
33562abuse flew from side to side, and all the faces bore the same
33563swaggeringly resolute and coldly cruel expression that had struck
33564Pierre that morning on the corporal's face when the drums were
33565beating.
33566
33567It was not till nearly evening that the officer commanding the
33568escort collected his men and with shouts and quarrels forced his way
33569in among the baggage trains, and the prisoners, hemmed in on all
33570sides, emerged onto the Kaluga road.
33571
33572They marched very quickly, without resting, and halted only when the
33573sun began to set. The baggage carts drew up close together and the men
33574began to prepare for their night's rest. They all appeared angry and
33575dissatisfied. For a long time, oaths, angry shouts, and fighting could
33576be heard from all sides. A carriage that followed the escort ran
33577into one of the carts and knocked a hole in it with its pole.
33578Several soldiers ran toward the cart from different sides: some beat
33579the carriage horses on their heads, turning them aside, others
33580fought among themselves, and Pierre saw that one German was badly
33581wounded on the head by a sword.
33582
33583It seemed that all these men, now that they had stopped amid
33584fields in the chill dusk of the autumn evening, experienced one and
33585the same feeling of unpleasant awakening from the hurry and
33586eagerness to push on that had seized them at the start. Once at a
33587standstill they all seemed to understand that they did not yet know
33588where they were going, and that much that was painful and difficult
33589awaited them on this journey.
33590
33591During this halt the escort treated the prisoners even worse than
33592they had done at the start. It was here that the prisoners for the
33593first time received horseflesh for their meat ration.
33594
33595From the officer down to the lowest soldier they showed what
33596seemed like personal spite against each of the prisoners, in
33597unexpected contrast to their former friendly relations.
33598
33599This spite increased still more when, on calling over the roll of
33600prisoners, it was found that in the bustle of leaving Moscow one
33601Russian soldier, who had pretended to suffer from colic, had
33602escaped. Pierre saw a Frenchman beat a Russian soldier cruelly for
33603straying too far from the road, and heard his friend the captain
33604reprimand and threaten to court-martial a noncommissioned officer on
33605account of the escape of the Russian. To the noncommissioned officer's
33606excuse that the prisoner was ill and could not walk, the officer
33607replied that the order was to shoot those who lagged behind. Pierre
33608felt that that fatal force which had crushed him during the
33609executions, but which he had not felt during his imprisonment, now
33610again controlled his existence. It was terrible, but he felt that in
33611proportion to the efforts of that fatal force to crush him, there grew
33612and strengthened in his soul a power of life independent of it.
33613
33614He ate his supper of buckwheat soup with horseflesh and chatted with
33615his comrades.
33616
33617Neither Pierre nor any of the others spoke of what they had seen
33618in Moscow, or of the roughness of their treatment by the French, or of
33619the order to shoot them which had been announced to them. As if in
33620reaction against the worsening of their position they were all
33621particularly animated and gay. They spoke of personal reminiscences,
33622of amusing scenes they had witnessed during the campaign, and
33623avoided all talk of their present situation.
33624
33625The sun had set long since. Bright stars shone out here and there in
33626the sky. A red glow as of a conflagration spread above the horizon
33627from the rising full moon, and that vast red ball swayed strangely
33628in the gray haze. It grew light. The evening was ending, but the night
33629had not yet come. Pierre got up and left his new companions,
33630crossing between the campfires to the other side of the road where
33631he had been told the common soldier prisoners were stationed. He
33632wanted to talk to them. On the road he was stopped by a French
33633sentinel who ordered him back.
33634
33635Pierre turned back, not to his companions by the campfire, but to an
33636unharnessed cart where there was nobody. Tucking his legs under him
33637and dropping his head he sat down on the cold ground by the wheel of
33638the cart and remained motionless a long while sunk in thought.
33639Suddenly he burst out into a fit of his broad, good-natured
33640laughter, so loud that men from various sides turned with surprise
33641to see what this strange and evidently solitary laughter could mean.
33642
33643"Ha-ha-ha!" laughed Pierre. And he said aloud to himself: "The
33644soldier did not let me pass. They took me and shut me up. They hold me
33645captive. What, me? Me? My immortal soul? Ha-ha-ha! Ha-ha-ha!..." and
33646he laughed till tears started to his eyes.
33647
33648A man got up and came to see what this queer big fellow was laughing
33649at all by himself. Pierre stopped laughing, got up, went farther
33650away from the inquisitive man, and looked around him.
33651
33652The huge, endless bivouac that had previously resounded with the
33653crackling of campfires and the voices of many men had grown quiet, the
33654red campfires were growing paler and dying down. High up in the
33655light sky hung the full moon. Forests and fields beyond the camp,
33656unseen before, were now visible in the distance. And farther still,
33657beyond those forests and fields, the bright, oscillating, limitless
33658distance lured one to itself. Pierre glanced up at the sky and the
33659twinkling stars in its faraway depths. "And all that is me, all that
33660is within me, and it is all I!" thought Pierre. "And they caught all
33661that and put it into a shed boarded up with planks!" He smiled, and
33662went and lay down to sleep beside his companions.
33663
33664
33665
33666
33667
33668CHAPTER XV
33669
33670
33671In the early days of October another envoy came to Kutuzov with a
33672letter from Napoleon proposing peace and falsely dated from Moscow,
33673though Napoleon was already not far from Kutuzov on the old Kaluga
33674road. Kutuzov replied to this letter as he had done to the one
33675formerly brought by Lauriston, saying that there could be no
33676question of peace.
33677
33678Soon after that a report was received from Dorokhov's guerrilla
33679detachment operating to the left of Tarutino that troops of
33680Broussier's division had been seen at Forminsk and that being
33681separated from the rest of the French army they might easily be
33682destroyed. The soldiers and officers again demanded action. Generals
33683on the staff, excited by the memory of the easy victory at Tarutino,
33684urged Kutuzov to carry out Dorokhov's suggestion. Kutuzov did not
33685consider any offensive necessary. The result was a compromise which
33686was inevitable: a small detachment was sent to Forminsk to attack
33687Broussier.
33688
33689By a strange coincidence, this task, which turned out to be a most
33690difficult and important one, was entrusted to Dokhturov--that same
33691modest little Dokhturov whom no one had described to us as drawing
33692up plans of battles, dashing about in front of regiments, showering
33693crosses on batteries, and so on, and who was thought to be and was
33694spoken of as undecided and undiscerning--but whom we find commanding
33695wherever the position was most difficult all through the
33696Russo-French wars from Austerlitz to the year 1813. At Austerlitz he
33697remained last at the Augezd dam, rallying the regiments, saving what
33698was possible when all were flying and perishing and not a single
33699general was left in the rear guard. Ill with fever he went to Smolensk
33700with twenty thousand men to defend the town against Napoleon's whole
33701army. In Smolensk, at the Malakhov Gate, he had hardly dozed off in
33702a paroxysm of fever before he was awakened by the bombardment of the
33703town--and Smolensk held out all day long. At the battle of Borodino,
33704when Bagration was killed and nine tenths of the men of our left flank
33705had fallen and the full force of the French artillery fire was
33706directed against it, the man sent there was this same irresolute and
33707undiscerning Dokhturov--Kutuzov hastening to rectify a mistake he
33708had made by sending someone else there first. And the quiet little
33709Dokhturov rode thither, and Borodino became the greatest glory of
33710the Russian army. Many heroes have been described to us in verse and
33711prose, but of Dokhturov scarcely a word has been said.
33712
33713It was Dokhturov again whom they sent to Forminsk and from there
33714to Malo-Yaroslavets, the place where the last battle with the French
33715was fought and where the obvious disintegration of the French army
33716began; and we are told of many geniuses and heroes of that period of
33717the campaign, but of Dokhturov nothing or very little is said and that
33718dubiously. And this silence about Dokhturov is the clearest
33719testimony to his merit.
33720
33721It is natural for a man who does not understand the workings of a
33722machine to imagine that a shaving that has fallen into it by chance
33723and is interfering with its action and tossing about in it is its most
33724important part. The man who does not understand the construction of
33725the machine cannot conceive that the small connecting cogwheel which
33726revolves quietly is one of the most essential parts of the machine,
33727and not the shaving which merely harms and hinders the working.
33728
33729On the tenth of October when Dokhturov had gone halfway to
33730Forminsk and stopped at the village of Aristovo, preparing
33731faithfully to execute the orders he had received, the whole French
33732army having, in its convulsive movement, reached Murat's position
33733apparently in order to give battle--suddenly without any reason turned
33734off to the left onto the new Kaluga road and began to enter
33735Forminsk, where only Broussier had been till then. At that time
33736Dokhturov had under his command, besides Dorokhov's detachment, the
33737two small guerrilla detachments of Figner and Seslavin.
33738
33739On the evening of October 11 Seslavin came to the Aristovo
33740headquarters with a French guardsman he had captured. The prisoner
33741said that the troops that had entered Forminsk that day were the
33742vanguard of the whole army, that Napoleon was there and the whole army
33743had left Moscow four days previously. That same evening a house serf
33744who had come from Borovsk said he had seen an immense army entering
33745the town. Some Cossacks of Dokhturov's detachment reported having
33746sighted the French Guards marching along the road to Borovsk. From all
33747these reports it was evident that where they had expected to meet a
33748single division there was now the whole French army marching from
33749Moscow in an unexpected direction--along the Kaluga road. Dokhturov
33750was unwilling to undertake any action, as it was not clear to him
33751now what he ought to do. He had been ordered to attack Forminsk. But
33752only Broussier had been there at that time and now the whole French
33753army was there. Ermolov wished to act on his own judgment, but
33754Dokhturov insisted that he must have Kutuzov's instructions. So it was
33755decided to send a dispatch to the staff.
33756
33757For this purpose a capable officer, Bolkhovitinov, was chosen, who
33758was to explain the whole affair by word of mouth, besides delivering a
33759written report. Toward midnight Bolkhovitinov, having received the
33760dispatch and verbal instructions, galloped off to the General Staff
33761accompanied by a Cossack with spare horses.
33762
33763
33764
33765
33766
33767CHAPTER XVI
33768
33769
33770It was a warm, dark, autumn night. It had been raining for four
33771days. Having changed horses twice and galloped twenty miles in an hour
33772and a half over a sticky, muddy road, Bolkhovitinov reached Litashevka
33773after one o'clock at night. Dismounting at a cottage on whose wattle
33774fence hung a signboard, GENERAL STAFF, and throwing down his reins, he
33775entered a dark passage.
33776
33777"The general on duty, quick! It's very important!" said he to
33778someone who had risen and was sniffing in the dark passage.
33779
33780"He has been very unwell since the evening and this is the third
33781night he has not slept," said the orderly pleadingly in a whisper.
33782"You should wake the captain first."
33783
33784"But this is very important, from General Dokhturov," said
33785Bolkhovitinov, entering the open door which he had found by feeling in
33786the dark.
33787
33788The orderly had gone in before him and began waking somebody.
33789
33790"Your honor, your honor! A courier."
33791
33792"What? What's that? From whom?" came a sleepy voice.
33793
33794"From Dokhturov and from Alexey Petrovich. Napoleon is at Forminsk,"
33795said Bolkhovitinov, unable to see in the dark who was speaking but
33796guessing by the voice that it was not Konovnitsyn.
33797
33798The man who had wakened yawned and stretched himself.
33799
33800"I don't like waking him," he said, fumbling for something. "He is
33801very ill. Perhaps this is only a rumor."
33802
33803"Here is the dispatch," said Bolkhovitinov. "My orders are to give
33804it at once to the general on duty."
33805
33806"Wait a moment, I'll light a candle. You damned rascal, where do you
33807always hide it?" said the voice of the man who was stretching himself,
33808to the orderly. (This was Shcherbinin, Konovnitsyn's adjutant.)
33809"I've found it, I've found it!" he added.
33810
33811The orderly was striking a light and Shcherbinin was fumbling for
33812something on the candlestick.
33813
33814"Oh, the nasty beasts!" said he with disgust.
33815
33816By the light of the sparks Bolkhovitinov saw Shcherbinin's
33817youthful face as he held the candle, and the face of another man who
33818was still asleep. This was Konovnitsyn.
33819
33820When the flame of the sulphur splinters kindled by the tinder burned
33821up, first blue and then red, Shcherbinin lit the tallow candle, from
33822the candlestick of which the cockroaches that had been gnawing it were
33823running away, and looked at the messenger. Bolkhovitinov was
33824bespattered all over with mud and had smeared his face by wiping it
33825with his sleeve.
33826
33827"Who gave the report?" inquired Shcherbinin, taking the envelope.
33828
33829"The news is reliable," said Bolkhovitinov. "Prisoners, Cossacks,
33830and the scouts all say the same thing."
33831
33832"There's nothing to be done, we'll have to wake him," said
33833Shcherbinin, rising and going up to the man in the nightcap who lay
33834covered by a greatcoat. "Peter Petrovich!" said he. (Konovnitsyn did
33835not stir.) "To the General Staff!" he said with a smile, knowing
33836that those words would be sure to arouse him.
33837
33838And in fact the head in the nightcap was lifted at once. On
33839Konovnitsyn's handsome, resolute face with cheeks flushed by fever,
33840there still remained for an instant a faraway dreamy expression remote
33841from present affairs, but then he suddenly started and his face
33842assumed its habitual calm and firm appearance.
33843
33844"Well, what is it? From whom?" he asked immediately but without
33845hurry, blinking at the light.
33846
33847While listening to the officer's report Konovnitsyn broke the seal
33848and read the dispatch. Hardly had he done so before he lowered his
33849legs in their woolen stockings to the earthen floor and began
33850putting on his boots. Then he took off his nightcap, combed his hair
33851over his temples, and donned his cap.
33852
33853"Did you get here quickly? Let us go to his Highness."
33854
33855Konovnitsyn had understood at once that the news brought was of
33856great importance and that no time must be lost. He did not consider or
33857ask himself whether the news was good or bad. That did not interest
33858him. He regarded the whole business of the war not with his
33859intelligence or his reason but by something else. There was within him
33860a deep unexpressed conviction that all would be well, but that one
33861must not trust to this and still less speak about it, but must only
33862attend to one's own work. And he did his work, giving his whole
33863strength to the task.
33864
33865Peter Petrovich Konovnitsyn, like Dokhturov, seems to have been
33866included merely for propriety's sake in the list of the so-called
33867heroes of 1812--the Barclays, Raevskis, Ermolovs, Platovs, and
33868Miloradoviches. Like Dokhturov he had the reputation of being a man of
33869very limited capacity and information, and like Dokhturov he never
33870made plans of battle but was always found where the situation was most
33871difficult. Since his appointment as general on duty he had always
33872slept with his door open, giving orders that every messenger should be
33873allowed to wake him up. In battle he was always under fire, so that
33874Kutuzov reproved him for it and feared to send him to the front, and
33875like Dokhturov he was one of those unnoticed cogwheels that, without
33876clatter or noise, constitute the most essential part of the machine.
33877
33878Coming out of the hut into the damp, dark night Konovnitsyn frowned-
33879partly from an increased pain in his head and partly at the unpleasant
33880thought that occurred to him, of how all that nest of influential
33881men on the staff would be stirred up by this news, especially
33882Bennigsen, who ever since Tarutino had been at daggers drawn with
33883Kutuzov; and how they would make suggestions, quarrel, issue orders,
33884and rescind them. And this premonition was disagreeable to him
33885though he knew it could not be helped.
33886
33887And in fact Toll, to whom he went to communicate the news,
33888immediately began to expound his plans to a general sharing his
33889quarters, until Konovnitsyn, who listened in weary silence, reminded
33890him that they must go to see his Highness.
33891
33892
33893
33894
33895
33896CHAPTER XVII
33897
33898
33899Kutuzov like all old people did not sleep much at night. He often
33900fell asleep unexpectedly in the daytime, but at night, lying on his
33901bed without undressing, he generally remained awake thinking.
33902
33903So he lay now on his bed, supporting his large, heavy, scarred
33904head on his plump hand, with his one eye open, meditating and
33905peering into the darkness.
33906
33907Since Bennigsen, who corresponded with the Emperor and had more
33908influence than anyone else on the staff, had begun to avoid him,
33909Kutuzov was more at ease as to the possibility of himself and his
33910troops being obliged to take part in useless aggressive movements. The
33911lesson of the Tarutino battle and of the day before it, which
33912Kutuzov remembered with pain, must, he thought, have some effect on
33913others too.
33914
33915"They must understand that we can only lose by taking the offensive.
33916Patience and time are my warriors, my champions," thought Kutuzov.
33917He knew that an apple should not be plucked while it is green. It will
33918fall of itself when ripe, but if picked unripe the apple is spoiled,
33919the tree is harmed, and your teeth are set on edge. Like an
33920experienced sportsman he knew that the beast was wounded, and
33921wounded as only the whole strength of Russia could have wounded it,
33922but whether it was mortally wounded or not was still an undecided
33923question. Now by the fact of Lauriston and Barthelemi having been
33924sent, and by the reports of the guerrillas, Kutuzov was almost sure
33925that the wound was mortal. But he needed further proofs and it was
33926necessary to wait.
33927
33928"They want to run to see how they have wounded it. Wait and we shall
33929see! Continual maneuvers, continual advances!" thought he. "What
33930for? Only to distinguish themselves! As if fighting were fun. They are
33931like children from whom one can't get any sensible account of what has
33932happened because they all want to show how well they can fight. But
33933that's not what is needed now.
33934
33935"And what ingenious maneuvers they all propose to me! It seems to
33936them that when they have thought of two or three contingencies" (he
33937remembered the general plan sent him from Petersburg) "they have
33938foreseen everything. But the contingencies are endless."
33939
33940The undecided question as to whether the wound inflicted at Borodino
33941was mortal or not had hung over Kutuzov's head for a whole month. On
33942the one hand the French had occupied Moscow. On the other Kutuzov felt
33943assured with all his being that the terrible blow into which he and
33944all the Russians had put their whole strength must have been mortal.
33945But in any case proofs were needed; he had waited a whole month for
33946them and grew more impatient the longer he waited. Lying on his bed
33947during those sleepless nights he did just what he reproached those
33948younger generals for doing. He imagined all sorts of possible
33949contingencies, just like the younger men, but with this difference,
33950that he saw thousands of contingencies instead of two or three and
33951based nothing on them. The longer he thought the more contingencies
33952presented themselves. He imagined all sorts of movements of the
33953Napoleonic army as a whole or in sections--against Petersburg, or
33954against him, or to outflank him. He thought too of the possibility
33955(which he feared most of all) that Napoleon might fight him with his
33956own weapon and remain in Moscow awaiting him. Kutuzov even imagined
33957that Napoleon's army might turn back through Medyn and Yukhnov, but
33958the one thing he could not foresee was what happened--the insane,
33959convulsive stampede of Napoleon's army during its first eleven days
33960after leaving Moscow: a stampede which made possible what Kutuzov
33961had not yet even dared to think of--the complete extermination of
33962the French. Dorokhov's report about Broussier's division, the
33963guerrillas' reports of distress in Napoleon's army, rumors of
33964preparations for leaving Moscow, all confirmed the supposition that
33965the French army was beaten and preparing for flight. But these were
33966only suppositions, which seemed important to the younger men but not
33967to Kutuzov. With his sixty years' experience he knew what value to
33968attach to rumors, knew how apt people who desire anything are to group
33969all news so that it appears to confirm what they desire, and he knew
33970how readily in such cases they omit all that makes for the contrary.
33971And the more he desired it the less he allowed himself to believe
33972it. This question absorbed all his mental powers. All else was to
33973him only life's customary routine. To such customary routine
33974belonged his conversations with the staff, the letters he wrote from
33975Tarutino to Madame de Stael, the reading of novels, the distribution
33976of awards, his correspondence with Petersburg, and so on. But the
33977destruction of the French, which he alone foresaw, was his heart's one
33978desire.
33979
33980On the night of the eleventh of October he lay leaning on his arm
33981and thinking of that.
33982
33983There was a stir in the next room and he heard the steps of Toll,
33984Konovnitsyn, and Bolkhovitinov.
33985
33986"Eh, who's there? Come in, come in! What news?" the field marshal
33987called out to them.
33988
33989While a footman was lighting a candle, Toll communicated the
33990substance of the news.
33991
33992"Who brought it?" asked Kutuzov with a look which, when the candle
33993was lit, struck Toll by its cold severity.
33994
33995"There can be no doubt about it, your Highness."
33996
33997"Call him in, call him here."
33998
33999Kutuzov sat up with one leg hanging down from the bed and his big
34000paunch resting against the other which was doubled under him. He
34001screwed up his seeing eye to scrutinize the messenger more
34002carefully, as if wishing to read in his face what preoccupied his
34003own mind.
34004
34005"Tell me, tell me, friend," said he to Bolkhovitinov in his low,
34006aged voice, as he pulled together the shirt which gaped open on his
34007chest, "come nearer--nearer. What news have you brought me? Eh? That
34008Napoleon has left Moscow? Are you sure? Eh?"
34009
34010Bolkhovitinov gave a detailed account from the beginning of all he
34011had been told to report.
34012
34013"Speak quicker, quicker! Don't torture me!" Kutuzov interrupted him.
34014
34015Bolkhovitinov told him everything and was then silent, awaiting
34016instructions. Toll was beginning to say something but Kutuzov
34017checked him. He tried to say something, but his face suddenly puckered
34018and wrinkled; he waved his arm at Toll and turned to the opposite side
34019of the room, to the corner darkened by the icons that hung there.
34020
34021"O Lord, my Creator, Thou has heard our prayer..." said he in a
34022tremulous voice with folded hands. "Russia is saved. I thank Thee, O
34023Lord!" and he wept.
34024
34025
34026
34027
34028
34029CHAPTER XVIII
34030
34031
34032From the time he received this news to the end of the campaign all
34033Kutuzov's activity was directed toward restraining his troops, by
34034authority, by guile, and by entreaty, from useless attacks, maneuvers,
34035or encounters with the perishing enemy. Dokhturov went to
34036Malo-Yaroslavets, but Kutuzov lingered with the main army and gave
34037orders for the evacuation of Kaluga--a retreat beyond which town
34038seemed to him quite possible.
34039
34040Everywhere Kutuzov retreated, but the enemy without waiting for
34041his retreat fled in the opposite direction.
34042
34043Napoleon's historians describe to us his skilled maneuvers at
34044Tarutino and Malo-Yaroslavets, and make conjectures as to what would
34045have happened had Napoleon been in time to penetrate into the rich
34046southern provinces.
34047
34048But not to speak of the fact that nothing prevented him from
34049advancing into those southern provinces (for the Russian army did
34050not bar his way), the historians forget that nothing could have
34051saved his army, for then already it bore within itself the germs of
34052inevitable ruin. How could that army--which had found abundant
34053supplies in Moscow and had trampled them underfoot instead of
34054keeping them, and on arriving at Smolensk had looted provisions
34055instead of storing them--how could that army recuperate in Kaluga
34056province, which was inhabited by Russians such as those who lived in
34057Moscow, and where fire had the same property of consuming what was set
34058ablaze?
34059
34060That army could not recover anywhere. Since the battle of Borodino
34061and the pillage of Moscow it had borne within itself, as it were,
34062the chemical elements of dissolution.
34063
34064The members of what had once been an army--Napoleon himself and
34065all his soldiers fled--without knowing whither, each concerned only to
34066make his escape as quickly as possible from this position, of the
34067hopelessness of which they were all more or less vaguely conscious.
34068
34069So it came about that at the council at Malo-Yaroslavets, when the
34070generals pretending to confer together expressed various opinions, all
34071mouths were closed by the opinion uttered by the simple-minded soldier
34072Mouton who, speaking last, said what they all felt: that the one thing
34073needful was to get away as quickly as possible; and no one, not even
34074Napoleon, could say anything against that truth which they all
34075recognized.
34076
34077But though they all realized that it was necessary to get away,
34078there still remained a feeling of shame at admitting that they must
34079flee. An external shock was needed to overcome that shame, and this
34080shock came in due time. It was what the French called "le hourra de
34081l'Empereur."
34082
34083The day after the council at Malo-Yaroslavets Napoleon rode out
34084early in the morning amid the lines of his army with his suite of
34085marshals and an escort, on the pretext of inspecting the army and
34086the scene of the previous and of the impending battle. Some Cossacks
34087on the prowl for booty fell in with the Emperor and very nearly
34088captured him. If the Cossacks did not capture Napoleon then, what
34089saved him was the very thing that was destroying the French army,
34090the booty on which the Cossacks fell. Here as at Tarutino they went
34091after plunder, leaving the men. Disregarding Napoleon they rushed
34092after the plunder and Napoleon managed to escape.
34093
34094When les enfants du Don might so easily have taken the Emperor
34095himself in the midst of his army, it was clear that there was
34096nothing for it but to fly as fast as possible along the nearest,
34097familiar road. Napoleon with his forty-year-old stomach understood
34098that hint, not feeling his former agility and boldness, and under
34099the influence of the fright the Cossacks had given him he at once
34100agreed with Mouton and issued orders--as the historians tell us--to
34101retreat by the Smolensk road.
34102
34103That Napoleon agreed with Mouton, and that the army retreated,
34104does not prove that Napoleon caused it to retreat, but that the forces
34105which influenced the whole army and directed it along the Mozhaysk
34106(that is, the Smolensk) road acted simultaneously on him also.
34107
34108
34109
34110
34111
34112CHAPTER XIX
34113
34114
34115A man in motion always devises an aim for that motion. To be able to
34116go a thousand miles he must imagine that something good awaits him
34117at the end of those thousand miles. One must have the prospect of a
34118promised land to have the strength to move.
34119
34120The promised land for the French during their advance had been
34121Moscow, during their retreat it was their native land. But that native
34122land was too far off, and for a man going a thousand miles it is
34123absolutely necessary to set aside his final goal and to say to
34124himself: "Today I shall get to a place twenty-five miles off where I
34125shall rest and spend the night," and during the first day's journey
34126that resting place eclipses his ultimate goal and attracts all his
34127hopes and desires. And the impulses felt by a single person are always
34128magnified in a crowd.
34129
34130For the French retreating along the old Smolensk road, the final
34131goal--their native land--was too remote, and their immediate goal
34132was Smolensk, toward which all their desires and hopes, enormously
34133intensified in the mass, urged them on. It was not that they knew that
34134much food and fresh troops awaited them in Smolensk, nor that they
34135were told so (on the contrary their superior officers, and Napoleon
34136himself, knew that provisions were scarce there), but because this
34137alone could give them strength to move on and endure their present
34138privations. So both those who knew and those who did not know deceived
34139themselves, and pushed on to Smolensk as to a promised land.
34140
34141Coming out onto the highroad the French fled with surprising
34142energy and unheard-of rapidity toward the goal they had fixed on.
34143Besides the common impulse which bound the whole crowd of French
34144into one mass and supplied them with a certain energy, there was
34145another cause binding them together--their great numbers. As with
34146the physical law of gravity, their enormous mass drew the individual
34147human atoms to itself. In their hundreds of thousands they moved
34148like a whole nation.
34149
34150Each of them desired nothing more than to give himself up as a
34151prisoner to escape from all this horror and misery; but on the one
34152hand the force of this common attraction to Smolensk, their goal, drew
34153each of them in the same direction; on the other hand an army corps
34154could not surrender to a company, and though the French availed
34155themselves of every convenient opportunity to detach themselves and to
34156surrender on the slightest decent pretext, such pretexts did not
34157always occur. Their very numbers and their crowded and swift
34158movement deprived them of that possibility and rendered it not only
34159difficult but impossible for the Russians to stop this movement, to
34160which the French were directing all their energies. Beyond a certain
34161limit no mechanical disruption of the body could hasten the process of
34162decomposition.
34163
34164A lump of snow cannot be melted instantaneously. There is a
34165certain limit of time in less than which no amount of heat can melt
34166the snow. On the contrary the greater the heat the more solidified the
34167remaining snow becomes.
34168
34169Of the Russian commanders Kutuzov alone understood this. When the
34170flight of the French army along the Smolensk road became well defined,
34171what Konovnitsyn had foreseen on the night of the eleventh of
34172October began to occur. The superior officers all wanted to
34173distinguish themselves, to cut off, to seize, to capture, and to
34174overthrow the French, and all clamored for action.
34175
34176Kutuzov alone used all his power (and such power is very limited
34177in the case of any commander in chief) to prevent an attack.
34178
34179He could not tell them what we say now: "Why fight, why block the
34180road, losing our own men and inhumanly slaughtering unfortunate
34181wretches? What is the use of that, when a third of their army has
34182melted away on the road from Moscow to Vyazma without any battle?" But
34183drawing from his aged wisdom what they could understand, he told
34184them of the golden bridge, and they laughed at and slandered him,
34185flinging themselves on, rending and exulting over the dying beast.
34186
34187Ermolov, Miloradovich, Platov, and others in proximity to the French
34188near Vyazma could not resist their desire to cut off and break up
34189two French corps, and by way of reporting their intention to Kutuzov
34190they sent him a blank sheet of paper in an envelope.
34191
34192And try as Kutuzov might to restrain the troops, our men attacked,
34193trying to bar the road. Infantry regiments, we are told, advanced to
34194the attack with music and with drums beating, and killed and lost
34195thousands of men.
34196
34197But they did not cut off or overthrow anybody and the French army,
34198closing up more firmly at the danger, continued, while steadily
34199melting away, to pursue its fatal path to Smolensk.
34200
34201
34202
34203
34204
34205
34206BOOK FOURTEEN: 1812
34207
34208
34209
34210
34211
34212CHAPTER I
34213
34214
34215The Battle of Borodino, with the occupation of Moscow that
34216followed it and the flight of the French without further conflicts, is
34217one of the most instructive phenomena in history.
34218
34219All historians agree that the external activity of states and
34220nations in their conflicts with one another is expressed in wars,
34221and that as a direct result of greater or less success in war the
34222political strength of states and nations increases or decreases.
34223
34224Strange as may be the historical account of how some king or
34225emperor, having quarreled with another, collects an army, fights his
34226enemy's army, gains a victory by killing three, five, or ten
34227thousand men, and subjugates a kingdom and an entire nation of several
34228millions, all the facts of history (as far as we know it) confirm
34229the truth of the statement that the greater or lesser success of one
34230army against another is the cause, or at least an essential
34231indication, of an increase or decrease in the strength of the
34232nation--even though it is unintelligible why the defeat of an army-
34233a hundredth part of a nation--should oblige that whole nation to
34234submit. An army gains a victory, and at once the rights of the
34235conquering nation have increased to the detriment of the defeated.
34236An army has suffered defeat, and at once a people loses its rights
34237in proportion to the severity of the reverse, and if its army
34238suffers a complete defeat the nation is quite subjugated.
34239
34240So according to history it has been found from the most ancient
34241times, and so it is to our own day. All Napoleon's wars serve to
34242confirm this rule. In proportion to the defeat of the Austrian army
34243Austria loses its rights, and the rights and the strength of France
34244increase. The victories of the French at Jena and Auerstadt destroy
34245the independent existence of Prussia.
34246
34247But then, in 1812, the French gain a victory near Moscow. Moscow
34248is taken and after that, with no further battles, it is not Russia
34249that ceases to exist, but the French army of six hundred thousand, and
34250then Napoleonic France itself. To strain the facts to fit the rules of
34251history: to say that the field of battle at Borodino remained in the
34252hands of the Russians, or that after Moscow there were other battles
34253that destroyed Napoleon's army, is impossible.
34254
34255After the French victory at Borodino there was no general engagement
34256nor any that were at all serious, yet the French army ceased to exist.
34257What does this mean? If it were an example taken from the history of
34258China, we might say that it was not an historic phenomenon (which is
34259the historians' usual expedient when anything does not fit their
34260standards); if the matter concerned some brief conflict in which
34261only a small number of troops took part, we might treat it as an
34262exception; but this event occurred before our fathers' eyes, and for
34263them it was a question of the life or death of their fatherland, and
34264it happened in the greatest of all known wars.
34265
34266The period of the campaign of 1812 from the battle of Borodino to
34267the expulsion of the French proved that the winning of a battle does
34268not produce a conquest and is not even an invariable indication of
34269conquest; it proved that the force which decides the fate of peoples
34270lies not in the conquerors, nor even in armies and battles, but in
34271something else.
34272
34273The French historians, describing the condition of the French army
34274before it left Moscow, affirm that all was in order in the Grand Army,
34275except the cavalry, the artillery, and the transport--there was no
34276forage for the horses or the cattle. That was a misfortune no one
34277could remedy, for the peasants of the district burned their hay rather
34278than let the French have it.
34279
34280The victory gained did not bring the usual results because the
34281peasants Karp and Vlas (who after the French had evacuated Moscow
34282drove in their carts to pillage the town, and in general personally
34283failed to manifest any heroic feelings), and the whole innumerable
34284multitude of such peasants, did not bring their hay to Moscow for
34285the high price offered them, but burned it instead.
34286
34287Let us imagine two men who have come out to fight a duel with
34288rapiers according to all the rules of the art of fencing. The
34289fencing has gone on for some time; suddenly one of the combatants,
34290feeling himself wounded and understanding that the matter is no joke
34291but concerns his life, throws down his rapier, and seizing the first
34292cudgel that comes to hand begins to brandish it. Then let us imagine
34293that the combatant who so sensibly employed the best and simplest
34294means to attain his end was at the same time influenced by
34295traditions of chivalry and, desiring to conceal the facts of the case,
34296insisted that he had gained his victory with the rapier according to
34297all the rules of art. One can imagine what confusion and obscurity
34298would result from such an account of the duel.
34299
34300The fencer who demanded a contest according to the rules of
34301fencing was the French army; his opponent who threw away the rapier
34302and snatched up the cudgel was the Russian people; those who try to
34303explain the matter according to the rules of fencing are the
34304historians who have described the event.
34305
34306After the burning of Smolensk a war began which did not follow any
34307previous traditions of war. The burning of towns and villages, the
34308retreats after battles, the blow dealt at Borodino and the renewed
34309retreat, the burning of Moscow, the capture of marauders, the
34310seizure of transports, and the guerrilla war were all departures
34311from the rules.
34312
34313Napoleon felt this, and from the time he took up the correct fencing
34314attitude in Moscow and instead of his opponent's rapier saw a cudgel
34315raised above his head, he did not cease to complain to Kutuzov and
34316to the Emperor Alexander that the war was being carried on contrary to
34317all the rules--as if there were any rules for killing people. In spite
34318of the complaints of the French as to the nonobservance of the
34319rules, in spite of the fact that to some highly placed Russians it
34320seemed rather disgraceful to fight with a cudgel and they wanted to
34321assume a pose en quarte or en tierce according to all the rules, and
34322to make an adroit thrust en prime, and so on--the cudgel of the
34323people's war was lifted with all its menacing and majestic strength,
34324and without consulting anyone's tastes or rules and regardless of
34325anything else, it rose and fell with stupid simplicity, but
34326consistently, and belabored the French till the whole invasion had
34327perished.
34328
34329And it is well for a people who do not--as the French did in 1813-
34330salute according to all the rules of art, and, presenting the hilt
34331of their rapier gracefully and politely, hand it to their
34332magnanimous conqueror, but at the moment of trial, without asking what
34333rules others have adopted in similar cases, simply and easily pick
34334up the first cudgel that comes to hand and strike with it till the
34335feeling of resentment and revenge in their soul yields to a feeling of
34336contempt and compassion.
34337
34338
34339
34340
34341
34342CHAPTER II
34343
34344
34345One of the most obvious and advantageous departures from the
34346so-called laws of war is the action of scattered groups against men
34347pressed together in a mass. Such action always occurs in wars that
34348take on a national character. In such actions, instead of two crowds
34349opposing each other, the men disperse, attack singly, run away when
34350attacked by stronger forces, but again attack when opportunity offers.
34351This was done by the guerrillas in Spain, by the mountain tribes in
34352the Caucasus, and by the Russians in 1812.
34353
34354People have called this kind of war "guerrilla warfare" and assume
34355that by so calling it they have explained its meaning. But such a
34356war does not fit in under any rule and is directly opposed to a
34357well-known rule of tactics which is accepted as infallible. That
34358rule says that an attacker should concentrate his forces in order to
34359be stronger than his opponent at the moment of conflict.
34360
34361Guerrilla war (always successful, as history shows) directly
34362infringes that rule.
34363
34364This contradiction arises from the fact that military science
34365assumes the strength of an army to be identical with its numbers.
34366Military science says that the more troops the greater the strength.
34367Les gros bataillons ont toujours raison.*
34368
34369
34370*Large battalions are always victorious.
34371
34372
34373For military science to say this is like defining momentum in
34374mechanics by reference to the mass only: stating that momenta are
34375equal or unequal to each other simply because the masses involved
34376are equal or unequal.
34377
34378Momentum (quantity of motion) is the product of mass and velocity.
34379
34380In military affairs the strength of an army is the product of its
34381mass and some unknown x.
34382
34383Military science, seeing in history innumerable instances of the
34384fact that the size of any army does not coincide with its strength and
34385that small detachments defeat larger ones, obscurely admits the
34386existence of this unknown factor and tries to discover it--now in a
34387geometric formation, now in the equipment employed, now, and most
34388usually, in the genius of the commanders. But the assignment of
34389these various meanings to the factor does not yield results which
34390accord with the historic facts.
34391
34392Yet it is only necessary to abandon the false view (adopted to
34393gratify the "heroes") of the efficacy of the directions issued in
34394wartime by commanders, in order to find this unknown quantity.
34395
34396That unknown quantity is the spirit of the army, that is to say, the
34397greater or lesser readiness to fight and face danger felt by all the
34398men composing an army, quite independently of whether they are, or are
34399not, fighting under the command of a genius, in two--or three-line
34400formation, with cudgels or with rifles that repeat thirty times a
34401minute. Men who want to fight will always put themselves in the most
34402advantageous conditions for fighting.
34403
34404The spirit of an army is the factor which multiplied by the mass
34405gives the resulting force. To define and express the significance of
34406this unknown factor--the spirit of an army--is a problem for science.
34407
34408This problem is only solvable if we cease arbitrarily to
34409substitute for the unknown x itself the conditions under which that
34410force becomes apparent--such as the commands of the general, the
34411equipment employed, and so on--mistaking these for the real
34412significance of the factor, and if we recognize this unknown
34413quantity in its entirety as being the greater or lesser desire to
34414fight and to face danger. Only then, expressing known historic facts
34415by equations and comparing the relative significance of this factor,
34416can we hope to define the unknown.
34417
34418Ten men, battalions, or divisions, fighting fifteen men, battalions,
34419or divisions, conquer--that is, kill or take captive--all the
34420others, while themselves losing four, so that on the one side four and
34421on the other fifteen were lost. Consequently the four were equal to
34422the fifteen, and therefore 4x = 15y. Consequently x/y = 15/4. This
34423equation does not give us the value of the unknown factor but gives us
34424a ratio between two unknowns. And by bringing variously selected
34425historic units (battles, campaigns, periods of war) into such
34426equations, a series of numbers could be obtained in which certain laws
34427should exist and might be discovered.
34428
34429The tactical rule that an army should act in masses when
34430attacking, and in smaller groups in retreat, unconsciously confirms
34431the truth that the strength of an army depends on its spirit. To
34432lead men forward under fire more discipline (obtainable only by
34433movement in masses) is needed than is needed to resist attacks. But
34434this rule which leaves out of account the spirit of the army
34435continually proves incorrect and is in particularly striking
34436contrast to the facts when some strong rise or fall in the spirit of
34437the troops occurs, as in all national wars.
34438
34439The French, retreating in 1812--though according to tactics they
34440should have separated into detachments to defend themselves-
34441congregated into a mass because the spirit of the army had so fallen
34442that only the mass held the army together. The Russians, on the
34443contrary, ought according to tactics to have attacked in mass, but
34444in fact they split up into small units, because their spirit had so
34445risen that separate individuals, without orders, dealt blows at the
34446French without needing any compulsion to induce them to expose
34447themselves to hardships and dangers.
34448
34449
34450
34451
34452
34453CHAPTER III
34454
34455
34456The so-called partisan war began with the entry of the French into
34457Smolensk.
34458
34459Before partisan warfare had been officially recognized by the
34460government, thousands of enemy stragglers, marauders, and foragers had
34461been destroyed by the Cossacks and the peasants, who killed them off
34462as instinctively as dogs worry a stray mad dog to death. Denis
34463Davydov, with his Russian instinct, was the first to recognize the
34464value of this terrible cudgel which regardless of the rules of
34465military science destroyed the French, and to him belongs the credit
34466for taking the first step toward regularizing this method of warfare.
34467
34468On August 24 Davydov's first partisan detachment was formed and then
34469others were recognized. The further the campaign progressed the more
34470numerous these detachments became.
34471
34472The irregulars destroyed the great army piecemeal. They gathered the
34473fallen leaves that dropped of themselves from that withered tree-
34474the French army--and sometimes shook that tree itself. By October,
34475when the French were fleeing toward Smolensk, there were hundreds of
34476such companies, of various sizes and characters. There were some
34477that adopted all the army methods and had infantry, artillery, staffs,
34478and the comforts of life. Others consisted solely of Cossack
34479cavalry. There were also small scratch groups of foot and horse, and
34480groups of peasants and landowners that remained unknown. A sacristan
34481commanded one party which captured several hundred prisoners in the
34482course of a month; and there was Vasilisa, the wife of a village
34483elder, who slew hundreds of the French.
34484
34485The partisan warfare flamed up most fiercely in the latter days of
34486October. Its first period had passed: when the partisans themselves,
34487amazed at their own boldness, feared every minute to be surrounded and
34488captured by the French, and hid in the forests without unsaddling,
34489hardly daring to dismount and always expecting to be pursued. By the
34490end of October this kind of warfare had taken definite shape: it had
34491become clear to all what could be ventured against the French and what
34492could not. Now only the commanders of detachments with staffs, and
34493moving according to rules at a distance from the French, still
34494regarded many things as impossible. The small bands that had started
34495their activities long before and had already observed the French
34496closely considered things possible which the commanders of the big
34497detachments did not dare to contemplate. The Cossacks and peasants who
34498crept in among the French now considered everything possible.
34499
34500On October 22, Denisov (who was one of the irregulars) was with
34501his group at the height of the guerrilla enthusiasm. Since early
34502morning he and his party had been on the move. All day long he had
34503been watching from the forest that skirted the highroad a large French
34504convoy of cavalry baggage and Russian prisoners separated from the
34505rest of the army, which--as was learned from spies and prisoners-
34506was moving under a strong escort to Smolensk. Besides Denisov and
34507Dolokhov (who also led a small party and moved in Denisov's vicinity),
34508the commanders of some large divisions with staffs also knew of this
34509convoy and, as Denisov expressed it, were sharpening their teeth for
34510it. Two of the commanders of large parties--one a Pole and the other a
34511German--sent invitations to Denisov almost simultaneously,
34512requesting him to join up with their divisions to attack the convoy.
34513
34514"No, bwother, I have gwown mustaches myself," said Denisov on
34515reading these documents, and he wrote to the German that, despite
34516his heartfelt desire to serve under so valiant and renowned a general,
34517he had to forgo that pleasure because he was already under the command
34518of the Polish general. To the Polish general he replied to the same
34519effect, informing him that he was already under the command of the
34520German.
34521
34522Having arranged matters thus, Denisov and Dolokhov intended, without
34523reporting matters to the higher command, to attack and seize that
34524convoy with their own small forces. On October 22 it was moving from
34525the village of Mikulino to that of Shamshevo. To the left of the
34526road between Mikulino and Shamshevo there were large forests,
34527extending in some places up to the road itself though in others a mile
34528or more back from it. Through these forests Denisov and his party rode
34529all day, sometimes keeping well back in them and sometimes coming to
34530the very edge, but never losing sight of the moving French. That
34531morning, Cossacks of Denisov's party had seized and carried off into
34532the forest two wagons loaded with cavalry saddles, which had stuck
34533in the mud not far from Mikulino where the forest ran close to the
34534road. Since then, and until evening, the party had the movements of
34535the French without attacking. It was necessary to let the French reach
34536Shamshevo quietly without alarming them and then, after joining
34537Dolokhov who was to come that evening to a consultation at a
34538watchman's hut in the forest less than a mile from Shamshevo, to
34539surprise the French at dawn, falling like an avalanche on their
34540heads from two sides, and rout and capture them all at one blow.
34541
34542In their rear, more than a mile from Mikulino where the forest
34543came right up to the road, six Cossacks were posted to report if any
34544fresh columns of French should show themselves.
34545
34546Beyond Shamshevo, Dolokhov was to observe the road in the same
34547way, to find out at what distance there were other French troops. They
34548reckoned that the convoy had fifteen hundred men. Denisov had two
34549hundred, and Dolokhov might have as many more, but the disparity of
34550numbers did not deter Denisov. All that he now wanted to know was what
34551troops these were and to learn that he had to capture a "tongue"--that
34552is, a man from the enemy column. That morning's attack on the wagons
34553had been made so hastily that the Frenchmen with the wagons had all
34554been killed; only a little drummer boy had been taken alive, and as he
34555was a straggler he could tell them nothing definite about the troops
34556in that column.
34557
34558Denisov considered it dangerous to make a second attack for fear
34559of putting the whole column on the alert, so he sent Tikhon
34560Shcherbaty, a peasant of his party, to Shamshevo to try and seize at
34561least one of the French quartermasters who had been sent on in
34562advance.
34563
34564
34565
34566
34567CHAPTER IV
34568
34569
34570It was a warm rainy autumn day. The sky and the horizon were both
34571the color of muddy water. At times a sort of mist descended, and
34572then suddenly heavy slanting rain came down.
34573
34574Denisov in a felt cloak and a sheepskin cap from which the rain
34575ran down was riding a thin thoroughbred horse with sunken sides.
34576Like his horse, which turned its head and laid its ears back, he
34577shrank from the driving rain and gazed anxiously before him. His
34578thin face with its short, thick black beard looked angry.
34579
34580Beside Denisov rode an esaul,* Denisov's fellow worker, also in felt
34581cloak and sheepskin cap, and riding a large sleek Don horse.
34582
34583
34584*A captain of Cossacks.
34585
34586
34587Esaul Lovayski the Third was a tall man as straight as an arrow,
34588pale-faced, fair-haired, with narrow light eyes and with calm
34589self-satisfaction in his face and bearing. Though it was impossible to
34590say in what the peculiarity of the horse and rider lay, yet at first
34591glance at the esaul and Denisov one saw that the latter was wet and
34592uncomfortable and was a man mounted on a horse, while looking at the
34593esaul one saw that he was as comfortable and as much at ease as always
34594and that he was not a man who had mounted a horse, but a man who was
34595one with his horse, a being consequently possessed of twofold
34596strength.
34597
34598A little ahead of them walked a peasant guide, wet to the skin and
34599wearing a gray peasant coat and a white knitted cap.
34600
34601A little behind, on a poor, small, lean Kirghiz mount with an
34602enormous tail and mane and a bleeding mouth, rode a young officer in a
34603blue French overcoat.
34604
34605Beside him rode an hussar, with a boy in a tattered French uniform
34606and blue cap behind him on the crupper of his horse. The boy held on
34607to the hussar with cold, red hands, and raising his eyebrows gazed
34608about him with surprise. This was the French drummer boy captured that
34609morning.
34610
34611Behind them along the narrow, sodden, cutup forest road came hussars
34612in threes and fours, and then Cossacks: some in felt cloaks, some in
34613French greatcoats, and some with horsecloths over their heads. The
34614horses, being drenched by the rain, all looked black whether
34615chestnut or bay. Their necks, with their wet, close-clinging manes,
34616looked strangely thin. Steam rose from them. Clothes, saddles,
34617reins, were all wet, slippery, and sodden, like the ground and the
34618fallen leaves that strewed the road. The men sat huddled up trying not
34619to stir, so as to warm the water that had trickled to their bodies and
34620not admit the fresh cold water that was leaking in under their
34621seats, their knees, and at the back of their necks. In the midst of
34622the outspread line of Cossacks two wagons, drawn by French horses
34623and by saddled Cossack horses that had been hitched on in front,
34624rumbled over the tree stumps and branches and splashed through the
34625water that lay in the ruts.
34626
34627Denisov's horse swerved aside to avoid a pool in the track and
34628bumped his rider's knee against a tree.
34629
34630"Oh, the devil!" exclaimed Denisov angrily, and showing his teeth he
34631struck his horse three times with his whip, splashing himself and
34632his comrades with mud.
34633
34634Denisov was out of sorts both because of the rain and also from
34635hunger (none of them had eaten anything since morning), and yet more
34636because he still had no news from Dolokhov and the man sent to capture
34637a "tongue" had not returned.
34638
34639"There'll hardly be another such chance to fall on a transport as
34640today. It's too risky to attack them by oneself, and if we put it
34641off till another day one of the big guerrilla detachments will
34642snatch the prey from under our noses," thought Denisov, continually
34643peering forward, hoping to see a messenger from Dolokhov.
34644
34645On coming to a path in the forest along which he could see far to
34646the right, Denisov stopped.
34647
34648"There's someone coming," said he.
34649
34650The esaul looked in the direction Denisov indicated.
34651
34652"There are two, an officer and a Cossack. But it is not
34653presupposable that it is the lieutenant colonel himself," said the
34654esaul, who was fond of using words the Cossacks did not know.
34655
34656The approaching riders having descended a decline were no longer
34657visible, but they reappeared a few minutes later. In front, at a weary
34658gallop and using his leather whip, rode an officer, disheveled and
34659drenched, whose trousers had worked up to above his knees. Behind him,
34660standing in the stirrups, trotted a Cossack. The officer, a very young
34661lad with a broad rosy face and keen merry eyes, galloped up to Denisov
34662and handed him a sodden envelope.
34663
34664"From the general," said the officer. "Please excuse its not being
34665quite dry."
34666
34667Denisov, frowning, took the envelope and opened it.
34668
34669"There, they kept telling us: 'It's dangerous, it's dangerous,'"
34670said the officer, addressing the esaul while Denisov was reading the
34671dispatch. "But Komarov and I"--he pointed to the Cossack--"were
34672prepared. We have each of us two pistols.... But what's this?" he
34673asked, noticing the French drummer boy. "A prisoner? You've already
34674been in action? May I speak to him?"
34675
34676"Wostov! Petya!" exclaimed Denisov, having run through the dispatch.
34677"Why didn't you say who you were?" and turning with a smile he held
34678out his hand to the lad.
34679
34680The officer was Petya Rostov.
34681
34682All the way Petya had been preparing himself to behave with
34683Denisov as befitted a grownup man and an officer--without hinting at
34684their previous acquaintance. But as soon as Denisov smiled at him
34685Petya brightened up, blushed with pleasure, forgot the official manner
34686he had been rehearsing, and began telling him how he had already
34687been in a battle near Vyazma and how a certain hussar had
34688distinguished himself there.
34689
34690"Well, I am glad to see you," Denisov interrupted him, and his
34691face again assumed its anxious expression.
34692
34693"Michael Feoklitych," said he to the esaul, "this is again fwom that
34694German, you know. He"--he indicated Petya--"is serving under him."
34695
34696And Denisov told the esaul that the dispatch just delivered was a
34697repetition of the German general's demand that he should join forces
34698with him for an attack on the transport.
34699
34700"If we don't take it tomowwow, he'll snatch it fwom under our
34701noses," he added.
34702
34703While Denisov was talking to the esaul, Petya--abashed by
34704Denisov's cold tone and supposing that it was due to the condition
34705of his trousers--furtively tried to pull them down under his greatcoat
34706so that no one should notice it, while maintaining as martial an air
34707as possible.
34708
34709"Will there be any orders, your honor?" he asked Denisov, holding
34710his hand at the salute and resuming the game of adjutant and general
34711for which he had prepared himself, "or shall I remain with your
34712honor?"
34713
34714"Orders?" Denisov repeated thoughtfully. "But can you stay till
34715tomowwow?"
34716
34717"Oh, please... May I stay with you?" cried Petya.
34718
34719"But, just what did the genewal tell you? To weturn at once?"
34720asked Denisov.
34721
34722Petya blushed.
34723
34724"He gave me no instructions. I think I could?" he returned,
34725inquiringly.
34726
34727"Well, all wight," said Denisov.
34728
34729And turning to his men he directed a party to go on to the halting
34730place arranged near the watchman's hut in the forest, and told the
34731officer on the Kirghiz horse (who performed the duties of an adjutant)
34732to go and find out where Dolokhov was and whether he would come that
34733evening. Denisov himself intended going with the esaul and Petya to
34734the edge of the forest where it reached out to Shamshevo, to have a
34735look at the part of the French bivouac they were to attack next day.
34736
34737"Well, old fellow," said he to the peasant guide, "lead us to
34738Shamshevo."
34739
34740Denisov, Petya, and the esaul, accompanied by some Cossacks and
34741the hussar who had the prisoner, rode to the left across a ravine to
34742the edge of the forest.
34743
34744
34745
34746
34747
34748CHAPTER V
34749
34750
34751The rain had stopped, and only the mist was falling and drops from
34752the trees. Denisov, the esaul, and Petya rode silently, following
34753the peasant in the knitted cap who, stepping lightly with outturned
34754toes and moving noiselessly in his bast shoes over the roots and wet
34755leaves, silently led them to the edge of the forest.
34756
34757He ascended an incline, stopped, looked about him, and advanced to
34758where the screen of trees was less dense. On reaching a large oak tree
34759that had not yet shed its leaves, he stopped and beckoned mysteriously
34760to them with his hand.
34761
34762Denisov and Petya rode up to him. From the spot where the peasant
34763was standing they could see the French. Immediately beyond the forest,
34764on a downward slope, lay a field of spring rye. To the right, beyond a
34765steep ravine, was a small village and a landowner's house with a
34766broken roof. In the village, in the house, in the garden, by the well,
34767by the pond, over all the rising ground, and all along the road uphill
34768from the bridge leading to the village, not more than five hundred
34769yards away, crowds of men could be seen through the shimmering mist.
34770Their un-Russian shouting at their horses which were straining
34771uphill with the carts, and their calls to one another, could be
34772clearly heard.
34773
34774"Bwing the prisoner here," said Denisov in a low voice, not taking
34775his eyes off the French.
34776
34777A Cossack dismounted, lifted the boy down, and took him to
34778Denisov. Pointing to the French troops, Denisov asked him what these
34779and those of them were. The boy, thrusting his cold hands into his
34780pockets and lifting his eyebrows, looked at Denisov in affright, but
34781in spite of an evident desire to say all he knew gave confused
34782answers, merely assenting to everything Denisov asked him. Denisov
34783turned away from him frowning and addressed the esaul, conveying his
34784own conjectures to him.
34785
34786Petya, rapidly turning his head, looked now at the drummer boy,
34787now at Denisov, now at the esaul, and now at the French in the village
34788and along the road, trying not to miss anything of importance.
34789
34790"Whether Dolokhov comes or not, we must seize it, eh?" said
34791Denisov with a merry sparkle in his eyes.
34792
34793"It is a very suitable spot," said the esaul.
34794
34795"We'll send the infantwy down by the swamps," Denisov continued.
34796"They'll cweep up to the garden; you'll wide up fwom there with the
34797Cossacks"--he pointed to a spot in the forest beyond the village--"and
34798I with my hussars fwom here. And at the signal shot..."
34799
34800"The hollow is impassable--there's a swamp there," said the esaul.
34801"The horses would sink. We must ride round more to the left...."
34802
34803While they were talking in undertones the crack of a shot sounded
34804from the low ground by the pond, a puff of white smoke appeared,
34805then another, and the sound of hundreds of seemingly merry French
34806voices shouting together came up from the slope. For a moment
34807Denisov and the esaul drew back. They were so near that they thought
34808they were the cause of the firing and shouting. But the firing and
34809shouting did not relate to them. Down below, a man wearing something
34810red was running through the marsh. The French were evidently firing
34811and shouting at him.
34812
34813"Why, that's our Tikhon," said the esaul.
34814
34815"So it is! It is!"
34816
34817"The wascal!" said Denisov.
34818
34819"He'll get away!" said the esaul, screwing up his eyes.
34820
34821The man whom they called Tikhon, having run to the stream, plunged
34822in so that the water splashed in the air, and, having disappeared
34823for an instant, scrambled out on all fours, all black with the wet,
34824and ran on. The French who had been pursuing him stopped.
34825
34826"Smart, that!" said the esaul.
34827
34828"What a beast!" said Denisov with his former look of vexation. "What
34829has he been doing all this time?"
34830
34831"Who is he?" asked Petya.
34832
34833"He's our plastun. I sent him to capture a 'tongue.'"
34834
34835"Oh, yes," said Petya, nodding at the first words Denisov uttered as
34836if he understood it all, though he really did not understand
34837anything of it.
34838
34839Tikhon Shcherbaty was one of the most indispensable men in their
34840band. He was a peasant from Pokrovsk, near the river Gzhat. When
34841Denisov had come to Pokrovsk at the beginning of his operations and
34842had as usual summoned the village elder and asked him what he knew
34843about the French, the elder, as though shielding himself, had replied,
34844as all village elders did, that he had neither seen nor heard anything
34845of them. But when Denisov explained that his purpose was to kill the
34846French, and asked if no French had strayed that way, the elder replied
34847that some "more-orderers" had really been at their village, but that
34848Tikhon Shcherbaty was the only man who dealt with such matters.
34849Denisov had Tikhon called and, having praised him for his activity,
34850said a few words in the elder's presence about loyalty to the Tsar and
34851the country and the hatred of the French that all sons of the
34852fatherland should cherish.
34853
34854"We don't do the French any harm," said Tikhon, evidently frightened
34855by Denisov's words. "We only fooled about with the lads for fun, you
34856know! We killed a score or so of 'more-orderers,' but we did no harm
34857else..."
34858
34859Next day when Denisov had left Pokrovsk, having quite forgotten
34860about this peasant, it was reported to him that Tikhon had attached
34861himself to their party and asked to be allowed to remain with it.
34862Denisov gave orders to let him do so.
34863
34864Tikhon, who at first did rough work, laying campfires, fetching
34865water, flaying dead horses, and so on, soon showed a great liking
34866and aptitude for partisan warfare. At night he would go out for
34867booty and always brought back French clothing and weapons, and when
34868told to would bring in French captives also. Denisov then relieved him
34869from drudgery and began taking him with him when he went out on
34870expeditions and had him enrolled among the Cossacks.
34871
34872Tikhon did not like riding, and always went on foot, never lagging
34873behind the cavalry. He was armed with a musketoon (which he carried
34874rather as a joke), a pike and an ax, which latter he used as a wolf
34875uses its teeth, with equal case picking fleas out of its fur or
34876crunching thick bones. Tikhon with equal accuracy would split logs
34877with blows at arm's length, or holding the head of the ax would cut
34878thin little pegs or carve spoons. In Denisov's party he held a
34879peculiar and exceptional position. When anything particularly
34880difficult or nasty had to be done--to push a cart out of the mud
34881with one's shoulders, pull a horse out of a swamp by its tail, skin
34882it, slink in among the French, or walk more than thirty miles in a
34883day--everybody pointed laughingly at Tikhon.
34884
34885"It won't hurt that devil--he's as strong as a horse!" they said
34886of him.
34887
34888Once a Frenchman Tikhon was trying to capture fired a pistol at
34889him and shot him in the fleshy part of the back. That wound (which
34890Tikhon treated only with internal and external applications of
34891vodka) was the subject of the liveliest jokes by the whole detachment-
34892jokes in which Tikhon readily joined.
34893
34894"Hallo, mate! Never again? Gave you a twist?" the Cossacks would
34895banter him. And Tikhon, purposely writhing and making faces, pretended
34896to be angry and swore at the French with the funniest curses. The only
34897effect of this incident on Tikhon was that after being wounded he
34898seldom brought in prisoners.
34899
34900He was the bravest and most useful man in the party. No one found
34901more opportunities for attacking, no one captured or killed more
34902Frenchmen, and consequently he was made the buffoon of all the
34903Cossacks and hussars and willingly accepted that role. Now he had been
34904sent by Denisov overnight to Shamshevo to capture a "tongue." But
34905whether because he had not been content to take only one Frenchman
34906or because he had slept through the night, he had crept by day into
34907some bushes right among the French and, as Denisov had witnessed
34908from above, had been detected by them.
34909
34910
34911
34912
34913
34914CHAPTER VI
34915
34916
34917After talking for some time with the esaul about next day's
34918attack, which now, seeing how near they were to the French, he
34919seemed to have definitely decided on, Denisov turned his horse and
34920rode back.
34921
34922"Now, my lad, we'll go and get dwy," he said to Petya.
34923
34924As they approached the watchhouse Denisov stopped, peering into
34925the forest. Among the trees a man with long legs and long, swinging
34926arms, wearing a short jacket, bast shoes, and a Kazan hat, was
34927approaching with long, light steps. He had a musketoon over his
34928shoulder and an ax stuck in his girdle. When he espied Denisov he
34929hastily threw something into the bushes, removed his sodden hat by its
34930floppy brim, and approached his commander. It was Tikhon. His wrinkled
34931and pockmarked face and narrow little eyes beamed with
34932self-satisfied merriment. He lifted his head high and gazed at Denisov
34933as if repressing a laugh.
34934
34935"Well, where did you disappear to?" inquired Denisov.
34936
34937"Where did I disappear to? I went to get Frenchmen," answered Tikhon
34938boldly and hurriedly, in a husky but melodious bass voice.
34939
34940"Why did you push yourself in there by daylight? You ass! Well,
34941why haven't you taken one?"
34942
34943"Oh, I took one all right," said Tikhon.
34944
34945"Where is he?"
34946
34947"You see, I took him first thing at dawn," Tikhon continued,
34948spreading out his flat feet with outturned toes in their bast shoes.
34949"I took him into the forest. Then I see he's no good and think I'll go
34950and fetch a likelier one."
34951
34952"You see?... What a wogue--it's just as I thought," said Denisov
34953to the esaul. "Why didn't you bwing that one?"
34954
34955"What was the good of bringing him?" Tikhon interrupted hastily
34956and angrily--"that one wouldn't have done for you. As if I don't
34957know what sort you want!"
34958
34959"What a bwute you are!... Well?"
34960
34961"I went for another one," Tikhon continued, "and I crept like this
34962through the wood and lay down." (He suddenly lay down on his stomach
34963with a supple movement to show how he had done it.) "One turned up and
34964I grabbed him, like this." (He jumped up quickly and lightly.)
34965"'Come along to the colonel,' I said. He starts yelling, and
34966suddenly there were four of them. They rushed at me with their
34967little swords. So I went for them with my ax, this way: 'What are
34968you up to?' says I. 'Christ be with you!'" shouted Tikhon, waving
34969his arms with an angry scowl and throwing out his chest.
34970
34971"Yes, we saw from the hill how you took to your heels through the
34972puddles!" said the esaul, screwing up his glittering eyes.
34973
34974Petya badly wanted to laugh, but noticed that they all refrained
34975from laughing. He turned his eyes rapidly from Tikhon's face to the
34976esaul's and Denisov's, unable to make out what it all meant.
34977
34978"Don't play the fool!" said Denisov, coughing angrily. "Why didn't
34979you bwing the first one?"
34980
34981Tikhon scratched his back with one hand and his head with the other,
34982then suddenly his whole face expanded into a beaming, foolish grin,
34983disclosing a gap where he had lost a tooth (that was why he was called
34984Shcherbaty--the gap-toothed). Denisov smiled, and Petya burst into a
34985peal of merry laughter in which Tikhon himself joined.
34986
34987"Oh, but he was a regular good-for-nothing," said Tikhon. "The
34988clothes on him--poor stuff! How could I bring him? And so rude, your
34989honor! Why, he says: 'I'm a general's son myself, I won't go!' he
34990says."
34991
34992"You are a bwute!" said Denisov. "I wanted to question..."
34993
34994"But I questioned him," said Tikhon. "He said he didn't know much.
34995'There are a lot of us,' he says, 'but all poor stuff--only soldiers
34996in name,' he says. 'Shout loud at them,' he says, 'and you'll take
34997them all,'" Tikhon concluded, looking cheerfully and resolutely into
34998Denisov's eyes.
34999
35000"I'll give you a hundwed sharp lashes--that'll teach you to play the
35001fool!" said Denisov severely.
35002
35003"But why are you angry?" remonstrated Tikhon, "just as if I'd
35004never seen your Frenchmen! Only wait till it gets dark and I'll
35005fetch you any of them you want--three if you like."
35006
35007"Well, let's go," said Denisov, and rode all the way to the
35008watchhouse in silence and frowning angrily.
35009
35010Tikhon followed behind and Petya heard the Cossacks laughing with
35011him and at him, about some pair of boots he had thrown into the
35012bushes.
35013
35014When the fit of laughter that had seized him at Tikhon's words and
35015smile had passed and Petya realized for a moment that this Tikhon
35016had killed a man, he felt uneasy. He looked round at the captive
35017drummer boy and felt a pang in his heart. But this uneasiness lasted
35018only a moment. He felt it necessary to hold his head higher, to
35019brace himself, and to question the esaul with an air of importance
35020about tomorrow's undertaking, that he might not be unworthy of the
35021company in which he found himself.
35022
35023The officer who had been sent to inquire met Denisov on the way with
35024the news that Dolokhov was soon coming and that all was well with him.
35025
35026Denisov at once cheered up and, calling Petya to him, said: "Well,
35027tell me about yourself."
35028
35029
35030
35031
35032
35033CHAPTER VII
35034
35035
35036Petya, having left his people after their departure from Moscow,
35037joined his regiment and was soon taken as orderly by a general
35038commanding a large guerrilla detachment. From the time he received his
35039commission, and especially since he had joined the active army and
35040taken part in the battle of Vyazma, Petya had been in a constant state
35041of blissful excitement at being grown-up and in a perpetual ecstatic
35042hurry not to miss any chance to do something really heroic. He was
35043highly delighted with what he saw and experienced in the army, but
35044at the same time it always seemed to him that the really heroic
35045exploits were being performed just where he did not happen to be.
35046And he was always in a hurry to get where he was not.
35047
35048When on the twenty-first of October his general expressed a wish
35049to send somebody to Denisov's detachment, Petya begged so piteously to
35050be sent that the general could not refuse. But when dispatching him he
35051recalled Petya's mad action at the battle of Vyazma, where instead
35052of riding by the road to the place to which he had been sent, he had
35053galloped to the advanced line under the fire of the French and had
35054there twice fired his pistol. So now the general explicitly forbade
35055his taking part in any action whatever of Denisov's. That was why
35056Petya had blushed and grown confused when Denisov asked him whether he
35057could stay. Before they had ridden to the outskirts of the forest
35058Petya had considered he must carry out his instructions strictly and
35059return at once. But when he saw the French and saw Tikhon and
35060learned that there would certainly be an attack that night, he
35061decided, with the rapidity with which young people change their views,
35062that the general, whom he had greatly respected till then, was a
35063rubbishy German, that Denisov was a hero, the esaul a hero, and Tikhon
35064a hero too, and that it would be shameful for him to leave them at a
35065moment of difficulty.
35066
35067It was already growing dusk when Denisov, Petya, and the esaul
35068rode up to the watchhouse. In the twilight saddled horses could be
35069seen, and Cossacks and hussars who had rigged up rough shelters in the
35070glade and were kindling glowing fires in a hollow of the forest
35071where the French could not see the smoke. In the passage of the
35072small watchhouse a Cossack with sleeves rolled up was chopping some
35073mutton. In the room three officers of Denisov's band were converting a
35074door into a tabletop. Petya took off his wet clothes, gave them to
35075be dried, and at once began helping the officers to fix up the
35076dinner table.
35077
35078In ten minutes the table was ready and a napkin spread on it. On the
35079table were vodka, a flask of rum, white bread, roast mutton, and salt.
35080
35081Sitting at table with the officers and tearing the fat savory mutton
35082with his hands, down which the grease trickled, Petya was in an
35083ecstatic childish state of love for all men, and consequently of
35084confidence that others loved him in the same way.
35085
35086"So then what do you think, Vasili Dmitrich?" said he to Denisov.
35087"It's all right my staying a day with you?" And not waiting for a
35088reply he answered his own question: "You see I was told to find out-
35089well, I am finding out.... Only do let me into the very... into the
35090chief... I don't want a reward... But I want..."
35091
35092Petya clenched his teeth and looked around, throwing back his head
35093and flourishing his arms.
35094
35095"Into the vewy chief..." Denisov repeated with a smile.
35096
35097"Only, please let me command something, so that I may really
35098command..." Petya went on. "What would it be to you?... Oh, you want a
35099knife?" he said, turning to an officer who wished to cut himself a
35100piece of mutton.
35101
35102And he handed him his clasp knife. The officer admired it.
35103
35104"Please keep it. I have several like it," said Petya, blushing.
35105"Heavens! I was quite forgetting!" he suddenly cried. "I have some
35106raisins, fine ones; you know, seedless ones. We have a new sutler
35107and he has such capital things. I bought ten pounds. I am used to
35108something sweet. Would you like some?..." and Petya ran out into the
35109passage to his Cossack and brought back some bags which contained
35110about five pounds of raisins. "Have some, gentlemen, have some!"
35111
35112"You want a coffeepot, don't you?" he asked the esaul. "I bought a
35113capital one from our sutler! He has splendid things. And he's very
35114honest, that's the chief thing. I'll be sure to send it to you. Or
35115perhaps your flints are giving out, or are worn out--that happens
35116sometimes, you know. I have brought some with me, here they are"-
35117and he showed a bag--"a hundred flints. I bought them very cheap.
35118Please take as many as you want, or all if you like...."
35119
35120Then suddenly, dismayed lest he had said too much, Petya stopped and
35121blushed.
35122
35123He tried to remember whether he had not done anything else that
35124was foolish. And running over the events of the day he remembered
35125the French drummer boy. "It's capital for us here, but what of him?
35126Where have they put him? Have they fed him? Haven't they hurt his
35127feelings?" he thought. But having caught himself saying too much about
35128the flints, he was now afraid to speak out.
35129
35130"I might ask," he thought, "but they'll say: 'He's a boy himself and
35131so he pities the boy.' I'll show them tomorrow whether I'm a boy. Will
35132it seem odd if I ask?" Petya thought. "Well, never mind!" and
35133immediately, blushing and looking anxiously at the officers to see
35134if they appeared ironical, he said:
35135
35136"May I call in that boy who was taken prisoner and give him
35137something to eat?... Perhaps..."
35138
35139"Yes, he's a poor little fellow," said Denisov, who evidently saw
35140nothing shameful in this reminder. "Call him in. His name is Vincent
35141Bosse. Have him fetched."
35142
35143"I'll call him," said Petya.
35144
35145"Yes, yes, call him. A poor little fellow," Denisov repeated.
35146
35147Petya was standing at the door when Denisov said this. He slipped in
35148between the officers, came close to Denisov, and said:
35149
35150"Let me kiss you, dear old fellow! Oh, how fine, how splendid!"
35151
35152And having kissed Denisov he ran out of the hut.
35153
35154"Bosse! Vincent!" Petya cried, stopping outside the door.
35155
35156"Who do you want, sir?" asked a voice in the darkness.
35157
35158Petya replied that he wanted the French lad who had been captured
35159that day.
35160
35161"Ah, Vesenny?" said a Cossack.
35162
35163Vincent, the boy's name, had already been changed by the Cossacks
35164into Vesenny (vernal) and into Vesenya by the peasants and soldiers.
35165In both these adaptations the reference to spring (vesna) matched
35166the impression made by the young lad.
35167
35168"He is warming himself there by the bonfire. Ho, Vesenya!
35169Vesenya!--Vesenny!" laughing voices were heard calling to one
35170another in the darkness.
35171
35172"He's a smart lad," said an hussar standing near Petya. "We gave him
35173something to eat a while ago. He was awfully hungry!"
35174
35175The sound of bare feet splashing through the mud was heard in the
35176darkness, and the drummer boy came to the door.
35177
35178"Ah, c'est vous!" said Petya. "Voulez-vous manger? N'ayez pas
35179peur, on ne vous fera pas de mal,"* he added shyly and affectionately,
35180touching the boy's hand. "Entrez, entrez."*[2]
35181
35182
35183*"Ah, it's you! Do you want something to eat? Don't be afraid,
35184they won't hurt you."
35185
35186*[2] "Come in, come in."
35187
35188
35189"Merci, monsieur,"* said the drummer boy in a trembling almost
35190childish voice, and he began scraping his dirty feet on the threshold.
35191
35192
35193*"Thank you, sir."
35194
35195
35196There were many things Petya wanted to say to the drummer boy, but
35197did not dare to. He stood irresolutely beside him in the passage. Then
35198in the darkness he took the boy's hand and pressed it.
35199
35200"Come in, come in!" he repeated in a gentle whisper. "Oh, what can I
35201do for him?" he thought, and opening the door he let the boy pass in
35202first.
35203
35204When the boy had entered the hut, Petya sat down at a distance
35205from him, considering it beneath his dignity to pay attention to
35206him. But he fingered the money in his pocket and wondered whether it
35207would seem ridiculous to give some to the drummer boy.
35208
35209
35210
35211
35212
35213CHAPTER VIII
35214
35215
35216The arrival of Dolokhov diverted Petya's attention from the
35217drummer boy, to whom Denisov had had some mutton and vodka given,
35218and whom he had had dressed in a Russian coat so that he might be kept
35219with their band and not sent away with the other prisoners. Petya
35220had heard in the army many stories of Dolokhov's extraordinary bravery
35221and of his cruelty to the French, so from the moment he entered the
35222hut Petya did not take his eyes from him, but braced himself up more
35223and more and held his head high, that he might not be unworthy even of
35224such company.
35225
35226Dolokhov's appearance amazed Petya by its simplicity.
35227
35228Denisov wore a Cossack coat, had a beard, had an icon of Nicholas
35229the Wonder-Worker on his breast, and his way of speaking and
35230everything he did indicated his unusual position. But Dolokhov, who in
35231Moscow had worn a Persian costume, had now the appearance of a most
35232correct officer of the Guards. He was clean-shaven and wore a
35233Guardsman's padded coat with an Order of St. George at his
35234buttonhole and a plain forage cap set straight on his head. He took
35235off his wet felt cloak in a corner of the room, and without greeting
35236anyone went up to Denisov and began questioning him about the matter
35237in hand. Denisov told him of the designs the large detachments had
35238on the transport, of the message Petya had brought, and his own
35239replies to both generals. Then he told him all he knew of the French
35240detachment.
35241
35242"That's so. But we must know what troops they are and their
35243numbers," said Dolokhov. "It will be necessary to go there. We can't
35244start the affair without knowing for certain how many there are. I
35245like to work accurately. Here now--wouldn't one of these gentlemen
35246like to ride over to the French camp with me? I have brought a spare
35247uniform."
35248
35249"I, I... I'll go with you!" cried Petya.
35250
35251"There's no need for you to go at all," said Denisov, addressing
35252Dolokhov, "and as for him, I won't let him go on any account."
35253
35254"I like that!" exclaimed Petya. "Why shouldn't I go?"
35255
35256"Because it's useless."
35257
35258"Well, you must excuse me, because... because... I shall go, and
35259that's all. You'll take me, won't you?" he said, turning to Dolokhov.
35260
35261"Why not?" Dolokhov answered absently, scrutinizing the face of
35262the French drummer boy. "Have you had that youngster with you long?"
35263he asked Denisov.
35264
35265"He was taken today but he knows nothing. I'm keeping him with me."
35266
35267"Yes, and where do you put the others?" inquired Dolokhov.
35268
35269"Where? I send them away and take a weceipt for them," shouted
35270Denisov, suddenly flushing. "And I say boldly that I have not a single
35271man's life on my conscience. Would it be difficult for you to send
35272thirty or thwee hundwed men to town under escort, instead of staining-
35273I speak bluntly--staining the honor of a soldier?"
35274
35275"That kind of amiable talk would be suitable from this young count
35276of sixteen," said Dolokhov with cold irony, "but it's time for you
35277to drop it."
35278
35279"Why, I've not said anything! I only say that I'll certainly go with
35280you," said Petya shyly.
35281
35282"But for you and me, old fellow, it's time to drop these amenities,"
35283continued Dolokhov, as if he found particular pleasure in speaking
35284of this subject which irritated Denisov. "Now, why have you kept
35285this lad?" he went on, swaying his head. "Because you are sorry for
35286him! Don't we know those 'receipts' of yours? You send a hundred men
35287away, and thirty get there. The rest either starve or get killed. So
35288isn't it all the same not to send them?"
35289
35290The esaul, screwing up his light-colored eyes, nodded approvingly.
35291
35292"That's not the point. I'm not going to discuss the matter. I do not
35293wish to take it on my conscience. You say they'll die. All wight. Only
35294not by my fault!"
35295
35296Dolokhov began laughing.
35297
35298"Who has told them not to capture me these twenty times over? But if
35299they did catch me they'd string me up to an aspen tree, and with all
35300your chivalry just the same." He paused. "However, we must get to
35301work. Tell the Cossack to fetch my kit. I have two French uniforms
35302in it. Well, are you coming with me?" he asked Petya.
35303
35304"I? Yes, yes, certainly!" cried Petya, blushing almost to tears
35305and glancing at Denisov.
35306
35307While Dolokhov had been disputing with Denisov what should be done
35308with prisoners, Petya had once more felt awkward and restless; but
35309again he had no time to grasp fully what they were talking about.
35310"If grown-up, distinguished men think so, it must be necessary and
35311right," thought he. "But above all Denisov must not dare to imagine
35312that I'll obey him and that he can order me about. I will certainly go
35313to the French camp with Dolokhov. If he can, so can I!"
35314
35315And to all Denisov's persuasions, Petya replied that he too was
35316accustomed to do everything accurately and not just anyhow, and that
35317he never considered personal danger.
35318
35319"For you'll admit that if we don't know for sure how many of them
35320there are... hundreds of lives may depend on it, while there are
35321only two of us. Besides, I want to go very much and certainly will go,
35322so don't hinder me," said he. "It will only make things worse..."
35323
35324
35325
35326
35327
35328CHAPTER IX
35329
35330
35331Having put on French greatcoats and shakos, Petya and Dolokhov
35332rode to the clearing from which Denisov had reconnoitered the French
35333camp, and emerging from the forest in pitch darkness they descended
35334into the hollow. On reaching the bottom, Dolokhov told the Cossacks
35335accompanying him to await him there and rode on at a quick trot
35336along the road to the bridge. Petya, his heart in his mouth with
35337excitement, rode by his side.
35338
35339"If we're caught, I won't be taken alive! I have a pistol,"
35340whispered he.
35341
35342"Don't talk Russian," said Dolokhov in a hurried whisper, and at
35343that very moment they heard through the darkness the challenge: "Qui
35344vive?"* and the click of a musket.
35345
35346
35347*"Who goes there?"
35348
35349
35350The blood rushed to Petya's face and he grasped his pistol.
35351
35352"Lanciers du 6-me,"* replied Dolokhov, neither hastening nor
35353slackening his horse's pace.
35354
35355
35356*"Lancers of the 6th Regiment."
35357
35358
35359The black figure of a sentinel stood on the bridge.
35360
35361"Mot d'ordre."*
35362
35363
35364*"Password."
35365
35366
35367Dolokhov reined in his horse and advanced at a walk.
35368
35369"Dites donc, le colonel Gerard est ici?"* he asked.
35370
35371
35372*"Tell me, is Colonel Gerard here?"
35373
35374
35375"Mot d'ordre," repeated the sentinel, barring the way and not
35376replying.
35377
35378"Quand un officier fait sa ronde, les sentinelles ne demandent pas
35379le mot d'ordre..." cried Dolokhov suddenly flaring up and riding
35380straight at the sentinel. "Je vous demande si le colonel est ici."*
35381
35382
35383*"When an officer is making his round, sentinels don't ask him for
35384the password.... I am asking you if the colonel is here."
35385
35386
35387And without waiting for an answer from the sentinel, who had stepped
35388aside, Dolokhov rode up the incline at a walk.
35389
35390Noticing the black outline of a man crossing the road, Dolokhov
35391stopped him and inquired where the commander and officers were. The
35392man, a soldier with a sack over his shoulder, stopped, came close up
35393to Dolokhov's horse, touched it with his hand, and explained simply
35394and in a friendly way that the commander and the officers were
35395higher up the hill to the right in the courtyard of the farm, as he
35396called the landowner's house.
35397
35398Having ridden up the road, on both sides of which French talk
35399could be heard around the campfires, Dolokhov turned into the
35400courtyard of the landowner's house. Having ridden in, he dismounted
35401and approached a big blazing campfire, around which sat several men
35402talking noisily. Something was boiling in a small cauldron at the edge
35403of the fire and a soldier in a peaked cap and blue overcoat, lit up by
35404the fire, was kneeling beside it stirring its contents with a ramrod.
35405
35406"Oh, he's a hard nut to crack," said one of the officers who was
35407sitting in the shadow at the other side of the fire.
35408
35409"He'll make them get a move on, those fellows!" said another,
35410laughing.
35411
35412Both fell silent, peering out through the darkness at the sound of
35413Dolokhov's and Petya's steps as they advanced to the fire leading
35414their horses.
35415
35416"Bonjour, messieurs!"* said Dolokhov loudly and clearly.
35417
35418
35419*"Good day, gentlemen."
35420
35421
35422There was a stir among the officers in the shadow beyond the fire,
35423and one tall, long-necked officer, walking round the fire, came up
35424to Dolokhov.
35425
35426"Is that you, Clement?" he asked. "Where the devil...?" But, noticing
35427his mistake, he broke off short and, with a frown, greeted Dolokhov as
35428a stranger, asking what he could do for him.
35429
35430Dolokhov said that he and his companion were trying to overtake
35431their regiment, and addressing the company in general asked whether
35432they knew anything of the 6th Regiment. None of them knew anything,
35433and Petya thought the officers were beginning to look at him and
35434Dolokhov with hostility and suspicion. For some seconds all were
35435silent.
35436
35437"If you were counting on the evening soup, you have come too
35438late," said a voice from behind the fire with a repressed laugh.
35439
35440Dolokhov replied that they were not hungry and must push on
35441farther that night.
35442
35443He handed the horses over to the soldier who was stirring the pot
35444and squatted down on his heels by the fire beside the officer with the
35445long neck. That officer did not take his eyes from Dolokhov and
35446again asked to what regiment he belonged. Dolokhov, as if he had not
35447heard the question, did not reply, but lighting a short French pipe
35448which he took from his pocket began asking the officer in how far
35449the road before them was safe from Cossacks.
35450
35451"Those brigands are everywhere," replied an officer from behind
35452the fire.
35453
35454Dolokhov remarked that the Cossacks were a danger only to stragglers
35455such as his companion and himself, "but probably they would not dare
35456to attack large detachments?" he added inquiringly. No one replied.
35457
35458"Well, now he'll come away," Petya thought every moment as he
35459stood by the campfire listening to the talk.
35460
35461But Dolokhov restarted the conversation which had dropped and
35462began putting direct questions as to how many men there were in the
35463battalion, how many battalions, and how many prisoners. Asking about
35464the Russian prisoners with that detachment, Dolokhov said:
35465
35466"A horrid business dragging these corpses about with one! It would
35467be better to shoot such rabble," and burst into loud laughter, so
35468strange that Petya thought the French would immediately detect their
35469disguise, and involuntarily took a step back from the campfire.
35470
35471No one replied a word to Dolokhov's laughter, and a French officer
35472whom they could not see (he lay wrapped in a greatcoat) rose and
35473whispered something to a companion. Dolokhov got up and called to
35474the soldier who was holding their horses.
35475
35476"Will they bring our horses or not?" thought Petya, instinctively
35477drawing nearer to Dolokhov.
35478
35479The horses were brought.
35480
35481"Good evening, gentlemen," said Dolokhov.
35482
35483Petya wished to say "Good night" but could not utter a word. The
35484officers were whispering together. Dolokhov was a long time mounting
35485his horse which would not stand still, then he rode out of the yard at
35486a footpace. Petya rode beside him, longing to look round to see
35487whether or no the French were running after them, but not daring to.
35488
35489Coming out onto the road Dolokhov did not ride back across the
35490open country, but through the village. At one spot he stopped and
35491listened. "Do you hear?" he asked. Petya recognized the sound of
35492Russian voices and saw the dark figures of Russian prisoners round
35493their campfires. When they had descended to the bridge Petya and
35494Dolokhov rode past the sentinel, who without saying a word paced
35495morosely up and down it, then they descended into the hollow where the
35496Cossacks awaited them.
35497
35498"Well now, good-by. Tell Denisov, 'at the first shot at
35499daybreak,'" said Dolokhov and was about to ride away, but Petya seized
35500hold of him.
35501
35502"Really!" he cried, "you are such a hero! Oh, how fine, how
35503splendid! How I love you!"
35504
35505"All right, all right!" said Dolokhov. But Petya did not let go of
35506him and Dolokhov saw through the gloom that Petya was bending toward
35507him and wanted to kiss him. Dolokhov kissed him, laughed, turned his
35508horse, and vanished into the darkness.
35509
35510
35511
35512
35513
35514CHAPTER X
35515
35516
35517Having returned to the watchman's hut, Petya found Denisov in the
35518passage. He was awaiting Petya's return in a state of agitation,
35519anxiety, and self-reproach for having let him go.
35520
35521"Thank God!" he exclaimed. "Yes, thank God!" he repeated,
35522listening to Petya's rapturous account. "But, devil take you, I
35523haven't slept because of you! Well, thank God. Now lie down. We can
35524still get a nap before morning."
35525
35526"But... no," said Petya, "I don't want to sleep yet. Besides I
35527know myself, if I fall asleep it's finished. And then I am used to not
35528sleeping before a battle."
35529
35530He sat awhile in the hut joyfully recalling the details of his
35531expedition and vividly picturing to himself what would happen next
35532day.
35533
35534Then, noticing that Denisov was asleep, he rose and went out of
35535doors.
35536
35537It was still quite dark outside. The rain was over, but drops were
35538still falling from the trees. Near the watchman's hut the black shapes
35539of the Cossacks' shanties and of horses tethered together could be
35540seen. Behind the hut the dark shapes of the two wagons with their
35541horses beside them were discernible, and in the hollow the dying
35542campfire gleamed red. Not all the Cossacks and hussars were asleep;
35543here and there, amid the sounds of falling drops and the munching of
35544the horses near by, could be heard low voices which seemed to be
35545whispering.
35546
35547Petya came out, peered into the darkness, and went up to the wagons.
35548Someone was snoring under them, and around them stood saddled horses
35549munching their oats. In the dark Petya recognized his own horse, which
35550he called "Karabakh" though it was of Ukranian breed, and went up to
35551it.
35552
35553"Well, Karabakh! We'll do some service tomorrow," said he,
35554sniffing its nostrils and kissing it.
35555
35556"Why aren't you asleep, sir?" said a Cossack who was sitting under a
35557wagon.
35558
35559"No, ah... Likhachev--isn't that your name? Do you know I have
35560only just come back! We've been into the French camp."
35561
35562And Petya gave the Cossack a detailed account not only of his ride
35563but also of his object, and why he considered it better to risk his
35564life than to act "just anyhow."
35565
35566"Well, you should get some sleep now," said the Cossack.
35567
35568"No, I am used to this," said Petya. "I say, aren't the flints in
35569your pistols worn out? I brought some with me. Don't you want any? You
35570can have some."
35571
35572
35573The Cossack bent forward from under the wagon to get a closer look
35574at Petya.
35575
35576"Because I am accustomed to doing everything accurately," said
35577Petya. "Some fellows do things just anyhow, without preparation, and
35578then they're sorry for it afterwards. I don't like that."
35579
35580"Just so," said the Cossack.
35581
35582"Oh yes, another thing! Please, my dear fellow, will you sharpen
35583my saber for me? It's got bl..." (Petya feared to tell a lie, and
35584the saber never had been sharpened.) "Can you do it?"
35585
35586"Of course I can."
35587
35588Likhachev got up, rummaged in his pack, and soon Petya heard the
35589warlike sound of steel on whetstone. He climbed onto the wagon and sat
35590on its edge. The Cossack was sharpening the saber under the wagon.
35591
35592"I say! Are the lads asleep?" asked Petya.
35593
35594"Some are, and some aren't--like us."
35595
35596"Well, and that boy?"
35597
35598"Vesenny? Oh, he's thrown himself down there in the passage. Fast
35599asleep after his fright. He was that glad!"
35600
35601After that Petya remained silent for a long time, listening to the
35602sounds. He heard footsteps in the darkness and a black figure
35603appeared.
35604
35605"What are you sharpening?" asked a man coming up to the wagon.
35606
35607"Why, this gentleman's saber."
35608
35609"That's right," said the man, whom Petya took to be an hussar.
35610"Was the cup left here?"
35611
35612"There, by the wheel!"
35613
35614The hussar took the cup.
35615
35616"It must be daylight soon," said he, yawning, and went away.
35617
35618Petya ought to have known that he was in a forest with Denisov's
35619guerrilla band, less than a mile from the road, sitting on a wagon
35620captured from the French beside which horses were tethered, that under
35621it Likhachev was sitting sharpening a saber for him, that the big dark
35622blotch to the right was the watchman's hut, and the red blotch below
35623to the left was the dying embers of a campfire, that the man who had
35624come for the cup was an hussar who wanted a drink; but he neither knew
35625nor waited to know anything of all this. He was in a fairy kingdom
35626where nothing resembled reality. The big dark blotch might really be
35627the watchman's hut or it might be a cavern leading to the very
35628depths of the earth. Perhaps the red spot was a fire, or it might be
35629the eye of an enormous monster. Perhaps he was really sitting on a
35630wagon, but it might very well be that he was not sitting on a wagon
35631but on a terribly high tower from which, if he fell, he would have
35632to fall for a whole day or a whole month, or go on falling and never
35633reach the bottom. Perhaps it was just the Cossack, Likhachev, who
35634was sitting under the wagon, but it might be the kindest, bravest,
35635most wonderful, most splendid man in the world, whom no one knew of.
35636It might really have been that the hussar came for water and went back
35637into the hollow, but perhaps he had simply vanished--disappeared
35638altogether and dissolved into nothingness.
35639
35640Nothing Petya could have seen now would have surprised him. He was
35641in a fairy kingdom where everything was possible.
35642
35643He looked up at the sky. And the sky was a fairy realm like the
35644earth. It was clearing, and over the tops of the trees clouds were
35645swiftly sailing as if unveiling the stars. Sometimes it looked as if
35646the clouds were passing, and a clear black sky appeared. Sometimes
35647it seemed as if the black spaces were clouds. Sometimes the sky seemed
35648to be rising high, high overhead, and then it seemed to sink so low
35649that one could touch it with one's hand.
35650
35651Petya's eyes began to close and he swayed a little.
35652
35653The trees were dripping. Quiet talking was heard. The horses neighed
35654and jostled one another. Someone snored.
35655
35656"Ozheg-zheg, Ozheg-zheg..." hissed the saber against the
35657whetstone, and suddenly Petya heard an harmonious orchestra playing
35658some unknown, sweetly solemn hymn. Petya was as musical as Natasha and
35659more so than Nicholas, but had never learned music or thought about
35660it, and so the melody that unexpectedly came to his mind seemed to him
35661particularly fresh and attractive. The music became more and more
35662audible. The melody grew and passed from one instrument to another.
35663And what was played was a fugue--though Petya had not the least
35664conception of what a fugue is. Each instrument--now resembling a
35665violin and now a horn, but better and clearer than violin or horn-
35666played its own part, and before it had finished the melody merged with
35667another instrument that began almost the same air, and then with a
35668third and a fourth; and they all blended into one and again became
35669separate and again blended, now into solemn church music, now into
35670something dazzlingly brilliant and triumphant.
35671
35672"Oh--why, that was in a dream!" Petya said to himself, as he lurched
35673forward. "It's in my ears. But perhaps it's music of my own. Well,
35674go on, my music! Now!..."
35675
35676He closed his eyes, and, from all sides as if from a distance,
35677sounds fluttered, grew into harmonies, separated, blended, and again
35678all mingled into the same sweet and solemn hymn. "Oh, this is
35679delightful! As much as I like and as I like!" said Petya to himself.
35680He tried to conduct that enormous orchestra.
35681
35682"Now softly, softly die away!" and the sounds obeyed him. "Now
35683fuller, more joyful. Still more and more joyful!" And from an
35684unknown depth rose increasingly triumphant sounds. "Now voices join
35685in!" ordered Petya. And at first from afar he heard men's voices and
35686then women's. The voices grew in harmonious triumphant strength, and
35687Petya listened to their surpassing beauty in awe and joy.
35688
35689With a solemn triumphal march there mingled a song, the drip from
35690the trees, and the hissing of the saber, "Ozheg-zheg-zheg..." and
35691again the horses jostled one another and neighed, not disturbing the
35692choir but joining in it.
35693
35694Petya did not know how long this lasted: he enjoyed himself all
35695the time, wondered at his enjoyment and regretted that there was no
35696one to share it. He was awakened by Likhachev's kindly voice.
35697
35698"It's ready, your honor; you can split a Frenchman in half with it!"
35699
35700Petya woke up.
35701
35702"It's getting light, it's really getting light!" he exclaimed.
35703
35704The horses that had previously been invisible could now be seen to
35705their very tails, and a watery light showed itself through the bare
35706branches. Petya shook himself, jumped up, took a ruble from his pocket
35707and gave it to Likhachev; then he flourished the saber, tested it, and
35708sheathed it. The Cossacks were untying their horses and tightening
35709their saddle girths.
35710
35711"And here's the commander," said Likhachev.
35712
35713Denisov came out of the watchman's hut and, having called Petya,
35714gave orders to get ready.
35715
35716
35717
35718
35719CHAPTER XI
35720
35721
35722The men rapidly picked out their horses in the semidarkness,
35723tightened their saddle girths, and formed companies. Denisov stood
35724by the watchman's hut giving final orders. The infantry of the
35725detachment passed along the road and quickly disappeared amid the
35726trees in the mist of early dawn, hundreds of feet splashing through
35727the mud. The esaul gave some orders to his men. Petya held his horse
35728by the bridle, impatiently awaiting the order to mount. His face,
35729having been bathed in cold water, was all aglow, and his eyes were
35730particularly brilliant. Cold shivers ran down his spine and his
35731whole body pulsed rhythmically.
35732
35733"Well, is ev'wything weady?" asked Denisov. "Bwing the horses."
35734
35735The horses were brought. Denisov was angry with the Cossack
35736because the saddle girths were too slack, reproved him, and mounted.
35737Petya put his foot in the stirrup. His horse by habit made as if to
35738nip his leg, but Petya leaped quickly into the saddle unconscious of
35739his own weight and, turning to look at the hussars starting in the
35740darkness behind him, rode up to Denisov.
35741
35742"Vasili Dmitrich, entrust me with some commission! Please... for
35743God's sake...!" said he.
35744
35745Denisov seemed to have forgotten Petya's very existence. He turned
35746to glance at him.
35747
35748"I ask one thing of you," he said sternly, "to obey me and not shove
35749yourself forward anywhere."
35750
35751He did not say another word to Petya but rode in silence all the
35752way. When they had come to the edge of the forest it was noticeably
35753growing light over the field. Denisov talked in whispers with the
35754esaul and the Cossacks rode past Petya and Denisov. When they had
35755all ridden by, Denisov touched his horse and rode down the hill.
35756Slipping onto their haunches and sliding, the horses descended with
35757their riders into the ravine. Petya rode beside Denisov, the pulsation
35758of his body constantly increasing. It was getting lighter and lighter,
35759but the mist still hid distant objects. Having reached the valley,
35760Denisov looked back and nodded to a Cossack beside him.
35761
35762"The signal!" said he.
35763
35764The Cossack raised his arm and a shot rang out. In an instant the
35765tramp of horses galloping forward was heard, shouts came from
35766various sides, and then more shots.
35767
35768At the first sound of trampling hoofs and shouting, Petya lashed his
35769horse and loosening his rein galloped forward, not heeding Denisov who
35770shouted at him. It seemed to Petya that at the moment the shot was
35771fired it suddenly became as bright as noon. He galloped to the bridge.
35772Cossacks were galloping along the road in front of him. On the
35773bridge he collided with a Cossack who had fallen behind, but he
35774galloped on. In front of him soldiers, probably Frenchmen, were
35775running from right to left across the road. One of them fell in the
35776mud under his horse's feet.
35777
35778Cossacks were crowding about a hut, busy with something. From the
35779midst of that crowd terrible screams arose. Petya galloped up, and the
35780first thing he saw was the pale face and trembling jaw of a Frenchman,
35781clutching the handle of a lance that had been aimed at him.
35782
35783"Hurrah!... Lads!... ours!" shouted Petya, and giving rein to his
35784excited horse he galloped forward along the village street.
35785
35786He could hear shooting ahead of him. Cossacks, hussars, and ragged
35787Russian prisoners, who had come running from both sides of the road,
35788were shouting something loudly and incoherently. A gallant-looking
35789Frenchman, in a blue overcoat, capless, and with a frowning red
35790face, had been defending himself against the hussars. When Petya
35791galloped up the Frenchman had already fallen. "Too late again!"
35792flashed through Petya's mind and he galloped on to the place from
35793which the rapid firing could be heard. The shots came from the yard of
35794the landowner's house he had visited the night before with Dolokhov.
35795The French were making a stand there behind a wattle fence in a garden
35796thickly overgrown with bushes and were firing at the Cossacks who
35797crowded at the gateway. Through the smoke, as he approached the
35798gate, Petya saw Dolokhov, whose face was of a pale-greenish tint,
35799shouting to his men. "Go round! Wait for the infantry!" he exclaimed
35800as Petya rode up to him.
35801
35802"Wait?... Hurrah-ah-ah!" shouted Petya, and without pausing a moment
35803galloped to the place whence came the sounds of firing and where the
35804smoke was thickest.
35805
35806A volley was heard, and some bullets whistled past, while others
35807plashed against something. The Cossacks and Dolokhov galloped after
35808Petya into the gateway of the courtyard. In the dense wavering smoke
35809some of the French threw down their arms and ran out of the bushes
35810to meet the Cossacks, while others ran down the hill toward the
35811pond. Petya was galloping along the courtyard, but instead of
35812holding the reins he waved both his arms about rapidly and
35813strangely, slipping farther and farther to one side in his saddle. His
35814horse, having galloped up to a campfire that was smoldering in the
35815morning light, stopped suddenly, and Petya fell heavily on to the
35816wet ground. The Cossacks saw that his arms and legs jerked rapidly
35817though his head was quite motionless. A bullet had pierced his skull.
35818
35819After speaking to the senior French officer, who came out of the
35820house with a white handkerchief tied to his sword and announced that
35821they surrendered, Dolokhov dismounted and went up to Petya, who lay
35822motionless with outstretched arms.
35823
35824"Done for!" he said with a frown, and went to the gate to meet
35825Denisov who was riding toward him.
35826
35827"Killed?" cried Denisov, recognizing from a distance the
35828unmistakably lifeless attitude--very familiar to him--in which Petya's
35829body was lying.
35830
35831"Done for!" repeated Dolokhov as if the utterance of these words
35832afforded him pleasure, and he went quickly up to the prisoners, who
35833were surrounded by Cossacks who had hurried up. "We won't take
35834them!" he called out to Denisov.
35835
35836Denisov did not reply; he rode up to Petya, dismounted, and with
35837trembling hands turned toward himself the bloodstained,
35838mud-bespattered face which had already gone white.
35839
35840"I am used to something sweet. Raisins, fine ones... take them all!"
35841he recalled Petya's words. And the Cossacks looked round in surprise
35842at the sound, like the yelp of a dog, with which Denisov turned
35843away, walked to the wattle fence, and seized hold of it.
35844
35845Among the Russian prisoners rescued by Denisov and Dolokhov was
35846Pierre Bezukhov.
35847
35848
35849
35850
35851
35852CHAPTER XII
35853
35854During the whole of their march from Moscow no fresh orders had been
35855issued by the French authorities concerning the party of prisoners
35856among whom was Pierre. On the twenty-second of October that party
35857was no longer with the same troops and baggage trains with which it
35858had left Moscow. Half the wagons laden with hardtack that had traveled
35859the first stages with them had been captured by Cossacks, the other
35860half had gone on ahead. Not one of those dismounted cavalrymen who had
35861marched in front of the prisoners was left; they had all
35862disappeared. The artillery the prisoners had seen in front of them
35863during the first days was now replaced by Marshal Junot's enormous
35864baggage train, convoyed by Westphalians. Behind the prisoners came a
35865cavalry baggage train.
35866
35867From Vyazma onwards the French army, which had till then moved in
35868three columns, went on as a single group. The symptoms of disorder
35869that Pierre had noticed at their first halting place after leaving
35870Moscow had now reached the utmost limit.
35871
35872The road along which they moved was bordered on both sides by dead
35873horses; ragged men who had fallen behind from various regiments
35874continually changed about, now joining the moving column, now again
35875lagging behind it.
35876
35877Several times during the march false alarms had been given and the
35878soldiers of the escort had raised their muskets, fired, and run
35879headlong, crushing one another, but had afterwards reassembled and
35880abused each other for their causeless panic.
35881
35882These three groups traveling together--the cavalry stores, the
35883convoy of prisoners, and Junot's baggage train--still constituted a
35884separate and united whole, though each of the groups was rapidly
35885melting away.
35886
35887Of the artillery baggage train which had consisted of a hundred
35888and twenty wagons, not more than sixty now remained; the rest had been
35889captured or left behind. Some of Junot's wagons also had been captured
35890or abandoned. Three wagons had been raided and robbed by stragglers
35891from Davout's corps. From the talk of the Germans Pierre learned
35892that a larger guard had been allotted to that baggage train than to
35893the prisoners, and that one of their comrades, a German soldier, had
35894been shot by the marshal's own order because a silver spoon
35895belonging to the marshal had been found in his possession.
35896
35897The group of prisoners had melted away most of all. Of the three
35898hundred and thirty men who had set out from Moscow fewer than a
35899hundred now remained. The prisoners were more burdensome to the escort
35900than even the cavalry saddles or Junot's baggage. They understood that
35901the saddles and Junot's spoon might be of some use, but that cold
35902and hungry soldiers should have to stand and guard equally cold and
35903hungry Russians who froze and lagged behind on the road (in which case
35904the order was to shoot them) was not merely incomprehensible but
35905revolting. And the escort, as if afraid, in the grievous condition
35906they themselves were in, of giving way to the pity they felt for the
35907prisoners and so rendering their own plight still worse, treated
35908them with particular moroseness and severity.
35909
35910At Dorogobuzh while the soldiers of the convoy, after locking the
35911prisoners in a stable, had gone off to pillage their own stores,
35912several of the soldier prisoners tunneled under the wall and ran away,
35913but were recaptured by the French and shot.
35914
35915The arrangement adopted when they started, that the officer
35916prisoners should be kept separate from the rest, had long since been
35917abandoned. All who could walk went together, and after the third stage
35918Pierre had rejoined Karataev and the gray-blue bandy-legged dog that
35919had chosen Karataev for its master.
35920
35921On the third day after leaving Moscow Karataev again fell ill with
35922the fever he had suffered from in the hospital in Moscow, and as he
35923grew gradually weaker Pierre kept away from him. Pierre did not know
35924why, but since Karataev had begun to grow weaker it had cost him an
35925effort to go near him. When he did so and heard the subdued moaning
35926with which Karataev generally lay down at the halting places, and when
35927he smelled the odor emanating from him which was now stronger than
35928before, Pierre moved farther away and did not think about him.
35929
35930While imprisoned in the shed Pierre had learned not with his
35931intellect but with his whole being, by life itself, that man is
35932created for happiness, that happiness is within him, in the
35933satisfaction of simple human needs, and that all unhappiness arises
35934not from privation but from superfluity. And now during these last
35935three weeks of the march he had learned still another new, consolatory
35936truth--that nothing in this world is terrible. He had learned that
35937as there is no condition in which man can be happy and entirely
35938free, so there is no condition in which he need be unhappy and lack
35939freedom. He learned that suffering and freedom have their limits and
35940that those limits are very near together; that the person in a bed
35941of roses with one crumpled petal suffered as keenly as he now,
35942sleeping on the bare damp earth with one side growing chilled while
35943the other was warming; and that when he had put on tight dancing shoes
35944he had suffered just as he did now when he walked with bare feet
35945that were covered with sores--his footgear having long since fallen to
35946pieces. He discovered that when he had married his wife--of his own
35947free will as it had seemed to him--he had been no more free than now
35948when they locked him up at night in a stable. Of all that he himself
35949subsequently termed his sufferings, but which at the time he
35950scarcely felt, the worst was the state of his bare, raw, and
35951scab-covered feet. (The horseflesh was appetizing and nourishing,
35952the saltpeter flavor of the gunpowder they used instead of salt was
35953even pleasant; there was no great cold, it was always warm walking
35954in the daytime, and at night there were the campfires; the lice that
35955devoured him warmed his body.) The one thing that was at first hard to
35956bear was his feet.
35957
35958After the second day's march Pierre, having examined his feet by the
35959campfire, thought it would be impossible to walk on them; but when
35960everybody got up he went along, limping, and, when he had warmed up,
35961walked without feeling the pain, though at night his feet were more
35962terrible to look at than before. However, he did not look at them now,
35963but thought of other things.
35964
35965Only now did Pierre realize the full strength of life in man and the
35966saving power he has of transferring his attention from one thing to
35967another, which is like the safety valve of a boiler that allows
35968superfluous steam to blow off when the pressure exceeds a certain
35969limit.
35970
35971He did not see and did not hear how they shot the prisoners who
35972lagged behind, though more than a hundred perished in that way. He did
35973not think of Karataev who grew weaker every day and evidently would
35974soon have to share that fate. Still less did Pierre think about
35975himself. The harder his position became and the more terrible the
35976future, the more independent of that position in which he found
35977himself were the joyful and comforting thoughts, memories, and
35978imaginings that came to him.
35979
35980
35981
35982
35983
35984CHAPTER XIII
35985
35986
35987At midday on the twenty-second of October Pierre was going uphill
35988along the muddy, slippery road, looking at his feet and at the
35989roughness of the way. Occasionally he glanced at the familiar crowd
35990around him and then again at his feet. The former and the latter
35991were alike familiar and his own. The blue-gray bandy legged dog ran
35992merrily along the side of the road, sometimes in proof of its
35993agility and self-satisfaction lifting one hind leg and hopping along
35994on three, and then again going on all four and rushing to bark at
35995the crows that sat on the carrion. The dog was merrier and sleeker
35996than it had been in Moscow. All around lay the flesh of different
35997animals--from men to horses--in various stages of decomposition; and
35998as the wolves were kept off by the passing men the dog could eat all
35999it wanted.
36000
36001It had been raining since morning and had seemed as if at any moment
36002it might cease and the sky clear, but after a short break it began
36003raining harder than before. The saturated road no longer absorbed
36004the water, which ran along the ruts in streams.
36005
36006Pierre walked along, looking from side to side, counting his steps
36007in threes, and reckoning them off on his fingers. Mentally
36008addressing the rain, he repeated: "Now then, now then, go on! Pelt
36009harder!"
36010
36011It seemed to him that he was thinking of nothing, but far down and
36012deep within him his soul was occupied with something important and
36013comforting. This something was a most subtle spiritual deduction
36014from a conversation with Karataev the day before.
36015
36016At their yesterday's halting place, feeling chilly by a dying
36017campfire, Pierre had got up and gone to the next one, which was
36018burning better. There Platon Karataev was sitting covered up--head and
36019all--with his greatcoat as if it were a vestment, telling the soldiers
36020in his effective and pleasant though now feeble voice a story Pierre
36021knew. It was already past midnight, the hour when Karataev was usually
36022free of his fever and particularly lively. When Pierre reached the
36023fire and heard Platon's voice enfeebled by illness, and saw his
36024pathetic face brightly lit up by the blaze, he felt a painful prick at
36025his heart. His feeling of pity for this man frightened him and he
36026wished to go away, but there was no other fire, and Pierre sat down,
36027trying not to look at Platon.
36028
36029"Well, how are you?" he asked.
36030
36031"How am I? If we grumble at sickness, God won't grant us death,"
36032replied Platon, and at once resumed the story he had begun.
36033
36034"And so, brother," he continued, with a smile on his pale
36035emaciated face and a particularly happy light in his eyes, "you
36036see, brother..."
36037
36038Pierre had long been familiar with that story. Karataev had told
36039it to him alone some half-dozen times and always with a specially
36040joyful emotion. But well as he knew it, Pierre now listened to that
36041tale as to something new, and the quiet rapture Karataev evidently
36042felt as he told it communicated itself also to Pierre. The story was
36043of an old merchant who lived a good and God-fearing life with his
36044family, and who went once to the Nizhni fair with a companion--a
36045rich merchant.
36046
36047Having put up at an inn they both went to sleep, and next morning
36048his companion was found robbed and with his throat cut. A bloodstained
36049knife was found under the old merchant's pillow. He was tried,
36050knouted, and his nostrils having been torn off, "all in due form" as
36051Karataev put it, he was sent to hard labor in Siberia.
36052
36053"And so, brother" (it was at this point that Pierre came up), "ten
36054years or more passed by. The old man was living as a convict,
36055submitting as he should and doing no wrong. Only he prayed to God
36056for death. Well, one night the convicts were gathered just as we
36057are, with the old man among them. And they began telling what each was
36058suffering for, and how they had sinned against God. One told how he
36059had taken a life, another had taken two, a third had set a house on
36060fire, while another had simply been a vagrant and had done nothing. So
36061they asked the old man: 'What are you being punished for, Daddy?'--'I,
36062my dear brothers,' said he, 'am being punished for my own and other
36063men's sins. But I have not killed anyone or taken anything that was
36064not mine, but have only helped my poorer brothers. I was a merchant,
36065my dear brothers, and had much property. 'And he went on to tell
36066them all about it in due order. 'I don't grieve for myself,' he
36067says, 'God, it seems, has chastened me. Only I am sorry for my old
36068wife and the children,' and the old man began to weep. Now it happened
36069that in the group was the very man who had killed the other
36070merchant. 'Where did it happen, Daddy?' he said. 'When, and in what
36071month?' He asked all about it and his heart began to ache. So he comes
36072up to the old man like this, and falls down at his feet! 'You are
36073perishing because of me, Daddy,' he says. 'It's quite true, lads, that
36074this man,' he says, 'is being tortured innocently and for nothing! I,'
36075he says, 'did that deed, and I put the knife under your head while you
36076were asleep. Forgive me, Daddy,' he says, 'for Christ's sake!'"
36077
36078Karataev paused, smiling joyously as he gazed into the fire, and
36079he drew the logs together.
36080
36081"And the old man said, 'God will forgive you, we are all sinners
36082in His sight. I suffer for my own sins,' and he wept bitter tears.
36083Well, and what do you think, dear friends?" Karataev continued, his
36084face brightening more and more with a rapturous smile as if what he
36085now had to tell contained the chief charm and the whole meaning of his
36086story: "What do you think, dear fellows? That murderer confessed to
36087the authorities. 'I have taken six lives,' he says (he was a great
36088sinner), 'but what I am most sorry for is this old man. Don't let
36089him suffer because of me.' So he confessed and it was all written down
36090and the papers sent off in due form. The place was a long way off, and
36091while they were judging, what with one thing and another, filling in
36092the papers all in due form--the authorities I mean--time passed. The
36093affair reached the Tsar. After a while the Tsar's decree came: to
36094set the merchant free and give him a compensation that had been
36095awarded. The paper arrived and they began to look for the old man.
36096'Where is the old man who has been suffering innocently and in vain? A
36097paper has come from the Tsar!' so they began looking for him," here
36098Karataev's lower jaw trembled, "but God had already forgiven him--he
36099was dead! That's how it was, dear fellows!" Karataev concluded and sat
36100for a long time silent, gazing before him with a smile.
36101
36102And Pierre's soul was dimly but joyfully filled not by the story
36103itself but by its mysterious significance: by the rapturous joy that
36104lit up Karataev's face as he told it, and the mystic significance of
36105that joy.
36106
36107
36108
36109
36110
36111CHAPTER XIV
36112
36113
36114"A vos places!"* suddenly cried a voice.
36115
36116
36117*"To your places."
36118
36119
36120A pleasant feeling of excitement and an expectation of something
36121joyful and solemn was aroused among the soldiers of the convoy and the
36122prisoners. From all sides came shouts of command, and from the left
36123came smartly dressed cavalrymen on good horses, passing the
36124prisoners at a trot. The expression on all faces showed the tension
36125people feel at the approach of those in authority. The prisoners
36126thronged together and were pushed off the road. The convoy formed up.
36127
36128"The Emperor! The Emperor! The Marshal! The Duke!" and hardly had
36129the sleek cavalry passed, before a carriage drawn by six gray horses
36130rattled by. Pierre caught a glimpse of a man in a three-cornered hat
36131with a tranquil look on his handsome, plump, white face. It was one of
36132the marshals. His eye fell on Pierre's large and striking figure,
36133and in the expression with which he frowned and looked away Pierre
36134thought he detected sympathy and a desire to conceal that sympathy.
36135
36136The general in charge of the stores galloped after the carriage with
36137a red and frightened face, whipping up his skinny horse. Several
36138officers formed a group and some soldiers crowded round them. Their
36139faces all looked excited and worried.
36140
36141"What did he say? What did he say?" Pierre heard them ask.
36142
36143While the marshal was passing, the prisoners had huddled together in
36144a crowd, and Pierre saw Karataev whom he had not yet seen that
36145morning. He sat in his short overcoat leaning against a birch tree. On
36146his face, besides the look of joyful emotion it had worn yesterday
36147while telling the tale of the merchant who suffered innocently,
36148there was now an expression of quiet solemnity.
36149
36150Karataev looked at Pierre with his kindly round eyes now filled with
36151tears, evidently wishing him to come near that he might say
36152something to him. But Pierre was not sufficiently sure of himself.
36153He made as if he did not notice that look and moved hastily away.
36154
36155When the prisoners again went forward Pierre looked round.
36156Karataev was still sitting at the side of the road under the birch
36157tree and two Frenchmen were talking over his head. Pierre did not look
36158round again but went limping up the hill.
36159
36160From behind, where Karataev had been sitting, came the sound of a
36161shot. Pierre heard it plainly, but at that moment he remembered that
36162he had not yet finished reckoning up how many stages still remained to
36163Smolensk--a calculation he had begun before the marshal went by. And
36164he again started reckoning. Two French soldiers ran past Pierre, one
36165of whom carried a lowered and smoking gun. They both looked pale,
36166and in the expression on their faces--one of them glanced timidly at
36167Pierre--there was something resembling what he had seen on the face of
36168the young soldier at the execution. Pierre looked at the soldier and
36169remembered that, two days before, that man had burned his shirt
36170while drying it at the fire and how they had laughed at him.
36171
36172Behind him, where Karataev had been sitting, the dog began to
36173howl. "What a stupid beast! Why is it howling?" thought Pierre.
36174
36175His comrades, the prisoner soldiers walking beside him, avoided
36176looking back at the place where the shot had been fired and the dog
36177was howling, just as Pierre did, but there was a set look on all their
36178faces.
36179
36180
36181
36182
36183
36184CHAPTER XV
36185
36186
36187The stores, the prisoners, and the marshal's baggage train stopped
36188at the village of Shamshevo. The men crowded together round the
36189campfires. Pierre went up to the fire, ate some roast horseflesh,
36190lay down with his back to the fire, and immediately fell asleep. He
36191again slept as he had done at Mozhaysk after the battle of Borodino.
36192
36193Again real events mingled with dreams and again someone, he or
36194another, gave expression to his thoughts, and even to the same
36195thoughts that had been expressed in his dream at Mozhaysk.
36196
36197"Life is everything. Life is God. Everything changes and moves and
36198that movement is God. And while there is life there is joy in
36199consciousness of the divine. To love life is to love God. Harder and
36200more blessed than all else is to love this life in one's sufferings,
36201in innocent sufferings."
36202
36203"Karataev!" came to Pierre's mind.
36204
36205And suddenly he saw vividly before him a long-forgotten, kindly
36206old man who had given him geography lessons in Switzerland. "Wait a
36207bit," said the old man, and showed Pierre a globe. This globe was
36208alive--a vibrating ball without fixed dimensions. Its whole surface
36209consisted of drops closely pressed together, and all these drops moved
36210and changed places, sometimes several of them merging into one,
36211sometimes one dividing into many. Each drop tried to spread out and
36212occupy as much space as possible, but others striving to do the same
36213compressed it, sometimes destroyed it, and sometimes merged with it.
36214
36215"That is life," said the old teacher.
36216
36217"How simple and clear it is," thought Pierre. "How is it I did not
36218know it before?"
36219
36220"God is in the midst, and each drop tries to expand so as to reflect
36221Him to the greatest extent. And it grows, merges, disappears from
36222the surface, sinks to the depths, and again emerges. There now,
36223Karataev has spread out and disappeared. Do you understand, my child?"
36224said the teacher.
36225
36226"Do you understand, damn you?" shouted a voice, and Pierre woke up.
36227
36228He lifted himself and sat up. A Frenchman who had just pushed a
36229Russian soldier away was squatting by the fire, engaged in roasting
36230a piece of meat stuck on a ramrod. His sleeves were rolled up and
36231his sinewy, hairy, red hands with their short fingers deftly turned
36232the ramrod. His brown morose face with frowning brows was clearly
36233visible by the glow of the charcoal.
36234
36235"It's all the same to him," he muttered, turning quickly to a
36236soldier who stood behind him. "Brigand! Get away!"
36237
36238And twisting the ramrod he looked gloomily at Pierre, who turned
36239away and gazed into the darkness. A prisoner, the Russian soldier
36240the Frenchman had pushed away, was sitting near the fire patting
36241something with his hand. Looking more closely Pierre recognized the
36242blue-gray dog, sitting beside the soldier, wagging its tail.
36243
36244"Ah, he's come?" said Pierre. "And Plat-" he began, but did not
36245finish.
36246
36247Suddenly and simultaneously a crowd of memories awoke in his
36248fancy--of the look Platon had given him as he sat under the tree, of
36249the shot heard from that spot, of the dog's howl, of the guilty
36250faces of the two Frenchmen as they ran past him, of the lowered and
36251smoking gun, and of Karataev's absence at this halt--and he was on the
36252point of realizing that Karataev had been killed, but just at that
36253instant, he knew not why, the recollection came to his mind of a
36254summer evening he had spent with a beautiful Polish lady on the
36255veranda of his house in Kiev. And without linking up the events of the
36256day or drawing a conclusion from them, Pierre closed his eyes,
36257seeing a vision of the country in summertime mingled with memories
36258of bathing and of the liquid, vibrating globe, and he sank into
36259water so that it closed over his head.
36260
36261Before sunrise he was awakened by shouts and loud and rapid
36262firing. French soldiers were running past him.
36263
36264"The Cossacks!" one of them shouted, and a moment later a crowd of
36265Russians surrounded Pierre.
36266
36267For a long time he could not understand what was happening to him.
36268All around he heard his comrades sobbing with joy.
36269
36270"Brothers! Dear fellows! Darlings!" old soldiers exclaimed, weeping,
36271as they embraced Cossacks and hussars.
36272
36273The hussars and Cossacks crowded round the prisoners; one offered
36274them clothes, another boots, and a third bread. Pierre sobbed as he
36275sat among them and could not utter a word. He hugged the first soldier
36276who approached him, and kissed him, weeping.
36277
36278Dolokhov stood at the gate of the ruined house, letting a crowd of
36279disarmed Frenchmen pass by. The French, excited by all that had
36280happened, were talking loudly among themselves, but as they passed
36281Dolokhov who gently switched his boots with his whip and watched
36282them with cold glassy eyes that boded no good, they became silent.
36283On the opposite side stood Dolokhov's Cossack, counting the
36284prisoners and marking off each hundred with a chalk line on the gate.
36285
36286"How many?" Dolokhov asked the Cossack.
36287
36288"The second hundred," replied the Cossack.
36289
36290"Filez, filez!"* Dolokhov kept saying, having adopted this
36291expression from the French, and when his eyes met those of the
36292prisoners they flashed with a cruel light.
36293
36294
36295*"Get along, get along!"
36296
36297
36298Denisov, bareheaded and with a gloomy face, walked behind some
36299Cossacks who were carrying the body of Petya Rostov to a hole that had
36300been dug in the garden.
36301
36302
36303
36304
36305
36306CHAPTER XVI
36307
36308
36309After the twenty-eighth of October when the frosts began, the flight
36310of the French assumed a still more tragic character, with men
36311freezing, or roasting themselves to death at the campfires, while
36312carriages with people dressed in furs continued to drive past,
36313carrying away the property that had been stolen by the Emperor, kings,
36314and dukes; but the process of the flight and disintegration of the
36315French army went on essentially as before.
36316
36317From Moscow to Vyazma the French army of seventy-three thousand
36318men not reckoning the Guards (who did nothing during the whole war but
36319pillage) was reduced to thirty-six thousand, though not more than five
36320thousand had fallen in battle. From this beginning the succeeding
36321terms of the progression could be determined mathematically. The
36322French army melted away and perished at the same rate from Moscow to
36323Vyazma, from Vyazma to Smolensk, from Smolensk to the Berezina, and
36324from the Berezina to Vilna--independently of the greater or lesser
36325intensity of the cold, the pursuit, the barring of the way, or any
36326other particular conditions. Beyond Vyazma the French army instead
36327of moving in three columns huddled together into one mass, and so went
36328on to the end. Berthier wrote to his Emperor (we know how far
36329commanding officers allow themselves to diverge from the truth in
36330describing the condition of an army) and this is what he said:
36331
36332
36333I deem it my duty to report to Your Majesty the condition of the
36334various corps I have had occasion to observe during different stages
36335of the last two or three days' march. They are almost disbanded.
36336Scarcely a quarter of the soldiers remain with the standards of
36337their regiments, the others go off by themselves in different
36338directions hoping to find food and escape discipline. In general
36339they regard Smolensk as the place where they hope to recover. During
36340the last few days many of the men have been seen to throw away their
36341cartridges and their arms. In such a state of affairs, whatever your
36342ultimate plans may be, the interest of Your Majesty's service
36343demands that the army should be rallied at Smolensk and should first
36344of all be freed from ineffectives, such as dismounted cavalry,
36345unnecessary baggage, and artillery material that is no longer in
36346proportion to the present forces. The soldiers, who are worn out
36347with hunger and fatigue, need these supplies as well as a few days'
36348rest. Many have died last days on the road or at the bivouacs. This
36349state of things is continually becoming worse and makes one fear
36350that unless a prompt remedy is applied the troops will no longer be
36351under control in case of an engagement.
36352
36353November 9: twenty miles from Smolensk.
36354
36355
36356After staggering into Smolensk which seemed to them a promised land,
36357the French, searching for food, killed one another, sacked their own
36358stores, and when everything had been plundered fled farther.
36359
36360They all went without knowing whither or why they were going.
36361Still less did that genius, Napoleon, know it, for no one issued any
36362orders to him. But still he and those about him retained their old
36363habits: wrote commands, letters, reports, and orders of the day;
36364called one another sire, mon cousin, prince d'Eckmuhl, roi de
36365Naples, and so on. But these orders and reports were only on paper,
36366nothing in them was acted upon for they could not be carried out,
36367and though they entitled one another Majesties, Highnesses, or
36368Cousins, they all felt that they were miserable wretches who had
36369done much evil for which they had now to pay. And though they
36370pretended to be concerned about the army, each was thinking only of
36371himself and of how to get away quickly and save himself.
36372
36373
36374
36375
36376CHAPTER XVII
36377
36378
36379The movements of the Russian and French armies during the campaign
36380from Moscow back to the Niemen were like those in a game of Russian
36381blindman's bluff, in which two players are blindfolded and one of them
36382occasionally rings a little bell to inform the catcher of his
36383whereabouts. First he rings his bell fearlessly, but when he gets into
36384a tight place he runs away as quietly as he can, and often thinking to
36385escape runs straight into his opponent's arms.
36386
36387At first while they were still moving along the Kaluga road,
36388Napoleon's armies made their presence known, but later when they
36389reached the Smolensk road they ran holding the clapper of their bell
36390tight--and often thinking they were escaping ran right into the
36391Russians.
36392
36393Owing to the rapidity of the French flight and the Russian pursuit
36394and the consequent exhaustion of the horses, the chief means of
36395approximately ascertaining the enemy's position--by cavalry
36396scouting--was not available. Besides, as a result of the frequent
36397and rapid change of position by each army, even what information was
36398obtained could not be delivered in time. If news was received one
36399day that the enemy had been in a certain position the day before, by
36400the third day when something could have been done, that army was
36401already two days' march farther on and in quite another position.
36402
36403One army fled and the other pursued. Beyond Smolensk there were
36404several different roads available for the French, and one would have
36405thought that during their stay of four days they might have learned
36406where the enemy was, might have arranged some more advantageous plan
36407and undertaken something new. But after a four days' halt the mob,
36408with no maneuvers or plans, again began running along the beaten
36409track, neither to the right nor to the left but along the old--the
36410worst--road, through Krasnoe and Orsha.
36411
36412Expecting the enemy from behind and not in front, the French
36413separated in their flight and spread out over a distance of
36414twenty-four hours. In front of them all fled the Emperor, then the
36415kings, then the dukes. The Russian army, expecting Napoleon to take
36416the road to the right beyond the Dnieper--which was the only
36417reasonable thing for him to do--themselves turned to the right and
36418came out onto the highroad at Krasnoe. And here as in a game of
36419blindman's buff the French ran into our vanguard. Seeing their enemy
36420unexpectedly the French fell into confusion and stopped short from the
36421sudden fright, but then they resumed their flight, abandoning their
36422comrades who were farther behind. Then for three days separate
36423portions of the French army--first Murat's (the vice-king's), then
36424Davout's, and then Ney's--ran, as it were, the gauntlet of the Russian
36425army. They abandoned one another, abandoned all their heavy baggage,
36426their artillery, and half their men, and fled, getting past the
36427Russians by night by making semicircles to the right.
36428
36429Ney, who came last, had been busying himself blowing up the walls of
36430Smolensk which were in nobody's way, because despite the unfortunate
36431plight of the French or because of it, they wished to punish the floor
36432against which they had hurt themselves. Ney, who had had a corps of
36433ten thousand men, reached Napoleon at Orsha with only one thousand men
36434left, having abandoned all the rest and all his cannon, and having
36435crossed the Dnieper at night by stealth at a wooded spot.
36436
36437From Orsha they fled farther along the road to Vilna, still
36438playing at blindman's buff with the pursuing army. At the Berezina
36439they again became disorganized, many were drowned and many
36440surrendered, but those who got across the river fled farther. Their
36441supreme chief donned a fur coat and, having seated himself in a
36442sleigh, galloped on alone, abandoning his companions. The others who
36443could do so drove away too, leaving those who could not to surrender
36444or die.
36445
36446
36447
36448
36449
36450CHAPTER XVIII
36451
36452
36453This campaign consisted in a flight of the French during which
36454they did all they could to destroy themselves. From the time they
36455turned onto the Kaluga road to the day their leader fled from the
36456army, none of the movements of the crowd had any sense. So one might
36457have thought that regarding this period of the campaign the
36458historians, who attributed the actions of the mass to the will of
36459one man, would have found it impossible to make the story of the
36460retreat fit their theory. But no! Mountains of books have been written
36461by the historians about this campaign, and everywhere are described
36462Napoleon's arrangements, the maneuvers, and his profound plans which
36463guided the army, as well as the military genius shown by his marshals.
36464
36465The retreat from Malo-Yaroslavets when he had a free road into a
36466well-supplied district and the parallel road was open to him along
36467which Kutuzov afterwards pursued him--this unnecessary retreat along a
36468devastated road--is explained to us as being due to profound
36469considerations. Similarly profound considerations are given for his
36470retreat from Smolensk to Orsha. Then his heroism at Krasnoe is
36471described, where he is reported to have been prepared to accept battle
36472and take personal command, and to have walked about with a birch stick
36473and said:
36474
36475"J'ai assez fait l'empereur; il est temps de faire le general,"* but
36476nevertheless immediately ran away again, abandoning to its fate the
36477scattered fragments of the army he left behind.
36478
36479
36480*"I have acted the Emperor long enough; it is time to act the
36481general."
36482
36483
36484Then we are told of the greatness of soul of the marshals,
36485especially of Ney--a greatness of soul consisting in this: that he
36486made his way by night around through the forest and across the Dnieper
36487and escaped to Orsha, abandoning standards, artillery, and nine tenths
36488of his men.
36489
36490And lastly, the final departure of the great Emperor from his heroic
36491army is presented to us by the historians as something great and
36492characteristic of genius. Even that final running away, described in
36493ordinary language as the lowest depth of baseness which every child is
36494taught to be ashamed of--even that act finds justification in the
36495historians' language.
36496
36497When it is impossible to stretch the very elastic threads of
36498historical ratiocination any farther, when actions are clearly
36499contrary to all that humanity calls right or even just, the historians
36500produce a saving conception of "greatness." "Greatness," it seems,
36501excludes the standards of right and wrong. For the "great" man nothing
36502is wrong, there is no atrocity for which a "great" man can be blamed.
36503
36504"C'est grand!"* say the historians, and there no longer exists
36505either good or evil but only "grand" and "not grand." Grand is good,
36506not grand is bad. Grand is the characteristic, in their conception, of
36507some special animals called "heroes." And Napoleon, escaping home in a
36508warm fur coat and leaving to perish those who were not merely his
36509comrades but were (in his opinion) men he had brought there, feels que
36510c'est grand,*[2] and his soul is tranquil.
36511
36512
36513*"It is great."
36514
36515*[2] That it is great.
36516
36517
36518"Du sublime (he saw something sublime in himself) au ridicule il n'y
36519a qu'un pas,"* said he. And the whole world for fifty years has been
36520repeating: "Sublime! Grand! Napoleon le Grand!" Du sublime au ridicule
36521il n'y a qu'un pas.
36522
36523
36524*"From the sublime to the ridiculous is but a step."
36525
36526
36527And it occurs to no one that to admit a greatness not
36528commensurable with the standard of right and wrong is merely to
36529admit one's own nothingness and immeasurable meanness.
36530
36531For us with the standard of good and evil given us by Christ, no
36532human actions are incommensurable. And there is no greatness where
36533simplicity, goodness, and truth are absent.
36534
36535
36536
36537
36538
36539CHAPTER XIX
36540
36541
36542What Russian, reading the account of the last part of the campaign
36543of 1812, has not experienced an uncomfortable feeling of regret,
36544dissatisfaction, and perplexity? Who has not asked himself how it is
36545that the French were not all captured or destroyed when our three
36546armies surrounded them in superior numbers, when the disordered
36547French, hungry and freezing, surrendered in crowds, and when (as the
36548historians relate) the aim of the Russians was to stop the French,
36549to cut them off, and capture them all?
36550
36551How was it that the Russian army, which when numerically weaker than
36552the French had given battle at Borodino, did not achieve its purpose
36553when it had surrounded the French on three sides and when its aim
36554was to capture them? Can the French be so enormously superior to us
36555that when we had surrounded them with superior forces we could not
36556beat them? How could that happen?
36557
36558History (or what is called by that name) replying to these questions
36559says that this occurred because Kutuzov and Tormasov and Chichagov,
36560and this man and that man, did not execute such and such maneuvers...
36561
36562But why did they not execute those maneuvers? And why if they were
36563guilty of not carrying out a prearranged plan were they not tried
36564and punished? But even if we admitted that Kutuzov, Chichagov, and
36565others were the cause of the Russian failures, it is still
36566incomprehensible why, the position of the Russian army being what it
36567was at Krasnoe and at the Berezina (in both cases we had superior
36568forces), the French army with its marshals, kings, and Emperor was not
36569captured, if that was what the Russians aimed at.
36570
36571The explanation of this strange fact given by Russian military
36572historians (to the effect that Kutuzov hindered an attack) is
36573unfounded, for we know that he could not restrain the troops from
36574attacking at Vyazma and Tarutino.
36575
36576Why was the Russian army--which with inferior forces had withstood
36577the enemy in full strength at Borodino--defeated at Krasnoe and the
36578Berezina by the disorganized crowds of the French when it was
36579numerically superior?
36580
36581If the aim of the Russians consisted in cutting off and capturing
36582Napoleon and his marshals--and that aim was not merely frustrated
36583but all attempts to attain it were most shamefully baffled--then
36584this last period of the campaign is quite rightly considered by the
36585French to be a series of victories, and quite wrongly considered
36586victorious by Russian historians.
36587
36588The Russian military historians in so far as they submit to claims
36589of logic must admit that conclusion, and in spite of their lyrical
36590rhapsodies about valor, devotion, and so forth, must reluctantly admit
36591that the French retreat from Moscow was a series of victories for
36592Napoleon and defeats for Kutuzov.
36593
36594But putting national vanity entirely aside one feels that such a
36595conclusion involves a contradiction, since the series of French
36596victories brought the French complete destruction, while the series of
36597Russian defeats led to the total destruction of their enemy and the
36598liberation of their country.
36599
36600The source of this contradiction lies in the fact that the
36601historians studying the events from the letters of the sovereigns
36602and the generals, from memoirs, reports, projects, and so forth,
36603have attributed to this last period of the war of 1812 an aim that
36604never existed, namely that of cutting off and capturing Napoleon
36605with his marshals and his army.
36606
36607There never was or could have been such an aim, for it would have
36608been senseless and its attainment quite impossible.
36609
36610It would have been senseless, first because Napoleon's
36611disorganized army was flying from Russia with all possible speed, that
36612is to say, was doing just what every Russian desired. So what was
36613the use of performing various operations on the French who were
36614running away as fast as they possibly could?
36615
36616Secondly, it would have been senseless to block the passage of men
36617whose whole energy was directed to flight.
36618
36619Thirdly, it would have been senseless to sacrifice one's own
36620troops in order to destroy the French army, which without external
36621interference was destroying itself at such a rate that, though its
36622path was not blocked, it could not carry across the frontier more than
36623it actually did in December, namely a hundredth part of the original
36624army.
36625
36626Fourthly, it would have been senseless to wish to take captive the
36627Emperor, kings, and dukes--whose capture would have been in the
36628highest degree embarrassing for the Russians, as the most adroit
36629diplomatists of the time (Joseph de Maistre and others) recognized.
36630Still more senseless would have been the wish to capture army corps of
36631the French, when our own army had melted away to half before
36632reaching Krasnoe and a whole division would have been needed to convoy
36633the corps of prisoners, and when our men were not always getting
36634full rations and the prisoners already taken were perishing of hunger.
36635
36636All the profound plans about cutting off and capturing Napoleon
36637and his army were like the plan of a market gardener who, when driving
36638out of his garden a cow that had trampled down the beds he had
36639planted, should run to the gate and hit the cow on the head. The
36640only thing to be said in excuse of that gardener would be that he
36641was very angry. But not even that could be said for those who drew
36642up this project, for it was not they who had suffered from the
36643trampled beds.
36644
36645But besides the fact that cutting off Napoleon with his army would
36646have been senseless, it was impossible.
36647
36648It was impossible first because--as experience shows that a
36649three-mile movement of columns on a battlefield never coincides with
36650the plans--the probability of Chichagov, Kutuzov, and Wittgenstein
36651effecting a junction on time at an appointed place was so remote as to
36652be tantamount to impossibility, as in fact thought Kutuzov, who when
36653he received the plan remarked that diversions planned over great
36654distances do not yield the desired results.
36655
36656Secondly it was impossible, because to paralyze the momentum with
36657which Napoleon's army was retiring, incomparably greater forces than
36658the Russians possessed would have been required.
36659
36660Thirdly it was impossible, because the military term "to cut off"
36661has no meaning. One can cut off a slice of bread, but not an army.
36662To cut off an army--to bar its road--is quite impossible, for there is
36663always plenty of room to avoid capture and there is the night when
36664nothing can be seen, as the military scientists might convince
36665themselves by the example of Krasnoe and of the Berezina. It is only
36666possible to capture prisoners if they agree to be captured, just as it
36667is only possible to catch a swallow if it settles on one's hand. Men
36668can only be taken prisoners if they surrender according to the rules
36669of strategy and tactics, as the Germans did. But the French troops
36670quite rightly did not consider that this suited them, since death by
36671hunger and cold awaited them in flight or captivity alike.
36672
36673Fourthly and chiefly it was impossible, because never since the
36674world began has a war been fought under such conditions as those
36675that obtained in 1812, and the Russian army in its pursuit of the
36676French strained its strength to the utmost and could not have done
36677more without destroying itself.
36678
36679During the movement of the Russian army from Tarutino to Krasnoe
36680it lost fifty thousand sick or stragglers, that is a number equal to
36681the population of a large provincial town. Half the men fell out of
36682the army without a battle.
36683
36684And it is of this period of the campaign--when the army lacked boots
36685and sheepskin coats, was short of provisions and without vodka, and
36686was camping out at night for months in the snow with fifteen degrees
36687of frost, when there were only seven or eight hours of daylight and
36688the rest was night in which the influence of discipline cannot be
36689maintained, when men were taken into that region of death where
36690discipline fails, not for a few hours only as in a battle, but for
36691months, where they were every moment fighting death from hunger and
36692cold, when half the army perished in a single month--it is of this
36693period of the campaign that the historians tell us how Miloradovich
36694should have made a flank march to such and such a place, Tormasov to
36695another place, and Chichagov should have crossed (more than
36696knee-deep in snow) to somewhere else, and how so-and-so "routed" and
36697"cut off" the French and so on and so on.
36698
36699The Russians, half of whom died, did all that could and should
36700have been done to attain an end worthy of the nation, and they are not
36701to blame because other Russians, sitting in warm rooms, proposed
36702that they should do what was impossible.
36703
36704All that strange contradiction now difficult to understand between
36705the facts and the historical accounts only arises because the
36706historians dealing with the matter have written the history of the
36707beautiful words and sentiments of various generals, and not the
36708history of the events.
36709
36710To them the words of Miloradovich seem very interesting, and so do
36711their surmises and the rewards this or that general received; but
36712the question of those fifty thousand men who were left in hospitals
36713and in graves does not even interest them, for it does not come within
36714the range of their investigation.
36715
36716Yet one need only discard the study of the reports and general plans
36717and consider the movement of those hundreds of thousands of men who
36718took a direct part in the events, and all the questions that seemed
36719insoluble easily and simply receive an immediate and certain solution.
36720
36721The aim of cutting off Napoleon and his army never existed except in
36722the imaginations of a dozen people. It could not exist because it
36723was senseless and unattainable.
36724
36725The people had a single aim: to free their land from invasion.
36726That aim was attained in the first place of itself, as the French
36727ran away, and so it was only necessary not to stop their flight.
36728Secondly it was attained by the guerrilla warfare which was destroying
36729the French, and thirdly by the fact that a large Russian army was
36730following the French, ready to use its strength in case their movement
36731stopped.
36732
36733The Russian army had to act like a whip to a running animal. And the
36734experienced driver knew it was better to hold the whip raised as a
36735menace than to strike the running animal on the head.
36736
36737
36738
36739
36740
36741BOOK FIFTEEN: 1812 --13
36742
36743
36744
36745
36746
36747CHAPTER I
36748
36749
36750When seeing a dying animal a man feels a sense of horror:
36751substance similar to his own is perishing before his eyes. But when it
36752is a beloved and intimate human being that is dying, besides this
36753horror at the extinction of life there is a severance, a spiritual
36754wound, which like a physical wound is sometimes fatal and sometimes
36755heals, but always aches and shrinks at any external irritating touch.
36756
36757After Prince Andrew's death Natasha and Princess Mary alike felt
36758this. Drooping in spirit and closing their eyes before the menacing
36759cloud of death that overhung them, they dared not look life in the
36760face. They carefully guarded their open wounds from any rough and
36761painful contact. Everything: a carriage passing rapidly in the street,
36762a summons to dinner, the maid's inquiry what dress to prepare, or
36763worse still any word of insincere or feeble sympathy, seemed an
36764insult, painfully irritated the wound, interrupting that necessary
36765quiet in which they both tried to listen to the stern and dreadful
36766choir that still resounded in their imagination, and hindered their
36767gazing into those mysterious limitless vistas that for an instant
36768had opened out before them.
36769
36770Only when alone together were they free from such outrage and
36771pain. They spoke little even to one another, and when they did it
36772was of very unimportant matters.
36773
36774Both avoided any allusion to the future. To admit the possibility of
36775a future seemed to them to insult his memory. Still more carefully did
36776they avoid anything relating to him who was dead. It seemed to them
36777that what they had lived through and experienced could not be
36778expressed in words, and that any reference to the details of his
36779life infringed the majesty and sacredness of the mystery that had been
36780accomplished before their eyes.
36781
36782Continued abstention from speech, and constant avoidance of
36783everything that might lead up to the subject--this halting on all
36784sides at the boundary of what they might not mention--brought before
36785their minds with still greater purity and clearness what they were
36786both feeling.
36787
36788But pure and complete sorrow is as impossible as pure and complete
36789joy. Princess Mary, in her position as absolute and independent
36790arbiter of her own fate and guardian and instructor of her nephew, was
36791the first to be called back to life from that realm of sorrow in which
36792she had dwelt for the first fortnight. She received letters from her
36793relations to which she had to reply; the room in which little Nicholas
36794had been put was damp and he began to cough; Alpatych came to
36795Yaroslavl with reports on the state of their affairs and with advice
36796and suggestions that they should return to Moscow to the house on
36797the Vozdvizhenka Street, which had remained uninjured and needed
36798only slight repairs. Life did not stand still and it was necessary
36799to live. Hard as it was for Princess Mary to emerge from the realm
36800of secluded contemplation in which she had lived till then, and
36801sorry and almost ashamed as she felt to leave Natasha alone, yet the
36802cares of life demanded her attention and she involuntarily yielded
36803to them. She went through the accounts with Alpatych, conferred with
36804Dessalles about her nephew, and gave orders and made preparations
36805for the journey to Moscow.
36806
36807Natasha remained alone and, from the time Princess Mary began making
36808preparations for departure, held aloof from her too.
36809
36810Princess Mary asked the countess to let Natasha go with her to
36811Moscow, and both parents gladly accepted this offer, for they saw
36812their daughter losing strength every day and thought that a change
36813of scene and the advice of Moscow doctors would be good for her.
36814
36815"I am not going anywhere," Natasha replied when this was proposed to
36816her. "Do please just leave me alone!" And she ran out of the room,
36817with difficulty refraining from tears of vexation and irritation
36818rather than of sorrow.
36819
36820After she felt herself deserted by Princes Mary and alone in her
36821grief, Natasha spent most of the time in her room by herself,
36822sitting huddled up feet and all in the corner of the sofa, tearing and
36823twisting something with her slender nervous fingers and gazing
36824intently and fixedly at whatever her eyes chanced to fall on. This
36825solitude exhausted and tormented her but she was in absolute need of
36826it. As soon as anyone entered she got up quickly, changed her position
36827and expression, and picked up a book or some sewing, evidently waiting
36828impatiently for the intruder to go.
36829
36830She felt all the time as if she might at any moment penetrate that
36831on which--with a terrible questioning too great for her strength-
36832her spiritual gaze was fixed.
36833
36834One day toward the end of December Natasha, pale and thin, dressed
36835in a black woolen gown, her plaited hair negligently twisted into a
36836knot, was crouched feet and all in the corner of her sofa, nervously
36837crumpling and smoothing out the end of her sash while she looked at
36838a corner of the door.
36839
36840She was gazing in the direction in which he had gone--to the other
36841side of life. And that other side of life, of which she had never
36842before thought and which had formerly seemed to her so far away and
36843improbable, was now nearer and more akin and more comprehensible
36844than this side of life, where everything was either emptiness and
36845desolation or suffering and indignity.
36846
36847She was gazing where she knew him to be; but she could not imagine
36848him otherwise than as he had been here. She now saw him again as he
36849had been at Mytishchi, at Troitsa, and at Yaroslavl.
36850
36851She saw his face, heard his voice, repeated his words and her own,
36852and sometimes devised other words they might have spoken.
36853
36854There he is lying back in an armchair in his velvet cloak, leaning
36855his head on his thin pale hand. His chest is dreadfully hollow and his
36856shoulders raised. His lips are firmly closed, his eyes glitter, and
36857a wrinkle comes and goes on his pale forehead. One of his legs
36858twitches just perceptibly, but rapidly. Natasha knows that he is
36859struggling with terrible pain. "What is that pain like? Why does he
36860have that pain? What does he feel? How does it hurt him?" thought
36861Natasha. He noticed her watching him, raised his eyes, and began to
36862speak seriously:
36863
36864"One thing would be terrible," said he: "to bind oneself forever
36865to a suffering man. It would be continual torture." And he looked
36866searchingly at her. Natasha as usual answered before she had time to
36867think what she would say. She said: "This can't go on--it won't. You
36868will get well--quite well."
36869
36870She now saw him from the commencement of that scene and relived what
36871she had then felt. She recalled his long sad and severe look at
36872those words and understood the meaning of the rebuke and despair in
36873that protracted gaze.
36874
36875"I agreed," Natasha now said to herself, "that it would be
36876dreadful if he always continued to suffer. I said it then only because
36877it would have been dreadful for him, but he understood it differently.
36878He thought it would be dreadful for me. He then still wished to live
36879and feared death. And I said it so awkwardly and stupidly! I did not
36880say what I meant. I thought quite differently. Had I said what I
36881thought, I should have said: even if he had to go on dying, to die
36882continually before my eyes, I should have been happy compared with
36883what I am now. Now there is nothing... nobody. Did he know that? No,
36884he did not and never will know it. And now it will never, never be
36885possible to put it right." And now he again seemed to be saying the
36886same words to her, only in her imagination Natasha this time gave
36887him a different answer. She stopped him and said: "Terrible for you,
36888but not for me! You know that for me there is nothing in life but you,
36889and to suffer with you is the greatest happiness for me," and he
36890took her hand and pressed it as he had pressed it that terrible
36891evening four days before his death. And in her imagination she said
36892other tender and loving words which she might have said then but
36893only spoke now: "I love thee!... thee! I love, love..." she said,
36894convulsively pressing her hands and setting her teeth with a desperate
36895effort...
36896
36897She was overcome by sweet sorrow and tears were already rising in
36898her eyes; then she suddenly asked herself to whom she was saying this.
36899Again everything was shrouded in hard, dry perplexity, and again
36900with a strained frown she peered toward the world where he was. And
36901now, now it seemed to her she was penetrating the mystery.... But at
36902the instant when it seemed that the incomprehensible was revealing
36903itself to her a loud rattle of the door handle struck painfully on her
36904ears. Dunyasha, her maid, entered the room quickly and abruptly with a
36905frightened look on her face and showing no concern for her mistress.
36906
36907"Come to your Papa at once, please!" said she with a strange,
36908excited look. "A misfortune... about Peter Ilynich... a letter," she
36909finished with a sob.
36910
36911
36912
36913
36914
36915CHAPTER II
36916
36917
36918Besides a feeling of aloofness from everybody Natasha was feeling
36919a special estrangement from the members of her own family. All of
36920them--her father, mother, and Sonya--were so near to her, so familiar,
36921so commonplace, that all their words and feelings seemed an insult
36922to the world in which she had been living of late, and she felt not
36923merely indifferent to them but regarded them with hostility. She heard
36924Dunyasha's words about Peter Ilynich and a misfortune, but did not
36925grasp them.
36926
36927"What misfortune? What misfortune can happen to them? They just live
36928their own old, quiet, and commonplace life," thought Natasha.
36929
36930As she entered the ballroom her father was hurriedly coming out of
36931her mother's room. His face was puckered up and wet with tears. He had
36932evidently run out of that room to give vent to the sobs that were
36933choking him. When he saw Natasha he waved his arms despairingly and
36934burst into convulsively painful sobs that distorted his soft round
36935face.
36936
36937"Pe... Petya... Go, go, she... is calling..." and weeping like a
36938child and quickly shuffling on his feeble legs to a chair, he almost
36939fell into it, covering his face with his hands.
36940
36941Suddenly an electric shock seemed to run through Natasha's whole
36942being. Terrible anguish struck her heart, she felt a dreadful ache
36943as if something was being torn inside her and she were dying. But
36944the pain was immediately followed by a feeling of release from the
36945oppressive constraint that had prevented her taking part in life.
36946The sight of her father, the terribly wild cries of her mother that
36947she heard through the door, made her immediately forget herself and
36948her own grief.
36949
36950She ran to her father, but he feebly waved his arm, pointing to
36951her mother's door. Princess Mary, pale and with quivering chin, came
36952out from that room and taking Natasha by the arm said something to
36953her. Natasha neither saw nor heard her. She went in with rapid
36954steps, pausing at the door for an instant as if struggling with
36955herself, and then ran to her mother.
36956
36957The countess was lying in an armchair in a strange and awkward
36958position, stretching out and beating her head against the wall.
36959Sonya and the maids were holding her arms.
36960
36961"Natasha! Natasha!..." cried the countess. "It's not true... it's
36962not true... He's lying... Natasha!" she shrieked, pushing those around
36963her away. "Go away, all of you; it's not true! Killed!... ha, ha,
36964ha!... It's not true!"
36965
36966Natasha put one knee on the armchair, stooped over her mother,
36967embraced her, and with unexpected strength raised her, turned her face
36968toward herself, and clung to her.
36969
36970"Mummy!... darling!... I am here, my dearest Mummy," she kept on
36971whispering, not pausing an instant.
36972
36973She did not let go of her mother but struggled tenderly with her,
36974demanded a pillow and hot water, and unfastened and tore open her
36975mother's dress.
36976
36977"My dearest darling... Mummy, my precious!..." she whispered
36978incessantly, kissing her head, her hands, her face, and feeling her
36979own irrepressible and streaming tears tickling her nose and cheeks.
36980
36981The countess pressed her daughter's hand, closed her eyes, and
36982became quiet for a moment. Suddenly she sat up with unaccustomed
36983swiftness, glanced vacantly around her, and seeing Natasha began to
36984press her daughter's head with all her strength. Then she turned
36985toward her daughter's face which was wincing with pain and gazed
36986long at it.
36987
36988"Natasha, you love me?" she said in a soft trustful whisper.
36989"Natasha, you would not deceive me? You'll tell me the whole truth?"
36990
36991Natasha looked at her with eyes full of tears and in her look
36992there was nothing but love and an entreaty for forgiveness.
36993
36994"My darling Mummy!" she repeated, straining all the power of her
36995love to find some way of taking on herself the excess of grief that
36996crushed her mother.
36997
36998And again in a futile struggle with reality her mother, refusing
36999to believe that she could live when her beloved boy was killed in
37000the bloom of life, escaped from reality into a world of delirium.
37001
37002Natasha did not remember how that day passed nor that night, nor the
37003next day and night. She did not sleep and did not leave her mother.
37004Her persevering and patient love seemed completely to surround the
37005countess every moment, not explaining or consoling, but recalling
37006her to life.
37007
37008During the third night the countess kept very quiet for a few
37009minutes, and Natasha rested her head on the arm of her chair and
37010closed her eyes, but opened them again on hearing the bedstead
37011creak. The countess was sitting up in bed and speaking softly.
37012
37013"How glad I am you have come. You are tired. Won't you have some
37014tea?" Natasha went up to her. "You have improved in looks and grown
37015more manly," continued the countess, taking her daughter's hand.
37016
37017"Mamma! What are you saying..."
37018
37019"Natasha, he is no more, no more!"
37020
37021And embracing her daughter, the countess began to weep for the first
37022time.
37023
37024
37025
37026
37027
37028CHAPTER III
37029
37030
37031Princess Mary postponed her departure. Sonya and the count tried
37032to replace Natasha but could not. They saw that she alone was able
37033to restrain her mother from unreasoning despair. For three weeks
37034Natasha remained constantly at her mother's side, sleeping on a lounge
37035chair in her room, making her eat and drink, and talking to her
37036incessantly because the mere sound of her tender, caressing tones
37037soothed her mother.
37038
37039The mother's wounded spirit could not heal. Petya's
37040death had torn from her half her life. When the news of Petya's
37041death had come she had been a fresh and vigorous woman of fifty, but a
37042month later she left her room a listless old woman taking no
37043interest in life. But the same blow that almost killed the countess,
37044this second blow, restored Natasha to life.
37045
37046A spiritual wound produced by a rending of the spiritual body is
37047like a physical wound and, strange as it may seem, just as a deep
37048wound may heal and its edges join, physical and spiritual wounds alike
37049can yet heal completely only as the result of a vital force from
37050within.
37051
37052Natasha's wound healed in that way. She thought her life was
37053ended, but her love for her mother unexpectedly showed her that the
37054essence of life--love--was still active within her. Love awoke and
37055so did life.
37056
37057Prince Andrew's last days had bound Princess Mary and Natasha
37058together; this new sorrow brought them still closer to one another.
37059Princess Mary put off her departure, and for three weeks looked
37060after Natasha as if she had been a sick child. The last weeks passed
37061in her mother's bedroom had strained Natasha's physical strength.
37062
37063One afternoon noticing Natasha shivering with fever, Princess Mary
37064took her to her own room and made her lie down on the bed. Natasha lay
37065down, but when Princess Mary had drawn the blinds and was going away
37066she called her back.
37067
37068"I don't want to sleep, Mary, sit by me a little."
37069
37070"You are tired--try to sleep."
37071
37072"No, no. Why did you bring me away? She will be asking for me."
37073
37074"She is much better. She spoke so well today," said Princess Mary.
37075
37076Natasha lay on the bed and in the semidarkness of the room scanned
37077Princess Mary's face.
37078
37079"Is she like him?" thought Natasha. "Yes, like and yet not like. But
37080she is quite original, strange, new, and unknown. And she loves me.
37081What is in her heart? All that is good. But how? What is her mind
37082like? What does she think about me? Yes, she is splendid!"
37083
37084"Mary," she said timidly, drawing Princess Mary's hand to herself,
37085"Mary, you mustn't think me wicked. No? Mary darling, how I love
37086you! Let us be quite, quite friends."
37087
37088And Natasha, embracing her, began kissing her face and hands, making
37089Princess Mary feel shy but happy by this demonstration of her
37090feelings.
37091
37092From that day a tender and passionate friendship such as exists only
37093between women was established between Princess Mary and Natasha.
37094They were continually kissing and saying tender things to one
37095another and spent most of their time together. When one went out the
37096other became restless and hastened to rejoin her. Together they felt
37097more in harmony with one another than either of them felt with herself
37098when alone. A feeling stronger than friendship sprang up between them;
37099an exclusive feeling of life being possible only in each other's
37100presence.
37101
37102Sometimes they were silent for hours; sometimes after they were
37103already in bed they would begin talking and go on till morning. They
37104spoke most of what was long past. Princess Mary spoke of her
37105childhood, of her mother, her father, and her daydreams; and
37106Natasha, who with a passive lack of understanding had formerly
37107turned away from that life of devotion, submission, and the poetry
37108of Christian self-sacrifice, now feeling herself bound to Princess
37109Mary by affection, learned to love her past too and to understand a
37110side of life previously incomprehensible to her. She did not think
37111of applying submission and self-abnegation to her own life, for she
37112was accustomed to seek other joys, but she understood and loved in
37113another those previously incomprehensible virtues. For Princess
37114Mary, listening to Natasha's tales of childhood and early youth, there
37115also opened out a new and hitherto uncomprehended side of life: belief
37116in life and its enjoyment.
37117
37118Just as before, they never mentioned him so as not to lower (as they
37119thought) their exalted feelings by words; but this silence about him
37120had the effect of making them gradually begin to forget him without
37121being conscious of it.
37122
37123Natasha had grown thin and pale and physically so weak that they all
37124talked about her health, and this pleased her. But sometimes she was
37125suddenly overcome by fear not only of death but of sickness, weakness,
37126and loss of good looks, and involuntarily she examined her bare arm
37127carefully, surprised at its thinness, and in the morning noticed her
37128drawn and, as it seemed to her, piteous face in her glass. It seemed
37129to her that things must be so, and yet it was dreadfully sad.
37130
37131One day she went quickly upstairs and found herself out of breath.
37132Unconsciously she immediately invented a reason for going down, and
37133then, testing her strength, ran upstairs again, observing the result.
37134
37135Another time when she called Dunyasha her voice trembled, so she
37136called again--though she could hear Dunyasha coming--called her in the
37137deep chest tones in which she had been wont to sing, sing, and
37138listened attentively to herself.
37139
37140She did not know and would not have believed it, but beneath the
37141layer of slime that covered her soul and seemed to her impenetrable,
37142delicate young shoots of grass were already sprouting, which taking
37143root would so cover with their living verdure the grief that weighed
37144her down that it would soon no longer be seen or noticed. The wound
37145had begun to heal from within.
37146
37147At the end of January Princess Mary left for Moscow, and the count
37148insisted on Natasha's going with her to consult the doctors.
37149
37150
37151
37152
37153
37154CHAPTER IV
37155
37156
37157After the encounter at Vyazma, where Kutuzov had been unable to hold
37158back his troops in their anxiety to overwhelm and cut off the enemy
37159and so on, the farther movement of the fleeing French, and of the
37160Russians who pursued them, continued as far as Krasnoe without a
37161battle. The flight was so rapid that the Russian army pursuing the
37162French could not keep up with them; cavalry and artillery horses broke
37163down, and the information received of the movements of the French
37164was never reliable.
37165
37166The men in the Russian army were so worn out by this continuous
37167marching at the rate of twenty-seven miles a day that they could not
37168go any faster.
37169
37170To realize the degree of exhaustion of the Russian army it is only
37171necessary to grasp clearly the meaning of the fact that, while not
37172losing more than five thousand killed and wounded after Tarutino and
37173less than a hundred prisoners, the Russian army which left that
37174place a hundred thousand strong reached Krasnoe with only fifty
37175thousand.
37176
37177The rapidity of the Russian pursuit was just as destructive to our
37178army as the flight of the French was to theirs. The only difference
37179was that the Russian army moved voluntarily, with no such threat of
37180destruction as hung over the French, and that the sick Frenchmen
37181were left behind in enemy hands while the sick Russians left behind
37182were among their own people. The chief cause of the wastage of
37183Napoleon's army was the rapidity of its movement, and a convincing
37184proof of this is the corresponding decrease of the Russian army.
37185
37186Kutuzov as far as was in his power, instead of trying to check the
37187movement of the French as was desired in Petersburg and by the Russian
37188army generals, directed his whole activity here, as he had done at
37189Tarutino and Vyazma, to hastening it on while easing the movement of
37190our army.
37191
37192But besides this, since the exhaustion and enormous diminution of
37193the army caused by the rapidity of the advance had become evident,
37194another reason for slackening the pace and delaying presented itself
37195to Kutuzov. The aim of the Russian army was to pursue the French.
37196The road the French would take was unknown, and so the closer our
37197troops trod on their heels the greater distance they had to cover.
37198Only by following at some distance could one cut across the zigzag
37199path of the French. All the artful maneuvers suggested by our generals
37200meant fresh movements of the army and a lengthening of its marches,
37201whereas the only reasonable aim was to shorten those marches. To
37202that end Kutuzov's activity was directed during the whole campaign
37203from Moscow to Vilna--not casually or intermittently but so
37204consistently that he never once deviated from it.
37205
37206Kutuzov felt and knew--not by reasoning or science but with the
37207whole of his Russian being--what every Russian soldier felt: that
37208the French were beaten, that the enemy was flying and must be driven
37209out; but at the same time he like the soldiers realized all the
37210hardship of this march, the rapidity of which was unparalleled for
37211such a time of the year.
37212
37213But to the generals, especially the foreign ones in the Russian
37214army, who wished to distinguish themselves, to astonish somebody,
37215and for some reason to capture a king or a duke--it seemed that now-
37216when any battle must be horrible and senseless--was the very time to
37217fight and conquer somebody. Kutuzov merely shrugged his shoulders when
37218one after another they presented projects of maneuvers to be made with
37219those soldiers--ill-shod, insufficiently clad, and half starved--who
37220within a month and without fighting a battle had dwindled to half
37221their number, and who at the best if the flight continued would have
37222to go a greater distance than they had already traversed, before
37223they reached the frontier.
37224
37225This longing to distinguish themselves, to maneuver, to overthrow,
37226and to cut off showed itself particularly whenever the Russians
37227stumbled on the French army.
37228
37229So it was at Krasnoe, where they expected to find one of the three
37230French columns and stumbled instead on Napoleon himself with sixteen
37231thousand men. Despite all Kutuzov's efforts to avoid that ruinous
37232encounter and to preserve his troops, the massacre of the broken mob
37233of French soldiers by worn-out Russians continued at Krasnoe for three
37234days.
37235
37236Toll wrote a disposition: "The first column will march to so and
37237so," etc. And as usual nothing happened in accord with the
37238disposition. Prince Eugene of Wurttemberg fired from a hill over the
37239French crowds that were running past, and demanded reinforcements
37240which did not arrive. The French, avoiding the Russians, dispersed and
37241hid themselves in the forest by night, making their way round as
37242best they could, and continued their flight.
37243
37244Miloradovich, who said he did not want to know anything about the
37245commissariat affairs of his detachment, and could never be found
37246when he was wanted--that chevalier sans peur et sans reproche* as he
37247styled himself--who was fond of parleys with the French, sent envoys
37248demanding their surrender, wasted time, and did not do what he was
37249ordered to do.
37250
37251
37252*Knight without fear and without reproach.
37253
37254
37255"I give you that column, lads," he said, riding up to the troops and
37256pointing out the French to the cavalry.
37257
37258And the cavalry, with spurs and sabers urging on horses that could
37259scarcely move, trotted with much effort to the column presented to
37260them--that is to say, to a crowd of Frenchmen stark with cold,
37261frost-bitten, and starving--and the column that had been presented
37262to them threw down its arms and surrendered as it had long been
37263anxious to do.
37264
37265At Krasnoe they took twenty-six thousand prisoners, several
37266hundred cannon, and a stick called a "marshal's staff," and disputed
37267as to who had distinguished himself and were pleased with their
37268achievement--though they much regretted not having taken Napoleon,
37269or at least a marshal or a hero of some sort, and reproached one
37270another and especially Kutuzov for having failed to do so.
37271
37272These men, carried away by their passions, were but blind tools of
37273the most melancholy law of necessity, but considered themselves heroes
37274and imagined that they were accomplishing a most noble and honorable
37275deed. They blamed Kutuzov and said that from the very beginning of the
37276campaign he had prevented their vanquishing Napoleon, that he
37277thought nothing but satisfying his passions and would not advance from
37278the Linen Factories because he was comfortable there, that at
37279Krasnoe he checked the advance because on learning that Napoleon was
37280there he had quite lost his head, and that it was probable that he had
37281an understanding with Napoleon and had been bribed by him, and so
37282on, and so on.
37283
37284Not only did his contemporaries, carried away by their passions,
37285talk in this way, but posterity and history have acclaimed Napoleon as
37286grand, while Kutuzov is described by foreigners as a crafty,
37287dissolute, weak old courtier, and by Russians as something indefinite-
37288a sort of puppet useful only because he had a Russian name.
37289
37290
37291
37292
37293
37294CHAPTER V
37295
37296
37297In 1812 and 1813 Kutuzov was openly accused of blundering. The
37298Emperor was dissatisfied with him. And in a history recently written
37299by order of the Highest Authorities it is said that Kutuzov was a
37300cunning court liar, frightened of the name of Napoleon, and that by
37301his blunders at Krasnoe and the Berezina he deprived the Russian
37302army of the glory of complete victory over the French.*
37303
37304
37305*History of the year 1812. The character of Kutuzov and
37306reflections on the unsatisfactory results of the battles at Krasnoe,
37307by Bogdanovich.
37308
37309
37310Such is the fate not of great men (grands hommes) whom the Russian
37311mind does not acknowledge, but of those rare and always solitary
37312individuals who, discerning the will of Providence, submit their
37313personal will to it. The hatred and contempt of the crowd punish
37314such men for discerning the higher laws.
37315
37316For Russian historians, strange and terrible to say, Napoleon-
37317that most insignificant tool of history who never anywhere, even in
37318exile, showed human dignity--Napoleon is the object of adulation and
37319enthusiasm; he is grand. But Kutuzov--the man who from the beginning
37320to the end of his activity in 1812, never once swerving by word or
37321deed from Borodino to Vilna, presented an example exceptional in
37322history of self-sacrifice and a present consciousness of the future
37323importance of what was happening--Kutuzov seems to them something
37324indefinite and pitiful, and when speaking of him and of the year
373251812 they always seem a little ashamed.
37326
37327And yet it is difficult to imagine an historical character whose
37328activity was so unswervingly directed to a single aim; and it would be
37329difficult to imagine any aim more worthy or more consonant with the
37330will of the whole people. Still more difficult would it be to find
37331an instance in history of the aim of an historical personage being
37332so completely accomplished as that to which all Kutuzov's efforts were
37333directed in 1812.
37334
37335Kutuzov never talked of "forty centuries looking down from the
37336Pyramids," of the sacrifices he offered for the fatherland, or of what
37337he intended to accomplish or had accomplished; in general he said
37338nothing about himself, adopted no prose, always appeared to be the
37339simplest and most ordinary of men, and said the simplest and most
37340ordinary things. He wrote letters to his daughters and to Madame de
37341Stael, read novels, liked the society of pretty women, jested with
37342generals, officers, and soldiers, and never contradicted those who
37343tried to prove anything to him. When Count Rostopchin at the Yauza
37344bridge galloped up to Kutuzov with personal reproaches for having
37345caused the destruction of Moscow, and said: "How was it you promised
37346not to abandon Moscow without a battle?" Kutuzov replied: "And I shall
37347not abandon Moscow without a battle," though Moscow was then already
37348abandoned. When Arakcheev, coming to him from the Emperor, said that
37349Ermolov ought to be appointed chief of the artillery, Kutuzov replied:
37350"Yes, I was just saying so myself," though a moment before he had said
37351quite the contrary. What did it matter to him--who then alone amid a
37352senseless crowd understood the whole tremendous significance of what
37353was happening--what did it matter to him whether Rostopchin attributed
37354the calamities of Moscow to him or to himself? Still less could it
37355matter to him who was appointed chief of the artillery.
37356
37357Not merely in these cases but continually did that old man--who by
37358experience of life had reached the conviction that thoughts and the
37359words serving as their expression are not what move people--use
37360quite meaningless words that happened to enter his head.
37361
37362But that man, so heedless of his words, did not once during the
37363whole time of his activity utter one word inconsistent with the single
37364aim toward which he moved throughout the whole war. Obviously in spite
37365of himself, in very diverse circumstances, he repeatedly expressed his
37366real thoughts with the bitter conviction that he would not be
37367understood. Beginning with the battle of Borodino, from which time his
37368disagreement with those about him began, he alone said that the battle
37369of Borodino was a victory, and repeated this both verbally and in
37370his dispatches and reports up to the time of his death. He alone
37371said that the loss of Moscow is not the loss of Russia. In reply to
37372Lauriston's proposal of peace, he said: There can be no peace, for
37373such is the people's will. He alone during the retreat of the French
37374said that all our maneuvers are useless, everything is being
37375accomplished of itself better than we could desire; that the enemy
37376must be offered "a golden bridge"; that neither the Tarutino, the
37377Vyazma, nor the Krasnoe battles were necessary; that we must keep some
37378force to reach the frontier with, and that he would not sacrifice a
37379single Russian for ten Frenchmen.
37380
37381And this courtier, as he is described to us, who lies to Arakcheev
37382to please the Emperor, he alone--incurring thereby the Emperor's
37383displeasure--said in Vilna that to carry the war beyond the frontier
37384is useless and harmful.
37385
37386Nor do words alone prove that only he understood the meaning of
37387the events. His actions--without the smallest deviation--were all
37388directed to one and the same threefold end: (1) to brace all his
37389strength for conflict with the French, (2) to defeat them, and (3)
37390to drive them out of Russia, minimizing as far as possible the
37391sufferings of our people and of our army.
37392
37393This procrastinator Kutuzov, whose motto was "Patience and Time,"
37394this enemy of decisive action, gave battle at Borodino, investing
37395the preparations for it with unparalleled solemnity. This Kutuzov
37396who before the battle of Austerlitz began said that it would be
37397lost, he alone, in contradiction to everyone else, declared till his
37398death that Borodino was a victory, despite the assurance of generals
37399that the battle was lost and despite the fact that for an army to have
37400to retire after winning a battle was unprecedented. He alone during
37401the whole retreat insisted that battles, which were useless then,
37402should not be fought, and that a new war should not be begun nor the
37403frontiers of Russia crossed.
37404
37405It is easy now to understand the significance of these events--if
37406only we abstain from attributing to the activity of the mass aims that
37407existed only in the heads of a dozen individuals--for the events and
37408results now lie before us.
37409
37410But how did that old man, alone, in opposition to the general
37411opinion, so truly discern the importance of the people's view of the
37412events that in all his activity he was never once untrue to it?
37413
37414The source of that extraordinary power of penetrating the meaning of
37415the events then occuring lay in the national feeling which he
37416possessed in full purity and strength.
37417
37418Only the recognition of the fact that he possessed this feeling
37419caused the people in so strange a manner, contrary to the Tsar's wish,
37420to select him--an old man in disfavor--to be their representative in
37421the national war. And only that feeling placed him on that highest
37422human pedestal from which he, the commander in chief, devoted all
37423his powers not to slaying and destroying men but to saving and showing
37424pity on them.
37425
37426That simple, modest, and therefore truly great, figure could not
37427be cast in the false mold of a European hero--the supposed ruler of
37428men--that history has invented.
37429
37430To a lackey no man can be great, for a lackey has his own conception
37431of greatness.
37432
37433
37434
37435
37436
37437CHAPTER VI
37438
37439
37440The fifth of November was the first day of what is called the battle
37441of Krasnoe. Toward evening--after much disputing and many mistakes
37442made by generals who did not go to their proper places, and after
37443adjutants had been sent about with counterorders--when it had become
37444plain that the enemy was everywhere in flight and that there could and
37445would be no battle, Kutuzov left Krasnoe and went to Dobroe whither
37446his headquarters had that day been transferred.
37447
37448The day was clear and frosty. Kutuzov rode to Dobroe on his plump
37449little white horse, followed by an enormous suite of discontented
37450generals who whispered among themselves behind his back. All along the
37451road groups of French prisoners captured that day (there were seven
37452thousand of them) were crowding to warm themselves at campfires.
37453Near Dobroe an immense crowd of tattered prisoners, buzzing with
37454talk and wrapped and bandaged in anything they had been able to get
37455hold of, were standing in the road beside a long row of unharnessed
37456French guns. At the approach of the commander in chief the buzz of
37457talk ceased and all eyes were fixed on Kutuzov who, wearing a white
37458cap with a red band and a padded overcoat that bulged on his round
37459shoulders, moved slowly along the road on his white horse. One of
37460the generals was reporting to him where the guns and prisoners had
37461been captured.
37462
37463Kutuzov seemed preoccupied and did not listen to what the general
37464was saying. He screwed up his eyes with a dissatisfied look as he
37465gazed attentively and fixedly at these prisoners, who presented a
37466specially wretched appearance. Most of them were disfigured by
37467frost-bitten noses and cheeks, and nearly all had red, swollen and
37468festering eyes.
37469
37470One group of the French stood close to the road, and two of them,
37471one of whom had his face covered with sores, were tearing a piece of
37472raw flesh with their hands. There was something horrible and bestial
37473in the fleeting glance they threw at the riders and in the
37474malevolent expression with which, after a glance at Kutuzov, the
37475soldier with the sores immediately turned away and went on with what
37476he was doing.
37477
37478Kutuzov looked long and intently at these two soldiers. He
37479puckered his face, screwed up his eyes, and pensively swayed his head.
37480At another spot he noticed a Russian soldier laughingly patting a
37481Frenchman on the shoulder, saying something to him in a friendly
37482manner, and Kutuzov with the same expression on his face again
37483swayed his head.
37484
37485"What were you saying?" he asked the general, who continuing his
37486report directed the commander in chief's attention to some standards
37487captured from the French and standing in front of the Preobrazhensk
37488regiment.
37489
37490"Ah, the standards!" said Kutuzov, evidently detaching himself
37491with difficulty from the thoughts that preoccupied him.
37492
37493He looked about him absently. Thousands of eyes were looking at
37494him from all sides awaiting a word from him.
37495
37496He stopped in front of the Preobrazhensk regiment, sighed deeply,
37497and closed his eyes. One of his suite beckoned to the soldiers
37498carrying the standards to advance and surround the commander in
37499chief with them. Kutuzov was silent for a few seconds and then,
37500submitting with evident reluctance to the duty imposed by his
37501position, raised his head and began to speak. A throng of officers
37502surrounded him. He looked attentively around at the circle of
37503officers, recognizing several of them.
37504
37505"I thank you all!" he said, addressing the soldiers and then again
37506the officers. In the stillness around him his slowly uttered words
37507were distinctly heard. "I thank you all for your hard and faithful
37508service. The victory is complete and Russia will not forget you! Honor
37509to you forever."
37510
37511He paused and looked around.
37512
37513"Lower its head, lower it!" he said to a soldier who had
37514accidentally lowered the French eagle he was holding before the
37515Preobrazhensk standards. "Lower, lower, that's it. Hurrah lads!" he
37516added, addressing the men with a rapid movement of his chin.
37517
37518"Hur-r-rah!" roared thousands of voices.
37519
37520While the soldiers were shouting Kutuzov leaned forward in his
37521saddle and bowed his head, and his eye lit up with a mild and
37522apparently ironic gleam.
37523
37524"You see, brothers..." said he when the shouts had ceased... and all
37525at once his voice and the expression of his face changed. It was no
37526longer the commander in chief speaking but an ordinary old man who
37527wanted to tell his comrades something very important.
37528
37529There was a stir among the throng of officers and in the ranks of
37530the soldiers, who moved that they might hear better what he was
37531going to say.
37532
37533"You see, brothers, I know it's hard for you, but it can't be
37534helped! Bear up; it won't be for long now! We'll see our visitors
37535off and then we'll rest. The Tsar won't forget your service. It is
37536hard for you, but still you are at home while they--you see what
37537they have come to," said he, pointing to the prisoners. "Worse off
37538than our poorest beggars. While they were strong we didn't spare
37539ourselves, but now we may even pity them. They are human beings too.
37540Isn't it so, lads?"
37541
37542He looked around, and in the direct, respectful, wondering gaze
37543fixed upon him he read sympathy with what he had said. His face grew
37544brighter and brighter with an old man's mild smile, which drew the
37545corners of his lips and eyes into a cluster of wrinkles. He ceased
37546speaking and bowed his head as if in perplexity.
37547
37548"But after all who asked them here? Serves them right, the bloody
37549bastards!" he cried, suddenly lifting his head.
37550
37551And flourishing his whip he rode off at a gallop for the first
37552time during the whole campaign, and left the broken ranks of the
37553soldiers laughing joyfully and shouting "Hurrah!"
37554
37555Kutuzov's words were hardly understood by the troops. No one could
37556have repeated the field marshal's address, begun solemnly and then
37557changing into an old man's simplehearted talk; but the hearty
37558sincerity of that speech, the feeling of majestic triumph combined
37559with pity for the foe and consciousness of the justice of our cause,
37560exactly expressed by that old man's good-natured expletives, was not
37561merely understood but lay in the soul of every soldier and found
37562expression in their joyous and long-sustained shouts. Afterwards
37563when one of the generals addressed Kutuzov asking whether he wished
37564his caleche to be sent for, Kutuzov in answering unexpectedly gave a
37565sob, being evidently greatly moved.
37566
37567
37568
37569
37570
37571CHAPTER VII
37572
37573
37574When the troops reached their night's halting place on the eighth of
37575November, the last day of the Krasnoe battles, it was already
37576growing dusk. All day it had been calm and frosty with occasional
37577lightly falling snow and toward evening it began to clear. Through the
37578falling snow a purple-black and starry sky showed itself and the frost
37579grew keener.
37580
37581An infantry regiment which had left Tarutino three thousand strong
37582but now numbered only nine hundred was one of the first to arrive that
37583night at its halting place--a village on the highroad. The
37584quartermasters who met the regiment announced that all the huts were
37585full of sick and dead Frenchmen, cavalrymen, and members of the staff.
37586There was only one hut available for the regimental commander.
37587
37588The commander rode up to his hut. The regiment passed through the
37589village and stacked its arms in front of the last huts.
37590
37591Like some huge many-limbed animal, the regiment began to prepare its
37592lair and its food. One part of it dispersed and waded knee-deep
37593through the snow into a birch forest to the right of the village,
37594and immediately the sound of axes and swords, the crashing of
37595branches, and merry voices could be heard from there. Another
37596section amid the regimental wagons and horses which were standing in a
37597group was busy getting out caldrons and rye biscuit, and feeding the
37598horses. A third section scattered through the village arranging
37599quarters for the staff officers, carrying out the French corpses
37600that were in the huts, and dragging away boards, dry wood, and
37601thatch from the roofs, for the campfires, or wattle fences to serve
37602for shelter.
37603
37604Some fifteen men with merry shouts were shaking down the high wattle
37605wall of a shed, the roof of which had already been removed.
37606
37607"Now then, all together--shove!" cried the voices, and the huge
37608surface of the wall, sprinkled with snow and creaking with frost,
37609was seen swaying in the gloom of the night. The lower stakes cracked
37610more and more and at last the wall fell, and with it the men who had
37611been pushing it. Loud, coarse laughter and joyous shouts ensued.
37612
37613"Now then, catch hold in twos! Hand up the lever! That's it... Where
37614are you shoving to?"
37615
37616"Now, all together! But wait a moment, boys... With a song!"
37617
37618All stood silent, and a soft, pleasant velvety voice began to
37619sing. At the end of the third verse as the last note died away, twenty
37620voices roared out at once: "Oo-oo-oo-oo! That's it. All together!
37621Heave away, boys!..." but despite their united efforts the wattle
37622hardly moved, and in the silence that followed the heavy breathing
37623of the men was audible.
37624
37625"Here, you of the Sixth Company! Devils that you are! Lend a hand...
37626will you? You may want us one of these days."
37627
37628Some twenty men of the Sixth Company who were on their way into
37629the village joined the haulers, and the wattle wall, which was about
37630thirty-five feet long and seven feet high, moved forward along the
37631village street, swaying, pressing upon and cutting the shoulders of
37632the gasping men.
37633
37634"Get along... Falling? What are you stopping for? There now..."
37635
37636Merry senseless words of abuse flowed freely.
37637
37638"What are you up to?" suddenly came the authoritative voice of a
37639sergeant major who came upon the men who were hauling their burden.
37640"There are gentry here; the general himself is in that hut, and you
37641foul-mouthed devils, you brutes, I'll give it to you!" shouted he,
37642hitting the first man who came in his way a swinging blow on the back.
37643"Can't you make less noise?"
37644
37645The men became silent. The soldier who had been struck groaned and
37646wiped his face, which had been scratched till it bled by his falling
37647against the wattle.
37648
37649"There, how that devil hits out! He's made my face all bloody," said
37650he in a frightened whisper when the sergeant major had passed on.
37651
37652"Don't you like it?" said a laughing voice, and moderating their
37653tones the men moved forward.
37654
37655When they were out of the village they began talking again as loud
37656as before, interlarding their talk with the same aimless expletives.
37657
37658In the hut which the men had passed, the chief officers had gathered
37659and were in animated talk over their tea about the events of the day
37660and the maneuvers suggested for tomorrow. It was proposed to make a
37661flank march to the left, cut off the Vice-King (Murat) and capture
37662him.
37663
37664By the time the soldiers had dragged the wattle fence to its place
37665the campfires were blazing on all sides ready for cooking, the wood
37666crackled, the snow was melting, and black shadows of soldiers
37667flitted to and fro all over the occupied space where the snow had been
37668trodden down.
37669
37670Axes and choppers were plied all around. Everything was done without
37671any orders being given. Stores of wood were brought for the night,
37672shelters were rigged up for the officers, caldrons were being
37673boiled, and muskets and accouterments put in order.
37674
37675The wattle wall the men had brought was set up in a semicircle by
37676the Eighth Company as a shelter from the north, propped up by musket
37677rests, and a campfire was built before it. They beat the tattoo,
37678called the roll, had supper, and settled down round the fires for
37679the night--some repairing their footgear, some smoking pipes, and some
37680stripping themselves naked to steam the lice out of their shirts.
37681
37682
37683
37684
37685
37686CHAPTER VIII
37687
37688
37689One would have thought that under the almost incredibly wretched
37690conditions the Russian soldiers were in at that time--lacking warm
37691boots and sheepskin coats, without a roof over their heads, in the
37692snow with eighteen degrees of frost, and without even full rations
37693(the commissariat did not always keep up with the troops)--they
37694would have presented a very sad and depressing spectacle.
37695
37696On the contrary, the army had never under the best material
37697conditions presented a more cheerful and animated aspect. This was
37698because all who began to grow depressed or who lost strength were
37699sifted out of the army day by day. All the physically or morally
37700weak had long since been left behind and only the flower of the
37701army--physically and mentally--remained.
37702
37703More men collected behind the wattle fence of the Eighth Company
37704than anywhere else. Two sergeants major were sitting with them and
37705their campfire blazed brighter than others. For leave to sit by
37706their wattle they demanded contributions of fuel.
37707
37708"Eh, Makeev! What has become of you, you son of a bitch? Are you
37709lost or have the wolves eaten you? Fetch some more wood!" shouted a
37710red-haired and red-faced man, screwing up his eyes and blinking
37711because of the smoke but not moving back from the fire. "And you,
37712Jackdaw, go and fetch some wood!" said he to another soldier.
37713
37714This red-haired man was neither a sergeant nor a corporal, but being
37715robust he ordered about those weaker than himself. The soldier they
37716called "Jackdaw," a thin little fellow with a sharp nose, rose
37717obediently and was about to go but at that instant there came into the
37718light of the fire the slender, handsome figure of a young soldier
37719carrying a load of wood.
37720
37721"Bring it here--that's fine!"
37722
37723They split up the wood, pressed it down on the fire, blew at it with
37724their mouths, and fanned it with the skirts of their greatcoats,
37725making the flames hiss and crackle. The men drew nearer and lit
37726their pipes. The handsome young soldier who had brought the wood,
37727setting his arms akimbo, began stamping his cold feet rapidly and
37728deftly on the spot where he stood.
37729
37730"Mother! The dew is cold but clear.... It's well that I'm a
37731musketeer..." he sang, pretending to hiccough after each syllable.
37732
37733"Look out, your soles will fly off!" shouted the red-haired man,
37734noticing that the sole of the dancer's boot was hanging loose. "What a
37735fellow you are for dancing!"
37736
37737The dancer stopped, pulled off the loose piece of leather, and threw
37738it on the fire.
37739
37740"Right enough, friend," said he, and, having sat down, took out of
37741his knapsack a scrap of blue French cloth, and wrapped it round his
37742foot. "It's the steam that spoils them," he added, stretching out
37743his feet toward the fire.
37744
37745"They'll soon be issuing us new ones. They say that when we've
37746finished hammering them, we're to receive double kits!"
37747
37748"And that son of a bitch Petrov has lagged behind after all, it
37749seems," said one sergeant major.
37750
37751"I've had an eye on him this long while," said the other.
37752
37753"Well, he's a poor sort of soldier..."
37754
37755"But in the Third Company they say nine men were missing yesterday."
37756
37757"Yes, it's all very well, but when a man's feet are frozen how can
37758he walk?"
37759
37760"Eh? Don't talk nonsense!" said a sergeant major.
37761
37762"Do you want to be doing the same?" said an old soldier, turning
37763reproachfully to the man who had spoken of frozen feet.
37764
37765"Well, you know," said the sharp-nosed man they called Jackdaw in
37766a squeaky and unsteady voice, raising himself at the other side of the
37767fire, "a plump man gets thin, but for a thin one it's death. Take
37768me, now! I've got no strength left," he added, with sudden
37769resolution turning to the sergeant major. "Tell them to send me to
37770
37771hospital; I'm aching all over; anyway I shan't be able to keep up."
37772
37773"That'll do, that'll do!" replied the sergeant major quietly.
37774
37775The soldier said no more and the talk went on.
37776
37777"What a lot of those Frenchies were taken today, and the fact is
37778that not one of them had what you might call real boots on," said a
37779soldier, starting a new theme. "They were no more than make-believes."
37780
37781"The Cossacks have taken their boots. They were clearing the hut for
37782the colonel and carried them out. It was pitiful to see them, boys,"
37783put in the dancer. "As they turned them over one seemed still alive
37784and, would you believe it, he jabbered something in their lingo."
37785
37786"But they're a clean folk, lads," the first man went on; "he was
37787white--as white as birchbark--and some of them are such fine
37788fellows, you might think they were nobles."
37789
37790"Well, what do you think? They make soldiers of all classes there."
37791
37792"But they don't understand our talk at all," said the dancer with
37793a puzzled smile. "I asked him whose subject he was, and he jabbered in
37794his own way. A queer lot!"
37795
37796"But it's strange, friends," continued the man who had wondered at
37797their whiteness, "the peasants at Mozhaysk were saying that when
37798they began burying the dead--where the battle was you know--well,
37799those dead had been lying there for nearly a month, and says the
37800peasant, 'they lie as white as paper, clean, and not as much smell
37801as a puff of powder smoke.'"
37802
37803"Was it from the cold?" asked someone.
37804
37805"You're a clever fellow! From the cold indeed! Why, it was hot. If
37806it had been from the cold, ours would not have rotted either. 'But,'
37807he says, 'go up to ours and they are all rotten and maggoty. So,' he
37808says, 'we tie our faces up with kerchiefs and turn our heads away as
37809we drag them off: we can hardly do it. But theirs,' he says, 'are
37810white as paper and not so much smell as a whiff of gunpowder.'"
37811
37812All were silent.
37813
37814"It must be from their food," said the sergeant major. "They used to
37815gobble the same food as the gentry."
37816
37817No one contradicted him.
37818
37819"That peasant near Mozhaysk where the battle was said the men were
37820all called up from ten villages around and they carted for twenty days
37821and still didn't finish carting the dead away. And as for the
37822wolves, he says..."
37823
37824"That was a real battle," said an old soldier. "It's the only one
37825worth remembering; but since that... it's only been tormenting folk."
37826
37827"And do you know, Daddy, the day before yesterday we ran at them
37828and, my word, they didn't let us get near before they just threw
37829down their muskets and went on their knees. 'Pardon!' they say. That's
37830only one case. They say Platov took 'Poleon himself twice. But he
37831didn't know the right charm. He catches him and catches him--no
37832good! He turns into a bird in his hands and flies away. And there's no
37833way of killing him either."
37834
37835"You're a first-class liar, Kiselev, when I come to look at you!"
37836
37837"Liar, indeed! It's the real truth."
37838
37839"If he fell into my hands, when I'd caught him I'd bury him in the
37840ground with an aspen stake to fix him down. What a lot of men he's
37841ruined!"
37842
37843"Well, anyhow we're going to end it. He won't come here again,"
37844remarked the old soldier, yawning.
37845
37846The conversation flagged, and the soldiers began settling down to
37847sleep.
37848
37849"Look at the stars. It's wonderful how they shine! You would think
37850the women had spread out their linen," said one of the men, gazing
37851with admiration at the Milky Way.
37852
37853"That's a sign of a good harvest next year."
37854
37855"We shall want some more wood."
37856
37857"You warm your back and your belly gets frozen. That's queer."
37858
37859"O Lord!"
37860
37861"What are you pushing for? Is the fire only for you? Look how he's
37862sprawling!"
37863
37864In the silence that ensued, the snoring of those who had fallen
37865asleep could be heard. Others turned over and warmed themselves, now
37866and again exchanging a few words. From a campfire a hundred paces
37867off came a sound of general, merry laughter.
37868
37869"Hark at them roaring there in the Fifth Company!" said one of the
37870soldiers, "and what a lot of them there are!"
37871
37872One of the men got up and went over to the Fifth Company.
37873
37874"They're having such fun," said he, coming back. "Two Frenchies have
37875turned up. One's quite frozen and the other's an awful swaggerer. He's
37876singing songs...."
37877
37878"Oh, I'll go across and have a look...."
37879
37880And several of the men went over to the Fifth Company.
37881
37882
37883
37884
37885
37886CHAPTER IX
37887
37888
37889The fifth company was bivouacking at the very edge of the forest.
37890A huge campfire was blazing brightly in the midst of the snow,
37891lighting up the branches of trees heavy with hoarfrost.
37892
37893About midnight they heard the sound of steps in the snow of the
37894forest, and the crackling of dry branches.
37895
37896"A bear, lads," said one of the men.
37897
37898They all raised their heads to listen, and out of the forest into
37899the bright firelight stepped two strangely clad human figures clinging
37900to one another.
37901
37902These were two Frenchmen who had been hiding in the forest. They
37903came up to the fire, hoarsely uttering something in a language our
37904soldiers did not understand. One was taller than the other; he wore an
37905officer's hat and seemed quite exhausted. On approaching the fire he
37906had been going to sit down, but fell. The other, a short sturdy
37907soldier with a shawl tied round his head, was stronger. He raised
37908his companion and said something, pointing to his mouth. The
37909soldiers surrounded the Frenchmen, spread a greatcoat on the ground
37910for the sick man, and brought some buckwheat porridge and vodka for
37911both of them.
37912
37913The exhausted French officer was Ramballe and the man with his
37914head wrapped in the shawl was Morel, his orderly.
37915
37916When Morel had drunk some vodka and finished his bowl of porridge he
37917suddenly became unnaturally merry and chattered incessantly to the
37918soldiers, who could not understand him. Ramballe refused food and
37919resting his head on his elbow lay silent beside the campfire,
37920looking at the Russian soldiers with red and vacant eyes. Occasionally
37921he emitted a long-drawn groan and then again became silent. Morel,
37922pointing to his shoulders, tried to impress on the soldiers the fact
37923that Ramballe was an officer and ought to be warmed. A Russian officer
37924who had come up to the fire sent to ask his colonel whether he would
37925not take a French officer into his hut to warm him, and when the
37926messenger returned and said that the colonel wished the officer to
37927be brought to him, Ramballe was told to go. He rose and tried to walk,
37928but staggered and would have fallen had not a soldier standing by held
37929him up.
37930
37931"You won't do it again, eh?" said one of the soldiers, winking and
37932turning mockingly to Ramballe.
37933
37934"Oh, you fool! Why talk rubbish, lout that you are--a real peasant!"
37935came rebukes from all sides addressed to the jesting soldier.
37936
37937They surrounded Ramballe, lifted him on the crossed arms of two
37938soldiers, and carried him to the hut. Ramballe put his arms around
37939their necks while they carried him and began wailing plaintively:
37940
37941"Oh, you fine fellows, my kind, kind friends! These are men! Oh,
37942my brave, kind friends," and he leaned his head against the shoulder
37943of one of the men like a child.
37944
37945Meanwhile Morel was sitting in the best place by the fire,
37946surrounded by the soldiers.
37947
37948Morel, a short sturdy Frenchman with inflamed and streaming eyes,
37949was wearing a woman's cloak and had a shawl tied woman fashion round
37950his head over his cap. He was evidently tipsy, and was singing a
37951French song in a hoarse broken voice, with an arm thrown round the
37952nearest soldier. The soldiers simply held their sides as they
37953watched him.
37954
37955"Now then, now then, teach us how it goes! I'll soon pick it up. How
37956is it?" said the man--a singer and a wag--whom Morel was embracing.
37957
37958"Vive Henri Quatre! Vive ce roi valiant!" sang Morel, winking. "Ce
37959diable a quatre..."*
37960
37961
37962*"Long live Henry the Fourth, that valiant king! That rowdy devil."
37963
37964
37965"Vivarika! Vif-seruvaru! Sedyablyaka!" repeated the soldier,
37966flourishing his arm and really catching the tune.
37967
37968"Bravo! Ha, ha, ha!" rose their rough, joyous laughter from all
37969sides.
37970
37971Morel, wrinkling up his face, laughed too.
37972
37973"Well, go on, go on!"
37974
37975 "Qui eut le triple talent,
37976 De boire, de battre,
37977 Et d'etre un vert galant."*
37978
37979
37980*Who had a triple talent
37981
37982 For drinking, for fighting,
37983
37984 And for being a gallant old boy...
37985
37986
37987"It goes smoothly, too. Well, now, Zaletaev!"
37988
37989"Ke..." Zaletaev, brought out with effort: "ke-e-e-e," he drawled,
37990laboriously pursing his lips, "le-trip-ta-la-de-bu-de-ba, e
37991de-tra-va-ga-la" he sang.
37992
37993"Fine! Just like the Frenchie! Oh, ho ho! Do you want some more to
37994eat?"
37995
37996"Give him some porridge: it takes a long time to get filled up after
37997starving."
37998
37999They gave him some more porridge and Morel with a laugh set to
38000work on his third bowl. All the young soldiers smiled gaily as they
38001watched him. The older men, who thought it undignified to amuse
38002themselves with such nonsense, continued to lie at the opposite side
38003of the fire, but one would occasionally raise himself on an elbow
38004and glance at Morel with a smile.
38005
38006"They are men too," said one of them as he wrapped himself up in his
38007coat. "Even wormwood grows on its own root."
38008
38009"O Lord, O Lord! How starry it is! Tremendous! That means a hard
38010frost...."
38011
38012They all grew silent. The stars, as if knowing that no one was
38013looking at them, began to disport themselves in the dark sky: now
38014flaring up, now vanishing, now trembling, they were busy whispering
38015something gladsome and mysterious to one another.
38016
38017
38018
38019
38020
38021CHAPTER X
38022
38023
38024The French army melted away at the uniform rate of a mathematical
38025progression; and that crossing of the Berezina about which so much has
38026been written was only one intermediate stage in its destruction, and
38027not at all the decisive episode of the campaign. If so much has been
38028and still is written about the Berezina, on the French side this is
38029only because at the broken bridge across that river the calamities
38030their army had been previously enduring were suddenly concentrated
38031at one moment into a tragic spectacle that remained in every memory,
38032and on the Russian side merely because in Petersburg--far from the
38033seat of war--a plan (again one of Pfuel's) had been devised to catch
38034Napoleon in a strategic trap at the Berezina River. Everyone assured
38035himself that all would happen according to plan, and therefore
38036insisted that it was just the crossing of the Berezina that
38037destroyed the French army. In reality the results of the crossing were
38038much less disastrous to the French--in guns and men lost--than Krasnoe
38039had been, as the figures show.
38040
38041The sole importance of the crossing of the Berezina lies in the fact
38042that it plainly and indubitably proved the fallacy of all the plans
38043for cutting off the enemy's retreat and the soundness of the only
38044possible line of action--the one Kutuzov and the general mass of the
38045army demanded--namely, simply to follow the enemy up. The French crowd
38046fled at a continually increasing speed and all its energy was directed
38047to reaching its goal. It fled like a wounded animal and it was
38048impossible to block its path. This was shown not so much by the
38049arrangements it made for crossing as by what took place at the
38050bridges. When the bridges broke down, unarmed soldiers, people from
38051Moscow and women with children who were with the French transport,
38052all--carried on by vis inertiae--pressed forward into boats and into
38053the ice-covered water and did not, surrender.
38054
38055That impulse was reasonable. The condition of fugitives and of
38056pursuers was equally bad. As long as they remained with their own
38057people each might hope for help from his fellows and the definite
38058place he held among them. But those who surrendered, while remaining
38059in the same pitiful plight, would be on a lower level to claim a share
38060in the necessities of life. The French did not need to be informed
38061of the fact that half the prisoners--with whom the Russians did not
38062know what to do--perished of cold and hunger despite their captors'
38063desire to save them; they felt that it could not be otherwise. The
38064most compassionate Russian commanders, those favorable to the
38065French--and even the Frenchmen in the Russian service--could do
38066nothing for the prisoners. The French perished from the conditions
38067to which the Russian army was itself exposed. It was impossible to
38068take bread and clothes from our hungry and indispensable soldiers to
38069give to the French who, though not harmful, or hated, or guilty,
38070were simply unnecessary. Some Russians even did that, but they were
38071exceptions.
38072
38073Certain destruction lay behind the French but in front there was
38074hope. Their ships had been burned, there was no salvation save in
38075collective flight, and on that the whole strength of the French was
38076concentrated.
38077
38078The farther they fled the more wretched became the plight of the
38079remnant, especially after the Berezina, on which (in consequence of
38080the Petersburg plan) special hopes had been placed by the Russians,
38081and the keener grew the passions of the Russian commanders, blamed one
38082another and Kutuzov most of all. Anticipation that the failure of
38083the Petersburg Berezina plan would be attributed to Kutuzov led to
38084dissatisfaction, contempt, and ridicule, more and more strongly
38085expressed. The ridicule and contempt were of course expressed in a
38086respectful form, making it impossible for him to ask wherein he was to
38087blame. They did not talk seriously to him; when reporting to him or
38088asking for his sanction they appeared to be fulfilling a regrettable
38089formality, but they winked behind his back and tried to mislead him at
38090every turn.
38091
38092Because they could not understand him all these people assumed
38093that it was useless to talk to the old man; that he would never
38094grasp the profundity of their plans, that he would answer with his
38095phrases (which they thought were mere phrases) about a "golden
38096bridge," about the impossibility of crossing the frontier with a crowd
38097of tatterdemalions, and so forth. They had heard all that before.
38098And all he said--that it was necessary to await provisions, or that
38099the men had no boots--was so simple, while what they proposed was so
38100complicated and clever, that it was evident that he was old and stupid
38101and that they, though not in power, were commanders of genius.
38102
38103After the junction with the army of the brilliant admiral and
38104Petersburg hero Wittgenstein, this mood and the gossip of the staff
38105reached their maximum. Kutuzov saw this and merely sighed and shrugged
38106his shoulders. Only once, after the affair of the Berezina, did he get
38107angry and write to Bennigsen (who reported separately to the
38108Emperor) the following letter:
38109
38110"On account of your spells of ill health, will your excellency
38111please be so good as to set off for Kaluga on receipt of this, and
38112there await further commands and appointments from His Imperial
38113Majesty."
38114
38115But after Bennigsen's departure, the Grand Duke Tsarevich
38116Constantine Pavlovich joined the army. He had taken part in the
38117beginning of the campaign but had subsequently been removed from the
38118army by Kutuzov. Now having come to the army, he informed Kutuzov of
38119the Emperor's displeasure at the poor success of our forces and the
38120slowness of their advance. The Emperor intended to join the army
38121personally in a few days' time.
38122
38123The old man, experienced in court as well as in military affairs-
38124this same Kutuzov who in August had been chosen commander in chief
38125against the sovereign's wishes and who had removed the Grand Duke
38126and heir--apparent from the army--who on his own authority and
38127contrary to the Emperor's will had decided on the abandonment of
38128Moscow, now realized at once that his day was over, that his part
38129was played, and that the power he was supposed to hold was no longer
38130his. And he understood this not merely from the attitude of the court.
38131He saw on the one hand that the military business in which he had
38132played his part was ended and felt that his mission was
38133accomplished; and at the same time he began to be conscious of the
38134physical weariness of his aged body and of the necessity of physical
38135rest.
38136
38137On the twenty-ninth of November Kutuzov entered Vilna--his "dear
38138Vilna" as he called it. Twice during his career Kutuzov had been
38139governor of Vilna. In that wealthy town, which had not been injured,
38140he found old friends and associations, besides the comforts of life of
38141which he had so long been deprived. And he suddenly turned from the
38142cares of army and state and, as far as the passions that seethed
38143around him allowed, immersed himself in the quiet life to which he had
38144formerly been accustomed, as if all that was taking place and all that
38145had still to be done in the realm of history did not concern him at
38146all.
38147
38148Chichagov, one of the most zealous "cutters-off" and
38149"breakers-up," who had first wanted to effect a diversion in Greece
38150and then in Warsaw but never wished to go where he was sent:
38151Chichagov, noted for the boldness with which he spoke to the
38152Emperor, and who considered Kutuzov to be under an obligation to him
38153because when he was sent to make peace with Turkey in 1811
38154independently of Kutuzov, and found that peace had already been
38155concluded, he admitted to the Emperor that the merit of securing
38156that peace was really Kutuzov's; this Chichagov was the first to
38157meet Kutuzov at the castle where the latter was to stay. In undress
38158naval uniform, with a dirk, and holding his cap under his arm, he
38159handed Kutuzov a garrison report and the keys of the town. The
38160contemptuously respectful attitude of the younger men to the old man
38161in his dotage was expressed in the highest degree by the behavior of
38162Chichagov, who knew of the accusations that were being directed
38163against Kutuzov.
38164
38165When speaking to Chichagov, Kutuzov incidentally mentioned that
38166the vehicles packed with china that had been captured from him at
38167Borisov had been recovered and would be restored to him.
38168
38169"You mean to imply that I have nothing to eat out of.... On the
38170contrary, I can supply you with everything even if you want to give
38171dinner parties," warmly replied Chichagov, who tried by every word
38172he spoke to prove his own rectitude and therefore imagined Kutuzov
38173to be animated by the same desire.
38174
38175Kutuzov, shrugging his shoulders, replied with his subtle
38176penetrating smile: "I meant merely to say what I said."
38177
38178Contrary to the Emperor's wish Kutuzov detained the greater part
38179of the army at Vilna. Those about him said that he became
38180extraordinarily slack and physically feeble during his stay in that
38181town. He attended to army affairs reluctantly, left everything to
38182his generals, and while awaiting the Emperor's arrival led a
38183dissipated life.
38184
38185Having left Petersburg on the seventh of December with his suite-
38186Count Tolstoy, Prince Volkonski, Arakcheev, and others--the Emperor
38187reached Vilna on the eleventh, and in his traveling sleigh drove
38188straight to the castle. In spite of the severe frost some hundred
38189generals and staff officers in full parade uniform stood in front of
38190the castle, as well as a guard of honor of the Semenov regiment.
38191
38192A courier who galloped to the castle in advance, in a troyka with
38193three foam-flecked horses, shouted "Coming!" and Konovnitsyn rushed
38194into the vestibule to inform Kutuzov, who was waiting in the hall
38195porter's little lodge.
38196
38197A minute later the old man's large stout figure in full-dress
38198uniform, his chest covered with orders and a scarf drawn round his
38199stomach, waddled out into the porch. He put on his hat with its
38200peaks to the sides and, holding his gloves in his hand and walking
38201with an effort sideways down the steps to the level of the street,
38202took in his hand the report he had prepared for the Emperor.
38203
38204There was running to and fro and whispering; another troyka
38205furiously up, and then all eyes were turned on an approaching sleigh
38206in which the figures of the Emperor and Volkonski could already be
38207descried.
38208
38209From the habit of fifty years all this had a physically agitating
38210effect on the old general. He carefully and hastily felt himself all
38211over, readjusted his hat, and pulling himself together drew himself up
38212and, at the very moment when the Emperor, having alighted from the
38213sleigh, lifted his eyes to him, handed him the report and began
38214speaking in his smooth, ingratiating voice.
38215
38216The Emperor with a rapid glance scanned Kutuzov from head to foot,
38217frowned for an instant, but immediately mastering himself went up to
38218the old man, extended his arms and embraced him. And this embrace too,
38219owing to a long-standing impression related to his innermost feelings,
38220had its usual effect on Kutuzov and he gave a sob.
38221
38222The Emperor greeted the officers and the Semenov guard, and again
38223pressing the old man's hand went with him into the castle.
38224
38225When alone with the field marshal the Emperor expressed his
38226dissatisfaction at the slowness of the pursuit and at the mistakes
38227made at Krasnoe and the Berezina, and informed him of his intentions
38228for a future campaign abroad. Kutuzov made no rejoinder or remark. The
38229same submissive, expressionless look with which he had listened to the
38230Emperor's commands on the field of Austerlitz seven years before
38231settled on his face now.
38232
38233When Kutuzov came out of the study and with lowered head was
38234crossing the ballroom with his heavy waddling gait, he was arrested by
38235someone's voice saying:
38236
38237"Your Serene Highness!"
38238
38239Kutuzov raised his head and looked for a long while into the eyes of
38240Count Tolstoy, who stood before him holding a silver salver on which
38241lay a small object. Kutuzov seemed not to understand what was expected
38242of him.
38243
38244Suddenly he seemed to remember; a scarcely perceptible smile flashed
38245across his puffy face, and bowing low and respectfully he took the
38246object that lay on the salver. It was the Order of St. George of the
38247First Class.
38248
38249
38250
38251
38252
38253CHAPTER XI
38254
38255
38256Next day the field marshal gave a dinner and ball which the
38257Emperor honored by his presence. Kutuzov had received the Order of St.
38258George of the First Class and the Emperor showed him the highest
38259honors, but everyone knew of the imperial dissatisfaction with him.
38260The proprieties were observed and the Emperor was the first to set
38261that example, but everybody understood that the old man was
38262blameworthy and good-for-nothing. When Kutuzov, conforming to a custom
38263of Catherine's day, ordered the standards that had been captured to be
38264lowered at the Emperor's feet on his entering the ballroom, the
38265Emperor made a wry face and muttered something in which some people
38266caught the words, "the old comedian."
38267
38268The Emperor's displeasure with Kutuzov was specially increased at
38269Vilna by the fact that Kutuzov evidently could not or would not
38270understand the importance of the coming campaign.
38271
38272When on the following morning the Emperor said to the officers
38273assembled about him: "You have not only saved Russia, you have saved
38274Europe!" they all understood that the war was not ended.
38275
38276Kutuzov alone would not see this and openly expressed his opinion
38277that no fresh war could improve the position or add to the glory of
38278Russia, but could only spoil and lower the glorious position that
38279Russia had gained. He tried to prove to the Emperor the
38280impossibility of levying fresh troops, spoke of the hardships
38281already endured by the people, of the possibility of failure and so
38282forth.
38283
38284This being the field marshal's frame of mind he was naturally
38285regarded as merely a hindrance and obstacle to the impending war.
38286
38287To avoid unpleasant encounters with the old man, the natural
38288method was to do what had been done with him at Austerlitz and with
38289Barclay at the beginning of the Russian campaign--to transfer the
38290authority to the Emperor himself, thus cutting the ground from under
38291the commander in chief's feet without upsetting the old man by
38292informing him of the change.
38293
38294With this object his staff was gradually reconstructed and its
38295real strength removed and transferred to the Emperor. Toll,
38296Konovnitsyn, and Ermolov received fresh appointments. Everyone spoke
38297loudly of the field marshal's great weakness and failing health.
38298
38299His health had to be bad for his place to be taken away and given to
38300another. And in fact his health was poor.
38301
38302So naturally, simply, and gradually--just as he had come from Turkey
38303to the Treasury in Petersburg to recruit the militia, and then to
38304the army when he was needed there--now when his part was played out,
38305Kutuzov's place was taken by a new and necessary performer.
38306
38307The war 1812, besides its national significance dear to every
38308Russian heart, was now to assume another, a European, significance.
38309
38310The movement of peoples from west to east was to be succeeded by a
38311movement of peoples from east to west, and for this fresh war
38312another leader was necessary, having qualities and views differing
38313from Kutuzov's and animated by different motives.
38314
38315Alexander I was as necessary for the movement of the peoples from
38316east to west and for the refixing of national frontiers as Kutuzov had
38317been for the salvation and glory of Russia.
38318
38319Kutuzov did not understand what Europe, the balance of power, or
38320Napoleon meant. He could not understand it. For the representative
38321of the Russian people, after the enemy had been destroyed and Russia
38322had been liberated and raised to the summit of her glory, there was
38323nothing left to do as a Russian. Nothing remained for the
38324representative of the national war but to die, and Kutuzov died.
38325
38326
38327
38328
38329
38330CHAPTER XII
38331
38332
38333As generally happens, Pierre did not feel the full effects of the
38334physical privation and strain he had suffered as prisoner until
38335after they were over. After his liberation he reached Orel, and on the
38336third day there, when preparing to go to Kiev, he fell ill and was
38337laid up for three months. He had what the doctors termed "bilious
38338fever." But despite the fact that the doctors treated him, bled him,
38339and gave him medicines to drink, he recovered.
38340
38341Scarcely any impression was left on Pierre's mind by all that
38342happened to him from the time of his rescue till his illness. He
38343remembered only the dull gray weather now rainy and now snowy,
38344internal physical distress, and pains in his feet and side. He
38345remembered a general impression of the misfortunes and sufferings of
38346people and of being worried by the curiosity of officers and
38347generals who questioned him, he also remembered his difficulty in
38348procuring a conveyance and horses, and above all he remembered his
38349incapacity to think and feel all that time. On the day of his rescue
38350he had seen the body of Petya Rostov. That same day he had learned
38351that Prince Andrew, after surviving the battle of Borodino for more
38352than a month had recently died in the Rostovs' house at Yaroslavl, and
38353Denisov who told him this news also mentioned Helene's death,
38354supposing that Pierre had heard of it long before. All this at the
38355time seemed merely strange to Pierre: he felt he could not grasp its
38356significance. Just then he was only anxious to get away as quickly
38357as possible from places where people were killing one another, to some
38358peaceful refuge where he could recover himself, rest, and think over
38359all the strange new facts he had learned; but on reaching Orel he
38360immediately fell ill. When he came to himself after his illness he saw
38361in attendance on him two of his servants, Terenty and Vaska, who had
38362come from Moscow; and also his cousin the eldest princess, who had
38363been living on his estate at Elets and hearing of his rescue and
38364illness had come to look after him.
38365
38366It was only gradually during his convalescence that Pierre lost
38367the impressions he had become accustomed to during the last few months
38368and got used to the idea that no one would oblige him to go anywhere
38369tomorrow, that no one would deprive him of his warm bed, and that he
38370would be sure to get his dinner, tea, and supper. But for a long
38371time in his dreams he still saw himself in the conditions of
38372captivity. In the same way little by little he came to understand
38373the news he had been told after his rescue, about the death of
38374Prince Andrew, the death of his wife, and the destruction of the
38375French.
38376
38377A joyous feeling of freedom--that complete inalienable freedom
38378natural to man which he had first experienced at the first halt
38379outside Moscow--filled Pierre's soul during his convalescence. He
38380was surprised to find that this inner freedom, which was independent
38381of external conditions, now had as it were an additional setting of
38382external liberty. He was alone in a strange town, without
38383acquaintances. No one demanded anything of him or sent him anywhere.
38384He had all he wanted: the thought of his wife which had been a
38385continual torment to him was no longer there, since she was no more.
38386
38387"Oh, how good! How splendid!" said he to himself when a cleanly laid
38388table was moved up to him with savory beef tea, or when he lay down
38389for the night on a soft clean bed, or when he remembered that the
38390French had gone and that his wife was no more. "Oh, how good, how
38391splendid!"
38392
38393And by old habit he asked himself the question: "Well, and what
38394then? What am I going to do?" And he immediately gave himself the
38395answer: "Well, I shall live. Ah, how splendid!"
38396
38397The very question that had formerly tormented him, the thing he
38398had continually sought to find--the aim of life--no longer existed for
38399him now. That search for the aim of life had not merely disappeared
38400temporarily--he felt that it no longer existed for him and could not
38401present itself again. And this very absence of an aim gave him the
38402complete, joyous sense of freedom which constituted his happiness at
38403this time.
38404
38405He could not see an aim, for he now had faith--not faith in any kind
38406of rule, or words, or ideas, but faith in an ever-living,
38407ever-manifest God. Formerly he had sought Him in aims he set
38408himself. That search for an aim had been simply a search for God,
38409and suddenly in his captivity he had learned not by words or reasoning
38410but by direct feeling what his nurse had told him long ago: that God
38411is here and everywhere. In his captivity he had learned that in
38412Karataev God was greater, more infinite and unfathomable than in the
38413Architect of the Universe recognized by the Freemasons. He felt like a
38414man who after straining his eyes to see into the far distance finds
38415what he sought at his very feet. All his life he had looked over the
38416heads of the men around him, when he should have merely looked in
38417front of him without straining his eyes.
38418
38419In the past he had never been able to find that great inscrutable
38420infinite something. He had only felt that it must exist somewhere
38421and had looked for it. In everything near and comprehensible he had
38422only what was limited, petty, commonplace, and senseless. He had
38423equipped himself with a mental telescope and looked into remote space,
38424where petty worldliness hiding itself in misty distance had seemed
38425to him great and infinite merely because it was not clearly seen.
38426And such had European life, politics, Freemasonry, philosophy, and
38427philanthropy seemed to him. But even then, at moments of weakness as
38428he had accounted them, his mind had penetrated to those distances
38429and he had there seen the same pettiness, worldliness, and
38430senselessness. Now, however, he had learned to see the great, eternal,
38431and infinite in everything, and therefore--to see it and enjoy its
38432contemplation--he naturally threw away the telescope through which
38433he had till now gazed over men's heads, and gladly regarded the
38434ever-changing, eternally great, unfathomable, and infinite life around
38435him. And the closer he looked the more tranquil and happy he became.
38436That dreadful question, "What for?" which had formerly destroyed all
38437his mental edifices, no longer existed for him. To that question,
38438"What for?" a simple answer was now always ready in his soul: "Because
38439there is a God, that God without whose will not one hair falls from
38440a man's head."
38441
38442
38443
38444
38445
38446CHAPTER XIII
38447
38448
38449In external ways Pierre had hardly changed at all. In appearance
38450he was just what he used to be. As before he was absent-minded and
38451seemed occupied not with what was before his eyes but with something
38452special of his own. The difference between his former and present self
38453was that formerly when he did not grasp what lay before him or was
38454said to him, he had puckered his forehead painfully as if vainly
38455seeking to distinguish something at a distance. At present he still
38456forgot what was said to him and still did not see what was before
38457his eyes, but he now looked with a scarcely perceptible and
38458seemingly ironic smile at what was before him and listened to what was
38459said, though evidently seeing and hearing something quite different.
38460Formerly he had appeared to be a kindhearted but unhappy man, and so
38461people had been inclined to avoid him. Now a smile at the joy of
38462life always played round his lips, and sympathy for others, shone in
38463his eyes with a questioning look as to whether they were as
38464contented as he was, and people felt pleased by his presence.
38465
38466Previously he had talked a great deal, grew excited when he
38467talked, and seldom listened; now he was seldom carried away in
38468conversation and knew how to listen so that people readily told him
38469their most intimate secrets.
38470
38471The princess, who had never liked Pierre and had been particularly
38472hostile to him since she had felt herself under obligations to him
38473after the old count's death, now after staying a short time in Orel-
38474where she had come intending to show Pierre that in spite of his
38475ingratitude she considered it her duty to nurse him--felt to her
38476surprise and vexation that she had become fond of him. Pierre did
38477not in any way seek her approval, he merely studied her with interest.
38478Formerly she had felt that he regarded her with indifference and
38479irony, and so had shrunk into herself as she did with others and had
38480shown him only the combative side of her nature; but now he seemed
38481to be trying to understand the most intimate places of her heart, and,
38482mistrustfully at first but afterwards gratefully, she let him see
38483the hidden, kindly sides of her character.
38484
38485The most cunning man could not have crept into her confidence more
38486successfully, evoking memories of the best times of her youth and
38487showing sympathy with them. Yet Pierre's cunning consisted simply in
38488finding pleasure in drawing out the human qualities of the embittered,
38489hard, and (in her own way) proud princess.
38490
38491"Yes, he is a very, very kind man when he is not under the influence
38492of bad people but of people such as myself," thought she.
38493
38494His servants too--Terenty and Vaska--in their own way noticed the
38495change that had taken place in Pierre. They considered that he had
38496become much "simpler." Terenty, when he had helped him undress and
38497wished him good night, often lingered with his master's boots in his
38498hands and clothes over his arm, to see whether he would not start a
38499talk. And Pierre, noticing that Terenty wanted a chat, generally
38500kept him there.
38501
38502"Well, tell me... now, how did you get food?" he would ask.
38503
38504And Terenty would begin talking of the destruction of Moscow, and of
38505the old count, and would stand for a long time holding the clothes and
38506talking, or sometimes listening to Pierre's stories, and then would go
38507out into the hall with a pleasant sense of intimacy with his master
38508and affection for him.
38509
38510The doctor who attended Pierre and visited him every day, though
38511he considered it his duty as a doctor to pose as a man whose every
38512moment was of value to suffering humanity, would sit for hours with
38513Pierre telling him his favorite anecdotes and his observations on
38514the characters of his patients in general, and especially of the
38515ladies.
38516
38517"It's a pleasure to talk to a man like that; he is not like our
38518provincials," he would say.
38519
38520There were several prisoners from the French army in Orel, and the
38521doctor brought one of them, a young Italian, to see Pierre.
38522
38523This officer began visiting Pierre, and the princess used to make
38524fun of the tenderness the Italian expressed for him.
38525
38526The Italian seemed happy only when he could come to see Pierre, talk
38527with him, tell him about his past, his life at home, and his love, and
38528pour out to him his indignation against the French and especially
38529against Napoleon.
38530
38531"If all Russians are in the least like you, it is sacrilege to fight
38532such a nation," he said to Pierre. "You, who have suffered so from the
38533French, do not even feel animosity toward them."
38534
38535Pierre had evoked the passionate affection of the Italian merely
38536by evoking the best side of his nature and taking a pleasure in so
38537doing.
38538
38539During the last days of Pierre's stay in Orel his old Masonic
38540acquaintance Count Willarski, who had introduced him to the lodge in
385411807, came to see him. Willarski was married to a Russian heiress
38542who had a large estate in Orel province, and he occupied a temporary
38543post in the commissariat department in that town.
38544
38545Hearing that Bezukhov was in Orel, Willarski, though they had
38546never been intimate, came to him with the professions of friendship
38547and intimacy that people who meet in a desert generally express for
38548one another. Willarski felt dull in Orel and was pleased to meet a man
38549of his own circle and, as he supposed, of similar interests.
38550
38551But to his surprise Willarski soon noticed that Pierre had lagged
38552much behind the times, and had sunk, as he expressed it to himself,
38553into apathy and egotism.
38554
38555"You are letting yourself go, my dear fellow," he said.
38556
38557But for all that Willarski found it pleasanter now than it had
38558been formerly to be with Pierre, and came to see him every day. To
38559Pierre as he looked at and listened to Willarski, it seemed strange to
38560think that he had been like that himself but a short time before.
38561
38562Willarski was a married man with a family, busy with his family
38563affairs, his wife's affairs, and his official duties. He regarded
38564all these occupations as hindrances to life, and considered that
38565they were all contemptible because their aim was the welfare of
38566himself and his family. Military, administrative, political, and
38567Masonic interests continually absorbed his attention. And Pierre,
38568without trying to change the other's views and without condemning him,
38569but with the quiet, joyful, and amused smile now habitual to him,
38570was interested in this strange though very familiar phenomenon.
38571
38572There was a new feature in Pierre's relations with Willarski, with
38573the princess, with the doctor, and with all the people he now met,
38574which gained for him the general good will. This was his
38575acknowledgment of the impossibility of changing a man's convictions by
38576words, and his recognition of the possibility of everyone thinking,
38577feeling, and seeing things each from his own point of view. This
38578legitimate peculiarity of each individual which used to excite and
38579irritate Pierre now became a basis of the sympathy he felt for, and
38580the interest he took in, other people. The difference, and sometimes
38581complete contradiction, between men's opinions and their lives, and
38582between one man and another, pleased him and drew from him an amused
38583and gentle smile.
38584
38585In practical matters Pierre unexpectedly felt within himself a
38586center of gravity he had previously lacked. Formerly all pecuniary
38587questions, especially requests for money to which, as an extremely
38588wealthy man, he was very exposed, produced in him a state of
38589hopeless agitation and perplexity. "To give or not to give?" he had
38590asked himself. "I have it and he needs it. But someone else needs it
38591still more. Who needs it most? And perhaps they are both impostors?"
38592In the old days he had been unable to find a way out of all these
38593surmises and had given to all who asked as long as he had anything
38594to give. Formerly he had been in a similar state of perplexity with
38595regard to every question concerning his property, when one person
38596advised one thing and another something else.
38597
38598Now to his surprise he found that he no longer felt either doubt
38599or perplexity about these questions. There was now within him a
38600judge who by some rule unknown to him decided what should or should
38601not be done.
38602
38603He was as indifferent as heretofore to money matters, but now he
38604felt certain of what ought and what ought not to be done. The first
38605time he had recourse to his new judge was when a French prisoner, a
38606colonel, came to him and, after talking a great deal about his
38607exploits, concluded by making what amounted to a demand that Pierre
38608should give him four thousand francs to send to his wife and children.
38609Pierre refused without the least difficulty or effort, and was
38610afterwards surprised how simple and easy had been what used to
38611appear so insurmountably difficult. At the same time that he refused
38612the colonel's demand he made up his mind that he must have recourse to
38613artifice when leaving Orel, to induce the Italian officer to accept
38614some money of which he was evidently in need. A further proof to
38615Pierre of his own more settled outlook on practical matters was
38616furnished by his decision with regard to his wife's debts and to the
38617rebuilding of his houses in and near Moscow.
38618
38619His head steward came to him at Orel and Pierre reckoned up with him
38620his diminished income. The burning of Moscow had cost him, according
38621to the head steward's calculation, about two million rubles.
38622
38623To console Pierre for these losses the head steward gave him an
38624estimate showing that despite these losses his income would not be
38625diminished but would even be increased if he refused to pay his wife's
38626debts which he was under no obligation to meet, and did not rebuild
38627his Moscow house and the country house on his Moscow estate, which had
38628cost him eighty thousand rubles a year and brought in nothing.
38629
38630"Yes, of course that's true," said Pierre with a cheerful smile.
38631"I don't need all that at all. By being ruined I have become much
38632richer."
38633
38634But in January Savelich came from Moscow and gave him an account
38635of the state of things there, and spoke of the estimate an architect
38636had made of the cost of rebuilding the town and country houses,
38637speaking of this as of a settled matter. About the same time he
38638received letters from Prince Vasili and other Petersburg acquaintances
38639speaking of his wife's debts. And Pierre decided that the steward's
38640proposals which had so pleased him were wrong and that he must go to
38641Petersburg and settle his wife's affairs and must rebuild in Moscow.
38642Why this was necessary he did not know, but he knew for certain that
38643it was necessary. His income would be reduced by three fourths, but he
38644felt it must be done.
38645
38646Willarski was going to Moscow and they agreed to travel together.
38647
38648During the whole time of his convalescence in Orel Pierre had
38649experienced a feeling of joy, freedom, and life; but when during his
38650journey he found himself in the open world and saw hundreds of new
38651faces, that feeling was intensified. Throughout his journey he felt
38652like a schoolboy on holiday. Everyone--the stagecoach driver, the
38653post-house overseers, the peasants on the roads and in the villages-
38654had a new significance for him. The presence and remarks of
38655Willarski who continually deplored the ignorance and poverty of Russia
38656and its backwardness compared with Europe only heightened Pierre's
38657pleasure. Where Willarski saw deadness Pierre saw an extraordinary
38658strength and vitality--the strength which in that vast space amid
38659the snows maintained the life of this original, peculiar, and unique
38660people. He did not contradict Willarski and even seemed to agree
38661with him--an apparent agreement being the simplest way to avoid
38662discussions that could lead to nothing--and he smiled joyfully as he
38663listened to him.
38664
38665
38666
38667
38668
38669CHAPTER XIV
38670
38671
38672It would be difficult to explain why and whither ants whose heap has
38673been destroyed are hurrying: some from the heap dragging bits of
38674rubbish, larvae, and corpses, others back to the heap, or why they
38675jostle, overtake one another, and fight, and it would be equally
38676difficult to explain what caused the Russians after the departure of
38677the French to throng to the place that had formerly been Moscow. But
38678when we watch the ants round their ruined heap, the tenacity,
38679energy, and immense number of the delving insects prove that despite
38680the destruction of the heap, something indestructible, which though
38681intangible is the real strength of the colony, still exists; and
38682similarly, though in Moscow in the month of October there was no
38683government no churches, shrines, riches, or houses--it was still the
38684Moscow it had been in August. All was destroyed, except something
38685intangible yet powerful and indestructible.
38686
38687The motives of those who thronged from all sides to Moscow after
38688it had been cleared of the enemy were most diverse and personal, and
38689at first for the most part savage and brutal. One motive only they all
38690had in common: a desire to get to the place that had been called
38691Moscow, to apply their activities there.
38692
38693Within a week Moscow already had fifteen thousand inhabitants, in
38694a fortnight twenty-five thousand, and so on. By the autumn of 1813 the
38695number, ever increasing and increasing, exceeded what it had been in
386961812.
38697
38698The first Russians to enter Moscow were the Cossacks of
38699Wintzingerode's detachment, peasants from the adjacent villages, and
38700residents who had fled from Moscow and had been hiding in its
38701vicinity. The Russians who entered Moscow, finding it plundered,
38702plundered it in their turn. They continued what the French had
38703begun. Trains of peasant carts came to Moscow to carry off to the
38704villages what had been abandoned in the ruined houses and the streets.
38705The Cossacks carried off what they could to their camps, and the
38706householders seized all they could find in other houses and moved it
38707to their own, pretending that it was their property.
38708
38709But the first plunderers were followed by a second and a third
38710contingent, and with increasing numbers plundering became more and
38711more difficult and assumed more definite forms.
38712
38713The French found Moscow abandoned but with all the organizations
38714of regular life, with diverse branches of commerce and
38715craftsmanship, with luxury, and governmental and religious
38716institutions. These forms were lifeless but still existed. There
38717were bazaars, shops, warehouses, market stalls, granaries--for the
38718most part still stocked with goods--and there were factories and
38719workshops, palaces and wealthy houses filled with luxuries, hospitals,
38720prisons, government offices, churches, and cathedrals. The longer
38721the French remained the more these forms of town life perished,
38722until finally all was merged into one confused, lifeless scene of
38723plunder.
38724
38725The more the plundering by the French continued, the more both the
38726wealth of Moscow and the strength of its plunderers was destroyed. But
38727plundering by the Russians, with which the reoccupation of the city
38728began, had an opposite effect: the longer it continued and the greater
38729the number of people taking part in it the more rapidly was the wealth
38730of the city and its regular life restored.
38731
38732Besides the plunderers, very various people, some drawn by
38733curiosity, some by official duties, some by self-interest--house
38734owners, clergy, officials of all kinds, tradesmen, artisans, and
38735peasants--streamed into Moscow as blood flows to the heart.
38736
38737Within a week the peasants who came with empty carts to carry off
38738plunder were stopped by the authorities and made to cart the corpses
38739out of the town. Other peasants, having heard of their comrades'
38740discomfiture, came to town bringing rye, oats, and hay, and beat
38741down one another's prices to below what they had been in former
38742days. Gangs of carpenters hoping for high pay arrived in Moscow
38743every day, and on all sides logs were being hewn, new houses built,
38744and old, charred ones repaired. Tradesmen began trading in booths.
38745Cookshops and taverns were opened in partially burned houses. The
38746clergy resumed the services in many churches that had not been burned.
38747Donors contributed Church property that had been stolen. Government
38748clerks set up their baize-covered tables and their pigeonholes of
38749documents in small rooms. The higher authorities and the police
38750organized the distribution of goods left behind by the French. The
38751owners of houses in which much property had been left, brought there
38752from other houses, complained of the injustice of taking everything to
38753the Faceted Palace in the Kremlin; others insisted that as the
38754French had gathered things from different houses into this or that
38755house, it would be unfair to allow its owner to keep all that was
38756found there. They abused the police and bribed them, made out
38757estimates at ten times their value for government stores that had
38758perished in the fire, and demanded relief. And Count Rostopchin
38759wrote proclamations.
38760
38761
38762
38763
38764
38765CHAPTER XV
38766
38767
38768At the end of January Pierre went to Moscow and stayed in an annex
38769of his house which had not been burned. He called on Count
38770Rostopchin and on some acquaintances who were back in Moscow, and he
38771intended to leave for Petersburg two days later. Everybody was
38772celebrating the victory, everything was bubbling with life in the
38773ruined but reviving city. Everyone was pleased to see Pierre, everyone
38774wished to meet him, and everyone questioned him about what he had
38775seen. Pierre felt particularly well disposed toward them all, but
38776was now instinctively on his guard for fear of binding himself in
38777any way. To all questions put to him--whether important or quite
38778trifling--such as: Where would he live? Was he going to rebuild?
38779When was he going to Petersburg and would he mind taking a parcel
38780for someone?--he replied: "Yes, perhaps," or, "I think so," and so on.
38781
38782He had heard that the Rostovs were at Kostroma but the thought of
38783Natasha seldom occurred to him. If it did it was only as a pleasant
38784memory of the distant past. He felt himself not only free from
38785social obligations but also from that feeling which, it seemed to him,
38786he had aroused in himself.
38787
38788On the third day after his arrival he heard from the Drubetskoys
38789that Princess Mary was in Moscow. The death, sufferings, and last days
38790of Prince Andrew had often occupied Pierre's thoughts and now recurred
38791to him with fresh vividness. Having heard at dinner that Princess Mary
38792was in Moscow and living in her house--which had not been burned--in
38793Vozdvizhenka Street, he drove that same evening to see her.
38794
38795On his way to the house Pierre kept thinking of Prince Andrew, of
38796their friendship, of his various meetings with him, and especially
38797of the last one at Borodino.
38798
38799"Is it possible that he died in the bitter frame of mind he was then
38800in? Is it possible that the meaning of life was not disclosed to him
38801before he died?" thought Pierre. He recalled Karataev and his death
38802and involuntarily began to compare these two men, so different, and
38803yet so similar in that they had both lived and both died and in the
38804love he felt for both of them.
38805
38806Pierre drove up to the house of the old prince in a most serious
38807mood. The house had escaped the fire; it showed signs of damage but
38808its general aspect was unchanged. The old footman, who met Pierre with
38809a stern face as if wishing to make the visitor feel that the absence
38810of the old prince had not disturbed the order of things in the
38811house, informed him that the princess had gone to her own
38812apartments, and that she received on Sundays.
38813
38814"Announce me. Perhaps she will see me," said Pierre.
38815
38816"Yes, sir," said the man. "Please step into the portrait gallery."
38817
38818A few minutes later the footman returned with Dessalles, who brought
38819word from the princess that she would be very glad to see Pierre if he
38820would excuse her want of ceremony and come upstairs to her apartment.
38821
38822In a rather low room lit by one candle sat the princess and with her
38823another person dressed in black. Pierre remembered that the princess
38824always had lady companions, but who they were and what they were
38825like he never knew or remembered. "This must be one of her
38826companions," he thought, glancing at the lady in the black dress.
38827
38828The princess rose quickly to meet him and held out her hand.
38829
38830"Yes," she said, looking at his altered face after he had kissed her
38831hand, "so this is how we meet again. He spoke of you even at the
38832very last," she went on, turning her eyes from Pierre to her companion
38833with a shyness that surprised him for an instant.
38834
38835"I was so glad to hear of your safety. It was the first piece of
38836good news we had received for a long time."
38837
38838Again the princess glanced round at her companion with even more
38839uneasiness in her manner and was about to add something, but Pierre
38840interrupted her.
38841
38842"Just imagine--I knew nothing about him!" said he. "I thought he had
38843been killed. All I know I heard at second hand from others. I only
38844know that he fell in with the Rostovs.... What a strange coincidence!"
38845
38846Pierre spoke rapidly and with animation. He glanced once at the
38847companion's face, saw her attentive and kindly gaze fixed on him, and,
38848as often happens when one is talking, felt somehow that this companion
38849in the black dress was a good, kind, excellent creature who would
38850not hinder his conversing freely with Princess Mary.
38851
38852But when he mentioned the Rostovs, Princess Mary's face expressed
38853still greater embarrassment. She again glanced rapidly from Pierre's
38854face to that of the lady in the black dress and said:
38855
38856"Do you really not recognize her?"
38857
38858Pierre looked again at the companion's pale, delicate face with
38859its black eyes and peculiar mouth, and something near to him, long
38860forgotten and more than sweet, looked at him from those attentive
38861eyes.
38862
38863"But no, it can't be!" he thought. "This stern, thin, pale face that
38864looks so much older! It cannot be she. It merely reminds me of her."
38865But at that moment Princess Mary said, "Natasha!" And with difficulty,
38866effort, and stress, like the opening of a door grown rusty on its
38867hinges, a smile appeared on the face with the attentive eyes, and from
38868that opening door came a breath of fragrance which suffused Pierre
38869with a happiness he had long forgotten and of which he had not even
38870been thinking--especially at that moment. It suffused him, seized him,
38871and enveloped him completely. When she smiled doubt was no longer
38872possible, it was Natasha and he loved her.
38873
38874At that moment Pierre involuntarily betrayed to her, to Princess
38875Mary, and above all to himself, a secret of which he himself had
38876been unaware. He flushed joyfully yet with painful distress. He
38877tried to hide his agitation. But the more he tried to hide it the more
38878clearly--clearer than any words could have done--did he betray to
38879himself, to her, and to Princess Mary that he loved her.
38880
38881"No, it's only the unexpectedness of it," thought Pierre. But as
38882soon as he tried to continue the conversation he had begun with
38883Princess Mary he again glanced at Natasha, and a still-deeper flush
38884suffused his face and a still-stronger agitation of mingled joy and
38885fear seized his soul. He became confused in his speech and stopped
38886in the middle of what he was saying.
38887
38888Pierre had failed to notice Natasha because he did not at all expect
38889to see her there, but he had failed to recognize her because the
38890change in her since he last saw her was immense. She had grown thin
38891and pale, but that was not what made her unrecognizable; she was
38892unrecognizable at the moment he entered because on that face whose
38893eyes had always shone with a suppressed smile of the joy of life,
38894now when he first entered and glanced at her there was not the least
38895shadow of a smile: only her eyes were kindly attentive and sadly
38896interrogative.
38897
38898Pierre's confusion was not reflected by any confusion on Natasha's
38899part, but only by the pleasure that just perceptibly lit up her
38900whole face.
38901
38902
38903
38904
38905
38906CHAPTER XVI
38907
38908
38909"She has come to stay with me," said Princess Mary. "The count and
38910countess will be here in a few days. The countess is in a dreadful
38911state; but it was necessary for Natasha herself to see a doctor.
38912They insisted on her coming with me."
38913
38914"Yes, is there a family free from sorrow now?" said Pierre,
38915addressing Natasha. "You know it happened the very day we were
38916rescued. I saw him. What a delightful boy he was!"
38917
38918Natasha looked at him, and by way of answer to his words her eyes
38919widened and lit up.
38920
38921"What can one say or think of as a consolation?" said Pierre.
38922"Nothing! Why had such a splendid boy, so full of life, to die?"
38923
38924"Yes, in these days it would be hard to live without faith..."
38925remarked Princess Mary.
38926
38927"Yes, yes, that is really true," Pierre hastily interrupted her.
38928
38929"Why is it true?" Natasha asked, looking attentively into Pierre's
38930eyes.
38931
38932"How can you ask why?" said Princess Mary. "The thought alone of
38933what awaits..."
38934
38935Natasha without waiting for Princess Mary to finish again looked
38936inquiringly at Pierre.
38937
38938"And because," Pierre continued, "only one who believes that there
38939is a God ruling us can bear a loss such as hers and... yours."
38940
38941Natasha had already opened her mouth to speak but suddenly
38942stopped. Pierre hurriedly turned away from her and again addressed
38943Princess Mary, asking about his friend's last days.
38944
38945Pierre's confusion had now almost vanished, but at the same time
38946he felt that his freedom had also completely gone. He felt that
38947there was now a judge of his every word and action whose judgment
38948mattered more to him than that of all the rest of the world. As he
38949spoke now he was considering what impression his words would make on
38950Natasha. He did not purposely say things to please her, but whatever
38951he was saying he regarded from her standpoint.
38952
38953Princess Mary--reluctantly as is usual in such cases--began
38954telling of the condition in which she had found Prince Andrew. But
38955Pierre's face quivering with emotion, his questions and his eager
38956restless expression, gradually compelled her to go into details
38957which she feared to recall for her own sake.
38958
38959"Yes, yes, and so...?" Pierre kept saying as he leaned toward her
38960with his whole body and eagerly listened to her story. "Yes, yes... so
38961he grew tranquil and softened? With all his soul he had always
38962sought one thing--to be perfectly good--so he could not be afraid of
38963death. The faults he had--if he had any--were not of his making. So he
38964did soften?... What a happy thing that he saw you again," he added,
38965suddenly turning to Natasha and looking at her with eyes full of
38966tears.
38967
38968Natasha's face twitched. She frowned and lowered her eyes for a
38969moment. She hesitated for an instant whether to speak or not.
38970
38971"Yes, that was happiness," she then said in her quiet voice with its
38972deep chest notes. "For me it certainly was happiness." She paused.
38973"And he... he... he said he was wishing for it at the very moment I
38974entered the room...."
38975
38976Natasha's voice broke. She blushed, pressed her clasped hands on her
38977knees, and then controlling herself with an evident effort lifted
38978her head and began to speak rapidly.
38979
38980"We knew nothing of it when we started from Moscow. I did not dare
38981to ask about him. Then suddenly Sonya told me he was traveling with
38982us. I had no idea and could not imagine what state he was in, all I
38983wanted was to see him and be with him," she said, trembling, and
38984breathing quickly.
38985
38986And not letting them interrupt her she went on to tell what she
38987had never yet mentioned to anyone--all she had lived through during
38988those three weeks of their journey and life at Yaroslavl.
38989
38990Pierre listened to her with lips parted and eyes fixed upon her full
38991of tears. As he listened he did not think of Prince Andrew, nor of
38992death, nor of what she was telling. He listened to her and felt only
38993pity for her, for what she was suffering now while she was speaking.
38994
38995Princess Mary, frowning in her effort to hold back her tears, sat
38996beside Natasha, and heard for the first time the story of those last
38997days of her brother's and Natasha's love.
38998
38999Evidently Natasha needed to tell that painful yet joyful tale.
39000
39001She spoke, mingling most trifling details with the intimate
39002secrets of her soul, and it seemed as if she could never finish.
39003Several times she repeated the same thing twice.
39004
39005Dessalles' voice was heard outside the door asking whether little
39006Nicholas might come in to say good night.
39007
39008"Well, that's all--everything," said Natasha.
39009
39010She got up quickly just as Nicholas entered, almost ran to the
39011door which was hidden by curtains, struck her head against it, and
39012rushed from the room with a moan either of pain or sorrow.
39013
39014Pierre gazed at the door through which she had disappeared and did
39015not understand why he suddenly felt all alone in the world.
39016
39017Princess Mary roused him from his abstraction by drawing his
39018attention to her nephew who had entered the room.
39019
39020At that moment of emotional tenderness young Nicholas' face, which
39021resembled his father's, affected Pierre so much that when he had
39022kissed the boy he got up quickly, took out his handkerchief, and
39023went to the window. He wished to take leave of Princess Mary, but
39024she would not let him go.
39025
39026"No, Natasha and I sometimes don't go to sleep till after two, so
39027please don't go. I will order supper. Go downstairs, we will come
39028immediately."
39029
39030Before Pierre left the room Princess Mary told him: "This is the
39031first time she has talked of him like that."
39032
39033
39034
39035
39036
39037CHAPTER XVII
39038
39039
39040Pierre was shown into the large, brightly lit dining room; a few
39041minutes later he heard footsteps and Princess Mary entered with
39042Natasha. Natasha was calm, though a severe and grave expression had
39043again settled on her face. They all three of them now experienced that
39044feeling of awkwardness which usually follows after a serious and
39045heartfelt talk. It is impossible to go back to the same
39046conversation, to talk of trifles is awkward, and yet the desire to
39047speak is there and silence seems like affectation. They went
39048silently to table. The footmen drew back the chairs and pushed them up
39049again. Pierre unfolded his cold table napkin and, resolving to break
39050the silence, looked at Natasha and at Princess Mary. They had
39051evidently both formed the same resolution; the eyes of both shone with
39052satisfaction and a confession that besides sorrow life also has joy.
39053
39054"Do you take vodka, Count?" asked Princess Mary, and those words
39055suddenly banished the shadows of the past. "Now tell us about
39056yourself," said she. "One hears such improbable wonders about you."
39057
39058"Yes," replied Pierre with the smile of mild irony now habitual to
39059him. "They even tell me wonders I myself never dreamed of! Mary
39060Abramovna invited me to her house and kept telling me what had
39061happened, or ought to have happened, to me. Stepan Stepanych also
39062instructed me how I ought to tell of my experiences. In general I have
39063noticed that it is very easy to be an interesting man (I am an
39064interesting man now); people invite me out and tell me all about
39065myself."
39066
39067Natasha smiled and was on the point of speaking.
39068
39069"We have been told," Princess Mary interrupted her, "that you lost
39070two millions in Moscow. Is that true?"
39071
39072"But I am three times as rich as before," returned Pierre.
39073
39074Though the position was now altered by his decision to pay his
39075wife's debts and to rebuild his houses, Pierre still maintained that
39076he had become three times as rich as before.
39077
39078"What I have certainly gained is freedom," he began seriously, but
39079did not continue, noticing that this theme was too egotistic.
39080
39081"And are you building?"
39082
39083"Yes. Savelich says I must!"
39084
39085"Tell me, you did not know of the countess' death when you decided
39086to remain in Moscow?" asked Princess Mary and immediately blushed,
39087noticing that her question, following his mention of freedom, ascribed
39088to his words a meaning he had perhaps not intended.
39089
39090"No," answered Pierre, evidently not considering awkward the meaning
39091Princess Mary had given to his words. "I heard of it in Orel and you
39092cannot imagine how it shocked me. We were not an exemplary couple," he
39093added quickly, glancing at Natasha and noticing on her face
39094curiosity as to how he would speak of his wife, "but her death shocked
39095me terribly. When two people quarrel they are always both in fault,
39096and one's own guilt suddenly becomes terribly serious when the other
39097is no longer alive. And then such a death... without friends and
39098without consolation! I am very, very sorry for her," he concluded, and
39099was pleased to notice a look of glad approval on Natasha's face.
39100
39101"Yes, and so you are once more an eligible bachelor," said
39102Princess Mary.
39103
39104Pierre suddenly flushed crimson and for a long time tried not to
39105look at Natasha. When he ventured to glance her way again her face was
39106cold, stern, and he fancied even contemptuous.
39107
39108"And did you really see and speak to Napoleon, as we have been
39109told?" said Princess Mary.
39110
39111Pierre laughed.
39112
39113"No, not once! Everybody seems to imagine that being taken
39114prisoner means being Napoleon's guest. Not only did I never see him
39115but I heard nothing about him--I was in much lower company!"
39116
39117Supper was over, and Pierre who at first declined to speak about his
39118captivity was gradually led on to do so.
39119
39120"But it's true that you remained in Moscow to kill Napoleon?"
39121Natasha asked with a slight smile. "I guessed it then when we met at
39122the Sukharev tower, do you remember?"
39123
39124Pierre admitted that it was true, and from that was gradually led by
39125Princess Mary's questions and especially by Natasha's into giving a
39126detailed account of his adventures.
39127
39128At first he spoke with the amused and mild irony now customary
39129with him toward everybody and especially toward himself, but when he
39130came to describe the horrors and sufferings he had witnessed he was
39131unconsciously carried away and began speaking with the suppressed
39132emotion of a man re-experiencing in recollection strong impressions he
39133has lived through.
39134
39135Princess Mary with a gentle smile looked now at Pierre and now at
39136Natasha. In the whole narrative she saw only Pierre and his
39137goodness. Natasha, leaning on her elbow, the expression of her face
39138constantly changing with the narrative, watched Pierre with an
39139attention that never wandered--evidently herself experiencing all that
39140he described. Not only her look, but her exclamations and the brief
39141questions she put, showed Pierre that she understood just what he
39142wished to convey. It was clear that she understood not only what he
39143said but also what he wished to, but could not, express in words.
39144The account Pierre gave of the incident with the child and the woman
39145for protecting whom he was arrested was this: "It was an awful
39146sight--children abandoned, some in the flames... One was snatched
39147out before my eyes... and there were women who had their things
39148snatched off and their earrings torn out..." he flushed and grew
39149confused. "Then a patrol arrived and all the men--all those who were
39150
39151not looting, that is--were arrested, and I among them."
39152
39153"I am sure you're not telling us everything; I am sure you did
39154something..." said Natasha and pausing added, "something fine?"
39155
39156Pierre continued. When he spoke of the execution he wanted to pass
39157over the horrible details, but Natasha insisted that he should not
39158omit anything.
39159
39160Pierre began to tell about Karataev, but paused. By this time he had
39161risen from the table and was pacing the room, Natasha following him
39162with her eyes. Then he added:
39163
39164"No, you can't understand what I learned from that illiterate man-
39165that simple fellow."
39166
39167"Yes, yes, go on!" said Natasha. "Where is he?"
39168
39169"They killed him almost before my eyes."
39170
39171And Pierre, his voice trembling continually, went on to tell of
39172the last days of their retreat, of Karataev's illness and his death.
39173
39174He told of his adventures as he had never yet recalled them. He now,
39175as it were, saw a new meaning in all he had gone through. Now that
39176he was telling it all to Natasha he experienced that pleasure which
39177a man has when women listen to him--not clever women who when
39178listening either try to remember what they hear to enrich their
39179minds and when opportunity offers to retell it, or who wish to adopt
39180it to some thought of their own and promptly contribute their own
39181clever comments prepared in their little mental workshop--but the
39182pleasure given by real women gifted with a capacity to select and
39183absorb the very best a man shows of himself. Natasha without knowing
39184it was all attention: she did not lose a word, no single quiver in
39185Pierre's voice, no look, no twitch of a muscle in his face, nor a
39186single gesture. She caught the unfinished word in its flight and
39187took it straight into her open heart, divining the secret meaning of
39188all Pierre's mental travail.
39189
39190Princess Mary understood his story and sympathized with him, but she
39191now saw something else that absorbed all her attention. She saw the
39192possibility of love and happiness between Natasha and Pierre, and
39193the first thought of this filled her heart with gladness.
39194
39195It was three o'clock in the morning. The footmen came in with sad
39196and stern faces to change the candles, but no one noticed them.
39197
39198Pierre finished his story. Natasha continued to look at him intently
39199with bright, attentive, and animated eyes, as if trying to
39200understand something more which he had perhaps left untold. Pierre
39201in shamefaced and happy confusion glanced occasionally at her, and
39202tried to think what to say next to introduce a fresh subject. Princess
39203Mary was silent. It occurred to none of them that it was three o'clock
39204and time to go to bed.
39205
39206"People speak of misfortunes and sufferings," remarked Pierre,
39207"but if at this moment I were asked: 'Would you rather be what you
39208were before you were taken prisoner, or go through all this again?'
39209then for heaven's sake let me again have captivity and horseflesh!
39210We imagine that when we are thrown out of our usual ruts all is
39211lost, but it is only then that what is new and good begins. While
39212there is life there is happiness. There is much, much before us. I say
39213this to you," he added, turning to Natasha.
39214
39215"Yes, yes," she said, answering something quite different. "I too
39216should wish nothing but to relive it all from the beginning."
39217
39218Pierre looked intently at her.
39219
39220"Yes, and nothing more." said Natasha.
39221
39222"It's not true, not true!" cried Pierre. "I am not to blame for
39223being alive and wishing to live--nor you either."
39224
39225Suddenly Natasha bent her head, covered her face with her hands, and
39226began to cry.
39227
39228"What is it, Natasha?" said Princess Mary.
39229
39230"Nothing, nothing." She smiled at Pierre through her tears. "Good
39231night! It is time for bed."
39232
39233Pierre rose and took his leave.
39234
39235
39236Princess Mary and Natasha met as usual in the bedroom. They talked
39237of what Pierre had told them. Princess Mary did not express her
39238opinion of Pierre nor did Natasha speak of him.
39239
39240"Well, good night, Mary!" said Natasha. "Do you know, I am often
39241afraid that by not speaking of him" (she meant Prince Andrew) "for
39242fear of not doing justice to our feelings, we forget him."
39243
39244Princess Mary sighed deeply and thereby acknowledged the justice
39245of Natasha's remark, but she did not express agreement in words.
39246
39247"Is it possible to forget?" said she.
39248
39249"It did me so much good to tell all about it today. It was hard
39250and painful, but good, very good!" said Natasha. "I am sure he
39251really loved him. That is why I told him... Was it all right?" she
39252added, suddenly blushing.
39253
39254"To tell Pierre? Oh, yes. What a splendid man he is!" said
39255Princess Mary.
39256
39257"Do you know, Mary..." Natasha suddenly said with a mischievous
39258smile such as Princess Mary had not seen on her face for a long
39259time, "he has somehow grown so clean, smooth, and fresh--as if he
39260had just come out of a Russian bath; do you understand? Out of a moral
39261bath. Isn't it true?"
39262
39263"Yes," replied Princess Mary. "He has greatly improved."
39264
39265"With a short coat and his hair cropped; just as if, well, just as
39266if he had come straight from the bath... Papa used to..."
39267
39268"I understand why he" (Prince Andrew) "liked no one so much as him,"
39269said Princess Mary.
39270
39271"Yes, and yet he is quite different. They say men are friends when
39272they are quite different. That must be true. Really he is quite unlike
39273him--in everything."
39274
39275"Yes, but he's wonderful."
39276
39277"Well, good night," said Natasha.
39278
39279And the same mischievous smile lingered for a long time on her
39280face as if it had been forgotten there.
39281
39282
39283
39284
39285CHAPTER XVIII
39286
39287
39288It was a long time before Pierre could fall asleep that night. He
39289paced up and down his room, now turning his thoughts on a difficult
39290problem and frowning, now suddenly shrugging his shoulders and
39291wincing, and now smiling happily.
39292
39293He was thinking of Prince Andrew, of Natasha, and of their love,
39294at one moment jealous of her past, then reproaching himself for that
39295feeling. It was already six in the morning and he still paced up and
39296down the room.
39297
39298"Well, what's to be done if it cannot be avoided? What's to be done?
39299Evidently it has to be so," said he to himself, and hastily undressing
39300he got into bed, happy and agitated but free from hesitation or
39301indecision.
39302
39303"Strange and impossible as such happiness seems, I must do
39304everything that she and I may be man and wife," he told himself.
39305
39306A few days previously Pierre had decided to go to Petersburg on
39307the Friday. When he awoke on the Thursday, Savelich came to ask him
39308about packing for the journey.
39309
39310"What, to Petersburg? What is Petersburg? Who is there in
39311Petersburg?" he asked involuntarily, though only to himself. "Oh, yes,
39312long ago before this happened I did for some reason mean to go to
39313Petersburg," he reflected. "Why? But perhaps I shall go. What a good
39314fellow he is and how attentive, and how he remembers everything," he
39315thought, looking at Savelich's old face, "and what a pleasant smile he
39316has!"
39317
39318"Well, Savelich, do you still not wish to accept your freedom?"
39319Pierre asked him.
39320
39321"What's the good of freedom to me, your excellency? We lived under
39322the late count--the kingdom of heaven be his!--and we have lived under
39323you too, without ever being wronged."
39324
39325"And your children?"
39326
39327"The children will live just the same. With such masters one can
39328live."
39329
39330"But what about my heirs?" said Pierre. "Supposing I suddenly
39331marry... it might happen," he added with an involuntary smile.
39332
39333"If I may take the liberty, your excellency, it would be a good
39334thing."
39335
39336"How easy he thinks it," thought Pierre. "He doesn't know how
39337terrible it is and how dangerous. Too soon or too late... it is
39338terrible!"
39339
39340"So what are your orders? Are you starting tomorrow?" asked
39341Savelich.
39342
39343"No, I'll put it off for a bit. I'll tell you later. You must
39344forgive the trouble I have put you to," said Pierre, and seeing
39345Savelich smile, he thought: "But how strange it is that he should
39346not know that now there is no Petersburg for me, and that that must be
39347settled first of all! But probably he knows it well enough and is only
39348pretending. Shall I have a talk with him and see what he thinks?"
39349Pierre reflected. "No, another time."
39350
39351At breakfast Pierre told the princess, his cousin, that he had
39352been to see Princess Mary the day before and had there met--"Whom do
39353you think? Natasha Rostova!"
39354
39355The princess seemed to see nothing more extraordinary in that than
39356if he had seen Anna Semenovna.
39357
39358"Do you know her?" asked Pierre.
39359
39360"I have seen the princess," she replied. "I heard that they were
39361arranging a match for her with young Rostov. It would be a very good
39362thing for the Rostovs, they are said to be utterly ruined."
39363
39364"No; I mean do you know Natasha Rostova?"
39365
39366"I heard about that affair of hers at the time. It was a great
39367pity."
39368
39369"No, she either doesn't understand or is pretending," thought
39370Pierre. "Better not say anything to her either."
39371
39372The princess too had prepared provisions for Pierre's journey.
39373
39374"How kind they all are," thought Pierre. "What is surprising is that
39375they should trouble about these things now when it can no longer be of
39376interest to them. And all for me!"
39377
39378On the same day the Chief of Police came to Pierre, inviting him
39379to send a representative to the Faceted Palace to recover things
39380that were to be returned to their owners that day.
39381
39382"And this man too," thought Pierre, looking into the face of the
39383Chief of Police. "What a fine, good-looking officer and how kind.
39384Fancy bothering about such trifies now! And they actually say he is
39385not honest and takes bribes. What nonsense! Besides, why shouldn't
39386he take bribes? That's the way he was brought up, and everybody does
39387it. But what a kind, pleasant face and how he smiles as he looks at
39388me."
39389
39390Pierre went to Princess Mary's to dinner.
39391
39392As he drove through the streets past the houses that had been burned
39393down, he was surprised by the beauty of those ruins. The
39394picturesqueness of the chimney stacks and tumble-down walls of the
39395burned-out quarters of the town, stretching out and concealing one
39396another, reminded him of the Rhine and the Colosseum. The cabmen he
39397met and their passengers, the carpenters cutting the timber for new
39398houses with axes, the women hawkers, and the shopkeepers, all looked
39399at him with cheerful beaming eyes that seemed to say: "Ah, there he
39400is! Let's see what will come of it!"
39401
39402At the entrance to Princess Mary's house Pierre felt doubtful
39403whether he had really been there the night before and really seen
39404Natasha and talked to her. "Perhaps I imagined it; perhaps I shall
39405go in and find no one there." But he had hardly entered the room
39406before he felt her presence with his whole being by the loss of his
39407sense of freedom. She was in the same black dress with soft folds
39408and her hair was done the same way as the day before, yet she was
39409quite different. Had she been like this when he entered the day before
39410he could not for a moment have failed to recognize her.
39411
39412She was as he had known her almost as a child and later on as Prince
39413Andrew's fiancee. A bright questioning light shone in her eyes, and on
39414her face was a friendly and strangely roguish expression.
39415
39416Pierre dined with them and would have spent the whole evening there,
39417but Princess Mary was going to vespers and Pierre left the house
39418with her.
39419
39420Next day he came early, dined, and stayed the whole evening.
39421Though Princess Mary and Natasha were evidently glad to see their
39422visitor and though all Pierre's interest was now centered in that
39423house, by the evening they had talked over everything and the
39424conversation passed from one trivial topic to another and repeatedly
39425broke off. He stayed so long that Princess Mary and Natasha
39426exchanged glances, evidently wondering when he would go. Pierre
39427noticed this but could not go. He felt uneasy and embarrassed, but sat
39428on because he simply could not get up and take his leave.
39429
39430Princess Mary, foreseeing no end to this, rose first, and
39431complaining of a headache began to say good night.
39432
39433"So you are going to Petersburg tomorrow?" she asked.
39434
39435"No, I am not going," Pierre replied hastily, in a surprised tone
39436and as though offended. "Yes... no... to Petersburg? Tomorrow--but I
39437won't say good-by yet. I will call round in case you have any
39438commissions for me," said he, standing before Princess Mary and
39439turning red, but not taking his departure.
39440
39441Natasha gave him her hand and went out. Princess Mary on the other
39442hand instead of going away sank into an armchair, and looked sternly
39443and intently at him with her deep, radiant eyes. The weariness she had
39444plainly shown before had now quite passed off. With a deep and
39445long-drawn sigh she seemed to be prepared for a lengthy talk.
39446
39447When Natasha left the room Pierre's confusion and awkwardness
39448immediately vanished and were replaced by eager excitement. He quickly
39449moved an armchair toward Princess Mary.
39450
39451"Yes, I wanted to tell you," said he, answering her look as if she
39452had spoken. "Princess, help me! What am I to do? Can I hope? Princess,
39453my dear friend, listen! I know it all. I know I am not worthy of
39454her, I know it's impossible to speak of it now. But I want to be a
39455brother to her. No, not that, I don't, I can't..."
39456
39457He paused and rubbed his face and eyes with his hands.
39458
39459"Well," he went on with an evident effort at self-control and
39460coherence. "I don't know when I began to love her, but I have loved
39461her and her alone all my life, and I love her so that I cannot imagine
39462life without her. I cannot propose to her at present, but the
39463thought that perhaps she might someday be my wife and that I may be
39464missing that possibility... that possibility... is terrible. Tell
39465me, can I hope? Tell me what I am to do, dear princess!" he added
39466after a pause, and touched her hand as she did not reply.
39467
39468"I am thinking of what you have told me," answered Princess Mary.
39469"This is what I will say. You are right that to speak to her of love
39470at present..."
39471
39472Princess Mary stopped. She was going to say that to speak of love
39473was impossible, but she stopped because she had seen by the sudden
39474change in Natasha two days before that she would not only not be
39475hurt if Pierre spoke of his love, but that it was the very thing she
39476wished for.
39477
39478"To speak to her now wouldn't do," said the princess all the same.
39479
39480"But what am I to do?"
39481
39482"Leave it to me," said Princess Mary. "I know..."
39483
39484Pierre was looking into Princess Mary's eyes.
39485
39486"Well?... Well?..." he said.
39487
39488"I know that she loves... will love you," Princess Mary corrected
39489herself.
39490
39491Before her words were out, Pierre had sprung up and with a
39492frightened expression seized Princess Mary's hand.
39493
39494"What makes you think so? You think I may hope? You think...?"
39495
39496"Yes, I think so," said Princess Mary with a smile. "Write to her
39497parents, and leave it to me. I will tell her when I can. I wish it
39498to happen and my heart tells me it will."
39499
39500"No, it cannot be! How happy I am! But it can't be.... How happy I
39501am! No, it can't be!" Pierre kept saying as he kissed Princess
39502Mary's hands.
39503
39504"Go to Petersburg, that will be best. And I will write to you,"
39505she said.
39506
39507"To Petersburg? Go there? Very well, I'll go. But I may come again
39508tomorrow?"
39509
39510Next day Pierre came to say good-by. Natasha was less animated
39511than she had been the day before; but that day as he looked at her
39512Pierre sometimes felt as if he was vanishing and that neither he nor
39513she existed any longer, that nothing existed but happiness. "Is it
39514possible? No, it can't be," he told himself at every look, gesture,
39515and word that filled his soul with joy.
39516
39517When on saying good-by he took her thin, slender hand, he could
39518not help holding it a little longer in his own.
39519
39520"Is it possible that this hand, that face, those eyes, all this
39521treasure of feminine charm so strange to me now, is it possible that
39522it will one day be mine forever, as familiar to me as I am to
39523myself?... No, that's impossible!..."
39524
39525"Good-by, Count," she said aloud. "I shall look forward very much to
39526your return," she added in a whisper.
39527
39528And these simple words, her look, and the expression on her face
39529which accompanied them, formed for two months the subject of
39530inexhaustible memories, interpretations, and happy meditations for
39531Pierre. "'I shall look forward very much to your return....' Yes, yes,
39532how did she say it? Yes, 'I shall look forward very much to your
39533return.' Oh, how happy I am! What is happening to me? How happy I am!"
39534said Pierre to himself.
39535
39536
39537
39538
39539
39540CHAPTER XIX
39541
39542
39543There was nothing in Pierre's soul now at all like what had troubled
39544it during his courtship of Helene.
39545
39546He did not repeat to himself with a sickening feeling of shame the
39547words he had spoken, or say: "Oh, why did I not say that?" and,
39548"Whatever made me say 'Je vous aime'?" On the contrary, he now
39549repeated in imagination every word that he or Natasha had spoken and
39550pictured every detail of her face and smile, and did not wish to
39551diminish or add anything, but only to repeat it again and again. There
39552was now not a shadow of doubt in his mind as to whether what he had
39553undertaken was right or wrong. Only one terrible doubt sometimes
39554crossed his mind: "Wasn't it all a dream? Isn't Princess Mary
39555mistaken? Am I not too conceited and self-confident? I believe all
39556this--and suddenly Princess Mary will tell her, and she will be sure
39557to smile and say: 'How strange! He must be deluding himself. Doesn't
39558he know that he is a man, just a man, while I...? I am something
39559altogether different and higher.'"
39560
39561That was the only doubt often troubling Pierre. He did not now
39562make any plans. The happiness before him appeared so inconceivable
39563that if only he could attain it, it would be the end of all things.
39564Everything ended with that.
39565
39566A joyful, unexpected frenzy, of which he had thought himself
39567incapable, possessed him. The whole meaning of life--not for him alone
39568but for the whole world--seemed to him centered in his love and the
39569possibility of being loved by her. At times everybody seemed to him to
39570be occupied with one thing only--his future happiness. Sometimes it
39571seemed to him that other people were all as pleased as he was
39572himself and merely tried to hide that pleasure by pretending to be
39573busy with other interests. In every word and gesture he saw
39574allusions to his happiness. He often surprised those he met by his
39575significantly happy looks and smiles which seemed to express a
39576secret understanding between him and them. And when he realized that
39577people might not be aware of his happiness, he pitied them with his
39578whole heart and felt a desire somehow to explain to them that all that
39579occupied them was a mere frivolous trifle unworthy of attention.
39580
39581When it was suggested to him that he should enter the civil service,
39582or when the war or any general political affairs were discussed on the
39583assumption that everybody's welfare depended on this or that issue
39584of events, he would listen with a mild and pitying smile and
39585surprise people by his strange comments. But at this time he saw
39586everybody--both those who, as he imagined, understood the real meaning
39587of life (that is, what he was feeling) and those unfortunates who
39588evidently did not understand it--in the bright light of the emotion
39589that shone within himself, and at once without any effort saw in
39590everyone he met everything that was good and worthy of being loved.
39591
39592When dealing with the affairs and papers of his dead wife, her
39593memory aroused in him no feeling but pity that she had not known the
39594bliss he now knew. Prince Vasili, who having obtained a new post and
39595some fresh decorations was particularly proud at this time, seemed
39596to him a pathetic, kindly old man much to be pitied.
39597
39598Often in afterlife Pierre recalled this period of blissful insanity.
39599All the views he formed of men and circumstances at this time remained
39600true for him always. He not only did not renounce them subsequently,
39601but when he was in doubt or inwardly at variance, he referred to the
39602views he had held at this time of his madness and they always proved
39603correct.
39604
39605"I may have appeared strange and queer then," he thought, "but I was
39606not so mad as I seemed. On the contrary I was then wiser and had
39607more insight than at any other time, and understood all that is
39608worth understanding in life, because... because I was happy."
39609
39610Pierre's insanity consisted in not waiting, as he used to do, to
39611discover personal attributes which he termed "good qualities" in
39612people before loving them; his heart was now overflowing with love,
39613and by loving people without cause he discovered indubitable causes
39614for loving them.
39615
39616
39617
39618
39619
39620CHAPTER XX
39621
39622
39623After Pierre's departure that first evening, when Natasha had said
39624to Princess Mary with a gaily mocking smile: "He looks just, yes, just
39625as if he had come out of a Russian bath--in a short coat and with
39626his hair cropped," something hidden and unknown to herself, but
39627irrepressible, awoke in Natasha's soul.
39628
39629Everything: her face, walk, look, and voice, was suddenly altered.
39630To her own surprise a power of life and hope of happiness rose to
39631the surface and demanded satisfaction. From that evening she seemed to
39632have forgotten all that had happened to her. She no longer
39633complained of her position, did not say a word about the past, and
39634no longer feared to make happy plans for the future. She spoke
39635little of Pierre, but when Princess Mary mentioned him a
39636long-extinguished light once more kindled in her eyes and her lips
39637curved with a strange smile.
39638
39639The change that took place in Natasha at first surprised Princess
39640Mary; but when she understood its meaning it grieved her. "Can she
39641have loved my brother so little as to be able to forget him so
39642soon?" she thought when she reflected on the change. But when she
39643was with Natasha she was not vexed with her and did not reproach
39644her. The reawakened power of life that had seized Natasha was so
39645evidently irrepressible and unexpected by her that in her presence
39646Princess Mary felt that she had no right to reproach her even in her
39647heart.
39648
39649 Natasha gave herself up so fully and frankly to this new feeling
39650that she did not try to hide the fact that she was no longer sad,
39651but bright and cheerful.
39652
39653When Princess Mary returned to her room after her nocturnal talk
39654with Pierre, Natasha met her on the threshold.
39655
39656"He has spoken? Yes? He has spoken?" she repeated.
39657
39658And a joyful yet pathetic expression which seemed to beg forgiveness
39659for her joy settled on Natasha's face.
39660
39661"I wanted to listen at the door, but I knew you would tell me."
39662
39663Understandable and touching as the look with which Natasha gazed
39664at her seemed to Princess Mary, and sorry as she was to see her
39665agitation, these words pained her for a moment. She remembered her
39666brother and his love.
39667
39668"But what's to be done? She can't help it," thought the princess.
39669
39670And with a sad and rather stern look she told Natasha all that
39671Pierre had said. On hearing that he was going to Petersburg Natasha
39672was astounded.
39673
39674"To Petersburg!" she repeated as if unable to understand.
39675
39676But noticing the grieved expression on Princess Mary's face she
39677guessed the reason of that sadness and suddenly began to cry.
39678
39679"Mary," said she, "tell me what I should do! I am afraid of being
39680bad. Whatever you tell me, I will do. Tell me...."
39681
39682"You love him?"
39683
39684"Yes," whispered Natasha.
39685
39686"Then why are you crying? I am happy for your sake," said Princess
39687Mary, who because of those tears quite forgave Natasha's joy.
39688
39689"It won't be just yet--someday. Think what fun it will be when I
39690am his wife and you marry Nicholas!"
39691
39692"Natasha, I have asked you not to speak of that. Let us talk about
39693you."
39694
39695They were silent awhile.
39696
39697"But why go to Petersburg?" Natasha suddenly asked, and hastily
39698replied to her own question. "But no, no, he must... Yes, Mary, He
39699must...."
39700
39701
39702
39703
39704
39705
39706FIRST EPILOGUE: 1813 --20
39707
39708
39709
39710
39711
39712CHAPTER I
39713
39714
39715Seven years had passed. The storm-tossed sea of European history had
39716subsided within its shores and seemed to have become calm. But the
39717mysterious forces that move humanity (mysterious because the laws of
39718their motion are unknown to us) continued to operate.
39719
39720Though the surface of the sea of history seemed motionless, the
39721movement of humanity went on as unceasingly as the flow of time.
39722Various groups of people formed and dissolved, the coming formation
39723and dissolution of kingdoms and displacement of peoples was in
39724course of preparation.
39725
39726The sea of history was not driven spasmodically from shore to
39727shore as previously. It was seething in its depths. Historic figures
39728were not borne by the waves from one shore to another as before.
39729They now seemed to rotate on one spot. The historical figures at the
39730head of armies, who formerly reflected the movement of the masses by
39731ordering wars, campaigns, and battles, now reflected the restless
39732movement by political and diplomatic combinations, laws, and treaties.
39733
39734The historians call this activity of the historical figures "the
39735reaction."
39736
39737In dealing with this period they sternly condemn the historical
39738personages who, in their opinion, caused what they describe as the
39739reaction. All the well-known people of that period, from Alexander and
39740Napoleon to Madame de Stael, Photius, Schelling, Fichte,
39741Chateaubriand, and the rest, pass before their stern judgment seat and
39742are acquitted or condemned according to whether they conduced to
39743progress or to reaction.
39744
39745According to their accounts a reaction took place at that time in
39746Russia also, and the chief culprit was Alexander I, the same man who
39747according to them was the chief cause of the liberal movement at the
39748commencement of his reign, being the savior of Russia.
39749
39750There is no one in Russian literature now, from schoolboy essayist
39751to learned historian, who does not throw his little stone at Alexander
39752for things he did wrong at this period of his reign.
39753
39754"He ought to have acted in this way and in that way. In this case he
39755did well and in that case badly. He behaved admirably at the beginning
39756of his reign and during 1812, but acted badly by giving a constitution
39757to Poland, forming the Holy Alliance, entrusting power to Arakcheev,
39758favoring Golitsyn and mysticism, and afterwards Shishkov and
39759Photius. He also acted badly by concerning himself with the active
39760army and disbanding the Semenov regiment."
39761
39762It would take a dozen pages to enumerate all the reproaches the
39763historians address to him, based on their knowledge of what is good
39764for humanity.
39765
39766What do these reproaches mean?
39767
39768Do not the very actions for which the historians praise Alexander
39769I (the liberal attempts at the beginning of his reign, his struggle
39770with Napoleon, the firmness he displayed in 1812 and the campaign of
397711813) flow from the same sources--the circumstances of his birth,
39772education, and life--that made his personality what it was and from
39773which the actions for which
\No newline at end of file